Note: h: HV (CE) chapter 1, transliterated by Peter Schreiner (ca. 1991), revised October 1999. Star-passages 1-22 added March 2002. :h
nārāyaṇaṃ namaskṛtya naraṃ caiva narottamam
devīṃ sarasvatīṃ caiva tato jayam udīrayet //
Note: k: "This mantra is found only in N (except Ñ1 D6). [...] After the introductory mantra, K2 ins. *1, *2 and *3. K3 ins. *1, *5, and *3. K4 ins. *2, and *3. Ñ2 ins. *2, *4, *1, *5, *6, *7, *8, *9, and *3. Ñ3 ins. *2, *4, *1, *5, *6, *7, *9, *8, and *3. V1 ins. *2, *4, *1, *5, *6, *7, *9, *8, and *3. V2 ins. *2, *4, *1, *5, *6, *8, *7, *9, and *3. V3 Dn (Dn2 om. *4) ins. *8, *1, *5, *6, *7, *9, *2, *4, and *3. B1 ins. *8, *1, *5, *6, *9, *2, *4, and *3. B2 ins. *1, *8, *5, *6, *9, *4, *2, and *3. B3 ins. *1, *2, *4, *8, *5, *7, *9, *6, and *3. Ds ins. *1, *6, *7, *4, *5, *8, *2, and *3. D1 ins. *10, *1, *5, *2, first line of *3, *11, and lines 2-4, and 6-8 of *3. D2 ins. *2 and *3. D3 ins. *2, *4, *1, *5, *6, *7, *9, *8, and *3. D4 ins. *8, *1, *5, *6, *12, *2, and *3. D5 ins. *1, *2, *4, *8, *5, *6, *7,l *9, *13, and *3." :k
jayati parāśarasūnuḥ satyavatīhṛdayanandano vyāsaḥ |
yasyāsyakamalagalitaṃ vāṅmayam amṛtaṃ jagat pibati |
pitāmahādyaṃ pravadanti ṣaṣṭhaṃ maharṣim akṣayyavibhūtiyuktam |
nārāyaṇasyāṃsajam ekaputraṃ dvaipāyanaṃ vedamahānidhānam |
ādyaṃ puruṣam īśānaṃ puruhūtaṃ puruṣṭutam |
ṛtam ekākṣaraṃ brahma vyaktāvyaktaṃ sanātanam ||
asac ca sadasac caiva yad viśvaṃ sadasatparam |
parāvarāṇāṃ sraṣṭāraṃ purāṇaṃ param avyayam |
maṅgalyaṃ maṅgalam viṣṇuṃ vareṇyam anaghaṃ śucim |
namaskṛtya hṛṣīkeśaṃ carācaraguruṃ harim ||
naimiṣāraṇye kulapatiḥ śaunakas tu mahāmuniḥ |
sautiṃ papraccha dharmātmā sarvaśāstraviśāradaḥ |
Note: k: Lines 1-6 of 1.0*3 MBh 1,1.20-22. :k
jajñe bahujñaṃ param atyudāraṃ yaṃ dvīpamadhye sutam ātmayogāt |
parāśarāt satyavatī maharṣiṃ tasmai namo 'jñānatamonudāya |
yo gośataṃ kanakaśṛṅgamayaṃ dadāti viprāya vedaviduṣe bahuviśrutāya |
puṇyāṃ ca bhāratakathāṃ śṛṇuyāc ca tadvat tulyaṃ phalaṃ bhavati tasya ca tasya caiva |
śatāśvamedhasya yad atra puṇyaṃ catuḥsahasrasya śatakratoś ca |
bhaved anantaṃ harivaṃśadānāt prakīrtitaṃ vyāsamaharṣiṇā ca |
yad vājapeyena tu rājasūyād dṛṣṭaṃ phalaṃ hastirathena cānyat |
tal labhyate vyāsavacaḥ pramāṇaṃ gītaṃ ca vālmīkimaharṣiṇā ca |
dvaipāyanauṣṭhapuṭaniḥsṛtam aprameyaṃ puṇyaṃ pavitram atha pāpaharaṃ śivaṃ ca |
yo bhārataṃ samadhigacchati vācyamānaṃ kiṃ tasya puṣkarajalair abhiṣecanena |
yo harivaṃśaṃ lekhayati yathāvidhinā mahātapāḥ sapadi |
sa yāti hareḥ padakamalaṃ kamalaṃ madhupo yathā lubdhaḥ |
yaṃ brahma vedāntavido vadanti paraṃ pradhānaṃ puruṣaṃ tathānye |
viśvād gateḥ kāraṇam īśvaraṃ sa tasmai namo vighnavināśanāya |
saṃsāratāraṇaṃ viṣṇuṃ yogidhyeyam anuttamam |
śṛṇoti harivaṃśaṃ yaḥ śraddhayā vaṃśavardhanam |
pratyakṣaraṃ bhavet teṣāṃ kapilādānajaṃ phalam |
yo dadāti harivaṃśapustakaṃ brāhmaṇāya viduṣe sadakṣiṇam |
so 'śvamedhaphalabhāg bhaven naraḥ satyam eva kathitaṃ maharṣiṇā |
cakraṃ yasya bhujāgrahastalalitaṃ vidyutprabhaṃ rājate śaṅkho yasya virājate karatale saṃpūrṇacandraprabhaḥ |
mālā yasya sacampakā satilakā sāśokanīlotpalā sa tvāṃ pātu ṣadardhavikramagatis trilokyanātho hariḥ |
yo 'vidyādyair aśeṣair manasi vinihitaiḥ kleśasaṃjñais tridoṣair aspṛṣṭo nirguṇatvāt paramagururajaḥkarmabhis tatphalair vā |
sarvajñatvādiyukto niratiśayasukhaprāptihetur yatīnāṃ so 'nādir vāsudevaḥ śamayatu duritaṃ sarvajanmārjitaṃ vaḥ |
jitaṃ te puṇḍarīkākṣa namas te viśvabhāvana |
namas te 'stu hṛṣīkeśa mahāpuruṣapūrvaja |
śuklāmbaradharaṃ viṣṇuṃ śaśivarṇaṃ caturbhujam |
prasannavadanaṃ dhyāyet sarvavighnopaśāntaye |
vāgīśādyāḥ sumanasaḥ sarvārthānām upakrame |
yaṃ natvā kṛtakṛtyāḥ syus taṃ namāmi gajānanam |
indirākucapāṭīra+ +paṅkasaṃkalitodaraḥ |
dadyād amandam ānandam acirān no nṛkesarī |
kālindījalakallola+ +kolāhalakutūhalī |
asatkīrtanakāntāra+ +parivartanapāṃsulām |
vācaṃ śaurikathālāpa+ +gaṅgayaiva punīmahe |
indīvarakaḷaśyāmaṃ indirānandakandaḷam |
vandārujanamandāraṃ vande 'haṃ yadunandanam |
vyāsaṃ vasiṣṭhanaptāraṃ śakteḥ putram akalmaṣam |
parāśarātmajaṃ vande śukatātaṃ taponidhim |
vyāsāya viṣṇurūpāya vyāsarūpāya viṣṇave |
namo vai brahmanidhaye vāsiṣṭhāya namo namaḥ |
saute sumahadākhyānaṃ bhavatā parikīrtitam
bhāratānāṃ ca sarveṣāṃ pārthivānāṃ tathaiva ca //
devānāṃ dānavānāṃ ca gandharvoragarakṣasām
daityānām atha siddhānāṃ guhyakānāṃ tathaiva ca //
atyadbhutāni karmāṇi vikramā dharmaniścayāḥ
vicitrāś ca kathāyogā janma cāgryam anuttamam //
kathitaṃ bhavatā puṇyaṃ purāṇaṃ ślakṣṇayā girā
manaḥkarṇasukhaṃ tan māṃ prīṇāty amṛtasaṃmitam //
tatra janma kurūṇāṃ vai tvayoktaṃ lomaharṣiṇe
na tu vṛṣṇyandhakānāṃ vai tad bhavān prabravītu me //
janamejayena yat pṛṣṭaḥ śiṣyo vyāsasya dhīmataḥ
Note: k: D6 T G M1-3 ins.: :kdharmavit kathayām āsa kulaṃ teṣāṃ savistaram |
tat te 'haṃ saṃpravakṣyāmi vṛṣṇīnāṃ vaṃśam āditaḥ //
śrutvetihāsaṃ kārtsnyena bharatānāṃ sa bhārataḥ
janamejayo mahāprājño vaiśaṃpāyanam abravīt //
mahābhāratam ākhyānaṃ bahvarthaṃ bahuvistaram
kathitaṃ bhavatā vipra vistareṇa mayā śrutam //
tatra śūrāḥ samākhyātā bahavaḥ puruṣarṣabhāḥ
nāmabhiḥ karmabhiś caiva vṛṣṇyandhakamahārathāḥ //
teṣāṃ karmāvadātāni tvayoktāni dvijottama
tatra tatra samāsena vistareṇaiva cābhibho //
na ca me tṛptir astīha kīrtyamāne purātane
ekaś ca me mato rāśir vṛṣṇayaḥ pāṇḍavās tathā //
bhavāṃś ca vaṃśakuśalas teṣāṃ pratyakṣadarśivān
kathayasva kulaṃ teṣāṃ vistareṇa tapodhana //
yasya yasyānvaye ye ye tāṃs tān icchāmi veditum
Note: k: Ś1 ins.: :kpūrvaṃ kathā samākhyātā vicitrā ca mahīpate |
teṣāṃ pūrvavisṛṣṭiṃ ca vicitrām ā prajāpateḥ //
Note: k: D5 ins.: :k
sarvam etad aśeṣeṇa kathayasva dvijottama |
Note: k: D2.5 cont.: :k
yena vai śṛṇvatāṃ puṃsām aputratvaṃ praṇaśyati |
Note: k: T4 cont. after *25, T2.3 G1 ins. after 12, D2 G4 ins. after 13: :k
evaṃ saṃcodito rājā vyāsaśiṣyo mahāmune |
satkṛtya paripṛṣṭas tu sa mahātmā mahātapāḥ
vistareṇānupūrvyā ca kathayām āsa tāṃ kathām //
śṛṇu rājan kathāṃ divyāṃ puṇyāṃ pāpapraṇāśinīm
kathyamānāṃ mayā citrāṃ bahvarthāṃ śrutisaṃmitām //
yaś caināṃ dhārayet tāta śṛṇuyād vāpy abhīkṣṇaśaḥ
Note: k: D6 T1.2 G M4 ins.: :kyaś caināṃ dhārayed vipraḥ śrāvayed vā mahātmanām |
svavaṃśadhāraṇaṃ kṛtvā svargaloke mahīyate //
avyaktaṃ kāraṇaṃ yat tan nityaṃ sadasadātmakam
pradhānaṃ puruṣaṃ tasmān nirmame viśvam īśvaraḥ //
taṃ vai viddhi mahārāja brahmāṇam amitaujasam
sraṣṭāraṃ sarvabhūtānāṃ nārāyaṇaparāyaṇam //
ahaṃkaras tu mahatas tasmād bhūtāni jajñire
bhūtabhedāś ca bhūtebhya iti sargaḥ sanātanaḥ //
vistarāvayavaṃ caiva yathāprajñaṃ yathāśrutam
kīrtyamānaṃ śṛṇu mayā pūrveṣāṃ kīrtivardhanam //
dhanyaṃ yaśasyaṃ śatrughnaṃ svargyam āyurvivardhanam
kīrtanaṃ sthirakīrtīnāṃ sarveṣāṃ puṇyakarmaṇām //
tasmāt kalyāya te kalyaḥ samagraṃ śucaye śuciḥ
Note: k: Ś1 K D1.3.4.6 ins.: :ktasmai hiraṇyagarbhāya puruṣāyeśvarāya ca |
ajāya prathamāyaiva variṣṭhāya prajāpate |
brahmaṇe lokanāthāya gariṣṭhāya svayaṃbhuve |
Note: k: D1 cont.: :kpraṇamya prabhave pūrvaṃ tasmai amitatejase |
ā vṛṣṇivaṃśād vakṣyāmi bhūtasargam anuttamam //
viṣṇuḥ svayaṃbhūr bhagavān sisṛkṣur vividhāḥ prajāḥ
apa eva sasarjādau tāsu vīryam avāsṛjat //
āpo nārā iti proktā nāmnā pūrvam iti śrutiḥ
ayanaṃ tasya tāḥ pūrvaṃ tena nārāyaṇaḥ smṛtaḥ //
hiraṇyavarṇam abhavat tad aṇḍam udakeśayam
tatra jajñe svayaṃ brahmā svayaṃbhūr iti naḥ śrutam //
hiraṇyagarbho bhagavān uṣitvā parivatsaram
tad aṇḍam akarod dvaidhaṃ divaṃ bhuvam athāpi ca //
tayoḥ śakalyor madhyam ākāśam akarot prabhuḥ
apsu pāriplavāṃ pṛthvīṃ diśaś ca daśadhā dadhe //
tatra kālaṃ mano vācaṃ kāmaṃ krodham atho ratim
sasarja sṛṣṭiṃ tadrūpāṃ sraṣṭum icchan prajāpatim //
marīcim atryaṅgirasau pulastyaṃ pulahaṃ kratum
vasiṣṭhaṃ ca mahātejāḥ so 'sṛjat sapta mānasān //
sapta brahmāṇa ity ete purāṇe niścayaṃ gatāḥ
nārāyaṇātmakānāṃ vai saptānāṃ brahmajanmanām //
tato 'sṛjat punar brahmā rudraṃ roṣātmasaṃbhavam
sanatkumāraṃ ca ṛṣiṃ pūrveṣām api pūrvajam //
Note: k: 1.31: Saṃdhi nicht durchgeführt zwischen "ca ṛṣim". :k
sapta tv ete prajāyante prajā rudraś ca bhārata
skandaḥ sanatkumāraś ca tejaḥ saṃkṣipya tiṣṭhataḥ //
teṣāṃ sapta mahāvaṃśā divyā devagaṇānvitāḥ
kriyāvantaḥ prajāvanto maharṣibhir alaṃkṛtāḥ //
vidyuto 'śanimeghāṃś ca rohitendradhanūṃsi ca
Note: k: T G M4 ins. after 32; D6 after 33ab: :ksanaś ca yogatattvajñaṃ sanakaṃ ca sanandanam |
ete sapta samākhyātā ṛṣayaḥ saṃśitavratāḥ |
yādāṃsi ca sasarjādau parjanyaṃ ca sasarja ha //
ṛco yajūṃṣi sāmāni nirmame yajñasiddhaye
Note: k: Ś1 K V2 Dn D3(marg.).4 ins.: :kmukhād devān ajanayat pitṝṃś ceśo 'pi vakṣasaḥ |
prajanāc ca manuṣyān vai jaghanān nirmame 'surān |
sādhyāṃs tair ayajan devān ity evam anuśuśrumaḥ //
uccāvacāni bhūtāni gātrebhyas tasya jajñire
Note: k: D4 ins.: :kbrahmāṇaṃ hṛdayaṃ bhittvā niścito bhagavān bhṛguḥ ||
stanaṃ tu dakṣiṇaṃ bhittvā brahmajena ca vigrahaḥ |
niśrito bhagavān dharmaḥ sarvalokasukhāvahaḥ ||
trayas tasya varāḥ putrāḥ sarvabhūtamanoharāḥ |
kāmaḥ śamaś ca harṣaś ca tejasā lokadhāriṇaḥ ||
kāmasya tu ratir bhāryā śamasya prītir aṅganā |
nandā bhāryā ca harṣasya trayo lokāḥ pratiṣṭhitāḥ |
āpavasya prajāsargaṃ sṛjato hi prajāpateḥ //
Note: k: Ś1 K Dn D3(marg.).4 G4 M2 ins.: :k
sṛjyamānāḥ prajā naiva vivardhante yadā tadā |
dvidhā kṛtvātmano deham ardhena puruṣo 'bhavat
ardhena nārī tasyāṃ sa sasṛje vividhāḥ prajāḥ
divaṃ ca pṛthivīṃ caiva mahimnā vyāpya tiṣṭati //
virājam asṛjad viṣṇuḥ so 'sṛjat puruṣaṃ virāṭ
puruṣaṃ taṃ manuṃ viddhi tad vai manvantaraṃ smṛtam
dvitīyam āpavasyaitan manor antaram ucyate //
sa vairājaḥ prajāsargaṃ sasarja puruṣaḥ prabhuḥ
Note: k: D6 T G M4 ins.: :kmanuṃ prajāpatiṃ viddhi sasarja prabhur īśvaraḥ |
nārāyaṇavisargaḥ sa prajās tasyāpy ayonijāḥ //
āyuṣmān kīrtimān dhanyaḥ prajāvāṃś ca bhaven naraḥ
Note: k: T G ins. after 40ab, M1.2.4 after 40: :ksthiravaṃśaś ca bhavati mṛtaḥ svarge mahīyate |
ādisargaṃ viditvemaṃ yatheṣṭāṃ prāpnuyād gatim //
Note: h: HV (CE) chapter 2, transliterated by Peter Schreiner; version of February 13, 2002. Not yet proof-read. :h
sa sṛṣṭāsu prajāsv evam āpavo vai prajāpatiḥ
lebhe vai puruṣaḥ patnīṃ śatarūpām ayonijām //
āpavasya mahimnā tu divam āvṛtya tiṣṭhataḥ
dharmeṇaiva mahārāja śatarūpā vyajāyata //
sā tu varṣāyutaṃ taptvā tapaḥ paramaduścaram
bhartāraṃ dīptatapasaṃ puruṣaṃ pratyapadyata //
sa vai svāyaṃbhuvas tāta puruṣo manur ucyate
tasyaikasaptatiyugaṃ manvantaram ihocyate //
vairājāt puruṣād vīraṃ śatarūpā vyajāta
priyavratottānapādau vīrāt kāmyā vyajāyata //
kāmyā nāma mahābāho kardamasya prajāpateḥ
Note: k: After 6ab, T1.2.4,G ins.: :ksutā sutapasā yuktā mahatī lokadhāriṇī |
kāmyāputrāś ca catvāraḥ samrāṭ kukṣir virāṭ prabhuḥ //
Note: k: K2-4,Ñ2.3,V,B1.2,D(D3 marg.),T3.4 ins., after 6; B3 after 6ab: :k
priyavrataṃ samāsādya patiṃ sājanayat sutān |
uttānapādaṃ jagrāha putram atriḥ prajāpatiḥ
uttānapādāc caturaḥ sūnṛtā suṣuve sutān //
dharmasya kanyā suśroṇī sūnṛtā nāma viśrutā
utpannā vāci dharmeṇa dhruvasya jananī śubhā //
dhruvaṃ ca kīrtimantaṃ cāpy ayasmantam ayaspatim
uttānapādo 'janayat sūnṛtāyāṃ prajāpatiḥ //
dhruvo varṣasahasrāṇi trīṇi divyāni bhārata
tapas tepe mahārāja prārthayan sumahad yaśaḥ //
tasmai brahmā dadau prītaḥ sthānam ātmasamaṃ prabhuḥ
acalam caiva purataḥ saptarṣīṇāṃ prajāpatiḥ //
tasyābhimānam ṛddhiṃ ca mahimānaṃ nirīkṣya ca
devāsurāṇām ācāryaḥ ślokam apy uśanā jagau //
aho yasya tapaso vīryam aho śrutam aho vratam
yam adya purataḥ kṛtvā dhruvaṃ saptarṣayaḥ sthitāḥ //
tasmāc chliṣṭaṃ ca mānyaṃ ca dhruvāc chambur vyajāyata
śliṣṭer ādhatta succhāyā pañca putrān akalmaṣān
Note: k: K2,D2 ins. after 14cd; K3,D1 after 14: :kprācīnagarbhaṃ vṛkatiṃ vṛkalaṃ vṛkatejasam |
patnī prācīnagarbhasya sūnṛtā suṣuve nṛpa |
nāmnodāradhiyaṃ putram indro yaḥ pūrvajanmani ||
udāradhīḥ sutaṃ bhadrā+ +janayad vai divaṃjayam |
ripuṃ ripuṃjayaṃ jajñe varāṅgī sā divaṃjayāt |
ripuṃ ripuṃjayaṃ vipraṃ vṛkalam vṛkatejasam //
ripor ādhatta bṛhatī cākṣuṣam sarvatejasam
ajījanat puṣkariṇyāṃ vairaṇyāṃ cākṣuṣo manum //
prajāpater ātmajāyāṃ vīraṇasya mahātmanaḥ
manor ajāyanta daśa naḍvalāyāṃ mahaujasaḥ
kanyāyāṃ bharataśreṣṭha vairājasya prajāpateḥ //
ūruḥ pūruḥ śatadyumnas tapasvī satyavit kaviḥ
agniṣṭud atirātraś ca sudyumnaś ceti tenava
abhimanyuś ca daśamo naḍvalāyāṃ mahaujasaḥ //
ūror'janayat putrān ṣaḍāgneyī mahāprabhān
aṅgaṃ sumanasaṃ svātiṃ kratum āṅgirasaṃ śivam //
aṅgāt sunīthāpatyaṃ vai venam ekaṃ vyajāyata
apacāreṇa venasya prakopaḥ sumahān abhūt //
prajārtham ṛṣayo 'thāsya mamanthur dakṣiṇaṃ karam
venasya pāṇau mathite saṃbabhūva mahān ṛṣiḥ //
taṃ dṛṣṭvā munayaḥ prāhur eṣa vai muditāḥ prajāḥ
kariṣyati mahātejā yaśaś ca prāpsyate mahat //
sa dhanvī kavacī jātas tejasā nirdahann iva
Note: k: D6 T1.2 G ins. after the repetition of 22a; T4 after 22a: :kbaddhagodhāṅgulitravān |
prajārakṣākṛtotsāhaḥ |
pṛthur vainyas tadā cemāṃ rarakṣa kṣatrapūrvajaḥ //
rājasūyābhiṣiktānām ādyaḥ sa vasudhādhipaḥ
tasmāc caiva samutpannau nipuṇau sūtam agadhau //
teneyaṃ gaur mahārāja dugdhā sasyāni bhārata
prajānāṃ vṛttikāmena devaiḥ sarṣigaṇaiḥ saha //
sarpaiḥ puṇyajanaiś caiva vīrudbhiḥ parvatais tathā //
teṣu teṣu ca pātreṣu duhyamānā vasuṃdharā
prādād yathepsitaṃ kṣīraṃ tena prāṇān adhāryan //
pṛthuputrau tu dharmajñau jajñāte 'ntardhipālinau
śikhaṇḍinī havirdhānam antardhānād vyājāyata //
havirdhānāt ṣaḍāgneyī dhiṣaṇājanayat sutān
prācīnabarhiṣaṃ śukram gayaṃ kṛṣṇaṃ vrajājinau //
prācīnabarhir bhagavān mahān āsīt prajāpatiḥ
havirdhānān mahārāja yena saṃvardhitāḥ prajāḥ //
prācīnāgrāḥ kuśās tasya pṛthivyāṃ janamejaya
prācīnabarher abhavan pṛthivītalacāriṇaḥ //
samudratanayāyāṃ tu kṛtadāro 'bhavat prabhuḥ
mahatas tapasaḥ pāre savarṇāyāṃ mahīpatiḥ //
savarṇādhatta sāmudrī daśa prācīnabarhiṣaḥ
Note: k: After 32ab, T1.2 G1.3.4 ins.: :kputrān vai janayām āsa sarvalokābhipūjitān |
sarve pracetasa nāma dhanurvedasya pāragāḥ //
apṛthagdharmacaraṇās te 'tapyanta mahat tapaḥ
daśa varṣasahasrāṇi samudrasalileśayāḥ //
tapaś caratsu pṛthivīṃ pracetaḥsu mahīruhaḥ
arakṣyamāṇām āvavrur babhūvātha prajākṣayaḥ //
Note: k: After 34, Ñ2 V B2 Ds D3-5 ins.: :k
pratyāhṛtāḥ prajāḥ sarvāś cākṣuṣasyāntare manoḥ |
nāśakan māruto vātuṃ vṛtaṃ kham abhavad drumaiḥ
daśa varṣasahasrāṇi na śekuś ceṣṭituṃ prajāḥ //
tad upaśrutya tapasā yuktāḥ sarve pracetasaḥ
Note: k: For 36ab, Ñ1 subst.: :kprācetasam upastavya tapasaḥ sarvaparvataiḥ |
mukhebhyo vāyum agniṃ ca te 'sṛjañ jātamanyavaḥ //
unmūlān atha vṛkṣāṃs tān kṛtvā vāyur aśoṣayat
tān agnir adahad ghora evam āsīd drumakṣayaḥ //
drumakṣayam atho buddhvā kiṃcic chiṣṭeṣu śākhiṣu
upagamyābravīd etān rājā somaḥ pratāpavān //
kopaṃ yacchata rājānaḥ sarve prācīnabarhiṣaḥ
vṛkṣaśūnyā kṛtā pṛthvī śāmyetām agnimārutau //
ratnabhūtā ca kanyeyaṃ vṛkṣāṇāṃ varavarṇinī
bhaviṣyaṃ jānatā tāta dhṛtā garbheṇa vai mayā //
māriṣā nāma nāmnaiṣā vṛkṣāṇām iti nirmitā
bhāryā vo 'stu mahābhāgā somavaṃśavivardhinī //
Note: k: "mahābhāgā" could be attribute of Māriṣā (without visarga) or of the Pracetasaḥ (with visarga). :k
yuṣmākaṃ tejaso 'rdhena mama cārdhena tejasaḥ
asyām utpatsyate vidvān dakṣo nāma prajāpatiḥ //
sa imāṃ dagdhabhūyiṣṭhāṃ yuṣmattejomayena vai
agnināgnisamo bhūyaḥ prajāḥ saṃvardhayiṣyati //
tataḥ somasya vacanāj jagṛhus te pracetasaḥ
saṃhṛtya kopaṃ vṛkṣebhyaḥ patnīṃ dharmeṇa māriṣām //
Note: k: After 44, N (except Ś1 Ñ2 D6) T4 G2 ins.: :k
māriṣāyāṃ tatas te vai manasā garbham ādadhuḥ |
daśabhyas tu pracetobhyo māriṣāyāṃ prajāpatiḥ
dakṣo jajñe mahātejāḥ somasyāṃśena bhārata //
putrān utpādayām āsa somavaṃśavivardhanān
acarāṃś ca carāṃś caiva dvipado 'tha catuṣpadaḥ //
sa sṛṣṭvā manasā dakṣaḥ palścād asṛjata striyaḥ
Note: k: After 47ab, V2 ins.: :ktadā prajāvivṛddhyarthaṃ mahātejāḥ prajāpatiḥ |
dadau sa daśa darmāya kaśyapāya trayodaśa
śiṣṭāḥ somāya rājñe tu nakṣatrākhyā dadau prabhuḥ //
tāsu devā khagā gāvo nāgā ditijadānavāḥ
gandharvāpsarasaś caiva jajñire 'nyāś ca jātayaḥ //
tataḥprabhṛti rājendra prajā maithunasaṃbhavāḥ
saṃkalpād darśanāt sparśāt pūrveṣāṃ sṛṣṭir ucyate //
devānāṃ dānavānāṃ ca gandharvoragarakṣasām
saṃbhavaḥ kathitaḥ pūrvaṃ dakṣasya ca mahātmanaḥ //
aṅguṣṭhād brahmaṇo jāto dakṣaś coktas tvayānagha
Note: k: After 51ab, N (except Ś1 Ñ1) T2.4 G M4 ins.: :kvāmāṅguṣṭhāt tathā caiva tasya patnī vyajāyata |
kathaṃ prācetasatvaṃ sa punar lebhe mahātapāḥ //
etaṃ me saṃśayaṃ vipra vyākhyātuṃ tvam ihārhasi
dauhitraś caiva somasya kathaṃ śvaśuratāṃ gataḥ //
utpattiś ca nirodhaś ca nityau bhūteṣu bhārata
ṛṣayo 'tra na muhyanti vidyāvantaś ca ye janāḥ //
yuge yuge bhavanty ete sarve dakṣādayo nṛpa
punaś caiva nirudhyante vidvāṃs tatra na muhyati //
jyaiṣṭhyaṃ kāniṣṭhyam apy eṣāṃ pūrvaṃ nāsīj janādhipa
tapa eva garīyo 'bhūt prabhāvaś caiva kāraṇam //
imāṃ hi sṛṣṭiṃ dakṣasya yo vidyāt sacarācaram
prajāvān āyur uttīrṇaḥ svargaloke mahīyate //
Note: k: After 56, D2 ins.: :k
divyān bhogān avāpnoti rambhādistrībhir āvṛtaḥ |
Note: h: HV (CE) chapter 3, transliterated by Peter Schreiner; version of March, 2002. Not yet proof-read. :h
devānāṃ dānavānāṃ ca gandharvoragarakṣasām
utpattiṃ vistareṇaiva vaiśaṃpāyana kīrtaya //
prajāḥ sṛjeti vyādiṣṭaḥ pūrvaṃ dakṣaḥ svayaṃbhuvā
yathā sasarja bhūtāni tathā śṛṇu mahīpate //
manasā tv eva bhūtāni pūrvam evāsṛjat prabhuḥ
ṛṣīn devān sagandharvān asurān atha rākṣasān //
Note: k: After 3, K2.4 Ñ2.3 V B D ins.: :k
yakṣabhūtapiśācāṃś ca vayaḥpaśumṛgāṃs tathā |
yadāsya yatamānasya na vyavardhanta vai prajāḥ
Note: k: After 4ab, Ś1 K V2 Dn D1.2.4(marg.) T2-4 G2.4 ins.: :kapadhyātā bhagavatā mahādevena dhīmatā |
tataḥ saṃcintya tu punaḥ prajāhetoḥ prajāpatiḥ //
sa maithunena dharmeṇa sisṛkṣur vividhā prajāḥ
asiknīm āvahat patnīṃ vīraṇasya prajāpateḥ
sutāṃ sutapasā yuktāṃ mahatīṃ lokadhāraṇīm //
atha putrasahasrāṇi vairaṇyāṃ pañca vīryavān
asiknyāṃ janayām āsa dakṣa eva prajāpatiḥ //
tāṃs tu dṛṣṭvā mahābhāgān saṃvivardhayiṣūn prajāḥ
devarṣiḥ priyasaṃvādo nāradaḥ prābravīd idam
nāśāya vacanaṃ teṣāṃ śāpāyaivātmanas tathā //
yaṃ kaśyapaḥ sutavaraṃ parameṣṭhī vyajījanat
dakṣasya vai duhitari dakṣaśāpabhayān muniḥ //
pūrvaṃ sa hi samutpanno nāradaḥ parameṣṭhinaḥ
asiknyām atha vairaṇyāṃ bhūyo devarṣisattamaḥ
taṃ bhūyo janayām āsa piteva munipuṃgavam //
tena dakṣaya putrā vai haryaśvā iti viśrutāḥ
nirmathya nāśitāḥ sarve vidhinā ca na saṃśayaḥ //
tasyodyatas tadā dakṣo nāśāyāmitavikramaḥ
brahmarṣīn purataḥ kṛtvā yācitaḥ parameṣṭhinā //
tato 'bhnisaṃdhiṃ cakre vai dakṣas tu parameṣṭhinā
kanyāyāṃ nārado mahyaṃ tava putro bhaved iti //
tato dakṣaḥ sutāṃ prādāt priyāṃ vai parameṣṭhine
sa tasyāṃ nārado jajñe bhūyaḥ śāpabhayād ṛṣiḥ //
kathaṃ praṇāśitāḥ putrā nāradena maharṣinā
prajāpater dvijaśreṣṭha śrotum icchāmi tattvataḥ //
dakṣasya putrā haryaśvā vivardhayiṣavaḥ prajāḥ
samāgatā mahāvīryā nāradas tān uvāca ha //
bāliśā bata yūyaṃ ye nāsyā jānīta vai bhuvaḥ
Note: k: K1(marg.).2.3 (all first time).4 Ñ V B Dn Ds D1-4.5(first time).6 T1.3.4 G4 ins. after 16ab; K1(marg.).2.3 D5 (all second time) after 17ab; T2 G1-3.5 after 16; M4 after 18ab: :kpramāṇaṃ sraṣṭukāmā vai prajā prācetasātmajāḥ |
antar ūrdhvam adhaś caiva kathaṃ srakṣyatha vai prajāḥ //
Note: k: Ś1 Dn2 D4 ins. after 16; K1.3 cont. after the first occurrence of *50: :k
vāyor anaśanaṃ prāpya gatās te vai parābhavam |
te tu tadvacanaṃ śrutvā prayātā sarvatodiśam
adyāpi na nivartante samudrebhya ivāpagāḥ //
haryaśveṣv atha naṣṭeṣu dakṣaḥ prācetasaḥ punaḥ
vairaṇyām eva putrāṇāṃ sahasram asṛjat prabhuḥ //
vivardhayiṣavas te tu śabalāśvāḥ prajās tadā
pūrvoktaṃ vacanaṃ tāta nāradenaiva coditāḥ //
anyonyam ūcus te sarve samyag āha mahān ṛṣiḥ
bhrātṝṇāṃ padavī caiva gantavyā nātra saṃśayaḥ
jñātvā pramāṇaṃ pṛthvyāś ca sukhaṃ srakṣyāmahe prajāḥ //
Note: k: After 20, Ñ2.3 V B Dn D8u T3.4 ins.: :k
ekāgrā svasthamanaso yathāvad anupūrvaśaḥ |
te 'pi tenaiva mārgeṇa prayātāḥ sarvatodiśam
adyāpi na nivartante samudrebhya ivāpagāḥ //
Note: k: K2.3(first time).4 Ñ2.3 V B D T G1-3.5 M4 ins. after 21; K1.3(second time) after 22: :k
naṣṭeṣu śabalāśveṣu dakṣa kruddho 'bravīd vacaḥ |
nāradaṃ nāśam ehīti garbhavāsaṃ vaseti ca |
tadāprabhṛti vai bhrātā bhrātur anveṣaṇe nṛpa
prayāto naśyati vibho tan na kāryaṃ vipaśyatā //
tāṃś cāpi naṣṭān vijñāya putrān dakṣaḥ prajāpatiḥ
Note: k: After 23ab, Ds ins.: :ktadbhītyā nāradaṃ śaptvā kanyā evāsṛjat prabhuḥ |
ṣaṣṭiṃ dakṣo 'sṛjat kanyā vairaṇyām iti na śrutam //
Note: k: After 23, K2.4 Ñ V B Dn Ds D1-5 T G1-3.5 ins.: :k
tās tadā pratijagrāha bhāryārthe kaśyapaḥ prabhuḥ |
somo dharmaś ca kauravya tathaivānye maharṣayaḥ |
dadau sa daśa dharmāya kaśyapāya trayodaśa
saptaviṃśati somāya catasro 'riṣṭanemaye //
dve caiva bahuputrāya dve caivāṅgirase tathā
dve bhṛśāśvāya viduṣe tāsāṃ nāmāni me śṛṇu //
arundhatī vasur jāmī lambā bhānur marutvatī
saṃkalpā ca muhūrtā ca sādhyā viśvā ca bhārata
dharmapatnyo daśa tv etās tāsv apatyāni me śṛṇu //
viśvedevās tu viśvāyāḥ sādhyā sādhyān vyajāyata
marutvatyāṃ marutvanto vasos tu vasavaḥ smṛtāḥ //
bhānos tu bhānavas tāta muhūrtās tu mūhūrtajāḥ
lambāyāś caiva ghoṣo 'tha nāgavīthī ca jāmijā //
pṛthivīviṣayaṃ sarvam arundhatyāṃ vyajāyata
saṃkalpāyās tu sarvātmā jajñe saṃkalpa eva ca //
Note: k: K1(marg. "sec. m.").2-4 Ñ1(first time).2.3 V B Dn Ds D2.3(marg.).5.6 ins. after 29; D4 after 34: :k
nāgavīthyāś ca jāminyā vṛṣalambā vyajāyata |
yā rājan somapatnyas tu dakṣaḥ prācetaso dadau
sarvā nakṣatranāmnyas tu jyotiṣe parikīrtitāḥ //
ye tv aneke suragaṇā devā jyotiḥpurogamāḥ
vasavo 'ṣṭau samākhyātās teṣāṃ vakṣyāmi vistaram //
āpo dhruvaś ca somaś ca dharaś caivānilo 'nalaḥ
pratyūṣaś ca prabhasaś ca vasavo nāmabhiḥ śrutāḥ //
āpasya putro vaitaṇḍyaḥ śramaḥ śānto munis tathā
dhruvasya putro bhagavān kālo lokaprakālanaḥ //
somasya bhagavān varcā varcasvī yena jāyate
dharasya putro draviṇo hutahavyavahas tathā
manoharāyāḥ śiśiraḥ prāṇo 'tha ramaṇas tathā //
anilasya śivā bhāryā yasyāḥ putraḥ purojavaḥ
avijñātagatiś caiva dvau putrāv anilasya tu //
agniputraḥ kumāras tu śarastambe śriyā vṛtaḥ
tasya śākho viśākhaś ca naigameṣaś ca pṛṣṭhajaḥ
apatyaṃ kṛttikānāṃ sa kārttikeya iti smṛtaḥ //
Note: k: After 36, N (except Ś1 Ñ1) T3.4 G2 ins.: :k
skandaḥ sanatkumāraś ca sṛṣṭaḥ pādena tejasaḥ |
pratyūṣasya viduḥ putram ṛṣiṃ nāmnātha devalam
dvau putrau devalasyāpi kṣamāvantau manīṣiṇau //
bṛhaspates tu bhaginī varastrī brahmacāriṇī
yogasiddhā jagat kṛtsnam asaktā vicacāra ha //
prabhāsasya tu bhāryā sā vasūnām aṣṭamasya tu
visvakarmā mahābhāgas tasyāṃ jajñe prajāpatiḥ //
kartā śilpasahasrāṇāṃ tridaśānāṃ ca vardhakiḥ
bhūṣaṇānāṃ ca sarveṣāṃ kartā śilpavatāṃ varaḥ //
yaḥ sarveṣāṃ vimānānī daivatānāṃ cakāra ha
mānuṣāś copajīvanti yasya śilpaṃ mahātmanaḥ //
Note: k: K1-3 Ñ2.3 V1.2 B Dn Ds D1.2.3(marg.).4-6 T3.4 M4 ins. after 41; K4 V3 T1.2 G1.2.4.5 after 42: :k
surabhiḥ kaśyapād rudrān ekādaśa vinirmame |
mahādevaprasādena tapasā bhāvitā satī |
ajaikapād ahirbudhnyas tvaṣṭā rudraś ca vīryavān
tvaṣṭuś caivātmajaḥ śrīmān viśvarūpo mahāyaśāḥ //
haraś ca bahurūpaś ca tryambakaś cāparājitaḥ
vṛṣākapiś ca śaṃbhuś ca kapardī raivatas tathā //
Note: k: After 43, K2.4 V B Ds D1-3.5 T G M4 ins.: :k
mṛgavyādhaś ca sarpaś ca kapālī ca viśāṃ pate |
ekādaśaite kathitā rudrās tribhuvaneśvarāḥ
śataṃ caivaṃ samākhyātaṃ rudrāṇām amitaujasām //
Note: k: After 44, K Ñ2.3 V B D T2-4 G M4 ins.: :k
purāṇe bharataśreṣṭha yair vyāptāḥ sacarācarāḥ |
lokā bharataśārdūla kaśyapasya nibodha me |
Note: k: V2 cont.: :k
anyaiḥ satyavratā rājan yābhir lokatrayaṃ dhṛtam |
aditir ditir danuś caiva ariṣṭā surasā tathā
surabhir vinatā caiva tāmrā krodhavaśā irā
kadrūr muniś ca lokeśa tāsv apatyāni me śṛṇu //
Note: k: No sandhi between "krodhavaśā" and "irā"? :k
Note: k: After 45c, D6 T G M3.4 ins.: :k
... khaṣā caiva trayodaśa |
kaśyapasya tu bhāryā vai ... |
Note: k: Wrong sandhi if "khaṣā" stands for plural "khaṣāḥ"? :k
pūrvamanvantare śreṣṭhā dvādaśāsan surottamāḥ
tuṣitā nāma te 'nyonyam ūcur vaivasvate 'ntare //
upasthite 'tiyaśasyaś cākṣuṣasyāntre manoḥ
hitārthaṃ sarvalokānāṃ samāgamya parasparam //
āgacchata drutaṃ devā aditiṃ saṃpraviśya vai
manvantare prasūyāmas tan naḥ śreyo bhaviṣyati //
evam uktvā tu te sarve cākṣuṣasyāntare manoḥ
mārīcāt kaśyapāj jātās te 'dityā dakṣakanyayā //
Note: k: After 49, Ds ins.: :k
pūrvajanmani sutapaḥ+ +pṛśnirūpe babhūvatuḥ |
tatra viṣṇuś ca śakraś ca jajñāte punar eva hi
aryamā caiva dhātā ca tvaṣṭā pūṣā tathaiva ca //
vivasvān savitā caiva mitro varuṇa eva ca
aṃśo bhagaś cātitejā ādityā dvādaśa smṛtāḥ //
cākṣuṣasyāntare pūrvam āsan ye tuṣitāḥ surāḥ
vaivasvate 'ntare te vai ādityā dvādaśa smṛtāḥ //
saptaviṃśat tu yāḥ proktāḥ somapatnyo 'tha suvratāḥ
tāsām apatyāny abhavan dīptāny amitatejasām //
Note: k: After 53, D5 ins.: :k
tārāgaṇāḥ samastā ye gagane ye cakāsati |
ariṣṭanemeḥ patnīnām apatyānīha ṣoḍaśa
bahuputrasya viduṣaś catasro vidyutaḥ smṛtāḥ
pratyaṅgirasajāḥ śreṣṭhā ṛco brahmarṣisatkṛtāḥ //
bhṛśāśvasya tu devarṣer devapraharaṇāḥ sutāḥ
ete yugasahasrānte jāyante punar eva ha //
sarve devagaṇās tāta trayas triṃśat tu kāmajāḥ
teṣām api ca rājendra nirodhotpattir ucyate //
yathā sūryasya kauravya udayāstamayāv iha
Note: k: After 57ab, D6 T1.3.4 G ins.: :ktathā yugāni rājendra praḷayā manavas tathā |
evaṃ devanikāyās te saṃbhavanti yuge yuge //
dityāḥ putradvayaṃ jajñe kaśyapād iti naḥ śrutam
Note: k: After 58ab, K2.4 B1 D1.2.5 ins.: :kkaśyapasyātmajāv etau sarvebhyaḥ pūrvajau matau |
hiraṇyakaśipuś caiva hiraṇyākṣaś ca bhārata
siṃhikā cābhavat kanyā vipracitteḥ parigrahaḥ //
Note: k: After 58, K Ñ2.3 V B D T1.2 G1.3.5 ins.: :k
saiṃhikeyā iti khyātās tasyāḥ putrā mahābalāḥ |
Note: k: K2.4 V B2 Dn D2.3.5 G3 cont.: :k
gaṇas teṣāṃ tu rājendra daśasāhasra ucyate |
Note: k: After *68, V1(marg.).3 read 64a-65b, V1 repeating the same in its proper place. While K2 V2 B2 D3(marg.).5 cont. after *68; Ñ2.3 B1.3 Ds D4.6 ins. after 58; V1 after the first occurrence of 64ab; V3 after 64ab: :k
teṣāṃ putrāś ca pautrāś ca śataśo 'tha sahasraśaḥ |
asaṃkhyātā mahābāho hiraṇyakaśipoḥ śṛṇu |
hiraṇyakaśipoḥ putrāś catvāraḥ prathitaujasaḥ
anuhrādaś ca hrādaś ca prahrādaś caiva vīryavān //
saṃhrādas ca caturtho 'bhūd dhrādaputro hradas tathā
Note: k: After 60ab, K1-3 V2.3 Dn D4 ins.: :ksaṃhrādaputrau sundaś ca nisundas tāv ubhau smṛtau |
hradasya putro 'py āyur vai śivaḥ kālas tathaiva ca
Note: k: After 60cd, T G1.3-5 M4 ins.: :ksaṃhrādaputra āyuṣmāñ śibir bāṣkala eva ca |
Note: k: T3 cont.: :kteṣāṃ madhye mahābhāga sarvatra samadṛg vaśī |
prahrādaḥ paramāṃ bhaktiṃ ya uvāca janārdane |
virocanaś ca prāhrādir balir jajñe virocanāt //
baleḥ putraśataṃ tv āsīd bāṇajyeṣṭhaṃ narādhipa
dhṛtarāṣṭraś ca sūryaś ca candramāś cendratāpanaḥ //
kumbhanābho gardabhākṣaḥ kukṣir ity edvamādayaḥ
bāṇas teṣām atibalo jyeṣṭhaḥ paśupateḥ priyaḥ //
purākalpe hi bāṇena prasādyomāpatiṃ prabhum
pārśvato me vihāraḥ syād ity evaṃ yācito varaḥ //
Note: k: After 63, V1.3 B2(marg.) Ds Bomb. and Poona eds. ins.: :k
bāṇasya cendradamano lohityām udapadyata |
gaṇas teṣāṃ tu rājendra śatasāhasrasaṃmitaḥ |
hiraṇāksasutāḥ pañca vidvāṃsaḥ sumahābalāḥ
jharjharaḥ śakuniś caiva bhūtasaṃtāpanas tathā
mahānābhaś ca vikrāntaḥ kālanābhas tathaiva ca //
abhavan danuputrās tu śataṃ tīvraparākramāḥ
tapasvino mahāvīryāḥ prādhānyena nibodha tān //
dvimūrdhā śakuniś caiva tathā śaṅkuśirā vibhuḥ
Note: k: After 66ab, N(except Ś1 Ñ1 D3) T2-4 G1-3.5 M4 ins.: :kśaṅkukarṇo vivādaś ca gaveṣṭhī duṃdubhis tathā |
ayomukhaḥ śambaraś ca kapilo vāmanas tathā //
marīcir maghavāṃś caiva iḍā gargaśirās tathā
vikṣobhaṇaś ca ketuś ca ketuvīryaśatahradau //
indrajit sasrvajic caiva vajranābhas tathaiva ca
Note: k: After 68ab, K2.4 Ñ3 V B D(except D2) T3.4 G4 ins.: :kmahānābhaś ca vikrāntaḥ kālanābhas tathaiva ca |
ekacakro mahābāhus tārakaś ca mahābalaḥ //
vaiśvānaraḥ pulomā ca vidrāvaṇamahāśirau
svarbhānur vṛṣaparvā ca vipracittiś ca vīryavān //
Note: k: After 69, N(except Ś1 Ñ1) T G ins.: :k
sūkṣmaś caiva nicandraś ca ūrṇanabho mahāhiriḥ |
asilomā sukeśī ca śaṭhaś ca balako madaḥ |
tathā gaganamūrdhā ca kumbhanābho mahāsuraḥ |
pramado mayaḥ kupatho hayagrīvaś ca vīryavān ||
vaisṛpaḥ savirūpākṣaḥ supatho 'tha harāharau |
hiraṇyakaśipuś caiva śatamāyaś ca śambaraḥ |
śarabhaḥ śalabhaś caiva vipracittiś ca vīryavān |
sarva ete danoḥ putrāḥ kaśyapād abhijajñire
vipracittipradhānās te dānavāḥ sumahābalāḥ //
Note: k: After 70, M4 repeats 69ab. While N(except Ś1 K3 Ñ1) T G ins. after 70p; M4 after the repetition of 69ab: :k
eteṣāṃ yad apatyaṃ tu tan na śakyaṃ narādhipa |
prasaṃkhyātuṃ mahīpāla putrapautram anantakam |
svarbhānos tu prabhā kanyā pulomnas tu śacī sutā
upadānavī hayaśirāḥ śarmiṣṭhā vārṣaparvaṇī //
Note: k: 3.71c hypermetric. :k
pulomā kālakā caiva vaiśvānarasute ubhe
bahvapatye mahāsattve mārīces tu parigrahaḥ //
tayoḥ putrasahasrāṇi ṣaṣṭiṃ dānavasattamān
Note: k: K2.4 Ñ2.3 V B D T G1.2 M4 ins. after 73ab; G3-5 after 73: :kcaturdaśaśatān anyān hiraṇyapuravāsinaḥ |
mārīcir janayām āsa mahatā tapasānvitaḥ //
paulomāḥ kālakeyāś ca dānavās te mahābalāḥ
avadhyā devatānāṃ hi hiraṇyapuravāsinaḥ
pitāmahaprasādena ye hatāḥ savyasācinā //
Note: k: After 74, N(except Ś1 K3 Ñ1; K1 marg.) T G M4 ins.: :k
prabhāyā nahuṣaḥ putro jayantaś ca sacīsutaḥ |
pūruṃ jajñe 'tha śarmiṣṭhā duḥṣantam upadānavī |
tato 'pare mahāvīryā dānavā atidāruṇāḥ
siṃhikāyām athotpannā vipracitteḥ sutās tathā //
daityadānavasaṃyogāj jātās tīvraparākramāḥ
siṃhikeyā iti khyātās trayodaśa mahābalāḥ //
vyaṅgaḥ śalyaś ca balinau balaś caiva mahābalaḥ
vātāpir namuciś caiva ilvalaḥ khasṛmas tathā //
ājjiko narakaś caiva kālanābhas tathaiva ca
Note: k: K2-4 V1.3 B2.3 Dn Ds D2.4-6 T G1.2.4.5 M4 ins. after 78ab; K1 Ñ2.3 V2 B1 D3 G3 after 78; D1 cont. after *81: :krāhur jyeṣṭhas tu teṣāṃ vai candrasūryapramardanaḥ |
śaraḥ potaraṇaś caiva vajranābhaś ca vīryavān ||
mūkaś caiva tuhuṇḍaś ca hradaputrau babhūvatuḥ |
mārīcaḥ sundaputraś ca tāḍakāyāṃ vyajāyata |
Note: k: While D1 ins. after 78ab: :ksvarbhānuś ca mahāvīryo vaktrayodhī mahāsuraḥ |
saramāṇas tathā caiva śarakalpaś ca vīryavān //
ete vai dānavāḥ śreṣṭhā danuvaṃśavivardhanāḥ
teṣāṃ putrāś ca pautrāś ca śataśo 'tha sahasraśaḥ //
saṃhrādasya tu daityasya nivātakavacāḥ kule
samutpannāḥ sumahatā tapasā bhāvitātmanaḥ //
Note: k: After 80, N(except Ś1 K3 Ñ1) T G M4 ins.: :k
catasraḥ koṭayas tāś ca maṇimatyāṃ nivāsinaḥ |
te 'py avadhyās tu devānām arjunena vipātitāḥ |
Note: k: T1.2 G cont.: :k
anekamāyākuśalā dhanurvedasya pāragāḥ |
ṣaṭ sutāḥ sumahāsattvās tāmrāyāḥ parikīrtitāḥ
kākī śyenī ca bhāsī ca sugrīvī śucigṛdhrike //
kākī tu janayām āsa ulūkī pratyulūkakān
śyenī śyenāṃs tathā bhāsī bhāsān gṛdhrāṃś ca gṛdhrikā //
śucir audakān pakṣigaṇān sugrīvī tu paraṃtapa
aśvān uṣṭrān gardabhāṃś ca tāmrāvaṃśaḥ prakīrtitaḥ //
vinatāyās tu putrau dvāv aruṇo garuḍas tathā
suparṇaḥ patatāṃ śreṣṭho dāruṇaḥ svena karmaṇā //
surasāyāḥ sahasraṃ tu sarpāṇām amitaujasām
anekaśirasāṃ tāta khecarāṇāṃ mahātmanām //
kādraveyās tu balilnaḥ sahasram amitaujasaḥ
suparṇavaśagā nāgā jajñire 'nekamastakāḥ //
teṣāṃ pradhānāḥ satataṃ śeṣavāsukitakṣakāḥ
airāvato mahāpadmaḥ kambalāśvatarāv ubhau //
ailāpatraś ca śaṅkhaś ca karkoṭakadhanaṃjayau
mahānīlamahākarṇau dhṛtarāṣṭrabalāhakau //
kuharaḥ puṣpadaṃṣṭraś ca durmukhaḥ sumukhas tathā
śaṅkhaś ca śaṅkhapālaś ca kapilo vāmanas tathā //
nahuṣaḥ śaṅkharomā ca maṇir ity evamādayaḥ
Note: k: After 90ab, T3 ins.: :kete cānye ca bahavo daṃdaśūkā viṣolbaṇāḥ |
Note: k: T3 cont.; K1.2(also marg.).4 Ñ2.3 V B Dn2 D3 D1-6 T2.4 G1.4 ins. after 90ab; Dn1 after 89ab: :kteṣāṃ putrāś ca pautrāś ca garuḍena nipātitāḥ |
caturdaśasahasrāṇi krūrāṇām uragāśinā |
gaṇaṃ krodhavaśaṃ viddhi tatra sarve ca daṃṣṭriṇaḥ //
sthalajāḥ pakṣiṇo 'bjās ca dharāyāḥ prasavaḥ smṛtaḥ
Note: k: After 91ab, Ś1 ins.: :kanāyuṣāyāḥ putrās tu pañcāśat sumahābalāḥ |
surato guṇavṛttaś ca vikṣaro 'tha nṛpas tathā |
gās tu vai janayām āsa surabhī mahiṣī tathā //
irā vṛkṣalatāvallīs tṛṇajātīś ca sarvaśaḥ
khasā tu yakṣaraksāṃsi munir apsarasas tathā //
ariṣṭā tu mahāsattvān gandharvān amitaujasaḥ
ete kaśyapadāyādāḥ kīrtitāḥ sthāṇujaṃgamāḥ //
teṣāṃ putrāś ca pautrāś ca śataśo 'tha sahasraśaḥ
eṣa manvantare tāta sargaḥ svārociṣe smṛtaḥ //
vaivasvate tu mahati vāruṇe vitate kratau
juhvānasya brahmaṇo vai prajāsarga ihocyate //
pūrvaṃ yatra tu brahmarṣīn utpannān sapta mānasān
putratve kalpayām āsa svayam eva pitāmahaḥ //
tato virodhe devānāṃ dānavānāṃ ca bhārata
ditir vinaṣṭaputrā vai toṣayām āsa kaśyapam //
tāṃ kaśyapaḥ prasannātmā samyagārādhitas tayā
vareṇa cchandayām āsa sā ca vavre varaṃ tadā //
putram indravadhārthāya samartham amitaujasam
sa ca tasyai varaṃ prādāt prārthitaṃ sumahātapāḥ //
dattvā ca varam avyagro mārīcas tām abhāṣata
indraṃ putro nihantā te garbhe cec charadāṃ śatam //
yadi dhārayase śaucaṃ tatparā vratam āsthitā
bhaviṣyati sutas te 'yaṃ yady enaṃ dhārayiṣyasi //
tathety abhihito bhartā tayā devyā mahātapāḥ
dhārayām āsa garbhaṃ tu śuciḥ sā vasudhādhipa //
Note: k: After 102, Db T G1-3.5 M4 ins.: :k
nityaṃ triṣavaṇaṃ snātā kṛcchracāndrāyaṇe ratā |
tato 'bhyupagamād dityāṃ garbham ādhāya kaśyapaḥ
rocayan vai gaṇaśreṣṭhaṃ devānām amitaujasām //
tejaḥ saṃbhṛtya durdharṣam avadhyam amaraiḥ sadā
jagāma partavāyaiva tapase saṃśitavrataḥ //
Note: k: After 104, T3 ins.: :k
dadhāra sā ca taṃ garbhaṃ samyak sā ca samanvitā ||
garbham ātmavadhārthāya jñātvā taṃ maghavān api |
Note: k: T3 cont.; T2 G M4 ins. after 104: :k
gate tu kāśyape tāta varadaḥ pākaśāsanaḥ |
Note: k: T2.3 G M4 cont.; D6 T1.4 ins. after 104: :k
tasyāś caivāntaraprepsur vavande caraṇau diteḥ |
śuśrūṣayāmy ahaṃ devi pādau te niyatavrate |
evamuktā tu sā devī śakreṇāmitatejasā |
uvāca vacanaṃ devī śakraṃ śatrunibarhaṇam ||
śuśrūṣaya mahābhāga niyatātmā mahādyute |
tataḥ paśyasi saṃjātaṃ bhrātaraṃdīptatejasam ||
tac chrutvā vacanaṃ devyāḥ śuśrūṣanaparāyaṇaḥ |
tasyāś caivāntaraprepsur abhavat pākaśāsanaḥ
ūne varṣaśate cāsyā dadarśāntaram acyutaḥ //
akṛtvā pādayoḥ śaucaṃ ditiḥ śayanam āviśat
nidrām āhārayām āsa tasyāḥ kukṣiṃ praviśya ha
vajrapāṇis tato garbhaṃ saptadhā taṃ nyakṛntata //
sa pāṭyamāno garbho 'tha vajreṇa praruroda ha
mā rodīr iti taṃ śakraḥ punaḥ punar abhābravīt //
so 'bhavat saptadhā garbhas tam indro ruṣitaḥ punaḥ
ekaikaṃ saptadhā cakre vajreṇaivārikarśanaḥ
Note: k: After 108d, D6 T G M4 ins.: :ktena rodanaśabdena ditiḥ sā pratyabudhyata |
uvāca śakram ārtā sā kiṃ tv etat kṛpaṇaṃ kṛtam ||
sa bhīto niścarat tasmād yonidvārāt puraṃdaraḥ |
tataḥ pārśvagato devyāḥ pādayor nipapāta ha ||
aśucir devi suptāsi pādayoḥ kṛtamūrdhajā |
mayātmavadhabhītena kṛtaṃ tat kṣantum arhasi ||
evamuktā tu sā devī āha śakram idaṃ vacaḥ |
sukṛtaṃ sādhu te putra na te bhavati duṣkṛtam ||
kiṃ tu vakṣyāmy ahaṃ kiṃcit tat kuruṣvārimardana |
mamaiva putras tvaṃ deva rakṣa caitān yadīcchasi |
bāḍham ity abravīd indra evam etan na saṃśayaḥ |
maruto nāma devās te babhūvur bharatarṣabha //
yathoktaṃ vai maghavatā tathaiva maruto 'bhavan
Note: k: After 109ab, D6 T G M4 ins.: :kmā rodīr iti yac chabdas tvayoktaḥ pākaśāsana |
maruto nāma teneme bhavantu yadi manyase |
devāsureṣu yuddheṣu bhṛtyās tava kṛte vibho |
pṛṣṭhato 'nugamiṣyanti vaśagās te puraṃdara ||
evaṃ bruvāṇāṃ tāṃ devīṃ prāha śakras tv idaṃ vacaḥ |
devā ekonapañcāśat sahāyā vajrapāṇinaḥ //
teṣām evaṃ pravṛddhānāṃ bhūtānāṃ janamejaya
nikāyeṣu nikāyeṣu hariḥ prādāt prajāpatīn
kramaśas tāni rājyāni pṛthoḥ pūrvaṃ tu bhārata //
sa hariḥ puruṣo vīraḥ kṛṣṇo jiṣṇuḥ prajāpatiḥ
parjanyas tapano vyaktas tasya sarvam idaṃ jagat //
Note: k: After 111, V1 B2 ins. *94. While Ñ2.3 V3 ins. after 111; V1 cont. after *94; B1 Ds ins. after 112: :k
prayato bhava rājendra śṛṇuṣvaikamanās tataḥ |
nāśuddhe nāśucau vāpi nāśiṣyāya kathaṃcana ||
varṇayeyam ahaṃ rājan kṛtajñāya hitāya ca |
svargyaṃ yaśasyam āyuṣyaṃ puṇyaṃ vedena saṃmitam |
bhūtasargam imaṃ samyag jānato bharatarṣabha
Note: k: K2.4 Ñ2.3 V2.3 B1 Dn D1.5 Bom. and Poona eds. ins. after 112ab; V1 B2 after 111: :kmarutāṃ ca śubhaṃ janma śṛṇvataḥ paṭhato 'pi vā |
nāvṛttibhayam astīha paralokabhayaṃ kutaḥ //
Note: h: HV (CE) chapter 4, transliterated by Peter Bisschop, version of october 2, 2001 :h
abhiṣicyādhirājye tu pṛthuṃ vainyaṃ pitāmahaḥ
tataḥ krameṇa rājyāni vyādeṣṭum upacakrame //
dvijānāṃ vīrudhāṃ caiva nakṣatragrahayos tathā
yajñānāṃ tapasāṃ caiva somaṃ rājye 'bhyaṣecayat //
apāṃ tu varuṇaṃ rājye rājñāṃ vaiśravaṇaṃ patim
Note: k: V2 D4 T4 ins.: :kbṛhaspatiṃ tu viśveṣāṃ dadāv āṅgirasaṃ patim ||
bhṛgūṇām adhipaṃ caiva kāvyaṃ rājye 'bhiṣecayat |
ādityānāṃ tathā viṣṇuṃ vasūnām atha pāvakam //
prajāpatīnāṃ dakṣaṃ tu marutām atha vāsavam
daityānāṃ dānavānāṃ ca prahlādam amitaujasam //
vaivasvataṃ pitṝṇāṃ ca yamaṃ rājye 'bhyaṣecayat
Note: k: S1 K1.3 Dn D4 ins.: :kmātṝṇāṃ ca vratānāṃ ca mantrāṇāṃ ca tathā gavām |
yakṣāṇāṃ rākṣasānāṃ ca pārthivānāṃ tathaiva ca //
Note: k: B2.3 Ds D6 T1 ins. after 5: K4 Dn D5 after 6: N2.3 V D3 after 4: B1 after 5ab: While K4 Dn D5 ins. *97 after 6: :k
nārāyaṇaṃ tu sādhyānāṃ rudrāṇāṃ vṛṣabhadhvajam |
vipracittiṃ tu rājānaṃ dānavānām athādiśat |
sarvabhūtapiśācānām girīśaṃ śūlapāṇinam
śailānāṃ himavantaṃ ca nadīnām atha sāgaram //
Note: k: K1 D6 ins. after 6: K4 Dn D5 cont. after *97: N2 after *99: N3 V B1.2 ins. after 9: :k
gandhānāṃ marutāṃ caiva bhūtānām aśarīriṇām |
śabdākāśavatāṃ caiva vāyuṃ ca balināṃ varam |
gandharvāṇām adhipatiṃ cakre citrarathaṃ prabhuḥ
nāgānāṃ vāsukiṃ cakre sarpāṇām atha takṣakam //
vāraṇānāṃ ca rājānam airāvatam athādiśat
uccaiḥśravasam aśvānāṃ garuḍaṃ caiva pakṣiṇām //
mṛgāṇām atha śārdūlaṃ govṛṣaṃ tu gavām api
vanaspatīnāṃ rājānaṃ plakṣam evābhyaṣecayat //
Note: k: K4 Dn D5.6 ins. after 9; N2 after 9ab; N3 V B1.2 cont. after *98; Ds ins. after 4; D3 after 6: :k
sāgarāṇāṃ nadīnāṃ ca meghānāṃ varṣaṇasya ca |
ādityānāṃ adhipatiṃ parjanyam abhiṣiktavān ||
sarveṣāṃ daṃṣṭriṇāṃ śeṣaṃ rājānam abhyaṣecayat |
sarīsṛpāṇāṃ sarpāṇāṃ rājānaṃ caiva takṣakam |
Note: k: K4 N2.3 V B1.2 Dn Ds D3.5.6 Bom. and Poona eds. cont.; K1 D2 T1.2 G1-3.5 M4 ins. after 9: :k
sarvāpsarogaṇānāṃ ca kāmadevaḥ kṛtaḥ prabhuḥ ||
ṛtūnām atha māsānāṃ divasānāṃ tathaiva ca |
pakṣāṇāṃ ca kṣapāṇāṃ ca muhūrtatithiparvaṇām ||
kalākāṣṭhāpramāṇānāṃ gaterayanayos tathā |
gaṇitasyātha yogasya cakre saṃvatsaraṃ prabhum |
evaṃ vibhajya rājyāni krameṇa sa pitāmahaḥ
diśāṃ pālān atha tataḥ sthāpayāmāsa bhārata //
pūrvasyāṃ diśi putraṃ tu vairājasya prajāpateḥ
diśāpālaṃ sudhanvānaṃ rājānaṃ so 'bhyaṣecayat //
dakṣiṇasyāṃ mahātmānaṃ kardamasya prajāpateḥ
putraṃ śaṅkhapadaṃ nāma rājānaṃ so 'bhyaṣecayat //
paścimasyāṃ diśi tathā rajasaḥ putramacyutam
ketumantaṃ mahātmānaṃ rājānaṃ so 'bhyaṣecayat //
tathā hiraṇyalomānaṃ parjanyasya prajāpateḥ
udīcyāṃ diśi durdharṣaṃ rājānaṃ so 'bhyaṣecayat //
tair iyaṃ pṛthivī sarvā saptadvīpā sapattanā
Note: k: D6 T3.4 G1-3.5 ins. after 15a: T2 after the repetition of 15a: :ksaśailavanakānanā |
sasāgarā ca sasarit |
yathāpradeśam adyāpi dharmeṇa paripālyate //
rājasūyābhiṣiktaś ca pṛthur ebhir narādhipaiḥ
vedadṛṣṭena vidhinā rājarājyena rājabhiḥ //
tato manvantare 'tīte cākṣuṣe 'mitatejasi
vaivasvatāya manave pṛthivīrājyam ādiśat //
tasya vistaram ākhyāsye manor vaivasvatasya ha
tavānukūlyād rājendra yadi śuśrūṣase 'nagha
mahadd hy etad adhiṣṭhānaṃ purāṇe pariniṣṭhitam //
Note: k: N (except S1 K3 N1) T G M4 ins.: :k
puṇyaṃ yaśasyam āyuṣyaṃ svargavāsakaraṃ śubham |
vistareṇa pṛthor janma vaiśampāyana kīrtaya
yathā mahātmanā tena dugdhā ceyaṃ vasuṃdharā //
yathā ca pitṛbhir dugdhā yathā devair yatha rṣibhiḥ
yathā daityaiś ca nāgaiś ca yathā yakṣair yathā drumaiḥ //
Note: k: All Mss. (except S1 N1 G4 M1-3) ins.: :k
yathā śailaiḥ piśācaiś ca gandharvaiś ca dvijottamaiḥ |
rākṣasaiś ca mahāsattvair yathā dugdhā vasuṃdharā |
teṣāṃ pātraviśeṣāṃś ca vaiśaṃpāyana kīrtaya
vatsān kṣīraviśeṣāṃś ca sarvam evānupūrvaśaḥ //
yasmiṃś ca kāraṇe pāṇir venasya mathitaḥ purā
kruddhair maharṣibhis tāta kāraṇaṃ tac ca kīrtaya //
hanta te kathayiṣyāmi pṛthor vainyasya saṃbhavam
ekāgraḥ prayataś caiva śuśrūṣur janamejaya //
nāśuceḥ kṣudramanaso nāśiṣyasyāvratasya vā
kīrtayeyam ahaṃ rājan kṛtaghnasyāhitasya vā //
svargyaṃ yaśasyam āyuṣyaṃ dhanyaṃ vedena saṃmitam
rahasyam ṛṣibhiḥ proktaṃ śṛṇu rājan yathātatham //
yaś cainaṃ kīrtayen nityaṃ pṛthor vainyasya saṃbhavam
brāhmaṇebhyo namaskṛtya na sa śocet kṛtākṛtam //
Note: h: HV (CE) chapter 5, transliterated by Peter Bisschop, version of october 2, 2001 :h
āsīd dharmasya saṃgoptā pūrvam atrisamaḥ prabhuḥ
atrivaṃśasamutpannas tv aṅgo nāma prajāpatiḥ //
tasya putro 'bhavad veno nātyarthaṃ dhārmiko 'bhavat
jāto mṛtyusutāyāṃ vai sunīthāyāṃ prajāpatiḥ //
sa mātāmahadoṣeṇa venaḥ kālātmajātmajaḥ
svadharmaṃ pṛṣṭhataḥ kṛtvā kāmāl lokeṣv avartata //
maryādāṃ sthāpayāmāsa dharmāpetāṃ sa pārthivaḥ
vedadharmān atikramya so 'dharmanirato 'bhavat //
niḥsvādhyāyavaṣaṭkārāḥ prajās tasmin prajāpatau
prāvartanna papuḥ somaṃ hutaṃ yajñeṣu devatāḥ //
na yaṣṭavyaṃ na hotavyam iti tasya prajāpateḥ
āsīt pratijñā krūreyaṃ vināśe pratyupasthite //
aham ījyaś ca yaṣṭā ca yajñaś ceti kurūdvaha
mayi yajño vidhātavyo mayi hotavyam ity api //
tam atikrāntamaryādam ādadānam asāṃpratam
ūcur maharṣayaḥ sarve marīcipramukhās tadā //
vayaṃ dīkṣāṃ pravekṣyāmaḥ saṃvatsaragaṇān bahūn
Note: k: D6 ins.: :kphaladāyī sa cāsmākaṃ yajñas te 'dyāpi nānyathā |
adharmaṃ kuru mā vena naiṣa dharmaḥ satāṃ mataḥ //
nidhane hi prasūtas tvaṃ prajāpatir asaṃśayam
prajāś ca pālayiṣye 'ham iti te samayaḥ kṛtaḥ //
tāṃs tathā bruvataḥ sarvān maharṣīn abravīt tadā
venaḥ prahasya durbuddhir imam artham anarthavat //
sraṣṭā dharmasya kaś cānyaḥ śrotavyaṃ kasya vā mayā
Note: k: After 12ab, all Mss. (except S1 N1 M2.3; M1 missing) N2 V3 ins. after 11: :kśrutavīryatapaḥsatyair mayā vā kaḥ samo bhuvi |
prabhavaṃ sarvabhūtānāṃ dharmāṇāṃ ca viśeṣataḥ |
saṃmūḍhā na vidur nūnaṃ bhavanto māṃ viśeṣataḥ //
icchan daheyaṃ pṛthivīṃ plāvayeyaṃ tathā jalaiḥ
dyāṃ vai bhuvaṃ ca rundheyaṃ nātra kāryā vicāraṇā //
yadā na śakyate mānād avalepāc ca pārthivaḥ
anunetuṃ tadā venaṃ tataḥ kruddhā maharṣayaḥ //
nigṛhya taṃ mahātmāno visphurantaṃ mahābalam
Note: k: T3.4 ins.: :khanyatāṃ hanyatāṃ pāpa ity ūcus te parasparam ||
yo yajñapuruṣaṃ devam anādinidhanaṃ harim |
vinindaty adhamācāro na sa yogyo bhuvaḥ patiḥ ||
ity uktvā mantrapūtais taiḥ kuśair munigaṇā nṛpam |
nijaghnur nihataṃ pūrvaṃ bhagavan nindanādinā ||
tasmin hate jagat sarvaṃ dasyubhūtaṃ abhūn nṛpa |
tataḥ saṃmantrya ṛṣayo mamanthus tasya bhūbhujaḥ |
tato 'sya savyam ūruṃ te mamanthur jātamanyavaḥ //
tasmiṃs tu mathyamāne vai rājña ūrau prajajñivān
hrasvo 'timātraḥ puruṣaḥ kṛṣṇaś cāpi babhūva ha //
sa bhītaḥ prāñjalir bhūtvā sthitavāñ janamejaya
tam atrir vihvalaṃ dṛṣṭvā niṣīdety abravīt tadā //
niṣādavaṃśakartā sa babhūva vadatāṃ vara
dhīvarān asṛjac cāpi venakalmaṣasaṃbhavān //
ye cānye vindhyanilayās tumurās tumburās tathā
adharmarucayas tāta viddhi tān venakalmaṣān //
tataḥ punar mahātmānaḥ pāṇiṃ venasya dakṣiṇam
araṇīm iva saṃrabdhā mamanthus te maharṣayaḥ //
pṛthus tasmāt samuttasthau karāj jvalanasaṃnibhaḥ
dīpyamānaḥ svavapuṣā sākṣād agnir iva jvalan //
Note: k: V2 Ds 6 Bom. and Poona eds. ins. after 21; B2 after 21ab: :k
sa dhanvī kavacī jātaḥ pṛthur eva mahātapāḥ |
ādyam ājagavaṃ nāma dhanur gṛhya mahāravam
śarāṃś ca divyān rakṣārthaṃ kavacaṃ ca mahāprabham //
tasmiñ jāte 'tha bhūtāni saṃprahṛṣṭāni sarvaśaḥ
samāpetur mahārāja venaś ca tridivaṃ yayau //
samutpannena kauravya satputreṇa mahātmanā
trātaḥ sa puruṣavyāghra punnāmno narakāt tadā //
taṃ samudrāś ca nadyaś ca ratnāny ādāya sarvaśaḥ
toyāni cābhiṣekārthaṃ sarva evopatasthire //
pitāmahaś ca bhagavān devair āṅgirasaiḥ saha
sthāvarāṇi ca bhūtāni jaṃgamāni ca sarvaśaḥ //
samāgamya tadā vainyam abhyaṣiñcan narādhipam
mahatā rājarājyena prajāpālaṃ mahādyutim //
so 'bhiṣikto mahātejā vidhivad dharmakovidaiḥ
ādhirājye tadā rājā pṛthur vainyaḥ pratāpavān //
pitrāparañjitās tasya prajās tenānurañjitāḥ
anurāgāt tatas tasya nāma rājety ajāyata //
āpas tastambhire tasya samudram abhiyāsyataḥ
parvatāś ca dadur mārgaṃ dhvajasaṅgaś ca nābhavat //
akṛṣṭapacyā pṛthivī sidhyanty annāni cintayā
sarvakāmadughā gāvaḥ puṭake puṭake madhu //
etasminn eva kāle tu yajñe paitāmahe śubhe
sūtaḥ sūtyāṃ samutpannaḥ sautye 'hani mahāmatiḥ //
tasminn eva mahāyajñe jajñe prājño 'tha māgadhaḥ
pṛthoḥ stavārthaṃ tau tatra samāhūtau maharṣibhiḥ //
tāv ūcur ṛṣayaḥ sarve stūyatām eṣa pārthivaḥ
karmaitad anurūpaṃ vāṃ pātraṃ cāyaṃ narādhipaḥ //
tāv ūcatus tadā sarvāṃs tān ṛṣīn sūtamāgadhau
āvāṃ devān ṛṣīṃś caiva prīṇayāvaḥ svakarmabhiḥ //
na cāsya vidvo vai karma na tathā lakṣaṇaṃ yaśaḥ
stotraṃ yenāsya kuryāva rājñas tejasvino dvijāḥ //
Note: k: T3 ins.: :k
kariṣyate tu yat karma cakravartī mahābalaḥ |
guṇā bhaviṣyā ye cāsya tair ayaṃ stūyatāṃ nṛpaḥ |
ṛṣibhis tau niyuktau tu bhaviṣyaiḥ stūyatām iti
Note: k: T3 ins.: :ktau stutiṃ cakratur yuktaṃ sūtamāgadhakau nṛpa |
yāni karmāṇi kṛtavān pṛthuḥ paścān mahābalaḥ //
Note: k: N2 V B1 Dn D5 ins.: :k
satyavāgdānaśīlo 'yaṃ satyasaṃdho nareśvaraḥ |
śrīmāñ jaitraḥ kṣamāśīlo vikrānto duṣṭaśāsanaḥ ||
dharmajñaś ca kṛtajñaś ca dayāvān priyabhāṣakaḥ |
mānyamānayitā yajvā brahmaṇyaḥ sādhuvatsalaḥ |
samaḥ śatrau ca mitre ca vyavahārasthito nṛpaḥ |
tadāprabhṛti trailokye staveṣu janamejaya
āśīrvādāḥ prayujyante sūtamāgadhabandibhiḥ //
tayoḥ stavānte suprītaḥ pṛthuḥ prādāt prajeśvaraḥ
anūpadeśaṃ sūtāya magadhaṃ māgadhāya ca //
taṃ dṛṣṭvā paramaprītāḥ prajāḥ prāhur maharṣayaḥ
vṛttīnām eṣa vo dātā bhaviṣyati janeśvaraḥ //
Note: k: D5 ins.: :k
taṃ prajāḥ pṛthivīnātham upatasthuḥ kṣudhārditāḥ |
oṣadhīṣu pranaṣṭāsu tasmin kāle hy arājake ||
tam ūcus tena tāḥ pṛṣṭās tatrāgamanakāraṇam |
arājake naraśreṣṭha dharitryā sakalauṣadhīḥ |
grastās tataḥ kṣayaṃ yānti prajāḥ sarvāḥ prajeśvara ||
tvaṃ no vṛttiprado dhātrā prajāpālo nirūpitaḥ |
dehi naḥ kṣutparītānāṃ prajānāṃ jīvanauṣahīḥ |
tato vainyaṃ mahārāja prajāḥ samabhidudruvuḥ
tvaṃ no vṛttiṃ vidhatsveti maharṣivacanāt tadā //
so 'bhidrutaḥ prajābhis tu prajāhitacikīrṣayā
dhanur gṛhya pṛṣatkāṃś ca pṛthivīm ārdayad balī //
tato vainyabhayatrastā gaur bhūtvā prādravan mahī
tāṃ pṛthur dhanur ādāya dravantīm anvadhāvata //
sā lokān brahmalokādīn gatvā vainyabhayāt tadā
pradadarśāgrato vainyaṃ pragṛhītaśarāsanam //
jvaladbhir niśitair bāṇair dīptatejasam acyutam
mahāyogaṃ mahātmānaṃ durdharṣam amarair api //
alabhantī tu sā trāṇaṃ vainyam evānvapadyata
kṛtāñjalipuṭā bhūtvā pūjyā lokais tribhiḥ sadā //
uvāca vainyaṃ nādharmaṃ strīvadhe paripaśyasi
kathaṃ dhārayitā cāsi prajā rājan vinā mayā //
mayi lokāḥ sthitā rājan mayedaṃ dhāryate jagat
matkṛte na vinaśyeyuḥ prajāḥ pārthiva viddhi tat //
na mām arhasi hantuṃ vai śreyaś cet tvaṃ cikīrṣasi
prajānāṃ pṛthivīpāla śṛṇu cedaṃ vaco mama //
upāyataḥ samārabdhāḥ sarve sidhyanty upakramāḥ
Note: k: T3 ins.: :ktasmād vadāmy upāyaṃ te taṃ kuruṣva yadīcchasi |
upāyaṃ paśya yena tvaṃ dhārayethāḥ prajā nṛpa //
hatvāpi māṃ na śaktas tvaṃ prajānāṃ poṣaṇe nṛpa
annabhūtā bhaviṣyāmi yaccha kopaṃ mahādyute //
Note: k: T3 ins.: :k
ātmayogabalenemā dhārayiṣyāmy ahaṃ prajāḥ ||
tataḥ praṇamya vasudhā taṃ bhūyaḥ prāha pārthivam |
avadhyāś ca striyaḥ prāhus tiryagyonigateṣv api
sattveṣu pṛthivīpāla na dharmaṃ tyaktum arhasi //
evaṃ bahuvidhaṃ vākyaṃ śrutvā rājā mahāmanāḥ
Note: k: D6 T G M4 ins.: :kcintayitvā bahuvidhaṃ prajānāṃ hitakamyayā |
kopaṃ nigṛhya dharmātmā vasudhām idam abravīt //
Note: h: HV (CE) chapter 6, transliterated by Peter Bisschop, version of october 2, 2001 :h
ekasyārthāya yo hanyād ātmano vā parasya vā
bahūn vai prāṇino loke bhavet tasyeha pātakam //
sukham edhanti bahavo yasmiṃs tu nihate śubhe
tasmin hate nāsti bhadre pātakaṃ nopapātakam //
Note: k: Dn D3 T3.4 ins.: :k
ekasmin yatra nidhanaṃ prāpite duṣṭakāriṇi |
bahūnāṃ bhavati kṣemaṃ tatra puṇyaprado vadhaḥ |
so 'haṃ prajānimittaṃ tvāṃ haniṣyāmi vasuṃdhare
yadi me vacanaṃ nādya kariṣyasi jagaddhitam //
tvāṃ nihatyādya bāṇena macchāsanaparāṅmukhīm
ātmānaṃ prathayitvāhaṃ prajā dhārayitā svayam //
sā tvaṃ śāsanam āsthāya mama dharmabhṛtāṃ vare
saṃjīvaya prajāḥ sarvāḥ samarthā hy asi dhāraṇe //
duhitṛtvaṃ ca me gaccha tata enam ahaṃ śaram
niyaccheyaṃ tvadvadhārtham udyataṃ ghoradarśanam //
sarvam etad ahaṃ vīra vidhāsyāmi na saṃśayaḥ
vatsaṃ tu mama taṃ paśya kṣareyaṃ yena vatsalā //
samāṃ ca kuru sarvatra māṃ tvaṃ dharmabhṛtāṃ vara
yathā viṣyandamānaṃ me kṣīraṃ sarvatra bhāvayet //
tata utsārayāmāsa śilāḥ śatasahasraśaḥ
dhanuṣkoṭyā tadā vainyas tena śailā vivardhitāḥ //
Note: k: K N2.3 V B D T2-4 G M3 ins.: :k
pṛthur vainyas tadā rājā mahīṃ cakre samāṃ tataḥ |
manvantareṣv atīteṣu viṣam āsīd vasuṃdharā ||
svabhāvenābhavaṃs tasyā samāni viṣamāṇi ca |
cākṣuṣasyāntare pūrvam āsīd evaṃ tadā kila |
na hi pūrvavisarge vai viṣame pṛthivītale
pravibhāgaḥ purāṇāṃ vā grāmāṇāṃ vā tadābhavat //
na sasyāni na gorakṣyaṃ na kṛṣir na vaṇikpathaḥ
Note: k: K1(marg.).2-4 N2.3 V B D T3.4 ins.: :knaiva satyānṛtaṃ tatra na lobho na ca matsaraḥ |
vaivasvate 'ntare tasmin sāṃprate samupasthite |
vainyāt prabhṛti rājendra sarvasyaitasya saṃbhavaḥ //
yatra yatra samaṃ tv asyā bhūmer āsīt tadānagha
tatra tatra prajāḥ sarvā nivāsaṃ samarocayan //
āhāraḥ phalamūlāni prajānām abhavat tadā
kṛcchreṇa mahatā yukta ity evam anuśuśruma //
saṃkalpayitvā vatsaṃ tu manuṃ svāyaṃbhuvaṃ prabhum
sve pāṇau puruṣavyāghra dudoha pṛthivīṃ tataḥ //
sasyajātāni sarvāṇi pṛthur vainyaḥ pratāpavān
Note: k: V D1.2 ins. after 15ab: D5 after 15: :ksasyāni tena vai dugdhā vainyeneyaṃ vasuṃdharā |
tenānnena prajās tāta vartante 'dyāpi nityaśaḥ //
ṛṣibhiḥ śrūyate cāpi punar dugdhhā vasuṃdharā
vatsaḥ somo 'bhavat teṣāṃ dogdhā cāṅgirasaḥ sutaḥ //
bṛhaspatir mahātejāḥ pātraṃ chandāṃsi bhārata
kṣīram āsīd anupamaṃ tapo brahma ca śāśvatam //
tataḥ punar devagaṇaiḥ puraṃdarapurogamaiḥ
kāñcanaṃ pātram ādāya dugdheyaṃ śrūyate mahī //
vatsas tu maghavān āsīd dogdhā tu savitā vibhuḥ
kṣīram ūrjaskaraṃ caiva yena vartanti devatāḥ //
pitṛbhiḥ śrūyate cāpi punar dugdhā vasuṃdharā
rājataṃ pātram ādāya svadhām amitavikramaiḥ //
yamo vaivasvatas teṣām āsīd vatsaḥ pratāpavān
antakaś cābhavad dogdhā kālo lokaprakālanaḥ //
nāgaiś ca śrūyate dugdhā vatsaṃ kṛtvā tu takṣakam
alābupātram ādāya viṣaṃ kṣīraṃ narottama //
teṣām airāvato dogdhā dhṛtarāṣṭraḥ pratāpavān
nāgānāṃ bharataśreṣṭha sarpāṇāṃ ca mahīpate //
tenaiva vartayanty ugrā mahākāyā mahābalāḥ
tadāhārās tadācārās tadvīryās tadapāśrayāḥ //
asuraiḥ śrūyate cāpi punar dugdhā vasuṃdharā
āyasaṃ pātram ādāya māyāḥ śatrunibarhaṇīḥ //
virocanas tu prāhrādir vatsas teṣām abhūt tadā
ṛtvig dvimūrdhā daityānāṃ madhur dogdhā mahābalaḥ //
tayaite māyayādyāpi sarve māyāvino 'surāḥ
vartayanty amitaprajñās tad eṣām amitaṃ balam //
yakṣaiś ca śrūyate rājan punar dugdhā vasuṃdharā
āmapātre mahārāja purāntardhānam akṣayam //
vatsaṃ vaiśravaṇaṃ kṛtvā yakṣaiḥ puṇyajanais tathā
Note: k: K2 N2.3 V B Dn Ds D3.6 T2-4 G M4 ins. after 29ab: D5 after the repetition of 28b: :kdogdhā rajatanābhas tu pitā maṇivarasya yaḥ |
yakṣātmajo mahātejās triśīrṣaḥ sumahātapāḥ |
Note: k: D1 ins.: :kdogdhā tu dhanadaḥ svāminn evaṃ taiś ca vasuṃdharā |
tena te vartayantīha paramarṣir uvāca ha //
rākṣasaiś ca piśācaiś ca punar dugdhā vasuṃdharā
śāvaṃ kapālam ādāya prajā bhoktuṃ nararṣabha //
dogdhā rajatanābhas tu teṣām āsīt kurūdvaha
vatsaḥ sumālī kauravya kṣīraṃ rudhiram eva ca //
tena kṣīreṇa rakṣāṃsi yakṣāś caivāmaropamāḥ
vartayanti piśācāś ca bhūtasaṃghās tathaiva ca //
padmapatre punar dugdhā gandharvaiḥ sāpsarogaṇaiḥ
vatsaṃ citrarathaṃ kṛtvā śucīn gandhān narottama //
teṣāṃ ca surucis tv āsīd dogdhā bharatasattama
gandharvarājo 'tibalo mahātmā sūryasaṃnibhaḥ //
śailaiś ca śrūyate dugdhā punar devī vasuṃdharā
oṣadhīr vai mūrtimatī ratnāni vividhāni ca //
vatsas tu himavān āsīd dogdhā merur mahāgiriḥ
pātraṃ tu śailam evāsīt tena śailāḥ pratiṣṭhitāḥ //
dugdheyaṃ vṛkṣavīrudbhiḥ śrūyate ca vasuṃdharā
pālāśaṃ pātram ādāya cchinnadagdhaprarohaṇam //
Note: k: D6 T2 G3.5 M2.3 ins.: :k
sarvakāmadughā dogdhrī pṛthivī janamejaya |
seyaṃ dhātrī vidhātrī ca pāvanī ca vasuṃdharā
carācarasya sarvasya pratiṣṭhā yonir eva ca
sarvakāmadughā dogdhrī sarvasasyaprarohiṇī //
āsīd iyaṃ samudrāntā medinīti pariśrutā
madhukaiṭabhayoḥ kṛtsnā medasābhipariplutā //
Note: k: N (except S1 N1) T3.4 ins.: :k
teneyaṃ medinī devī procyate brahmavādibhiḥ |
tato 'bhyupagamād rājñaḥ pṛthor vainyasya bhārata
duhitṛtvam anuprāptā devī pṛthvīti cocyate //
pṛthunā pravibhaktā ca śodhitā ca vasuṃdharā
sasyākaravatī sphītā purapattanamālinī //
evaṃprabhāvo vainyaḥ sa rājāsīd rājasattama
namasyaś caiva pūjyaś ca bhūtagrāmair na saṃśayaḥ //
brāhmaṇaiś ca mahābhāgair vedavedāṅgapāragaiḥ
pṛthur eva namaskāryo vṛttidaḥ sa sanātanaḥ //
pārthivaiś ca mahābhāgaiḥ pārthivatvam abhīpsubhiḥ
ādirājo namaskāryaḥ pṛthur vainyaḥ pratāpavān //
yodhair api ca vikrāntaiḥ prāptukāmair jayaṃ yudhi
ādirājo namaskāryo yodhānāṃ prathamo nṛpaḥ //
yo hi yoddhā raṇaṃ yāti kīrtayitvā pṛthuṃ nṛpam
sa ghorarūpān saṃgrāmān kṣemī tarati kīrtimān //
vaiśyair api ca vittāḍhyair vaiśyavṛttim anuṣṭhitaiḥ
pṛthur eva namaskāryo vṛttidātā mahāyaśāḥ //
tathaiva śūdraiḥ śucibhis trivarṇaparicāribhiḥ
pṛthur eva namaskāryaḥ śreyaḥ param abhīpsubhiḥ //
ete vatsaviśeṣāś ca dogdhāraḥ kṣīram eva ca
pātrāṇi ca mayoktāni kiṃ bhūyo varṇayāmi te //
Note: k: K2 V2 ins.: :k
ya idaṃ śṛṇuyān nityaṃ pṛthoś caritam āditaḥ |
putrapautrasamāyukto modate suciraṃ bhuvi |
Note: k: D6 T1.2 G M4 ins.: :k
uktāni bharataśreṣṭha vainyasyeha mahātmanaḥ |
kim anyad bharataśreṣṭha pṛcchasi tvaṃ nareśvara |
Note: k: M4 cont.: :k
yaḥ śṛṇoti sadā bhaktyā sa svargī nātra saṃśayaḥ |
Note: h: HV (CE) chapter 7, transliterated by Peter Bisschop, version of october 2, 2001 :h
manvantarāṇi sarvāṇi vistareṇa tapodhana
teṣāṃ pūrvavisṛṣṭiṃ ca vaiśaṃpāyana kīrtaya //
yāvanto manavaś caiva yāvantaṃ kālam eva ca
manvantarakathāṃ brahmañ chrotum icchāmi tattvataḥ //
na śakyaṃ vistaraṃ tāta vaktuṃ varṣaśatair api
manvantarāṇāṃ kauravya saṃkṣepaṃ tv eva me śṛṇu //
svāyaṃbhuvo manus tāta manuḥ svārociṣas tathā
auttamas tāmasaś caiva raivataś cākṣuṣas tathā
vaivasvataś ca kauravya sāṃprato manur ucyate //
Note: k: For 4cd, S1 subst.: :k
uttamākhyas tāmasaś cā+ +bhūtāṃ raivatacakṣuṣau |
Note: k: T3 ins.: :k
aṣṭamo dakṣasāvarṇir dharmasāvarṇir eva ca |
rudraputras tu sāvarṇir bhavitaikādaśo manuḥ |
sāvarṇiś ca manus tāta bhautyo raucyas tathaiva ca
Note: k: D4 ins.: :kraivato brahmasāvarṇiḥ sūryasāvarṇir eva ca |
tathaiva merusāvarṇāś catvāro manavaḥ smṛtāḥ //
atītā vartamānāś ca tathaivānāgatāś ca ye
kīrtitā manavas tāta mayaivaite yathāśruti
ṛṣīṃs teṣāṃ pravakṣyāmi putrān devagaṇāṃs tathā //
marīcir atrir bhagavān aṅgirāḥ pulahaḥ kratuḥ
pulastyaś ca vasiṣṭhaś ca saptaite brahmaṇaḥ sutāḥ //
uttarasyāṃ diśi tathā rājan saptarṣayaḥ sthitāḥ
yāmā nāma tathā devā āsan svāyaṃbhuve 'ntare //
agnīdhraś cāgnibāhuś ca medhā medhātithir vasuḥ
jyotiṣmān dyutimān havyaḥ savanaḥ putra eva ca //
manoḥ svāyaṃbhuvasyaite daśa putrā mahaujasaḥ
etat te prathamaṃ rājan manvantaram udāhṛtam //
aurvo vasiṣṭhaputraś ca stambaḥ kāśyapa eva ca
prāṇo bṛhaspatiś caiva datto 'triś cyavanas tathā
ete maharṣayas tāta vāyuproktā mahāvratāḥ //
devāś ca tuṣitā nāma smṛtāḥ svārociṣe 'ntare
havirdhraḥ sukṛtir jyotir āpo mūrtir ayasmayaḥ //
prathitaś ca nabhasyaś ca nabhaḥ sūryas tathaiva ca
svārociṣasya putrās te manos tāta mahātmanaḥ
kīrtitāḥ pṛthivīpāla mahāvīryaparākramāḥ //
dvitīyam etat kathitaṃ tava manvantaraṃ mayā
idaṃ tṛtīyaṃ vakṣyāmi tan nibodha narādhipa //
vasiṣṭhaputrāḥ saptāsan vāsiṣṭhā iti viśrutāḥ
hiraṇyagarbhasya sutā ūrjā jātāḥ sutejasaḥ //
ṛṣayo 'tra mayā proktāḥ kīrtyamānān nibodha me
auttameyān mahārāja daśa putrān manoramān //
iṣa ūrjas tanūpaś ca madhur mādhava eva ca
śuciḥ śukraḥ sahaś caiva nabhasyo nabha eva ca
bhānavas tatra devāś ca manvantaram udāhṛtam //
manvantaraṃ caturthaṃ te kathayiṣyāmi tac chṛṇu
kāvyaḥ pṛthus tathaivāgnir jahnur dhātā ca bhārata
kapīvān akapīvāṃś ca tatra saptarṣayo nṛpa //
purāṇe kīrtitās tāta putrāḥ pautrāś ca bhārata
satyā devagaṇāś caiva tāmasasyāntare manoḥ //
Note: k: N (except S1 K1 N1) S (except M2.3; M1 missing) ins.: :k
putrāṃś caiva pravakṣyāmi tāmasasya manor nṛpa |
dyutis tapasyaḥ sutapās tapomūlas tapodhanaḥ
taporatir akalmāṣas tanvī dhanvī paramṭapaḥ //
tāmasasya manor ete daśa putrā mahābalāḥ
vāyuproktā mahārāja caturthaṃ caitad antaram //
vedabāhur yadudhraś ca munir vedaśirās tathā
hiraṇyalomā parjanya ūrdhvabāhuś ca somajaḥ
satyanetras tathātreya ete saptarṣayo 'pare //
devāś cābhūtarajasas tathā prakṛtayaḥ smṛtāḥ
pāriplavaś ca raibhyaś ca manor antaram ucyate //
atha putrān imāṃs tasya nibodha gadato mama
dhṛtimān avyayo yuktas tattvadarśī nirutsukaḥ //
araṇyaś ca prakāśaś ca nirmohaḥ satyavāk kṛtiḥ
raivatasya manoḥ putrāḥ pañcamaṃ caitad antaram //
ṣaṣṭhaṃ te saṃpravakṣyāmi tan nibodha narādhipa
bhṛgur nabho vivasvāṃś ca sudhāmā virajās tathā //
atināmā sahiṣṇuś ca sapta ete maharṣayaḥ
cākṣuṣasyāntare tāta manor devān imāñ śṛṇu //
ādyāḥ prabhūtā ṛbhavaḥ pṛthukāś ca divaukasaḥ
lekhāś ca nāma rājendra pañca devagaṇāḥ smṛtāḥ //
ṛṣer aṅgirasaḥ putrā mahātmāno mahaujasaḥ
nāḍvaleyā mahārāja daśa putrāś ca viśrutāḥ
uruprabhṛtayo rājan ṣaṣṭhaṃ manvantaraṃ smṛtam //
Note: k: T3.4 G4 ins.: :k
ṣaṣṭaṃ manvantaraṃ proktaṃ saptamaṃ tu nibodha me |
atrir vasiṣṭho bhagavān kaśyapaś ca mahān ṛṣiḥ
gautamo 'tha bharadvājo viśvāmitras tathaiva ca //
tathaiva putro bhagavān ṛcīkasya mahātmanaḥ
saptamo jamadagniś ca ṛṣayaḥ sāṃprataṃ divi //
sādhyā rudrāś ca viśve ca vasavo marutas tathā
ādityāś cāśvinau caiva devau vaivasvatau smṛtau //
manor vaivasvatasyaite vartante sāṃprate 'ntare
ikṣvākupramukhāś caiva daśa putrā mahātmanaḥ //
Note: k: S1 ins.: :k
manoḥ samabhavad rājan dikṣu sarvāsu bhārata |
eteṣāṃ kīrtitānāṃ tu maharṣīṇāṃ mahaujasām
rājan putrāś ca pautrāś ca dikṣu sarvāsu bhārata //
manvantareṣu sarveṣu prāgdiśaṃ sapta saptakāḥ
sthitā dharmavyavasthārthaṃ lokasaṃrakṣaṇāya ca //
manvantare vyatikrānte catvāraḥ saptakā gaṇāḥ
kṛtvā karma divaṃ yānti brahmalokam anāmayam //
tato 'nye tapasā yuktāḥ sthānaṃ tat pūrayanty uta
atītā vartamānāś ca krameṇaitena bhārata //
etāny uktāni kauravya saptātītāni bhārata
manvantarāṇi sarvāṇi nibodhānāgatāni me //
sāvarṇā manavas tāta pañca tāṃś ca nibodha me
eko vaivasvatas teṣāṃ catvāraś ca prajāpateḥ
parameṣṭhisutās tāta merusāvarṇatāṃ gatāḥ //
dakṣasyaite hi dauhitrāḥ priyāyās tanayā nṛpa
mahatā tapasā yuktā merupṛṣṭhe mahaujasaḥ //
ruceḥ prajāpateḥ putro raucyo nāma manuḥ smṛtaḥ
bhūtyāṃ cotpādito devyāṃ bhautyo nāma ruceḥ sutaḥ
anāgatāś ca saptaite loke 'smin manavaḥ smṛtāḥ //
anāgatāś ca saptaiva smṛtā divi maharṣayaḥ
manor antaram āsādya sāvarṇasyeha tāñ śṛṇu //
rāmo vyāsas tathātreyo dīptimanto bahuśrutāḥ
bhāradvājas tathā drauṇir aśvatthāmā mahādyutiḥ //
gotamasyātmajaś caiva śaradvān nāma gautamaḥ
kauśiko gālavaś caiva ruruḥ kāśyapa eva ca
ete sapta mahātmāno bhaviṣyā munisattamāḥ //
Note: k: S1 K1.3 D4 ins. after 44: K2 after 26: :k
devatānāṃ guṇās tatra trayaḥ proktāḥ svayaṃbhuvā |
mārīcasyaiva te putrāḥ kaśyapasya mahātmanaḥ |
Note: k: K4 N2.3 V B Dn Ds D3.5.6 ins. after 44: :k
brahmaṇaḥ sadṛśāś caite dhanyāḥ saptarṣayaḥ smṛtāḥ ||
abhijātyātha tapasā mantravyākaraṇais tathā |
brahmalokapratiṣṭhās tu smṛtā brahmarṣayo 'malāḥ ||
bhūtabhavyabhavajjñānaṃ buddhā caiva tu yaiḥ svayam |
tapasā vai prasiddhā ye saṃgatā pravicintakāḥ |
mantravyākaraṇādyaiś ca aiśvaryāt sarvaśaś ca ye ||
etān bhāryān dvijo jñātvā naiṣṭhikāni ca nāma ca |
saptaite saptabhiś caiva guṇaiḥ saptarṣayaḥ smṛtāḥ ||
dīrghāyuṣo mantrakṛta īśvarā dīrghacakṣuṣaḥ |
buddhyā pratyakṣadharmāṇo gotraprāvartakās tathā ||
kṛtādiṣu yugākhyeṣu sarveṣv eva punaḥ punaḥ |
pravartayanti te varṇān āśramāṃś caiva sarvaśaḥ |
saptarṣayo mahābhāgāḥ satyadharmaparāyaṇāḥ ||
teṣāṃ caivānvayotpannā jāyante hi punaḥ punaḥ |
mantrabrāhmaṇakartāro dharme praśithile tathā ||
yasmāc ca varadāḥ sapta parebhyaś cāparāḥ smṛtāḥ |
tasmān na kālo na vayaḥ pramāṇam ṛṣibhāvane ||
eṣa saptarṣikoddeśo vyākhyātas te mayā nṛpa |
sāvarṇasya manoḥ putrān bhaviṣyāñ śṛṇu sattama |
Note: k: After line 4, D5.6 ins.: :k
saṃbandhāc ca svayaṃtejāḥ saṃbuddhāś ca yataḥ svayam |
Note: k: After *133, D5.6 cont.: :k
yasmāc chaṃsanti te brahma tasmād brahmarṣayaḥ smṛtāḥ |
varīvāṃś cāvarīvāṃś ca saṃmato dhṛtimān vasuḥ
cariṣṇur āḍhyo dhṛṣṇuś ca vājī sumatir eva ca
sāvarṇasya manoḥ putrā bhaviṣyā daśa bhārata //
Note: k: S1 K1.3 Dn Ds D1.4 ins. a passage given in App. I (No. 1). V3 ins.: :k
kṣamayā nṛpa sāvarṇā bhaviṣyāñ śṛṇu bhārata |
eteṣāṃ kālyam utthāya kīrtanāt sukham edhate
Note: k: K N2.3 V B D T2-4 G1-3.5 M4 ins.: :kyaśaś cāpnoti sumahad āyuṣmāṃś ca bhaven naraḥ |
Note: k: K3 cont.: :kcaturdaśe manobhāvye uragambhīrabudhnakāḥ |
putrā(ś cā)[vai cā]kṣuṣā devā śukrādyāś ca tapasvinaḥ |
atītanāgatānāṃ vai maharṣīṇāṃ sadā naraḥ //
Note: k: S1 K1 Dn D4 ins. after 46: Ds after 41: :k
devatānāṃ gaṇāḥ proktāḥ pañca vai bharatarṣabha |
taraṃgabhīrur vapraś ca tarasvān ugra eva ca ||
abhimānī pravīraś ca jiṣṇuḥ saṃkrandanas tathā |
tejasvī sabalaś caiva bhautyasyaite manoḥ sutāḥ ||
bhautyasyaivādhikāre tu pūrṇe kalpas tu pūryate |
ity ete 'nāgatātītā manavaḥ kīrtitā mayā |
Note: k: D6 T G1-3.5 M4 ins. after 46: G4 after 46ab: :k
namaskṛtvā jayet svargaṃ brāhmaṇo nātra saṃśayaḥ |
kṣatriyo jayate śatrūn vaiśyaḥ śūdro yathepsitam |
tair iyaṃ pṛthivī tāta sasamudrā sapattanā
yathāpradeśam adyāpi sarvataḥ paripālyate |
pūrṇaṃ yugasahasraṃ hi paripālyā nareśvaraiḥ
prajābhis tapasā caiva saṃhārānte ca nityaśaḥ //
yugāni saptatis tāni sāgrāṇi kathitāni te
kṛtatretādiyuktāni manor antaram ucyate //
caturdaśaite manavaḥ kīrtitāḥ kīrtivardhanāḥ
vedeṣu sapurāṇeṣu sarve te prabhaviṣṇavaḥ
prajānāṃ patayo rājan dhanyam eṣāṃ prakīrtanam //
manvantareṣu saṃhārāḥ saṃhārānteṣu saṃbhavāḥ
na śakyam antaṃ teṣāṃ vai vaktuṃ varṣaśatair api //
visargasya prajānāṃ vai saṃhārasya ca bhārata
manvantareṣu saṃhāraḥ śrūyate bharatarṣabha //
saśeṣās tatra tiṣṭhanti devā brahmarṣibhiḥ saha
tapasā brahmacaryeṇa śrutena ca samanvitāḥ
pūrṇe yugasahasre tu kalpo niḥśeṣa ucyate //
tatra bhūtāni sarvāṇi dagdhāny ādityaraśmibhiḥ
brahmāṇam agrataḥ kṛtvā sahādityagaṇair vibho //
Note: k: B1 (marg.) D5 ins.: :k
yogaṃ yogīśvaraṃ devam ajaṃ kṣetrajam acyutam |
praviśanti suraśreṣṭhaṃ hariṃ nārāyaṇaṃ prabhum
sraṣṭāraṃ sarvabhūtānāṃ kalpānteṣu punaḥ punaḥ
avyaktaḥ śāśvato devas tasya sarvam idaṃ jagat //
Note: k: K2(marg.).3 V2.3 Dn Ds D3-6 ins. after 54: N2 after the first occurence of 55ab: :k
tatra saṃvartate rātriḥ sakalaikārṇave tadā |
nārāyaṇodare nidrāṃ brāhmaṃ varṣasahasrakam ||
tāvantam iti kālaṃ sā rātrir ity abhiśabditā |
nidrāyogam anuprāpto yasyām ante pitāmahaḥ ||
sā ca rātrir apakrāntā sahasrayugaparyayā |
tadā prabuddho bhagavān brahmā lokapitāmahaḥ |
punaḥ sisṛkṣayā yuktaḥ sargāya vidadhe manaḥ ||
saiva smṛtiḥ purāṇeyaṃ tadvṛttaṃ tadviceṣṭitam |
devasthānāni tāny eva kevalaṃ ca viparyayaḥ ||
tato dagdhāni bhūtāni sarvāṇy ādityaraśmibhiḥ |
devarṣiyakṣagandharvāḥ piśācoragarākṣasāḥ |
jāyante ca punas tāta yuge bharatasattama ||
yathartāv ṛtuliṅgāni nānārūpāṇi paryaye |
dṛśyante tāni tāny eva tathā brāhmīṣu rātriṣu ||
niṣkramitvā prajākāraḥ prajāpatir asaṃśayam |
ye ca vai mānavā devāḥ sarve caiva maharṣayaḥ ||
te saṃgatāḥ śuddhasaṅgāḥ śaśvad dharmavisargataḥ |
na bhavanti punas tāta yuge bharatasattama ||
tat sarvaṃ kramayogena kālasaṃkhyāvibhāgavit |
sahasrayugasaṃkhyānaṃ kṛtvā divasam īśvaraḥ ||
rātriṃ yugasahasrāntāṃ kṛtvā ca bhagavān vibhuḥ |
saṃharaty atha bhūtāni sṛjate ca punaḥ punaḥ |
vyaktāvyakto mahādevo harir nārāyaṇaḥ prabhuḥ |
atra te vartayiṣyāmi manor vaivasvatasya ha
visargaṃ bharataśreṣṭha sāṃpratasya mahādyute //
vṛṣṇivaṃśaprasaṅgena kathyamānaṃ purātanam
Note: k: D6 T1.3.4 G M4 ins.: :knityaḥ sarvagataḥ sūkṣmaḥ śāśvataḥ puruṣottamaḥ |
yatrotpanno mahātmā sa harir vṛṣṇikule prabhuḥ //
Note: k: Dn T1.3 ins.: :k
sarvāsuravināśāya sarvalokahitāya ca |
Note: h: HV (CE) chapter 8, transliterated by Peter Bisschop, version of october 2, 2001 :h
vivasvān kaśyapāj jajñe dākṣāyaṇyām ariṃdama
tasya bhāryābhavat saṃjñā tvāṣṭrī devī vivasvataḥ
sureṇur iti vikhyātā triṣu lokeṣu bhāminī //
sā vai bhāryā bhagavato mārtaṇḍasya mahātmanaḥ
bhartṛrūpeṇa nātuṣyad rūpayauvanaśālinī
saṃjñā nāma svatapasā dīpteneha samanvitā //
ādityasya hi tadrūpaṃ mārtaṇḍasya svatejasā
gātreṣu paridagdhaṃ vai nātikāntam ivābhavat //
na khalv ayaṃ mṛto 'ṇḍastha iti snehād abhāṣata
ajānan kāśyapas tasmān mārtaṇḍa iti cocyate //
tejas tv abhyadhikaṃ tāta nityam eva vivasvataḥ
yenātitāpayāmāsa trīṃl lokān kaśyapātmajaḥ //
trīṇy apatyāni kauravya saṃjñāyāṃ tapatāṃ varaḥ
ādityo janayāmāsa kanyāṃ dvau ca prajāpatī //
manur vaivasvataḥ pūrvaṃ śrāddhadevaḥ prajāpatiḥ
yamaś ca yamunā caiva yamajau saṃbabhūvatuḥ //
śyāmavarṇaṃ tu tadrūpaṃ saṃjñā dṛṣṭvā vivasvataḥ
asahantī tu svāṃ chāyāṃ savarṇāṃ nirmame tataḥ
māyāmayī tu sā saṃjñā tasyāś chāyā samutthitā //
prāñjaliḥ praṇatā bhūtvā chāyā saṃjñāṃ nareśvara
uvāca kiṃ mayā kāryaṃ kathayasva śucismite
sthitāsmi tava nirdeśe śādhi māṃ varavarṇini //
ahaṃ yāsyāmi bhadraṃ te svam eva bhavanaṃ pituḥ
tvayeha bhavane mahyaṃ vastavyaṃ nirviśaṅkayā //
imau ca bālakau mahyaṃ kanyā ceyaṃ sumadhyamā
saṃbhāvyās te na cākhyeyam idaṃ bhagavate tvayā //
ā kacagrahaṇād devi ā śāpān naiva karhicit
ākhyāsyāmi mataṃ tubhyaṃ gaccha devi yathāsukham //
samādhāya savarṇāṃ tu tathety uktā tayā ca sā
tvaṣṭuḥ samīpam agamad vrīḍiteva manasvinī //
pituḥ samīpagā sā tu pitrā nirbhartsitā śubhā
bhartuḥ samīpaṃ gaccheti niyuktā ca punaḥ punaḥ //
Note: k: D4 (marg.) ins.: :k
cintām avāpa mahatīṃ strīṇāṃ dhik ceṣṭitaṃ tv iti |
nininda bahudhātmānaṃ strītvaṃ cātinininda sā ||
sthātavyaṃ na kvacit strīṇāṃ dhig asvātantryajīvitam |
śaiśave yauvane vārddhe pitṛbhartṛsutād bhayam ||
tyaktaṃ bhartṛgṛhaṃ maugdhyād bata durvṛttayā mayā |
avijñātāpi vedhāyām atha patyur niketanam ||
tatrāsti sā savarṇā vai paripūrṇamanorathā |
naṣṭaṃ bhartṛgṛhaṃ maugdhyāc chreyo 'tra na pitur gṛhe |
agacchad vaḍavā bhūtvāc chādya rūpam aninditā
kurūn athottarān gatvā tṛṇāny eva cacāra sā //
dvitīyāyāṃ tu saṃjñāyāṃ saṃjñeyam iti cintayan
ādityo janayāmāsa putram ātmasamaṃ tadā //
pūrvajasya manos tāta sadṛśo 'yam iti prabhuḥ
manur evābhavan nāmnā sāvarṇa iti cocyate //
saṃjñā tu pārthivī tāta svasya putrasya vai tadā
cakārābhyadhikaṃ snehaṃ na tathā pūrvajeṣu vai //
manus tasyāḥ kṣamat tat tu yamas tasyā na cakṣame
tāṃ vai roṣāc ca bālyāc ca bhāvino 'rthasya vā balāt
padā saṃtarjayāmāsa saṃjñāṃ vaivasvato yamaḥ //
taṃ śaśāpa tataḥ krodhāt savarṇā jananī tadā
caraṇaḥ patatām eṣa taveti bhṛśaduḥkhitā //
yamas tu tat pituḥ sarvaṃ prāñjaliḥ pratyavedayat
bhṛśaṃ śāpabhayodvignaḥ saṃjñāvākyair vivejitaḥ
śāpo nivarted iti ca provāca pitaraṃ tadā //
mātrā snehena sarveṣu vartitavyaṃ suteṣu vai
seyam asmān apāhāya yavīyāṃsaṃ bubhūṣati //
tasyā mayodyataḥ pādo na tu dehe nipātitaḥ
bālyād vā yadi vā mohāt tad bhavān kṣantum arhati //
Note: k: N2 B2 Ds G4 ins.: :k
yasmāt te pūjanīyāhaṃ tarjitāsmi tvayā suta |
tasmāt tavaiṣa caraṇaḥ patiṣyati na saṃśayaḥ |
Note: k: G4 cont.: D2 ins. after 22ab: :k
apatyaṃ durapatyaṃ syān nāmbā kujananī bhavet |
śapto 'ham asmi lokeśa jananyā tapatāṃ vara
tava prasādāc caraṇo na paten mama gopate //
asaṃśayaṃ putra mahad bhaviṣyaty atra kāraṇam
Note: k: D6 T1.2 G M4 ins.: :kyas tvaṃ dharmaparo nityaṃ dharmaṃ saṃtyaktavān imam |
yena tvām āviśat krodho dharmajñaṃ satyavādinam //
Note: k: D6 T1.2 G1.3.5 ins. after 25: G2 cont. after *148: :k
yuktam eva hi te kartuṃ tava mātṛvaco 'nagha |
na śakyam etan mithyā tu kartuṃ mātṛvacas tava
kṛmayo māṃsam ādāya yāsyanti tu mahītale //
Note: k: K N2 V1(marg.).2.3 B1.2 Dn Ds D1.3-5 ins.: :k
tava pādān mahāprājña tataḥ saṃprāpsyase sukham |
kṛtam evaṃ vacas tathyaṃ mātus tava bhaviṣyati
śāpasya parihāreṇa tvaṃ ca trāto bhaviṣyasi //
ādityaś cābravīt saṃjñāṃ kimarthaṃ tanayeṣu vai
tulyeṣv abhyadhikaḥ snehaḥ kriyate 'ti punaḥ punaḥ
Note: k: should be kriyateti (kriyataīti) :ksā tat pariharantī sma nācacakṣe vivasvataḥ //
Note: k: K1.3 N2.3 V1.2(first time).3 B Dn Ds D4-6 T3.4 ins.: :k
ātmānaṃ sa samādhāya yogāt tathyam apaśyata |
Note: k: N2.3 V B2 Ds D6 cont.: :k
mūrdhajeṣu ca jagrāha sā cātmānaṃ śaśaṃsa ha |
Note: k: V2(second time) cont. after *152: V3 ins. after 28: :k
ātmānaṃ gopayāmāsa saṃyogāt tasya naiva tu |
tāṃ śaptukāmo bhagavān nāśāya kurunandana
Note: k: K3 Dn D1 Bom. and Poona eds. ins.: :kmūrdhajeṣu ca jagrāha samaye 'tigate tu sā |
tataḥ sarvaṃ yathāvṛttam ācacakṣe vivasvataḥ
vivasvān atha tac chrutvā kruddhas tvaṣṭāram abhyagāt //
tvaṣṭā tu taṃ yathānyāyam arcayitvā vibhāvasum
nirdagdhukāmaṃ roṣeṇa sāntvayāmāsa vai tadā //
tavātitejasāviṣṭam idaṃ rūpaṃ na śobhate
asahantī sma tat saṃjñā vane carati śāḍvalam //
draṣṭā hi tāṃ bhavān adya svāṃ bhāryāṃ śubhacāriṇīm
Note: k: K N2.3 V B D T1.3.4 G1(first time).2-5 ins. after 32ab: T2 G1(second time) cont. after *158; M4 ins. after 35: :knityaṃ tapasy abhiratāṃ vaḍavārūpadhāriṇīm |
parṇāhārāṃ kṛśāṃ dīnāṃ jaṭilāṃ maladhāriṇīm |
hastihastaparikliṣṭāṃ vyākulāṃ padminīm iva |
ślāghyāṃ yogabalopetāṃ yogam āsthāya gopate //
anukūlaṃ tu te deva yadi syān mama tan matam
rūpaṃ nirvartayāmy adya tava kāntam ariṃdama //
Note: k: K N2 V2 B2 Dn Ds D3-6 Bom. and Poona eds. ins.: :k
rūpaṃ vivasvataś cāsīt tiryagūrdhvasamaṃ tu vai |
tenāsau saṃbhṛto devo rūpeṇa tu vibhāvasuḥ ||
tasmāt tvaṣṭuḥ sa vai vākyaṃ bahu mene prajāpatiḥ |
samanujñātavāṃś caiva tvaṣṭāraṃ rūpasiddhaye |
tato 'bhyupagamāt tvaṣṭā mārtaṇḍasya vivasvataḥ
bhramim āropya tat tejaḥ śātayāmāsa bhārata //
Note: k: T3 ins.: :k
kṛtavān aṣṭamaṃ bhāgaṃ na vyaśātayad avyayam ||
yat sūryād vaiṣṇavaṃ tejaḥ śātitaṃ viśvakarmaṇā |
tvaṣṭaiva tejasā tena viṣṇoś cakram akalpayat ||
triśūlaṃ caiva śarvasya śibikāṃ dhanadasya ca |
śaktiṃ guhasya devānām anyeṣāṃ ca varāyudham ||
tat sarvaṃ tejasā tena viśvakarmā hy akalpayat |
tato nirbhāsitaṃ rūpaṃ tejasā saṃhṛtena vai
kāntāt kāntataraṃ draṣṭum adhikaṃ śuśubhe tadā //
Note: k: S1 K N2.3 V B1.2 D T2-4 G1.3-5 ins. after 35: B3 after 34a: G4 after 34: :k
mukhe nirvartitaṃ rūpaṃ tasya devasya gopateḥ |
tataḥprabhṛti devasya mukham āsīt tu lohitam ||
mukharāgaṃ tu yat pūrvaṃ mārtaṇḍasya mukhacyutam |
ādityā dvādaśaiveha saṃbhūtā mukhasaṃbhavāḥ ||
dhātāryamā ca mitraś ca varuṇo 'ṃśo bhagas tathā |
indro vivasvān pūṣā ca parjanyo daśamas tathā |
tatas tvaṣṭā tato viṣṇur ajaghanyo jaghanyajaḥ ||
harṣaṃ lebhe tato devo dṛṣṭvādityān svadehajān |
gandhaiḥ puṣpair alaṃkārair bhāsvatā mukuṭena ca ||
evaṃ saṃpūjayāmāsa tvaṣṭā vākyam uvāca ha ||
gaccha deveśa svāṃ bhāryāṃ kurūṃś carati cottarān |
vaḍavārūpam āsthāya vane carati śāḍvale ||
tāṃ tathārūpam āsthāya svāṃ bhāryāṃ śubhalīlayā |
dadarśa yogam āsthāya svāṃ bhāryāṃ vaḍavāṃ tataḥ
adhṛṣyāṃ sarvabhūtānāṃ tejasā niyamena ca //
Note: k: K4 N V B D3 D1-5 T3.4 G2 ins.: :k
vaḍavāvapuṣā rājaṃś carantīm akutobhayām |
so 'śvarūpeṇa bhagavāṃs tāṃ mukhe samabhāvayat
maithunāya viveṣṭantīṃ parapuṃso viśaṅkayā //
sā tan niravamac chukraṃ nāsikāyā vivasvataḥ
devau tasyām ajāyetām aśvinau bhiṣajāṃ varau //
nāsatyaś caiva dasraś ca smṛtau dvāv aśvināv iti
mārtaṇḍasyātmajāv etāv aṣṭamasya prajāpateḥ //
Note: k: Dn D5 ins.: :k
saṃjñāyāṃ janayāmāsa vaḍavāyāṃ sa bhārata |
tāṃ tu rūpeṇa krāntena darśayāmāsa bhāskaraḥ
sā tu dṛṣṭvaiva bhartāraṃ tutoṣa janamejaya //
yamas tu karmaṇā tena bhṛśaṃ pīḍitamānasaḥ
dharmeṇa rañjayāmāsa dharmarāja imāḥ prajāḥ //
sa lebhe karmaṇā tena śubhena paramadyutiḥ
pitṝṇām ādhipatyaṃ ca lokapālatvam eva ca //
manuḥ prajāpatis tv āsīt sāvarṇaḥ sa tapodhanaḥ
bhāvyaḥ so 'nāgate tasmin manuḥ sāvarṇike 'ntare //
merupṛṣṭhe tapo nityam adyāpi sa caraty uta
bhrātā śanaiścaraś cāsya grahatvaṃ sa tu labdhavān //
Note: k: Dn Bom. and Poona eds. ins.: :k
nāsatyau yau samākhyātau svarvaidyau tu babhūvatuḥ |
revanto 'pi tathā rājann aśvānāṃ śāntido 'bhavat |
tvaṣṭā tu tejasā tena viṣṇoś cakram akalpayat
tad apratihataṃ yuddhe dānavāntacikīrṣayā //
yavīyasī tayor yā tu yamī kanyā yaśasvinī
abhavat sā saricchreṣṭhā yamunā lokabhāvanī //
manur ity ucyate loke sāvarṇa iti cocyate
dvitīyo yaḥ sutas tasya sa vijñeyaḥ śanaiścaraḥ //
Note: k: K N2.3 V B D T1.2.3.4(last two second time) G M4 ins. after 47: T3.4(both first time) after the first occurence of 47cd: :k
grahatvaṃ sa tu lebhe vai sarvalokānupūjitam |
ya idaṃ janma devānāṃ śṛṇuyād dhārayeta vā
āpadaṃ prāpya mucyeta prāpnuyāc ca mahad yaśaḥ //
Note: h: HV (CE) chapter 9, transliterated by Christophe Vielle :h
manor vaivasvatasyāsan putrā vai nava tatsamāḥ
ikṣvākuś caiva nābhāgaś ca dhṛṣṇuḥ śaryātir eva ca //
nariṣyantas tathā prāṃśūr nābhānediṣṭhasaptamaḥ
karūṣaś ca pṛṣadhraś ca navaite puruṣarṣabha //
akarot putrakāmas tu manur iṣṭiṃ prajāpatiḥ
mitrāvaruṇayos tāta pūrvam eva viśāṃ pate
anutpanneṣu navasu putreṣv eteṣu bhārata //
tasyāṃ tu vartamānāyām iṣṭyāṃ bharatasattama
mitrāvaruṇayor aṃśe manur āhutim ājuhot //
Note: k: K1-3 Ñ2.3 V1.2 B1.2 Ds D1-5 T3 ins.: :k
āhutyāṃ hūyamānāyāṃ devagandharvamānuṣāḥ |
tuṣṭiṃ tu paramāṃ jagmur munayaś ca tapodhanāḥ |
aho 'sya tapaso vīryam aho śrutam aho dhanam |
tatra divyāmbaradharā divyābharaṇabhūṣitā
divyasaṃhananā caiva iḍā jajña iti śrutiḥ //
tām iḍety eva hovāca manur daṇḍadharas tadā
anugacchasva māṃ bhadre tam iḍā pratyuvāca ha //
Note: k: Ś1 K Ñ V B Dn Ds D1.3-6 T2-4 G M4 (D2 after 6b) ins.: :k
dharmayuktamidaṃ vākyaṃ putrakāmaṃ prajāpatim |
mitrāvaruṇayor aṃśe jātāsmi vadatāṃ vara
tayoḥ sakāśaṃ yāsyāmi na māṃ dharmo hato 'hanat //
saivam uktvā manuṃ devaṃ mitrāvaruṇayor iḍā
gatvāntikaṃ varārohā prāñjalir vākyam abravīt
aṃśe 'smi yuvayor jātā devau kiṃ karavāṇi vām //
Note: k: K2-4 Ñ2.3 V B D except D2 ins.: :k
manunā cāham uktā vai anugacchasvamām iti |
tāṃ tathāvādinīṃ sādhvīm iḍāṃ dharmaparāyaṇām
mitraś ca varuṇaś cobhāv ūcatur yan nibodha tat //
anena tava dharmeṇa praśrayeṇa damena ca
satyena caiva suśroṇi prītau svo varavarṇini //
āvayos tvaṃ mahābhāge khyātiṃ kanyeti yāsyasi
manor vaṃśakaraḥ putras tvam eva ca bhaviṣyasi //
sudyumna iti vikhyātas triṣu lokeṣu śobhane
jagatpriyo dharmaśīlo manor vaṃśavivardhanaḥ //
nivṛttā sā tu tac chrutvā gacchantī pitur antikām
budhenāntaram āsādya maithunāyopavartitā //
somaputrād budhād rājaṃs tasyāṃ jajñe purūravāḥ
janayitvā tataḥ sā tam iḍā sudyumnatāṃ gatā //
sudyumnasya tu dāyādās trayaḥ paramadhārmikāḥ
utkalaś ca gayaś caiva vinatāśvaś ca bhārata //
utkalasyottarā rājan vinatāśvasya paścimā
dik pūrvā bharataśreṣṭha gayasya tu gayā smṛtā //
praviṣṭe tu manau tāta divākaram ariṃdama
daśadhā tadgataṃ kṣatram akarot pṛthivīm imām //
Note: k: all Mss. (except Ś1 K1 Ñ1 T1 M1-3) ins.: :k
yūpāṅkitā vasumatī yasyeyaṃ savanākarā |
ikṣvākur jyeṣṭhadāyādo madhyadeśam avāptavān
kanyābhāvāc ca sudyumno nainaṃ guṇam avāptavān //
vasiṣṭhavacanāc cāsīt pratiṣṭhānaṃ mahātmanaḥ
pratiṣṭhā dharmarājasya sudyumnasya kurūdvaha //
tat purūravase prādād rājyaṃ prāpya mahāyaśāḥ
Note: k: K1.3 D4 ins.: :kcakravartī mahārāja babhūva janamejaya |
Note: k: K2.4 Ñ2.3 V B Dn Ds D1-3.5.6 T2-4 G M4 (K1.3 D4 after 20d) ins.: :ksudyumnaḥ kārayām āsa pratiṣṭhāne nṛpakriyām |
dhṛṣṇukaś cāmbarīṣaś ca daṇḍaś cetīha te trayaḥ |
yaś cakāra mahātmā vai daṇḍakāraṇyam uttamam ||
vanaṃ tal lokavikhyātaṃ tāpasānām anuttamam |
tatra praviṣṭamātras tu naraḥ pāpāt pramucyate ||
sudyumnaś ca divaṃ yāta eḍam utpādya bhārata |
Note: k: Bom Poona eds after line 1 of *169 ins.: :kutkalasya trayaḥ putrās triṣu lokeṣu viśrutāḥ |
mānaveyo mahārāja strīpuṃsor lakṣaṇair yutaḥ //
Note: k: K2.4 Ñ V B Dn D1.2.5.6 T3.4 G2.4 Bom Poona eds (K1.3 D4 after 20c-d repeated after *169) ins.: :k
dhṛtavāṃs tam iḍety evaṃ sudyumnaś cetiviśrutaḥ |
Note: k: D1.2.5 after *170 (K2 after 22b) ins. (= var. 37): :k
pṛṣadhro hivaddhitvā tu guror gāṃ janamejaya |
śāpāc chūdratvam āpannaḥ putras tasya mahātmanaḥ |
nāriṣyantāḥ śakāḥ putrā nābhāgasya tu bhārata
ambarīṣo 'bhavat putraḥ pārthivarṣabhasattama //
dhṛṣṇos tu dhārṣṇikaṃ kṣatraṃ raṇadṛṣṭaṃ babhūva ha
Note: k: Ś1 K1.3.4. Ñ2 V2 Dn D2-5 (K2 D1 after *171) ins. (l. 1 = 36c-d, l. 5 =*178): :kkarūṣasya tu kārūṣāḥ kṣatriyā yuddhadurmadāḥ |
sahasraṃ kṣatriyagaṇo vikrāntaḥ saṃbabhūva ha ||
nābhāgāriṣṭaputrāś ca kṣatriyā vaiśyatāṃ gatāḥ ||
prāṃśor eko 'bhavat putraḥ prajāpatir iti śrutaḥ |
nariṣyantasya dāyādo rājā daṇḍadharo damaḥ |
śaryāter mithunaṃ cāsīd ānarto nāma viśrutaḥ
putraḥ kanyā sukanyā ca yā patnī cyavanasya ha //
ānartasya tu dāyādo revo nāma mahādyutiḥ
ānartaviṣayaś cāsīt purī cāsīt kuśasthalī //
revasya raivataḥ putraḥ kakudmī nāma dhārmikaḥ
jyeṣṭhaḥ putraśatasyāsīd rājyaṃ prāpya kuśasthalīm //
Note: k: T3 for 24c-d subst.: :k
tasya putraśataṃ tv āsīt kanyā cāpikurūdvaha |
sa kanyāsahitaḥ śrutvā gāndharvaṃ brahmaṇo 'ntike
muhūrtabhūtaṃ devasya martyaṃ bahuyugaṃ prabho //
ājagāma yuvaivātha svāṃ purīṃ yādavair vṛtām
kṛtāṃ dvāravatīṃ nāmnā bahudvārāṃ manoramām
bhojavṛṣṇyandhakair guptāṃ vāsudevapurogamaiḥ //
tatas tad raivato jñātvā yathātattvam ariṃdama
kanyāṃ tāṃ baladevāya suvratāṃ nāma revatīm //
dattvā jagāma śikharaṃ meros tapasi saṃśritaḥ
Note: k: B2 ins.: :krohiṇyā sahitaś candro yathā śacyā śacīpatiḥ |
reme rāmo 'pi dharmātmā revatyā sahitaḥ sukhī //
kathaṃ bahuyuge kāle samatīte dvijarṣabha
na jarā revatīṃ prāptā raivataṃ ca kakudminam //
meruṃ gatasya vā tasya śāryāteḥ saṃtatiḥ katham
sthitā pṛthivyām adyāpi śrotum icchāmi tattvataḥ //
na jarā kṣutpipāse vā na mṛtyur bharatarṣabha
ṛtucakraṃ prabhavati brahmaloke sadānaghā //
kakudminas tu taṃ lokaṃ raivatasya gatasya ha
hatā puṇyajanais tāta rākṣasaiḥ sā kuśasthalī //
tasya bhrātṛśataṃ tv āsīd dhārmikasya mahātmanaḥ
tad vadhyamānaṃ rakṣobhir diśaḥ prākramad acyutā //
Note: k: K4 Ñ1 V1 B Dn Ds D5.6 T G M1.3.4 (Ñ2 V2.3 after *176)ins.: :k
vidrutasyaca rājendra tasya bhrātṛśatasya vai |
Note: k: K1-3 Ñ2 V2.3 D1.4 (K4 Ñ1 V1 B Dn Ds D5.6 T3.4 after *175) ins.: :k
teṣāṃ tu te bhayākrāntaḥ kṣatriyās tatra tatra ha |
anvavāyas tu sumahāṃs tatra tatra viśāṃ pate
teṣāṃ ye te mahārāja śāryātā iti viśrutāḥ //
kṣatriyā bharataśreṣṭha dikṣu sarvāsu dhārmikāḥ
sarvaśaḥ sarvagahanaṃ praviṣṭāḥ kurunandana //
Note: k: T3 ins.: :k
teṣu tatra kṛpāṃ cakre brahmā lokapitā mahaḥ |
nābhāgasya tu putrau dvau vaiśyau brāhmaṇatāṃ gatau
karūṣasya tu kārūṣāḥ kṣatriyā yuddhadurmadāḥ //
Note: k: Ś1 K1.3 Ñ1 V2 Dn G4 ins.: :k
prāṃśor eko 'bhavat putraḥ prajāpatiriti śrutaḥ |
pṛṣadhro hiṃsayitvā tu guror gāṃ janamejaya
śāpāc chūdratvam āpanno navaite parikīrtitāḥ //
Note: k: all Mss. (except Ś1 M1-3) ins.: :k
vaivasvatasya tanayā manor vaibharatarṣabha |
kṣuvatas tu manos tāta ikṣvākur abhavat sutaḥ
tasya putraśataṃ tv āsīd ikṣvākor bhūridakṣiṇam //
teṣāṃ vikukṣir jyeṣṭhas tu vikukṣitvād ayodhatām
prāptaḥ paramadharmajña so 'yodhyādhipatiḥ prabhuḥ //
śakunipramukhās tasya putrāḥ pañcaśataṃ smṛtāḥ
uttarāpathadeśasya rakṣitāro viśāṃ pate //
catvāriṃśad athāsṭau ca dakṣiṇasyāṃ tathā diśi
vasātipramukhāś cānye rakṣitāro viśāṃ pate //
Note: k: K1 Ñ2.3 V B1.2 Dn Ds D3.5 ins.: :k
ikṣvākus tu vikukṣiṃ vai aṣṭakāyām athādiśat |
māṃsam ānaya śrāddhārthaṃ mṛgān hatvā mahābala |
śrāddhakarmaṇi coddiṣṭe akṛte śrāddhakarmaṇi
bhakṣayitvā śaśaṃ tāta śaśādo mṛgayāṃ gataḥ //
ikṣvākuṇā parityakto vasiṣṭhavacanāt prabhuḥ
Note: k: Ñ2.3 V1.3 ins.: :kśaśādanāc chaśādo 'bhūc chaśādo vanamāviśat |
ikṣvākau saṃsthite tāta śaśādaḥ puram āvasat //
Note: k: Ñ2.3 V1.3 ins.: :k
prāptaḥ paramadharmātmā yo 'yodhyādhipatikriyām |
ayodhasya tu dāyādaḥ kakutstho nāma vīryavān
Note: k: all Mss. (except T G M1.4) ins.: :kindrasya vṛṣabhūtasya kakutstho 'jayatāsurān |
pūrvam āḍībake yuddhe kakutsthas tena sa smṛtaḥ |
anenās tu kakutsthasya pṛthur ānenasaḥ smṛtaḥ //
viṣṭarāśvaḥ pṛthoḥ putras tasmād ārdras tv ajāyata
ārdrasya yuvanāśvas tu śrāvastas tasya cātmajas //
jajñe śrāvastako rājā śrāvastī yena nirmitā
śrāvastasya tu dāyādo bṛhadaśvo mahīpatiḥ //
kuvalāśvaḥ sutas tasya Ṭrājā paramadhārmikaḥ
yaḥ sa dhundhuvadhād rājā dhundhumāratvam āgataḥ //
dhundhor vadham ahaṃ brahmañ śrotum icchāmi tattvataḥ
yadarthaṃ kuvalāśvaḥ san dhundhumāratvam āgataḥ //
bṛhadaśvasya putrāṇāṃ śatam uttamadhanvinām
Note: k: all Mss. (except Ś1 K1 Ñ1 T1 M1-3) ins.: :ksarve vidyāsu niṣṇātā balavanto durāsadāḥ |
babhūvātha pitā rājye kuvalāśvaṃ nyayojayat //
Note: k: After 49c, all Mss. (except Ś1 K1 Ñ1 T1 M1-3) ins.: :k
yajvāno bhūridakṣiṇāḥ |
kuvalāśvaṃ sutaṃ rājye |
putrasaṃkrāmitaśrīs tu vanaṃ rājā samāviśat
tam uttaṅko 'tha viprarṣiḥ prayāntaṃ pratyavārayat //
bhavatā rakṣaṇaṃ kāryaṃ tat tāvat kartum arhasi
nirudvignas tapaś cartuṃ na hi śaknomi pārthiva //
Note: k: Ś1 K1.3 Ñ2.3 V Ds D4 ins.: :k
tvayā hi pṛthivī rājan rakṣyamāṇāmahātmanā |
bhaviṣyati nirudvignā nāraṇyaṃ gantum arhasi ||
pālane hi mahān dharmaḥ prajānām iha dṛśyate |
na tathā dṛśyate 'raṇye mā te bhūd buddhir īdṛśī ||
īdṛśo na hi rājendra dharmaḥ kva cana dṛśyate |
prajānāṃ pālane yo vai purā rājarṣibhiḥ kṛtaḥ |
rakṣitavyāḥ prajā rājñā tās tvaṃ rakṣitum arhasi |
mamāśramasamīpe vai sameṣu marudhanvasu
samudro vālukāpūrṇa ujjānaka iti smṛtaḥ //
devatānām avadhyaś ca mahākāyo mahābalaḥ
antarbhūmigatas tatra vālukāntarhito mahān //
rākṣasasya madhoḥ putro dhundhur nāma sudāruṇaḥ
śete lokavināśāya tapa āsthāya dāruṇam //
saṃvatsarasya paryante sa niḥśvāsaṃ vimuñcati
yadā tadā mahī tāta calati sma sakānanā //
tasya niḥśvāsavātena raja uddhūyate mahat
ādityapatham āvṛtya saptāhaṃ bhūmikampanam //
savisphuliṅgaṃ sāṅgāraṃ sadhūmam atidāruṇam
tena tāta na śaknomi tasmin sthātuṃ sva āśrame //
taṃ vāraya mahākāyaṃ lokānāṃ hitakāmyayā
lokāḥ svasthā bhavantv adya tasmin vinihate tvayā //
tvaṃ hi tasya vadhāyaikaḥ samarthaḥ pṛthivīpate
viṣṇunā ca varo datto mahyaṃ pūrvaṃ tato 'nadha
Note: k: Ś1 K Ñ2.3 V B D (except D3) T G M4 ins.: :kyas taṃ mahāsuraṃraudraṃ haniṣyati mahābalam |
Note: k: V2 after *187 cont.: :ksa ca vikhyātakīrtis tu cakravartī nasaṃśayaḥ |
tejasā svena te viṣṇus teja āpyāyayiṣyati //
na hi dhundhur mahātejās tejasālpena śakyate
nirdagdhuṃ pṛthivīpāla ciraṃ yugaśatair api
vīryaṃ hi sumahat tasya devair api durāsadam //
sa evam ukto rājarṣir uttaṅkena mahātmanā
kuvalāśvaṃ sutaṃ prādāt tasmai dhundhunibarhaṇe //
bhagavan nyastaśastro 'ham ayaṃ tu tanayo mama
bhaviṣyati dvijaśreṣṭha dhundhumāro na saṃśayaḥ //
sa taṃ vyādiśya tanayaṃ rājarṣir dhundhunigrahe
jagāma parvatāyaiva tapase saṃśitavrataḥ //
kuvalāśvas tu putrāṇāṃ śatena saha pārtivaḥ
prāyād uttaṅkasahito dhundhos tasya nibarhaṇe //
tam āviśat tadā viṣṇur bhagavāṃs tejasā prabhuḥ
uttaṅkasya niyogād vai lokānāṃ hitakāmyayā //
tasmin prayāte durdharṣe divi śabdo mahān abhūt
eṣa śrīmān nṛpasuto dhundhumāro bhaviṣyati //
divyair mālyaiś ca taṃ devāḥ samantāt samavākiran
devadundubhayaś caiva praṇedur bharatarṣabha //
sa gatvā jayatāṃ śreṣṭhas tanayaiḥ saha vīryavān
samudraṃ khānayām āsa vālukārṇavam avyayam //
nārāyaṇena kauravya tejasāpyāyitas tadā
babhūva sa mahātejā bhūyo balasamanvitaḥ //
tasya putraiḥ khanadbhis tu vālukāntarhitas tadā
dhundhur āsādito rājan diśam āvṛtya paścimām //
mukhajenāgninā krodhāl lokān udvartayann iva
vāri susrāva vegena mahodadhir ivodaye
somasya bharataśreṣṭha dhārormikalilo mahān //
Note: k: D6 ins.: :k
ekaviṃśati putrāṇāṃ sahasram amitaujasām |
tasya putraśataṃ dagdhaṃ tribhir ūnaṃ tu rakṣasā //
tataḥ sa rājā kauravya rākṣasaṃ taṃ mahābalam
āsasāda mahātejā dhundhuṃ dhundhuvināśanaḥ //
tasya vārimayaṃ vegam āpīya sa narādhipaḥ
yogī yogena vahniṃ ca śamayām āsa vāriṇā //
nihatya taṃ mahākāyaṃ balenodakarākṣasam
uttaṅkaṃ darśayām āsa kṛtakarmā narādhipaḥ //
uttaṅkas tu varaṃ prādāt tasmai rājñe mahātmane
dadataś cākṣayaṃ vittaṃ śatrubhiś cāparājayam //
dharme ratiṃ ca satataṃ svarge vāsaṃ tathākṣayam
putrāṇāṃ cākṣayāṃl lokān svarge ye rakṣasā hatāḥ //
tasya putrās trayaḥ śiṣṭā dṛḍhāśvo jyeṣṭha ucyate
daṇḍāśvakapilāśvau tu kumārau tu kanīyasau //
dhaundhumārir dṛḍhāśvas tu haryaśvas tasya cātmajaḥ
haryaśvasya nikumbho 'bhūt kṣatradharmarataḥ sadā //
saṃhatāśvo nikumbhasya suto raṇaviśāradaḥ
akṛśāśvaḥ kṛśāśvaś ca saṃhatāśvasutau nṛpa //
tasya haimavatī kanyā satāṃ matā dṛṣadvatī
vikhyātā triṣu lokeṣu putraś cāpi prasenajit //
lebhe prasenajid bhāryāṃ gaurīṃ nāma pativratām
abhiśaptā tu sā bhartrā nadī sā bāhudā kṛtā //
tasyāḥ putro mahān āsīd yuvanāśvo narādhipaḥ
Note: k: K4 ins.: :kyuvanāśvasya tanayaś cakravartī jajāna ha |
kaṃ dhārayati kumāro 'yaṃ nyasto rorūyate bhṛśam |
māndhātar vatsa mā rodīr itīndro deśinīm adāt |
māndhātā yuvanāśvasya trilokavijayī nṛpaḥ //
tasya caitrarathī bhāryā śaśabindoḥ sutābhavat
sādhvī bindumatī nāma rūpeṇāsadṛśī bhuvi
pativratā ca jyeṣṭhā ca bhrātṝṇām ayutasya sā //
tasyām utpādayām āsa māndhātā dvau sutau nṛpa
purukutsaṃ ca dharmajñaṃ mucukundaṃ ca pārthivam //
purukutsasutas tv āsīt trasaddasyur mahīpatiḥ
narmadāyām athotpannaḥ saṃbhūtas tasya cātmajaḥ //
saṃbhūtasya tu dāyādaḥ sudhanvā ripumardanaḥ
Note: k: Ñ2.3 V3 B2 D5 ins.: :ksudhanvanaḥ sutaś cāpi viṣṇuvṛddhir iti smṛtaḥ |
viṣṇuvṛddhā iti khyātās tasya vaṃśyā narādhipāḥ |
ete tv aṅgirasaḥ pakṣe kṣetropetā dvijātayaḥ ||
saṃbhūtasyāparaḥ putro anaraṇyo mahāyaśāḥ |
rāvaṇena hato yo 'sau trilokajayinā purā ||
trasadaśvo naras tasya haryaśvas tasya cātmajaḥ |
haryaśvasya dṛṣadvatyāṃ jajñe sumanasaḥ sutaḥ ||
tasya putro 'bhavad rājā sudhanvā ripumardanaḥ |
sudhanvanaḥ sutaś cāpi tridhanvā nāma pārthivaḥ //
rājñas tridhanvanas tv āsīd vidvāṃs trayyāruṇaḥ prabhuḥ
tasya satyavrato nāma kumāro 'bhūn mahābalaḥ //
pāṇigrahaṇamantrāṇāṃ vighnaṃ cakre sudurmatiḥ
yena bhāryā hṛtā pūrvaṃ kṛtodvāhā parasya vai //
bālyāt kāmāc ca mohāc ca saṃharṣāc cāpalena ca
jahāra kanyāṃ kāmāt sa kasya cit puravāsinaḥ //
Note: k: K4 ins.: :k
ekasmin divase rāja+ +putro 'tyantaparākramī |
dadarśa vicaran svīye pattane cārulocanām |
udvāhayantīṃ vedikāyāṃ vaiśyavaryasya kasya cit ||
anullaṅghitamaryādāṃ saptapadyā vicakṣaṇaḥ |
bhartrā pānigrahayutāṃ balād gṛhya mahīpatiḥ |
gāndharveṇa vivāhena svayaṃ udvāhayad balāt ||
vaiśyāḥ sarve samāgamya rājānam idam ūcatuḥ |
kumāreṇa hṛtā kanyā vedikāyā mahadbalāt |
rājñā na rakṣito lokas tadā naṣṭo bhaved dhruvam ||
na pūrvais taiḥ kṛtaṃ pūrvaṃ na kariṣyati cāpadi |
yathā kumāreṇa kṛtaṃ rājan karma vigarhitam |
adharmaśaṅkunā tena rājā trayyāruṇo 'tyajat
Note: k: D6 T1.2 G M4 for 91a-b subst.: :ktam adharmeṇa saṃyuktaṃ pitāsūryāruṇo jahau |
apadhvaṃseti bahuśo vadan krodhasamanvitaḥ //
pitaraṃ so 'bravīt tyaktaḥ kva gacchāmīti vai muhuḥ
pitā tv enam athovāca śvapākaiḥ saha vartaya
nāhaṃ putreṇa putrārthī tvayādya kulapāṃsana //
ity uktaḥ sa nirākrāman nagarād vacanāt pituḥ
na ca taṃ vārayām āsa vasiṣṭho bhagavān ṛṣiḥ //
sa tu satyavratas tāta śvapākāvasathāntike
pitrā tyakto 'vasad vīraḥ pitāpy asya vanaṃ yayau //
tatas tasmiṃs tu viṣaye nāvarṣat pākaśāsanaḥ
Note: k: K4 ins.: :kacirān narapater vasiṣṭhasyāvicārataḥ |
parityāgāt kumārasya nāvarṣat pākaśāsanaḥ ||
yadā dvādaśa varṣāṇi tena naṣṭābhavat prajā |
svāhākāraḥ svadhākāro vaṣaṭkāro 'pi nābhavat |
rāṣṭre tasya mahīpasya dharmanāśo 'bhavat tadā |
samā dvādaśa rājendra tenādharmeṇa vai tadā //
dārāṃs tu tasya viṣaye viśvāmitro mahātapāḥ
saṃnyasya sāgarānūpe cacāra vipulaṃ tapaḥ //
Note: k: K4 ins.: :k
etasminn eva samaye viśvāmitrasya vai sutāḥ |
catvāro vedavidvāṃsaḥ kṣudhayā paripīḍitāḥ ||
viśvāmitre gate dūraṃ tapase 'timahātmani |
procuḥ prāñjalayaḥ sarve mātaraṃ prati bhārata ||
vikrīya tanayaṃ mātar jīvyatāṃ yadi rocate |
mariṣyāmo 'nyathā sarve kṣudhayā paripīḍitāḥ |
vikrīya tanayaṃ jīva yāvadāgamanaṃ pituḥ ||
sarvanāśe samutpanne ardhaṃ tyajati mānavaḥ |
ardhena kurute kāryam iti paurātanī śrutiḥ ||
tyajed ekaṃ kulasyārthaṃ grāmasyārthaṃ kulaṃ tyajet |
grāmaṃ janapadasyārthaṃ ātmārthaṃ sakalaṃ tyajet ||
tasmād vikrīya tanayān mātar jīva yathāsukham |
anyathā nidhanaṃ sarve gamiṣyāmas tvayā saha ||
ayodhyāyāṃ mahātmāno dhyānavanto mahattarāḥ |
gṛhvanti manujāḥ sarve dāsārthaṃ samupāgatān ||
tasmād vikrīya māṃ mātaḥ pūrvaṃ bhakṣaya pūrvajam |
paścād vikrīya tāṃ sarvān no ced varṣati vāsavaḥ |
tasya patnī gale baddhvā madhyamaṃ putram aurasam
śeṣasya bharaṇārthāya vyakrīṇād gośatena vai //
taṃ tu baddhaṃ gale dṛṣṭvā vikrīyantaṃ nṛpātmajaḥ
maharṣiputraṃ dharmātmā mokṣayām āsa bhārata //
satyavrato mahābāhur bharaṇaṃ tasya cākarot
viśvāmitrasya tuṣṭyartham anukampārtham eva ca //
Note: k: Ñ2 ins.: :k
mahāvrataṃ tadā roṣaṃ vasiṣṭho manasākarot |
so 'bhavad gālavo nāma galabandhān mahātapāḥ
maharṣiḥ kauśikas tāta tena vīreṇa mokṣitaḥ //
Note: h: HV (CE) chapter 10, transliterated by Christophe Vielle :h
satyavratas tu bhaktyā ca kṛpayā ca pratijñayā
viśvāmitrakalatraṃ tad babhāra vinaye sthitaḥ //
hatvā mṛgān varāhāṃś ca mahiṣāṃś ca vanecarān
viśvāmitrāśramābhyāśe māṃsaṃ tad avabandhata //
upāṃśuvratam āsthāya dīkṣāṃ dvādaśavārṣikīm
pitur niyogād avasat tasmin vanagate nṛpe //
ayodhyāṃ caiva rāṣṭraṃ ca tathaivāntaḥpuraṃ muniḥ
yājyopādhyāyasaṃyogād vasiṣṭhaḥ paryarakṣata //
satyavratas tu bālyād vā bhāvino 'rthasya vā balāt
vasiṣṭhe 'bhyadhikaṃ manyuṃ dhārayām āsa nityadā //
pitrā tu taṃ tadā rāṣṭrāt parityktaṃ priyaṃ sutam
na vārayām āsa munir vasiṣṭhaḥ kāraṇena hi //
pāṇigrahaṇamantrāṇāṃ niṣṭhā syāt saptame pade
na ca satyavratas tasmād dhṛtavān saptame pade //
jānan dharmaṃ vasiṣṭhas tu na māṃ trātīti bhārata
satyavratas tadā roṣaṃ vasiṣṭhe manasākarot //
guṇabuddhyā tu bhagavān vasiṣṭhaḥ kṛtavāṃs tadā
na ca satyavratas tasya tam upāṃśum abudhyata //
tasminn aparitoṣo yaḥ pitur āsīn mahātmanaḥ
tena dvādaśa varṣāṇi nāvarṣat pākaśāsanaḥ //
tena tv idānīṃ vahatā dīkṣāṃ tāṃ durvahāṃ bhuvi
Note: k: D4 for 11a-b subst.: :ktenārthaṃ caiva vihitā dikṣās tātahatā bhuvi |
kulasya niṣkṛtis tāta kṛtā sā vai bhaved iti //
na taṃ vasiṣṭho bhagavān pitrā tyaktaṃ nyavārayat
abhiṣekṣyāmy ahaṃ putram asyety evaṃ matir muneḥ //
sa tu dvādaśa varṣāṇi dīkṣām tām udvahan balī
Note: k: K4 Ñ3 V1 D3 ins.: :kupāṃśuvratam āsthāya mahat satyavratonṛpa |
avidyamāne māṃse tu vasiṣṭhasya mahātmanaḥ
sarvakāmaduhāṃ dogdhrīṃ dadarśa sa nṛpātmajaḥ //
tāṃ vai krodhāc ca mohāc ca śramāc caiva kṣudhānvitaḥ
daśadharmagato rājā jaghāna janamejaya //
Note: k: Dn D6 Cs (Ñ3 on marg. after 14b) ins.: :k
mattaḥ pramatta unmattaḥ śrāntaḥ kruddho bubhukṣitaḥ |
tvaramāṇaś ca bhītaś ca lubdhaḥ kāmī ca te daśa |
ta ca māṃsaṃ svayaṃ caiva viśvāmitrasya cātmajān
bhojayām āsa tac chrutvā vasiṣṭho 'py asya cukrudhe //
Note: k: N (except Ś1 K1 Ñ1) T2-4 G M4 ins.: :k
kruddhas tu bhagavānvākyam idam āha nṛpātmajan |
pātayeyam ahaṃ krūra tava śaṅkum ayasmayam
yadi te dvāv imau śaṅkū na syātāṃ vai kṛtau punaḥ //
pituś cāparitoṣeṇa guror dogdhrīvadhena ca
aprokṣitopayogāc ca trividhas te vyatikramaḥ //
evaṃ trīṇy asya śaṅkūni tāni dṛṣṭvā mahātapāḥ
triśaṅkur iti hovāca triśaṅkus tena sa smṛtaḥ //
viśvāmitras tu dārāṇām āgato bharaṇe kṛte
tena tasmai varaṃ prādān muniḥ prītas triśaṅkave
chandyamāno vareṇātha guruṃ vavre nṛpātmajaḥ //
Note: k: all Mss. (except Ś1 Ñ1 M1-3) ins.: :k
saśarīro vraje svargam ity evaṃ yācito muniḥ |
anāvṛṣṭibhaye tasmin gate dvādaśavārṣike
abhiṣicya ca rājye ca yājayām āsa taṃ muniḥ
Note: k: D6 T1.2 G M4 for 20c-d subst.: :ktaṃ munir yājayām āsa pitriye rājye 'bhiṣicya tu |
miṣatāṃ devatānāṃ ca vasiṣṭhasya ca kauśikaḥ //
Note: k: Ś1 K1.3.4 Dn D4 ins.: :k
saśarīraṃ tadā taṃ tu divamāropayat prabhuḥ |
Note: k: Ñ2.3 V1.2 B Ds D2.6 T2-4 G1.4 (V3 after 20d) ins.: :k
divam āropayāmāsa saśarīraṃ mahātapāḥ |
tasya satyarathā nāma patnī kekayavaṃśajā
kumāraṃ janayām āsa hariścandram akalmaṣam //
sa vai rājā hariścandras traiśaṅkava iti smṛtaḥ
āhartā rājasūyasya sa samrāḍ iti viśrutaḥ //
hariścandrasya tu suto rohito nāma viśrutaḥ
Note: k: K1.3.4 V Dn D3-6 M4 ins.: :kyenedaṃ rohitapuraṃ kāritaṃrājyasiddhaye ||
kṛtvā rājyaṃ sa rājarṣiḥ pālayitvā tathā prajāḥ |
saṃsārāsāratāṃ jñātvā dvijebhyas tat puraṃ dadau |
Note: k: K2 Ñ2.3 B Ds D1.2 T2-4 G (K1.3.4 V Dn D3-6 after *205) ins.: :kharito rohitasyātha cañcur hārīta ucyate |
vijayaś ca sudevaś ca cañcuputrau babhūvatuḥ |
jetā kṣatrasya sarvasya vijayas tena sa smṛtaḥ ||
rurukas tanayas tasya rājadharmārthakovidaḥ |
Note: k: D3 after line 1a of *206 ins.: :kharito jajñivāṃs tataḥ tathaiva loke dharmātmā |
rohitasya vṛkaḥ putro vṛkād bāhus tu jajñivān //
Note: k: K Ñ2.3 V B D1-5 T2-4 G1.4 ins.: :k
śakair yavanakāmbojaiḥ pāradaiḥ pahlavaiḥ saha |
hehayās tālajaṅghāś ca nirasyanti sma taṃ nṛpam
nātyarthaṃ dhārmikaś tāta sa hi dharmayuge 'bhavat //
sagaras tu suto bāhor jajñe saha gareṇa vai
aurvasyāśramam āsādya bhārgaveṇābhirakṣitaḥ //
āgneyam astraṃ labdhvā ca bhārgavāt sagaro nṛpaḥ
jigāya pṛthivīṃ hatvā tālajaṅghān sahehayān //
śakānāṃ pahlavānāṃ ca dharmaṃ nirasad acyutaḥ
kṣatriyāṇāṃ kuruśreṣṭhāḥ pāradānāṃ ca dharmavit //
kathaṃ sa sagaro jāto gareṇaiva sahācyutaḥ
kimarthaṃ ca śakādīnāṃ kṣatriyāṇāṃ mahaujasām //
dharmaṃ kulocitaṃ kruddho rājā nirasad acyutaḥ
etan me sarvam ācakṣva vistareṇa tapodhana //
bāhor vyasaninas tāta hṛtaṃ rājyam abhūt kila
hehayais tālajaṅghaiś ca śakaiḥ sārdhaṃ viśāṃ pate //
yavanāḥ pāradāś caiva kāmbojāḥ pahlavās khaśāḥ
Note: k: B1 D2 T3.4 (T2 G1.4 after 37d) ins.: :kkātisarpā māhiṣikāḥ pāradāṣṭaṅkaṇāḥ śakāḥ |
ete hy api gaṇāḥ pañca hehayārthe parākraman //
hṛtarājyas tadā rājā sa vai bāhur vanaṃ yayau
patnyā cānugato duḥkhī vane prāṇān avāsṛjat //
Note: k: K4 ins.: :k
vṛddhaṃ taṃ pañcatāṃ prāptaṃ tatpatny anumariṣyatī |
aurveṇa jānatātmānaṃ prajāvantaṃ nivāritā |
patnī tu yādavī tasya sagarbhā pṛṣṭhato 'nvagāt
sapatnyā ca garas tasyā dattaḥ pūrvam abhūt kila //
sā tu bhartuś citāṃ kṛtvā vane tām abhyarohata
aurvas tāṃ bhārgavas tāta kāruṇyāt samavārayat //
tasyāśrame ca taṃ garbhaṃ gareṇaiva sahācyutam
vyajāyata mahābāhuṃ sagaraṃ nāma pārthivam //
aurvas tu jātakarmādī tasya kṛtvā mahātmanaḥ
adhyāpya vedaśāstrāṇi tato 'straṃ pratyapādayat
āgneyaṃ taṃ mahābhāgām amarair api duḥsaham //
sa tenāstrabalenājau balena ca samanvitaḥ
hehayān nijaghānāśu kruddho rudraḥ paśūn iva
ājahāra ca lokeṣu kīrtiṃ kīrtimatāṃ varaḥ //
tataḥ śakān sa yavanān kāmbojān pāradāṃs tathā
pahlavāṃś caiva niḥśeṣān kartuṃ vyavasito nṛpaḥ //
te vadhyamānā vīreṇa sagareṇa mahātmanā
vasiṣṭhaṃ śaraṇaṃ gatvā praṇipetur manīṣiṇam //
vasiṣṭhas tv atha tān dṛṣṭvā samayena mahādyutiḥ
sagaraṃ vārayām āsa teṣāṃ dattvābhayaṃ tadā //
sagaraḥ svāṃ pratijñāṃ ca guror vākyaṃ niśamya ca
dharmaṃ jaghāna teṣāṃ vai veṣānyātvaṃ cakāra ha //
ardhaṃ śakānāṃ śiraso muṇḍayitvā vyasarjayat
yavanānāṃ śiraḥ sarvaṃ kāmbojānāṃ tathaiva ca //
pāradā muktakeśās tu pahlavāḥ śmaśrudhāriṇaḥ
niḥsvādhyāyavaṣaṭkārāḥ kṛtās tena mahātmanā //
śakā yavanakāmbojāḥ pāradāś ca viśāṃ pate
kolisarpā māhiṣakā darvāś colāḥ sakeralāḥ //
sarve te kṣatriyās tāta dharmas teṣāṃ nirākṛtaḥ
vasiṣṭhavacanād rājan sagareṇa mahātmanā //
Note: k: K1-3.4 Ñ2.3 V B Dn Ds D1.3-5 T2.3.4 G4 (K4 D5 a first time after44; D6 G2.3.5 after 45b; T2 a second time and G1 after *213) ins.: :k
khaśās tu ṣārāś cīnāś ca madrāḥ kiṣkandhakās tathā |
kauntalāś ca tathā vaṅgāḥ śālvāḥ kauṅkaṇakās tathā |
sa dharmavijayī rājā vijityemāṃ vasuṃdharām
aśvaṃ vicārayām āsa vājimedhāya dīkṣitaḥ //
tasya cārayataḥ so 'śvaḥ samudre pūrvadakṣiṇe
velāsamīpe 'pahṛto bhūmiṃ caiva praveśitaḥ
Note: k: K4 (marg.) ins.: :ktasyotsṛṣṭaṃ paśuṃ yajñe jahārāśvaṃpuraṃdaraḥ |
hṛtvā kapilapārśve taṃ baddhvāgān nagarīṃ punaḥ ||
sumatyās tanayā dṛptāḥ pitur ādeśakāriṇaḥ |
tāni ṣaṣṭisahasrāṇi hayarakṣaṇatatparāḥ |
sa taṃ deśaṃ tadā putraiḥ khānayām āsa pārthivaḥ //
āsedus te tatas tatra khanyamāne mahārṇave
tam ādipuruṣaṃ devaṃ hariṃ kṛṣṇaṃ prajāpatim
viṣṇuṃ kapilarūpeṇa svapantaṃ puruṣaṃ tadā //
Note: k: K4 ins.: :k
hayam anveṣamāṇās te samantān nyakhanan mahīm |
prāgudīcyāṃ diśi hayaṃ dadṛśuḥ kapilāntike ||
eṣa vājiharaś cora āste mīlitalocanaḥ |
hanyatāṃ hanyatāṃ pāpa iti ṣaṣṭisahasriṇaḥ |
muṣṭiprahārair ahanann unmimeṣa tadā muniḥ |
Note: k: D6 T1.2 G M ins.: :k
sraṣṭāraṃ sarvabhūtānāṃ sādhyaṃnārāyaṇaṃ tathā ||
tasya gatvā samīpe tu so 'yaṃ cora iti bruvan |
gṛhyatāṃ badhyatām eṣa no 'śvahartā sudurmatiḥ ||
tatas te pāśam udyamya grahituṃ taṃ mahādyutim |
upākrāmaṃs tadā sarve sagarāḥ kālacoditāḥ |
Note: k: T3 ins.: :k
dadṛśuḥ sāgarāḥ sarve sāyudhās taṃpradudruvuḥ |
tasya cakṣuḥsamutthena tejasā pratibudhyataḥ
dagdhāḥ sarve mahārāja catvāras tv avaśeṣitāḥ //
barhaketuḥ suketuś ca tathā bhāradratho nṛpaḥ
śūraḥ pañcajanaś caiva tasya vaṃśakarā nṛpā //
Note: k: T3 ins.: :k
aṃśumantaṃ tadājñāpya pātram aśvārtham acyutam |
pratīkṣamāṇas tatraiva dīkṣitaḥ saṃvyatiṣṭhata ||
pitṝṇāṃ padavīṃ gatvā sa dadarśa hariṃ prabhum |
mūrdhnā praṇamya taṃ devaṃ prahvībhāvena cāsthitaḥ |
prādāc ca tasmai bhagavān harir nārāyaṇo varam
akṣayaṃ vaṃśam ikṣvākoḥ kīrtiṃ cāpy anivartinīm
Note: k: T3 for 51a-c subst.: :ktataḥ sa bhagavān devo dattvā cāśvaṃvaraṃ dadau |
sagarāya mahārāja |
putraṃ samudraṃ ca vibhuḥ svarge vāsaṃ tathākṣayam //
Note: k: K3 Dn T3 ins.: :k
putrāṇāṃ cākṣayāṃl lokāṃs tasya yecakṣuṣā hatāḥ |
samudraś cārghyam ādāya vavande taṃ mahīpatim
sāgaratvaṃ ca lebhe sa karmaṇā tena tasya ha //
taṃ cāśvamedhikaṃ so 'śvaṃ samudrād upalabdhavān
ājahārāśvamedhānāṃ śataṃ sa sumahāyaśāḥ
putrāṇāṃ ca sahasrāṇi ṣaṣṭis tasyeti naḥ śrutam //
sagarasyātmajā vīrāḥ kathaṃ jātā mahābalāḥ
vikrāntāḥ ṣaṣṭisāhasrā vidhinā kena vā dvija //
dve bhārye sagarasyāstāṃ tapasā dagdhakilbiṣe
Note: k: K Ñ2.3 V B Dn Ds D1-5 T3.4 G1.4 (D6 after 53) ins.: :kjyeṣṭhāvidarbhaduhitā keśinī nāma viśrutā |
kanīyasī tu yā tasya patnī paramadharmiṇī |
ariṣṭanemiduhitā rūpeṇāpratimā bhuvi |
aurvas tābhyāṃ varaṃ prādāt tan nibodha narādhipa //
ṣaṣṭiṃ putrasahasrāṇi gṛhṇātv ekā tarasvinām
ekaṃ vaṃśadharaṃ tv ekā yatheṣṭaṃ varayatv iti //
tatraikā jagṛhe putrāṃl lubdhā śūrān bahūṃs tathā
ekaṃ vaṃśadharaṃ tv ekā tathety āha tato muniḥ //
Note: k: Ñ2.3 B1.2 Dn Ds D5 ins.: :k
keśiny asūta sagarād asamañjasamātmajam |
rājā pañcajano nāma babhūva sumahābalaḥ
itarā suṣuve tumbaṃ bījapūrṇām iti śrutiḥ //
tatra ṣaṣṭisahasrāṇi garbhās te tilasaṃmitāḥ
saṃbabhūvur yathākālaṃ vavṛdhuś ca yathāsukham //
ghṛtapūrṇeṣu kumbheṣu tān garbhān nidadhus tataḥ
dhātrīś caikaikaśaḥ prādāt tāvatīḥ poṣaṇe nṛpa //
tato daśasu māseṣu samuttasthur yathākramam
kumārās te yathākālaṃ sagaraprītivardhanāḥ //
ṣaṣṭiḥ putrasahasrāṇi tasyaivam abhavan nṛpa
śukrād alābūmadhyād vai jātāni pṛthivīpateḥ //
teṣāṃ nārāyaṇaṃ tejaḥ praviṣṭānāṃ mahātmanām
ekaḥ pañcajano nāma putro rājā babhūva ha //
Note: k: D6 T2 G1-3.5 M3 ins.: :k
asamañja iti prāhus tasya putro'ṃśumān abhūt |
sutaḥ pañcajanasyāsīd aṃśumān nāma vīryavān
dilīpas tasya tanayaḥ khaṭvāṅga iti viśrutaḥ //
yena svargād ihāgatya muhūrtaṃ prāpya jīvitam
trayo 'bhisaṃdhitā lokā buddhyā satyena cānagha //
dilīpasya tu dāyādo mahārājo bhagīrathaḥ
yaḥ sa gaṅgāṃ saricchreṣṭhām avātārayata prabhuḥ
Note: k: N (except Ś1 Ñ1) T2-4 G1-3.5 ins.: :kkīrtimān sa mahābhāgaḥ śakratulyaparākramaḥ |
samudram ānayac caināṃ duhitṛtve tv akalpayat //
Note: k: N (except Ś1 Ñ1) T2-4 G M4 ins.: :k
tasmād bhāgīrathī gaṅgā kathyate vaṃśacintakaiḥ |
bhagīrathasuto rājā śruta ity abhiviśrutaḥ
nābhāgas tu śrutasyāsīt putraḥ paramadhārmikaḥ //
ambarīṣas tu nābhāgiḥ sindhudvīpapitābhavat
ayutājit tu dāyādaḥ sindhudvīpasya vīryavān //
ayutājitsutas tv āsīd ṛtaparṇo mahāyaśāḥ
divyākṣahṛdayajño vai rājā nalasakho balī //
ṛtaparṇasutas tv āsīd ārtaparṇir mahīpatiḥ
Note: k: K1.2.4 Ñ2.3 V B Dn Ds D2.6 T2.4 G M4 ins.: :ksudāsas tasya tanayo rājā indrasakho 'bhavat |
sudāsasya sutas tv āsīt saudāso nāma pārthivaḥ |
khyātaḥ kalmāṣapādo vai nāmnā mitrasaho 'bhavat //
Note: k: K1.4 Ñ3 Ds (Ñ2 V1.3 B3 after 73b; V2 after 73d) ins.: :k
vasiṣṭhas tumahātejāḥ kṣetre kalmāṣapādake |
aśmakaṃ janayām āsa ikṣvākukulavṛddhaye |
Note: k: K1 Ñ2 V B3 Ds after *224 cont.: :k
aśmakāc caiva kārūṣo mūlakastatsuto 'bhavat |
mūlakasyāpi dharmātmā rājā śataratho 'bhavat ||
tasmāc chatarathāj jajñe rājā elabilo balī |
āsīd ailabilaḥ śrīmān vṛddhaśarmā pratāpavān ||
dalas tasyātmajaś cāpi tato jajñe śalo nṛpaḥ |
ūrṇo nāma sa dharmātmā śalaputro babhūva ha |
Note: k: Ñ2 V1.3 B3 after line 4 of *225 (Ds the second time and V2 after *230)ins.: :k
putro viśvasahas tasya pitṛkanyā vyajāyata |
Note: k: Ñ2 V3 after lines 5-6 of *225 (both lines they read after *230) ins.: :k
rajo nāma sutas tasya śṛṅkhalas tasya cātmajaḥ |
kalmāṣapādasya sutaḥ sarvakarmeti viśrutaḥ
anaraṇyas tu putro 'bhūd viśrutaḥ sarvakarmaṇaḥ //
anaraṇyasuto nighno nighnaputrau babhūvatuḥ
anamitro raghuś caiva pārthivarṣabhasattamau //
Note: k: K1 V2 Ds ins.: :k
anamitrasutaḥ stambaḥ śaṅkhaṇas tasya cātmajaḥ |
anamitras tu dharmātmā vidvān duliduho 'bhavat
dilīpas tasya tanayo rāmasya prapitāmahaḥ
dīrghabāhur dilīpasya raghur nāmnābhavat sutaḥ //
Note: k: N (except Ś1 Ñ1) (T1.3.4 G M after 73b) ins.: :k
ayodhyāyāṃmahārāja raghur āsīn mahābalaḥ |
ajas tu rāghuto jajñe tathā daśaratho 'py ajāt
rāmo daśarathāj jajñe dharmārāmo mahāyaśāḥ //
rāmasya tanayo jajñe kuśa ity abhiviśrutaḥ
atithis tu kuśāj jajñe niṣadhas tasya cātmajaḥ //
niṣadhasya nalaḥ putro nabhaḥ putro nalasya tu
nabhasaḥ puṇḍarīkas tu kṣemadhanvā tataḥ smṛtaḥ //
kṣemadhanvasutas tv āsīd devānīkaḥ pratāpavān
āsīd ahīnagur nāma devānīkātmajaḥ prabhuḥ
Note: k: M4 for 77c-d subst.: :kdevānīkasya dāyādo 'hīnagas tu pratāpavān |
ahīnagos tu dāyādaḥ sahasvān nāma pārthivaḥ //
Note: k: N (except Ś1 Ñ1) T3.4 G M4 ins.: :k
sudhanvanaḥ sutaś caiva tatojajñe nalo nṛpa |
uktho nāma sa dharmātmā nalaputro babhūva ha |
vajranābhaḥ sutas tasya ukthasya ca mahātmanaḥ |
Note: k: Ñ2.3 V B3 after line 1a of *229 ins.: :k
pāriyātro mahāyaśāḥ nalas tasyātmajaś caiva |
Note: k: K1.3.4 Ñ2.3 V1.3 B1.2 Dn Ds D1.4-6 T3 after *229 (K1 Ds both a first time and V2 after *226) cont.: :k
śaṅkhas tasya suto vidvān dhyuṣitāśva iti śrutaḥ |
dhyuṣitāśvasuto vidvān rājā viśvasahaḥ kila ||
hiraṇyanābhaḥ kauśalyo brahmiṣṭhas tasya cātmajaḥ |
puṣpas tasya suto vidvān arthasiddhis tu tatsutaḥ ||
sudarśanaḥ sutas tasya agnivarṇaḥ sudarśanāt |
agnivarṇasya śīghras tu śīghrasya tu maruḥ sutaḥ ||
marus tu yogam āsthāya kalāpadvīpam āsthitaḥ |
tasyāsīd viśrutavataḥ putro rājā bṛhadbalaḥ |
Note: k: Ñ2.3 V B2 Ds (the first time only) after line 7 of *230 (K4 after 72) ins.: :k
prasusruto marusutaḥ susaṃdhis tasya cātmajaḥ |
susaṃdhes tu suto marṣaḥ sahasrān nāma nāmataḥ |
āsīt sahasrataḥ putro rājā viśrutavān iti |
nalau dvāv eva vikhyātau purāṇe bharatarṣabha
vīrasenātmajaś caiva yaś cekṣvākukulodvahaḥ //
ikṣvākuvaṃśaprabhavāḥ prādhānyeneha kīrtitāḥ
ete vivasvato vaṃśe rājāno bhūritejasaḥ //
paṭhan samyag imāṃ sṛṣṭim ādityasya vivasvataḥ
śrāddhadevasya devasya prajānāṃ puṣṭidasya ca
prajānān eti sāyujyam ādityasya vivasvataḥ //
Note: k: K1.2.4 Ñ2.3 V B D T2.4 G M4 (T3 after 78c) ins.: :k
vipāpmā virajāścaiva āyuṣmāṃś ca bhavaty uta |
Note: h: HV (CE) chapter 11, transliterated by Horst Brinkhaus, proof-read by Horst Brinkhaus, version of January 13, 2001 :h
kathaṃ vai śrāddhadevatvam ādityasya vivasvataḥ
śrotum icchāmi viprāgrya śrāddhasya ca paraṃ vidhaṃ
pitṝṇām ādisargaṃ ca ka ete pitaraḥ smṛtāḥ //
evaṃ ca śrutam asmābhiḥ kathyamānaṃ dvijātibhiḥ
svargasthāḥ pitaro nye sma devānām api devatāḥ
iti devavidaḥ prāhur etad icchāmi vedituṃ //
yāvantaś ca gaṇāḥ proktā yac ca teṣāṃ paraṃ balam
yathā ca kṛtam asmābhiḥ śrāddhaṃ prīṇāti vai pitṝn //
prītāś ca pitaro yena śreyasā yojayanti hi
etad vai śrotum icchāmi pitṝṇāṃ sargam uttamam //
hanta te kathayiṣyāmi pitṝṇāṃ sargam uttamam
mārkaṇḍeyena kathitaṃ bhīṣmāya paripṛcchate //
apṛcchad dharmarājo hi śaratalpagataṃ purā
evam eva purā praśnaṃ yan māṃ tvaṃ paripṛcchasi //
tat te nupūrvyā vakṣyāmi bhīṣmeṇodāhṛtaṃ yathā
gītaṃ sanatkumāreṇa mārkaṇḍeyāya pṛcchate //
Note: k: T3 ins.: :k
bhīṣmas tu dharmarājāya proktavān etad acyuta |
puṣṭikāmena dharmajña kathaṃ puṣṭir avāpyate
etad ākhyātam icchāmi kiṃ kurvāṇo na śocati //
śrāddhaiḥ prīṇāti hi pitṝn sarvakāmaphalais tu yaḥ
tatparaḥ prayataḥ śrāddhī pretya ceha ca modate //
pitaro dharmakāmasya prajākāmasya cābhibho
puṣṭikāmasya puṣṭiṃ ca prayacchanti yudhiṣṭhira //
vartante pitaraḥ svarge keṣāṃcin narake punaḥ
prāṇināṃ niyataṃ hy uktam karmajaṃ phalam ucyate //
śrāddhāni caiva kurvanti phalakāmā na saṃśayaḥ
abhisaṃdhāya pitaraṃ pituṣ ca pitaraṃ tathā
pituḥ pitāmahaṃ caiva triṣu piṇḍeśu nityadā //
tāni śrāddhāni dattāni kathaṃ gacchanty atho pitṝn
kathaṃ ca śaktās te dātuṃ nirayasthāḥ phalaṃ punaḥ
ke vā te pitaro nye sma kān yajāmo vayaṃ punaḥ //
Note: k: D3 subst. for 13ef: :k
ke ca lokā na jānīmo vayaṃ punar upasthitāḥ |
devā api pitṝn svarge yajantīti ca naḥ śrutaṃ
etad icchāmy ahaṃ śrotuṃ vistareṇa mahādyute //
sa bhavān kathayatv enāṃ kathām amitabuddhimān
yathā dattaṃ pitṝṇāṃ vai tāraṇāyeha kalpate //
atra te vartayiṣyāmi yathātattvam ariṃdama
Note: k: After 16ab, K2 Ñ2.3 V3 D (except D2.6) G2 ins.: :kye ca te pitaro nye sma yān yajāmo vayaṃ punaḥ |
pitrā mama purā gītaṃ lokāntaragatena vai //
śrāddhakāle mama pitur mayā piṇḍaḥ samudyataḥ
taṃ pitā mama hastena bhittvā bhūmim ayācata //
hastābharaṇapūrṇena keyūrabharitena ca
raktāṅgulitalenātha yathā dṛṣṭaḥ purā mayā //
naiṣa kalpavidhir dṛṣṭa iti niścitya cāpy aham
kuśeṣv eva tadā piṇḍaṃ dattavān avicārayan //
tataḥ pitā me suprīto vācā madhurayā tadā
uvāca bharataśreṣṭha prīyamāṇo mayānagha //
tvayā dāyādavān asmi kṛtārtho mutra ceha ca
satputreṇa tvayā putra dharmajñena vipaścitā //
Note: k: K2.4 Ñ2 V Dn D1.2.4-6 T2-4 G1.2 ins. after 21ab; K1 Ñ1.3 B Ds after 22; G4 after 21: :k
yathā caturthaṃ dharmasya rakṣitā labhate phalam |
pāpasya hi tathā mūḍhaḥ phalaṃ prāpnoty arakṣitā |
mayā ca tava jijñāsā prayuktaiṣā dṛḍhavrata
vyavasthānaṃ ca dharmeṣu kartuṃ lokasya cānagha //
pramāṇaṃ yad dhi kurute dharmācāreṣu pārthivaḥ
prajās tad anuvartante pramāṇācaritaṃ sadā //
tvayā ca bharataśreṣṭha vedadharmāś ca śāśvatāḥ
kṛtāḥ pramāṇaṃ prītiś ca mama nirvartitātulā //
tasmāt tavāhaṃ suprītaḥ prītyā varam anuttamam
dadāni tvaṃ pratīcchasva triṣu lokeṣu durlabham //
na te prabhavitā mṛtyur yāvaj jīvitum icchasi
tvatto bhyanujñāṃ saṃprāpya mṛtyuḥ prabhavitā tava //
kiṃ vā te prārthitaṃ bhūyo dadāni varam uttamam
tad brūhi bharataśreṣṭha yat te manasi vartate //
ity uktavantaṃ tam aham abhivādya kṛtāñjaliḥ
abruvaṃ kṛtakṛtyo haṃ prasanne tvayi sattama //
yadi tv anugrahaṃ bhūyas tvatto rhāmi mahādyute
praśnam icchāmy ahaṃ kiṃcid vyāhṛtaṃ bhavatā svayam //
sa mām uvāca dharmātmā brūhi bhīṣma yad icchasi
chettāsmi saṃśayaṃ tāta yan māṃ pṛcchasi bhārata //
apṛcchaṃ tam ahaṃ tāta tatrāntarhitam eva ca
gataṃ sukṛtināṃ lokaṃ jātakautūhalas tadā //
śrūyante pitaro devā devānām api devatāḥ
te vātha pitaro nye vā kān yajāmo vayaṃ punaḥ //
kathaṃ ca dattam asmābhiḥ śrāddhaṃ prīṇāti vai pitṝn
lokāntaragatāṃs tāta kiṃ nu śrāddhasya vai phalam //
Note: k: N (except Ś1) T2-4 G M4 ins.: :k
kān yajanti sma lokā vai sadevanaradānavāḥ |
sayakṣoragagandharvāḥ sakiṃnaramahoragāḥ |
atra me saṃśayas tīvraḥ kautūhalam atīva ca
tad brūhi mama dharmajña sarvajño hy asi me mataḥ //
Note: k: Ś1 K Ñ2.3 V B Dn Ds D1-4.6 T2-4 G ins.: :k
etac chrutvā vacas tasya bhīṣmasyovāca vai pitā |
saṃkṣepeṇaiva te vakṣye yan māṃ pṛcchasi bhārata
pitṝṇāṃ kāraṇaṃ śrāddhe phalaṃ dattasya cānagha
pitaraś ca yathodbhūtāḥ śṛṇu sarvaṃ samāhitaḥ //
ādidevasutās tāta pitaro divi devatāḥ
tān yajanti sma lokā vai sadevanaradānavāḥ
sayakṣarakṣogandharvāḥ sakiṃnaramahoragāḥ //
āpyāyitāś ca te śrāddhaiḥ punar āpyāyayanti vai
jagat sadevagandharvam iti brahmānuśāsanam //
tān yajasva mahābhāgāñ śrāddhī śrāddhair atandritaḥ
te te śreyo vidhāsyanti sarvakāmaphalapradāḥ //
tvayaivārādhyamānās te nāmagotrādikīrtanaiḥ
asmān āpyāyayiṣyanti svargasthān api bhārata //
mārkaṇḍeyas tu te śeṣam etat sarvaṃ vadiṣyati
eṣa vai pitṛbhaktaś ca viditātmā ca bhārgavaḥ //
upasthitaś ca śrāddhe dya mamaivānugrahāya vai
enaṃ pṛccha mahābhāgam ity uktvāntaradhīyata //
Note: Colophon
Note: h: HV (CE) chapter 12, transliterated by Horst Brinkhaus, proof-read by Horst Brinkhaus, version of January 13, 2001 :h
tato haṃ tasya vacanān mārkaṇḍeyaṃ samāhitaḥ
praśnaṃ tam evānvapṛcchaṃ yan me pṛṣṭaḥ purā pitā //
sa mām uvāca dharmātmā mārkaṇḍeyo mahātapāḥ
bhīṣma vakṣyāmi tattvena śṛṇuṣva prayato nagha //
mayāpi hi prasādād vai dīrghāyuṣṭvaṃ pituḥ prabho
pitṛbhaktyaiva labdhaṃ ca prāgloke paramaṃ yaśaḥ //
so haṃ yugasya paryante bahuvarṣasahasrike
adhiruhya giriṃ meruṃ tapo tapyaṃ suduścaram //
tataḥ kadācit paśyāmi divaṃ prajvālya tejasā
vimānaṃ mahad āyāntam uttareṇa gires tadā //
apaśyaṃ tatra caivāhaṃ śayānaṃ dīptatejasam
aṅguṣṭhamātraṃ puruṣam agnāv agnim ivāhitam //
so haṃ tasmai namas kṛtvā praṇamya śirasā prabhum
saṃniviṣṭaṃ vimānasthaṃ pādyārghyābhyāṃ apūjayam //
apṛcchaṃ caiva durdharṣaṃ vidyāma tvām kathaṃ prabho
daivataṃ hy asi devānām iti me vartate matiḥ //
sa mām uvāca dharmātmā smayamāna ivānagha
na te tapaḥ sucaritaṃ yena māṃ nāvabudhyase //
kṣaṇenaiva pramāṇaṃ sa bibhrad anyad anuttamam
rūpeṇa na mayā kaścid dṛṣṭapūrvaḥ pumān kvacit //
Note: k: Ñ2 V2 ins.: :k
sa mām uvāca tejasvī vācā madhurayā punaḥ |
kautūhalaparijñāne yat tad brahman dadāmi te |
viddhi māṃ brahmaṇaḥ putraṃ mānasaṃ pūrvajaṃ prabho
tapovīryāt samutpannaṃ nārāyaṇaguṇātmakam //
sanatkumāra iti yaḥ śruto vedeṣu vai purā
so smi bhārgava bhadraṃ te kaṃ kāmaṃ karavāṇi te //
ye tv anye brahmaṇaḥ putrā yavīyāṃsas tu te mama
bhrātaraḥ sapta durdharṣā yeṣāṃ vaṃśāḥ pratiṣṭhitāḥ //
Note: k: T2 G1.3.5 ins.: :k
marīcir atrir bhagavān pulastyaḥ pulahaḥ kratuḥ |
aṅgirāś ca vasiṣṭhaś ca saptaite brahmaṇaḥ sutāḥ |
kratur vasiṣṭhaḥ pulahaḥ pulastyo tris tathāṅgirāḥ
Note: k: Ś1 K1.3 Dn D3-5 ins.: :kmarīcis tu tathā vidvān devagandharvasevitāḥ |
trīṃl lokāṇ dhārayantīmān devadānavapūjitāḥ //
vayaṃ tu yatidharmāṇa āropyātmānam ātmani
prajādharmaṃ ca kāmaṃ ca vartayāmo mahāmune //
yathotpannas tathaivāhaṃ kumāra iti viddhi mām
tasmāt sanatkumāreti nāmaitan me pratiṣṭhitam //
madbhaktyā te tapaś cīrṇaṃ mama darśanakāṅkṣayā
eṣa dṛṣṭo si bhavatā kaṃ kāmaṃ karavāṇi te //
ity uktavantaṃ tam ahaṃ pratyavocaṃ sanātanam
anujñāto bhagavatā prīyatā tena bhārata //
tato ham artham etaṃ vai tam apṛcchaṃ sanātanam
pṛṣṭaḥ pitṝṇāṃ sargaṃ ca phalaṃ śrāddhasya cānagha
ciccheda saṃśayaṃ bhīṣma sa tu deveśvaro mama //
sa mām uvāca prītātmā kathānte bahuvārṣike
rame tvayāhaṃ viprarṣe śṛṇu sarvaṃ yathātatham //
devān asṛjata brahmā māṃ yakṣyantīti bhārgava
tam utsṛjya tadātmānam ayajaṃs te phalārthinaḥ //
te śaptā brahmaṇā mūḍhā naṣṭasaṃjñā vicetasaḥ
na sma kiṃcit prajānanti tato loko vyamuhyata //
te bhūyaḥ praṇatāḥ sarve prāyācanta pitāmaham
anugrahāya lokānāṃ tatas tān abravīt prabhuḥ //
prāyaścittaṃ caradhvaṃ vai vyabhicāro hi vaḥ kṛtaḥ
putrāṃś ca paripṛcchadhvaṃ tato jñānam avāpsyatha //
prāyaścittakriyārthaṃ te putrān papracchur ārtavat
tebhyas te prayatātmānaḥ śaśaṃsur tanayās tadā //
prāyaścittāni dharmajñā vāṅmanaḥkarmajāni vai
śaṃsanti kuśalā nityaṃ cakṣuṣmanto hi tattvataḥ //
prāyaścittārthatattvajñā labdhasaṃjñā divaukasaḥ
gamyatāṃ putrakāś ceti putrair uktāś ca te tadā //
abhiśaptās tu te devāḥ putravākyena tena vai
pitāmaham upāgacchan saṃśayacchedanāya vai //
tatas tān abravīd devo yūyaṃ vai brahmavādinaḥ
tasmād yad uktā yūyaṃ tais tat tathā na tad anyathā //
yūyaṃ śarīrakartāras teṣāṃ devā bhaviṣyatha
te tu jñānapradātāraḥ pitaro vo na saṃśayaḥ //
anyonyapitaro yūyaṃ te caiveti nibodhata
devāś ca pitaraś caiva tad budhyadhvaṃ divaukasaḥ //
tatas te punar āgamya putrān ūcur divaukasaḥ
brahmaṇā chinnasaṃdehāḥ prītimantaḥ parasparam //
yūyaṃ vai pitaro smākaṃ yair vayaṃ pratibodhitāḥ
dharmajñāḥ kaś ca vaḥ kāmaḥ ko varo vaḥ pradīyatām
yad uktaṃ caiva yuṣmābhis tat tathā na tad anyathā //
uktāś ca yasmād yuṣmābhiḥ putrakā iti vai vayam
tasmād bhavantaḥ pitaro bhaviṣyanti na saṃśayaḥ //
yo niṣṭvā ca pitṝn śrāddhaiḥ kriyāḥ kāścit kariṣyati
rākṣasā dānavā nāgāḥ phalaṃ prāpsyanti tasya tat //
śrāddhair āpyāyitāś caiva pitaraḥ somam avyayam
āpyāyyamānaṃ yuṣmābhir vardhayiṣyanti nityadā //
śrāddhair āpyāyitaḥ somo lokam āpyāyayiṣyati
samudraparvatavanaṃ jaṃgamājaṃgamair vṛtam //
śrāddhāni puṣṭikāmāś ca ye kariṣyanti mānavāḥ
tebhyaḥ puṣṭiṃ prajāś caiva dāsyanti pitaraḥ sadā //
śrāddhe ca ye pradāsyanti trīn piṇḍān nāmagotrataḥ
sarvatra vartamānāṃs tān pitaraḥ sapitāmahāḥ
bhāvayiṣyanti satataṃ śrāddhadānena pūjitāḥ //
Note: k: N (except Ś1 Ñ1) T1.3.4 G M4 ins.: :k
evam ājñā kṛtā pūrvaṃ brahmaṇā parameṣṭhinā |
iti tad vacanaṃ satyaṃ bhavatv adya divaukasaḥ
putrāś ca pitaraś caiva vayaṃ sarve parasparam //
ta ete pitaro devā devāś ca pitaras tathā
anyonyapitaro hy ete devāś ca pitaraś ca ha //
Note: Colophon
Note: h: HV (CE) chapter 13, transliterated by Horst Brinkhaus, proof-read by Horst Brinkhaus, version of January 16, 2001 :h
ity ukto 'haṃ bhagavatā devadevena bhāsvatā
sanatkumāreṇa punaḥ pṛṣṭavān devam avyayam //
saṃdeham amaraśreṣṭhaṃ bhagavantam ariṃdama
nibodha tan me gāṅgeya nikhilaṃ sarvam āditaḥ //
kiyanto vai pitṛgaṇāḥ kasmiṃl loke ca te gaṇāḥ
vartanti devapravarā devānāṃ somavardhanāḥ //
saptaite japatāṃ śreṣṭha svarge pitṛgaṇāḥ smṛtāḥ
catvāro mūrtimanto vai traya eṣāṃ amūrtayaḥ //
teṣāṃ lokaṃ visargaṃ ca kīrtayiṣyāmi tac chṛṇu
prabhāvaṃ ca mahattvaṃ ca vistareṇa tapodhana //
dharmamūrtidharās teṣāṃ trayo ye paramā gaṇāḥ
teṣāṃ nāmāni lokāṃś ca kīrtayiṣyāmi tac chṛṇu //
lokāḥ sanātanā nāma yatra tiṣṭhanti bhāsvarāḥ
amūrtayaḥ pitṛgaṇās te vai putrāḥ prajāpateḥ //
virājasya dvijaśreṣṭha vairājā iti viśrutāḥ
yajanti tān devagaṇā vidhidṛṣṭena karmanā //
Note: k: Ś1 K1.3 Ds1 D4.5 ins.: :k
manojavāḥ svadhābhakṣāḥ sarvakāmasamanvitāḥ |
ete yogaṃ parityajya mahātmano bhavanty uta |
ete vai yogavibhraṣṭā lokān prāpya sanātanān
punar yugasahasrānte jāyante brahmavādinaḥ //
te prāpya tāṃ smṛtiṃ bhūyaḥ sāṃkhyayogam anuttamam
yānti yogagatiṃ siddhāḥ punar āvṛttidurlabhām //
ete sma pitaras tāta yogināṃ yogavardhanāḥ
āpyāyayanti ye pūrvaṃ somaṃ yogabalena vai //
tasmāc chrāddhāni deyāni yogināṃ dvijasattama
eṣa vai prathamaḥ kalpaḥ somapānāṃ anuttamaḥ //
eteṣāṃ mānasī kanyā menā nāma mahāgireḥ
patnī himavataḥ śreṣṭhā yasyā maināka ucyate //
mainākasya sutaḥ śrīmān krauñco nāma mahāgiriḥ
parvatapravaraḥ śubhro nānāratnasamācitaḥ //
tisraḥ kanyās tu menāyāṃ janayām āsa śailarāṭ
aparṇām ekaparṇāṃ ca tṛtīyām ekapāṭalām //
tapaś carantyaḥ sumahad duścaraṃ devadānavaiḥ
lokān saṃtāpayām āsus tās tisraḥ sthāṇujaṃgamān //
Note: k: D1.2.6 (T2 after 16ab) T3.4 G M ins.: :k
nyagrodham ekaparṇā tu pāṭalaṃ caikapāṭalā |
āśrite dve aparṇā tu aniketā tapo 'carat |
daśavarṣasahasrāṇi duścaraṃ devadānavaiḥ |
āhāram ekaparṇena saikaparṇā samācarat
pāṭalāpuṣpam ekaṃ ca vidadhe caikapāṭalā //
Note: k: D6 T G1-3. (G4 after 243.1) G5 M ins.: :k
pūrṇe pūrṇasahasre tu āhāraṃ dve pracakratuḥ |
ekā tatra nirāhārā tāṃ mātā pratyaṣedhayat
u mā iti niṣedhantī mātṛsnehena duḥkhitā //
sā tathoktā tayā mātrā devī duṣcaracāriṇī
umety evābhavat khyātā triṣu lokeṣu sundarī //
Note: k: All Mss. (except Ś1 Ñ1) ins.: :k
tathaiva nāmnā teneha viśrutā yogadharmiṇī |
etat tu trikumārīkaṃ jagat sthāsyati bhārgava |
Note: k: D6 T1.2 G M cont.: :k
etāsāṃ tapasā dagdhaṃ yāvad bhūmir dhariṣyati |
tapaḥśarīrāḥ sarvās tās tisro yogabalānvitāḥ
Note: k: D6 S ins.: :ksarvās tā vai mahābhāgāḥ sarvāś ca sthirayauvanāḥ |
tā lokamātaraś caiva brahmacāriṇya eva ca |
sarvāś ca brahmavādinyaḥ sarvāś caivordhvaretasaḥ //
umā tāsāṃ variṣṭhā ca jyeṣṭhā ca varavarṇinī
mahāyogabalopetā mahādevam upasthitā //
Note: k: D6 S (except T1) ins.: :k
dattakaś cośanās tasyāḥ putras tu bhṛgunandanaḥ |
asitasyaikaparṇā tu devalasya mahātmanaḥ
patnī dattā mahābrahman yogācāryāya dhīmate //
Note: k: T G M1.3.4 ins. after 22ab, D6 M2 after 22: :k
puṣṭis tāsāṃ kumārīṇāṃ tṛtīyā caikapāṭalā |
putraṃ śataśalākasya jaigīṣavyam upasthitā |
tasyāpi śaṅkhalikhitau smṛtau putrāv ayonijau |
jaigīṣavyasya tu tathā viddhi tām ekapāṭalām
ete cāpi mahābhāge yogācāryāv upasthite //
lokāḥ somapadā nāma marīcer yatra vai sutāḥ
pitaro divi vartante devās tān bhāvayanty uta
agniṣvāttā iti khyātāḥ sarva evāmitaujasaḥ //
Note: k: T1-3 G M4 subst. for 24ef: :k
agniṣvāttāḥ śrutās tatra pitaro ye pariśrutāḥ |
eteṣāṃ mānasī kanyā acchodā nāma nimnagā
acchodaṃ nāma tad divyaṃ saro yasyāḥ samutthitam //
Note: k: K1 Ñ2.3 V1.2.3 B Dn2 Ds D3.5.6 S ins.: :k
tayā na dṛṣṭapūrvās te pitaras tu kadācana |
Note: k: K1 Ñ2.3 V1.2.3 B Dn2 Ds D3.5 G4 cont., Ś1 K2-4 Ñ1 Dn1 D1.2.4 ins. after 25: :k
apyamūrtān atha pitṝn sā dadarśa śucismitā |
Note: k: Ś1 K1.3.4 Ñ3 Dn Ds D4 G4 cont., D6 T1.2 G1-3.5 M cont. after *251: :k
saṃbhūtā mānasī teṣāṃ pitṝn svān nābhijānatī |
Note: k: Ś1 K1.3.4 Ñ3 Dn Ds D4.6 cont., K2 Ñ2 V1.2.3 B D1.2.5 cont. after 252: :k
vrīḍitā tena duḥkhena babhūva varavarṇinī |
sā dṛṣṭvā pitaraṃ vavre vasuṃ nāmāntarikṣagam
nāmnā vasum iti khyātam āyoḥ putraṃ yaśasvinam //
Note: k: K1.4 Ñ2.3 V1.2.3 B Dn1 Ds D4-6 S (except M1.2) ins. after 26, K3 Dn2 D3 cont. after 254: :k
adrikāpsarasāyuktaṃ vimāne 'dhiṣṭhitaṃ divi |
sā tena vyabhicāreṇa manasaḥ kāmacāriṇī
pitaraṃ prārthayitvānyaṃ yogabhraṣṭā papāta ha //
trīṇy apaśyad vimānāni patamānā divaś cyutā
trasareṇupramāṇāni sāpaśyat teṣu tān pitṝn //
Note: k: D6 T1.2 G M4 subst. for 28: :k
apaśyat patamānā sā vimānatrayam antikāt |
trasareṇupramāṇāṃs tāṃs tatrāpaśyat svakān pitṝn |
susūkṣmān aparivyaktān agnīn agniṣv ivāhitān
trāyadhvaṃ ity uvācārtā patantī tān avākśirāḥ //
tair uktā sā tu mā bhaiṣīr iti vyomni vyavasthitā
tataḥ prasādayām āsa svān pitṝn dīnayā girā //
ūcus te pitaraḥ kanyāṃ bhraṣṭaiśvaryāṃ vyatikramāt
bhraṣṭaiśvaryā svadoṣeṇa patasi tvaṃ śucismite //
yaiḥ kriyante hi karmāṇi śarīrair divi daivataiḥ
tair eva tatkarmaphalaṃ prāpnuvantīha devatāḥ //
Note: k: G(ed.) ins.: :k
manuṣyas tv anyadehena śubhāśubham iti sthitiḥ |
sadyaḥ phalanti karmāṇi devatve pretya mānuṣe
Note: k: K3 D1.4 ins.: :kyāni karmāṇi devatve tāni santy eva mānuṣe |
tasmāt tvaṃ tapasaḥ putri pretyeha prāpsyase phalam //
ity uktā pitṛbhiḥ sā tu pitṝn svān saṃprasādayat
dhyātvā prasādaṃ te cakrus tasyāḥ sarve 'nukampayā //
avaśyaṃbhāvinaṃ jñātvā te 'rtham ūcus tataś ca tām
tasya rājño vasoḥ kanyā tvam apatyaṃ bhaviṣyasi
Note: k: K3 Ñ2 V B Dn D3-5 ins.: :kutpannasya pṛthivyāṃ tu mānuṣeṣu mahātmanaḥ |
kanyaiva bhūtvā lokān svān punaḥ prāpsyasi durlabhān //
Note: k: T2.4 G M1-3 ins.: :k
matsyayonau samutpannā sutā rājño bhaviṣyasi |
parāśarasya dāyādaṃ tvaṃ vipraṃ janayiṣyasi
sa vedam ekaṃ brahmarṣiś caturdhā vibhajiṣyati //
mahābhiṣasya putrau ca śaṃtanoḥ kīrtivardhanau
vicitravīryaṃ dharmajñaṃ tathā citrāṅgadaṃ prabhum //
Note: k: T1.2 G M2.4 subst. for 37cd: :k
jyeṣṭhaṃ vicitravīryaṃ ca citrāṅgadam ataḥ param |
etān utpādya putrāṃs tvaṃ punar lokān avāpsyasi
Note: k: V2 B1 D3 ins.: :kprāpyaitat sumahābhāge kutsitena svakarmaṇā |
vyatikramāt pitṝṇāṃ ca janma prāpsyasi kutsitam //
tasyaiva rājñas tvaṃ kanyā adrikāyāṃ bhaviṣyasi
aṣṭāviṃśe bhavitrī tvaṃ dvāpare matsyayonijā //
evam uktā tu dāseyī jātā satyavatī tadā
matsyayonau anupamā rājñas tasya vasoḥ sutā //
Note: k: D6 T2-4 G1.4 M1-3 ins. after 40, T1 G2.3.5 M4 after 40ab: :k
adrikā matsyabhūtā sā gaṅgāyamunasaṃgame |
tasyāṃ jajñe tu sā kanyā rājño vīreṇa caiva hi |
baibhrājā nāma te lokā divi bhānti sudarśanāḥ
yatra barhiṣado nāma pitaro divi viṣrutāḥ //
tān dānavagaṇāḥ sarve yakṣagandharvarākṣasāḥ
nāgāḥ sarpāḥ suparṇāś ca bhāvayanty amitaujasaḥ //
ete putrā mahātmānaḥ pulastyasya prajāpateḥ
mahātmāno mahābhāgās tejoyuktās tapasvinaḥ //
Note: k: M1-3 subst. for 43cd, D6 T1.3.4 G M4 ins. after 43: :k
traya ete gaṇāḥ proktā dharmamūrtidharāḥ śubhāḥ |
eteṣāṃ mānasī kanyā pīvarī nāma viśrutā
yogā ca yogapatnī ca yogamātā tathaiva ca
bhavitrī dvāparaṃ prāpya yugaṃ dharmabhṛtāṃ varā //
parāśarakulodbhūtaḥ śuko nāma mahātapāḥ
bhaviṣyati yuge tasmin mahāyogī dvijarṣabhaḥ
vyāsād araṇyāṃ saṃbhūto vidhūmo 'gnir iva jvalan //
sa tasyāṃ pitṛkanyāyāṃ pīvaryāṃ janayiṣyati
kanyāṃ putrāṃś ca caturo yogācāryān mahābalān //
Note: k: Ś1 subst. for 46cd: :k
putrāṃś ca caturo yogā+ +cāryā vedeṣu kovidāḥ |
kṛṣṇaṃ gauraṃ prabhuṃ śaṃbhuṃ kanyāṃ kṛtvīṃ tathaiva ca
Note: k: T1.2 G M2.4 ins.: :kkanyāṃ kīrtimatīṃ ṣaṣṭhīṃ yogamātāṃ ca yoginīm |
Note: k: M1.3 ins.: :kkṛtvīṃ kanyāṃ kīrtimatīṃ yogāṃ yogasya mātaram |
brahmadattasya jananī mahiṣī tv aṇuhasya yā //
etān utpādya dharmātmā yogācāryāṇ mahāvratāṇ
Note: k: K1.4 Ñ2.3 V B Ds D2.4-6 T2 G1-3.5 M4 ins.: :kśrutvā sa janakād dharmān vyāsād amitabuddhimān |
mahāyogī tadā gantā punar āvartinīṃ gatim //
Note: k: T1 G3.4 M2.3 ins. after 48ab, G1.5 M4 after 48, D6 G2 cont. after 271*: :k
ādityakiraṇopetam apunar mārgam āsthitaḥ |
Note: k: Ś1 ins. after 48: :k
ādityaraśmibhiḥ pīto hy apunar vāram eṣyati |
Note: k: N (except Ś1 Ñ1) T G2-4 ins. after 48, G1.5 M4 after 269*: :k
yat tat padam anudvignam avyayaṃ brahma śāśvatam |
amūrtimantaḥ pitaro dharmamūrtidharā mune
kathā yatra samutpannā vṛṣṇyandhakakulānvayā //
traya ete mayā proktāś caturo 'nyān nibodha me
yān vakṣyāmi dvijaśreṣṭha mūrtimanto hi te smṛtāḥ
samutpannāḥ svadhāyāṃ tu kāvyād agneḥ kaveḥ sutāḥ //
sukālā nāma pitaro vasiṣṭhasya prajāpateḥ
niratā devalokeṣu jyotirbhāsiṣu bhārgava
sarvakāmasamṛddheṣu dvijās tān bhāvayanty uta //
teṣāṃ vai mānasī kanyā gaur nāma divi viśrutā
tavaiva vaṃśe yā dattā śukasya mahiṣī dvija //
ekaśṛṅgā iti khyātā sādhyānāṃ kīrtivardhanī
marīcigarbhān sā lokān samāvṛtya vyavasthitā //
ye tv athāṅgirasaḥ putrāḥ sādhyaiḥ saṃvardhitāḥ purā
Note: k: K1 D2.5.6 T G M1-4 ins. after 54ab, D4 after 50: :kupahūtāḥ smṛtās te vai pitaro bhāsvarā divi |
tān kṣatriyagaṇās tāta bhāvayanti phalārthinaḥ //
eteṣāṃ mānasī kanyā yaśodā nāma viśrutā
patnī yā viśvamahataḥ snuṣā vai vṛddhaśarmaṇaḥ
rājarṣer jananī tāta dilīpasya mahātmanaḥ //
tasya yajñe purā gītā gāthāḥ prītair maharṣibhiḥ
tadā devayuge tāta vājimedhe mahāmakhe //
agner janma tathā śrutvā śāṇḍilyasya mahātmanaḥ
dilīpaṃ yajamānaṃ ye paśyanti susamāhitāḥ
satyavantaṃ mahātmānaṃ te 'pi svargajito narāḥ //
Note: k: G3.5 M3 subst. for 57cd: :k
yajamāno dilīpas tu tadā dṛṣṭo manīṣibhiḥ |
Note: k: D6 T1.2 G1.2.4.5 M4 ins. after 57: :k
yasyāśvamedhāvabhṛthe saha tena divaṃ gatāḥ |
susvadhā nāma pitaraḥ kardamasya prajāpateḥ
samutpannasya pulahān mahātmāno dvijarṣabhāḥ //
lokeṣu divi vartante kāmageṣu vihaṃgamāḥ
tāṃs tu vaiśyagaṇās tāta bhāvayanti phalārthinaḥ //
teṣāṃ vai mānasī kanyā virajā nāma viśrutā
yayāter jananī brahman mahiṣī nahuṣasya ca //
Note: k: D6 ins.: :k
tapasā vā prayatnena dṛśyante māṃ svacakṣuṣā |
ity ete pitaro devā devāś ca pitaraḥ punaḥ |
traya ete gaṇāḥ proktāś caturthaṃ tu nibodha me
utpannā ye svadhāyāṃ tu somapā vai kaveḥ sutāḥ //
hiraṇyagarbhasya sutāḥ śūdrās tān bhāvayanty uta
mānasā nāma te lokā yatra vartanti te divi //
teṣāṃ vai mānasī kanyā narmadā saritāṃ varā
yā bhāvayati bhūtāni dakṣiṇāpathagāminī
purukutsasya yā patnī trasaddasyor janany api //
Note: k: Ñ2.3 V B Ds D5 T3.4 ins.: :k
jananī trasadasyoś ca purukutsaparigrahaḥ |
Note: k: D6 T1.2 G M subst. for 63ef: :k
purukutsasya sā bhāryā trasaddasyuś ca tatsutaḥ |
teṣām athābhyupagamān manus tāta yuge yuge
pravartayati śrāddhāni naṣṭe dharme prajāpatiḥ //
pitṝṇām ādisargeṇa sarveṣāṃ dvijasattama
tasmād enaṃ svadharmeṇa śrāddhadevaṃ vadanti vai //
sarveṣāṃ rājataṃ pātram atha vā rajatānvitam
dattaṃ svadhāṃ purodhāya śrāddhe prīṇāti vai pitṝn //
somasyāpyāyanaṃ kṛtvā vahner vaivasvatasya ca
udagāyanam apy agnāv agnyabhāve 'psu vā punaḥ //
Note: k: K1 Ds1 D4 ins.: :k
ajeṣu tāmravarṇeṣu goṣu vā kapilāsu ca |
śṛṅgāmbhaḥpariṣiktāsu snuṣāsu ramaṇīṣu ca |
aprajāsu savatsāsu dātavyāḥ śucipiṇḍakāḥ |
pitṝn prīṇāti yo bhaktyā pitaraḥ prīṇayanti tam
yacchanti pitaraḥ puṣṭiṃ prajāś ca vipulās tathā
svargam ārogyam evātha yad anyad api cepsitam //
Note: k: T1.2 G M4 subst. for 68cd, M1-3 for 68c-f: :k
pitaraḥ puṣṭikāmasya prajākāmasya vā punaḥ |
puṣṭiṃ prajāṃ ca svargaṃ ca prayacchanti pitāmahāḥ |
Note: k: D3 subst. for 68ef: :k
āyur dhanaṃ sukhaṃ caiva svargam ārogyam eva ca |
dadyuḥ pitāmahāḥ prītyā yad anyad vāpi cepsitam |
devakāryād api mune pitṛkāryaṃ viśiṣyate
devatānāṃ hi pitaraḥ pūrvam āpyāyanaṃ smṛtam //
śīghraprasādā hy akrodhā lokasyāpyāyanaṃ param
sthiraprasādāś ca sadā tān namasyasva bhārgava //
pitṛbhakto 'si viprarṣe sadbhaktaś ca na saṃśayaḥ
śreyas te 'dya vidhāsyāmi pratyakṣaṃ kuru tat svayam //
cakṣur divyaṃ savijñānaṃ pradiśāmi ca te 'nagha
gatim etām apramatto mārkaṇḍeya niśāmaya //
na hi yogagatir divyā na pitṝṇāṃ parā gatiḥ
tvadvidhenāpi siddhena dṛśyate māṃsacakṣuṣā //
Note: k: D6 T G M1.3.4 ins. appendix I, No. 3 after 13.73, M2 after 13.69 :k
evam uktvā sa deveśo mām upasthitam agrataḥ
cakṣur dattvā savijñānaṃ devānām api durlabham
jagāma gatim iṣṭāṃ vai dvitīyo 'gnir iva jvalan //
tan nibodha kuruśreṣṭha yan mayāsīn niśāmitam
prasādāt tasya devasya durjñeyaṃ bhuvi mānuṣaiḥ //
Note: k: D6 S G(ed.) ins. appendix I, No. 4 after 13,75 :k
Note: Colophon
Note: h: HV (CE) chapter 14, transliterated by Horst Brinkhaus, proof-read by Horst Brinkhaus, version of March 20, 2001 :h
āsan pūrvayuge tāta bharadvājātmajā dvijāḥ
yogadharmam anuprāpya bhraṣṭā duścaritena vai //
apabhraṃśam anuprāptā yogadharmāpacāriṇaḥ
mahatas tamasaḥ pāre mānasasya visaṃjñitāḥ //
tam evārtham anudhyānto naṣṭam apsv iva mohitāḥ
aprāpya yogaṃ te sarve saṃyuktāḥ kāladharmaṇā //
tatas te yogavibhraṣṭā deveṣu suciroṣitāḥ
jātāḥ kauśikadāyādāḥ kurukṣetre nararṣabha //
hiṃsayā vicariṣyanto dharmaṃ pitṛkṛtena vai
tatas te punar ājātiṃ bhraṣṭāḥ prāpsyanti kutsitāṃ //
teṣāṃ pitṛprasādena pūrvajātikṛtena ca
smṛtir utpatsyate prāpya tāṃ tāṃ jātiṃ jugupsitām //
te dharmacāriṇo nityaṃ bhaviṣyanti samāhitāḥ
brāhmaṇyaṃ pratilapsyanti tato bhūyaḥ svakarmaṇā //
tataś ca yogaṃ prāpsyanti pūrvajātikṛtaṃ punaḥ
bhūyaḥ siddhim anuprāptāḥ sthānaṃ prāpsyanti śāśvatam //
evaṃ dharme ca te buddhir bhaviṣyati punaḥ punaḥ
yogadharme ca nirataḥ prāpsyase siddhim uttamām //
Note: k: K1-4 Ñ2.3 V B Ds Dn D1-6 T G1.3.4 ins.: :k
yogo hi durlabho nityam alpaprajñaiḥ kadācana |
labdhvāpi nāśayanty enaṃ vyasanaiḥ kaṭutāmitāḥ ||
adharmeṣv eva vartante ardayante guruṃ sadā |
yācante na tv ayācyāni rakṣanti śaraṇāgatān |
nāvamanyanti kṛpaṇān mādyante na dhanoṣmaṇā |
yuktāhāravihārāś ca yuktaceṣṭāḥ svakarmasu |
dhyānādhyayanayuktāś ca na naṣṭānugaveṣiṇaḥ ||
nopabhogaratā nityaṃ na māṃsamadhubhakṣaṇāḥ |
na kāmaparamā nityaṃ na viprasevinas tathā ||
nānāryasaṃkathāsaktā nālasyopahatās tathā |
nātyantamānasaṃsaktā goṣṭhīṣu niratās tathā |
prāpnuvanti narā yogaṃ yogo vai durlabho bhuvi ||
praśāntāś ca jitakrodhā mānāhaṃkāravarjitāḥ |
kalyāṇabhājanaṃ ye tu te bhavanti yatavratāḥ ||
evaṃvidhās tu te tāta brāhmaṇā hy abhavaṃs tadā |
smaranti hy ātmano doṣaṃ pramādakṛtam eva tu |
dhyānādhyayanayuktāś ca śānte vartmani saṃsthitāḥ |
Note: k: Dn D5 cont.: :k
śāntiṃ te paramām āśu labhante nātra saṃśayaḥ |
tasmāt tvam api dharmajña yogadharmaparo bhava |
yogadharmād dhi dharmajña na dharmo 'sti viśeṣavān
variṣṭhaṃ sarvadharmāṇāṃ taṃ samācara bhārgava //
kālasya pariṇāmena laghvāhāro jitendriyaḥ
tatparaḥ prayataḥ śrāddhī yogadharmam avāpsyasi
ity uktvā bhagavān devas tatraivāntaradhīyata //
aṣṭādaśānāṃ varṣāṇām ekāham iti me matiḥ
upāsataś ca deveśaṃ varṣāṇy aṣṭādaśaiva me //
prasādāt tasya devasya na glānir abhavat tadā
na kṣutpipāse kālaṃ vā jānāmi sma tadānagha
paścāc chiṣyasakāśāt tu kālaḥ saṃvidito mama //
Note: h: HV (CE) chapter 15, transliterated by Horst Brinkhaus, proof-read by Horst Brinkhaus, version of March 20, 2001 :h
tasminn antarhite deve vacanāt tasya vai vibho
cakṣur divyaṃ savijñānaṃ prādur āsīn mamānagha //
tato 'haṃ tān apaśyaṃ vai brāhmaṇān kauśikātmajān
āpageya kurukṣetre yān uvāca vibhur mama //
brahmadatto 'bhavad rājā yas teṣāṃ saptamo dvijaḥ
pitṛvartīti vikhyāto nāmnā śīlena karmaṇā //
śukasya kanyā kṛtvī taṃ janayām āsa pārthivam
aṇuhāt pārthivaśreṣṭhāt kāmpilye nagarottame //
Note: k: N (except Ś1 Ñ1 D1) T34 G4 ins.: :k
yathovāca mahābhāgo mārkaṇḍeyo mahātapāḥ |
tasya vaṃśam ahaṃ rājan kīrtayiṣyāmi tac chṛṇu |
aṇuhaḥ kasya vai putraḥ kasmin kāle babhūva ha
rājā dharmabhṛtāṃ śreṣṭho yasya putro mahāyaśāḥ //
brahmadatto narapatiḥ kiṃvīryaś ca babhūva ha
kathaṃ ca saptamas teṣāṃ saṃbabhūva narādhipaḥ //
na hy alpavīryāya śuko bhagavāṃl lokapūjitaḥ
kanyāṃ pradadyād yogātmā kṛtvīṃ kīrtimatīṃ prabhuḥ //
etad icchāmy ahaṃ śrotuṃ vistareṇa mahādyute
brahmadattasya caritaṃ tad bhavān vaktum arhati //
yathā ca vartamānās te saṃsāreṣu dvijātayaḥ
mārkaṇḍeyena kathitās tad bhavān prabravītu me //
pratīpasya sa rājarṣe tulyakālo narādhipaḥ
pitāmahasya me rājan babhūveti mayā śrutam //
brahmadatto mahārājo yogī rājarṣisattamaḥ
rutajñaḥ sarvabhūtānāṃ sarvabhūtahite rataḥ //
sakhā hi gālavo yasya yogācāryo mahāyaśāḥ
śikṣāṃ utpādya tapasā kramo yena pravartitaḥ
kaṇḍarīkaś ca yogātmā tasyaiva sacivo 'bhavat //
jātyantareṣu sarveṣu sahāyāḥ sarva eva te
saptajātiṣu saptaiva babhūvur amitaujasaḥ
yathovāca mahātejā mārkaṇḍeyo mahātapāḥ //
tasya vaṃśam ahaṃ rājan kīrtayiṣyāmi tac chṛṇu
brahmadattasya paurāṇaṃ pauravasya mahātmanaḥ //
Note: k: K1.4 Ñ3 V B1.2 Ds D2-6 M4 ins. after 14, Ñ2 B3 after 15ab: :k
bṛhatkṣatrasya dāyādaḥ suhotro nāma dhārmikaḥ |
suhotrasyāpi dāyādo hastī nāma babhūva ha |
tenedaṃ nirmitaṃ pūrvaṃ puraṃ vai hastināpuram ||
hastinaś cāpi dāyādās trayaḥ paramadhārmikāḥ |
ajamīḍho dvimīḍhaś ca puramīḍhas tathaiva ca |
ajamīḍhasya dhūminyāṃ jajñe bṛhadiṣur nṛpa |
purumitrasya dāyādo rājā bṛhadiṣur nṛpa
bṛhaddhanur bṛhadiṣoḥ putras tasya mahāyaśāḥ
Note: k: T3 subst. for 15cd: :kāsīd bṛhadiṣoḥ putro bṛhaddharmeti viśrutaḥ |
bṛhaddharmeti vikhyāto rājā paramadhārmikaḥ //
satyajit tasya tanayo viśvajit tasya cātmajaḥ
putro viśvajitaś cāpi senajit pṛthivīpatiḥ //
putrāḥ senajitaś cāsaṃś catvāro lokasaṃmatāḥ
ruciraḥ śvetakāśyaś ca mahimnāras tathaiva ca
vatsaś cāvantako rājā yasyaite pari vatsakāḥ //
rucirasya tu dāyādaḥ pṛthuṣeṇo mahāyaśāḥ
pṛthuṣeṇasya pāras tu pārān nīpo 'tha jajñivān //
Note: k: D4 ins.: :k
pārasya tanayaḥ śrīmān nīpo nāma mahāyaśāḥ |
nīpasyaikaśataṃ tāta putrāṇām amitaujasām
mahārathānāṃ rājendra śūrāṇāṃ bāhuśālinām
nīpā iti samākhyātā rājānaḥ sarva eva te //
teṣāṃ vaṃśakaro rājā nīpānāṃ kīrtivardhanaḥ
kāmpilye samaro nāma sa ceṣṭasamaro 'bhavat //
samarasya puraḥ pāraḥ sadaśva iti te trayaḥ
putrāḥ paramadharmajñāḥ pāraputraḥ pṛthur babhau //
pṛthos tu sukṛto nāma sukṛteneha karmaṇā
jajñe sarvaguṇopeto vibhrājas tasya cātmajaḥ //
vibhrājasya tu putro 'bhūd aṇuho nāma pārthivaḥ
babhau śukasya jāmātā kṛtvībhartā mahāyaśāḥ //
putro 'ṇuhasya rājarṣir brahmadatto 'bhavat prabhuḥ
yogātmā tasya tanayo viṣvaksenaḥ paraṃtapaḥ //
vibhrājaḥ punar ājātaḥ sukṛteneha karmaṇā
brahmadattasya tanayo viṣvaksena iti śrutaḥ //
Note: k: K1.3.4 Ñ2.3 V B Dn Ds D1.3-6 T G ins. after 25, K2 after 24: :k
cakṣuṣī tasya nirbhinne pakṣiṇyā pūjanīyayā |
suciroṣitayā rājan brahmadattasya veśmani |
Note: k: K4 Ñ2.3 V B Dn Ds D4.6 G3 cont.: :k
athāsya putras tv aparo brahmadattasya jajñivān |
viṣvaksena iti khyāto mahābalaparākramaḥ |
viṣvaksenasya putro 'bhūd daṇḍaseno mahīpatiḥ
bhallāṭaś ca kumāro 'bhūd rādheyena hataḥ purā //
daṇḍasenātmajaḥ śūro mahātmā kulavardhanaḥ
bhallāṭaputro durbuddhir abhavaj janamejayaḥ //
sa teṣām abhavad rājā nīpānām antakṛn nṛpaḥ
ugrāyudhena yasyārthe sarve nīpā vināśitāḥ //
ugrāyudhaḥ sa cotsikto mayā vinihato yudhi
darpānvito darparuciḥ satataṃ cānaye rataḥ //
ugrāyudhaḥ kasya sutaḥ kasmin vaṃśe 'tha jajñivān
kimarthaṃ caiva bhavatā nihatas tad bravīhi me //
ajamīḍhasya dāyādo vidvān rājā yavīnaraḥ
dhṛtimāṃs tasya putras tu tasya satyadhṛtiḥ sutaḥ //
jajñe satyadhṛteḥ putro dṛḍhanemiḥ pratāpavān
dṛḍhanemisutaś cāpi sudharmā nāma pārthivaḥ //
āsīt sudharmaṇaḥ putraḥ sārvabhaumaḥ prajeśvaraḥ
sārvabhauma iti khyātaḥ pṛthivyāṃ ekarāṭ tadā //
tasyānvavāye mahati mahān pauravanandanaḥ
Note: k: K2-4 Ñ2.3 V B D T G M4 ins. after 34ab, K1 after 34cd: :kmahataś cāpi putras tu nāmnā rukmarathaḥ smṛtaḥ ||
putro rukmarathasyāpi supārśvo nāma pārthivaḥ |
supārśvatanayaś cāpi sumatir nāma dhārmikaḥ |
jajñe saṃnatimān rājā saṃnatir nāma vīryavān //
tasya vai saṃnateḥ putraḥ kārto nāma mahābalaḥ
Note: k: N (except Ś1 Ñ1 D1.2) S ins.: :kśiṣyo hiraṇyanābhasya kausalyasya mahātmanaḥ |
caturviṃśatidhā tena proktās tāḥ sāmasaṃhitāḥ |
smṛtās te prācyasāmānaḥ kārtā nāmnā tu sāmagāḥ ||
kārtir ugrāyudhaḥ so 'tha vīraḥ pauravanandanaḥ |
babhūva yena vikramya pṛṣatasya pitāmahaḥ
nīpo nāma mahārāja pāñcālādhipatir hataḥ //
Note: k: K1-3 Ñ2.3 V B Dn Ds D3-6 T G M4 ins.: :k
ugrāyudhasya dāyādaḥ kṣemyo nāma mahāyaśāḥ ||
kṣemyāt suvīro nṛpatiḥ suvīrāt tu nṛpaṃjayaḥ |
nṛpaṃjayād bahuratha ity ete pauravāḥ smṛtāḥ |
sa cāpy ugrāyudhas tāta durbuddhir vairakṛt sadā
pradīptacakro balavān nīpāntakaraṇo 'bhavat //
Note: k: D6 ins.: :k
ugrāyudhas tu durbuddhiḥ straiṇo duṣṭaḥ sadābhavat |
rājakanyāṃ jahārātha munipatnīpradharṣakaḥ |
sa darpapūrṇo hatvājau nīpān anyāṃś ca pārthivān
pitary uparate mahyaṃ śrāvayām āsa kilbiṣam //
mām amātyaiḥ parivṛtaṃ śayānaṃ dharaṇītale
ugrāyudhasya rājendra dūto 'bhyetya vayo 'bravīt //
adya tvaṃ jananīṃ bhīṣma gandhakālīṃ yaśasvinīṃ
strīratnaṃ mama bhāryārthe prayaccha kurupuṃgava //
evaṃ rājyaṃ ca te sphītaṃ balāni ca na saṃśayaḥ
Note: k: M1-3 ins. after 40a: :ktvayā rājye ca te sthitim |
caturaṅgayutāny adya |
pradāsyāmi yathākāmam ahaṃ vai ratnabhāg bhuvi //
rāṣṭrasyecchasi cet svasti prāṇānāṃ vā kulasya vā
śāsane mama tiṣṭhasva na hi te śāntir anyathā //
adhaḥ prastāraśayane śayānas tena coditaḥ
dūtāntaritam etad vai vākyam agniśikhopamam //
Note: k: D6 T1.2 G1.3.5 ins.: :k
śarīraṃ me 'dahat tasya vākyaṃ caitad durātmanaḥ |
tato 'haṃ tasya durbuddher vijñāya matam acyuta
ājñaptavān vai saṃgrāme senādhyakṣāṃś ca sarvaśaḥ //
mama prajvalitaṃ cakraṃ niśāmyaitat sudurjayam
śatravo vidravanty ājau darśanād eva bhārata //
vicitravīryaṃ bālaṃ ca madapāśrayam eva ca
dṛṣṭvā krodhaparītātmā yuddhāyaiva mano dadhe //
nigṛhītas tadāhaṃ tu sacivair mantrakovidaiḥ
ṛtvigbhir devakalpaiś ca suhṛdbhir narapuṃgava //
snigdhaiś ca śāstravidbhiś ca saṃyugasya nivartane
kāraṇaṃ śrāvitaś cāsmi yuktarūpaṃ tadānagha //
pravṛttacakraḥ pāpo 'sau tvaṃ cāśaucagataḥ prabho
na caiṣa prathamaḥ kalpo yuddhaṃ nāma kadācana //
te vayaṃ sāma pūrvaṃ vai dānaṃ bhedaṃ tathaiva ca
prayokṣyāmas tataḥ śuddho daivatāny abhivādya ca //
kṛtasvastyayano viprair hutvāgnīn vācya ca dvijān
brāhmaṇair abhyanujñātaḥ prayāsyasi jayāya vai //
astrāṇi na prayojyāni na praveśyaś ca saṃgaraḥ
āśauce vartamānena vṛddhānām iti śāsanam //
sāmadānādibhiḥ pūrvam api bhedena vā tataḥ
taṃ haniṣyasi vikramya śambaraṃ maghavān iva //
prājñānāṃ vacanaṃ kāle vṛddhānāṃ ca viśeṣataḥ
śrotavyam iti tac chrutvā nivṛtto 'smi narādhipa //
tatas taiḥ sa kramaḥ sarvaḥ prayuktaḥ śāstrakovidaiḥ
tasmin kāle kuruśreṣṭha karma cārabdham uttamam //
sa sāmādibhir apy ādāv upāyaiḥ śāstracintakaiḥ
anunīyamāno durbuddhir anunetuṃ na śakyate //
pravṛttaṃ tasya tac cakram adharmaniratasya vai
paradārābhilāṣeṇa sadyas tāta nivartitam //
Note: k: K3 ins.: :k
na hīdṛśam anāyuṣyaṃ loke kiṃcana vidyate |
yādṛśaṃ puruṣasyeha paradāropasevanam |
na tv ahaṃ tasya jāne vai nivṛttaṃ cakram uttamam
hataṃ svakarmaṇā tat tu pūrvaṃ sadbhiś ca ninditam //
kṛtaśaucaḥ śarāvāpī rathī niṣkramya vai purāt
kṛtasvastyayano vipraiḥ prāyodhayam ahaṃ ripum //
tataḥ saṃsargam āgamya balenāstrabalena ca
tryaham unmattavad yuddhaṃ devāsuram ivābhavat //
sa mayāstrapratāpena nirdagdho raṇamūrdhani
papātābhimukhaḥ śūras tyaktvā prāṇān ariṃdama //
etasminn antare tāta kāmpilyāt pṛṣato 'bhyayāt
hate nīpeśvare caiva hate cogrāyudhe nṛpe //
āhicchatraṃ svakaṃ rājyaṃ pitryaṃ prāpya mahādyutiḥ
drupadasya pitā rājan mamaivānumate tadā //
Note: k: Ñ2 Ds ins.: :k
tato 'bhūd drupado rājā droṇas tena nirākṛtaḥ |
tato 'rjunena tarasā nirjitya drupadaṃ raṇe
ahicchatraṃ sakāmpilyaṃ droṇāyāthāpavarjitam //
pratigṛhya tato droṇa ubhayaṃ jayatāṃ varaḥ
kāmpilyaṃ drupadāyaiva prāyacchad viditaṃ tava //
eṣa te drupadasyādau brahmadattasya caiva ha
vaṃśaḥ kārtsnyena vai prokto vīrasyogrāyudhasya ca //
Note: k: K2.4 Ñ2.3 V B Dn Ds D1-3.5.6 T G ins. appendix I, No. 5 after 15,65, K1.3 D4 after 15,68 :k
atas te vartayiṣye 'ham itihāsaṃ purātanam
gītaṃ sanatkumāreṇa mārkaṇḍeyāya pṛcchate //
śrāddhasya phalam uddiśya niyataṃ sukṛtasya ca
tannibodha mahārāja saptajātiṣu bhārata //
sagālavasya caritaṃ kaṇḍarīkasya caiva ha
brahmadattatṛtīyānāṃ yogināṃ brahmacāriṇām //
Note: Colophon
Note: h: HV (CE) chapter 16, transliterated by Horst Brinkhaus, proof-read by Horst Brinkhaus, version of March 1, 2001 :h
Note: k: N (except Ś1 Ñ1 D6; K2 marg.) T1.3 G2.4 ins. after ref.; T2 G1 after 1ab: :k
śrāddhe pratiṣṭhito lokaḥ śrāddhād yogaḥ pravartate |
hanta te vartayiṣyāmi śrāddhasya phalam uttamam
brahmadattena yat prāptaṃ saptajātiṣu bhārata //
tata eva hi dharmasya buddhir nirvartate śanaiḥ
pīḍayāpy atha dharmasya kṛte śrāddhe purānagha //
Note: k: N (except Ś1 Ñ1) S (except M1-3) ins.: :k
yat prāptaṃ brāhmaṇaiḥ pūrvaṃ tan nibodha narottama |
tato 'haṃ nātidharmiṣṭhān kurukṣetre pitṛvratān
sanatkumāranirdiṣṭān apaśyaṃ sapta vai dvijān //
Note: k: N (except Ś1 Ñ1) S (except M1-3) ins.: :k
divyena cakṣuṣā tena yān uvāca purā vibhuḥ |
vāgduṣṭaḥ krodhano hiṃsraḥ piśunaḥ kavir eva ca
khasṛmaḥ pitṛvartī ca nāmabhiḥ karmabhis tathā //
kauśikasya sutās tāta śiṣyā gārgyasya bhārata
pitary uparate sarve vratavantas tadābhavan //
niyogāt te guros tasya gāṃ dogdhrīṃ samakālayan
samānavatsāṃ kapilāṃ sarve nyāyāgatāṃ tadā //
teṣāṃ pathi kṣudhārtānāṃ bālyān mohāc ca bhārata
krūrā buddhiḥ samabhavat tāṃ gāṃ vai hiṃsituṃ tadā //
tān kaviḥ khasṛmaś caiva yācete neti vai tadā
na cāśakyanta te tābhyāṃ tadā vārayituṃ dvijāḥ //
pitṛvartī tu yas teṣāṃ nityaṃ śrāddhāhniko dvijaḥ
sa sarvān abravīd bhrātṝn kopād dharmasamanvitaḥ //
yady avaśyaṃ prakartavyā pitṝn uddiśya sādhv imāṃ
prakurvīmahi gāṃ samyak sarva eva samāhitāḥ //
evam eṣā ca gaur dharmaṃ prāpsyate nātra saṃśayaḥ
pitṝn abhyarcya dharmeṇa nādharmo 'smin bhaviṣyati //
tathety uktvā ca te sarve prokṣayitvā ca gāṃ tataḥ
pitṛbhyaḥ kalpayitvainām upayujyanta bhārata //
upayujya ca gāṃ sarve guros tasya nyavedayat
śārdūlena hatā dhenur vatso 'yaṃ gṛhyatām iti
ārjavāt sa tu vatsaṃ taṃ pratijagrāha vai dvijaḥ //
mithyopacarya te taṃ tu gurum anyāyato dvijāḥ
kālena samayujyanta sarva evāyuṣaḥ kṣaye //
te vai hiṃsratayā krūrā anāryatvād guros tadā
ugrā hiṃsāvihārāś ca saptājāyanta sodarāḥ
lubdhakasyātmajās tāta balavanto manasvinaḥ //
pitṝn abhyarcya dharmeṇa prokṣayitvā ca gāṃ tadā
smṛtiḥ pratyavamarśaś ca teṣāṃ jātyantare 'bhavat //
jātā vyādhā daśārṇeṣu sapta dharmavicakṣaṇāḥ
svadharmaniratāḥ sarve lobhānṛtavivarjitāḥ //
tāvan mātraṃ prakurvanti yāvatā prāṇadhāraṇam
śeṣaṃ dharmaparāḥ kālam anudhyānti svakarma tat //
nāmadheyāni cāpy eṣām imāny āsan narādhipa
nirvairo nirvṛtaḥ kṣānto nirmanyuḥ kṛtir eva ca
vaidhaso mātṛvartī ca vyādhāḥ paramadhārmikāḥ //
tair evam uṣitais tāta hiṃsādharmaparair vane
mātā ca pūjitā vṛddhā pitā ca paritoṣitaḥ //
yadā mātā pitā caiva saṃyuktau kāladharmaṇā
tadā dhanūṃṣi te tyaktvā vane prāṇān avāsṛjan //
śubhena karmaṇā tena jātā jātismarā mṛgāḥ
trāsodvegena saṃvignā ramye kālaṃjare girau //
unmukho nityavitrastaḥ stabdhakarṇo vilocanaḥ
paṇḍito ghasmaro nādī nāmabhis te 'bhavan mṛgāḥ //
tam evārtham anudhyānto jātismaraṇasaṃbhavam
āsan vanecarāḥ kṣāntā nirdvandvā niṣparigrahāḥ //
te sarve śubhakarmāṇaḥ sadharmāṇo vanecarāḥ
maruṃ sādhya jahuḥ prāṇāṃl laghvāhārās tapasvinaḥ //
teṣāṃ maruṃ sādhayatāṃ padasthānāni bhārata
tathaivādyāpi dṛśyante girau kālañjare 'cyuta //
karmaṇā tena te tāta śubhenāśubhavarjitāḥ
śubhāc chubhatarāṃ yoniṃ cakravākatvam āgatāḥ //
śubhe deśe sariddvīpe saptaivāsañ jalaukasaḥ
tyaktvā sahacarīdharmaṃ munayo dharmacāriṇaḥ //
Note: k: Ś1 K3.4 DnDs2 D1-4 ins. after 28, K1 after 29, D5 after 25ab: :k
niḥspṛho nirmamaḥ kṣānto nirdvaṃdvo niṣparigrahaḥ |
nirvṛttir nibhṛtaś caiva śakunā nāmataḥ smṛtāḥ ||
te brahmacāriṇaḥ sarve śakunā dharmacāriṇaḥ |
nirāhārā jahuḥ prāṇāṃs tapoyuktāḥ sarittaṭe ||
atha te sodarā jātā haṃsā mānasacāriṇaḥ |
jātismarāḥ susaṃbaddhāḥ saptaiva brahmacāriṇaḥ ||
viprayonau yato mohān mithyopacarito guruḥ |
tiryagyonau tato jātāḥ saṃsāre paribabhramuḥ ||
yadā tu pitṛkāryārthaḥ kṛtaḥ svārthe vyavasthitaiḥ |
tato jñānaṃ ca jātiṃ ca te hi prāpur guṇottaram |
sumanā muniḥ suvāk śuddhaḥ pañcamaś chidradarśanaḥ
sunetraś ca svatantraś ca śakunā nāmataḥ smṛtāḥ //
pañcamaḥ pañcikas tatra saptajātiṣv ajāyata
ṣaṣṭhas tu kaṇḍarīko 'bhūd brahmadattas tu saptamaḥ //
teṣāṃ tu tapasā tena saptajātikṛtena vai
yogasya cābhinirvṛttyā pratibhānāc ca śobhanāt //
pūrvajātiṣu yad brahma śrutaṃ gurukuleṣu vai
tathaiva tatsthitaṃ brahma saṃsāreṣv api vartatām //
te brahmacāriṇaḥ sarve vihaṅgāḥ kāmacāriṇaḥ
yogadharmam anudhyānto viharanti sma tatra ha //
Note: k: T3 ins.: :k
mānasaṃ tu saraḥ prāpya haṃsā bhūtvā jalaukasaḥ |
teṣāṃ tatra vihaṅgānāṃ caratāṃ sahacāriṇām
nīpānām īśvaro rājā vibhrājaḥ pauravānvayaḥ //
vibhrājamāno vapuṣā prabhāvena samanvitaḥ
śrīmān antaḥpuravṛto vanaṃ tat praviveśa ha //
svatantraś cakravākas tu spṛhayām āsa taṃ nṛpam
dṛṣṭvāyāntaṃ śriyopetaṃ bhaveyam aham īdṛśaḥ //
yady asti sukṛtaṃ kiṃcit tapo vā niyamo 'pi vā
khinno hy asmy upavāsena tapasā niṣphalena ca //
Note: k: T1.2.4 G1.3.5 ins.: :k
nṛpatvam aham icchāmi yadi me sukṛtaṃ bhavet |
Note: Colophon
Note: h: HV (CE) chapter 17, transliterated by Horst Brinkhaus, proof-read by Horst Brinkhaus, version of February 20, 2001 :h
tatas taṃ cakravākau dvāv ūcatuḥ sahacāriṇau
āvāṃ te sacivau syāvas tava priyahitaiṣiṇau //
tathety uktvā ca tasyāsīt tadā yogātmano matiḥ
evaṃ te samayaṃ cakruḥ suvāktaṃ pratyabhāṣata //
yasmāt kāmapradhānas tvaṃ yogadharmam apāsya vai
avaraṃ varaṃ prārthayase tasmād vākyaṃ nibodha me //
rājā tvaṃ bhavitā tāta kāmpilye nagarottame
bhaviṣyataḥ sakhāyau ca dvāv imau sacivau tava //
śaptvā tān abhibhāṣyātha catvāraś cakrur aṇḍajāḥ
tāṃs trīn abhīpsato rājyaṃ vyabhicārapradharṣitān //
śaptāḥ khagās trayas te tu yogabhraṣṭā vicetasaḥ
tān ayācanta caturas trayas te sahacāriṇaḥ //
teṣāṃ prasādaṃ cakrus te athaitān sumanābravīt
sarveṣām eva vacanāt prasādānugataṃ tadā //
antavān bhavitā śāpo yuṣmākaṃ nātra saṃśayaḥ
itaś cyutāś ca mānuṣyaṃ prāpya yogam avāpsyatha //
sarvasattvarutajñaś ca svatantro 'yaṃ bhaviṣyati
pitṛprasādo hy asmābhir asya prāptaḥ kṛtena vai //
gāṃ prokṣayitvā dharmeṇa pitṛbhya upakalpatām
asmākaṃ jñānasaṃyogaḥ sarveṣāṃ yogasādhanaḥ //
idaṃ ca vākyasaṃdarbha+ +ślokam ekam udāhṛtam
puruṣāntaritaṃ śrutvā tato yogam avāpsyatha //
Note: Colophon
Note: h: HV (CE) chapter 18, transliterated by Horst Brinkhaus, proof-read by Horst Brinkhaus, version of January 22, 2001 :h
te yogadharmaniratāḥ sapta mānasacāriṇaḥ
Note: k: K4 Bombay and Poona Eds. ins.: :kpadmagarbho 'ravindākṣaḥ kṣīragarbhaḥ sulocanaḥ |
ūrubinduḥ subinduś ca haimagarbhas tu saptamaḥ |
Note: k: Dn2 ins.: :khaṃsā jātā mahātmāno mānaseṣu saraḥsu ca ||
sumanāḥ suvāk suśuddhaś ca tattvadarṣī ca tattvavit |
sunetraś ca suhotraś ca dvijā nāmabhir eva ca ||
te brahmacāriṇaḥ sarve vihagāḥ kāmacāriṇaḥ |
vāyvambubhakṣāḥ satataṃ śarīrāṇy upaśoṣayan //
rājā vibhrājamānas tu vapuṣā tad vanaṃ tadā
cacārāntaḥpuravṛto nandanaṃ maghavān iva //
sa tān abudhyat khacarān yogadharmātmakān budhaḥ
nirvedāc ca tam evārtham anudhyātvā puraṃ yayau //
aṇuho nāma tasyāsīt putraḥ paramadhārmikaḥ
aṇudharmaratir nityam aṇuho 'dhyagamat padam //
prādāt kanyāṃ śukas tasmai kṛtvīṃ pūjitalakṣaṇām
sattvaśīlaguṇopetāṃ yogadharmaratāṃ sadā //
sā hy uddiṣṭā purā bhīṣma pitṛkanyā maṇīṣiṇā
sanatkumāreṇa tadā saṃnidhau mama śobhanā //
satyadharmabhṛtāṃ śreṣṭhā durvijñeyākṛtātmabhiḥ
yogā ca yogapatnī ca yogamātā tathaiva ca
yathā te kathitaṃ pūrvaṃ pitṛsargeṣu vai mayā //
vibhrājas tv aṇuhaṃ rājye sthāpayitvā nareśvaraḥ
āmantrya paurān prītātmā brāhmaṇān svasti vācya ca
prāyāt saras tapaś cartuṃ yatra te sahacāriṇaḥ //
sa vai tatra nirāhāro vāyubhakṣo mahātapāḥ
tyaktvā kāmāṃs tapas tepe sarasas tasya pārṣvataḥ //
tasya saṃkalpa āsīc ca teṣām anyatarasya vai
putratvaṃ prāpya yogena yujyeyam iti bhārata //
kṛtvābhisaṃdhiṃ tapasā mahatā sa samanvitaḥ
mahātapāḥ sa vibhrājo virarājāṃśumān iva //
tato vibhrājitaṃ tena vaibhrājam iti tad vanam
saras tac ca kuruśreṣṭha vaibhrājam iti śabditam //
yatra te śakunā rājaṃś catvāro yogadharmiṇaḥ
yogabhraṣṭās trayaś caiva dehanyāsakṛto 'bhavan //
kāmpilye nagare te tu brahmadattapurogamāḥ
jātāḥ sapta mahātmānaḥ sarve vigatakalmaṣāḥ
smṛtimanto 'tra catvāras trayas tu parimohitāḥ //
svatantras tv aṇuhāj jajñe brahmadatto mahāyaśāḥ
yathāsyāsīt pakṣibhāve saṃkalpaḥ pūrvacintitaḥ //
Note: k: K Ñ1.2 B2 Dn D1.2.4-6 G1.3.5 M4 ins. after 15, Ñ3 V B Ds D3 T2 G2 after 14cd: :k
jñānadhyānatapaḥpūtā vedavedāṅgapāragāḥ |
chidradarśī sunetraś ca tathā bābhravyavatsayoḥ
jātau śrotriyadāyādau vedavedāṅgapāragau //
sakhāyau brahmadattasya pūrvajātisahoṣitau
pāñcālaḥ pañcamas tatra kaṇḍarīkas tathāparaḥ //
pāñcālo bahvṛcas tv āsīd ācāryatvaṃ cakāra ha
dvivedaḥ kaṇḍarīkas tu chandogo 'dhvaryur eva ca //
sarvasattvarutajñaś ca rājāsīd aṇuhātmajaḥ
pāñcālakaṇḍarīkābhyāṃ tasya saṃvid abhūt tadā //
te grāmyadharmaniratāḥ kāmasya vaśavartinaḥ
pūrvajātikṛtenāsan dharmakāmārthakovidāḥ //
aṇuhas tu nṛpaśreṣṭho brahmadattam akalmaṣam
abhiṣicya tadā rājye parāṃ gatim avāptavān //
brahmadattasya bhāryā tu devalasyātmajābhavat
asitasya yogadurdharṣā saṃnatir nāma bhārata //
tām ekabhāvasaṃyuktāṃ lebhe kanyām anuttamām
saṃnatiṃ saṃnatimatīṃ devalād yogadharmiṇīm //
Note: k: K4 ins.: :k
upayeme vidhānena brahmadatto narādhipaḥ |
śeṣās tu cakravākā vai kāmpilye sahacāriṇaḥ
te jātāḥ śrotriyakule sudaridre sahodarāḥ //
dhṛtir mahāmanā vidvāṃs tattvadarśī ca nāmataḥ
vedādhyayanasaṃpannāś catvāro 'cchinnadarśinaḥ //
teṣāṃ saṃvidathotpannā pūrvajātikṛtā tadā
te yoganiratāḥ siddhāḥ prasthitāḥ sarva eva hi //
āmantrya pitaraṃ tāta pitā tān abravīt tadā
adharma eṣa yuṣmākaṃ yan māṃ tyaktvā gamiṣyatha //
dāridryam anapākṛtya putrārthāṃś caiva puṣkalān
Note: k: D1.2.4 ins.: :kkāmān abhīpsitān sarvān mama kṛtvādya putrakāḥ |
śuśrūṣām aprayuktvā ca kathaṃ vai gantum arhatha //
te tam ūcur dvijāḥ sarve pitaraṃ punar eva hi
kariṣyāmo vidhānaṃ te yena tvaṃ vartayiṣyasi //
imaṃ ślokaṃ mahārthaṃ tvaṃ rājānaṃ sahamantriṇam
śrāvayethāḥ samāgamya brahmadattam akalmaṣam //
prītātmā dāsyati sa te grāmān bhogāṃś ca puṣkalān
yathepsitāṃś ca sarvārthān gaccha tāta yathāsukham //
etāvad uktvā te sarve pūjayitvā ca taṃ guruṃ
yogadharmam anuprāpya paramāṃ nirvṛtiṃ yayuḥ //
Note: k: D6 T1.2 G ins.: :k
yoginaḥ paramātmānaḥ saṃyatenāntarātmanā |
Note: Colophon
Note: h: HV (CE) chapter 19, transliterated by Horst Brinkhaus, proof-read by Horst Brinkhaus, version of January 13, 2001 :h
brahmadattasya tanayaḥ sa vaibhrājas tv ajāyata
yogātmā tapasā yukto viṣvaksena iti śrutaḥ //
kadācid brahmadattas tu bhāryayā sahito vane
vijahāra prahṛṣṭātmā yathā śacyā śatakratuḥ //
tataḥ pipīlikarutaṃ sa śuśrāva narādhipaḥ
kāminīṃ kāminas tasya yācataḥ krośato bhṛśam //
śrutvā tu yācyamānāṃ tāṃ kruddhāṃ sūkṣmāṃ pipīlikām
brahmadatto mahāhāsam akasmād eva cāhasat //
tataḥ sā saṃnatir dīnā vrīḍitā dīnacetanā
nirāhārā bahutithaṃ babhūvāmitrakarśana //
prasādyamānā bhartrā sā tam uvāca śucismitā
tvayāvahasitā rājan nāhaṃ jīvitum utsahe //
sa tatkāraṇam ācakhyau na ca sā śraddadhāti tat
uvāca cainaṃ kupitā naiṣa bhāvo 'sti pārthiva //
ko vai pipīlikarutaṃ mānuṣo vettum arhati
ṛte devaprasādād vai pūrvajātikṛtena vā
tapaḥphalena vā rājan vidyayā vā narādhipa //
Note: k: N (except Ś1 Ñ1) T G2-5 M4 ins. after 8, G1 after 7ab: :k
yady eṣa vai prabhāvas te sarvasattvarutajñatā |
sāhaṃ yathaiva jānīyāṃ tathā pratyāyayasva mām
prāṇān vāpi parityakṣye rājan satyena te śape //
tat tasyā vacanaṃ śrutvā mahiṣyāḥ paruṣaṃ vibho
sa rājā paramāpanno devaśreṣṭham agāt tadā
śaraṇyaṃ sarvabhūteśaṃ bhaktyā nārāyaṇaṃ prabhum //
samāhito nirāhāraḥ ṣaḍrātreṇa mahāyaśāḥ
dadarśa darśane rājā devaṃ nārāyaṇaṃ harim //
uvāca cainaṃ bhagavān sarvabhūtānukampakaḥ
brahmadatta prabhāte tvaṃ kalyāṇaṃ samavāpsyasi
ity uktvā bhagavān devas tatraivāntaradhīyata //
Note: k: T3.4 ins.: :k
brahmadatto 'pi rājarṣiḥ sarvasattvarutajñatām |
upadiṣya ca bhāryāyai vanāt pratyāgataḥ puram |
caturṇāṃ tu pitā yo 'sau brāhmaṇānāṃ mahātmanām
ślokaṃ so 'dhītya putrebhyaḥ kṛtakṛtya ivābhavat //
sa rājānam athānvicchat sahamantriṇam acyutam
na dadarśāntaraṃ cāpi ślokaṃ śrāvayituṃ tadā //
atha rājā śiraḥsnāto labdhvā nārāyaṇād varam
praviveśa purīṃ prīto ratham āruhya kāñcanam //
tasya raśmīn agṛhṇāc ca kaṇḍarīko dvijarṣabhaḥ
camaravyajanaṃ cāpi bābhravyaḥ samavākṣipat //
idam antaram ity eva tataḥ sa brāhmaṇas tadā
śrāvayām āsa rājānaṃ ślokaṃ taṃ sacivau ca tau //
sapta vyādhā daśārṇeṣu mṛgāḥ kālaṃjare girau
Note: k: N (except Ñ1) S (except M1-3) ins. after 18a-c, D3 after 17: :khaṃsāḥ sarasi mānase |
te sma jātāḥ kurukṣetre brāhmaṇā vedapāragāḥ |
prasthitā dūram adhvānaṃ |
cakravākāḥ sarid dvīpe yūyaṃ tebhyo 'vasīdatha //
tac chrutvā moham agamad brahmadattas tadānagha
sacivau cāsya pāñcālaḥ kaṇḍarīkaś ca bhārata //
srastaraśmipratodau tau patitavyajanāv ubhau
dṛṣṭvā babhūvur asvasthāḥ paurāś cāgantavaś ca ha //
muhūrtād iva rājā sa saha tābhyāṃ rathe sthitaḥ
pratilabhya tataḥ saṃjñāṃ pratyāgacchad ariṃdama //
tatas te tat saraḥ smṛtvā yogaṃ tam upalabhya ca
brāḥmaṇaṃ vipulair arthair bhogaiś ca samayojayan //
abhiṣicya svarājye tu viṣvaksenam ariṃdamam
jagāma brahmadatto 'tha sadāro vanam eva ha //
athainaṃ saṃnatir dhīrā devalasya sutā tadā
uvāca paramaprītā yogād vanagataṃ nṛpam //
jānantyā tvaṃ mahārāja pipīlikarutajñatām
coditaḥ krodham uddiśya saktaḥ kāmeṣu vai mayā //
ito vayaṃ gamiṣyāmo gatim iṣṭām anuttamām
tava cāntarhito yogas tataḥ saṃsmārito mayā //
sa rājā paramaprītaḥ patnyāḥ śrutvā vacas tadā
prāpya yogaṃ vanād eva gatiṃ prāpa sudurlabhām //
kaṇḍarīko 'pi yogātmā sāṃkhyayogam anuttamam
prāpya yogagatiṃ siddho viśuddhaḥ svena karmaṇā //
kramaṃ praṇīya pāñcālaḥ śikṣām utpādya kevalām
yogācāryagatiṃ prāpa yaśaś cāgryaṃ mahātapāḥ //
evam etat purā vṛttaṃ mama pratyakṣam acyuta
tad dhārayasva gāṅgeya śreyasā yokṣyase tataḥ //
ye cānye dhārayiṣyanti teṣāṃ caritam uttamam
tiryagyoniṣu te jātu na bhaviṣyanti karhicit //
śrutvā cedam upākhyānaṃ mahārthaṃ mahatāṃ gatim
yogadharmo hṛdi sadā parivarteta bhārata //
sa tenaivānubandhena kadācil labhate śamam
Note: k: T3 ins.: :kya imaṃ śrāvayec chrāddhe pitṝn prīṇāti puṇyakṛt |
akṣayaṃ ca pitṝṇāṃ vai prītir bhavati śāśvatī ||
ye paṭhanti ca śṛṇvanti śrāvayanti ca ye dvijān |
tato manogatiṃ yāti siddhānāṃ bhuvi durlabhām //
evam etat purā gītaṃ mārkaṇḍeyena dhīmatā
śrāddhasya phalam uddiśya somasyāpyāyanāya vai //
somo hi bhagavān devo lokasyāpyāyanaṃ param
vṛṣṇivaṃśaprasaṅgena tasya vaṃśaṃ nibodha me //
Note: Colophon
Note: h: HV (CE) chapter 20, transliterated by Christophe Vielle. :h
pitā somasya vai rājañ jajñe 'trir bhagavān ṛṣiḥ
Note: k: K4 ins. after the ref.: :kathātaḥ śrūyatāṃ rājan vaṃśaḥ somasya pāvanaḥ |
yasminn ailādayo bhūpāḥ kīrtyante puṇyakīrtayaḥ ||
yatra jāto hariḥ sākṣāt kṛṣṇas trailokyapāvanaḥ |
sahasraśirasaḥ puṃso nābhihradasaroruhāt ||
jātasyāsīt suto dhātur atriḥ pitṛsamo guṇaiḥ |
Note: k: K1.3.4 Ñ2.3 V B D T G M4 ins. after 1ab: :kbrahmaṇo mānasāt pūrvaṃ prajāsargaṃ vidhitsataḥ |
tatrātriḥ sarvalokānāṃ tasthau svavinayair vṛtaḥ
karmaṇā manasā vācā śubhāny eva cacāra ha //
ahiṃsraḥ sarvabhūteṣu dharmātmā saṃśitavrataḥ
kāṣṭhakuḍyaśilābhūta ūrdhvabāhur mahādyutiḥ //
anuttamaṃ nāma tapo yena taptaṃ mahat purā
trīṇi varṣasahasrāṇi divyānīti hi naḥ śrutam //
tatordhvaretasas tasya sthitasyānimiṣasya hi
somatvaṃ tanur āpede mahābuddhasya bhārata //
ūrdhvam ācakrame tasya somatvaṃ bhāvitātmanaḥ
netrābhyāṃ vāri susrāva daśadhā dyotayad diśaḥ //
taṃ garbhaṃ daśadhā dṛṣṭvā daśa devyo dadhus tataḥ
sametya dhārayām āsur na ca tāḥ tam aśaknuvan //
sa tābhyaḥ sahasaivātha digbhyo garbhaḥ prabhānvitaḥ
papāta bhāsayaṃl lokāñ śītāṃśuḥ sarvabhāvanaḥ //
yadā na dhāraṇe śaktās tasya garbhasya tā diśaḥ
tatas tābhiḥ sahaivāśu nipatāta vasuṃdharām //
patitaṃ somam ālokya brahmā lokapitāmahaḥ
ratham āropayām āsa lokānāṃ hitakāmyayā //
sa hi vedamayas tāta dharmātmā satyasaṃgaraḥ
yukto vājisahasreṇa siteneti hi naḥ śrutam //
tasmin nipatite devāḥ putre 'treḥ paramātmani
tuṣṭuvur brahmaṇaḥ putrā mānasāḥ sapta ye śrutāḥ //
tathaivāṅgirasas tatra bhṛgor evātmajaiḥ saha
ṛgbhir yajurbhiḥ sāmabhir atharvāṅgirasair api //
tasya saṃstūyamānasya tejaḥ somasya bhāsvataḥ
āpyāyamānaṃ lokāṃs trīn bhāvayām āsa sarvataḥ //
sa tena rathamukhyena sāgarāntāṃ vasuṃdharām
triḥsaptakṛtvo 'tiyaśāś cakārābhipradakṣiṇām //
tasya yac cyāvitaṃ tejaḥ pṛthivīm anvapadyata
oṣadhyas tāḥ samudbhūtās tejasā prajvalanty uta //
tābhiṛ dhāryo hy ayaṃ lokaḥ prajāś caiva caturvidhāḥ
poṣṭā hi bhagavān somo jagato jagatīpate //
sa labdhatejā bhagavān saṃstavaiḥ svaiś ca karmabhiḥ
tapas tepe mahābhāga padmānāṃ daśatīr daśa //
hiraṇyavarṇā yā devyo dhārayanty ātmanā jagat
nidhis tāsām abhūd devaḥ prakhyātaḥ svena karmaṇā //
tatas tasmai dadau rājyaṃ brahmā brahmavidāṃ varaḥ
bījauṣadhīnāṃ viprāṇām apāṃ ca janamejaya //
so 'bhiṣikto mahātejā rājarājyena rājarāṭ
trīṃl lokān bhāvayām āsa svabhāsā bhāsvatāṃ varaḥ //
saptaviṃśatim indos tu dākṣāyaṇyo mahāvratāḥ
dadau prācetaso dakṣo nakṣatrāṇīti yā viduḥ //
sa tat prāpya mahad rājyaṃ somaḥ somavatāṃ varaḥ
samājahre rājasūyaṃ sahasraśatadakṣiṇam //
hotāsya bhagavān atrir adhvaryur bhagavān bhṛguḥ
hiraṇyagarbhaś codgātā brahmā brahmātvam eyivān //
sadasyas tatra bhagavān harir nārāyaṇaḥ prabhuḥ
sanatkumārapramukhair ādyair brahmarṣibhir vṛtaḥ //
dakṣiṇām adadāt somas trīṃl lokān iti naḥ śrutam
tebhyo brahmarṣimukhyebhyaḥ sadasyebhyaś ca bhārata //
sinīvālī kuhūś caiva dyutiḥ puṣṭiḥ prabhā vasuḥ
kīrtir dhṛtiś ca lakṣmīś ca nava devyaḥ siṣevire //
prāpyāvabhṛtham avyagraḥ sarvadevarṣipūjitaḥ
Note: k: V2 ins.: :ktaṃ mūrdhny upāghrāya tadā somo dhātā prajāpatiḥ |
virarājāti rājendro daśadhā bhāvayan diśaḥ //
tasya tat prāpya duṣprāpyam aiśvaryaṃ munisatkṛtam
vibabhrāma matis tāta vinayād anayāhṛtā //
bṛhaspateḥ sa vai bhāryāṃ tārāṃ nāma yaśasvinīm
jahāra tarasā sarvān avamatyāṅgiraḥsutān //
sa yācyamāno devaiś ca tathā devarṣibhiḥ saha
naiva vyasarjayat tārāṃ tasmā aṅgirase tadā //
Note: k: all Mss. (except Ś1 M1-3) ins.: :k
sa saṃrabdhas tadā tasmin devācāryo bṛhaspatiḥ |
uśanā tasya jagrāha pārṣṇim aṅgirasas tadā
sa hi śiṣyo mahātejāḥ pituḥ pūrvaṃ bṛhaspateḥ //
tena snehena bhagavān rudras tasya bṛhaspateḥ
pārṣṇigrāho 'bhavad devaḥ pragṛhyājagavaṃ dhanuḥ //
tena brahmaśiro nāma paramāstraṃ mahātmanā
uddiśya devān utsṛṣṭaṃ yenaiṣāṃ nāśitaṃ yaśaḥ //
tatra tad yuddham abhavat prakhyātaṃ tārakāmayam
devānāṃ dānavānāṃ ca lokakṣayakaraṃ mahat //
tatra śiṣṭās tu ye devās tuṣitāś caiva ye bhārata
brahmāṇaṃ śaraṇaṃ jagmur ādidevaṃ pitāmaham //
tato nivāryośanasaṃ taṃ vai rudraṃ ca śaṃkaram
dadāv aṅgirase tārāṃ svayam eva pitāmahaḥ //
tām antaḥprasavāṃ dṛṣṭvā vipraḥ prāha bṛhaspatiḥ
madīyāyāṃ na te yonau garbho dhāryaḥ kathaṃ cana //
Note: k: K4 ins.: :k
satyaṃ kathaya me subhru kasya garbhas tavodare |
tyaja tyajāśu durbuddhe matkṣetrād āhitaṃ paraiḥ ||
nāhaṃ tvāṃ bhasmasāt kuryāṃ striyaṃ sāṃtānike sati |
śrutvā bṛhaspater vākyaṃ roṣeṇa vyākulābhavat |
ayonāv asṛjattaṃ tu kumāraṃ dasyuhantamam
iṣīkāstambam āsādya jvalantam iva pāvakam //
jātamātraḥ sa bhagavān devānām ākṣipad vapuḥ
tataḥ saṃśayam āpannās tārām akathayan surāḥ //
satyaṃ brūhi sutaḥ kasya somasyātha bṛhaspateḥ
pṛcchyamānā yadā devair nāha sā sādhv asādhu vā
Note: k: K4 ins.: :kkumāro mātaraṃ prāha kupito 'līkalajjayā |
kiṃ na vocasy asadvṛtte ātmāvadyaṃ vadāśu me |
tadā tāṃ śaptum ārabdhaḥ kumāro dasyuhantamaḥ //
taṃ nivārya tato brahmā tārāṃ papraccha saṃśayam
yad atra tathyaṃ tad brūhi tāre kasya suto hy ayam //
sā prāñjalir uvācedaṃ brahmāṇaṃ varadaṃ prabhum
somasyeti mahātmānaṃ kumāraṃ dasyuhantamam //
taṃ mūrdhny upāghrāya tadā somo dhātā prajāpatiḥ
budha ity akaron nāma tasya putrasya dhīmataḥ
pratikūlaṃ ca gagane samabhyuttiṣṭhate budhaḥ //
utpādayām āsa tadā putraṃ vai rājaputrikā
tasyāpatyaṃ mahārājo babhūvailaḥ purūravāḥ
urvaśyāṃ jajñire yasya putrāḥ sapta mahātmanaḥ //
prasahya dharṣitas tatra vivaśo rājayakṣmaṇā
tato yakṣmābhibhūtas tu somaḥ prakṣīṇamaṇḍaḥ
jagāma śaraṇāyātha pitaraṃ so 'trim eva ca //
tasya tat pāpaśamanaṃ cakārātrir mahāyaśāḥ
sa rājayakṣmaṇā muktaḥ śriyā jajvāla sarvaśaḥ //
etat somasya te janma kīrtitaṃ kīrtivardhanam
vaṃśam asya mahārāja kīrtyamānam ataḥ śṛṇu //
dhanyam āyuṣyam ārogyaṃ puṇyaṃ saṃkalpasādhakam
somasya janma śrutvaiva sarvapāpaiḥ pramucyate //
Note: k: D6 T1.2 G ins.: :k
naro vigatakalmaṣaḥ śraddadhānaḥ prasannātmā |
Note: h: HV (CE) chapter 21, transliterated by Christophe Vielle :h
budhasya tu mahārāja vidvān putraḥ purūravāḥ
tejasvī dānaśīlaś ca yajvā vipuladakṣiṇaḥ //
brahmavādī parākrāntaḥ śatrubhir yudhi durjayaḥ
āhartā cāgnihotrasya yajñānāṃ ca divo mahīm //
satyavādī puṇyamatiḥ kāmyaḥ saṃvṛtamaithunaḥ
atīva triṣu lokeṣu yaśasāpratimaḥ sadā //
taṃ brahmavādinaṃ kṣāntaṃ dharmajñaṃ satyavādinam
urvaśī varayām āsa hitvā mānaṃ yaśasvinī //
tayā sahāvasad rājā daśa varṣāṇi pañca ca
pañca ṣaṭ sapta cāṣṭau ca daśa cāṣṭau ca bhārata //
vane caitrarathe ramye tathā mandākinītaṭe
alakāyāṃ viśālāyāṃ nandane ca vanottame //
uttarān sa kurūn prāpya manorarathaphaladrumān
gandhamādanapādeṣu meruśṛṅge tathottare //
eteṣu vanamukhyeṣu surair ācariteṣu ca
urvaśyā sahito rājā reme paramayā mudā //
deśe puṇyatame caiva maharṣibhir abhiṣṭute
rājyaṃ sa kārayām āsa prayāge pṛthivīpatiḥ //
Note: k: T1.2.4 G1-3.5 for a first time (all a second time with K Ñ2.3 V BD T3 G4 M4 after the second occurrence of 9, which is repeated by N, exceptŚ1 Ñ1, T G M4 after line 73 of App. I No. 6) ins.: :k
uttare jāhnavītīre pratiṣṭhānemahāyaśāḥ |
Note: k: K4 after 9a-b for a third time repeated after *320 cont.: :k
eka evapurā devaḥ praṇavaḥ sarvavāṅmayaḥ |
devo nārāyaṇo nānya eko 'gnivarṇa eva ca ||
purūravasa evāsīt trayī tretāmukhe nṛpa |
agninā prajayā rājā lokaṃ gāndharvam eyivān |
tasya putrā babhūvus te ṣaḍ indropamatejasāḥ
divi jātā mahātmāna āyur dhīmān amāvasuḥ
Note: k: K2 Ñ2.3 V B1.2 Dn2 Ds D3-6 T G1-3.5 M4 (G4 after 10f) ins.: :kviśvāyuś caiva dharmātmā śrutāyuś ca tathāparaḥ |
dṛḍhāyuś ca vanāyuś ca śatāyuś corvaśīsutāḥ //
Note: k: K2.4 Ñ2.3 V B D T G M4 G(ed.) (K1 after 22.1b, K3 after adhy. 21)ins. App. I No. 6 and 6B, between which ones G(ed) ins. No. 6A :k
āyoḥ putrāś tathā pañca sarve vīrā mahārathāḥ
Note: k: all Mss. (except Ś1 Ñ1 M1-3) ins.: :ksvarbhānutanayāyāṃ ca prabhāyāṃ jajñire nṛpa |
nahuṣaḥ prathamaṃ jajñe vṛddhaśarmā tataḥ param
dambho rajir anenāś ca triṣu lokeṣu viśrutāḥ //
Note: k: K1.3 (K2.4 Ñ2.3 V B D T G M4 after adhy. 21) ins. App. I No. 7. :k
rajiḥ putraśatānīha janayām āsa pañca vai
rājeyam iti vikhyātaṃ kṣatram indrabhayāvaham //
yatra devāsure yuddhe samupoḍhe sudāruṇe
devāś caivāsurāś caiva pitāmaham athābruvan //
āvayor bhagavan yuddhe vijetā ko bhaviṣyati
brūhi naḥ sarvabhūteśa śrotum icchāmahe vacaḥ //
yeṣām arthāya saṃgrāme rajir āttāyudhaḥ prabhuḥ
yotsyate te vijeṣyanti trīṃl lokān nātra saṃśayaḥ //
yato rajir dhṛtis tatra śrīś ca tatra yato dhṛtiḥ
yato dhṛtiś ca śrīś caiva dharmas tatra jayas tathā //
te devā dānavāḥ prītā devenoktā rajer jaye
abhyayur jayam icchanto vṛṇvānā bharatarṣabha //
sa hi svarbhānudauhitraḥ prabhāyāṃ samapadyata
rājā paramatejasvī somavaṃśavivardhanaḥ //
te hṛṣṭamanasaḥ sarve rajiṃ daiteyadānavāḥ
ūcur asmajjayāya tvaṃ gṛhāṇa varakārmukam //
Note: k: K1.3.4 Ñ2.3 V B D T1.2.4 G M4 ins.: :k
athovāca rajis tatra tayor vaidevadaityayoḥ |
svārthajñaḥ svārtham uddiśya yaśaḥ svaṃ ca prakāśayan |
yadi devagaṇān sarvāñ jitvā śakrapurogamān
indro bhavāmi dharmeṇa tato yotsyāmi saṃyuge //
Note: k: K1.3.4 Ñ2.3 V B D T1.2.4 G M4 (T3 after 19b) ins.: :k
devāḥ prathamatobhūyaḥ pratīyur hṛṣṭamānasāḥ |
evaṃ yatheṣṭaṃ nṛpate kāmaḥ saṃpadyatāṃ tava ||
śrutvā suragaṇānāṃ tu vākyaṃ rājā rajis tadā |
papracchāsuramukhyāṃs tu yathā devān apṛcchata ||
dānavā darpapūrṇās tu svārtham evānugamya ha |
pratyūcus taṃ nṛpavaraṃ sābhimānam idaṃ vacaḥ |
asmākam indraḥ prahrādo yasyārthe vijayāmahe //
asmiṃs tu samaye rājaṃs tiṣṭhethā devacoditaḥ
Note: k: Ñ2.3 V2.3 B Ds D2.4.6 T2-4 G1-3.5 M4 ins.: :ksa tatheti bruvann eva devair apy abhicoditaḥ |
bhaviṣyasīndro jitvaiva devair uktas sa pārthivaḥ
jaghāna dānavān sarvān ye vadhyā vajrapāṇinā //
sa vipranaṣṭāṃ devānāṃ paramaśrīḥ śriyaṃ vaśī
nihatya dānavān sarvān ājahāra rajiḥ prabhuḥ //
tato rajiṃ mahāvīryaṃ devaiḥ saha śatakratuḥ
rajiputro 'ham ity uktvā punar evābravīd vacaḥ //
indro 'si tāta bhūtānāṃ sarveṣāṃ nātra saṃśayaḥ
yasyāham indraḥ putras te khyātiṃ yāsyāmi karmabhiḥ //
sa tu śakravacaḥ śrutvā vañcitas tena māyayā
tathety evābravīd rājā prīyamāṇaḥ śatakratum //
tasmiṃs tu devaiḥ sadṛśo divaṃ prāpte mahīpatau
dāyādyam indrād ājahrur ācārāt tanayā rajeḥ //
tāni putraśatāny asya tad vai sthānaṃ śatakratoḥ
samākrāmanta bahudhā svargalokaṃ triviṣṭapam //
tato bahutithe kāle samatīte mahābalaḥ
hṛtarājyo 'bravīc chakro hṛtabhāgo bṛhaspatim //
badarīphalamātraṃ vai puroḍāśaṃ vidhatsva me
brahmarṣe yena tiṣṭheyaṃ tejasāpyāyitaḥ sadā //
brahman kṛśo 'haṃ vimanā hṛtarājyo hṛtāśanaḥ
hataujā durbalo mūḍho rajiputraiḥ kṛto vibho //
yady evaṃ coditaḥ śakra tvayā syāṃ pūrvam eva hi
nābhaviṣyat tvatpriyārtham akartavyaṃ mayānagha //
prayatiṣyāmi devendra tvatpriyārthaṃ na saṃśayaḥ
yathā bhāgaṃ ca rājyaṃ ca na cirāt pratilapsyase
tathā tāta kariṣyāmi mā te bhūd viklavaṃ manaḥ //
tataḥ karma cakārāsya tejaso vardhanaṃ tadā
teṣāṃ ca buddhisaṃmoham akarod ṛṣisattamaḥ //
Note: k: all Mss. (except Ś1 Ñ1 M1-3) G(ed.) ins.: :k
nāstivādārthaśāstraṃhi dharmavidveṣaṇaṃ param |
paramaṃ tarkaśāstrāṇām asatāṃ tan manonugam |
na hi dharmapradhānānāṃ rocate vai kathāntare ||
te tad bṛhaspatikṛtaṃ śāstraṃ śrutvālpacetasaḥ |
pūrvoktadharmaśāstrāṇām abhavan dveṣiṇaḥ sadā ||
pracakrur nyāyarahitaṃ tanmataṃ bahu menire |
tenādharmeṇa te pāpāḥ sarva eva kṣayaṃ gatāḥ ||
trailokyarājyaṃ śakras tu prāpya duṣprāpam eva ca |
bṛhaspatiprasādād dhi parāṃ nirvṛtim abhyagāt |
te yadā sma susaṃmūḍhā rāgonmattā vidharmiṇaḥ
brahmadviṣaś ca saṃvṛttā hatavīryaparākramāḥ //
tato lebhe suraiśvaryam indraḥ sthānaṃ tathottamam
hatvā rajisutān sarvān kāmakrodhaparāyaṇān //
ya idaṃ cyāvanaṃ sthānāt pratiṣṭhāṃ ca śatakratoḥ
śṛṇuyād dhārayed vāpi na sa daurātmyam āpnuyāt //
Note: k: K4 ins.: :k
rajeḥ pañca śatāny āsan putrāṇām amitaujasām |
devair abhyarthito daityān hatvendrāyādadād divam ||
indras tasmai punar hatvā gṛhītvā caraṇau rajeḥ |
ātmānam arpayām āsa prahrādādyariśaṅkitaḥ ||
pitary uparate putrā yācamānāya no daduḥ |
guruṇā hūyamāne 'gnau balabhit tanayān rajeḥ |
avadhīd dhvaṃsitān mārgān na kaś cid avaśeṣitaḥ |
Note: k: D6 T1.2 G ins.: :k
arogaś ca bhavet tāta yāvajjīvam akalmaṣaḥ |
Note: h: HV (CE) chapter 22, transliterated by Christophe Vielle :h
nahuṣasya tu dāyādāḥ ṣaḍ indropamatejasaḥ
yatir yayātiḥ saṃyātir āyātir yātir uddhavaḥ
Note: k: K4 Ñ1 D2.3 om. the ref.; K1(both times).2.3 Ñ2.3 V B Dn Ds D4.5 T1.3 G3.4 ins. after the ref.; K4 D1.3.6 T2.4 G1.2.5 M4 after 1b): :kutpannāḥ pitṛkanyāyāṃ virajāyāṃ mahaujasaḥ |
Note: k: After 1cd, K4 ins.: :kṣaḍ ime nahuṣasyāsann indrayāṇīva dehinaḥ |
Note: k: Dn M4 G(ed.) ins.: :ksuyātiḥ ṣaṣṭhas teṣāṃ vai yayātiḥpārthivo 'bhavat |
yatir jyeṣṭhas tu teṣāṃ vai yayātis tu tataḥ param //
kakutsthakanyāṃ gāṃ nāma na lebhe sa yatis tadā
Note: k: K4 ins.: :krājyaṃ naicchad yatiḥ pitrā dattaṃ tatpariṇāmavit |
yatra praviṣṭaḥ puruṣa ātmānaṃ nāvabudhyate |
tenāsau mokṣam āsthāya brahmabhūto 'bhavan muniḥ //
Note: k: K4 ins.: :k
pitari dhvaṃsite sthānād indrāṇyā dharṣaṇād dvijaiḥ |
prāpito 'jagaratvaṃ vai yayātir abhavan nṛpaḥ |
teṣāṃ yayātiḥ pañcānāṃ vijitya vasudhām imām
devayānīm uśanasaḥ sutāṃ bhāryām avāpa ha
śarmiṣṭhām āsurīṃ caiva tanayāṃ vṛṣaparvaṇaḥ //
yaduṃ ca turvasuṃ caiva devayānī vyajāyata
druhyuṃ cānuṃ ca pūruṃ ca śarmiṣṭhā vārṣaparvaṇī //
tasya śakro dadau prīto rathaṃ paramabhāsvaram
asaṅgaṃ kāñcanaṃ divyaṃ divyaiḥ paramavājibhiḥ
yuktaṃ manojavaiḥ śubhrair yena bhāryāṃ samudvahat //
sa tena rathamukhyena ṣaḍrātreṇājayan mahīm
yayātir yudhi durdharṣas tathā devān savāsavān //
sa rathaḥ pauravāṇāṃ tu sarveṣām abhavat tadā
yāvat tava sanāmā vai pauravo janamejaya //
kuroḥ pautrasya rājye tu rājñaḥ pārikṣitasya ha
Note: k: D3 ins.: :kbrahmahatyāyutaḥ pāpa indraḥ kruddho 'harad ratham |
jagāma sa ratho nāśaṃ śāpād gargasya dhīmataḥ //
gargasya hi sutaṃ bālaṃ sa rājā janamejayaḥ
vākkrūraṃ hiṃsayām āsa brahmahatyām avāpa saḥ //
sa lohagandhī rājarṣiḥ paridhāvann itas tataḥ
paurajānapadais tyakto na lebhe śarma karhicit //
tataḥ sa duḥkhasaṃtapto nālabhat saṃvidaṃ kva cit
indrotaṃ śaunakaṃ rājā śaraṇaṃ pratyapadyata //
yājayām āsa cendrotaḥ śaunako janamejaya
aśvamedhena rājānaṃ pāvanārthaṃ dvijottamāḥ
sa lohagandho vyanaśat tasyāvabhṛtham etya ha //
sa ca divyo ratho rājan vasoś cedipates tadā
dattaḥ śakreṇa tuṣṭena lebhe tasmād bṛhadrathaḥ //
Note: k: Ñ2.3 V B Dn Ds D6 T1.4 G2.4 ins.: :k
bṛhadrathāt krameṇaiva gato bārhadrathaṃ nṛpam |
tato hatvā jarāsaṃdhaṃ bhīmas taṃ ratham uttamam
pradadau vāsudevāya prītyā kauravanandana //
saptadvīpāṃ yayātis tu jitvā pṛthvīṃ sasāgarām
vyabhajat pañcadhā rājyaṃ putrāṇāṃ nāhuṣas tadā //
diśi dakṣiṇapūrvasyāṃ turvasuṃ matimān nṛpaḥ
pratīcyām uttarasyāṃ tu druhyuṃ cānuṃca nāhuṣaḥ //
diśi pūrvottarasyāṃ tu yaduṃ jyeṣṭhaṃ nyayojayat
madhye pūruṃ ca rājānam abhyaṣiñcat sa nāhuṣaḥ //
tair iyaṃ pṛthivī sarvā saptadvīpā sapattanā
yathāpradeśam adyāpi dharmeṇa paripālyate
prajās teṣāṃ purastāt tu vakṣyāmi nṛpasattama //
dhanur nyasya pṛṣatkāṃś ca pañcabhiḥ puruṣarṣabhaiḥ
Note: k: K4 ins.: :kjigāya pṛthivīṃ sarvāṃ saptadvīpavatīṃ nṛpaḥ |
paravān abhavad rājā bhāram āveśya bandhuṣu //
nikṣiptaśastraḥ pṛthivīṃ nirīkṣya pṛthivīpatiḥ
prītimān abhavad rājā yayātir aparājitaḥ //
evaṃ vibhajya pṛthivīṃ yayātir yadum abravīt
jarāṃ me pratigṛhṇīṣva putra kṛtyāntareṇa vai //
taruṇas tava rūpeṇa careyaṃ pṛthivīm imām
jarāṃ tvayi samādhāya taṃ yaduḥ pratyuvāca ha //
Note: k: K4 ins.: :k
notsahe jarayā sthātum antarā prāptayā tava |
aviditvā sukhaṃ grāmyaṃ vaitṛṣṇyaṃ naiti pūruṣaḥ |
anirdiṣṭā mayā bhikṣā brāhmaṇasya pratiśrutā
anapākṛtya tāṃ rājan na grahīṣyāmi te jarām //
jarāyā bahavo doṣāḥ pānabhojanakāritāḥ
tasmāj jarāṃ na te rājan grahītum aham utsahe //
santi te bahavaḥ putrā mattaḥ priyatarā nṛpa
pratigrahītuṃ dharmajña putram anyaṃ vṛṇīṣva vai //
sa evam ukto yadunā rājā kopasamanvitaḥ
uvāca vadatāṃ śreṣṭho yayātir garhayan sutam //
ka āśramas tavānyo 'sti ko vā dharmo vidhīyate
mām anādṛtya durbuddhe yad ahaṃ tava deśikaḥ //
evam uktvā yaduṃ tāta śaśāpainaṃ sa manyumān
arājyā te prajā mūḍha bhavitrīti narādhipa //
sa turvasuṃ sa druhyuṃ ca anuṃ ca bharatarṣabha
evam evābravīd rājā pratyākhyātaś ca tair api //
śaśāpa tān api kruddho yayātir aparājitaḥ
yathā te kathitaṃ pūrvaṃ mayā rājarṣisattama //
evaṃ śaptvā sutān sarvāṃś caturaḥ pūrupūrvajān
tad eva vacanaṃ rājā pūrum apy āha bhārata //
taruṇas tava rūpeṇa careyaṃ pṛthivīm imām
jarāṃ tvayi samādhāya tvaṃ pūro yadi manyase //
Note: k: K4 ins.: :k
ko nu loke manuṣyendra pitur ātmakṛtaḥ pumān |
pratikartuṃ kṣamo yasya prasādād vindate param ||
adhamo 'śraddhayā kuryād akartoccaritaṃ pituḥ |
so 'pi tadvayasā kāmāñ jujuṣo 'vyāhatendrayaḥ |
sa jarāṃ pratijagrāha pituḥ pūruḥ pratāpavān
yayātir api rūpeṇa pūroḥ paryacaran mahīm //
sa mārgamāṇaḥ kāmānām antaṃ bharatasattama
viśvācyā sahito reme vane caitrarathe prabhuḥ //
Note: k: K1 D1 ins. (K2.4 Ñ V B Dn Ds D2-5 T3.4 for 35a-b subst.): :k
yadāvitṛptaḥ kāmānāṃ bhogeṣu ca narādhipaḥ |
sa yadā dadṛśo kāmān vardhamānān mahīpatiḥ
tataḥ pūroḥ sakāśād vai svāṃ jarāṃ pratyapadyata //
Note: k: Ś1 K1 ins.: :k
varaṃ cāsmai dadau prīto vipulaṃ vaṃśam īśvaraḥ |
ācandrārkagrahā bhūmir bhaved iti matir mama |
apauravā na tu mahī bhaviṣyati kadā cana |
tatra gāthā mahārāja śṛṇu gītā yayātinā
yābhiḥ pratyāharet kāmān sarvaśo 'ṅgāni kūrmavat //
Note: k: V2 ins.: :k
sa sukhī dhṛtimān dhanyaḥ paratreha ca modate |
na jātu kāmaḥ kāmānām upabhogena śāmyati
haviṣā kṛṣṇavartmeva bhūya evābhivardhate //
Note: k: K4 ins.: :k
yadā na kurute bhāvaṃ sarvabhūteṣv amaṅgalaṃ |
samadṛṣṭes tadā puṃsaḥ sarvāḥ sukhamayā diśaḥ |
yat pṛthivyāṃ vrīhiyavaṃ hiraṇyaṃ paśavaḥ striyaḥ
nālam ekasya tat sarvam iti matvā śamaṃ vrajet //
Note: k: D6 T1.2 G M4 ins.: :k
utpannasya ruroḥ śṛṅgaṃ vardhamānasyavardhate |
yadā bhāvaṃ na kurute sarvabhūteṣu pāpakam
karmaṇā manasā vācā brahma saṃpadyate tadā //
yadānyebhyo na bibheti yadā cāsmān na bibhyati
yadā necchati na dveṣṭi brahma saṃpadyate tadā //
Note: k: K Ñ2.3 V B Dn Ds D1.3-6 T1.3.4 G2.3.5 (D2 after 39, T2 G1 after 39b): :k
yā dustyajā durmatibhir yā na jīryati jīryataḥ |
yo 'sauprāṇāntiko rogas tāṃ tṛṣṇāṃ tyajataḥ sukham ||
jīryanti jīryataḥ keśā dantā jīryanti jīryataḥ |
dhanāśā jīvitāśā ca jīryato 'pi na jīryati ||
yac ca kāmasukhaṃ loke yac ca divyaṃ mahat sukham |
tṛṣṇākṣayasukhasyaite nārhataḥ ṣoḍaśīṃ kalām |
Note: k: K4 after line 1 of *345 ins.: :k
tāṃ tṛṣṇāṃ duḥkhanivahāṃ śarmakāmo drutaṃ tyajet |
Note: k: B1 after line 3 of *345 ins.: :k
cakṣuḥśrotre ca jīryete tṛṣṇaikātaruṇāyate |
evam uktvā sa rājarṣiḥ sadāraḥ prāviśad vanam
kālena mahatā cāpi cacāra vipulaṃ tapaḥ //
bhṛgutuṅge tapaś cīrtvā tapaso 'nte mahāyaśāḥ
anaśnan deham utsṛjya sadāraḥ svargam āptavān //
tasya vaṃśe mahārāja pañca rājarṣisattamāḥ
yair vyāptā pṛthivī sarvā sūryasyeva gabhastibhiḥ //
yados tu śṛṇu rājarṣe vaṃśaṃ rājarṣisatkṛtam
yatra nārāyaṇo jajñe harir vṛṣṇikulodvahaḥ //
svasthaḥ prajāvān āyuṣmān kīrtimāṃś ca bhaven naraḥ
Note: k: D6 T1.2 G2-5 M ins.: :kdhanyasya mahato dharmyaṃ śrīmato dhīmatastathā |
yayāteś caritaṃ nityam idaṃ śṛṇvan narādhipa //
Note: k: D2 ins.: :k
mucyate pātakebhyaś ca aputrī na bhavet kadā |
Note: h: HV (CE) chapter 23, transliterated by Christophe Vielle :h
pūror vaṃśam ahaṃ brahmañ śrotum icchāmi tattvataḥ
druhyoścānor yadoś caiva turvasoś ca dvijottama
vistareṇānupūrvyā ca tad bhavān vaktum arhati //
vṛṣṇivaṃśaprasaṅgena svaṃ vaṃśaṃ pūrvam eva hi
śṛṇu pūror mahārāja vaṃśam agre mahātmanaḥ
vistareṇānupūrvyā ca yatra jāto 'si pārthiva //
hanta te vartayiṣyāmi pūror vaṃśam anuttamam
druhyoścānor yadoś caiva turvasoś ca paraṃtapa //
pūroḥ pravīraḥ putro 'bhūn manasyus tasya cātmajaḥ
rājā cābhayado nāma manasyor abhavat sutaḥ //
tathaivābhayadasyāsīt sudhanvā ca mahīpatiḥ
sudhanvanaḥ subāhus tu raudrāśvas tasya cātmajaḥ //
Note: k: Ñ2.3 V1.2 B2.3 D5 (Ds2 D6 after the second occurrence of 5c repeated with 5d and 6a after 7b) ins.: :k
saṃpātis tasya cātmajaḥ |
saṃpātes tu rahasyātī |
raudrāśvasya daśārṇeyuḥ kṛkaṇeyus tathaiva ca
Note: k: Ñ2.3 V1.2 B2.3 (Ds2 D6 after the repetition of 6a) ins.: :kdaśāpsarasi sūnavaḥ |
ṛceyuś prathamas teṣāṃ |
kakṣeyuḥ sthaṇḍileyuś ca saṃnateyus tathaiva ca //
ṛceyuś ca jaleyuś ca sthaleyuś ca mahābalaḥ
Note: k: D3 for 7a-b subst.: :kṣaṣṭhaś caiva ruceyuś ca jaleyuś caivasaptamaḥ |
dharmeyuś ca dṛḍheyuś ca vaneyur daśamaḥ smṛtaḥ |
vananityo vaneyuś ca putrikāś ca daśa striyaḥ //
Note: k: K4 ins.: :k
daśaite 'psarasaḥ putrā vaneyuś cāvamaḥ smṛtaḥ |
ghṛtācyām indriyāṇīva mukhyasya jagadātmanaḥ |
bhadrā śūdrā ca madrā ca maladā malahā tathā
khalā balā ca rājendra taladā surathāpi ca
tathā gopabalā ca strī ratnakūṭā ca tā daśa //
ṛṣir jāto 'trivaṃśe ca tāsāṃ bhartā prabhākaraḥ
rudrāyāṃ janayām āsa somaṃ putraṃ yaśasvinam //
svarbhānunā hate sūrye patamāne divo mahīm
tamobhibhūte loke ca prabhā yena pravartitā //
svasti te 'stv iti cokto vai patamāno divākaraḥ
vacanāt tasya viprarṣer na papāta divo mahīm //
atriśreṣṭhāni gotrāṇi yaś cakāra mahātapāḥ
yajñeṣv atridhanaṃ caiva surair yasya pravartitam //
sa tāsu janayām āsa putrikāsu sanāmakān
daśa putrān mahātmānas tapasy ugre ratān sadā //
te tu gotrakarā rājann ṛṣayo vedapāragāḥ
svastyātreyā iti khyātāḥ kiṃ tv atridhanavarjitāḥ //
kakṣeyutanayās tv āsaṃs traya eva mahārathāḥ
sabhānaraś cākṣuṣaś ca paramekṣus tathaiva ca //
sabhānarasya putras tu vidvān kālānalo nṛpaḥ
kālānalasya dharmajñaḥ sṛñjayo nāma vai sutaḥ //
sṛñjayasyābhavat putro vīro rājā puraṃjayaḥ
janamejayo mahārāja puraṃjayasuto 'bhavat //
Note: k: D3 for 17c-d subst.: :k
puraṃjayān mahārāja putro 'bhūjjanamejayaḥ |
janamejayasya rājarṣer mahāsālo 'bhavat sutaḥ
deveṣu sa parijñātaḥ pratiṣṭhitayaśās tathā //
mahāmanā nāma suto mahāsālasya dhārmikaḥ
jajñe vīraḥ suragaṇaiḥ pūjitaḥ sa mahāmanāḥ //
mahāmanās tu putrau dvau janayām āsa bhārata
uśīnaraṃ ca dharmajñaṃ titikṣuṃ ca mahābalam //
uśīnarasya patnyas tu pañca rājarṣivaṃśajāḥ
nṛgā kṛmī navā darvā pañcamī ca dṛṣadvatī //
uśīnarasya putrās tu pañca tāsu kulodvahāḥ
tapasā caiva mahatā jātā vṛddhasya cātmajāḥ //
nṛgāyās tu nṛgaḥ putraḥ kṛmyāḥ kṛmir ajāyata
navāyās tu navaḥ putro darvāyāḥ suvrato 'bhavat //
dṛṣadvatyās tu saṃjajñe śibir auśīnaro nṛpa
śibes tu śibayas tāta yaudheyās tu nṛgasya ha //
navasya navarāṣṭraṃ tu kṛmes tu kṛmilā purī
suvratasya tathāmbaṣṭhā titikṣos tu prajāḥ śṛṇu //
Note: k: N (except Ś1 Ñ1) T2-4 G1-3.5 M4 (T1 G4 after *354) ins.: :k
śibiputrān nibodha me ||
śibeś ca putrāś catvāro vīrā vai lokaviśrutāḥ |
vṛṣadarbhaḥ suvīraś ca kaikeyo madrakas tathā ||
teṣāṃ janapadāḥ sphītāḥ kaikeyā madrakās tathā |
vṛṣadarbhāḥ suvīrāś ca |
titikṣur abhavad rājā pūrvasyāṃ diśi bhārata
uṣadratho mahābāhus tasya phenaḥ suto 'bhavat //
phenāt tu sutapā jajñe jajñe sutapasaḥ sutaḥ
balir mānuṣayonau tu sa rājā kāñcaneṣudhiḥ //
mahāyogī sa tu balir babhūva nṛpatiḥ purā
putrān utpādayām āsa pañca vaṃśakarān bhuvi //
aṅgaḥ prathamato jajñe vaṅgaḥ suhmas tathaiva ca
puṇḍraḥ kaliṅgaś ca tathā bāleyaṃ kṣatram ucyate
bāleyā brāhmaṇāś caiva tasya vaṃśakarā bhuvi //
bales tu brahmaṇā datto varaḥ prītena bhārata
mahāyogitvam āyuś ca kalpasya parimāṇataḥ
Note: k: all Mss. (except Ś1 Ñ1 M1-3) ins.: :ksaṃgrāme cāpy ajeyatvaṃ dharme caiva pradhānatām |
trailokyadarśanaṃ cāpi prādhānyaṃ prasave tathā |
balasyāpratimatvaṃ vai dharmatattvārthadarśanam |
caturo niyatān varṇāṃs tvaṃ ca sthāpayiteti ha //
ity ukto vibhunā rājā baliḥ śāntiṃ parāṃ yayau
Note: k: Ñ2.3 V B2.3 Dn Ds ins.: :ktasya te tanayāḥ sarve kṣetrajāmunipuṃgavāḥ |
saṃbhūtā dīrghatapasaḥ sudeṣṇāyāṃ mahaujasaḥ |
balis tān abhiṣicye ha pañca putrān akalmaṣān ||
kṛtārthaḥ so 'pi yogātmā yogam āśritya sa prabhuḥ |
adhṛṣyaḥ sarvabhūtānāṃ kālāpekṣī caraty uta |
kālena mahatā rājan svaṃ ca sthānam upāgamat //
teṣāṃ janapadāḥ pañca vaṅgāṅgāḥ suhmakās tathā
kaliṅgāḥ puṇḍrakāś caiva prajās tv aṅgasya me śṛṇu //
aṅgaputro mahān āsīd rājendro dadhivāhanaḥ
dadhivāhanaputras tu rājā divirathas tathā //
putro divirathasyāsīc chakratulyaparākramaḥ
vidvān dharmaratho nāma tasya citrarathaḥ sutaḥ //
tena dharmarathenātha tadā viṣṇupade girau
yajatā saha śakreṇa somaḥ pīto mahātmanā //
atha citrarathasyāpi putro daśaratho 'bhavat
lomapāda iti khyāto yasya śāntā sutābhavat //
tasya dāśarathir vīraś caturaṅgo mahāyaśāḥ
ṛṣyaśṛṅgaprabhāvena jajñe kulavivardhanaḥ //
caturaṅgasya putras tu pṛthulākṣa iti smṛtaḥ
pṛthulākṣasuto rājā campo nāma mahāyaśāḥ
campasya tu purī campā yā pūrvaṃ mālinī babhau //
pūrṇabhadraprasādena haryaṅgo 'sya suto 'bhavat
tato vibhāṇḍakas tasya vāraṇaṃ śatruvāraṇam
avatārayām āsa mahīṃ mantrair vāhanam uttamam //
haryaṅgasya sutaḥ karṇo vikarṇas tasya cātmajaḥ
Note: k: all Mss. (except Ś1 Ñ1 M1-3) ins.: :krājā bhadrarathaḥ smṛtaḥ |
putro bhadrarathasyāsīd bṛhatkarmā prajeśvaraḥ |
bṛhaddarbhaḥ sutas tasya yasmāj jajñe bṛhanmanāḥ ||
bṛhanmanās tu rājendro janayām āsa vai sutam |
nāmnā jayadrathaṃ nāma yasmād dṛḍharatho nṛpaḥ ||
āsīd dṛḍharathasyāpi viśvajij janamejaya |
dāyādas tasya karṇas tu |
tasya putraśataṃ tv āsīd aṅgānāṃ kulavardhanam //
Note: k: M1-3 for 40c-d subst.: :k
vikarṇasya sutas tv āsīd aṅgadaḥkulavardhanaḥ |
Note: k: K1.3.4 Ñ2.3 V1 Dn Ds D1.3.4.6 (K2 after 40b; V2 after the repetition ofline 3 of *363) ins.: :k
bṛhaddarbhasuto yas tu rājā nāmnābṛhanmanāḥ |
tasya patnīdvayam cāsīc caidyasyaite sute śubhe |
yaśodevī ca sattvī ca tābhyāṃ vaṃśaḥ sa bhidhyate ||
jayadrathas tu rājendra yaśodevyāṃ vyajāyata |
brahmakṣatrottaraḥ sattvyāṃ vijayo nāma viśrutaḥ ||
vijayasya dhṛtiḥ putras tasya putro dhṛtavrataḥ |
dhṛtavratasya putras tu satyakarmā mahāvrataḥ ||
satyakarmasutaś cāpi sūtas tv adhirathas tu vai |
yaḥ karṇaṃ pratijagrāha tataḥ karṇas tu sūtajaḥ ||
etad vaḥ kathitaṃ sarvaṃ karṇaṃ prati mahābalam |
karṇasya vṛṣasenas tu vṛṣas tasyātmajaḥ smṛtaḥ |
Note: k: K2 after line 8 of *358 ins.: :k
dhārmikaḥ sarvavarṇas tu senastasyātmajo 'bhavat |
ete 'ṅgavaṃśajāḥ sarve rājānaḥ kīrtitā mayā
satyavratā mahātmānaḥ prajāvanto mahārathāḥ //
ṛceyos tu mahārāja raudrāśvatanayasya vai
śṛṇu vaṃśam anuproktaṃ yatra jāto 'si pārthiva //
Note: k: all Mss. (except Ś1 Ñ1 M1-3; N and T3.4 after an addl. colophon)ins.: :k
anādhṛṣyas tu rājarṣir ṛceyuś caikarāṭ smṛtaḥ |
ṛceyor jvalanā nāma bhāryā vai takṣakātmajā |
ṛceyutanayo rājan matināro mahīpatiḥ
matinārasutāś cāsaṃs trayaḥ paramadhārmikāḥ //
taṃsurogho 'pratirathaḥ subāhuś caiva dhārmikaḥ
Note: k: K Ñ2.3 V B D T2-4 G (T1 after 43d) ins.: :kgaurī kanyā cavikhyātā māndhātṛjananī śubhā |
sarve vedavratasnātā brahmaṇyāḥ satyavādinaḥ //
Note: k: K2-4 Ñ2.3 V B D (except D6) T G1.3-5 (K1 after *360) ins.: :k
sarvekṛtāstrā balinaḥ sarve yuddhaviśāradāḥ |
putro 'pratirathasyāsīt kaṇvaḥ samabhavan nṛpaḥ |
medhātithiḥ sutas tasya yasmāt kāṇvo 'bhavad dvijaḥ |
ilā nāma tu yasyāsīt kanyā vai janamejaya
brahmavādiny adhitrī ca taṃsus tām adhyagacchata //
taṃsoḥ suraugho rājarṣir dharmanetro mahāyaśāḥ
brahmavādī parākrāntas tasya bhāryopadānavī //
upadānavī sutāṃl lebhe caturas tān suraughataḥ
Note: k: Ś1 ins.: :ktataś cotpādayām āsa caturaḥ purunandanān |
duḥṣantam atha suḥṣantaṃ pravīram anaghaṃ tathā //
duḥṣantasya tu dāyādo bharato nāma vīryavān
sa sarvadamano nāma nāgāyutabalo mahān //
cakravartī suto jajñe duḥṣantasya mahāyaśāḥ
śakuntalāyāṃ bharato yasya nāmnā stha bhāratāḥ //
Note: k: K Ñ2.3 V B2 D (except D6) ins.: :k
duḥṣantaṃ prati rājāṇaṃ vāg uvācāśarīriṇī |
mātā bhastrā pituḥ putro yena jātaḥ sa eva saḥ |
bharasva putraṃ duḥṣanta māvamaṃsthāḥ śakuntalām ||
retodhāḥ putra unnayati naradeva yamakṣayāt |
tvaṃ cāsya dhātā garbhasya satyam āha śakuntalā |
bharatasya vinaṣṭeṣu tanayeṣu mahīpateḥ
mātṝṇāṃ tāta kopeṇa yathā te kathitaṃ tadā //
bṛhaspater aṅgirasaḥ putro rājan mahāmuniḥ
ayājayad bharadvājo mahadbhiḥ kratubhir vibhuḥ //
Note: k: N (except Ś1 Ñ1 D6) T3.4 ins.: :k
atraivodāharantīmaṃ bharadvājasya dhīmataḥ |
dharmasaṃkramaṇaṃ cāpi marudbhir bharatāya vai |
pūrvaṃ tu vitathe tasya kṛte vai putrajanmani
tato 'tha vitatho nāma bharadvājāt suto 'bhavat //
Note: k: N (except Ś1 Ñ1 D6) T3.4 ins.: :k
tato 'tha vitathe jāte bharatas tu divaṃ yayau |
vitathaṃ cābhiṣicyātha bharadvājo vanaṃ yayau |
Note: k: K2 Ñ2 V3 D3 after *365 cont.: :k
vitathasya tu dāyādo bhuvamanyur babhūva ha |
mahābhūtopamāś cāmī catvāro bhuvamanyujāḥ |
bṛhatkṣatro mahāvīryo naro gārgyaś ca vīryavān ||
narasya sāṃkṛtiḥ putras tasya putrau mahābalau |
varavī rantidevaś ca te ca kātyāyanāḥ smṛtāḥ ||
dāyādā api gārgyasya śibir vidvān babhūva ha |
smṛtāḥ śaibyās tato gārgyāḥ kṣatrotpannā dvijātayaḥ ||
mahāvīryasutaś cāsīd dhīmān nāmnā purukṣayaḥ |
tasya bhāryā viśālā tu suṣuve tat sutatrayam |
traiyākṣaṇaṃ puṣkariṇaṃ tṛtīyaṃ suṣuve kapim ||
kapīnāṃ pravarā hy ete trayaḥ proktā maharṣayaḥ |
gārgyāḥ saṃkṛtayaḥ kāpyāḥ kṣatrotpannā dvijātayaḥ |
saṃśritāṅgirasaḥ pakṣaṃ sarve jātā mahābalāḥ ||
bṛhatkṣatrasya dāyādaḥ suhotro nāma dhārmikaḥ |
suhotrasya tu dāyādo hastī nāma babhūva ha |
tenedaṃ nirmitaṃ pūrvaṃ puraṃ gajasamāhvayam ||
hastinaś cāpi dāyādās trayaḥ paramakīrtayaḥ |
ajamīḍhasya putrās tu jātāḥ kurukulodvaha ||
tapaso 'nte sumahato rājño vṛddhasya dhārmikāḥ |
bharadvājaprasādena jātā vaṃśavivardhanāḥ ||
ajamīḍhasya keśinyāṃ kaṇvaḥ samabhavat sutaḥ |
medhātithiḥ sutas tasya tasmāt kāṇvāyanāḥ smṛtāḥ |
sa cāpi vitathaḥ putrāñ janayām āsa pañca vai
suhotraṃ sutahotāraṃ gayaṃ gargaṃ tathaiva ca //
Note: k: T3 ins.: :k
suhotrasya ca putras tu cyavano nāma dhārmikaḥ |
kapilaṃ ca mahātmānaṃ sutahotuḥ sutadvayam
kāśikaś ca mahāsattvas tathā gṛtsamatiḥ prabhuḥ //
tathā gṛtsamateḥ putrā brāhmaṇāḥ kṣatriyā viśaḥ
kāśyasya kāśayo rājan putro dīrghatapās tathā //
babhūva dīrghatapaso vidvān dhanvaṃtariḥ sutaḥ
dhanvaṃtares tu tanayaḥ ketumān iti viśrutaḥ //
athā ketumataḥ putro vīro bhīmarathaḥ smṛtaḥ
Note: k: K4 V2 Dn D2 T2 ins.: :ksuto bhīmarathasyāsīd divodāsaḥprajeśvaraḥ |
divodāsa iti khyātaḥ sarvarakṣaḥpraṇāśanaḥ //
etasminn eva kāle tu purīṃ vārāṇasīṃ nṛpaḥ
śūnyāṃ niveśayām āsa kṣemako nāma rākṣasaḥ //
śaptā hi sā matimatā nikumbhena mahātmanā
śūnyā varṣasahasraṃ vai bhavitrīti nararṣabha //
tasyāṃ tu śaptamātrāyāṃ divodāsaḥ prajeśvaraḥ
viṣayānte purīṃ ramyāṃ gomatyāṃ saṃnyaveśayat //
Note: k: Dn G(ed.) ins.: :k
bhadraśreṇyasya pūrvaṃ tu purī vārāṇasībhavat |
yaduvaṃśaprasūtasya tapasy abhiratasya ca |
bhadraśreṇyasya putrāṇāṃ śatam uttamadhanvinām
hatvā niveśayām āsa divodāsaḥ prajeśvaraḥ //
divodāsasya putras tu vīro rājā pratardanaḥ
pratardanasya putrau dvau vatso bhārgava eva ca //
alarko rājaputraś ca rājā saṃnatimān bhuvi
hehayasya tu dāyādyaṃ hṛtavān vai mahīpatiḥ //
ājahre pitṛdāyādyaṃ divodāsahṛtaṃ balāt
Note: k: K2 ins.: :ktasyānvaye suhotro 'bhūd rājā paramadhārmikaḥ |
bhadraśreṇyasya putreṇa durdamena mahātmanā
divodāsena bālo hi ghṛṇayā sa visarjitaḥ //
aṣṭāratho nāma nṛpaḥ suto bhīmarathasya vai
tena putreṣu bāleṣu prahṛtaṃ tasya bhārata
vairasyāntaṃ mahārāja kṣatriyeṇa vidhitsatā //
Note: k: K4 ins.: :k
so 'py evaṃ putrasaṃhāraṃ kurvan pañcatvamāgataḥ |
alarkaḥ kāśirājas tu brahmaṇyaḥ satyasaṃgaraḥ
Note: k: K1 ins.: :kalarkaṃ prati rājānaṃ śloko gītaḥ purātanam |
ṣaṣṭiṃ varṣasahasrāṇi ṣaṣṭiṃ varṣaśatāni ca //
Note: k: K1.4 Ñ2.3 V B Dn Ds D2.4.5 T1.4 G1.3.4 ins.: :k
tasyāsītsumahadrājyaṃ rūpayauvanaśālinaḥ |
yuvā rūpeṇa saṃpanna āsīt kāśikulodvahaḥ
lopāmudrāprasādena paramāyur avāpa saḥ //
vayaso 'nte mahābāhur hatvā kṣemakarākṣasam
ramyāṃ niveśayām āsa purīṃ vārāṇasīṃ nṛpaḥ //
alarkasya tu dāyādaḥ kṣemo nāma mahāyaśāḥ
Note: k: Ñ1.3 V1.2 B2.3 Dn Ds G(ed.) ins.: :kkṣemako nāma pārthivaḥ |
kṣemakasya tu putro vai |
kṣemasya ketumān putro varṣaketus tato 'bhavat //
varṣaketos tu dāyādo vibhur nāma prajeśvaraḥ
ānartas tu vibhoḥ putraḥ sukumāras tato 'bhavat //
sukumārasya putras tu satyaketur mahārathaḥ
suto 'bhavan mahātejā rājā paramadhārmikaḥ
Note: k: K4 ins.: :kkarantur nāma nṛpatis tasya putrau babhūvatuḥ |
brahmaṇyau satyasaṃpannau bhārgo vatsas tathaiva ca |
vatsasya vatsabhūmis tu bhārgabhūmis tu bhārgavāt //
ete tv aṅgirasaḥ putrā jātā vaṃśe 'tha bhārgave
brāhmaṇāḥ kṣatriyā vaiśyāḥ śūdrāś ca bharatarṣabha //
Note: k: D6 T1.2.4 G M4 ins.: :k
karmabhis te tapomūlaiḥ sthitāḥkurukulodvaha |
suhotrasya bṛhat putro bṛhatas tanayās trayaḥ
ajamīḍho dvimīḍhaś ca purumīḍhaś ca vīryavān //
ajamīḍhasya patnyas tu tisro vai yaśasānvitāḥ
nīlī ca keśinī caiva dhūminī ca varāṅganā //
ajamīḍhasya keśinyāṃ jajñe jahnuḥ pratāpavān
ya ājahre mahāsattraṃ sarvamedham mahāmakham //
patilobhena yaṃ gaṅgā vitate 'bhisasāra ha
necchataḥ plāvayām āsa tasya gaṅgā ca tat sadaḥ //
tayā ca plāvitaṃ dṛṣṭvā yajñavāṭaṃ samantataḥ
sauhotrir abravīd gaṅgāṃ kruddho bharatasattama //
eṣa te triṣu lokeṣu saṃkṣipyāpaḥ pibāmy aham
asya gaṅge 'valepasya sadyaḥ phalam avāpnuhi //
tataḥ pītāṃ mahātmāno gaṅgāṃ dṛṣṭvā maharṣayaḥ
upaninyur mahābhāgāṃ duhitṛtvāya jāhnavīm //
yuvanāśvasya putrīṃ tu kāverīṃ jahnur āvahat
gaṅgāśāpena dehārdhaṃ yasyāḥ paścān nadīkṛtam //
jahnos tu dayitaḥ putro ajako nāma vīryavān
ajakasya tu dāyādo balākāśvo mahīpatiḥ //
babhūva mṛgayāśīlaḥ kuśikas tasya cātmajaḥ
pahlavaiḥ saha saṃvṛddho rājā vanacaraiḥ sa ha //
kuśikas tu tapas tepe putram indrasamaṃ prabhuḥ
labheyam iti taṃ śakras trāsād abhyetya jajñivān //
sa gādhir abhavad rājā maghavān kauśikaḥ svayam
viśvāmitras tu gādheyo rājā viśvarathaś ca ha //
viśvajid viśvakṛc caiva tathā satyavatī nṛpa
ṛcīkāj jamadagnis tu satyavatyām ajāyata //
viśvāmitrasya tu sutā devarātādayaḥ smṛtāḥ
prakhyātās triṣu lokeṣu teṣāṃ nāmāni me śṛṇu //
devaśravāḥ katiś caiva yasmāt kātyāyanāḥ smṛtāḥ
śālāpatir hiraṇyākṣo reṇur yasyātha reṇukā //
sāṃkṛtyo gālavo rājan maudgalyaśveti viśrutāḥ
teṣāṃ khyātāni gotrāṇi kauśikānāṃ mahātmanām //
pāṇino babhravaś caiva dhānaṃjayyās tathaiva ca
pārthivā devarātāś ca sālaṅkāyanasauśravāḥ //
lohityā yamadūtaś ca tathā kārīṣayaḥ smṛtāḥ
viśrutāḥ kauśikā rājaṃs tathānye saindhavāyanāḥ
ṛṣyantaravivāhyāś ca kauśikā bahavaḥ smṛtāḥ //
pauravasya mahārāja brahmarṣeḥ kauśikasya ca
saṃbandho hy asya vaṃśe 'smin brahmakṣatrasya viśrutaḥ //
viśvāmitrātmajānāṃ tu śunaḥśepo 'grajaḥ smṛtaḥ
bhārgavaḥ kauśikatvaṃ hi prāptaḥ sa munisattamaḥ //
śabarādayaś ca saptānye viśvāmitrasya vai sutāḥ
dṛṣadvatīsutaś cāpi viśvāmitrād athāṣṭakaḥ //
aṣṭakasya suto lauhiḥ prokto jahnugaṇo mayā
ājamīḍho 'paro vaṃśaḥ śrūyatāṃ bharatarṣabha //
ajamīḍhāt tu nīlyāṃ vai suśāntir udapadyata
purujātiḥ suśāntes tu bāhyāśvaḥ purujātitaḥ //
bāhyāśvatanayāḥ pañca babhūvur amaropamāḥ
mudgalaḥ sṛñjayaś caiva rājā bṛhadiṣus tathā //
yavīnaraś ca vikrāntaḥ kṛmilāśvaś ca pañcamaḥ
pañceme rakṣaṇāyālaṃ deśānām iti viśrutāḥ //
pañcānāṃ viddhi pāñcālān sphītān puṇyajanāvṛtān
alaṃ saṃrakṣaṇe teṣāṃ pāñcālā iti viśrutāḥ //
mudgalasya tu dāyādo maudgalyaḥ sumahāyaśāḥ
Note: k: K Ñ2.3 V B D T4 G4 ins.: :ksarva ete mahātmānaḥ kṣatropetādvijātayaḥ |
ete hy aṅgirasaḥ pakṣaṃ saṃśritāḥ kaṇvamaudgalāḥ ||
mudgalasya suto jyeṣṭho brahmarṣiḥ sumahātapāḥ |
indrasenā yato garbhaṃ vadhryaśvaṃ pratyapadyata //
Note: k: N (except Ś1 Ñ1) T1.2.4 G M4 ins.: :k
vadhryaśvān mithunaṃjajñe menakāyām iti śrutiḥ |
divodāsaś ca rājarṣir ahalyā ca yaśasvinī ||
śaradvatasya dāyādam ahalyā saṃprasūyata |
śatānandam ṛṣiśreṣṭhaṃ tasyāpi sumahāyaśāḥ |
putraḥ satyadhṛtir nāma dhanurvedasya pāragaḥ ||
tasya satyadhṛte reto dṛṣṭvāpsarasam agrataḥ |
atha skannaṃ śarastambe mithunaṃ samapadyata ||
kṛpayā tac ca jagrāha śaṃtanur mṛgayāṃ gataḥ |
kṛpaḥ smṛtaḥ sa vai tasmād gautamī ca kṛpī tathā |
ete śāradvatāḥ proktā ete te gautamāḥ smṛtāḥ ||
ata ūrdhvaṃ pravakṣyāmi divodāsasya saṃtatim |
divodāsasya dāyādo brahmarṣir mitrayur nṛpaḥ ||
maitreyāṇāṃ tataḥ somo maitreyās tu tataḥ smṛtāḥ |
ete vipañcitāḥ pakṣāḥ kṣatropetās tu bhārgavāḥ |
āsīt pañcavanaḥ putraḥ sṛñjayasya mahātmanaḥ
sutaḥ pañcavanasyāpi somadatto mahīpatiḥ //
somadattasya dāyādaḥ sahadevo mahāyaśāḥ
sahadevasutaś cāpi somako nāma pārthivaḥ //
Note: k: N (except Ś1 Ñ1) T2.4 G M4 ins.: :k
ajamīḍhāt punar jātaḥ kṣīṇe vaṃśe tu somakaḥ |
somakasya suto jantur yasya putraśataṃ babhau
teṣāṃ yavīyān pṛṣato drupadasya pitā prabhuḥ //
Note: k: N (except Ś1 Ñ1) T1.2.4 G M4 ins.: :k
dhṛṣṭadyumnaḥ tudrupadād dhṛṣṭaketuś ca tatsutaḥ ||
ājamīḍhāḥ smṛtā hy ete mahātmānas tu somakāḥ |
putrāṇām ajamīḍhasya somakatvaṃ mahātmanaḥ |
mahiṣī tv ajamīḍhasya dhūminī putragṛddhinī
tṛtīyā tava pūrveṣāṃ jananī pṛthivīpate //
sā tu putrārthinī devī vratacaryāsamāhitā
tapo varṣāśataṃ tepe strībhiḥ paramaduścaram //
hutvāgniṃ vidhivat sā tu pavitramitabhojanā
agnihotrakuśeṣv eva suṣvāpa janamejaya //
dhūminyā sa tayā devyā ajamīḍhaḥ sameyivān
ṛkṣaṃ sā janayām āsa dhūmavarṇaṃ sudarśanam //
ṛkṣāt saṃvaraṇo jajñe kuruḥ saṃvaraṇāt tathā
yaḥ prayāgād apakramya kurukṣetraṃ cakāra ha //
Note: k: Ñ2.3 V2 Ds D3-5 (V1 after 108b) ins.: :k
tad vaitat sa mahābhāgo varṣāṇi subahūny atha |
tapyamāne tadā śakro yatrāsya varado babhau |
puṇyaṃ ca ramaṇīyaṃ ca puṇyakṛdbhir niṣevitam
tasyānvavāyaḥ sumahān yasya nāmnā stha kauravāḥ //
kuroś ca putrāś catvāraḥ sudhanvā sudhanus tathā
parīkṣic ca mahābāhuḥ pravaraś cārimejayaḥ //
Note: k: all Mss. (except Ś1 Ñ1 M1-3; K2 after 107b; Ñ3 V1 B3 after 110b)ins.: :k
sudhanvanas tu dāyādaḥ suhotro matimān smṛtaḥ |
cyavanas tasya putras tu rājā dharmārthakovidaḥ ||
cyavanāt kṛtayajñas tu iṣṭvā yajñaiḥ sa dharmavit |
viśrutaṃ janayām āsa putram indrasakhaṃ nṛpaḥ ||
caidyoparicaraṃ vīraṃ vasuṃ nāmāntarikṣagam |
caidyoparicarāj jajñe girikā sapta mānavān ||
mahāratho magadharāḍ viśruto yo bṛhadrathaḥ |
pratyagrahaḥ kuśaś caiva yam āhur maṇivāhanam |
mārutaś ca yaduś caiva matsyakālī ca sattamaḥ ||
bṛhadrathasya dāyādaḥ kuśāgro nāma viśrutaḥ |
kuśāgrasyātmajo vidvān ṛṣabho nāma vīryavān ||
dāyādas tasya vikrānto rājā satyahitaḥ smṛtaḥ |
tasya putraḥ sa dharmātmā nāmnā ūrjas tu jajñivān |
ūrjasya saṃbhavaḥ putro yasya jajñe sa vīryavān ||
śakale dve sa vai jāto jarayā saṃdhitaḥ sa tu |
jarayā saṃdhito yasmāj jarāsaṃdhas tataḥ smṛtaḥ ||
sarvakṣatrasya jetāsau jarāsaṃdho mahābalaḥ |
jarāsaṃdhasya putro vai sahadevaḥ pratāpavān ||
sahadevātmajaḥ śrīmān udāyiḥ sa mahāyaśāḥ |
udāyir janayām āsa putraṃ paramadhārmikam |
śrutadharmeti nāmānaṃ magadhān yo 'vasad vibhuḥ |
Note: k: K1 Dn Ds D2.3 after line 11 of *382 ins.: :k
vṛṣabhasya tudāyādaḥ puṣpavān nāma dhārmikaḥ |
parīkṣitas tu tanayo dhārmiko janamejayaḥ
Note: k: K Ñ2 V2.3 B1.2 D T G1-4 (V1 B3 after *382; Ñ3 after the second occurrence of 10a-b repeated after *382) ins.: :kjanamejayasya dāyādās traya eva mahārathāḥ |
Note: k: K1-3 Ñ2.3 V B1 Ds D1-4 after *383 cont.: :kjahnos tukathayiṣyāmi yatra jāto 'si pārthiva ||
jahnus tv ajanayat putraṃ surathaṃ nāma bhūmipam |
śrutaseno 'grasenau ca bhīmasenaś ca nāmataḥ //
Note: k: K2-4 Ñ2.3 V B D (except D6) T3.4 ins.: :k
ete sarve mahābhāgā vikrāntā balaśālinaḥ |
janamejayasya putrau tu suratho matimāṃs tathā
surathasya tu vikrāntaḥ putro jajñe vidūrathaḥ //
vidūrathasya dāyāda ṛkṣa eva mahārathaḥ
dvitīyaḥ sa babhau rājā nāmnā tenaiva saṃjñitaḥ //
dvāv ṛkṣau tava vaṃśe 'smin dvāv eva ca parīkṣitau
bhīmasenās trayo rājan dvāv eva janamejayau //
ṛkṣasya tu dvitīyasya bhīmaseno 'bhavat sutaḥ
pratīpo bhīmasenasya pratīpasya tu śāṃtanuḥ
devāpir bāhlikaś caiva traya eva mahārathāḥ //
śāṃtanoḥ prasavas tv eṣa yatra jāto 'si pārthiva
bāhlikasya tu rājyaṃ vai saptabāhlyaṃ viśāṃ pate //
bāhlikasya sutaś caiva somadatto mahāyaśāḥ
jajñire somadattāt tu bhūrir bhūriśravāḥ śalaḥ //
upādhyāyas tu devānāṃ devāpir abhavan muniḥ
cyavanasya putraḥ kṛtaka iṣṭaś cāsīn mahātmanaḥ //
śāṃtanus tv abhavad rājā kauravāṇāṃ dhuraṃdharaḥ //
Note: k: all Mss. (except Ś1 Ñ1 M1-3) ins.: :k
śāṃtanoḥsaṃpravakṣyāmi yatra jāto 'si pārthiva ||
gāṅgaṃ devavrataṃ nāma putraṃ so 'janayat prabhuḥ |
sa tu bhīṣma iti khyātaḥ pāṇḍavānāṃ pitāmahaḥ |
kālī vicitravīryaṃ tu janayām āsa bhārata
śāṃtanor dayitaṃ putraṃ dharmātmānam akalmaṣam //
kṛṣṇadvaipāyanac caiva kṣetre vaicitravīryake
dhṛtarāṣṭraṃ ca pāṇḍuṃ ca viduraṃ cāpy ajījanat //
Note: k: all Mss. (except Ś1 Ñ1 M1-3; K1.3 Ñ2 V3 D1.2.4 after the firstoccurrence of 119a-b) ins.: :k
dhṛtarāṣṭras tu gāndhāryāṃ putrānajanayac chatam |
teṣāṃ duryodhanaḥ śreṣṭhaḥ sarveṣām eva sa prabhuḥ |
pāṇḍor dhanaṃjayaḥ putraḥ saubhadras tasya cātmajaḥ
abhimanyoḥ parīkṣit tu pitā tava janeśvara //
eṣa te pauravo vaṃśo yatra jāto 'si pārthiva
turvasos tu pravakṣyāmi druhyoś cānor yados tathā //
turvasos tu suto vahnir vahner gobhānur ātmajaḥ
gobhānos tu suto rājā triśānur aparājitaḥ //
karaṃdhamas tu triśānor maruttas tasya cātmajaḥ
anyas tv āvikṣito rājā maruttaḥ kathitas tava //
anapatyo 'bhavad rājā yajvā vipuladakṣiṇaḥ
duhitā saṃmatā nāma tasyāsīt pṛthivīpateḥ //
dakṣiṇārthaṃ hi sā dattā saṃvartāya mahātmane
duḥṣantaṃ pauravaṃ cāpi lebhe putram akalmaṣam //
evaṃ yayāteḥ śāpena jarāsaṃkramaṇe tadā
pauravaṃ turvasor vaṃśaḥ praviveśa nṛpottama //
duḥṣantasya tu dāyādaḥ śarutthāmaḥ prajeśvaraḥ
śarutthāmād athākrīḍaś catvāras tasya cātmajāḥ //
pāṇḍyaś ca keralaś caiva kolaś colaś ca pārthivaḥ
teṣāṃ janapadāḥ sphītāḥ pāṇḍyaś colaś ca keralāḥ //
druhyos tu tanayo rājan babhrusenaś ca pārthivaḥ
aṅgārasetus tatputro marutāṃ patir ucyate //
yauvanāśvena samare kṛcchreṇa nihato balī
yuddhaṃ sumahad āsīd dhi māsān pari caturdaśa //
aṅgārasya tu dāyādo gāndhāro nāma pārthivaḥ
khyāyate yasya nāmnā vai gāndhāraviṣayo mahān
gāndhāradeśajāś caiva turagā vājināṃ varāḥ //
anos tu putro dharmo 'bhūd dhṛtas tasyātmajo 'bhavat
dhṛtāt tu duduho jajñe pracetās tasya cātmajaḥ
pracetasaḥ sucetās tu kīrtitā hy anavo mayā //
Note: k: all Mss. (except Ś1 K1 Ñ1 M1-3) ins.: :k
yador vaṃśaṃpravakṣyāmi jyeṣṭhasyottamatejasaḥ |
vistareṇanupūrvyā ca gadato me niśāmaya |
Note: k: D2 after *388 cont.: :k
yasya śravaṇamātreṇa pātakebhyaḥpramucyate |
babhūvus tu yadoḥ putrāḥ pañca devasutopamāḥ
sahasradaḥ payodaś ca kroṣṭā nīlo 'ñjikas tathā //
sahasradasya dāyādās trayaḥ paramadhārmikāḥ
Note: k: D2 ins.: :kśatajin nāma pārthivaḥ |
śatajitaḥ sutāḥ khyātās |
hehayaś ca hayaś caiva rājan veṇuhayas tathā //
hehayasyābhavat putro dharmanetra iti śrutaḥ
dharmanetrasya kāntas tu kāntaputrās tato 'bhavan //
Note: k: Ś1 K1 ins.: :k
sāhañjasya mahiṣmāṃs tu bhadraśreṇyaś catatsutaḥ |
Note: k: all Mss. (except Ś1 Ñ1 M1-3; K1 after *391) ins.: :k
sāhañjanī nāmapurī tena rājñā niveśitā ||
sāhañjasya tu dāyādo mahiṣmān nāma pārthivaḥ |
māhiṣmatī nāma purī yena rājñā niveśitā ||
āsīn mahiṣmataḥ putro bhadraśreṇyaḥ pratāpavān |
Note: k: K1.3.4 B2 Dn G3 after *392 (Ś1 after *391) cont.: :k
vārāṇasyadhipo rājā kathitaḥ pūrvam eva tu |
Note: k: all Mss. (except Ñ1 M1-3) after *392 (Ś1 K1.3.4 B2 Dn G3 after *393)cont.: :k
bhadraśreṇyasya dāyādo durdamo nāma viśrutaḥ ||
durdamasya suto dhīmān kanako nāma nāmataḥ |
kanakasya tu dāyādāś catvāro lokaviśrutāḥ |
kṛtavīryaḥ kṛtaujāś ca kṛtadhanvā tathaiva ca
kṛtāgniś ca caturtho 'bhūt kṛtavīryāt tathārjunaḥ //
yaḥ sa bāhusahasreṇa saptadvīpeśvaro 'bhavat
jigāya pṛthivīm eko rathenādityavarcasā //
sa hi varṣaśataṃ taptvā tapaḥ paramaduścaram
dattam ārādhayām āsa kārtavīryo 'trisaṃbhavam //
tasmai datto varān prādāc caturo bhūritejasaḥ
pūrvaṃ bāhusahasraṃ tu prārthitaṃ paramaṃ varam //
adharme dhīyamānasya sadbhiḥ syān me nibarhaṇam
ugreṇa pṛthivīṃ jitvā dharmeṇaivānurañjanam //
saṃgrāmān subahūñ jitvā hatvā cārīn sahasraśaḥ
saṃgrāme vartamānasya vadhaṃ cābhyadhikād raṇe //
tasya bāhusahasraṃ tu yudhyataḥ kila bhārata
yogād yogeśvarasyāgre prādurbhavati māyayā //
teneyaṃ pṛthivī kṛtsnā saptadvīpā sapattanā
sasamudrā sanagarā ugreṇa vidhinā jitā //
tena saptasu dvīpeṣu sapta yajñaśatāni vai
prāptāni vidhinā rājñā śrūyante janamejaya //
sarve yajñā mahābāho tasyāsan bhūridakṣiṇāḥ
sarve kāñcanayūpāś ca sarve kāñcanavedayaḥ //
sarve devair mahārāja vimānasthair alaṃkṛtāḥ
gandharvair apsarobhiś ca nityam evopaśobhitāḥ //
yasya yajñe jagau gāthāṃ gandharvo nāradas tathā
varīdāsātmajo vidvān mahimnā tasya vismitaḥ //
na nūnaṃ kārtavīryasya gatiṃ yāsyanti pārthivāḥ
yajñair dānais tapobhir vā vikrameṇa śrutena vā //
Note: k: K4 (marg.) ins.: :k
pañcāśītisahasrāṇi avyāhatabalaḥ samāḥ |
akarod arjuno rājyaṃ hariṃ caivānvahaṃ smaran |
anaṣṭavittasmaraṇe bubhuje 'kṣayyaṣaḍvasu |
sa hi saptasu dvīpeṣu khaḍgī carmī śarāsanī
rathī dvīpān anucaran yogī saṃdṛśyate nṛbhiḥ //
Note: k: K1-3 Ñ2.3 V B Dn Ds D2-6 T2 G1-3.5 M4 ins.: :k
anaṣṭadravyatā caiva na śoko na ca vibhramaḥ |
prabhāveṇa mahārājñaḥ prajā dharmeṇa rakṣataḥ ||
sa sarvaratnabhāk samrāṭ cakravartī babhūva ha |
sa eva paśupālo 'bhūt kṣetrapālaḥ sa eva ca |
sa eva vṛṣṭyā parjanyo yogitvād arjuno 'bhavat ||
sa vai bāhusahasreṇa jyāghātakaṭhinatvacā |
bhāti raśmisahasreṇa śaradīva ca bhāskaraḥ ||
sa hi nāgān manuṣyeṣu māhiṣmatyāṃ mahādyutiḥ |
karkoṭakasutāñ jitvā puryāṃ tasyāṃ nyaveśayat ||
sa vai vegaṃ samudrasya prāvṛṭkāle 'mbujekṣaṇaḥ |
krīḍann iva bhujodbhinnaṃ pratisrotaś cakāra ha ||
luṇṭhitā krīḍatā tena phenasragdāmamālinī |
caladūrmisahasreṇa śaṅkitābhyeti narmadā ||
tasya bāhusahasreṇa kṣubhyamāṇe mahodadhau |
bhayān nilīnā niśceṣṭāḥ pātālasthā mahāsurāḥ ||
cūrṇīkṛtamahāvīciṃ calanmīnamahātimim |
mārutāviddhaphenaugham āvartakṣobhaduḥsaham ||
prāvartayat tadā rājā sahasreṇa ca bāhunā |
devāsurasamākṣiptaḥ kṣīrodam iva mandaraḥ ||
mandarakṣobhacakitā amṛtotpādaśaṅkitāḥ |
sahasotpatitā bhītā bhīmaṃ dṛṣṭvā nṛpottamam ||
natā niścalamūrdhāno babhūvus te mahoragāḥ |
sāyāhne kadalīkhaṇḍaiḥ kampitās tasya vāyunā ||
sa vai baddhvā dhanur jyābhir utsiktaṃ pañcabhiḥ śaraiḥ |
laṅkeśaṃ mohayitvā tu sabalaṃ rāvaṇaṃ balāt |
nirjityaiva samānīya māhiṣmatyāṃ babandha tam ||
śrutvā tu baddhaṃ paulastyaṃ rāvaṇaṃ tv arjunena tu |
tato gatvā pulastyas tam arjunaṃ dadṛśe svayam |
mumoca rakṣaḥ paulastyaṃ pulastyenānuyācitaḥ ||
yasya bāhusahasrasya babhūva jyātalasvanaḥ |
yugānte tv ambudasyeva sphuṭato hy aśaner iva ||
aho bata mṛdhe vīryaṃ bhārgavasya yad acchinat |
rājño bāhusahasraṃ tu haimaṃ tālavanaṃ yathā ||
tṛṣitena kadā cit sa bhikṣitaś citrabhānunā |
Note: k: Ñ2.3 V B2.3 D5 after line 2 of *396 (Dn after line 3) ins.: :k
pañcāśītisahasrāṇi varṣāṇāṃ vai narādhipaḥ |
Note: k: B2 after line 13 of *396 ins.: :k
uvāsa tām anusarann avagāḍhomahārṇavaṃ |
cakāroddhatavelāntam akālaprāvṛḍuddhataṃ |
sa bhikṣām adadād vīraḥ sapta dvīpān vibhāvasoḥ
Note: k: K2 Ñ2.3 V B Dn Ds D2.3.5.6 T2 G1-3.5 M4 ins.: :kpurāṇigrāmaghoṣāṃś ca viṣayāṃś caiva sarvaśaḥ |
jajvāla tasya sarvāṇi citrabhānur didhakṣayā ||
sa tasya puruṣendrasya prabhāveṇa mahātmanaḥ |
dadāha kārtavīryasya śailāṃś caiva vanāni ca ||
sa śūnyam āśramaṃ ramyaṃ varuṇasyātmajasya vai |
dadāha balavadbhītaś citrabhānuḥ sa haihayaḥ |
yaṃ lebhe varuṇaḥ putraṃ purā bhāsvantam uttamam |
vasiṣṭhaṃ nāma sa muniḥ khyāta āpava ity uta |
yatrāpavas tu taṃ krodhāc chaptavān arjunaṃ vibhuḥ //
yasmān na varjitam idaṃ vanaṃ te mama hehaya
tasmāt te duṣkaraṃ karma kṛtam anyo hariṣyati
arjuno nāma kauravyaḥ pāṇḍavaḥ kuntinandanaḥ //
Note: k: all Mss. (except Ś1 T1 M1-3; D6 T2 G M4 after 153b) ins.: :k
rāmo nāmamahābāhur jāmadagnyaḥ pratāpavān |
chittvā bāhusahasraṃ te pramathya tarasā balī
tapasvī brāhmaṇaś ca tvāṃ haniṣyati sa bhārgavaḥ //
anaṣṭadravyatā yasya babhūvāmitrakarśana
prabhāveṇa narendrasya prajā dharmeṇa rakṣataḥ //
rāmāt tato 'sya mṛtyur vai tasya śāpān mahāmuneḥ
varaś caiṣa hi kauravya svayam eva vṛtaḥ purā //
tasya putraśatasyāsan pañca śeṣā mahātmanaḥ
kṛtāstrā balinaḥ śūrā dharmātmāno yaśasvinaḥ //
śūrasenaś ca śūraś ca dhṛṣṭoktaḥ kṛṣṇa eva ca
jayadhvajaś ca nāmnāsīd āvantyo nṛpatir mahān
kārtavīryasya tanayā vīryavanto mahārathāḥ //
jayadhvajasya putras tu tālajaṅgho mahābalaḥ
tasya putrāḥ śatākhyās tu tālajaṅghā iti śrutāḥ //
teṣāṃ kule mahārāja hehayānāṃ mahātmanām
vītihotrāḥ sujātāś ca bhojāś cāvantayas tathā //
tauṇḍikerā iti khyātās tālajaṅghās tathaiva ca
bharatāś ca sujātāś ca bahutvān nānukīrtitāḥ //
vṛṣaprabhṛtayo rājan yādavāḥ puṇyakarmiṇaḥ
vṛṣo vaṃśadharas tatra tasya putro 'bhavan madhuḥ
madhoḥ putraśataṃ tv āsīd vṛṣaṇas tasya vaṃśabhāk //
vṛṣaṇād vṛṣṇayaḥ sarve madhos tu mādhavāḥ smṛtāḥ
yādavā yadunā cāgre nirucyante ca hehayāḥ //
Note: k: K1-3 Ñ2.3 V1.3 Dn Ds D3-5 ins.: :k
śūrāś ca śūravīrāś ca śūrasenās tathānagha ||
śūrasena iti khyātas tasya deśo mahātmanaḥ |
na tasya vittanāśaḥ syān naṣṭaṃ pratilabhec ca saḥ
kārtavīryasya yo janma kathayed iha nityaśaḥ //
Note: k: Ñ2.3 V1 D3 (V3 after 168) ins.: :k
vittavāṃś ca bhavec caiva dharmaścaiva vivardhate |
yathā sṛṣṭir yador jātā tathā svarge mahīyate |
Note: k: Ñ2.3 D3 (all these after an addl. colophon) V1 after *400 cont.: :k
kimarthaṃ tad vanaṃ dagdham āpavasya mahātmanaḥ |
kārtavīryeṇa vikramya tan me brūhi prapṛcchataḥ ||
rakṣitā sa hi rājarṣiḥ prajānām iti naḥ śrutam |
kathaṃ sa rakṣitā bhūtvā nāśayām āsa tadvanam ||
ādityo viprarūpeṇa kārtavīryam upasthitaḥ |
tṛptim ekām prayacchasva ādityo 'ham upasthitaḥ ||
bhagavan kena tṛptis te bhaved brūhi vibhāvaso |
kīdṛśaṃ bhojanaṃ dadmi śrutvā te vidadhāmy aham ||
sthāvaraṃ dehi me sarvam āhāraṃ vadatāṃ vara |
tena tṛpsir bhaven mahyaṃ tena tuṣṭiś ca pārthiva ||
na śakyaṃ sthāvaraṃ sarvaṃ tejasā mānuṣeṇa tu |
nirdagdhuṃ tapatāṃ śreṣṭha tvām eva praṇamāmy aham ||
tuṣṭas te 'haṃ śarān dadmi cākṣayān sarvatomukhān |
ye [pra]kṣiptāḥ saṃjvalanti mama tejaḥsamanvitāḥ ||
āviṣṭas tejasā me 'dya sthāvaraṃ śoṣayiṣyasi |
śuṣkaṃ bhasma kariṣyāmi tena tṛptir narādhipa ||
tataḥ śarāṃs tadādityo arjunāya tadā dadau |
tataḥ sa prācyam adahat sthāvaraṃ sarvam eva tat ||
āśramān atha grāmāṃś ca ghoṣāṃś ca nagarāṇy api |
tapovanāni ramyāṇi vanāny upavanāni ca ||
evaṃ sa prācyam adahat tataḥ sarvaṃ pradakṣiṇam |
nirvṛkṣā nistṛṇā bhūmir dagdhā sā yogatejasā ||
etasminn eva kāle tu āpavo jalam āśritaḥ |
daśa varṣasahasrāṇi jalavāsī mahān ṛṣiḥ ||
pūrṇe vrate mahātejā udatiṣṭhan mahān ṛṣiḥ |
krodhāc chaśāpa rājarṣiṃ kīrtitaṃ vai yathā mayā |
ete yayātiputrāṇāṃ pañca vaṃśā viśāṃ pate
kīrtitā lokavīrāṇāṃ ye lokān dhārayanti vai
bhūtānīva mahārāja pañca sthāvarajaṅgamam //
śrutvā pañcavisargaṃ tu rājā dharmārthakovidaḥ
vaśī bhavati pañcānām ātmajānāṃ tatheśvaraḥ //
labhet pañca varāṃś caiṣa durlabhān iha laukikān
āyuḥ kīrtiṃ dhanaṃ putrān aiśvaryaṃ bhūya eva ca
dhāraṇāc chravaṇāc caiva pañcavargasya bhārata //
Note: k: T3 ins.: :k
lobhate manujaḥ śraiṣṭhyaṃ sarvapāpaiḥ pramucyate |
kroṣṭos tu śṛṇu rājendra vaṃśam uttamapūruṣam
yador vaṃśadharasyeha yajvanaḥ puṇyakarmaṇaḥ //
kroṣṭor hi vaṃśaṃ śrutvemaṃ sarvapāpaiḥ pramucyate
yasyānvavāyajo viṣṇur harir vṛṣṇikulaprabhuḥ //
Note: h: HV (CE) chapter 24, transliterated by Christophe Vielle :h
gāndhārī caiva mādrī ca kroṣṭor bhārye babhūvatuḥ
gāndhārī janayām āsa anamitraṃ mahābalam //
mādrī yudhājitaṃ putraṃ tato vai devamīḍhuṣam
teṣāṃ vaṃśas tridhā bhūto vṛṣṇīnāṃ kulavardhanaḥ //
mādryāḥ putrau tu jajñāte śrutau vṛṣṇyandhakāv ubhau
jajñāte tanayau vṛṣṇeḥ śvaphalkaś citrakas tathā //
śvaphalkas tu mahārāja dharmātmā yatra vartate
nāsti vyādhibhayaṃ tatra nāvarṣabhayam apyuta //
kadā cit kāśirājasya vibhor bharatasattama
trīṇi varṣāṇi viṣaye nāvarṣat pākaśāsanaḥ //
sa tatra vāsayām āsa śvaphalkaṃ paramārcitam
śvaphalkaparivarte ca vavarṣa harivāhanaḥ //
Note: k: K2 Ñ2.3 V1.3 B2.3 Dn D4 G(ed.) ins.: :k
sā mātur udarasthā tu bahūnvarṣagaṇān kila |
nivasantī na vai jajñe garbhasthāṃ tāṃ pitābravīt ||
jāyasva śīghraṃ bhadraṃ te kimartham iha tiṣṭhasi |
provāca cainaṃ garbhasthā kanyā gāṃ ca dine dine ||
yadi dadyāṃ tato 'dyāhaṃ jāyayiṣyāmi tāṃ pitā |
tathety uvāca taṃ cāsyāḥ pitā kāmam apūrayat |
śvaphalkaḥ kāśirājasya sutāṃ bhāryām avindata
gāndinīṃ nāma sā gāṃ tu dadau vipreṣu nityaśaḥ //
dātā yajvā ca dhīraś ca śrutavān atithipriyaḥ
akrūraḥ suṣuve tasmāc chvaphalkād bhūridakṣiṇaḥ //
upamadgus tathā madgur mṛdaraś cārimejayaḥ
arikṣepas tathopekṣaḥ śatrughno 'thārimardanaḥ //
carmabhṛd yudhivarmā ca gṛdhramojās tathāntakaḥ
āvāhaprativāhau ca sundarā ca varāṅganā //
Note: k: Ś1 K1.3.4 D4.5 ins.: :k
viśrutā sāmbamahiṣī kanyā cāsyapunarnavā |
rūpayauvanasaṃpannā sarvabhūtamanoharā ||
akrūrāt kāśikanyāyāṃ satyaketur ajāyata |
akrūreṇaugrasenyāṃ tu sugātryāṃ kurunandana
prasenaś copadevaś ca jajñāte devavarcasau //
citrakasyābhavan putrāḥ pṛthur vipṛthur eva ca
aśvagrīvo 'śvabāhuś ca supārśvakagaveṣaṇau //
ariṣṭanemir aśvaś ca sudharmā dharmabhṛt tathā
subāhur bahubāhuś ca śraviṣṭhāśravaṇe striyau //
aśmakyāṃ janayām āsa śūraṃ vai devamīḍhuṣam
mahiṣyāṃ jajñire śūrād bhojyāyāṃ puruṣā daśa //
vasudevo mahābāhuḥ pūrvam ānakadundubhiḥ
jajñe yasya prasūtasya dundubhyaḥ prāṇadan divi //
ānakānāṃ ca saṃhrādaḥ sumahān abhavad divi
papāta puṣpavarṣaṃ ca śūrasya bhavane mahat //
manuṣyaloke kṛtsne 'pi rūpe nāsti samo bhuvi
yasyāsīt puruṣāgryasya kāntiś candramaso yathā //
devabhāgas tato jajñe tato devaśravāḥ punaḥ
anādhṛṣṭiḥ kanavako vatsavān atha gṛñjimaḥ //
śyāmaḥ śamīko gaṇḍūṣaḥ pañca cāsya varāṅganāḥ
pṛthukīrtiḥ pṛthā caiva śrutadevā śrutaśravā
rājādhidevī ca tathā pañcaitā vīramātaraḥ //
Note: k: K2 Ñ2 Dn Ds2 D3.5 ins.: :k
pṛthāṃ duhitaraṃ vavre kuntis tāṃkurunandana |
śūraḥ pūjyāya vṛddhāya kuntibhojāya tāṃ dadau |
tasmāt kuntīti vikhyātā kuntibhojātmajā pṛthā |
kuntyasya śrutadevāyām agṛdhnuḥ suṣuve nṛpaḥ
Note: k: M4 ins.: :kśrutadevyāṃ kekayas tu pañca putrān akalmaṣān |
sutardanapurogāṃs tu janayām āsa bhārata ||
rājādhidevī rājendra putrau paramadharmikau |
vindānuvindāv āvantyau suṣuve bharatarṣabha |
śrutaśravāyāṃ caidyas tu śiśupālo mahābalaḥ //
Note: k: K4 ins.: :k
yo hato rājasūye vai kṛṣṇena sumahātmanā |
hiraṇyakaśipur yo 'sau daityarājo 'bhavat purā
pṛthukīrtyāṃ tu saṃjajñe tanayo vṛddhaśarmaṇaḥ //
karūṣādhipater vīro dantavaktro mahābalaḥ
pṛthāṃ duhitaraṃ cakre kauntyas tāṃ pāṇḍur āvahat //
yasyāṃ sa dharmavid rājā dharmād jajñe yudhiṣṭhiraḥ
bhīmasenas tathā vātād indrāc caiva dhanaṃjayaḥ
loke 'pratiratho vīraḥ śakratulyaparākramaḥ //
anamitrāc chanir jajñe kaniṣṭhād vṛṣṇinandanāt
śaineyaḥ satyakas tasmād yuyudhānas tu sātyakiḥ //
Note: k: Ś1 K1.3.4 Dn D4.5 ins.: :k
asaṅgo yuyudhānasya bhūmis tasyābhavatsutaḥ |
bhūmer yugaṃdharaḥ putra iti vaṃśaḥ samāpyate |
uddhavo devabhāgasya mahābhāgaḥ suto 'bhavat
paṇḍitānāṃ paraṃ prāhur devaśravasam uddhavam //
Note: k: M4 for 25c-d subst.: :k
paṇḍitaṃ nāma rājendra lebhe devaśravāḥsutam |
aśmaky alabhatāpatnyam anādhṛṣṭiṃ yaśasvinam
nivṛttaśatruṃ śatrughnaṃ śrutadevā vyajāyata //
śrutadevāprajātas tu naiṣādir yaḥ pariśrutaḥ
Note: k: M1-3 for 27a-b subst.: :kśrutadevāt tu naiṣādiḥ so 'smābhir yaḥpariśrutaḥ |
ekalavyo mahārāja niṣādaiḥ parivardhitaḥ //
Note: k: K2 ins.: :k
vasudevasya vai putro vāsudevaḥ pratāpavān |
vatsāvate tv aputrāya vasudevaḥ pratāpavān
adbhir dadau sutaṃ vīraṃ śauriḥ kauśikam aurasam //
Note: k: M1-3 for 28c-d subst.: :k
dadau putraṃ svakaṃ śauriḥ kumāramamitaujasam |
gaṇḍūṣāya tv aputrāya viṣvakseno dadau sutam
cārudeṣṇaṃ sucāruṃ ca pañcālaṃ kṛtalakṣaṇam //
asaṃgrāmeṇa yo vīro nāvartata kadā cana
raukmiṇeyo mahābāhuḥ kanīyān bharatarṣabha //
vāyasānāṃ sahasrāṇi yaṃ yāntaṃ pṛṣṭhato 'nvayuḥ
cārūn adyopayokṣyāmaś cārudeṣṇahatān iti //
tantrijas tantripālaś ca sutau kanavakasya tu
vīraś cāśvahanuś caiva vīrau tāv atha gṛñjimau //
śyāmaputraḥ sumitras tu śamīko rājyam āvahat
Note: k: all Mss. (except M1-3) Cn ins.: :kjugupsamāno bhojatvād rājasūyamavāpa saḥ |
ajātaśatruḥ śatrūṇāṃ jajñe tasya vināśanaḥ //
vasudevasya tu sutān kīrtayiṣyāmy tāñ śṛṇu //
vṛṣṇes trividham etaṃ tu bahuśākhaṃ mahaujasam
Note: k: T3 ins.: :kprakṛtānupayuktatvād vistarān nānukīrtanam |
dhārayan vipulaṃ vaṃśaṃ nānarthair iha yujyate //
Note: h: HV (CE) chapter 25, transliterated by Christophe Vielle :h
pauravī rohiṇī nāma bāhlikasyātmajā nṛpa
jyeṣṭhā patnī mahārāja dayitānakadundubheḥ //
Note: k: After the ref., all Mss. (except Ś1 Ñ1 M1-3) ins.: :k
yāḥ patnyo vasudevasya caturdaśa varāṅganāḥ |
pauravī rohiṇī nāma madirāpi tathāparā |
vaiśākhī ca tathā bhadrā sunāmnī caiva pañcamī ||
sahadevā śāntidevā śrīdevā devarakṣitā |
vṛkadevy upadevī ca devakī caiva saptamī ||
sutanur vaḍavā caiva dve ete paricārike |
lebhe jyeṣṭhaṃ sutaṃ rāmaṃ śāraṇaṃ śaṭham eva ca
durdamaṃ damanaṃ śvabhraṃ piṇḍārakakuśīnarau //
citrāṃ nāma kumārīṃ ca rohiṇītanayā nava
citrā subhadreti punar vikhyātā kurunandana //
vasudevāc ca devakyāṃ jajñe śaurir mahāyaśāḥ
Note: k: D2 ins.: :kkīrtimantaṃ suṣeṇaṃ ca bhadrasenam udāradhī |
mṛtyuṃ samardanaṃ bhadraṃ saṃkarṣaṇam ahīśvaram |
vipulaṃ teṣv aṣṭatamo svayam eva hariḥ kila |
rāmāc ca niśaṭho jajñe revatyāṃ dayitaḥ sutaḥ //
subhadrāyāṃ rathī pārthād abhimanyur ajāyata
akrūrāt kāśikanyāyāṃ satyaketur ajāyata //
vasudevasya bhāryāsu mahābhāgāsu saptasu
ye putrā jajñire śūrā namatas tān nibodhata //
bhojaś ca vijayaś caiva śāntidevāsutāv ubhau
Note: k: K1 (K3 after 7d) ins.: :kupāsaṅgaṃ varaṃ lebhe tanayaṃdevarakṣitā |
vṛkadevaḥ sunāmāyāṃ gadaś cāsyāḥ sutāv ubhau
agāvahaṃ mahātmānaṃ vṛkadevī vyajāyata //
Note: k: K1.3 D4 ins.: :k
vijayaṃ lomapādaṃ ca vardhamānaṃ ca devakī ||
ete svayaṃ mahātmanā upadevyāṃ ca jajñire |
sutanū ca narāvī ca śaurer āstāṃ parigrahaḥ ||
pauṇḍraś ca kapilaś caiva vasudevasutāv ubhau |
narākhyāṃ kapilo jajñe pauṇḍraś ca sutanūsutaḥ |
tayor nṛpo 'bhavat pauṇḍraḥ kapilas tu vanaṃ yayau ||
pūrvyāṃ samabhavad dvīpo vasudevān mahābalaḥ |
jarā nāma niṣādānāṃ prabhuḥ sarvadhanuṣmatām |
kanyā trigartarājasya bhartā vai śiśirāyaṇaḥ
jijñāsāṃ pauruṣe cakre na caskande 'tha pauruṣam //
Note: k: V2 ins.: :k
kṛṣṇāyasasamācakhyo na pumāṃstvaṃ napuṃsakaḥ |
kṛṣṇāyasasamaprakhyo varṣe dvādaśame tadā
mithyābhiśapto gārgyas tu manyunābhisamīritaḥ
ghoṣakanyām upādāya maithunāyopacakrame //
gopālī tv apsarās tasya gopastrīveṣadhāriṇī
dhārayām āsa gārgyasya garbhaṃ durdharam acyutam //
mānuṣyāṃ gargyabhāryāyāṃ niyogāc chūlapāṇinaḥ
sa kālayavano nāma jajñe rājā mahābalaḥ
vṛṣapūrvārdhakāyās tam avahan vājino raṇe //
aputrasya sa rājñas tu vavṛdhe 'ntaḥpure śiśuḥ
yavanasya mahārāja sa kālayavano 'bhavat //
sa yuddhakāmo nṛpatiḥ paryapṛcchad dvijottamān
vṛṣṇyandhakakulaṃ tasya nārado 'kathayad vibhuḥ //
akṣauhiṇyā tu sainyasya mathurām abhyayāt tadā
dūtaṃ ca preṣayām āsa vṛṣṇyandhakaniveśane //
tato vṛṣṇyandhakāḥ kṛṣṇaṃ puraskṛtya mahāmatim
sametā mantrayām āsur jarāsaṃdhabhayena ca //
kṛtvā ca niścayaṃ sarve palāyanam arocayan
Note: k: K2 ins.: :ktyaktvā gṛhān dhanaṃ sarve palāyanta manoratham |
vihāya mathurāṃ ramyāṃ mānayantaḥ pinākinam
kuśasthalīṃ dvāravatīṃ niveśayitum īpsavaḥ //
Note: k: K1.3.4 D4 ins.: :k
evaṃ devo mahābāhuḥ pūrvaṃ kṛṣṇaḥprajāpatiḥ |
vihārārthaṃ manuṣyāṃśo mānuṣeṣv abhyajāyata |
iti kṛṣṇasya janmedaṃ yaḥ śucir niyatendriyaḥ
parvasu śrāvayed vidvān nirṛṇaḥ sa sukhī bhavet //
Note: h: HV (CE) chapter 26, transliterated by Christophe Vielle :h
kroṣṭor evābhavat putro vṛjinīvān mahāyaśāḥ
vārjinīvatam icchanti svāhiṃ svāhākṛtāṃ varam //
svāhiputro 'bhavad rājā ruṣadgur vadatāṃ varaḥ
mahākratubhir īje yo vividhair āptadakṣiṇaiḥ //
śataprasūtim icchan vai ruṣadguḥ so 'gryam ātmajam
citraiś citrarathas tasya putraḥ karmabhir anvitaḥ //
āsīc caitrarathir vīro yajvā vipuladakṣiṇaḥ
śaśabinduḥ paraṃ vṛttaṃ rājarṣīṇām anuṣṭhitaḥ //
pṛthuśravāḥ pṛthuyaśā rājāsīc chāśabindujaḥ
śaṃsanti ca purāṇajñāḥ pārthaśravasam antaram //
antarasya suyajñas tu suyajñatanayo 'bhavat
uṣato yajñam akhilaṃ svadharmam uṣatāṃ varaḥ //
Note: k: T3.4 for 6c-d subst.: :k
udyatas tasya dharmātmā+ +bhavat putravatāṃvaraḥ |
śineyur abhavat putra uṣataḥ śatrutāpanaḥ
maruttas tasya tanayo rājarṣir abhavan nṛpaḥ //
marutto 'labhata jyeṣṭhaṃ sutaṃ kambalabarhiṣam
cacāra paramaṃ dharmam amarṣāt pretyabhāvavit //
śataprasūtim icchan vai sutaṃ kambalabarhiṣaḥ
babhūva rukmakavacaḥ śataprasavataḥ sutaḥ //
nihatya rukmakavacaḥ śataṃ kavacināṃ raṇe
dhanvināṃ niśitair bāṇair avāpa śriyam uttamām //
jajñe ca rukmakavacāt parājit paravīrahā
jajñire pañca putrās tu mahāvīryāḥ parājitāḥ
rukmeṣuḥ pṛthurukmaś ca jyāmaghaḥ pālito hariḥ //
pālitaṃ ca hariṃ caiva videhebhyaḥ pitā dadau
rukmeṣur abhavad rājā pṛthurukmaś ca saṃśritaḥ
tābhyāṃ pravrājito rājyāj jyāmagho 'vasad āśrame //
praśāntaḥ sa vanasthas tu brāhmaṇenāvabodhitaḥ
jagāma ratham āsthāya deśam anyaṃ dhvajī rathī //
narmadākūlam ekākī narmadāṃ mṛttikāvatīm
ṛkṣavantaṃ giriṃ jitvā śuktimatyām uvāsa saḥ //
jyāmaghasyābhavad bhāryā caitrā pariṇatā satī
aputro 'pi ca rājā sa nānyāṃ bhāryām avindata //
tasyāsīd vijayo yuddhe tatra kanyām avāpa saḥ
Note: k: Ñ2.3 V ins.: :kratham āropya sā nītā patnyarthaṃ strīniveśanam ||
tāṃ dṛṣṭvā ruṣitā śaibyā bhartāram idam abravīt |
kimartham iyam ānītā sapatnī durnayā mama |
bhāryām uvāca saṃtrāsāt snuṣeti sa nareśvaraḥ //
etac chrutvābravīd enaṃ kasya ceyaṃ snuṣeti vai
Note: k: Ñ2.3 V1.2 ins.: :kna hi prasūtā putreṇa nānyā bhāryāsti te'nagha |
snuṣā saṃbandhavāg eṣā katamena sutena te |
Note: k: all Mss. (except Ś1 Ñ1 M1-3) ins.: :kabravīt tad upaśrutya jyāmaghorājasattamaḥ |
yas te janiṣyate putras tasya bhāryeti jātabhīḥ //
ugreṇa tapasā tasyāḥ kanyāyāḥ sā vyajāyata
putryāṃ vidarbhaṃ subhāgā caitrā pariṇatā satī //
rājaputryāṃ tu vidvāṃsau snuṣāyāṃ krathakaiśikau
paścād vidarbho 'janayac chūrau raṇaviśāradau //
Note: k: K1.3.4 Dn D4.5 ins.: :k
lomapādaṃ tṛtīyaṃ tu putraṃparamadhārmikam ||
lomapādātmajo babhrur āhvatis tasya cātmajaḥ |
āhvateḥ kaiśikaś caiva vidvān paramadhārmikaḥ |
kaiśikasya cidiḥ putras tasmāc caidyā nṛpāḥ smṛtāḥ |
bhīmo vidarbhasya sutaḥ kuntis tasyātmajo 'bhavat
kunter dhṛṣṭaḥ suto jajñe raṇadhṛṣṭaḥ pratāpavān //
dhṛṣṭasya jajñire śūrās trayaḥ paramadhārmikāḥ
āvantaś ca daśārhaś ca balī viṣṇuharaś ca yaḥ //
daśārhasya suto vyomā vidvāñ jīmūta ucyate
jīmūtaputro vṛkatis tasya bhīmarathaḥ sutaḥ //
atha bhīmarathasyāsīt putro navarathas tathā
tasya cāsīd daśarathaḥ śakunis tasya cātmajaḥ //
tasmāt karambhaḥ kārambhir devarāto 'bhavan nṛpaḥ
devakṣatro 'bhavat tasya daivakṣatrir mahātmanaḥ //
devagarbhasamo jajñe devakṣatrasya nandanaḥ
madhūnāṃ vaṃśakṛd rājā madhur madhuravāg api //
madhor jajñe tu vaidarbhyāṃ purutvān puruṣottamaḥ
Note: k: Dn (B2.3 line 2 only after 26b) ins.: :kputro maruvasas tathā |
āsīn maruvasaḥ putraḥ |
mātā jajñe 'tha vaidarbhyāṃ bhadravatyāṃ kurūdvaha //
ekṣvākī cābhavad bhāryā mātus tasyām ajāyata
sarvasattvaguṇopetaḥ sātvatāṃ kīrtivardhanaḥ //
Note: k: G1.3.5 ins.: :k
yatrāsan sadguṇopetāḥ sātvatāḥ kulavardhanāḥ |
imāṃ visṛṣṭiṃ vijñāya jyāmaghasya mahātmanaḥ
yujyate parayā prītyā prajāvāṃś ca bhavaty uta //
Note: h: HV (CE) chapter 27, transliterated by Christophe Vielle :h
satvataḥ sattvasaṃpannān kausalyā suṣuve sutān
bhajinaṃ bhajamānaṃ ca divyaṃ devāvṛdhaṃ nṛpam //
andhakaṃ ca mahābāhuṃ vṛṣṇiṃ ca yadunandanam
teṣāṃ visargāś catvāro vistareṇeha tāṅ śṛṇu //
bhajamānasya sṛñjayyau bāhyakā copabāhyakā
āstāṃ bhārye tayos tasmāj jajñire bahavaḥ sutāḥ //
nimiś ca kramaṇaś caiva viṣṇuḥ śūraḥ puraṃjayaḥ
ete bāhyakasṛñjayyāṃ bhajamānād vijajñire //
āyutājit sahasrājic chatājic cātha dāsakaḥ
upabāhyakasṛñjayyāṃ bhajamānād vijajñire //
yajvā devāvṛdho rājā cacāra vipulaṃ tapaḥ
putraḥ sarvaguṇopeto mama syād iti niścitaḥ //
saṃyujyātmānam evaṃ sa parṇāśāyā jalaṃ spṛśan
sadopaspṛśatas tasya cakāra priyam āpagā //
cintayābhiparītā sā jagāmaikaviniścayam
kalyāṇatvān narapates tasya sā nimnagottamā //
nādhyagacchata tāṃ nārīṃ yasyām evaṃvidhaḥ sutaḥ
Note: k: D3 ins.: :kbhavet sarvaguṇopeto rājño devāvṛdhasya ca |
jāyet tasmāt svayaṃ hanta bhavāmy asya sahavratā //
atha bhūtvā kumārī sā bibhratī paramaṃ vapuḥ
varayām āsa nṛpatiṃ tām iyeṣa ca sa prabhuḥ //
Note: k: N (except Ś1 Ñ1) T3.4 ins.: :k
tasyām ādhatta garbhaṃ sa tejasvinamudāradhīḥ |
atha sā daśame māsi suṣuve saritāṃ varā
putraṃ sarvaguṇopetaṃ babhruṃ devāvṛdhān nṛpāt //
anuvaṃśe purāṇajñā gāyantīti pariśrutam
guṇān devāvṛdhasyātha kīrtayanto mahātmanaḥ //
yathaivāgre śrutaṃ dūrād apaśyāma tathāntikāt
babhruḥ śreṣṭho manuṣyāṇāṃ devair devāvṛdhaḥ samaḥ //
ṣaṣṭiś ca ṣaṭ ca puruṣāḥ sahasrāṇi ca sapta ca
ete 'mṛtatvaṃ saṃprāptā babhror daivāvṛdhād iti //
yajvā dānapatir dhīmān brahmaṇyaḥ sudṛḍhāyudhaḥ
Note: k: B3 Dn ins.: :kkīrtimāṃś ca mahātejāḥ sātvatānāṃ mahārathaḥ |
tasyānvavāyaḥ sumahān bhojā ye mārtikāvatāḥ //
andhakāt kāśyaduhitā caturo 'labhatātmajān
kukuraṃ bhajamānaṃ ca śamiṃ kambalabarhiṣam //
kukurasya suto dhṛṣṇur dhṛṣṇos tu tanayas tathā
kapotaromā tasyātha taittiris tanayo 'bhavat
jajñe punar vasus tasmād abhijit tu punar vasoḥ //
tasya vai putramithunaṃ babhūvābhijitaḥ kila
āhukaś cāhukī caiva khyātau khyātimatāṃ varau //
imāś codāharanty atra gāthāḥ prati tam āhukam //
śvetena parivāreṇa kiśorapratimo mahān
aśīticarmaṇā yukto nāhukaḥ prathamaṃ vrajet //
nāputravān nāśatado nāsahasraśatāyudhaḥ
nāśuddhakarmā nāyajvā yo bhojam abhito vrajet //
pūrvasyāṃ diśi nāgānāṃ bhojasyety anumodanam
Note: k: N (except Ñ1 D6) T3.4 (Ś1 after 19, K1.3 after 20, K4 after 22) ins.: :ksopāsaṅgānukarṣāṇāṃ dhvajināṃ savarūthinām |
rathānāṃ meghaghoṣāṇāṃ sahasrāṇi daśaiva tu |
rūpyakāñcanakakṣyāṇāṃ sahasrāṇi daśāpi ca //
tāvanty eva sahasrāṇi uttarasyāṃ tathā diśi
ā bhūmipālān bhojān svān atiṣṭhan kiṃkiṇīkinaḥ //
āhukīṃ cāpy avantibhyaḥ svasāraṃ dadur andhakāḥ //
āhukasya tu kāśyāyāṃ dvau putrau saṃbabhūvatuḥ
devakaś cograsenaś ca devagarbhasamāv ubhau //
devakasyābhavan putrāś catvāras tridaśopamāḥ
devavān upadevaś ca sudevo devarakṣitaḥ
kumāryaḥ sapta cāpyāsan vasudevāya tā dadau //
devakī śāntidevā ca sudevā devarakṣitā
vṛkadevy upadevī ca sunāmnī caiva saptamī //
navograsenasya sutās teṣāṃ kaṃsas tu pūrvajaḥ
nyagrodhaś ca sunāmā ca kaṅkuśaṅkusubhūmayaḥ
rāṣṭrapālo 'tha sutanur anādhṛṣṭiś ca puṣṭimān //
eṣāṃ svasāraḥ pañcāsan kaṃsā kaṃsavatī tathā
sutanū rāṣṭrapālī ca kaṅkā caiva varāṅganā //
ugrasenaḥ sahāpatyo vyākhyātaḥ kukurodbhavaḥ //
kukurāṇām imaṃ vaṃśaṃ dhārayann amitaujasām
ātmano vipulaṃ vaṃśaṃ prajāvān āpnute naraḥ //
Note: h: HV (CE) chapter 28, transliterated by Horst Brinkhaus, proof-read by Horst Brinkhaus, version of March 24, 2000 :h
bhajamānasya putro 'tha rathamukhyo vidūrathaḥ
rājādhidevaḥ śūras tu vidūrathasuto 'bhavat //
rājādhidevasya sutā jajñire vīryavattarāḥ
dattātidattau balinau śoṇāśvaḥ śvetavāhanaḥ //
śamī ca daṇḍaśarmā ca dattaśatruś ca śatrujit
śravaṇā ca śraviṣṭhā ca svasārau saṃbabhūvatuḥ //
śamīputraḥ pratikṣatraḥ pratikṣatrasya cātmajaḥ
svayaṃbhojaḥ svayaṃbhojād dhṛdikaḥ saṃbabhūva ha //
tasya putrā babhūvur hi sarve bhīmaparākramāḥ
kṛtavarmāgrajas teṣāṃ śatadhanvā tu madhyamaḥ //
devāntaś ca narāntaś ca bhiṣag vaitaraṇaś ca yaḥ
sudāntaś cādhidāntaś ca kīnāśo dāmadambhakau //
devāntasyābhavat putro vidvān kambalabarhiṣaḥ
Note: k: T3 ins.: :kkroṣṭoḥ putro 'namitras tu tasmād vai devamīḍhuṣaḥ |
asamaujās tathā vīro nāsamaujāś ca tāv ubhau //
ajātaputrāya sutān pradadāv asamaujase
sudaṃṣṭraṃ ca sucāruṃ ca kṛṣṇam ity andhakāḥ smṛtāḥ //
Note: k: Ś1 K1.3.4 Ñ2.3 V1.3 B2 Dn D3 ins.: :k
ete cānye ca bahavo andhakāḥ kathitās tava |
andhakānām imaṃ vaṃśaṃ dhārayed yas tu nityaśaḥ |
ātmano vipulaṃ vaṃśaṃ labhate nātra saṃśayaḥ |
gāndhārī caiva mādrī ca kroṣṭor bhārye babhūvatuḥ
gāndhārī janayām āsa sumitraṃ mitranandanam //
mādrī yudhājitaṃ putraṃ tato vai devamīḍhuṣam
anamitram amitrāṇāṃ jetāraṃ ca mahābalam //
anamitrasuto nighno nighnasya dvau babhūvatuḥ
prasenaś cātha satrājic chatrusenājitāv ubhau //
praseno dvāravatyāṃ tu niviśantyāṃ mahāmaṇim
divyaṃ syamantakaṃ nāma samudrād upalabdhavān //
Note: k: K2.4 Ñ2.3 V B D T G M4 (K1.3 after 19ab) ins.: :k
tasya satrājitaḥ sūryaḥ sakhā prāṇasamo 'bhavat |
sa kadācin niśāpāye rathena rathināṃ varaḥ |
abdhikūlam upaspraṣṭum upasthātuṃ yayau ravim |
tasyopatiṣṭhataḥ sūryaṃ vivasvān agrataḥ sthitaḥ |
aspaṣṭamūrtir bhagavāṃs tejomaṇḍalavān prabhuḥ ||
atha rājā vivasvantam uvāca sthitam agrataḥ |
yathaiva vyomni paśyāmi sadā tvāṃ jyotiṣāṃ pate |
tejomaṇḍalinaṃ devaṃ tathaiva purataḥ sthitam |
ko viśeṣo 'sti me tvattaḥ sakhyenopāgatasya vai |
etac chrutvā tu bhagavān maṇiratnaṃ syamantakam ||
svakaṇṭhād avamucyaiva ekānte nyastavān bhuvi |
tato vigrahavantaṃ taṃ dadarśa nṛpatis tadā |
prītimān atha taṃ dṛṣṭvā muhūrtaṃ kṛtavān kathām |
tam abhiprasthitaṃ bhūyo vivasvantaṃ sa satrajit |
lokān udbhāsayasy etān yena tvaṃ satataṃ prabho ||
tad etan maṇiratnaṃ me bhagavan dātum arhasi |
tataḥ syamantakamaṇiṃ dattavāṃs tasya bhāskaraḥ |
sa tam ābadhya nagarīṃ praviveśa mahīpatiḥ |
taṃ janāḥ paryadhāvanta sūryo 'yaṃ gacchatīti ha |
purīṃ vismāpayitvā sa rājā tv antaḥpuraṃ yayau ||
tat prasenajite divyaṃ maṇiratnaṃ syamantakam |
dadau bhrātre narapatiḥ premṇā satrājid uttamam |
Note: k: After line 20, K4 ins.: :k
satrājit svagṛhaṃ śrīmat kṛtakautukamaṅgalam |
praviśya devasadane maṇiṃ viprair nyavedayat ||
dine dine svarṇabhārān aṣṭau sa sravati prabho |
Note: k: For lines 11-21, M4 subst.: :k
avatārya galāt tūrṇam ekānte saṃnyaveśayat |
tataḥ satrājitaḥ sūryaṃ jvalantaṃ vapuṣā tadā |
praṇipatya mahātmānaṃ kṛtāñjalir avasthitaḥ ||
stutvā ca vividhaiḥ stotraiḥ prīṇayām āsa bhāskaram |
tataḥ prasanno bhagavān vṛṇīṣva varam īpsitam ||
ity uvāca sa rājānaṃ sa ca vavre maṇiṃ tadā |
sa cāpi taṃ maṇiṃ dattvā tatraivāntaradhīyata ||
satrājic ca mahārāja maṇiratnaṃ syamantakam |
sa maṇiḥ syandate rukmaṃ vṛṣṇyandhakaniveśane
kālavarṣī ca parjanyo na ca vyādhibhayaṃ bhavet //
lipsāṃ cakre prasenāt tu maṇiratnaṃ syamantakam
govindo na ca taṃ lebhe śakto 'pi na jahāra saḥ //
kadācin mṛgayāṃ yātaḥ prasenas tena bhūṣitaḥ
syamantakakṛte siṃhād vadhaṃ prāpa vanecarāt //
atha siṃhaṃ pradhāvantam ṛkṣarājo mahābalaḥ
nihatya maṇiratnaṃ tam ādāya bilam āviśat //
tato vṛṣṇyandhakāḥ kṛṣṇaṃ prasenavadhakāraṇāt
prārthanāṃ tāṃ maṇer buddhvā sarva eva śaśaṅkire //
sa śaṅkyamāno dharmātmā nakārī tasya karmaṇaḥ
āhariṣye maṇim iti pratijñāya vanaṃ yayau //
Note: k: K4 ins.: :k
devadvijātibhakto 'yaṃ śriyaḥ sarvecaro 'pi ca |
Note: k: Ś1 K2 Ñ2.3 V B Ds D2-5 ins.: :k
yatra praseno bhṛgayām ācarat tatra cāpy atha |
prasenasya padaṃ gṛhya puruṣair āptakāribhiḥ
ṛkṣavantaṃ girivaraṃ vindhyaṃ ca girim uttamam //
anveṣayan pariśrāntaḥ sa dadarśa mahāmanāḥ
sāśvaṃ hataṃ prasenaṃ tu nāvindac caiva taṃ maṇim //
atha siṃhaḥ prasenasya śarīrasyāvidūrataḥ
ṛkṣena nihato dṛṣṭaḥ pādair ṛkṣasya sūcitaḥ //
pādais tair anviyāyātha guhām ṛkṣasya mādhavaḥ
mahaty ṛkṣabile vāṇīṃ śuśrāva pramaderitām //
dhātryā kumāram ādāya sutaṃ jāmbavato nṛpa
krīḍāpayantyā maṇinā mā rodīr ity atheritām //
siṃhaḥ prasenam avadhīt siṃho jāmbavatā hataḥ
sukumāraka mā rodīs tava hy eṣa syamantakaḥ //
vyaktīkṛtaś ca śabdaḥ sa tūrṇaṃ cāpi yayau bilam
Note: k: All Mss. except Ś1 Ñ1 M1-3 ins.: :kpraviśya cāpi bhagavāṃs tam ṛkṣabilam añjasā |
sthāpayitvā biladvāri yadūṃl lāṅgalinā saha |
śārṅgadhanvā bilasthaṃ tu jāmbavantaṃ dadarśa ha //
yuyudhe vāsudevas tu bile jāmbavatā saha
bāhubhyām eva govindo divasān ekaviṃsatim //
Note: k: K3.4 ins.: :k
sa vai bhagavatānena yuyudhe svāminātmanaḥ |
puruṣaṃ prākṛto matvā kupito nānubhāvavit |
dvaṃdvayuddhaṃ sutumulam ubhayor vijigīṣatoḥ |
āyudhāśmadrumair dorbhiḥ kravyārthe śyenayor iva |
praviṣṭe tu bilaṃ kṛṣṇe vasudevapuraḥsarāḥ
Note: k: K3 ins.: :kadṛṣṭvā nirgamaṃ śaureḥ praviṣṭasya bilaṃ janāḥ |
pratīkṣya dvādaśāhāni duḥkhitāḥ svapuraṃ yayuḥ |
punar dvāravatīm etya hataṃ kṛṣṇaṃ nyavedayan //
Note: k: K3 ins.: :k
niśamya devakī rājan rukmiṇy ānakaduṃdubhiḥ |
suhṛdo jñātayo 'śocan bilāt kṛṣṇam anirgatam |
vāsudevas tu nirjitya jāmbavantaṃ mahābalam
Note: k: For 28ab, K3 subst.: :kjāmbavantaṃ vinirjitya vāsudevo mahābalam |
lebhe jāmbavatīṃ kanyām ṛkṣarājasya saṃmatām //
maṇiṃ syamantakaṃ caiva jagrāhātmaviśuddhaye
anunīyarkṣarājānaṃ niryayau ca tadā bilāt //
Note: k: All Mss. except Ś1 Ñ1 M1-3 ins.: :k
dvārakām agamat kṛṣṇaḥ śriyā paramayā yutaḥ |
evaṃ sa maṇim āhṛtya viśodhyātmānam acyutaḥ
dadau satrājite taṃ vai sarvasātvatasaṃsadi //
evaṃ mithyābhiśastena kṛṣṇenāmitraghātinā
ātmā viśodhitaḥ pāpād vinirjitya syamantakam //
satrājito daśa tv āsan bhāryās tāsāṃ śataṃ sutāḥ
khyātimantas trayas teṣāṃ bhaṅgakāras tu pūrvajaḥ //
vīro vātapatiś caiva upasvāvāṃs tathaiva ca
kumāryaś cāpi tisro vai dikṣu khyātā narādhipa //
satyabhāmottamā strīṇāṃ vratinī ca dṛḍhavratā
tathā padmāvatī caiva bhāryāḥ kṛṣṇasya tā dadau //
sabhākṣo bhaṅgakārāt tu nāreyaś ca narottamau
jajñāte guṇasaṃpannau viśrutau guṇasaṃpadā //
madhoḥ putrasya jajñe 'tha pṛśniḥ putro yudhājitaḥ
jajñāte tanayau pṛśneḥ śvaphalkaś citrakas tathā //
śvaphalkaḥ kāśirājasya sutāṃ bhāryām avindata
gāṃdīṃ tasyās tu gāṃdītvaṃ sadā gāḥ pradadau hi sā //
tasyāṃ jajñe tadā vīraḥ śrutavān iti bhārata
akrūro 'tha mahābhāgo yajvā vipuladakṣiṇaḥ //
upāsaṅgas tathā madgur mṛduraś cārimardanaḥ
girikṣipas tathopekṣaḥ śatruhā cārimejayaḥ //
carmabhṛc cārivarmā ca gṛdhram ojā naras tathā
āvāhaprativāhau ca sundarā ca varāṅganā //
viśrutā sāmbamahiṣī kanyā cāsya vasuṃdharā
rūpayauvanasaṃpannā sarvasattvamanoharā //
akrūreṇaugrasenyāṃ tu sugātryāṃ kurunandana
sudevaś copadevaś ca jajñāte devavarcasau //
citrakasyābhavan putrāḥ pṛthur vipṛthur eva ca
aśvaseno 'śvabāhuś ca supārśvakagaveṣaṇau //
ariṣṭanemes tu sutā dharmo dharmabhṛd eva ca
subāhur bahubāhuś ca śraviṣṭḥāśravaṇe striyau //
imāṃ mithyābhiśastiṃ yaḥ kṛṣṇasya samudāhṛtām
veda mithyābhiśāpās taṃ na spṛśanti kadācana //
Note: Colophon
Note: h: HV (CE) chapter 29, transliterated by Horst Brinkhaus, proof-read by Horst Brinkhaus, version of February 22, 2000 :h
yat tat satrājite kṛṣṇo maṇiratnaṃ syamantakam
adāt tad dhārayad babhrur bhojena śatadhanvanā //
sadā hi prārthayām āsa satyabhāmām aninditām
akrūro 'ntaram anvicchan maṇiṃ caiva syamantakam //
satrājitaṃ tato hatvā śatadhanvā mahābalaḥ
rātrau taṃ maṇim ādāya tato 'krūrāya dattavān //
akrūras tu tadā ratnam ādāya bharatarṣabha
samayaṃ kārayāṃ cakre nāvedyo 'haṃ tvayācyute //
vayam abhyupapatsyāmaḥ kṛṣṇena tvāṃ pradharṣitam
mamādya dvārakā sarvā vaśe tiṣṭhaty asaṃśayam //
hate pitare duḥkhārtā satyabhāmā yaśasvinī
prayayau ratham āruhya nagaraṃ vāraṇāvatam //
satyabhāmā tu tad vṛttaṃ bhojasya śatadhanvanaḥ
bhartur nivedya duḥkhārtā pārśvasthāśrūṇy avartayat //
pāṇḍavāṇāṃ tu dagdhānāṃ hariḥ kṛtvodakaṃ tadā
kulyārthe ca sa bhrātṝṇāṃ nyayojayata sātyakim //
tatas tvaritam āgamya dvārakāṃ madhusūdanaḥ
pūrvajaṃ halinaṃ śrīmān idaṃ vacanam abravīt //
hataḥ prasenaḥ siṃhena satrājic chatadhanvanā
syamantakaḥ sa madgāmī tasya prabhur ahaṃ vibho //
tadāroha rathaṃ śīghraṃ bhojaṃ hatvā mahābalam
syamantako mahābāho saha nau sa bhaviṣyati //
Note: k: D6 T1-3 G1-3.5 ins.: :k
tato rathaṃ samāruhya rāmakṛṣṇau mahābalau |
śatadhanvavināśāya nagarād vāraṇāvatād |
śatadhanvā tato bhīto vijñāyācyutam āgatam |
tataḥ pravavṛte yuddhaṃ tumulaṃ bhojakṛṣṇayoḥ
śatadhanvā tato 'krūram avaikṣat sarvatodiśam //
anāptau ca vadhārhau ca kṛtvā bhojajanārdanau
śakto 'pi śāṭhyād dhārdikyaṃ nākrūro 'bhyupapadyata //
apayāne tato buddhiṃ bhojaś cakre bhayārditaḥ
yojanānāṃ śataṃ sāgraṃ hayayā pratyapadyata //
vikhyātā hṛdayā nāma śatayojanagāminī
bhojasya vaḍavā rājan yayā kṛṣṇam ayodhayat //
Note: k: D6 T G M4 ins.: :k
tataḥ kruddhau bhojakṛṣṇau tvaritau tu mahābalau |
vañcayitvā tataḥ kṛṣṇaṃ śatadhanvātibuddhimān |
pūrvāṃ diśaṃ jagāmāśu hayayā vātavegayā |
atha drutam agāt kṛṣṇo rathena rathināṃ varaḥ |
balena sahito rājan prayayau tasya mārgaṇe |
kṣīṇāṃ javena hṛdayām adhvanaḥ śatayojane
dṛṣṭvā rathasya svāṃ vṛddhiṃ śatadhanvānam ārdayat //
tatas tasyā hayāyās tu śramāt khedāc ca bhārata
kham utpetur atha prāṇāḥ kṛṣṇo rāmam athābravīt //
tiṣṭhasveha mahābāho dṛṣṭadoṣā hayā mayā
padbhyāṃ gatvā hariṣyāmi maṇiratnaṃ syamantakam //
padbhyām eva tato gatvā śatadhanvānam acyutaḥ
mithilām abhito rājañ jaghāna paramāstravit //
syamantakaṃ ca nāpaśyad dhatvā bhojaṃ mahābalam
nivṛttaṃ cābravīt kṛṣṇaṃ ratnaṃ dehīti lāṅgalī //
nāstīti kṛṣṇaś covāca tato rāmo ruṣānvitaḥ
dhikśabdapūrvam asakṛt pratyuvāca janārdanam //
bhrātṛtvān marṣayāmy eṣa svasti te 'stu vrajāmy aham
kṛtyaṃ na me dvārakayā na tvayā na ca vṛṣṇibhiḥ //
praviveśa tato rāmo mithilām arimardanaḥ
sarvakāmair upacitair maithilenābhipūjitaḥ //
etasminn eva kāle tu babhrur matimatāṃ varaḥ
nānārūpān kratūn sarvān ājahāra nirargalān //
dīkṣāmayaṃ sa kavacaṃ rakṣārthaṃ praviveśa ha
syamantakakṛte prājño gāṃdīputro mahāyaśāḥ //
arthān ratnāni cāgryāṇi dravyāṇi vividhāni ca
ṣaṣṭiṃ varṣāṇi dharmātmā yajñeṣu viniyojayat //
akrūrayajñā iti te khyātās tasya mahātmanaḥ
bahvannadakṣiṇāḥ sarve sarvakāmapradāyinaḥ //
atha duryodhano rājā gatvā sa mithilāṃ prabhuḥ
gadāśikṣāṃ tato divyāṃ balabhadrād avāptavān //
prasādya tu tato rāmo vṛṣṇyandhakamahārathaiḥ
ānīto dvārakām eva kṛṣṇena ca mahātmanā //
akrūras tv andhakaiḥ sārdham apāyād bharatarṣabha
hatvā satrājitaṃ yuddhe sahabandhuṃ mahābalī //
Note: k: Ñ2 ins.: :k
śvaphalkatanayāyāṃ tu tārāyāṃ narasattamau |
bhaṅgakārasya tanayau viśrutau ca mahābalau |
jajñāte 'ndhakamukhyasya śatrughno bandhumāṃś ca tau |
varāt tu bhaṅgakārasya sa kṛṣṇapratimo 'bhavat |
jñātibhedabhayāt kṛṣṇas tam upekṣitavān atha
apayāte tadākrūre nāvarṣat pākaśāsanaḥ //
anāvṛṣṭyā tadā rāṣṭram abhavad bahudhā kṛśam
tataḥ prasādayām āsur akrūraṃ kukurāndhakāḥ //
punar dvāravatīṃ prāpte tasmin dānapatau tataḥ
pravavarṣa sahasrākṣaḥ kacche jalanidhes tadā //
kanyāṃ ca vāsudevāya svasāraṃ śīlasaṃmatām
akrūraḥ pradadau dhīmān prītyarthaṃ kurunandana //
atha vijñāya yogena kṛṣṇo babhrugataṃ maṇim
sabhāmadhyagataṃ prāha tam akrūraṃ janārdanaḥ //
yat tad ratnaṃ maṇivaraṃ tava hastagataṃ vibho
tat prayacchasva mānārha mayi mānāryakaṃ kṛthāḥ //
ṣaṣṭivarṣagate kāle yad roṣo 'bhūt tadā mama
sa saṃrūḍho 'sakṛtprāptas tataḥ kālātyayo mahān //
tataḥ kṛṣṇasya vacanāt sarvasātvatasaṃsadi
pradadau taṃ maṇiṃ babhrur akleśena mahāmatiḥ //
tatas tam āryavatprāptaṃ babhror hastād ariṃdamaḥ
dadau hṛṣṭamanāḥ kṛṣṇas taṃ maṇiṃ babhrave punaḥ //
sa kṛṣṇahastāt saṃprāpya maṇiratnaṃ syamantakam
ābadhya gāṃdinīputro virarājāṃśumān iva //
Note: k: K4 Dn Ds D5 ins.: :k
yas tv evaṃ śṛṇuyān nityaṃ śucir bhūtvā samāhitaḥ |
sukhānāṃ tat sakalpānāṃ phalabhāgī bhaviṣyati |
ā brahmabhavanāc cāpi yaśaḥkhyātir na saṃśayaḥ |
bhaviṣyati naraśreṣṭha satyam etad bravīmi te |
Note: k: D6 T G ins.: :k
tataḥ sarve yaduvarā hṛṣṭāḥ prāñjalayas tadā |
vavandire mahātmānaḥ kṛṣṇaṃ kamalalocanam |
Note: Colophon
Note: h: HV (CE) chapter 30, transliterated by Horst Brinkhaus, proof-read by Horst Brinkhaus, version of February 23, 2000 :h
vistareṇaiva sarvāṇi karmāṇi ripughātinaḥ
śrotum icchāmy aśeṣeṇa hareḥ kṛṣṇasya dhīmataḥ //
Note: k: After the ref., N (except Ś1) T1.3.4 ins.: :k
prādurbhāvaḥ purāṇeṣu viṣṇor amitatejasaḥ |
satāṃ kathayatāṃ eva vārāha iti naḥ śrutam |
na jāne tasya caritaṃ vidhiṃ naiva ca vistaram |
na karmaguṇasaṃtānaṃ na hetuṃ na manīṣitam |
kimātmako varāhaḥ sa kā mūrtiḥ kā ca devatā |
kimācāraḥ prabhāvo vā kiṃ vā tena purā kṛtam |
yajñārthaṃ samavetānāṃ miṣatāṃ ca dvijanmanām |
mahāvarāhacaritaṃ kṛṣṇadvaipāyaneritam |
yathā nārāyaṇo brahman vārāhaṃ rūpam āsthitaḥ |
daṃṣṭrayā gāṃ samudrasthāṃ ujjahārārisūdanaḥ |
karmaṇām ānupūrvyā ca prādurbhāvāś ca ye vibhoḥ
yā cāsya prakṛtir brahmaṃs tāṃ ca vyākhyātum arhasi //
kathaṃ ca bhagavān viṣṇuḥ sureśo 'riniṣūdanaḥ
vasudevakule dhīmān vāsudevatvam āgataḥ //
amarair āvṛtaṃ puṇyaṃ puṇyakṛdbhir alaṃkṛtam
devalokaṃ samutsṛjya martyalokam ihāgataḥ //
devamānuṣayor netā dyor bhuvaḥ prabhavo vibhuḥ
kimarthaṃ divvyam ātmānaṃ mānuṣye saṃnyayojayat //
yaś cakraṃ vartayaty eko mānuṣāṇām anāmayam
mānuṣye sa kathaṃ buddhiṃ cakre cakrabhṛtāṃ varaḥ //
gopāyanaṃ yaḥ kurute jagataḥ sārvalaukikam
sa kathaṃ gāṃ gato viṣṇur gopatvam agamad vibhuḥ //
mahābhūtāni bhūtātmā yo dadhāra cakāra ca
śrīgarbhaḥ sa kathaṃ garbhe striyā bhūcarayā dhṛtaḥ //
yena lokān kramair jitvā tribhis trīṃs tridaśepsayā
sthāpitā jagato mārgās trivargaprabhavās trayaḥ //
yo 'ntakāle jagat pītvā kṛtvā toyamayaṃ vapuḥ
lokam ekārṇavaṃ cakre dṛśyādṛśyena vartmanā //
yaḥ purāṇe purāṇātmā vārāhaṃ vapur āsthitaḥ
viṣāṇāgreṇa vasudhām ujjahārārisūdanaḥ //
yaḥ purā puruhūtārthe trailokyam idam avyayam
dadau jitvā vasumatīṃ surāṇāṃ surasattamaḥ //
yena saiṃhaṃ vapuḥ kṛtvā dvidhā kṛtvā ca tat punaḥ
pūrvadaityo mahāvīryo hiraṇyakaśipur hataḥ //
yaḥ purā hy analo bhūtvā aurvaḥ saṃvartako vibhuḥ
pātālastho 'rṇavagataṃ papau toyamayaṃ haviḥ //
sahasracaraṇaṃ brahman sahasrāṃśuṃ sahasraśaḥ
sahasraśirasaṃ devaṃ yam āhur vai yuge yuge //
nābhyaraṇyāṃ samutpannaṃ yasya paitāmahaṃ gṛham
ekārṇavagate loke tat paṅkajam apaṅkajam //
yena te nihatā daityāḥ saṃgrāme tārakāmaye
sarvadevamayaṃ kṛtvā sarvāyudhadharaṃ vapuḥ
garuḍasthena cotsiktaḥ kālanemir nipātitaḥ //
Note: k: K2.3 Ñ2.3 V B Dn Ds D2.4 ins.: :k
nirjitaś ca mahādaityas tārakaś ca mahāsuraḥ |
uttarānte samudrasya kṣīrodasyāmṛtodadheḥ
yaḥ śete śāśvataṃ yogam āsthāya timiraṃ mahat //
surāraṇir garbham adhatta divyaṃ tapaḥprakarṣād aditiḥ purāṇam
śakraṃ ca yo daityagaṇāvaruddhaṃ garbhāvasāne nakṛśaṃ cakāra //
padāni yo lokapadāni kṛtvā cakāra daityān salilāśayasthān
kṛtvā ca devāṃs tridivasya devāṃś cakre sureśaṃ puruhūtam eva //
Note: k: N (except Ś1) T G1.3.4 (G5 after 21) ins.: :k
pātrāṇi dakṣiṇā dīkṣā camasolūkhalāni ca |
gārhapatyena vidhinā anvāhāryeṇa karmaṇā
agnim āhavanīyaṃ ca vedīṃ caiva kuśān sruvam //
prokṣaṇīyaṃ dhruvāṃ caiva āvabhṛthyaṃ tathaiva ca
arāṃs trīṇi ca yaś cakre havyakavyapradān makhe //
havyādāṃś ca surāṃś cakre kavyādāṃś ca pitṝn api
bhāgārthe yajñavidhinā yogajño yajñakarmaṇi //
yūpān samit srucaṃ somaṃ pavitraṃ paridhīn api
yajñiyāni ca dravyāṇi yajñāṃś ca cayanānalān
sadasyāny ajamānāṃś ca medhādīṃś ca kratūttamān //
vibabhāja purā yaś ca pārameṣṭhyena karmaṇā
yugānurūpaṃ yaḥ kṛtvā lokān anu parikraman //
kṣaṇā nimeṣāḥ kāṣṭhāś ca kalās traikālyam eva ca
muhūrtās tithayo māsā dinasaṃvatsarās tathā //
ṛtavaḥ kālayogāś ca pramāṇaṃ vividhaṃ nṛṣu
āyuḥ kṣetrāṇy upacayo lakṣaṇaṃ rūpasauṣṭhavam //
trayo varṇās trayo lokās traividyaṃ pāvakās trayaḥ
traikālyaṃ trīṇi karmāṇi trayo 'pāyās trayo guṇāḥ
sṛṣṭā lokās trayo 'nantā yenānantyena vartmanā //
sarvabhūtaguṇasraṣṭā sarvabhūtaguṇātmakaḥ
nṛṇām indriyapūrveṇa yogena ramate ca yaḥ
gatāgatābhyāṃ yo netā tatreha ca vidhīśvaraḥ //
yo gatir dharmayuktānām agatiḥ pāpakarmaṇām
cāturvarṇyasya prabhavaś cāturvarṇyasya rakṣitā //
cāturvidyasya yo vettā cāturāśramyasaṃśrayaḥ
digantaro nabhobhūto vāyur vāyuvibhāvanaḥ //
candrasūryadvayaṃ jyotir yogīśaḥ kṣaṇadātanuḥ
yaḥ paraṃ śrūyate jyotir yaḥ paraṃ śrūyate tapaḥ //
yaḥ paraṃ prāha parataḥ paraṃ yaḥ paramātmavān
Note: k: Ñ2 V2.3 B Dn Ds D3.4.6 ins.: :knārāyaṇaparā vedā nārāyaṇaparāḥ kriyāḥ |
nārāyaṇaparo dharmo nārāyaṇaparā gatiḥ |
nārāyaṇaparaṃ satyaṃ nārāyaṇaparaṃ tapaḥ |
nārāyaṇaparo mokṣo nārāyaṇaparaṃ param |
ādityādis tu yo divyo yaś ca daityāntako vibhuḥ //
yugānteṣv antako yaś ca yaś ca lokāntakāntakaḥ
setur yo lokasetūnāṃ medhyo yo medhyakarmaṇām //
vedyo yo vedaviduṣāṃ prabhur yaḥ prabhavātmanām
somabhūtaś ca bhūtānām agnibhūto 'gnivarcasām //
manuṣyāṇāṃ manobhūtas tapobhūtas tapasvinām
vinayo nayavṛttānāṃ tejas tejasvinām api //
sargakāraś ca sargāṇāṃ lokahetur anuttamaḥ
vigraho vigrahārhāṇāṃ gatir gatimatām api //
ākāśaprabhavo vāyur vāyuprāṇo hutāśanaḥ
devā hutāśanaprāṇāḥ prāṇo 'gner madhusūdanaḥ //
rasād vai śoṇitaṃ bhavati śoṇitān māṃsam ucyate
māṃsāt tu medaso janma medaso 'sthi nirucyate //
asthno majjā samabhavan majjāyāḥ śukrasaṃbhavaḥ
śukrād narbhaḥ samabhavad rasamūlena karmaṇā //
tatrāpāṃ prathamo bhāgaḥ sa saumyo rāśir ucyate
garbhoṣmasaṃbhavo jñeyo dvitīyo rāśir ucyate //
śukraṃ somātmakaṃ vidyād ārtavaṃ pāvakātmakam
bhāvau rasānugāv etau vīryaṃ ca śaśipāvakau //
kaphavarge bhavec chukraṃ pittavarge ca śoṇitam
kaphasya hṛdayaṃ sthānaṃ nābhyāṃ pittaṃ pratiṣṭhitam //
dehasya madhye hṛdayaṃ sthānaṃ tu manasaḥ smṛtam
nābhikaṇṭhāntarasthas tu tatra devo hutāśanaḥ //
manaḥ prajāpatir jñeyaḥ kaphaḥ somo vibhāvyate
pittam agniḥ smṛtas tv evam agnīṣomamayaṃ jagat //
evaṃ pravartite garbhe vartite 'rbudasaṃnibhe
vāyuḥ praveśanaṃ cakre saṃgataḥ paramātmanā //
Note: k: After 46, K2-6 Ñ V B1.2 Dn Ds D1-4.5 (marg.) T G1.3-5 ins.: :k
tato 'ṅgāni visṛjati bibharti parivartayan |
sa pañcadhā śarīrastho bhidyate vardhate punaḥ
prāṇāpānau samānaś ca udāno vyāna eva ca //
prāṇo 'sya prathamaṃ sthānaṃ vardhayan parivartate
apānaḥ paścimaṃ kāyam udānordhvaṃ śarīriṇaḥ //
vyāno vyāyacchate yena samānaḥ saṃnivartate
bhūtāvāptis tatas tasya jāyatendriyagocarā //
pṛthivī vāyur ākāśam āpo jyotiś ca pañcamam
tasyendriyāṇi śiṣṭāni svaṃ svaṃ yogaṃ pracakrire //
pārthivaṃ deham āhus tu prāṇātmānaṃ ca mārutam
chidrāṇy ākāśayonīni jalasrāvaḥ pravartate //
jyotiś cakṣuṣi tejaś ca teṣāṃ yantṛ manaḥ smṛtam
grāmyāś ca viṣayāś caiva yasya vīryāt pravartitāḥ //
ity etān puruṣaḥ sarvān sṛjaṃl lokān sanātanān
naidhane 'smin kathaṃ loke naratvaṃ viṣṇur āgataḥ //
eṣa me saṃśayo brahmann eṣa me vismayo mahān
kathaṃ gatir gatimatām āpanno mānuṣīṃ tanum //
śruto me svasya vaṃśasya pūrvajānāṃ ca saṃbhavaḥ
śrotum icchāmi viṣṇos tu vṛṣṇīnāṃ ca yathākramam //
āścaryaṃ paramaṃ viṣṇur devair daityaiś ca kathyate
viṣṇor utpattim āścaryaṃ mamācakṣva mahāmune //
etad āścaryam ākhyānaṃ kathayasva sukhāvaham
prakhyātabalavīryasya viṣṇor amitatejasaḥ
karmaṇāścaryabhūtasya viṣṇos tattvam ihocyatām //
Note: k: D6 T1.2 G M3.4 ins.: :k
vyāpino devadevasya saṃbhavaṃ vaktum arhasi |
Note: Colophon
Note: h: HV (CE) chapter 31, transliterated by Horst Brinkhaus, proof-read by Horst Brinkhaus, version of February 23, 2000 :h
praśnabhāro mahāṃs tāta tvayoktaḥ śārṅgadhanvani
yathāśakti tu vakṣyāmi śrūyatāṃ vaiṣṇavaṃ yaśaḥ //
viṣṇoḥ prabhāvaśravaṇe diṣṭyā te matir utthitā
hanta viṣṇoḥ samastās tvaṃ śṛṇu divyāḥ pravṛttayaḥ //
sahasrāsyaṃ sahasrākṣaṃ sahasracaraṇaṃ ca yam
sahasraśirasaṃ devaṃ sahasrakaram avyayam //
Note: k: Ñ2 ins.: :k
sahasrayugaparyantaṃ sahasraparivatsaram |
sahasraśatadhā bhūtvā pralayaṃ kārayet tu yaḥ |
sahasrajihvaṃ bhāsvantaṃ sahasramukuṭaṃ prabhum
sahasradaṃ sahasrādiṃ sahasrabhujam avyayam //
savanaṃ havanaṃ caiva havyaṃ hotāram eva ca
pātrāṇi ca pavitrāṇi vediṃ dīkṣāṃ caruṃ sruvam //
sruksomaśūrpam upabhṛt prokṣaṇīṃ dakṣiṇāyanam
adhvaryuṃ sāmagaṃ vipraṃ sadasyaṃ sadanaṃ savam //
yūpaṃ samitsruvaṃ darvīṃ camasolūkhalāni ca
prāgvaṃśaṃ yajñabhūmiṃ ca hotāraṃ cayanaṃ ca yat //
hrasvāny atipramāṇāni sthāvarāṇi carāṇi ca
prāyaścittāni cārghyaṃ ca sthaṇḍilāni kuśāṃs tathā //
mantraṃ yajñavahaṃ vahniṃ bhāgaṃ bhāgavahaṃ ca yat
agrebhujaṃ somabhujaṃ hutārciṣam udāyudham
āhur vedavido viprā yaṃ yajñaṃ śāśvataṃ vibhum //
tasya viṣṇoḥ sureśasya śrīvatsāṅkasya dhīmataḥ
prādurbhāvasahasrāṇi samatītāny anekaśaḥ
Note: k: T3 ins.: :ksarvayajñamukhaṃ devaṃ sarvayajñapravartinam |
bhūyaś caiva bhaviṣyantīty evam āha pitāmahaḥ //
yat pṛcchasi mahārāja divyāṃ puṇyāṃ kathāṃ śubhām
kimarthaṃ bhagavān viṣṇur vasudevakule 'bhavat //
Note: k: K2 Dn Ds ins.: :k
sureśo ripusūdanaḥ |
devalokaṃ samutsṛjya |
tat te 'haṃ saṃpravakṣyāmi śṛṇu sarvam aśeṣataḥ
vāsudevasya māhātmyaṃ caritaṃ ca mahādyuteḥ //
hitārthaṃ suramartyānāṃ lokānāṃ prabhavāya ca
bahuśaḥ sarvabhūtātmā prādurbhavati kāryataḥ
prādurbhāvāṃś ca vakṣyāmi puṇyān devaguṇair yutān //
Note: k: K1.3.4 Ñ2.3 V B D T1.3.4 G4.5 K2 (after 13d) G3 (after *461) ins.: :k
chāndasībhir udārābhiḥ śrutibhiḥ samalaṃkṛtān |
śuciḥ prayatavāg bhūtvā nibodha janamejaya |
idaṃ purāṇaṃ paramaṃ puṇyaṃ vedaiś ca saṃmitam |
hanta te kathayiṣyāmi viṣṇor divyāṃ kathāṃ śṛṇu |
Note: k: K2.3 Ñ2.3 V B D(except D1.3) G4 ins.: :k
yadā yadā hi dharmasya glānir bhavati bhārata |
dharmasaṃsthāpanārthāya tadā saṃbhavati prabhuḥ |
tasya hy ekā mahārāja mūrtir bhavati sattama |
nityaṃ diviṣṭhā yā rājaṃs tapaś carati duścaram |
dvitīyā cāsya śayane nidrāyogam upāyayau |
prajāsaṃhārasargārthaṃ kim adhyātmavicintakam |
suptvā yugasahasraṃ sa prādurbhavati kāryavān
pūrṇe yugasahasre tu devadevo jagatpatiḥ //
Note: k: K2.4, Ñ, V, B, Dn, Ds, D2-6, T1.3.4 K1.3(after 15) D1(after 15ab) ins.: :k
pitāmaho lokapālāś candrādityau hutāśanaḥ |
brahmā ca kapilaś caiva parameṣṭhī tathaiva ca
devāḥ saptarṣayaś caiva tryambakaś ca mahāyaśāḥ //
Note: k: K, Ñ, V, B, D, T1.3.4, G3-5 ins.: :k
vāyuḥ samudrāḥ śailāś ca tasya dehe samāśritāḥ |
sanatkumāraś ca mahānubhāvo manur mahātmā bhagavān prajākaraḥ
purāṇadevo 'tha purāṇi cakre pradīptavaiśvānaratulyatejāḥ //
yena cārṇavamadhyasthau naṣṭe sthāvarajaṃgame
naṣṭe devāsuranare pranaṣṭoragarākṣase //
yoddhukāmau sudurdharṣau dānavau madhukaiṭabhau
hatau prabhavatā tena tayor dattvāmitaṃ varam //
purā kamalanābhasya svapataḥ sāgarāmbhasi
puṣkare yatra saṃbhūtā devāḥ sarṣigaṇāḥ purā //
eṣa pauṣkarako nāma prādurbhāvaḥ prakīrtitaḥ
purāṇaṃ kathyate yatra vedaśrutisamāhitam //
vārāhas tu śrutisukhaḥ prādurbhāvo mahātmanaḥ
yatra viṣṇuḥ suraśreṣṭho vārāhaṃ rūpam āsthitaḥ //
Note: k: K1.2, Ñ, V, B, Ds, D1.2.5.6, T, G, M3.4 ins.: :k
mahīṃ sāgaraparyantāṃ saśailavanakānanām |
vedapādo yūpadaṃṣṭraḥ kratudantaś citīmukhaḥ
agnijihvo darbhalomā brahmaśīrṣo mahātapāḥ //
ahorātrekṣaṇo divyo vedāṅgaśrutibhūṣaṇaḥ
ājyanāsaḥ sruvas tuṇḍaḥ sāmaghoṣasvano mahān //
dharmasatyamayaḥ śrīmān kramavikramasatkṛtaḥ
prāyaścittanakho dhīraḥ paśujānur mahāvṛṣaḥ //
udgātrāntro homaliṅgaḥ phalabījamahauṣadhiḥ
vāyvantarātmā mantrasphig vikṛtaḥ somaśoṇitaḥ //
vediskandho havirgandho havyakavyātivegavān
prāgvaṃśakāyo dyutimān nānādīkṣābhir ācitaḥ //
dakṣiṇāhṛdayo yogī mahāsatramayo mahān
upākarmeṣṭharucakaḥ pravargyāvartabhūṣaṇaḥ
Note: k: All Mss. (except Ś1 Ñ1 M1-3) ins.: :knānāchandogatipatho guhyopaniṣadāsanaḥ |
chāyāpatnīsahāyo vai maṇiśṛṅga ivocchritaḥ //
Note: k: T1.2 G M4 D6 (after 28ab) ins.: :k
rasātalatale magnāṃ rasātalatalaṃ gataḥ |
mahīṃ sāgaraparyantāṃ saśailavanakānanām
ekārṇavajale bhraṣṭām ekārṇavagatiḥ prabhuḥ //
Note: k: D6 T1.2 G1-3.5 M4 ins.: :k
pūrvaṃ lokahitārthāya daṃṭrābhyām ujjahāra gām |
tataḥ svasthānam ānīya pṛthivīṃ pṛthivīśvaraḥ |
mumoca pūrvaṃ manasā dhārayitvā dharādharān |
sadyo jagāma nirvāṇaṃ medinī tasya dhāraṇāt |
cakāra ca namaskāraṃ tasmai devāya vedhase |
daṃṣṭrayā yaḥ samuddhṛtya lokānāṃ hitakāmyayā
sahasraśīrṣo devādiś cakāra jagatīṃ punaḥ //
evaṃ yajñavarāheṇa bhūtvā bhūtahitārthinā
uddhṛtā pṛthivī devī sāgarāmbudharā purā //
vārāha eṣa kathito nārasiṃham ataḥ śṛṇu
yatra bhūtvā mṛgendreṇa hiraṇyakaśipur hataḥ //
purā kṛtayuge rājan surārir baladarpitaḥ
daityānām ādipuruṣaś cakāra tapa uttamam //
daśa varśasahasrāṇi śatāni daśa pañca ca
jalopavāsas tasyāsīt sthānamaunadṛḍhavrataḥ //
tataḥ śamadamābhyāṃ ca brahmacaryeṇa cānagha
brahmā prītamanās tasya tapasā niyamena ca //
taṃ vai svayaṃbhūr bhagavān svayam āgamya bhūpate
vimānenārkavarṇena haṃsayuktena bhāsvatā //
ādityair vasubhiḥ sādhyair marudbhir daivataiḥ saha
rudrair viśvasahāyaiś ca yakṣarākṣasakiṃnaraiḥ //
diśābhir vidiśābhiś ca nadībhiḥ sāgarais tathā
nakṣatraiś ca muhūrtaiś ca khecaraiś ca mahāgrahaiḥ //
devarṣibhis tapovṛddhaiḥ siddhaiḥ saptarṣibhis tathā
rājarṣibhiḥ puṇyatamair gandharvair apsarogaṇaiḥ //
carācaraguruḥ śrīmān vṛtaḥ sarvaiḥ surais tathā
brahmā brahmavidāṃ śreṣṭho daityaṃ vacanam abravīt //
prīto 'smi tava bhaktasya tapasānena suvrata
varaṃ varaya bhadraṃ te yatheṣṭaṃ kāmam āpnuhi //
na devāsuragandharvā na yakṣoragarākṣsāḥ
na mānuṣāḥ piśācā vā hanyur māṃ devasattama //
ṛṣayo vā na māṃ śāpaiḥ kruddhā lokapitāmaha
śapeyus tapasā yuktā varam etaṃ vṛṇomy aham //
na śastreṇa na cāstreṇa giriṇā pādapena vā
na śuṣkeṇa na cārdreṇa syān na cānyena me vadhaḥ //
Note: k: N (except Ś1) T1.3.4 G1.3-5 ins.: :k
pāṇiprahāreṇaikena sabhṛtyabalavāhanam |
yo māṃ nāśayituṃ śaktaḥ sa me mṛtyur bhaviṣyati |
Note: k: M2 ins.: :k
nākāśe vā na bhūmau vā rātrau vā divase 'pi vā |
nāntar vā na bahir vāpi syād vadho me pitāmaha |
paśubhir vā mṛgendrair vā pakṣibhir vā sarīsṛpaiḥ |
bhaveyam aham evārkaḥ somo vāyur hutāśanaḥ
salilaṃ cāntarikṣaṃ ca nakṣatrāṇi diśo daśa //
ahaṃ krodhaś ca kāmaś ca varuṇo vāsavo yamaḥ
dhanadaś ca dhanādhyakṣo yakṣaḥ kiṃpuruṣādhipaḥ //
Note: k: K4 V2.3 Dn D1.2.5 ins.: :k
evam uktas tu daityena svayaṃbhur bhagavāṃs tadā |
uvāca daityarājaṃ taṃ prahasan nṛpasattama |
Note: k: Ds1 ins.: :k
na divā na ca rātrau vā na me mṛtyur bhaviṣyati |
ete divyā varās tāta mayā dattās tavādbhutāḥ
sarvān kāmān imāṃs tāta prāpsyasi tvaṃ na saṃśayaḥ //
evam uktvā tu bhagavāñ jagāmākāśam eva ha
vairājaṃ brahmasadanaṃ brahmarṣigaṇasevitam //
Note: k: K2-4 Ñ2.3 V B Dn D1.2.4-6 T3.4 Ds(after 48) ins.: :k
śrutvā devā varaṃ taṃ ca dattaṃ salilayoninā |
vibhuṃ vijñāpayām āsur devāḥ śakrapurogamāḥ |
tato devāś ca nāgāś ca gandharvā munayas tathā
varapradānaṃ śrutvaiva pitāmaham upasthitāḥ //
varadānena bhagavan vadhiṣyati sa no 'suraḥ
tat prasīdasva bhagavan vadho 'sya pravicintyatām //
bhagavān sarvabhūtānāṃ svayaṃbhūr ādikṛd vibhuḥ
sraṣṭā ca havyakavyānām avyaktaḥ prakṛtir dhruvaḥ //
tato lokahitaṃ vākyaṃ śrutvā devaḥ prajāpatiḥ
provāca bhagavān vākyaṃ sarvān devagaṇāṃs tadā //
avaśyaṃ tridaśās tena prāptavyaṃ tapasaḥ phalam
tapaso 'nte 'sya bhagavān vadhaṃ viṣṇuḥ kariṣyati //
etac chrutvā surāḥ sarve vākyaṃ paṅkajajanmanaḥ
svāni sthānāni divyāni jagmus te vai mudā yutāḥ //
labdhamātre vare cāpi sarvāḥ so 'bādhata prajāḥ
hiraṇyakaśipur daityo varadānena darpitaḥ //
āśrameṣu mahābhāgān munīn vai saṃśitavratān
satyadharmaratān dāntān purā dharṣitavāṃs tu saḥ //
devāṃs tribhuvanasthāṃś ca parājitya mahāsuraḥ
trailokyaṃ vaśam ānīya svarge vasati dānavaḥ //
yadā varamadonmatto nyavasad dānavo bhuvi
yajñiyān akarod daityān ayajñīyāś ca devatāḥ //
ādityāś ca tataḥ sādhyā viśve 'tha vasavas tathā
Note: k: D6 T G M4 ins.: :kmaruto 'psarasaś caiva gandharvā brahmaviddvijāḥ |
ṛṣināgāḥ suparṇāś ca ye cānye 'py evamādayaḥ |
śaraṇyaṃ śaraṇaṃ viṣṇum upatasthur mahābalam //
devaṃ brahmamayaṃ yajñaṃ brahmadevaṃ sanātanam
bhūtabhavyabhaviṣyasya prabhuṃ lokanamaskṛtam
nārāyaṇaṃ vibhuḥ devāḥ śaraṇyaṃ śaraṇyaṃ gatāḥ //
trāyasva no 'dya deveśa hiraṇyakaśipor vadhāt
tvaṃ hi na paramo devas tvaṃ hi na paramo guruḥ
tvaṃ hi naḥ paramo dhātā brahmādīnāṃ surottama //
utphullāmbujapatrākṣa śatrupakṣabhayāvaha
kṣayāya ditivaṃśasya śaraṇaṃ tvaṃ bhavasva naḥ //
bhayaṃ tyajadhvam amarā abhayaṃ vo dadāmy aham
tathaiva tridivaṃ devāḥ pratipadyata māciram //
eṣo 'haṃ sagaṇaṃ daityaṃ varadānena darpitam
avadhyam amarendrāṇāṃ dānavendraṃ nihanmi tam //
evam uktvā sa bhagavān visṛjya tridaśeśvarān
hiraṇyakaśipo rājann ājagāma hariḥ sabhām //
Note: k: V2 B Ds subst. for 64cd: :k
sabhāṃ hiraṇyakaśipor jagāma harir īśvaraḥ |
narasya kṛtvārdhatanuṃ siṃhasyārdhatanuṃ tathā
nārasiṃhena vapuṣā pāṇiṃ saṃspṛśya pāṇinā //
jīmūtaghanasaṃkāśo jīmūtaghananisvanaḥ
jīmūtaghanadīptaujā jīmūta iva vegavān //
Note: k: Ś1 ins.: :k
devādir ditijān vīro nṛsiṃhaḥ samupādravat |
samutpatya nakhais tīkṣṇair vidārya nihato yudhi |
daityaṃ so 'tibalaṃ dṛptaṃ dṛptaśārdūlavikramam
dṛptair daityagaṇair guptaṃ hatavān ekapāṇinā //
nṛsiṃha eṣa kathito bhūyo 'yaṃ vāmano 'paraḥ
yatra vāmanam āśritya rūpaṃ daityavināśanam //
baler balavato yajñe balinā viṣṇunā purā
vikramais tribhir akṣobhyāḥ kṣobhitās te mahāsurāḥ //
vipracittiḥ śibiḥ śaṅkur ayaḥśaṅkus tathaiva ca
ayaḥśirā aśvaśirā hayagrīvaś ca vīryavān
vegavān ketumān ugraḥ sogravyagro mahāsuraḥ //
puṣkaraḥ puṣkalaś caiva sāśvo 'śvapatir eva ca
prahrādo 'śvaśirāḥ kumbhaḥ saṃhrādo gaganapriyaḥ //
anuhrādo hariharau varāhaḥ saṃharo rujaḥ
Note: k: Bom. and Poona eds. ins. after 71a: :kvepanaś ca mahārathaḥ |
bṛhatkīrtir mahājihvaḥ |
śarabhaḥ śalabhaś caiva kupanaḥ kopanaḥ krathaḥ //
bṛhatkīrtir mahājihvaḥ śaṅkukarṇo mahāsvanaḥ
dīrghajihvo 'rkanayano mṛdupādo mṛdupriyaḥ //
vāyur gaviṣṭho namuciḥ śambaro vikṣaro mahān
candrahantā krodhahantā krodhavardhana eva ca //
kālakaḥ kālakeyaś ca vṛtraḥ krodho virocanaḥ
gariṣṭhaś ca variṣṭhaś ca pralambanarakāv ubhau //
indratāpanavātāpī ketumān baladarpitaḥ
asilomā pulomā ca bāṣkalaḥ pramado madaḥ //
khasṛmaḥ kālavadanaḥ karālaḥ keśir eva ca
ekākṣaś candrahā rāhuḥ saṃhrādaḥ sṛmaraḥ svanaḥ //
śataghnīcakrahastāś ca tathā parighapāṇayaḥ
aśmayantrāyudhopetā bhiṇḍipālāyudhās tathā //
śūlolūkhalahastāś ca paraśvadhadharās tathā
pāśamudgarahastā vai tathā laguḍapāṇayaḥ //
mahāśilāpraharaṇāḥ śūlahastāś ca dānavāḥ
nānāpraharaṇā ghorā nānāveṣā mahājavāḥ //
kūrmakukkuṭavaktrāś ca śaśolūkamukhās tathā
kharoṣṭravadanāś caiva varāhavadanās tathā //
bhīmā makaravaktrāś ca kroṣṭuvaktrāś ca dānavāḥ
ākhudarduravaktrāś ca ghorā vṛkamukhās tathā //
mārjāraśaśavaktrāś ca mahāvaktrās tathāpare
nakrameṣānanāḥ śūrā gojāvimahiṣānanāḥ //
godhāśalyakavaktrāś ca krauñcavaktrās tathāpare
garuḍānanāḥ khaḍgamukhā mayūravadanās tathā //
gajendracarmavasanās tathā kṛṣṇājināmbarāḥ
cīrasaṃvṛtagātrāś ca tathā valkalavāsasaḥ //
uṣṇīṣiṇo mukuṭinas tathā kuṇḍalino 'surāḥ
kirīṭino lambaśikhāḥ kambugrīvāḥ suvarcasaḥ
nānāveṣadharā daityā nānāmālyānulepanāḥ //
svāny āyudhāni saṃgṛhya pradīptānīva tejasā
kramamāṇaṃ hṛṣīkeśam upāvartanta sarvaśaḥ //
pramathya sarvāndaiteyān pādahastatalais tataḥ
rūpaṃ kṛtvā mahābhīṃaṃ jahārāśu sa medinīm //
tasya vikramato bhūmiṃ candrādityau stanāntare
nabhaḥ prakramamāṇasya nābhyāṃ kila samāsthitau //
paramākramamāṇasya jānubhyāṃ tau vyavasthitau
viṣṇor amitavīryasya vadanty evaṃ dvijātayaḥ //
hṛtvā sa medinīṃ kṛtsnāṃ hatvā cāsurapuṃgavān
dadau śakrāya vasudhāṃ viṣṇur balavatāṃ varaḥ //
eṣa te vāmano nāma prādurbhāvo mahātmanaḥ
vedavidbhir dvijair etat kathyate vaiṣṇavaṃ yaśaḥ //
bhūyo bhūtātmano viṣṇoḥ prādurbhāvo mahātmanaḥ
dattātreya iti khyātaḥ kṣamayā parayā yutaḥ //
tena naṣṭeṣu deveṣu prakriyāsu makheṣu ca
cāturvarṇye ca saṃkīrṇe dharme śithilatāṃ gate //
abhivardhati cādharme satye naṣṭe 'nṛte sthite
prajāsu śīryamāṇāsu dharme cākulatāṃ gate //
sayajñāḥ sakriyā vedāḥ pratyānītā hi tena vai
cāturvarṇyam asaṃkīrṇaṃ kṛtaṃ tena mahātmanā //
tena hehayarājasya kārtavīryasya dhīmataḥ
varadena varo datto dattātreyeṇa dhīmatā //
etad bāhudvayaṃ yat te tat te mama kṛte nṛpa
śatāni daśa bāhūnāṃ bhaviṣyati na saṃśayaḥ //
pālayiṣyasi kṛtsnāṃ ca vasudhāṃ vasudheśvara
durnirīkṣyo 'rivṛndānāṃ yuddhasthaś ca bhaviṣyasi //
eṣa te vaiṣṇavaḥ śrīmān prādurbhāvo 'dbhutaḥ śubhaḥ
Note: k: Ñ2.3 V B D2 M3 ins.: :kkathito vai mahārāja yathāśrutam ariṃdama |
bhūyaś ca jāmadagnyo 'yaṃ prādurbhāvo mahātmanaḥ //
yatra bāhusahasreṇa vismitaṃ durjayaṃ raṇe
rāmo 'rjunam anīkasthaṃ jaghāna nṛpatiṃ prabhuḥ //
rathasthaṃ pārthivaṃ rāmaḥ pātayitvārjunaṃ bhuvi
dharṣayitvā yathākāmaṃ krośamānaṃ ca meghavat //
kṛtsnaṃ bāhusahasraṃ ca ciccheda bhṛgunandanaḥ
paraśvadhena dīptena jñātibhiḥ sahitasya vai //
kīrṇā kṣatriyakoṭībhir merumandarabhūṣaṇā
triḥsaptakṛtvaḥ pṛthivī tena niḥkṣatriyā kṛtā //
kṛtvā niḥkṣatriyāṃ caiva bhārgavaḥ sumahātapāḥ
sarvapāpavināśāya vājimedhena ceṣṭavān //
tasmin yajñe mahādāne dakṣiṇāṃ bhṛgunandanaḥ
mārīcāya dadau prītaḥ kaśyapāya vasuṃdharām //
vāruṇāṃs turagāñ śubhrān rathaṃ ca rathināṃ varaḥ
hiraṇyam akṣayaṃ dhenūr gajendrāṃś ca mahāmatiḥ
dadau tasmin mahāyajñe vājimedhe mahāyaśāḥ //
adyāpi ca hitārthāya lokānāṃ bhṛgunandanaḥ
caramāṇas tapo dīptaṃ jāmadagnyaḥ punaḥ punaḥ
tiṣṭhate devavac chrīmān mahendre parvatottame //
Note: k: D6 T1.2 G M4 ins.: :k
kṛṣṇājinottarīyaṃ ca jaṭāmakuṭamaṇḍalī |
eṣa viṣṇoḥ sureśasya śāśvatasyāvyayasya ca
jāmadagnya iti khyātaḥ prādurbhāvo mahātmanaḥ //
caturviṃśe yuge cāpi viśvāmitrapuraḥsaraḥ
jajñe daśarathasyātha putraḥ padmāyatekṣaṇaḥ //
kṛtvātmānaṃ mahābāhuś caturdhā prabhur īśvaraḥ
loke rāma iti khyātas tejasā bhāskaropamaḥ //
prasādanārthaṃ lokasya rakṣasāṃ nigrahāya ca
dharmasya ca vivṛddhyarthaṃ jajñe tatra mahāyaśāḥ
tam apy āhur manuṣyendraṃ sarvabhūtapates tanum //
tasmai dattāni cāstrāṇi viśvāmitreṇa dhīmatā
vadhārthaṃ devaśatrūṇāṃ durdharāṇi surair api //
yajñavighnakarau yena munīnāṃ bhāvitātmanām
mārīcaś ca subāhuś ca balena balināṃ varau
nihatau ca nirāśau ca kṛtau tena mahātmanā //
vartamāne makhe yena janakasya mahātmanaḥ
bhagnaṃ māheśvaraṃ cāpaṃ krīḍatā līlayā purā //
yaḥ samāḥ sarvadharmajñaś caturdaśa vane 'vasat
lakṣmaṇānucaro rāmaḥ sarvabhūtahite rataḥ //
rūpiṇī yasya pārśvasthā sīteti prathitā janaiḥ
pūrvocitatvādyā lakṣmīr bhartāram anugacchati //
caturdaśa vane taptvā tapo varṣāṇi rāghavaḥ
janasthāne vasan kāryaṃ tridaśānāṃ cakāra saḥ //
sītāyāḥ padam anvicchan nijaghāna mahāmanāḥ
virādhaṃ ca kabandhaṃ ca rākṣasau bhīmavikramau
jaghāna puruṣavyāghrau gandharvau śāpavikṣatau //
hutāśanārkāṃśutaḍitprakāśaiḥ prataptajāmbūnadacitrapuṅkhaiḥ
surendravajrāśanitulyasāraiḥ śaraiḥ śarīreṣu viyojitau balāt //
sugrīvasya kṛte yena vānarendro mahābalaḥ
vālī vinihataḥ saṃkhye sugrīvaś cābhiṣecitaḥ //
devāsuragaṇānāṃ hi yakṣarākṣasapakṣiṇām
yatrāvadhyaṃ rākṣasendraṃ rāvaṇaṃ yudhi durjayam //
guptaṃ rākṣasakoṭībhir nīlāñjanacayopamam
trailokyarāvaṇaṃ krūraṃ rākṣasaṃ rākṣaseśvaram //
durjaraṃ durdharaṃ dṛptaṃ śārdūlasamavikramam
durnirīkṣyaṃ suragaṇair varadānena darpitam //
jaghāna sacivaiḥ sārdhaṃ sasainyaṃ rāvaṇaṃ yudhi
mahābhraghanasaṃkāśaṃ mahākāyaṃ mahābalam //
tam āgaskāriṇaṃ krūraṃ paulastyaṃ puruṣarṣabhaḥ
Note: k: Ś1 K2 Ñ2 V3 Ds D2-5 G2 ins.: :ksabhrātṛputrasacivaṃ sasainyaṃ krūraniścayam |
rāvaṇaṃ nijaghānāśu rāmo bhūtapatiḥ purā //
madhoś ca tanayo dṛpto lavaṇo nāma dānavaḥ
hato madhuvane bhīmo varadatto mahāsuraḥ
samare yuddhaśauṇḍena tathānye cāpi rākṣasāḥ //
etāni kṛtvā karmāṇi rāmo dharmabhṛtāṃ varaḥ
daśāśvamedhāñ jārūthyān ājahāra nirargalān //
nāśrūyantāśubhā vāco nākulaṃ māruto vavau
na vittaharaṇaṃ cāsīd rāme rājyaṃ praśāsati //
paryadevan na vidhavā nānarthaś cābhavat tadā
sarvam āsīj jagaddāntaṃ rāme rājyaṃ praśāsati //
na prāṇināṃ bhayaṃ cāsīj jalānalavighātajam
na ca sma vṛddhā bālānāṃ pretakāryāṇi kurvate //
brahma paryaccarat kṣatraṃ viśaḥ kṣatram anuvratāḥ
śūdrāś caiva hi varṇāṃs trīñ śuśrūṣanty anahaṃkṛtāḥ //
nāryo nātyacaran bhartṝn bhāryāṃ nātyacarat patiḥ
sarvam āsīj jagaddāntaṃ nirdasyur abhavan mahī
rāma eko 'bhavad bhartā rāmaḥ pālayitābhavat //
āsan varṣasahasrāṇi tathā putrasahasriṇaḥ
arogāḥ prāṇinaś cāsan rāme rājyaṃ praśāsati //
devatānām ṛṣīṇāṃ ca manuṣyāṇāṃ ca sarvaśaḥ
pṛthivyāṃ sahavāso 'bhūd rāme rājyaṃ praśāsati //
Note: k: M2 ins.: :k
rāmo rāmo rāma iti prajānām abhavat kathāḥ |
rāmārāmaṃ jagadbhūtaṃ rāme rājyaṃ praśāsati |
gāthā apy atra gāyanti ye purāṇavido janāḥ
rāme nibaddhās tattvārthā māhātmyaṃ tasya dhīmataḥ //
śyāmo yuvā lohitākṣo dīptāsyo mitabhāṣitā
ājānabāhuḥ sumukhaḥ siṃhaskandho mahābhujaḥ //
daśa varṣasahasrāṇi daśa varṣaśatāni ca
ayodhyādhipatir bhūtvā rāmo rājyam akārayat //
ṛksāmayajuṣāṃ ghoṣo jyāghoṣaś ca mahātmanaḥ
avyucchinno 'bhavad rāṣṭre dīyatāṃ bhujyatām iti //
sattvavān guṇasaṃpanno dīpyamānaḥ svatejasā
ati sūryaṃ ca candraṃ ca rāmo dāśarathir babhau //
īje kratuśataiḥ puṇyaiḥ samāptavaradākṣiṇaiḥ
hitvāyodhyāṃ divaṃ yāto rāghavo 'saumahābalaḥ //
evam eṣa mahābāhūr ikṣvākukulanandanaḥ
rāvaṇaṃ sagaṇaṃ hatvā divam ācakrame prabhuḥ //
aparaḥ keśavasyāyaṃ prādurbhāvo mahātmanaḥ
vikhyāto māthure kalpe sarvalokahitāya vai //
yatra sālvaṃ ca kaṃsaṃ ca maindaṃ dvividam eva ca
ariṣṭaṃ vṛṣabhaṃ keśiṃ pūtanāṃ daityadārikām //
nāgaṃ kuvalayāpīḍaṃ cāṇūraṃ muṣṭikaṃ tathā
daityān mānuṣadehasthān sūdayām āsa vīryavān //
chinnaṃ bāhusahasraṃ ca bāṇasyādbhutakarmaṇaḥ
narakaś ca hataḥ saṃkhye yavanaś ca mahābalaḥ //
hṛtāni ca mahīpānāṃ sarvaratnāni tejasā
durācārāś ca nihatāḥ pārthivā ye mahītale //
Note: k: K1.3.4 Ñ V B Dn Ds D1-4.6 T G1.4.5 M4 ins. after 147; K2 D5 after 146: :k
navame dvāpare viṣṇur aṣṭāviṃśe purābhavat |
vedavyāsas tadā jajñe jātūkarṇyapuraḥsaraḥ |
eko vedaś caturdhā tu kṛtas tena mahātmanā |
janito bhārato vaṃśaḥ satyavatyāḥ sutena ca |
ete lokahitārthāya prādurbhāvā mahātmanaḥ
Note: k: K2-4 Ñ2.3 V B Dn Ds D2 D4-6 T3.4 G1.5; T1 cont. after *148: :katītāḥ kathitā rājan kathyante cāpy anāgatāḥ |
kalkī viṣṇuyaśā nāma bhūyaś cotpatsyate prabhuḥ //
Note: k: N (except Ś1 Ñ1) T1.3.4 G3.5 ins. after 148c: :k
... saṃbhalagrāmako dvijaḥ |
sarvalokahitārthāya ... |
Note: k: After 148, N(except Ś1 Ñ1) T3.4 G3-5 ins.: :k
daśamo bhāvyasaṃpanno yājñavalkyapuraḥsaraḥ |
kṣapayitvā ca tān sarvān bhāvinārthena coditān |
gaṅgāyamunayor madhye niṣṭhāṃ prāpsyati sānugaḥ |
tataḥ kāle vyatīte tu sāmātye sahasainike |
nṛpeṣv atha pranaṣteṣu tadā tv apragrahāḥ prajāḥ ||
kṣaṇena nirvṛte caiva hatvā cānyonyam āhave |
parasparahṛtasvāś ca nirākrandāḥ suduḥkhitāḥ |
evaṃ kaṣṭam anuprāptāḥ kalisaṃdhyāṃśake tadā |
prajāḥ kṣayaṃ prayāsyanti sārdhaṃ kaliyugena ha |
kṣīṇe kaliyuge tasmiṃs tataḥ kṛtayugaṃ punaḥ |
prapatsyate yathānyāyaṃ svabhāvād eva nānyathā |
Note: k: After line 1 of *482, Ñ2.3 V1.3 ins.: :k
anukarṣan sa vai senāṃ hastyaśvarathasaṃkulām |
pragṛhītāyudhair viprair vṛtaḥ śatasahasraśaḥ |
niḥśeṣāñ śuddharājāṃs tāṃs tadā sa tu kariṣyati |
pāṣaṇḍān mlecchajātīṃś ca dasyūṃś caiva sahasraśaḥ |
nātyarthaṃ dhārmikā ye ca ye ca dharmadviṣaḥ kvacit |
udīcyā madhyadeśasthāḥ pārvatīyās tathaiva ca |
prācyān pratīcyāṃś ca tathā vindhyapṛṣṭhaparānugān |
tathaiva dākṣiṇātyāṃś ca draviḍān siṃhalaiḥ saha |
gāndhārān pāradāṃś caiva pahlavān yavanāñ śakān |
tukhārān barbarāṃś caiva śvānikān daradān khaśān |
lambakāṃś ca maruṃdhāṃś ca kirātāṃś caiva sa prabhuḥ |
pravṛttacakro balavān dasyūn āmantako balī |
adhṛṣyaḥ sarvabhūtānāṃ pṛthivīṃ vicariṣyati |
mānuṣaḥ sa tu saṃjajñe devasyāgrasya dhīmataḥ |
pūrvajanmani viṣṇuḥ sa pramatir nāma vīryavān |
gātreṇa vai candramasaḥ pūrṇe kaliyuge 'bhavat |
ity etā vāsudevasya daśa saṃbhūtayaḥ smṛtāḥ |
taṃ taṃ kālaṃ ca kāryaṃ ca taṃ tathoddeśakāriṇam |
aṃśena triṣu lokeṣu tāṃs tān yonīn viśaty api |
pañcaviṃśotthitaḥ kalkī pañcāśaccharadāṃ samāḥ |
vinighnan sarvabhūtāni mānuṣāṃś caiva sarvaśaḥ |
kṛtvā bījāvaśeṣāṃ tu mahīṃ krūreṇa karmaṇā |
saṃyodhayitvā ca khalān prāyas tān apy adhārmikān |
tad eṣa vai tadā kalkī caritārthaḥ sasainikaḥ |
prajānāṃ sādhayitvā ca saṃsiddhārthaḥ punaḥ svayam |
vṛthānyonyaṃ prakupitān saṃhariṣyati mohitān |
Note: k: After line 7 of *482 Ñ2 V1.3 ins.: :k
purāṇi hatvā grāmāṃś ca tadā duṣpragrahāḥ prajāḥ |
pranaṣṭaśrutidharmāś ca naṣṭavarṇāśramās tathā |
hvasvā alpāyuṣaś caiva bhaviṣyanti kalau yuge |
saritparvatasevinyaḥ patramūlaphalāśanāḥ |
cīrapatrājinadharā gahvaraṃ ghoram āśritāḥ |
alpāyuṣo naṣṭavārtā bahubādhāḥ suduḥkhitāḥ |
ete cānye ca bahavo divyā devaguṇair yutāḥ
prādurbhāvāḥ purāṇeṣu gīyante brahmavādibhiḥ //
yatra devā vimuhyanti prādurbhāvānukīrtane
purāṇaṃ vartate yatra vedaśrutisamāhitam //
etaduddeśamātreṇa prādurbhāvānukīrtanam
kīrtitaṃ kīrtanīyasya sarvalokaguroḥ prabhoḥ //
prīyante pitaras tasya prādurbhāvānukīrtanāt
viṣṇor amitavīryasya yaḥ śṛṇoti kṛtāñjaliḥ //
Note: k: D3 ins.: :k
sarvapāpavinirmukto dhanaputrapaśūṃl labhet |
Note: k: T4 ins.: :k
nāśubhaṃ vidyate tasya putravān dyutimān bhavet |
etās tu yogeśvarayogamāyāḥ śrutvā naro mucyati sarvapāpaiḥ
ṛddhiṃ samṛddhiṃ vipulāṃś ca bhogān prāpnoti śīghraṃ bhagavatprasādāt //
Note: Colophon
Note: h: HV (CE) chapter 32, transliterated by Atul Agarwala, proof-read by Horst Brinkhaus, version of February 24, 2000 :h
viśvatvaṃ śṛṇu me viṣṇor haritvaṃ ca kṛte yuge
vaikuṇṭhatvaṃ ca deveṣu kṛṣṇatvaṃ mānuṣeṣu ca //
īśvarasya hi tasyemāṃ karmaṇāṃ gahanāṃ gatim
saṃpratyatītāṃ bhāvyāṃ ca śṛṇu rājan yathātatham //
avyakto vyaktaliṅgastho ya eṣa bhagavān prabhuḥ
nārāyaṇo hy anantātmā prabhavo 'vyaya eva ca //
eṣa nārāyaṇo bhūtvā harir āsīt sanātanaḥ
brahmā śakraś ca somaś ca dharmaḥ śukro bṛhaspatiḥ //
aditer api putratvam etya yādavanandanaḥ
eṣa viṣṇur iti khyāta indrād avarajo 'bhavat //
prasādajaṃ hy asya vibhor adityāṃ putrajanma tat
vadhārthaṃ suraśatrūṇāṃ daityadānavarakṣasām //
pradhānātmā purā hy eṣa brahmāṇam asṛjat prabhuḥ
so 'sṛjat pūrvapuruṣaḥ purākalpe prajāpatīn //
te tanvānās tanūs tatra brahmavaṃśān anuttamān
tebhyo 'bhavan mahātmabhyo bahudhā brahma śāśvatam //
etad āścaryabhūtasya viṣṇoḥ karmānukīrtanam
kīrtitaṃ kīrtanīyasya kīrtyamānaṃ nibodha me //
vṛtte vṛtravadhe tāta vartamāne kṛte yuge
āsīt trailokyavikhyātaḥ saṃgrāmas tārakāmayaḥ //
tatra sma dānavā ghorāḥ sarve saṃgrāmadarpitāḥ
ghnanti devān sagandharvān sayakṣoragacāraṇān //
te vadhyamānā vimukhāḥ kṣīṇapraharaṇā raṇe
trātāraṃ manasā jagmur devaṃ nārāyaṇaṃ prabhum //
etasminn antare meghā nirvāṇāṅgāravarcasaḥ
sārkacandragrahagaṇaṃ chādayanto nabhastalam //
cañcadvidyudgaṇāviddhā ghorā nihrādakāriṇaḥ
anyonyavegābhihatāḥ pravavuḥ sapta mārutāḥ //
dīptatoyāśanīpātair vajravegānalānilaiḥ
rarāsa ghorair utpātair dahyamānam ivāmbaram //
petur ulkāsahasrāṇi petur ākāśagāny api
nyubjāni ca vimānāni prapatanty utpatanti ca //
caturyugāntaparyāye lokānāṃ yadbhayaṃ bhavet
arūpavanti rūpāṇi tasminn utpātalakṣaṇe //
tamasā niṣprabhaṃ sarvaṃ na prājñāyata kiṃcana
timiraughaparikṣiptā na rejuś ca diṣo daśa //
viveśa rūpiṇī kālī kālameghāvaguṇṭhitā
dyaur na bhāty abhibhūtārkā ghoreṇa tamasā vṛtā //
tān ghanaughān satimirān dorbhyāṃ vikṣipya sa prabhuḥ
vapuḥ saṃdarśayām āsa divyaṃ kṛṣṇavapur hariḥ //
balāhakāñjananibhaṃ balāhakatanūruham
tejasā vapuṣā caiva kṛṣṇaṃ kṛṣṇam ivācalam //
dīptapītāmbaradharaṃ taptakāñcanabhūṣaṇam
dhūmāndhakāravapuṣaṃ yugāntāgnim ivotthitam //
caturdviguṇapīnāṃsāṃ kirīṭacchannamūrdhajam
cāmīkarakarāsaktam āyudhair upaśobhitam //
candrārkakiraṇopetaṃ girikūṭam ivocchritam
nandakānanditakaraṃ śarāśīviṣadhāriṇam //
śakticitraṃ halodagraṃ śaṅkhacakragadādharam
viṣṇuśailaṃ kṣamāmūlaṃ śrīvṛkṣaṃ śārṅgaśṛṅgiṇam //
haryaśvarathasaṃyukte suparṇadhvajaśobhite
candrārkacakraracite mandarākṣadhṛtāntare //
anantaraśmisaṃyukte durdarśe merukūbare
tārakācitrakusume grahanakṣatravandhure //
bhayeṣv abhayadaṃ vyomni devā daityaparājitāḥ
dadṛśus te sthitaṃ devaṃ divyalokamaye rathe //
te kṛtāñjalayaḥ sarve devāḥ śakrapurogamāḥ
jayaśabdaṃ puraskṛtya śaraṇyaṃ śaraṇaṃ gatāḥ //
Note: k: D6 S (except G4 M3) ins.: :k
tuṣṭuvuś ca jagannāthaṃ devaṃ nārāyaṇaṃ harim |
jaya deva jagannātha jaya deva janārdana |
jaya deva prabho viṣṇo jaya śaṅkhagadādhara |
namas tubhyaṃ hṛṣīkeśa namo deva janārdana |
ādideva jagannātha bhūtabhāvanabhāvana |
namas tubhyaṃ prabho viṣṇo bhūtādipataye namaḥ |
nama ādyāya bījāya puruṣāya namo namaḥ |
namo 'stu te jagannātha namo bhūyo mahātmane |
kiṃ vānena jagannātha namaskāreṇa keśava |
rakṣa naḥ sakalān devān daityapāśavipāśitān |
sa teṣāṃ tāṃ giraṃ śrutvā viṣṇur dayitadaivataḥ
manaś cakre vināśāya dānavānāṃ mahāmṛdhe //
ākāśe tu sthito viṣṇur uttamaṃ vapur āsthitaḥ
uvāca devatāḥ sarvāḥ sapratijñam idaṃ vacaḥ //
śāntiṃ vrajata bhadraṃ vo mā bhaiṣṭa marutāṃ gaṇāḥ
jitā me dānavāḥ sarve trailokyaṃ pratigṛhyatām //
te tasya satyasaṃdhasya viṣṇor vākyena toṣitāḥ
devāḥ prītiṃ parāṃ jagmuḥ prāpyevāmṛtam uttamam //
tatas tamaḥ saṃhriyate vineśuś ca balāhakāḥ
pravavuś ca śivā vātāḥ prasannāś ca diśo daśa //
suprabhāṇi ca jyotiṃṣi candraṃ cakruḥ pradakṣiṇam
dīptimanti ca tejāṃsi cakrur arkaṃ pradakṣiṇam //
na vigrahaṃ grahāś cakruḥ praseduś cāpi sindhavaḥ
virajaskā babhur mārgā nākamārgādayas trayaḥ //
yathārtham ūhuḥ sarito nāpi cukṣubhire 'rṇavāḥ
āsañ śubhānīndriyāṇi narāṇām antarātmasu //
maharṣayo vītaśokā vedānuccair adhīyire
yajñeṣu ca haviḥ svādu śivam āpa ca pāvakaḥ //
pravṛttadharmāḥ saṃvṛttā lokā muditamānasāḥ
Note: k: V2 ins.: :ksarve lokā mudānvitāḥ |
babhūvur adhikāś caiva |
Note: k: K1 Ñ2 V2 D5 ins.: :kprītyā paramayā yuktā devadevasya bhūpateḥ |
viṣṇor dattapratijñasya śrutvārinidhane giram //
Note: k: D6 T1.2.4 G ins.: :k
nihanmi dānavāndṛptān yuṣmākaṃ vigrahaiḥ saha |
Note: k: T3 ins.: :k
giraṃ te dānavān ugrān menire nihatān yudhi |
Note: Colophon
Note: h: HV (CE) chapter 33, transliterated by Atul Agarwala, proof-read by Horst Brinkhaus, version of February 24, 2000 :h
tato bhayaṃ viṣṇumayaṃ śrutvā daiteyadānavāḥ
udyogaṃ vipulaṃ cakrur yuddhāya yudhi durjayāḥ //
mayas tu kāñcanamayaṃ trinalvāntaram avyayam
catuścakraṃ suvapuṣaṃ sukalpitamahāyudham //
kiṃkiṇījālanirghoṣaṃ dvīpicarmapariṣkṛtam
racitaṃ ratnajālaiś ca hemajālaiś ca śobhitam //
īhāmṛgagaṇākīrṇaṃ pakṣibhiś ca virājitam
divyāstratūṇīradharaṃ payodharanināditam //
svakṣaṃ rathavarodāraṃ sūpastham agamopamam
gadāparighasaṃpūrṇaṃ mūrtimantam ivārṇavam //
hemakeyūravalayaṃ svarṇakuṇḍalakūbaram
sapatākadhvajodagraṃ sādityam iva mandaram //
gajendrāmbhodavapuṣaṃ kvacit kesaravarcasam
yuktam ṛkṣasahasreṇa sahasrāmbudanāditam //
dīptam ākāśagaṃ divyaṃ rathaṃ pararathārujam
atiṣṭhat samarākāṅkṣī meruṃ dīpta ivāṃśumān //
tāras tu kroṣavistāram āyasaṃ vāhayan ratham
śailotkarimasaṃkāśaṃ nīlāñjanacayopamam //
kālalohāṣṭacaraṇaṃ loheṣāyugakūbaram
timirodgārikiraṇaṃ garjantam iva toyadam //
lohajālena mahatā sagavākṣeṇa daṃśitam
āyasaiḥ parighaiḥ pūrṇaṃ kṣepaṇīyaiś ca mudgaraiḥ //
prāsaiḥ pāśaiś ca vitatair avasaktaiś ca mudgaraiḥ
śobhitaṃ trāsanīyaiś ca tomaraiḥ saparaśvadhaiḥ //
udyataṃ dviṣatāṃ hetor dvitīyam iva mandaram
yuktaṃ kharasahasreṇa so 'dhyārohad rathottamam //
virocanas tu saṃkruddho gadāpāṇir avasthitaḥ
pramukhe tasya sainyasya dīptaśṛṅga ivācalaḥ //
yuktaṃ hayasahasreṇa hayagrīvas tu dānavaḥ
syandanaṃ vāhayām āsa sapatnānīkamardanam //
vyāyataṃ bahusahasraṃ dhanur visphārayan mahat
varāhaḥ pramukhe tasthau sāvaroha ivācalaḥ //
kṣaras tu vikṣaran darpān netrābhyāṃ roṣajaṃ jalam
sphuraddantauṣṭhavadanaḥ saṃgrāmaṃ so 'bhyakāṅkṣata //
tvaṣṭā tv aṣṭādaśahayaṃ yānam āsthāya dānavaḥ
vyūhito dānavair vyūhaiḥ paricakrāma vīryavān //
vipracittisutaḥ śvetaḥ śvetakuṇḍalabhūṣaṇaḥ
śvetaśailapratīkāśo yuddhāyābhimukhaḥ sthitaḥ //
ariṣṭo baliputras tu variṣṭho 'driśilāyudhaḥ
yuddhāyātiṣṭhad āyasto dharādhara ivāparaḥ //
kiśoras tv atisaṃharṣāt kiśora iva coditaḥ
abhavad daityasainyasya madhye ravir ivoditaḥ //
lambas tu lambameghābhaḥ pralambāmbarabhūṣaṇaḥ
daityavyūhagato bhāti sanīhāra ivāṃśumān //
svarbhānurāsyayodhī tu daśanauṣṭhekṣaṇāyudhaḥ
Note: k: T3 ins.: :kpramukhe devasenāya rarāja girisaṃnibhaḥ |
hasaṃs tiṣṭhati daityānāṃ pramukhe sumukho grahaḥ //
anye hayagatā bhānti nāgaskandhagatāḥ pare
siṃhavyāghragatāś cānye varāharkṣagatāḥ pare //
kecit kharoṣṭrayātāraḥ kecit toyadavāhanāḥ
nānāpakṣigatāḥ kecit kecit pavanavāhanāḥ //
pattinas tv apare daityā bhīṣaṇā vikṛtānanāḥ
ekapādā dvipādāś ca nanṛtur yuddhakaṅkṣiṇaḥ //
prakṣveḍamānā bahavaḥ sphoṭayantaś ca dānavāḥ
dṛptaśārdūlanirghoṣā nedur dānavapuṃgavāḥ //
te gadāparighair ugrair dhanur vyāyāmaśālinaḥ
bāhubhiḥ parighākārais tarjayanti sma dānavāḥ //
prāsaiḥ pāśaiś ca khaḍgaiś ca tomarāṅkuśapaṭṭisaiḥ
cikrīḍus te śataghnībhiḥ śitadhāraiś ca mudgaraiḥ //
gaṇḍaśailaiś ca śailaiś ca parighaiś cottamāyudhaiḥ
cakraiś ca daityapravarāś cakrur ānanditaṃ balam //
Note: k: K1.2 Ñ2 Dn1 D3.4 ins.: :k
kāṅkṣanto vijayaṃ yuddhe dānavā yuddhadurmadāḥ |
evaṃ tad dānavaṃ sainyaṃ sarvaṃ yuddhamadotkaṭam
devān abhimukhaṃ tasthau meghānīkam ivoddhatam //
tadadbhutaṃ daityasahasragāḍhaṃ vāyvagnitoyāmbudaśailakalpam
balaṃ raṇaughābhyudayābhyudīrṇaṃ yuyutsayonmattam ivābabhāse //
Note: Colophon
Note: h: HV (CE) chapter 34, transliterated by Atul Agarwala, proof-read by Horst Brinkhaus, version of February 25, 2000 :h
śrutas te daityasainyasya vistaras tāta vigrahe
surāṇāṃ sarvasainyasya vistaraṃ vaiṣṇavaṃ śṛṇu //
ādityā vasavo rudrā aśvinau ca mahābalau
sabalāḥ sānugāś caiva saṃnahyanta yathākramam //
puruhūtas tu purato lokapālaḥ sahasradṛk
grāmaṇīḥ sarvadevānām āruroha suradvipam //
savye cāsya rathaḥ pārśve pakṣipravaravegavān
sucārucakracaraṇo hemavajrapariṣkṛtaḥ //
devagandharvayakṣaughair anuyātaḥ sahasraśaḥ
dīptimadbhiḥ sadasyaiś ca brahmarṣibhir abhiṣṭutaḥ //
vajravisphūrjitoddhūtair vidyudindrāyudhārpitaiḥ
gupto balāhakagaṇaiḥ parvatair iva kāmagaiḥ //
yam ārūḍhaḥ sa bhagavān paryeti maghavān gajam
havir dhāneṣu gāyanti viprā makhamukhe sthitāḥ //
svarge śakrānuyāteṣu devatūryānunādiṣu
indraṃ samupanṛtyanti śataśo hy apsarogaṇāḥ //
ketunā vaṃśarājena bhrājamāno yathā raviḥ
yukto hayasahasreṇa manomārutaraṃhasā //
sa syandanavaro bhāti yukto mātalinā tadā
kṛtsnaḥ parivṛto merur bhāskarasyeva tejasā //
yamas tu daṇḍam udyamya kālayuktaṃ ca mudgaram
tasthau suragaṇānīke daityān nādena bhīṣayan //
caturbhiḥ sāgarair gupto lelihadbhiś ca pannagaiḥ
śaṅkhamuktāṅgadadharo bibhrat toyamayaṃ vapuḥ //
Note: k: M1.2 subst. for 12cd: :k
śaṅkhamuktāmalatanuḥ śītībhūto 'yam ambupaḥ |
kālapāśān samāvidhya hayaiḥ śaśikaropamaiḥ
vāyvīritajalodgāraiḥ kurvaṃl līlāḥ sahasraśaḥ //
pāṇḍuroddhūtavasanaḥ pravālarucirāṅgadaḥ
maṇiśyāmottamavapur hārabhārārpitodaraḥ //
varuṇaḥ pāśabhṛnmadhye devānīkasya tasthivān
Note: k: T3 subst. for 15ab: :kvaruṇaḥ pāśahastaḥ san devānīke vyatiṣṭhata |
yuddhavelām abhilaṣan bhinnavela ivārṇavaḥ //
yakṣarākṣasasainyena guhyakānāṃ gaṇair api
Note: k: N (except Ś1) T1.3.4 G1.4 (G2 after 14ab) ins.: :kmaṇiśyāmottamavapuḥ kubero naravāhanaḥ |
yuktaś ca śaṅkhapadmābhyāṃ nidhīnām adhipaḥ prabhuḥ
rājarājeśvaraḥ śrīmān gadāpāṇir adṛśyata //
vimānayodhī dhanado vimāne puṣpake sthitaḥ
sa rājarājaḥ śuśubhe yuddhārthī naravāhanaḥ
prekṣamāṇaḥ śivasakhaḥ sākṣād iva śivaḥ svayam //
Note: k: G2 subst. for 17ef: :k
kṣaumavāsāḥ śivaḥ sākṣāc chivarūpaḥ svayaṃ svayam |
pūrvaṃ pakṣaṃ sahasrākṣaḥ pitṛrājas tu dakṣiṇam
varuṇaḥ paścimaṃ pakṣam uttaraṃ naravāhanaḥ //
caturṣu yuktāś catvāro lokapālā balotkaṭāḥ
svāṃ svāṃ diśaṃ rarakṣus te tasya devabalasya ha //
sūryaḥ saptāśvayuktena rathenāmbaragāminā
śriyā jājvalyamānena dīpyamānaiś ca raśmibhiḥ //
udayāstagacakreṇa meruparyantagāminā
tridivadvāracitreṇa tapatā lokam avyayam //
sahasraraśmiyuktena bhrājamānena tejasā
cacāra madhye devānāṃ dvādaśātmā dineśvaraḥ //
somaḥ śvetahayo bhāti syandane śītaraśmivān
himatoyaprapūrṇābhir bhābhir āplāvayañ jagat //
tam ṛkṣayogānugataṃ śiśirāṃśuṃ dvijeśvaram
śaśacchāyāṅkitatanuṃ naiśasya tamasaḥ kṣayam //
jyotiṣām īraṇaṃ vyomni rasānāṃ rasanaṃ prabhum
oṣadhīnāṃ paritrāṇaṃ nidhānam amṛtasya ca //
jagataḥ prathamaṃ bhāgaṃ saumyaṃ śaityamayaṃ rasam
dadṛśur dānavāḥ somaṃ himapraharaṇaṃ sthitam //
yaḥ prāṇaḥ sarvabhūtānāṃ pañcadhā bhidyate nṛṣu
saptaskandhagato lokāṃs trīn dadhāra cacāra ca //
yam āhur agner yantāraṃ sarvaprabhavam īśvaram
saptasvaragatā yasya yonir gībhir udīryate //
yaṃ vadanty uttamaṃ bhūtaṃ yaṃ vadanty aśarīriṇam
yam āhur ākāśagamaṃ śīghragaṃ śabdayoninam //
sa vāyuḥ sarvabhūtāyur uddhataḥ svena tejasā
pravavau vyathayan daityān pratilomaḥ satoyadaḥ //
maruto devagandharvā vidyādharagaṇaiḥ saha
cikrīḍur asibhiḥ śubhrair nirmuktair iva pannagaiḥ //
Note: k: T3 subst. for 31cd: :k
yakṣaiś ca sumahābhogaiḥ pannagair garuḍair api |
sṛjantaḥ sarpapatayas tīvraṃ roṣamayaṃ viṣam
śarabhūtāḥ surendrāṇāṃ cerur vyāttamukhā divi //
parvatās tu śilāśṛṅgaiḥ śataśākhaiś ca pādapaiḥ
upatasthuḥ suragaṇān prahartuṃ dānavaṃ balam //
yaḥ sa devo hṛṣīkeśaḥ padmanābhas trivikramaḥ
kṛṣṇavartmā yugāntābho viśvasya jagataḥ prabhuḥ //
samudrayonir madhuhā havyabhuk kratusatkṛtaḥ
bhūmyāpovyomabhūtātmā syāmaḥ śāntikaro 'rihā //
Note: k: K2-4 Ñ2.3 V B1.2 Dn Ds D2-6 T1.3.4 G1.3.4 ins.: :k
jagayonir jagadbījo jagadgurur udāradhīḥ |
so 'rkam agnāv ivodyantam udyamyottamatejasam
arighnam asurānīke cakraṃ cakragadādharaḥ
saparīveṣam udyantaṃ savitur maṇḍalaṃ yathā //
savyenālambya mahatīṃ sarvāsuravināśinīm
kareṇa kālīṃ vapuṣā śatrukālapradāṃ gadām //
śeṣair bhujaiḥ pradīptāni bhujagāridhvajaḥ prabhuḥ
dadhārāyudhajātāni śārṅgādīni mahāyaśāḥ //
sa kaśyapasyātmabhuvaṃ dvijaṃ bhujagabhojanam
pavanādhikasaṃpātaṃ gaganakṣobhaṇaṃ khagam //
bhujagendreṇa vadane niviṣṭena virājitam
amṛtārambhanirmuktaṃ mandarādrim ivocchritam //
devāsuravimardeṣu śataśo dṛṣṭavikramam
mahendreṇāmṛtasyārthe vajreṇa kṛtalakṣaṇam //
śikhinaṃ cūḍinaṃ caiva taptakuṇḍalabhūṣaṇam
vicitrapatravasanaṃ dhātumantam ivācalam //
Note: k: K1 Ñ2.3 V1 Ds2 D3-5 (K3 D2 after 41) ins.: :k
tīkṣṇatuṇḍogranakharaṃ calatpakṣasamākulam |
sphītakroḍāvalambena śītāṃśusamatejasā
bhogibhogāvasaktena maṇiratnena bhāsvatā //
pakṣābhyāṃ cārupatrābhyām āvṛtya divi līlayā
yugānte sendracāpābhyāṃ toyadābhyām ivāmbaram //
nīlalohitapītābhiḥ patākābhir alaṃkṛtam
ketuveṣapraticchannaṃ mahākāyaniketanam //
aruṇāvarajaṃ śrīmān āruroha raṇe hariḥ
Note: k: Ñ3 V1 T3.4 ins.: :ksthitaḥ samaradurjeyo daityasainyaṃ vilokayan |
suparṇaḥ svena vapuṣā suparṇaṃ khecarottamam //
Note: k: Ñ3 T4 ins.: :k
dahaṃs tasthau surānīke daityān ativibhīṣayan |
tam anvayur devagaṇā munayaś ca samāhitāḥ
gīrbhiḥ paramamantrābhis tuṣṭuvuś ca gadādharam //
Note: k: T G M4 ins.: :k
namas te 'stu hṛṣīkeśa jahi daityabalaṃ vibho |
namas trimūrtaye tubhyaṃ haribrahmaśivātmane |
namas traividyarūpāya ṛksāmayajuṣe namaḥ |
namo 'stu yogicintyāya teṣāṃ yogapradāyine |
namo vikalpaśūnyāya namo vijñaptirūpine |
yaṃ ca jñānamayaṃ tejaḥ pravadanti manīṣiṇaḥ |
taṃ natāḥ sma jagannāthaṃ jahi daityagaṇān hare |
tvāṃ stotuṃ hi vayaṃ deva śaktā varṣaśatair api |
na hi deva jagannātha jayasva puruṣottama |
itīritāṃ giriṃ śrutvā gantum abhyudyato hariḥ |
tad vaiśravaṇasuśliṣṭaṃ vaivasvatapuraḥsaram
vārirājaparikṣiptaṃ devarājavirājitam //
candraprabhābhir vimalaṃ yuddhāya samavasthitam
Note: k: Ñ2.3 V1.3 ins.: :kyayau hitaṃ devapathaṃ dīptabhāskaratejasam |
pavanāviddhanirghoṣaṃ saṃpradīptahutāśanam //
viṣṇor jiṣṇoḥ sahiṣṇoś ca bhrājiṣṇos tejasā vṛtam
balaṃ balavaduddhūtaṃ yuddhāya samavartata //
svasty astu devebhya iti stuvaṃs tatrāṅgirābravīt
Note: k: T2, G1.3.5 subst. for 51ab: :ksvasty astv iti stuvaṃs tatra devān āṅgiraso 'bravīt |
svasty astu daityebhya iti uśanā vākyam abravīt //
Note: k: K1 subst. for 51cd: :k
svasti daityebhya iti cāpy uśanā vākyam ādade |
Note: Colophon
Note: h: HV (CE) chapter 35, transliterated by Atul Agarwala, proof-read by Horst Brinkhaus, version of February 26, 2000 :h
tābhyāṃ balābhyāṃ saṃjajñe tumulo vigrahas tadā
surāṇām asurāṇāṃ ca parasparajayaiṣiṇām //
Note: k: After the ref., K1.3 Ñ2 V3 Dn Ds2 D2-6 ins.: :k
sarvadevamayo yas tu sarvadharmamayas tu yaḥ |
tasya viṣṇoḥ sureśasya tejasā vidhṛtāḥ surāḥ |
sabalāḥ sānugāś caiva tridaśāś ca madotkaṭāḥ |
prahartuṃ dānavaṃ sainyaṃ tarasā hi samabhyayuḥ |
dānavā daivataiḥ sārdhaṃ nānāpraharaṇodyatāḥ
samīyur yudhyamānā vai parvatā iva parvataiḥ //
tatsurāsurasaṃyuktaṃ yuddham atyadbhutaṃ babhau
dharmādharmasamāyuktaṃ darpeṇa vinayena ca //
tato rathaiḥ prajvalitair vāhanaiś ca pracoditaiḥ
utpatadbhiś ca gaganaṃ sāsihastaiḥ samantataḥ //
kṣipyamāṇaiś ca musalaiḥ saṃpreṣyadbhiś ca sāyakaiḥ
cāpair visphāryamāṇaiś ca pātyamānaiś ca mudgaraiḥ //
tad yuddham abhavad ghoraṃ devadānavasaṃkulam
jagatas trāsajananaṃ yugasaṃvartakopamam //
svahastamuktaiḥ parighaiḥ kṣipramuktaiś ca parvataiḥ
dānavāḥ samare jaghnur devān indrapurogamān //
te vadhyamānā balibhir dānavair jitakāśibhiḥ
viṣaṇṇamanaso devā jagmur ārtiṃ mahāmṛdhe //
te 'strajālaiḥ pramathitāḥ parighair bhinnamastakāḥ
bhinnoraskā ditisutair vemū raktaṃ vraṇair bahu //
saṃditāḥ pāśajālaiś ca niryatnāś ca śaraiḥ kṛtāḥ
praviṣṭā dānavīṃ māyāṃ na śekus te viceṣṭitum //
tatstambhitam ivābhāti niṣprāṇasadṛśākṛti
balaṃ surāṇām asurair niṣprayatnāyudhaṃ kṛtam //
māyāpāśānvikarṣaṃś ca chindan vajreṇa tāñ śarān
śakro daityabalaṃ ghoraṃ viveśa bahulocanaḥ //
sa daityān pramukhe hatvā taddānavabalaṃ mahat
tāmasenāstrajālena tamobhūtam athākarot //
te 'nyonyaṃ nāvabudhyanta devān vā vāhanāni vā
ghoreṇa tamasāviṣṭāḥ puruhūtasya tejasā //
māyāpāśair vimuktās tu yatnavantaḥ surottamāḥ
vapūṃṣi daityasaṃghānāṃ tamobhūtāny apātayan //
apadhvastā visaṃjñāś ca tamasā nīlavarcasaḥ
petus te dānavagaṇāś chinnapakṣā ivācalāḥ //
tadghanībhūtadaityendram andhakāram ivārṇavam
dānavaṃ devasadanaṃ tamobhūtam ivābabhau //
tadāsṛjanmahāmāyāṃ mayas tāṃ tāmasīṃ dahan
yugāntoddyotajananīṃ sṛṣṭām aurveṇa vahninā //
sā dadāha tamaḥ sarvaṃ māyā mayavikalpitā
daityāś cādityavapuṣaḥ sadya uttasthur āhave //
māyām aurvīṃ samāsādya dahyamānā divaukasaḥ
bhejire candraviṣayaṃ śītāṃśusalilahradam //
te dahyamānā aurveṇa tejasā bhraṣṭatejasaḥ
śaśaṃsur vajriṇe devāḥ saṃtaptāḥ śaraṇaiṣiṇaḥ //
saṃtapte māyayā sainye dahyamāne ca dānavaiḥ
codito devarājena varuṇo vākyam abravīt //
purā brahmarṣijaḥ śakra tapas tepe sudāruṇam
aurvaḥ pūrvaṃ sa tejasvī sadṛśo brahmaṇo guṇaiḥ //
taṃ tapantam ivādityaṃ tapasā jagad avyayam
upatasthur munigaṇā devā devarṣibhiḥ saha //
hiraṇyakaśipuś caiva dānavo dāvaneśvaraḥ
ṛṣiṃ vijñāpayām āsa purā paramatejasam //
tam ūcur brahmaṝṣayo vacanaṃ dharmasaṃhitam
ṛṣivaṃśeṣu bhagavañś chinnamūlam idaṃ kulam //
ekas tvam anapatyaś ca gotrāpatyaṃ na vartate
kaumāraṃ vratam āsthāya kleśam evānuvartase //
bahūni vipra gotrāṇi munīnāṃ bhāvitātmanām
ekadehāni tiṣṭhanti viviktāni vinā prajāḥ //
dharatsūtsannabhūteṣu teṣu te nāsti kāraṇam
bhavāṃs tu tapasā śreṣṭhaḥ prajāpatisamadyutiḥ //
tatpravartasva vaṃśāya vardhayātmānam ātmanā
ādadhat svorjitaṃ tejo dvitīyāṃ kuru vai tanum //
sa evam ukto munibhir munir manasi tāḍitaḥ
jagarhe tān ṛṣigaṇān vacanaṃ cedam abravīt //
yathāyaṃ śāśvato dharmo munīnāṃ vihitaḥ purā
ārṣaṃ vai sevatāṃ karma vanyamūlaphalāśinaḥ //
brahmayonau prasūtasya brāhmaṇasyātmavartinaḥ
brahmacaryaṃ sucaritaṃ brahmāṇam api cālayet //
dvijānāṃ vṛttayas tisro ye gṛhāśramavāsinaḥ
asmākaṃ tu vanaṃ vṛttir vanyāśramanivāsinām //
abbhakṣā vāyubhakṣāś ca dantolūkhalinas tathā
aśmakuṭṭā daśatapāḥ pañcasaptatapāś ca ye //
ete tapasi tiṣṭhanto vratair api suduṣcaraiḥ
brahmacaryaṃ puraskṛtya prārthayanti parāṃ gatim //
brahmacaryād brāhmaṇasya brāhmaṇatvaṃ vidhīyate
evam āhuḥ pare loke brahmacaryavido janāḥ //
brahmacarye sthitaṃ dhairyaṃ brahmacarye sthitaṃ tapaḥ
ye sthitā brahmacaryeṇa brāhmaṇā divi te sthitāḥ //
nāsti yogaṃ vinā siddhir nāsti siddhiṃ vinā yaśaḥ
nāsti loke yaśomūlaṃ brahmacaryāt paraṃ tapaḥ //
yo nigṛhyendriyagrāmaṃ bhūtagrāmaṃ ca pañcakam
brahmacaryaṃ samādhatte kim ataḥ paramaṃ tapaḥ //
ayoge keśadharaṇam asaṃkalpe vratakriyā
brahmacaryaṃ ca caryā ca trayaṃ syād dambhasaṃjñitam //
kva dārāḥ kva ca saṃyogaḥ kva ca bhāvaviparyayaḥ
yad iyaṃ brahmaṇā sṛṣṭā manasā mānasī prajā //
yady asti tapaso vīryaṃ yuṣmākam amitātmanām
Note: k: D5 ins.: :kmukhanetravikāreṇa sparśanair bhāṣaṇena ca |
smaraṇaṃ sundarīṇāṃ ca manaso vikṛtiḥ purā |
tasyām utpattim āsādya tasyāṃ bījaṃ ka āvehat |
pāpātmā vikalo mūḍho bhavādṛśa iti śrutiḥ |
smṛtvā brahmapadāt khinno dṛṣṭvā śukraṃ pramuñcati |
sṛṣṭvā vidrāvayaty ātmā tasyāṃ bījaṃ ka āvahet |
brahmacarye yadā bhūte bhaved yadi viniścayaḥ |
prāṇino dadhati ke ratiṃ tato |
yoṣitāṃ vapuṣi nirghṛṇe 'śucau |
brahmacaryam aparaṃ suniścitāḥ |
kurmahe yad abhikāṅkṣitaṃ hṛdi |
sṛjadhvaṃ mānasān putrān prājāpatyena karmaṇā //
manasā nirmitā yonir ādhātavyā tapasvinā
na dārayogaṃ bījaṃ vā vratamuktaṃ tapasvinām //
yad idaṃ luptadharmārthaṃ yuṣmābhir iha nirbhayaiḥ
vyāhṛtaṃ sadbhir atyartham asadbhir iva me matam //
vapur dīptāntarātmānam eṣa kṛtvā manomayam
dārayogaṃ vinā srakṣye putram ātmatanūruham //
evam ātmānam ātmā me dvitīyaṃ janayiṣyati
vanyenānena vidhinā didhakṣantam iva prajāḥ //
ūrvas tu tapasāviṣṭo niveśyoruṃ hutāśane
mamanthaikena darbheṇa sutasya prabhavāraṇim //
tasyoruṃ sahasā bhittvā jvālāmālī nirindhanaḥ
jagato dahanākāṅkṣī putro 'gniḥ samapadyata //
ūrvasyoruṃ vinirmidya aurvo nāmāntako 'nalaḥ
didhakṣann iva lokāṃs trīñ jajñe paramakopanaḥ //
utpannamātraś covāca pitaraṃ dīptayā girā
kṣudhā me bādhate tāta jagad dhakṣye tyajasva mām //
tridivārohibhir jvālair jṛmbhamāṇo diśo daśa
nirdahan sarvabhūtāni vavṛdhe so 'ntako 'nalaḥ //
etasminn anantare brahmā munim ūrvaṃ sabhājayan
Note: k: After 53a, N (except Ś1 Ñ1) T1.3.4 G3-5 ins.: :ksarvalokapatiḥ prabhuḥ |
ājagāma munir yatra vyasṛjat putram uttamam |
sa dadarśorum ūrvasya dīpyamānaṃ sutāgninā |
aurvakopāgnisaṃtaptāṃl lokāṃś ca ṛṣibhiḥ saha |
tam uvāca tato brahmā |
putredaṃ dhāryatāṃ tejo lokānāṃ kriyatāṃ dayā //
asyāpatyasya te vipra kariṣye sāhyam uttamam
vāsaṃ cāsya pradāsyāmi prāśanaṃ cāmṛtopamam
tathyam etan mama vacaḥ śṛṇu tvaṃ vadatāṃ vara //
Note: k: T1.2 G M3.4 ins.: :k
bhojanaṃ cāsya dāsyāmi yena prīto bhaviṣyati |
dhanyo 'smy anugṛhīto 'smi yan me 'dya bhagavāñ śiśoḥ
matim etāṃ dadātīha paramānugrahāya vai //
prabhātakāle saṃprāpte kāṅkṣitavye samāgame
bhagavaṃs tarpitaḥ putraḥ kair havyaiḥ prāpsyate sukham //
kutra vāsya nivāsaḥ syād bhojanaṃ ca kimātmakam
vidhāsyati bhavān asya vīryatulyaṃ mahaujasaḥ //
vaḍavāmukhe 'sya vasatiḥ samudre vai bhaviṣyati
mama yonir jalaṃ vipra tac ca me toyapaṃ mukham //
tatrāham āse nirataḥ piban vārimayaṃ havaiḥ
taddhavis tava putrasya visṛjāmy ālayaṃ ca tat //
tato yugānte bhūtānām eṣa cāhaṃ ca suvrata
sahitau vicariṣyāvo niṣprāṇanakarāv iha //
eṣo 'gnir antakālasya salilāśī mayā kṛtaḥ
dahanaḥ sarvabhūtānāṃ sadevāsurarakṣasām //
evam astv iti so 'py agniḥ saṃvṛtajvālamaṇḍalaḥ
praviveśārṇavamukhaṃ nikṣipya pitari prabhām //
pratiyātas tato brahmā te ca sarve maharṣayaḥ
aurvasyāgneḥ prabhāvajñāḥ svāṃ svāṃ gatim upāśritāḥ //
hiraṇyakaśipur dṛṣṭvā tad adbhutam apūjayat
aurvaṃ praṇatasarvāṅgo vākyaṃ cedam uvāca ha //
bhagavann adbhutam idaṃ nirvṛttaṃ lokasākṣikam
tapasā te muniśreṣṭha parituṣṭaḥ pitāmahaḥ //
ahaṃ tu tava putrasya tava caiva mahāvrata
bhṛtya ity avagantavyaḥ ślāghyo 'smi yadi karmaṇā //
taṃ mā paśya samāpannaṃ tavaivārādhane ratam
yat sīdeyaṃ muniśreṣṭha tavaiva syātparājayaḥ //
Note: k: G3 ins.: :k
śiṣyo 'smi te tapaḥśreṣṭha surebhyo me bhayaṃ nuda |
dhanyo 'smy anugṛhīto 'smi yasya te 'haṃ gurur mataḥ
nāsti te tapasānena bhayam adyeha suvrata //
imāṃ ca māyāṃ gṛhṇīṣva mama putreṇa nirmitām
nirindhanām agnimayīṃ duḥsparśāṃ pāvakair api //
eṣā te svasya vaṃśasya vaśagārivinigrahe
rakṣiṣyaty ātmapakṣaṃ ca parāṃś ca pradahiṣyati //
evam astv iti tāṃ gṛhya praṇamya munipuṃgavam
jagāma tridivaṃ hṛṣṭaḥ kṛtārtho dānaveśvaraḥ //
saiṣā durviṣahā māyā devair api durāsadā
aurveṇa nirmitā pūrvaṃ pāvakenorvasūnunā //
tasmiṃs tu vyutthite daitye nirvīyaiṣā na saṃśayaḥ
śāpo hy asyāḥ purā dattaḥ sṛṣṭā yenaiva tejasā //
yady eṣā pratihantavyā kartavyo bhagavān sukhī
dīyatāṃ me sakhā śakra toyayonir niśākaraḥ
Note: k: N (except Ñ1) T1.3.4 G1.4 ins.: :ktenāhaṃ saha saṃgamya yādobhiś ca samāhitaḥ |
māyām etāṃ haniṣyāmi tvatprasādān na saṃśayaḥ //
Note: Colophon
Note: h: HV (CE) chapter 36, transliterated by Atul Agarwala, proof-read by Horst Brinkhaus, version of February 27, 2000 :h
evam astv iti saṃhṛṣṭaḥ śakras tridaśavardhanaḥ
saṃdideśāgrataḥ somaṃ yuddhāya śiśirāyudham //
gaccha soma sahāyatvaṃ kuru pāśadharasya vai
asurāṇāṃ vināśāya jayārthaṃ ca divaukasām //
tvam apratimavīryaś ca jyotiṣāṃ ceśvareśvaraḥ
tvanmayaṃ sarvalokānāṃ rasaṃ rasavido viduḥ //
kṣayavṛddhis tava vyaktā sāgare khe ca maṇḍale
parivartasy ahorātraṃ kālaṃ jagati yojayan //
lokacchāyāmayaṃ lakṣma tavāṅke śaśasaṃsthitam
na viduḥ soma devāś ca ye ca nakṣatrayoginaḥ //
tvam ādityapathād ūrdhvaṃ jyotiṣāṃ copari sthitaḥ
tamaḥ protsārya vapuṣā bhāsayasy akhilaṃ jagat //
śvetabhānur himatanur jyotiṣām adhipaḥ śaśī
abdakṛt kālayogātmā ījyo yajñaraso 'vyayaḥ //
oṣadhīśaḥ kriyāyonir abjayonir anuṣṇabhāk
śītāṃśur amṛtādhāraś capalaḥ śvetavāhanaḥ //
tvaṃ kāntiḥ kāntavapuṣāṃ tvaṃ somaḥ somavṛttinām
saumyas tvaṃ sarvabhūtānāṃ timiraghnas tvam ṛkṣarāṭ //
tad gaccha tvaṃ sahānena varuṇena varūthinā
śamayasvāsurīṃ māyāṃ yayā dahyāma saṃyuge //
yan mā vadasi yuddhārthe devarāja varaprada
eṣa varṣāmi śiśiraṃ daityamāyāpakarṣaṇam //
etān macchītanirdagdhān paśyasva himaveṣṭitān
vimāyān vimadāṃś caiva daityasaṃghān mahāhave //
tato himakarotsṛṣṭāḥ sabāṣpā himavṛṣṭayaḥ
veṣṭayanti sma tān ghorān daityān meghagaṇā iva //
tau pāśaśuklāṃśudharau varuṇendū mahāraṇe
jaghnatur himapātaiś ca pāśapātaiś ca dānavān //
dvāv ambunāthau samare tau pāśahimayodhinau
mṛdhe ceratur ambhobhiḥ kṣubdhāv iva mahārṇavau //
tābhyām āplāvitaṃ sainyaṃ tad dānavam adṛśyata
jagatsaṃvartakāmbhodaiḥ pravṛttair iva saṃvṛtam //
tāv udyatāṃśupāśau tu śaśāṅkavaruṇāv ubhau
tāṃ māyāṃ śamayām āstāṃ devau daiteyanirmitām //
śītāṃśujalanirdagdhāḥ pāśaiś ca prasitā mṛdhe
na śekuś calituṃ daityā viśiraskā ivādrayaḥ //
śītāṃśunihatās te tu petur daityā himārditāḥ
himaplāvitasarvāṅgā niruṣmāṇa ivāgrayaḥ //
teṣāṃ tu divi daityānāṃ viparītaprabhāṇi ha
vimānāni vicitrāṇi prapatanty utpatanti ca //
tān pāśahastagrathitāṃś chāditāñ śītaraśmibhiḥ
mayo dadarśa māyāvī dānavān divi dānavaḥ //
sa śilājālavitatāṃ gaṇḍaśailāṭṭahāsinīm
pādapotkaṭakūṭāgrāṃ kandarākīrṇakānanām //
siṃhavyāghragajākīrṇāṃ nadantīṃ dvipayūthapaiḥ
īhāmṛgagaṇākīrṇāṃ pavanāghūrṇitadrumām //
nirmitāṃ svena putreṇa krauñcena divi kāmagām
prathitāṃ pārvatīṃ māyāṃ sasṛje sa samantataḥ //
sāśmaśabdaiḥ śilāvarṣaiḥ prapatadbhiś ca pādapaiḥ
nijaghne devasaṃghāṃs tān dānavāṃś cāpy ajīvayat //
naiśākarī vāruṇī ca māye 'ntardadhatus tataḥ
aśmabhiś cāyasaghanaiḥ kiraddevagaṇān raṇe //
sāśmasaṃghātaviṣamā drumaparvatasaṃkaṭā
abhavad dyaur asaṃhāryā pṛthivī parvatair iva //
nānāhato 'śmabhiḥ kaścic chilābhiś cāpy atāḍitaḥ
nāniruddho drumagaṇair devo 'dṛśyata saṃyuge //
tad asaṃsrastadhanuṣaṃ bhagnapraharaṇāvilam
niṣprayatnaṃ surānīkaṃ varjayitvā gadādharam //
sa hi yuddhagataḥ śrīmān īśo na sma vyakampata
sahiṣṇutvāj jagatsvāmī na cukrodha gadādharaḥ //
kālajñaḥ kālameghābhaḥ samīkṣan kālam āhave
devāsuravimardaṃ sa draṣṭukāmo janārdanaḥ //
tato bhagavatādiṣṭau raṇe pāvakamārutau
Note: k: N (except Ś1 K1 Ñ1) S (except M1-3) ins.: :kmāyāyā mayasṛṣṭāyāḥ pravṛddhāyāḥ śamāya vai |
tataḥ pravṛddhāv anyonyaṃ pravṛddhajvālaveginau |
coditau viṣṇuvākyena tau māyām apakarṣatām //
tābhyām udbhrāntameghābhyāṃ pravṛddhābhyāṃ mahāmṛdhe
dagdhā sā pārvatī māyā bhasmabhūtā nanāśa ha //
so 'nalo 'nilasaṃyuktaḥ so 'nilaś cānalākulaḥ
daityasenāṃ dadahatur yugānteṣv iva mūrcchitau //
vāyuḥ pradhāvitas tatra paścād agniś ca mārutāt
ceratur dānavānīke krīḍantāv anilānalau //
bhasmāvayavabhūteṣu prapatatsūtpatatsu ca
dānavānāṃ vimāneṣu vimāneṣu samantataḥ //
vātaskandhāpaviddheṣu kṛtakarmaṇi pāvake
māyāvadhe vinirvṛtte stūyamāne gadādhare //
niṣprayatneṣu daityeṣu trailokye muktabandhane
saṃprahṛṣṭeṣu deveṣu sādhu sādhv iti sarvaśaḥ //
jaye daśaśatākṣasya mayasya ca parājaye
dikṣu sarvāsu śuddhāsu pravṛtte dharmasaṃstare //
apāvṛte candrapathe svayanasthe divākare
prakṛtistheṣu lokeṣu nṛṣu cāritrabandhuṣu //
Note: k: K1 D2 (after 39) ins.: :k
virājamānā devās tu tato munigaṇaiḥ saha |
abhinnabandhane mṛtyau hūyamāne hutāśane
yajñaśobhiṣu deveṣu svargārthaṃ darśayatsu ca //
lokapāleṣu sarveṣu dikṣu saṃyānavartiṣu
bhāve tapasi śuddhānām abhāve pāpakarmaṇām //
devapakṣe pramudite daityapakṣe viṣīdati
tripādavigrahe dharme adharme pādavigrahe //
apāvṛte mahādvāre vartamāne ca satpathe
svadharmastheṣu varṇeṣu loke 'sminn āśrameṣu ca //
prajārakṣaṇayukteṣu bhrājamāneṣu rājasu
Note: k: N (except Ś1) T2.4 G1.3-5 M4 ins.: :kgīyamānāsu gāthāsu devasaṃstavanādiṣu |
praśāntakalmaṣe loke śānte tamasi dāruṇe //
agnimārutayos tasmin vṛtte saṃgrāmakarmaṇi
tanmayā vimalā lokās tābhyāṃ jayakṛtakriyāḥ //
pūrvadevabhayaṃ śrutvā mārutāgnibhayaṃ mahat
kālanemir iti khyāto dānavaḥ pratyadṛśyata //
bhāskarākāramukuṭaḥ śiñjitābharaṇāṅgadaḥ
mandarotkīrṇasaṃkāśo mahārajatasaṃvṛtaḥ //
śatapraharaṇodagraḥ śatabāhuḥ śatānanaḥ
śataśīrṣaḥ sthitaḥ śrīmāñ śataśṛṅga ivācalaḥ
kakṣe mahati saṃvṛddho nidāgha iva pāvakaḥ //
dhūmrakeśo hariśmaśrur daṃṣṭrālauṣṭhapuṭānanaḥ
trailokyāntaravistāri dhārayan vipulaṃ vapuḥ //
bāhubhis tulayan vyoma kṣipan padbhyāṃ mahīdharān
īrayan mukhaniḥśvāsair vṛṣṭimanto balāhakān //
tiryagāyataraktākṣaṃ mandarodagravakṣasam
didhakṣantam ivāyāntaṃ sarvān devagaṇān mṛdhe //
tarjayantaṃ suragaṇāṃś chādayantaṃ diśo daśa
saṃvartakāle tṛṣitaṃ dṛptaṃ mṛtyum ivotthitam //
sutalenocchrayavatā vipulāṅguliparvaṇā
lambābharaṇapūrṇena kiṃcic calitavarmaṇā //
ucchritenāgrahastena dakṣiṇena vapuṣmatā
dānavān devanihatān uttiṣṭhata iti bruvan //
taṃ kālanemiṃ samare dviṣatāṃ kālasaṃmitam
vīkṣanti sma surāḥ sarve bhayavitrastalocanāḥ //
taṃ sma vīkṣanti bhūtāni kramantaṃ kālaneminam
trivikrame vikramantaṃ nārāyaṇam ivāparam //
socchrayan prathamaṃ pādaṃ mārutāghūrṇitāmbaram
prākrāmadasuro yuddhe trāsayan sarvadevatāḥ //
sa mayenāsurendreṇa pariṣvaktaḥ kraman raṇe
kālanemir babhau daityaḥ saviṣṇur iva mandaraḥ //
atha pravivyathur devāḥ sarve śakrapurogamāḥ
dṛṣṭvā kālam ivāyāntaṃ kālanemiṃ bhayāvaham //
Note: Colophon
Note: h: HV (CE) chapter 37, transliterated by Atul Agarwala, proof-read by Horst Brinkhaus, version of February 27, 2000 :h
dānavānāṃ tu piprīṣuḥ kālanemiḥ sa dānavaḥ
vyavardhata mahātejās tapānte jalado yathā //
taṃ trailoyāntaragataṃ dṛṣṭvā te dānaveśvarāḥ
uttasthur apariśrāntāḥ prāpyevāmṛtam uttamam //
te vītabhayasaṃtrāsā mayatārapurogamāḥ
Note: k: N (except Ñ1) T G1.3-5 ins.: :ktārakāmayasaṃgrāme satataṃ jitakāśinaḥ |
rejur āyodhanagatā dānavā yuddhakaṅkṣiṇaḥ //
mantram abhyasyataṃ teṣāṃ vyūhaṃ ca paridhāvatām
prekṣatāṃ cābhavat prītir dānavaṃ kālaneminam //
ye tu tatra mayasyāsan mukhyā yuddhapuraḥsarāḥ
te'pi sarve bhayaṃ tyaktvā hṛṣṭā yoddhum upasthitāḥ //
mayas tāro varāhaś ca hayagrīvaś ca vīryavān
vipracittisutaḥ śvetaḥ kharalambāv ubhāv api //
ariṣṭo baliputraś ca kiśorāṣṭrau tathaiva ca
svarbhānuś cāmaraprakhyo vaktrayodhī mahāsuraḥ //
ete 'straviduṣaḥ sarve sarve tapasi saṃsthitāḥ
dānavāḥ kṛtino jagmuḥ kālaneminam uttamam //
te gadābhiś ca gurvībhiś cakraiś ca saparaśvaghaiḥ
kālakalpaiś ca musalaiḥ kṣepaṇīyaiś ca mudgaraiḥ //
aśmabhiś cāṭṭasadṛśair gaṇḍaśailaiś ca daṃśitaiḥ
paṭṭisair bhiṇḍipālaiś ca parighaiś cottamāyasaiḥ //
ghātanībhiś ca gurvībhiḥ śataghnībhis tathaiva ca
yugair yantraiś ca nirmuktair argalaiś cāgratāḍitaiḥ //
Note: k: K1.3 ins.: :k
dānavā yuddhadurdharṣāḥ saṃgrāmamukhataḥ sthitāḥ |
dorbhiś cāyatapīnābhiḥ prāsaiḥ pāśaiś ca mudgaraiḥ
sarpair lelihyamānaiś ca visarpadbhiś ca sāyakaiḥ //
vajraiḥ praharaṇīyaiś ca dīpyadbhiś cāpi tomaraiḥ
vikośaiś cāsibhis tīkṣṇaiḥ śūlaiś ca śitanirmalaiḥ //
te vai saṃdīptamanasaḥ pragṛhītottamāyudhāḥ
kālanemiṃ puraskṛtya tasthuḥ saṃgrāmamūrdhani //
sā dīptaśastrapravarā daityānāṃ śuśubhe camūḥ
dyaur nimīlitanakṣatrā ghananīlāmbudāgame //
devatānām api camūr mumude śakrapālitā
dīptā śītoṣṇatejobhyāṃ candrabhāskaratejasā //
vāyuvegavatī saumyā tārāgaṇapatākinī
toyadāviddhavasanā grahanakṣatrahāsinī //
yamendravaruṇair guptā dhanadena ca dhīmatā
saṃpradīptāgnipavanā nārāyaṇaparāyaṇā //
sā samudraughasadṛśī divyā devamahācamūḥ
rarājāstravatī bhīmā yakṣagandharvaśālinī //
tayoś camvos tadānīṃ tu babhūva sa samāgamaḥ
dvāvāpṛthivyoḥ saṃyogo yathā syād yugaparyaye //
tadyuddham abhavad ghoraṃ devadānavasaṃkulam
kṣamāparākramamayaṃ darpasya vinayasya ca //
niścakramur balābhyāṃ tu tābhyāṃ bhīmāḥ surāsurāḥ
pūrvāparābhyāṃ saṃrabdhāḥ sāgarābhyām ivāmbudāḥ //
tābhyāṃ balābhyāṃ saṃhṛṣṭāś cerus te devadānavāḥ
vanābhyāṃ pārvatīyābhyāṃ puṣpitābhyāṃ yathā gajāḥ //
samājaghnus tato bherīḥ śaṅkhān dadhmuś ca naikaśaḥ
sa dyāṃ divaṃ bhuvaṃ caiva diśaś ca samapūrayat //
jyāghātatalanirghoṣo dhanuṣāṃ kūjitāni ca
duṃdubhīnāṃ ca ninadā daityam antardadhuḥ svanam //
te 'nyonyam abhisaṃpetuḥ pātayantaḥ parasparam
babhañjur bāhubhir bāhūn dvaṃdvam anye yuyutsavaḥ //
devatās tv aśanīr ghorāḥ parighāṃś cottamāyasān
sasarjur ājau nistriṃśān gadā gurvīś ca dānavāḥ //
gadānipātair bhagnāṅgā bāṇaiś ca śakalīkṛtāḥ
paripetur bhṛśaṃ kecin nyubjāḥ kecic ca jajñire //
tato rathaiḥ saturagair vimānaiś cāśugāmibhiḥ
samīyus te susaṃrabdhā roṣād anyonyam āhave //
saṃvartamānāḥ samare vivartantas tathāpare
rathā rathair nirudhyante padātāś ca padātibhiḥ //
teṣāṃ rathānāṃ tumulaḥ sa śabdaḥ śabdavāhinām
nabhaḥ svasvāna hi yathā nabhasye jaladasvanaiḥ //
Note: k: N (except Ś1 Ñ1) subst. for 31cd: :k
babhūvātha prasaktānāṃ nabhasīva payomucām |
babhañjire rathān kecit kecit saṃmṛditā rathaiḥ
saṃbādham eke saṃprāpya na śekuś calituṃ rathāḥ //
anyonyam anye samare dorbhyām utkṣipya darpitāḥ
saṃhrādamānābharaṇā jaghnus tatrāsicarmiṇaḥ //
astrair anye vinirbhinnā raktaṃ vemur hatā yudhi
kṣarajjalānāṃ sadṛśā jaladānāṃ samāgame //
tadastraśastragrathitaṃ kṣiptotkṣiptagadāvilam
devadānavasaṃkṣubdhaṃ saṃkulaṃ yuddham ābabhau //
taddānavamahāmeghaṃ devāyudhavirājitam
anyonyabāṇavarṣaṃ tad yuddhadurdinam ābabhau //
etasminn antare kruddhaḥ kālanemiḥ sa dānavaḥ
vyavardhata samudraughaiḥ pūryamāṇa ivāmbudaḥ //
tasya vidyuccalāpīḍāḥ pradīptāśanivarṣiṇaḥ
gātrān nāgaśiraḥprakhyā viniṣpetur balāhakāḥ //
krodhān niḥśvasatas tasya bhrūbhedasvedavarṣiṇaḥ
sāgniniṣpeṣapavanā mukhān niścerur arciṣaḥ //
tiryag ūrdhvaṃ ca gagane vavṛdhus tasya bāhavaḥ
pañcāsyāḥ kṛṣṇavapuṣo lelihanta ivoragāḥ //
so 'strajālair bahuvidhair dhanurbhiḥ parighair api
divyam ākāśam āvavre parvatair ucchritair iva //
so 'niloddhūtavasanas tasthau saṃgrāmamūrdhani
saṃdhyātapagrastaśikhaḥ sākṣān merur ivācalaḥ //
ūruvegapratikṣiptaiḥ śailaśṛṅgāgrapādapaiḥ
apātayad devagaṇān vajreṇeva mahāgirīn //
bahubhiḥ śastranistriṃśaiś cchinnabhinnaśirorasaḥ
na śekuś calituṃ devāḥ kālanemihatā yudhi //
muṣṭibhir nihatāḥ kecit kecid dhi vidalīkṛtāḥ
yakṣagandharvapatagāḥ petuḥ saha mahoragaiḥ //
tena vitrāsitā devāḥ samare kālaneminā
na śekur yatnavanto 'pi yatnaṃ kartuṃ vicetasaḥ //
Note: k: T G M4 ins.: :k
jitvetthaṃ devatānīkaṃ gadām āvidhya dānavaḥ |
airāvatagataṃ śakram uvācāsurasattamaḥ |
āgacchāgaccha devendra nirjito 'si mayā raṇe |
adyaprabhṛti devendro na tvaṃ bhavasi vṛtrahan |
eṣa te gadayā śakra śiro bhetsyāmi paśyataḥ ||
adyaprabhṛti devendro dānavendro 'ham acyuta |
bhaviṣyāmi na saṃdeho hatvā tvām ugrapauruṣam |
iti bruvāṇaṃ samare vṛtrahā vajram ādade |
jaghāna tarasā śakro vajreṇa hi sa dānavam |
vajraṃ tadvakṣasi prāpya bahudhā samapadyata ||
aśaktaṃ vajram āsīt tu dānavaṃ hantum ojasā |
punaḥ papāta sahasā śakrasyaiva tadā karam |
kālanemis tu sahasā gadām ādāya yatnataḥ |
airāvatasya rabhasā jaghānaikaṃ sa mastakam |
sa vinirbhinnakumbhas tu papāta dharaṇītale ||
sasrāva rudhiraṃ tīkṣṇaṃ gajarājas tadā balī |
punaś ca gadayā rājaṃs tadā samaramūrdhani |
jaghāna dānavendras tu vṛtrahantāram ojasā |
utsṛjya sahasā śakro gajarājaṃ puraṃdaraḥ |
bhinnavarmāsthinicayo mukhāc choṇitam udvaman ||
papātorvyāṃ mahārāja kiṃcid viśramya bhūtale |
utsṛjya sahasā śakraḥ svargalokaṃ mahīpate |
manuṣyalokaṃ saṃprāpya mānuṣīṃ tanum āvrajat |
tena śakraḥ sahasrākṣaḥ saṃditaḥ śarabandhanaiḥ
airāvatagataḥ saṃkhye calituṃ na śaśāka ha //
nirjalāmbhodasadṛśo nirjalārṇavasaprabhaḥ
nirvyāpāraḥ kṛtas tena vipāśo varuṇo mṛdhe //
Note: k: T1.3.4 G5 ins.: :k
agnimārutayor nāśaṃ kṛtvā sa ditijeśvaraḥ |
jaghāna devarājam ca somaṃ varuṇam aśvinau |
ādityavasurudrādīn aśeṣāṃś ca divaukasaḥ |
tato 'tīva prakurvīta āpo vasur amitrahā |
kālanemiṃ jaghānājau śaktyā guha ivāparaḥ ||
śaktyā nirbhinnahṛdayo dhātumān iva parvataḥ |
susrāva rudhiraṃ bhūmau kālanemir mahāsuraḥ |
tato 'tikrodhatāmrākṣaḥ śaktim udyamya vegavān |
svaśaktyā tāḍayām āsa vasum urvyāṃ papāta saḥ |
dhanadaś ca kṛtāntaś ca varuṇaś ca śacīpatiḥ ||
ekadaiva nijaghnus te sāyudhair anibarhaṇaiḥ |
nivārya tāni śastrāṇi tāñ jaghāna pṛthak pṛthak |
yamena preṣitaṃ daṇḍaṃ jagṛhe sa mahāsuraḥ |
taṃ dṛṣṭvā vismitāḥ sarve lokapālā mahaujasaḥ |
jaghāna vajreṇa ruvā devarājaḥ śatakratuḥ ||
vajreṇa nihato daityo na cakampe girir yathā |
punar vajreṇa taṃ daityam indro mārutavartmani |
sthitas tadā jṛmbhaṇena jigīrṇe sāyudhaṃ hariḥ |
praviveśa susūkṣmeṇa kukṣiṃ rūpeṇa vṛtrahā |
tatkṣaṇād eva devendraḥ pārśvaṃ nirbhidya niryayau ||
kavacenābhiguptaḥ sa nārāyaṇamayena ca |
tataḥ śūlam amoghaṃ tu śaṃkaro hantum ādade |
prajāpatir uvācedaṃ mayā dattavaro balī |
na śūlena na cānyena hantuṃ śakyo mahāsuraḥ |
śūlaṃ etad amoghaṃ ca mā prayuñkṣva mahāsure ||
ity uktaḥ śūlapāṇiḥ sa saṃjahārāyudhaṃ svakam |
etasminn antare devāḥ kālanemibhayāturāḥ |
ūcuḥ kṛṣṇaṃ mahātmāno gīrbhiḥ stutvā janārdanam |
Note: k: After line 14 of *518, T1 ins.: :k
mumucuḥ svāni śastrāṇi śataśo 'tha sahasraśaḥ |
raṇe vaiśravaṇas tena parighaiḥ kāmarūpibhiḥ
vilapaṃl lokapāleśas tyājito dhanadakriyām //
Note: k: T3 subst. for 49cd: :k
tadaiva lokapālāś ca nihatās tena saṃyugam |
yamaḥ sarvaharas tena mṛtyupraharaṇo raṇe
yāmyām avasthām amaro nītaḥ svāṃ diśam āviśat //
Note: k: T G ins.: :k
lokapālās tu te sarve mānuṣīṃ tanum āsthitāḥ |
vihāya svapadaṃ rājan vivadanti sma mānuṣe |
sa lokapālān utsādya hṛtvā teṣāṃ ca karma tat
dikṣu sarvāsu dehaṃ svaṃ caturdhā vidadhe tadā //
sa nakṣatrapathaṃ gatvā divyaṃ svarbhānudarśitam
jahāra lakṣmīṃ somasya taṃ cāsya viṣayaṃ mahat //
cālayāmāsa dīptāṃśuṃ svargadvārāt sa bhāskaram
sāyanaṃ cāsya viṣayaṃ jahāra dinakarma ca //
so 'gniṃ devamukhe dṛṣṭvā cakārātmamukheśayam
vāyuṃ ca tarasā jitvā cakārātmavaśānugam //
sa samudrān samānīya sarvāś ca sarito balāt
cakārātmavaśe vīryād dehabhūtāś ca sindhavaḥ //
āpaḥ sa vaśagāḥ kṛtvā divijātāś ca bhūmijāḥ
sthāpayām āsa jagatīṃ suguptāṃ dharaṇīdharaiḥ //
sa svayaṃbhūr ivābhāti mahābhūtapatir mahān
sarvalokamayo daityaḥ sarvalokabhayāvahaḥ //
sa lokapālaikavapuś candrasūryagrahātmavān
pāvakānilasaṃghāto rarāja yudhi dānavaḥ //
pārameṣṭhye sthitaḥ sthāne lokānāṃ prabhavāpyaye
taṃ tuṣṭuvur daityagaṇā devā iva pitāmaham //
Note: Colophon
Note: h: HV (CE) chapter 38, transliterated by Atul Agarwala, proof-read by Horst Brinkhaus, version of March 2, 2000 :h
pañca taṃ nābhyavartanta viparītena karmaṇā
vedo dharmaḥ kṣamā satyaṃ śrīś ca nārāyaṇāśrayā //
sa teṣām anupasthānāt sakrodho dānaveśvaraḥ
vaiṣṇavaṃ padam anvicchan yayau nārāyaṇāntikam //
sa dadarśa suparṇasthaṃ śaṅkhacakragadādharam
dānavānāṃ vināśāya bhrāmayantaṃ gadāṃ śubhām //
sajalāmbhodasadṛśaṃ vidyutsadṛśavāsasam
svārūḍhaṃ svarṇapatrāḍhyaṃ śikhinaṃ kāśyapaṃ khagam //
dṛṣṭvā daityavināśāya raṇe svastham avasthitam
dānavo viṣṇum akṣobhyaṃ babhāṣe kṣubdhamānasaḥ //
ayaṃ sa ripur asmākaṃ pūrveṣāṃ dānavarṣiṇām
arṇavāvāsinaś caiva madhor vai kaiṭabhasya ca //
ayaṃ sa vigraho 'smākam aśāmyaḥ kila kathyate
yena naḥ saṃyugeṣv adya bahavo dānavā hatāḥ //
ayaṃ sa nirghṛṇo yuddhe strībālanirapatrapaḥ
yena dānavanārīṇāṃ sīmantoddharaṇaṃ kṛtam //
ayaṃ sa viṣṇur devānāṃ vaikuṇṭhaś ca divaukasām
ananto bhoginām apsu svayaṃbhūś ca svayaṃbhuvaḥ //
ayaṃ sa nātho devānām asmābhir viprakṛṣyatām
asya krodhaṃ samāsādya hiraṇyakaśipur hataḥ //
asya cchāyāṃ samāśritya devā makhamukhe sthitāḥ
ājyaṃ maharṣibhir dattam aśnuvanti tridhā hutam //
ayaṃ sa nidhane hetuḥ sarveṣāṃ daitavadviṣām
asya cakraṃ praviṣṭāni kulāny asmākam āhave //
ayaṃ sa kila yuddheṣu surārthe tyaktajīvitaḥ
savitus tejasā tulyaṃ cakraṃ kṣipati śatruṣu //
ayaṃ sa kālo daityānāṃ kālabhūte mayi sthite
atikrāntasya kālasya phalaṃ prāpsyati durmatiḥ //
diṣṭyedānīṃ samakṣaṃ me viṣṇur eṣa samāgataḥ
adya madbāṇaniṣpiṣṭo mayy eva praṇamiṣyati //
yāsyāmy apacitiṃ diṣṭyā pūrveṣām adya saṃyuge
imaṃ nārāyaṇaṃ hatvā dānavānāṃ bhayāvaham //
kṣipram eva vadhiṣyāmi raṇe nārāyaṇaṃ śairaiḥ
jātyantaragato hy eṣa mṛdhe bādhati dānavān //
eṣo 'ntakaḥ purā bhūtvā padmanābha iti smṛtaḥ
jaghānaikārṇave ghore tāv ubhau madhukaiṭabhau //
Note: k: K2 Ñ2.3 V B Dn Ds D4.6 ins.: :k
viniveśya svake ūrau nihatau dānaveśvarau |
dvidhābhūtaṃ vapuḥ kṛtvā siṃhārdhaṃ narasaṃsthitam
pitaraṃ me jaghānaiko hiraṇyakaśipuṃ purā //
śubhaṃ garbham adhattainam aditir devatāraṇiḥ
Note: k: Ñ2.3 V B Dn Ds D4.6 T2 G M4 ins.: :kyajñakāle baler yo vai kṛtvā vāmanarūpatām |
trīṃl lokāṃś ca jahāraiṣa kramamāṇas tribhiḥ kramaiḥ //
bhūyas tv idānīṃ samare saṃprāpte tārakāmaye
mayā saha samāgamya sadevo vinaśiṣyati //
sa evam uktvā bahudhā kṣipan nārāyaṇaṃ raṇe
vāgbhir apratirūpābhir yuddham evābhyarocayat //
kṣipyamāṇo 'surendreṇa ya cukopa gadādharaḥ
kṣamābalena manasā sasmitaṃ vākyam abravīt //
alaṃ darpabalaṃ daitya sthiraṃ matkrodhajaṃ balam
hatas tvaṃ darpajair doṣaiḥ kṣamāṃ yo 'tītya bhāṣase //
adhamas tvaṃ mama mato dhig etat tava vāgbalam
na tatra puruṣāḥ santi yatra garjanti yoṣitaḥ //
ahaṃ tvāṃ daitya paśyāmi pūrveṣāṃ mārgagāminam
prajāpatikṛtaṃ setuṃ ko bhittvā svastimān vrajet //
adya tvāṃ nāśayiṣyāmi devavyāghātakāriṇam
sveṣu sveṣu ca sthāneṣu sthāpayiṣyāmi devatāḥ //
evaṃ bruvati vākyaṃ tu mṛdhe śrīvatsadhāriṇi
jahāsa dānavaḥ krodhād dhastāṃś cakre ca sāyudhān //
sa bāhuśatam udyamya sarvāstragrahaṇaṃ raṇe
krodhād rudhiraraktākṣo viṣṇor vakṣasy atāḍayat //
dānavāś cāpi samare mayatārapurogamāḥ
udyatāyudhanistriṃśāḥ sarve viṣṇum abhidravan //
sa tāḍyamāno 'tibalair daityaiḥ sarvāyudhodyataiḥ
na cacāla harir yuddhe 'kampyamāna ivācalaḥ //
saṃsaktaś ca suparṇena kālanemir mahāsuraḥ
sarvaprāṇena mahatīṃ gadām udyamya bāhubhiḥ
mumoca jvalitāṃ ghorāṃ saṃrabdho garuḍopari //
karmaṇā tena daityasya viṣṇur vismayam āgamat
Note: k: T1.2 G3-5 M G1.2 (after 32) ins.: :ksa tena tāḍitaḥ pakṣī cacāla ca punaḥ punaḥ |
hariṇā vardhitabalo na moham upagacchati |
yena tasya suparṇasya patitā mūrdhni sā gadā //
Note: k: K1-3 Ñ2.3 V B D (except D1) T3.4 ins.: :k
tadāgamat padā bhūmiṃ pakṣī vyathitavigrahaḥ |
Note: k: Ñ2 V3 Dn D5.6 cont.: :k
loṣṭaiḥ sarṣṭiśilābhiś ca vajrapraharaṇais tataḥ |
jaghnus te samare viṣṇuṃ gopālaṃ ca mahāraṇe |
bhramantaṃ ghūrṇamānaṃ ca stutiṃ devāḥ pracakrire |
jaya deva mahābāho madhukaiṭabhanāśana |
hiraṇyakaśipor vakṣo nakhalāṅgaladāraṇa |
uttasthau ca raṇād viṣṇur amaraiḥ saṃstutaḥ purā |
hataṃ viṣṇuṃ samājñāya śaṅkhaṃ dadhmau sa dānavaḥ |
mṛdaṅgāṃś ca tridhā tatra vādayanto mahāsurāḥ |
tālāśrayāś ca nanṛtur mahotsava ivābabhau |
suparṇaṃ vyathitaṃ dṛṣṭvā kṣataṃ ca vapur ātmanaḥ
krodhāt saṃraktanayano vaikuṇṭhaś cakramādade //
vyavardhata ca vegena suparṇena samaṃ vibhuḥ
bhujāś cāsya vyavardhanta vyāpnuvanto diśo daśa //
sa diśaḥ pradiśaś caiva khaṃ ca gāṃ caiva pūrayan
vavṛdhe sa punar lokān krāntukāma ivaujasā //
taṃ jayāya surendrāṇāṃ vardhamānaṃ nabhastale
ṛṣayaḥ saha gandharvais tuṣṭuvur madhusūdanam //
Note: k: T G1-3.5 M4 ins.: :k
namo 'stu devadeveśa śaṅkhacakragadādhara |
viṣṇo kṛṣṇa hṛṣīkeśa jahi daityaṃ mahābalam |
namas tubhyaṃ virūpākṣa śaṃkarasya jagatpate |
pāhi naḥ sakalān asmāñ jahi daityaṃ mahābalam |
sa dyāṃ kirīṭena likhan sābhram ambaram ambaraiḥ
padbhyām ākramya vasudhāṃ diśaḥ pracchādya bāhubhiḥ //
sa sūryakaratulyābhaṃ sahasrāram arikṣayam
dīptāgnisadṛśaṃ ghoraṃ darśanīyaṃ sudarśanam //
suvarṇareṇuparyantaṃ vajranābhaṃ bhayāvaham
medosthimajjārudhiraiḥ siktaṃ dānavasaṃbhavaiḥ //
advitīyaṃ prahāreṣu kṣuraparyantamaṇḍalam
sragdāmamālāvitataṃ kāmagaṃ kāmarūpiṇam //
svayaṃ svayaṃbhuvā sṛṣṭaṃ bhayadaṃ sarvavidviṣām
maharṣiroṣair āviṣṭaṃ nityam āhavadarpitam //
kṣepaṇādyasya muhyanti lokāḥ sasthāṇujaṃgamāḥ
kravyādāni ca bhūtāni tṛptiṃ yānti mahāmṛdhe //
tam apratimakarmāṇaṃ samānaṃ sūryavarcasā
cakram udyasya samare krodhadīpto gadādharaḥ //
saṃmuṣṇan dānavaṃ tejaḥ samare svena tejasā
ciccheda bāhūṃś cakreṇa śrīdharaḥ kālaneminaḥ //
tac ca vaktraśataṃ ghoraṃ sāgnicūrṇāṭṭahāsi yat
tasya daityasya cakreṇa pramamātha balād dhariḥ //
sa cchinnabāhur viśirā na prākampata dānavaḥ
kabandhāvasthitaḥ saṃkhye viśākha iva pādapaḥ //
taṃ vitatya mahāpakṣau vāyoḥ kṛtvā samaṃ javam
urasā pātayām āsa garuḍaḥ kālaneminam //
sa tasya deho vimukho viśākhaḥ khāt paribhraman
nipapāta divaṃ tyaktvā kṣobhayan dharaṇītalam //
tasmin nipatite daitye devāḥ sarṣigaṇās tadā
sādhu sādhv iti vaikuṇṭhaṃ sametāḥ pratyapūjayan //
apare ye tu daityā vai yuddhe dṛṣṭaparākramāḥ
te sarve bāhubhir vyāptā na śekuś calituṃ raṇe //
kāṃścit keśeṣu jagrāha kāṃścit kaṇṭhe nyapīḍayat
pāṭayan kasyacid vaktraṃ madhye kāṃścid agṛhyata //
te gadācakranirdagdhā gatasattvā gatāsavaḥ
gaganād bhraṣṭasarvāṅgā nipetur dharaṇītale //
teṣu sarveṣu daityeṣu hateṣu puruṣottamaḥ
tasthau śakrapriyaṃ kṛtvā kṛtakarmā gadādharaḥ //
tasmin vimarde nirvṛtte saṃgrāme tārakāmaye
taṃ deśam ājagāmāśu brahmā lokapitāmahaḥ //
sarvair brahmarṣibhiḥ sārdhaṃ gandharvaiḥ sāpsarogaṇaiḥ
devadevo hariṃ devaṃ pūjayan vākyam abravīt //
kṛtaṃ deva mahatkarma surāṇāṃ śalyam uddhṛtam
vadhenānena daityānāṃ vayaṃ ca paritoṣitāḥ //
yo 'yaṃ tvayā hato viṣṇo kālanemir mahāsuraḥ
tvam eko 'sya mṛdhe hantā nānyaḥ kaścana vidyate //
eṣa devān paribhavaṃl lokāṃś ca sacarācarān
ṛṣīṇāṃ kadanaṃ kṛtvā mām api pratigarjati //
tad anena tavogreṇa parituṣṭo 'smi karmaṇā
yad ayaṃ kālatulyābhaḥ kālanemir nipātitaḥ //
tadāgacchasva bhadraṃ te gacchāma divam uttamam
brahmarṣayas tvāṃ tatrasthāḥ pratīkṣante sadogatāḥ //
Note: k: N (except Ś1 Ñ1) S (except M1-3) ins.: :k
ahaṃ maharṣayaś caiva tatra tvāṃ vadatāṃ vara |
vidhivac cārcayiṣyanti gīrbhir divyābhir acyuta |
kiṃ cāhaṃ tava dāsyāmi varaṃ varabhṛtāṃ vara
sureṣv api sadaityeṣu varāṇāṃ varado bhavān //
niryātayaitat trailokyaṃ sphītaṃ nihatakaṇṭakam
asminn eva mṛdhe viṣṇo śakrāya sumahātmane //
evam ukto bhagavatā brahmaṇā harir īśvaraḥ
devāñ śakramukhān sarvān uvāca śubhayā girā //
śrūyatāṃ tridaśāḥ sarve yāvantaḥ stha samāgatāḥ
śravaṇāvahitair devaiḥ puraskṛtya puraṃdaram //
asmin naḥ samare sarve kālanemimukhā hatāḥ
dānavā vikramopetāḥ śakrād api mahattarāḥ //
asmin mahati saṃkrande dvāv eva tu viniḥsṛtau
vairocaniś ca daityendraḥ svarbhānuś ca mahāgrahaḥ //
tad iṣṭāṃ bhajatāṃ śakro diśaṃ varuṇa eva ca
yāmyāṃ yamaḥ pālayatām uttarāṃ ca dhanādhipaḥ //
ṛkṣaiḥ saha yathāyogaṃ kālaṃ caratu candramāḥ
abdaṃ hy ṛtumukhaṃ sūryo bhajatām ayanaiḥ saha //
ājyabhāgāḥ pravartantāṃ sadasyair abhipūjitāḥ
hūyantām agnayo viprair vedadṛṣṭena karmaṇā //
devāś ca balihomena svādhyāyena maharṣayaḥ
śrāddhena pitaraś caiva tṛptiṃ yāntu yathāsukham //
vāyuś caratu mārgasthas tridhā dīpyatu pāvakaḥ
trayo varṇāś ca lokāṃs trīṃs tarpayantv ātmajair guṇaiḥ //
kratavaḥ saṃpravartantāṃ dīkṣaṇīyair dvijātibhiḥ
dakṣiṇāś cāpi vartantāṃ yathoktaṃ sarvasatriṇām //
gāś ca sūryo rasān somo vāyuḥ prāṇāṃś ca prāṇiṣu
tarpayantaḥ pravartantāṃ śivaiḥ saumyaiś ca karmabhiḥ //
yathāvad anupūrveṇa mahendra salilodvahāḥ
trailokyamātaraḥ sarvāḥ sāgaraṃ yāntu nimnagāḥ //
daityebhyas tyajyatāṃ bhītiḥ śāntiṃ vrajata devatāḥ
svasti vo 'stu gamiṣyāmi brahmalokaṃ sanātanam //
svagṛhe svargaloke vā saṃgrāme vā viśeṣataḥ
visrambho vo na gantavyo nityaṃ kṣudrā hi dānavāḥ //
chidreṣu praharanty ete na caiṣāṃ saṃsthitir dhruvā
saumyānām ṛjubhāvānāṃ bhavatāṃ cārjavā matiḥ //
Note: k: N(except Ś1 Ñ1) S(except M1-3) ins.: :k
ahaṃ tu duṣṭabhāvānāṃ yuṣmāsu sudurātmanām |
asamyag vartamānānāṃ mohaṃ dāsyāmi devatāḥ |
yadā ca sudurādharṣaṃ dānavebhyo bhayaṃ bhavet |
tadā samupagamyāśu vidhāsye vas tato 'bhayam |
evam uktvā suragaṇān viṣṇuḥ satyaparākramaḥ
jagāma brahmaṇā sārdhaṃ brahmalokaṃ mahāyaśāḥ //
etad āścaryam abhavat saṃgrāme tārakāmaye
dānavānāṃ ca viṣṇoś ca yan māṃ tvaṃ paripṛcchasi //
Note: Colophon
Note: h: HV (CE) chapter 39, transliterated by Horst Brinkhaus, proof-read by Horst Brinkhaus, version of July 20, 2001 :h
brahmaṇā devadevena sārdhaṃ salilayoninā
brahmalokaṃ gato brahman vaikuṇṭhaḥ kiṃ cakāra ha //
kimarthaṃ cādidevena nītaḥ salilayoninā
viṣṇur daityavadhe vṛtte devair akṛtasatkriyaḥ //
brahmaloke ca kiṃ sthānaṃ kaṃ vā yogam upāsta saḥ
kaṃ vā dadhāra niyamaṃ sa vibhur bhūtabhāvanaḥ //
kathaṃ tatrāsatas tasya viśvaṃ jagad idaṃ mahat
śriyam āpnoti vipulāṃ surāsuranarārcitām //
kathaṃ svapiti gharmānte budhyate cāmbudakṣaye
kathaṃ ca brahmalokastho dhuraṃ vahati laukikīm //
caritaṃ tasya viprendra divyaṃ bhagavato divi
vistareṇa yathātattvaṃ sarvam icchāmi veditum //
śṛṇu nārāyaṇasyādau vistareṇa pravṛttayaḥ
brahmalokaṃ yathārūḍho brahmaṇā saha modate //
kāmaṃ tasya gatiḥ sūkṣmā devair api durānugā
yat tu śakṣyāmy ahaṃ vaktuṃ tan me nigadataḥ śṛṇu //
eṣa lokamayo devo lokāś caitan mayāstrayaḥ
eṣa devamayaś caiva devāś caitan mayā divi //
devena vardhate yad dhi sarvaṃ tad dhi janārdanāt
yat pravṛttaṃ ca devebhyas tad viddhi madhusūdanāt //
agnīṣomamayaṃ lokaṃ yaṃ vidur viduṣo janāḥ
taṃ somam agniṃ lokaṃ ca veda viṣṇuṃ pitāmahaḥ //
kṣīrād yathā dadhi bhaved dadhnaḥ sarpir yathā bhavet
mathyamāneṣu bhūteṣu tathā loko janārdanāt //
yathendriyaiś ca bhūtaiś ca paramātmā vidhīyate
tathā vedaiś ca devaiś ca lokaiś ca vidito hariḥ //
yathā bhūtendriyāvāptir vihitā bhuvi dehinām
tathā prāṇeśvarāvāptir devānāṃ divi vaiṣṇavī //
satriṇāṃ satraphaladaḥ pavitraṃ paramātmavān
lokatantradharo hy eva mantrair mantra ivārcyate //
asya pāraṃ na paśyanti bahavaḥ pāratantriṇaḥ
eṣa pāraṃ paraṃ caiva lokānāṃ veda mādhavaḥ //
asya devān dhakārasya mārgitavyasya daivataiḥ
śṛṇu vai yat tadā vṛttaṃ brahmaloke purātanam //
sa gatvā brahmaṇo lokaṃ dṛṣṭvā paitāmahaṃ padam
vavande tān ṛṣīn sarvān viṣṇur ārṣeṇa karmaṇā //
so 'gniṃ prāk savane dṛṣṭvā hūyamānaṃ maharṣibhiḥ
avandata mahātejāḥ kṛtvā paurvāhṇikaṃ vidhim //
sa dadarśa makheṣv ājyair ijyamānaṃ maharṣibhiḥ
bhāgaṃ yajñiyam aśnānaṃ svadeham aparaṃ sthitam //
abhivādyābhivādyānām ṛṣīṇāṃ brahmavarcasām
paricakrāma so 'cintyo brahmalokaṃ sanātanam //
sa dadarśocchritān yūpāṃś caṣālāgravibhūṣitān
makheṣu ca brahmarṣibhiḥ śataśaḥ kṛtalakṣaṇān //
ājyadhūmaṃ samāghrāya śṛṇvan vedān dvijeritān
yajñair ijyantam ātmānam paśyaṃs tatra cacāra ha //
tam ūcur ṛṣayo devāḥ sadasyāḥ sadasi sthitāḥ
arghyodyatabhujāḥ sarve pavitrān taritānanāḥ //
svāgataṃ te suraśreṣṭha padmanābha mahādyute
Note: k: Ś1 ins.: :knamo 'stu te hṛṣīkeśa madhukaiṭabhasūdana |
dāmodara namas te 'stu padmapatrāyatekṣaṇa ||
prabhus tvaṃ sarvadevānāṃ lokānāṃ prabhur avyayaḥ |
tvaṃ yajñas tvaṃ vaṣaṭkāras tvayi sarvaṃ pratiṣṭhitam |
idaṃ yajñiyam ātithyaṃ mantrataḥ pratigṛhyatām //
tvam asya yajñapūtasya pātraṃ pādyasya pāvanaḥ
atithis tvaṃ hi mantroktaḥ sa dṛṣṭaḥ satataṃ mataḥ //
tvayi yoddhu gate viṣṇo na prāvartanta naḥ kriyāḥ
avaiṣṇavasya yajñasya na hi karma vidhīyate //
sadakṣiṇasya yajñasya tvatprasūtaṃ phalaṃ bhavet
Note: k: T3 subst. for 28ab: :ksadakṣiṇamahāyajñās tvatprasūtir janārdana |
yady ātmānam ihāsmābhir ijyamānaṃ nirīkṣase //
evam astv iti tān viprān bhagavān pratyapūjayat
mumude brahmalokastho brahmaiva hi pitāmahaḥ //
Note: h: HV (CE) chapter 40, transliterated by Horst Brinkhaus, proof-read by Horst Brinkhaus, version of September 16, 2002 :h
ṛṣibhiḥ pūjitas tais tu viveśa harir īśvaraḥ
paurāṇaṃ brahmasadanaṃ divyaṃ nārāyaṇāśramam //
sa tatra viviśe hṛṣṭas tān āmantrya sadogatān
praṇamya cādidevāya brahmaṇe padmayonaye //
svena nāmnā parijñātaṃ sa taṃ nārāyaṇāśramam
praviśann eva bhagavān āyudhāni vyasarjayat //
sa tatrāmbupatiprakhyaṃ dadarśālayam ātmanaḥ
svadhiṣṭhitaṃ bhūtagaṇaiḥ śāśvataiś ca maharṣibhiḥ //
saṃvartakāmbudopetaṃ nakṣatrasthānasaṃkulam
timiraughaparikṣiptam apradhṛṣyaṃ surāsuraiḥ //
na tatra viṣayo vāyor nendor nāpi vivasvataḥ
vapuṣā padmanābhasya sa deśas tejasā vṛtaḥ //
sa tatra praviśann eva jaṭābhāraṃ samudvahan
sa sahasraśirā bhūtvā śayanāyopacakrame //
lokānām antakālajñā kālī nayanaśālinī
upatasthe mahātmānaṃ nidrā taṃ kālarūpiṇī //
Note: k: K1 ins.: :k
viśvasya jagataḥ prabhum |
nārāyaṇaṃ viśvabījam |
sa śiśye śayane divye samudrāmbhodaśītale
harir ekārṇavoktena vratena vratināṃ varaḥ //
taṃ śayānaṃ mahātmānaṃ bhavāya jagataḥ prabhum
upāsāṃ cakrire viṣṇuṃ devāḥ sarṣigaṇās tadā //
tasya suptasya śuśubhe nābhimadhyāt samutthitam
ādyasya sadanaṃ padmaṃ brahmaṇaḥ sūryasaṃnibham //
Note: k: K1-3 Ñ2.3 V B Dn Ds D2-5 T1.3.4 G3.5 ins.: :k
sahasrapatraṃ varṇāḍhyaṃ sukumāraṃ vibhūṣitam |
brahmasūtrodyatakaraḥ svapann eva mahāmuniḥ
āvartayati lokānāṃ sarveṣāṃ kālaparyayam //
vivṛtāt tasya vadanān niḥśvāsapavaneritāḥ
prajānāṃ paṅktayo hy oghair niṣpatanti viśanti ca //
te sṛṣṭāḥ prāṇinām oghā vibhaktā brahmaṇā svayam
caturdhā svāṃ gatiṃ jagmuḥ kṛtāntoktena karmaṇā //
na taṃ veda svayaṃ brahmā nāpi brahmarṣayo 'vyayāḥ
viṣṇuṃ nidrāmayaṃ yogaṃ praviṣṭaṃ tamasāvṛtam //
te tu brahmarṣayaḥ sarve pitāmahapurogamāḥ
na vidus taṃ kvacit suptaṃ kvacid āsīnam āsane //
jāgarti ko 'tra kaḥ śete kaḥ śvasan kaś ca neṅgate
ko bhogavān ko dyutimān kṛṣṇāt kṛṣṇataraś ca kaḥ //
vimṛśanti sma taṃ devaṃ divyābhir upapattibhiḥ
Note: k: S (except T3.4) ins.: :kvākyair brahmapadaiś cāpi pramāṇaiḥ sarvalakṣaṇaiḥ |
na cainaṃ śekur anveṣṭuṃ karmato janmato 'pi vā //
kathābhis tatpradiṣṭābhir ye tasya caritaṃ viduḥ
purāṇaṃ taṃ purāṇeṣu ṛṣayaḥ saṃpracakṣate //
śrūyate cāsya caritaṃ deveṣv api purātanam
mahāpurāṇāt prabhṛti paraṃ tasya na vidyate //
Note: k: M1-3 subst. for 20cd: :k
tat purāṇād ṛte tasya caritaṃ naiva vidyate |
yac cāsya veda vedo 'pi caritaṃ svaprabhāvajam
tenemāḥ śrutayo vyāptā vaidikā laukikāś ca yāḥ //
bhavakāle bhavaty eṣa lokānāṃ bhūtabhāvanaḥ
dānavānām abhāvāya jāgarti madhusūdanaḥ //
yadainaṃ vīkṣituṃ devā na śekuḥ suptam acyutam
tataḥ svapiti gharmānte jāgarti jaladakṣaye //
Note: k: N (except Ś1 Ñ1; D6 om.) T1.3.4 G3.5 ins.: :k
sa hi yajñāś ca vedāś ca yajñāṅgāni ca sarvaśaḥ |
yā tu yajñagatiḥ proktā sa eṣa puruṣottamaḥ |
tasmin supte na vartante mantrapūtāḥ kratukriyāḥ
śaratpravṛttayajño hi jāgarti madhusūdanaḥ //
Note: k: T1.2 G M subst. for 24cd: :k
śaratprabhṛti yajñā hi jāgrati śrīdhare harau |
tad idaṃ vārṣikaṃ cakraṃ kārayaty ambudeśvaraḥ
vaiṣṇavaṃ karma kurvāṇaḥ supte viṣṇau puraṃdaraḥ //
yā hy eṣā gahvarī māyā nidreti jagati sthitā
akasmād dveṣiṇī ghorā kālarātrir mahīkṣitām //
asyās tanus tamodvārā niśādivasanāśinī
jīvitārdhaharī ghorā sarvaprāṇabhṛtāṃ bhuvi //
naitayā kaścid āviṣṭo jṛmbhamāṇo muhur muhuḥ
śaktaḥ prasahituṃ vegaṃ majjann iva mahārṇave //
annajā bhuvi martyānāṃ śramajā vā kathaṃcana
naiśā bhavati lokasya nidrā sarvasya laukikī //
svapnānte kṣīyate hy eṣā prāyaśo bhuvi dehinām
mṛtyukāle ca bhūtānāṃ prāṇān nāśayate bhṛśam //
deveṣv api dadhāraināṃ nānyo nārāyaṇād ṛte
sakhī sarvaharasyaiṣā māyā viṣṇuśarīrajā //
saiṣā nārāyaṇamukhe dṛṣṭā kamalalocanā
lokān alpena kālena bhajate bhūtamohinī //
evam eṣā hitārthāya lokānāṃ kṛṣṇavartmanā
dhriyate sevanīyena patineva pativratā //
sa tayā nidrayā channas tasmin nārāyaṇāśrame
śete sma hi tadā viṣṇur mohayañ jagad avyayaḥ //
tasya varṣasahasrāṇi śayānasya mahātmanaḥ
jagmuḥ kṛtayugaṃ caiva tretā caiva yugottamam //
sa tu dvāparaparyante dṛṣṭvā lokān suduḥkhitān
prābudhyata mahātejāḥ stūyamāno maharṣibhiḥ //
jahīhi nidrāṃ sahajāṃ bhuktapūrvām iva srajam
ime te brahmaṇā sārdhaṃ devā darśanakāṅkṣiṇaḥ //
ime tvāṃ brahmaviduṣo brahmasaṃstavavādinaḥ
vardhayanti hṛṣīkeśa ṛṣayaḥ saṃśitavratāḥ //
eteṣām ātmabhūtānāṃ bhūtānāṃ bhūtabhāvana
śṛṇu viṣṇo śubhāṃ vācaṃ bhūvyomāgnyanilāmbhasām //
ime tvā sapta munayaḥ sahitā munimaṇḍalaiḥ
stuvanti deva divyābhir geyābhir gīrbhir añjasā //
uttiṣṭha śatapatrākṣa padmanābha mahādyute
kāraṇaṃ kiṃcid utpannaṃ devānāṃ kāryagauravāt //
Note: k: T1.2 G M ins.: :k
jahi nidrāṃ jagaddhetoḥ keśaveśa janārdana |
tvayi supte jagat suptaṃ tvayi jāgrati jāgṛtam ||
mīlanaṃ kuru devānāṃ devadeva jagatpate |
kiṃ tvaṃ svapiṣi govinda naṣṭe jagati sāṃpratam |
naṣṭaprāyaṃ jagat paśya sadevāsuramānuṣam |
sa saṃkṣipya jagat sarvaṃ timiraughaṃ vidārayan
udatiṣṭhad dhṛṣīkeśaḥ śriyā paramayā jvalan //
sa dadarśa surān sarvān sametān sapitāmahān
vivakṣataḥ prakṣubhitāñ jagadarthe samāgatān //
tān uvāca harir devān nidrāviśrāntalocanaḥ
tattvadṛṣṭārthayā vācā dharmahetvarthayuktayā //
kuto vo vigraho devāḥ kuto vo bhayam āgatam
kasya vā kena vā kāryaṃ kiṃ vā mayi na vartate //
na khalv akuśalaṃ loke vartate dānavotthitam
nṛṇām āyāsajananaṃ śīghram icchāmi veditum //
eṣa brahmavidāṃ madhye vihāya śayanottamam
śivāya bhavatām arthe sthitaḥ kiṃ karavāṇi vaḥ //
Note: Colophon
Note: h: HV (CE) chapter 41, transliterated by Horst Brinkhaus, proof-read by Horst Brinkhaus, version of September 12, 2002 :h
tac chrutvā viṣṇugaditaṃ brahmā lokapitāmahaḥ
uvāca paramaṃ vākyaṃ hitaṃ sarvadivaukasām //
nāsti kiṃcid bhayaṃ viṣṇo surāṇām asurāntaka
yeṣāṃ bhavān abhayadaḥ karṇadhāro raṇe raṇe //
śakre jayati deveśe tvayi cāsurasūdane
dharme prayatamānānāṃ mānavānāṃ kuto bhayam //
satye dharme ca niratā mānavā vigatajvarāḥ
nākāladharmaṇā mṛtyuḥ śaknoti prasamīkṣitum //
mānavānāṃ ca patayaḥ pārthivāś ca parasparam
ṣaḍbhāgam upayuñjānā na bhedaṃ kurvate mithaḥ //
te prajānāṃ śubhakarāḥ karadair avigarhitāḥ
akarair viprayuktārthāḥ kośam āpūrayan sadā //
sphītāñjanapadān svān svān pālayantaḥ kṣamāparāḥ
atīkṣṇad aṇḍāś caturo varṇāñ jugupur añjasā //
nodvejanīyā bhūtānāṃ sacivaiḥ sādhu pūjitāḥ
caturaṅgabalair yuktāḥ ṣaḍguṇān upayuñjate //
dhanurvedaparāḥ sarve sarve vedeṣu niṣṭhitāḥ
yajanti ca yathākālaṃ yajñair vipuladakṣiṇaiḥ //
vedān adhītya dīkṣābhir maharṣīn brahmacaryayā
śrāddhaiś ca medhyaiḥ śataśas tarpayanti pitāmahān //
naiṣām aviditaṃ kiṃcit trividhaṃ bhuvi vidyate
vaidikaṃ laukikaṃ caiva dharmaśāstroktam eva ca //
te parāvaradṛṣṭārthā maharṣisamatejasaḥ
bhūyaḥ kṛtayugaṃ kartum utsahante narādhipāḥ //
teṣām eva prabhāvena śivaṃ varṣati vāsavaḥ
yathārthaṃ ca vavur vātā virajaskā diśo daśa //
Note: k: After 13c, Ś1 ins.: :k
... vātāḥ śivasugandhinaḥ |
nirmalaṃ cābhavad vyoma ... |
nirutpātā ca vasudhā supracārāś ca vai grahāḥ
candramāś ca sanakṣatraḥ saumyaṃ carati yogataḥ //
anulomakaraḥ sūryo ayane dve cacāra ha
havyaiś ca vividhais tṛptaḥ śubhagandho hutāśanaḥ //
evaṃ samyakpravṛtteṣu nivṛtteṣv aparādhataḥ
tarpayatsu mahīṃ kṛtsnāṃ nṛṇāṃ kālabhayaṃ kutaḥ //
teṣāṃ jvalitakīrtīnām anyonyam anuvartinām
rājñāṃ balair balavatāṃ pīḍyate vasudhātalam //
seyaṃ bhārapariśrāntā pīḍyamānā narādhipaiḥ
pṛthivī samanuprāptā naur ivāsann aviplavā //
yugāntasadṛśaṃ rūpaṃ śailoccalitabandhanam
jalotpīḍākulā svedaṃ darśayantī muhur muhuḥ //
kṣatriyāṇāṃ vapurbhiś ca tejasā ca balena ca
nṛṇāṃ ca rāṣṭrair vistīrṇaiḥ śrāmyatīva vasuṃdharā //
Note: k: T3 ins.: :k
yac coktaṃ brahmasadane brahmaṇā parameṣṭhinā |
tac chṛṇuṣva mahābāho rahasyam idam uttamam |
pure pure narapatiḥ koṭisaṃkhyair balair vṛtaḥ
rāṣṭre rāṣṭre ca bahavo grāmāḥ śatasahasraśaḥ //
bhūmipānāṃ sahasraiś ca teṣāṃ ca balināṃ balaiḥ
grāmāyutāḍhyai rāṣṭraiś ca bhūmir nirvivarīkṛtā //
seyaṃ nirāmiṣaṃ kṛtvā niśceṣṭaṃ kālam agrataḥ
prāptā mamālayaṃ viṣṇo bhavāṃś cāsyāḥ parā gatiḥ //
karmabhūmir ihasthānāṃ bhūmir eṣā vyathāṃ gatā
yathā na sīdet tatkāryaṃ jagaty eṣā hi śāśvatī //
asyā hi pīḍane doṣo mahān syān madhusūdana
kriyālopaś ca lokānāṃ dūṣitaṃ ca jagad bhavet //
śrāmyate vyaktam eveyaṃ pārthivaughaprapīḍitā
sahajāṃ yā kṣamāṃ tyaktvā calatvam acalā gatā //
tad asyāḥ śrutavantaḥ sma tac cāpi bhavatā śrutam
bhārāvataraṇārthaṃ hi mantrayāmas tvayā saha //
satpathe hi sthitāḥ sarve rājāno rāṣṭravardhanāḥ
narāṇāṃ ca trayo varṇā brāhmaṇān anuyāyinaḥ //
sarvaṃ satyamayaṃ vākyaṃ varṇā dharmaparās tathā
sarve vedaparā viprāḥ sarve vipraparā narāḥ //
evaṃ jagati vartante manuṣyā dharmakāraṇāt
yathā dharmavadho na syāt tathā mantraḥ pravartatām //
satāṃ gatir iyaṃ nānyā dharmaś cāsyāḥ susādhanam
rājñāṃ caiva vadhaḥ kāryo dharaṇyā bhāranirṇaye //
tadāgaccha mahābhāga saha vai mantrakāraṇāt
vrajāma meruśikharaṃ puraskṛtya vasuṃdharām //
Note: k: D2.5 ins.: :k
etāvad uktvā rājendra brahmā lokapitāmahaḥ |
pṛthivyā saha viśvātmā virarāma mahādyutiḥ |
Note: Colophon
Note: h: HV (CE) chapter 42, transliterated by Horst Brinkhaus, proof-read by Horst Brinkhaus, version of July 30, 2001 :h
bāḍham ity eva saha tair durdināmbhodanisvanaḥ
pratasthe durdinākāraḥ sadurdina ivācalaḥ //
samuktāmaṇividyotaṃ sacandrāmbhodavarcasam
sa jatāmaṇḍalaṃ kṛṣṇaṃ bibhrat kṛṣṇavapur hariḥ //
sa cāsyorasi vistīrṇe romāñcodgatarājimān
śrīvatso rājate śrīmān stanadvayamukhāñcitaḥ //
pīte vasāno vasane lokānāṃ gurur avyayaḥ
hariḥ so 'bhavad ālakṣyaḥ sasaṃdhyābhra ivācalaḥ //
taṃ vrajantaṃ suparṇena padmayonigatānugam
anujagmuḥ surāḥ sarve tadgatāsaktacakṣuṣaḥ //
nātidīrgheṇa kālena te gatā ratnaparvatam
dadṛśur devatās tatra svāṃ sabhāṃ kāmarūpiṇīm //
meroḥ śikharavinyastāṃ saṃsaktāṃ sūryavarcasā
kāñcanastambhacaraṇāṃ vajrasaṃghātatoraṇām //
manonirmāṇacitrāḍhyāṃ vimānākulamālinīm
ratnajālāntaravatīṃ kāmagāṃ ratnabhūṣitām //
kḷptaratnasamākīrṇāṃ sarvartukusumotkaṭām
Note: k: D2 ins., D5 ins. line 1 after 9: :kmaṇipravālasopānāṃ vaidūryamaṇiśobhitām |
muktājālasamākīrṇāṃ kiṃkiṇīśataśobhitām |
devamāyādharāṃ divyāṃ nirmitāṃ viśvakarmaṇā //
tāṃ hṛṣṭamanasaḥ sarve yathāsthānaṃ yathāvayaḥ
yathānideśaṃ tridaśā viviśus te sabhāṃ śubhām //
te niṣedur yathokteṣu vimāneṣv āsaneṣu ca
bhadrāsaneṣu pīṭheṣu kuthāsv āstaraṇeṣu ca //
tataḥ prabhañjano vāyur brahmaṇā sādhu coditaḥ
mā śabda iti sarvatra pracakrāma sabhāṃ śubhām //
niḥśabde stimite tasmin samāje tridivaukasām
babhāṣe dharaṇī vākyaṃ svedāt karuṇabhāṣiṇī //
Note: k: K1.3 Ñ2.3 V B2 Dn D2.3.5 T3 ins., B1 after 34ab: :k
tvayā dhāryā tv ahaṃ deva tvayā vai dhāryate jagat |
tvaṃ dhārayasi bhūtāni bhuvanaṃ tvaṃ bibharṣi ca ||
yat tvayā dhāryate kiṃcit tejasā ca balena ca |
tatas tava prasādena mayā paścāt tu dhāryate ||
tvayā dhṛtaṃ dhārayāmi nādhṛtaṃ dhārayāmy aham |
na hi tad vidyate bhūtaṃ yat tvayā nānudhāryate ||
tvam eva kuruṣe deva nārāyaṇa yuge yuge |
mahābhārāvataraṇaṃ jagato hitakāmyayā ||
tavaiva tejasā krāntāṃ rasātalatalaṃ gatām |
trāyasva māṃ suraśreṣṭha tavaiva śaraṇaṃ gatām ||
dānavaiḥ pīḍyamānāhaṃ rākṣasaiś ca durātmabhiḥ |
tvām eva śaraṇaṃ nityam upayāsye sanātanam ||
tāvan me 'sti bhayaṃ bhūyo yāvan na tvāṃ kakudminam |
śaraṇaṃ yāmi manasā śataśo hy upalakṣaye |
aham ādau purānena saṃkṣiptā padmayoninā
māṃ ca badhvā kṛtau pūrvaṃ mṛṅmayau dvau mahāsurau //
karṇasrotodbhavau tau hi viṣṇor asya mahātmanaḥ
mahārṇave prasvapataḥ kāṣṭhakuḍyasamau sthitau //
tau viveśa svayaṃ vāyur brahmaṇā sādhu coditaḥ
tau divaṃ chādayantau tu vavṛdhāte mahāsurau //
vāyuprāṇau tu tau gṛhya brahmā parimṛśyañ śanaiḥ
ekaṃ mṛdutaraṃ mene kaṭhinaṃ veda cāparam //
nāmanī tu tayoś cakre sa vibhuḥ salilodbhavaḥ
mṛdus tv ayaṃ madhur nāma kaṭhinaḥ kaiṭabho 'bhavat //
tau daityau kṛtanāmānau ceratur baladarpitau
sarvam ekārṇavaṃ lokaṃ yoddhukāmau sunirbhayau //
tāv āgatau samālokya brahmā lokapitāmahaḥ
ekārṇavāmbunicaye tatraivānataradhīyata //
sa padme padmanābhasya nābhimadhyād samutthite
rocayām āsa vasatiṃ guhyāṃ brahmā caturmukhaḥ //
tāv ubhau jalagarbhasthau nārāyaṇapitāmahau
bahūn varṣagaṇān apsu śayānau na cakampatuḥ //
atha dīrghasya kālasya tāv ubhau madhukaiṭabhau
ājagmatus tam uddeśaṃ yatra brahmā vyavasthitaḥ //
dṛṣṭvā tāv asurau ghorau mahāntau yuddhadurmadau
Note: k: K2 Ñ2.3 V B Dn Ds D2.5 ins.: :kbrahmaṇā tāḍito viṣṇuḥ padmanālena vai purā |
utpapātāśu śayanāt padmanābho mahādyutiḥ //
tad yuddham abhavad ghoraṃ tayos tasya ca vai tadā
ekārṇave tadā loke trailokye jalatāṃ gate //
tad abhūt tumulaṃ yuddhaṃ varṣasaṃkhyāḥ sahasraśaḥ
na ca tāv asurau yuddhe tadā śramam avāpatuḥ //
atha dīrghasya kālasya tau daityau yuddhadurmadau
ūcatuḥ prītamanasau devaṃ nārāyaṇaṃ hariṃ //
prītau svas tava yuddhena ślāghyas tvaṃ mṛtyur āhave
āvāṃ jahi na yatrorvī jalena samabhiplutā //
hatau ca tava putratvaṃ prāpnuyāvaḥ surottama
so hy āvāṃ yudhi nirjetā tasyāvāṃ vihitau sutau //
sa hi gṛhya mṛdhe daityau dorbhyāṃ tau samapīḍayat
janmatur nidhanaṃ cāpi tāv ubhau madhukaiṭabhau //
tāv ubhāv āplutau toye vapurbhyām ekatāṃ gatau
medo mumucatur daityau mathyamānau jalormibhiḥ //
medasā tajjalaṃ vyāptaṃ tābhyāṃ antardadhe tadā
nārāyaṇaś ca bhagavān asṛjat sa punaḥ prajāḥ //
daityayor medasā channā medinīti tataḥ smṛtā
prabhāvāt padmanābhasya śāśvatī ca nṛṇāṃ kṛtā //
varāheṇa punar bhūtvā mārkaṇḍeyasya paśyataḥ
viṣāṇenāham ekena toyamadhyāt samuddhṛtā //
hṛtāhaṃ kramatā bhūyas tadā yuṣmākam agrataḥ
baleḥ sakāśād daityasya viṣṇunā prabhaviṣṇunā //
sāṃprataṃ khidyamānāham enam eva gadādharam
anāthā jagato nāthaṃ śaraṇyaṃ śaraṇaṃ gatā //
agniḥ suvarṇasya gurur gavāṃ sūryo guruḥ smṛtaḥ
akṣatrāṇāṃ guruḥ somo mama nārāyaṇo guruḥ //
yad ahaṃ dhārayāmy ekā jagatsthāvarajaṃgamam
mayā dhṛtaṃ dhārayate sarvam etad gadādharaḥ //
jāmadagnyena rāmeṇa bhārāvataraṇepsayā
roṣāt triḥsaptakṛtvo 'haṃ kṣatriyair viprayojitā //
sāsmi vedyām samāropya tarpitā nṛpaśoṇitaiḥ
bhārgaveṇa pituḥ śrāddhe kaśyapāya niveditā //
māṃsamedosthidurgandhā digdhā kṣatriyaśoṇitaiḥ
rajasvaleva yuvatiḥ kaśyapaṃ samupasthitā //
sa māṃ brahmarṣir apy āha kim urvi tvam avāṅmukhī
vīrapatnīvratam idaṃ vīrapatni niṣevase //
sāhaṃ vijñāpitavatī kaśyapaṃ lokabhāvanam
patayo me hatā brahman bhārgaveṇa mahātmanā //
sāhaṃ vihīnā vikrāntaiḥ kṣatriyaiḥ śastravṛttibhiḥ
vidhavā śūnyanagarā na dhārayitum utsahe //
tan mahyaṃ dīyatāṃ bhartā bhagavaṃs tvatsamo nṛpaḥ
rakṣet sagrāmanagarāṃ yo māṃ sāgaramālinīm //
sa śrutvā bhagavān vākyaṃ bāḍham ity abravīt prabhuḥ
tato māṃ mānavendrāya manave saṃprayacchata //
sā manuprabhavaṃ puṇyaṃ prāpyekṣvākukulaṃ mahat
vipulenāsmi kālena pārthivāt pārthivaṃ gatā //
evaṃ dattāsmi manave mānavendrāya dhīmate
bhuktā rājakulaiś cāpi maharṣikulasaṃmitaiḥ //
bahavaḥ kṣatriyāḥ śūrā māṃ jitvā divam āśritāḥ
te sma kālavaśaṃ prāpya mayy eva pralayaṃ gatāḥ //
matkṛte vigrahā loke vṛtte vartanta eva ca
kṣatriyāṇāṃ balavatāṃ saṃgrāmeṣv anivartinām //
etad yuṣmatpravṛttena daivena pariṇāmitā
jagaddhitārthaṃ kuruta rājñāṃ hetuṃ raṇakṣaye //
yady asti mayi kāruṇyaṃ bhāraśaithilyakāraṇāt
ekaś cakradharaḥ śrīmān abhayaṃ me prayacchatu //
yam ahaṃ bhārasaṃtaptā saṃprāptā śaraṇaiṣiṇī
bhāro yady avaroptavyo viṣṇur eṣa bravītu mām //
Note: k: V3 T4 ins.: :k
mā bhair dharaṇi kalyāṇi śāntiṃ vraja samāhite |
eṣa tvām ucitaṃ sthānaṃ sthāpayāmi vasiṃdhare |
Note: k: T1.2 G M ins.: :k
etasyāhaṃ prasādena śramaṃ tyakṣyāmi devatāḥ |
Note: Colophon
Note: h: HV (CE) chapter 43, transliterated and proof-read by Horst Brinkhaus, version of October 10, 2002 :h
te śrutvā pṛthivīvākyaṃ sarva eva divaukasaḥ
tadarthakṛtyaṃ saṃcintya pitāmaham athābruvan //
bhagavan kriyatām asyā dharaṇyā bhārasaṃnatiḥ
śarīrakartā lokānāṃ tvaṃ hi lokasya ceśvaraḥ //
yat kartavyaṃ mahendreṇa yamena varuṇena ca
yad vā kāryaṃ dhaneśena svayaṃ nārāyaṇena vā //
yad vā candramasā kāryaṃ bhāskareṇānilena vā
ādityair vasubhir vāpi rudrair vā lokabhāvanaiḥ //
aśvibhyāṃ vā surāgryābhyāṃ sādhyair vā tridivālayaiḥ
Note: k: T1.2 G M2.4 ins.: :kmarudbhir vā suraśreṣṭhaiḥ pāvakenāpi ca prabho |
bṛhaspatyuśanobhyāṃ vā kālena kalināpi vā //
maheśvareṇa vā brahman viśākhena guhena vā
yakṣarākṣasagandharvaiś cāraṇair vā mahoragaiḥ //
parvataiḥ śailamukhyair vā sāgarair vā mahormibhiḥ
gaṅgāmukhābhir divyābhiḥ saridbhir vā sureśvara //
kṣipram ājñāpaya vibho katham aṃśaḥ prayujyatām
yadi te pārthivaṃ kāryaṃ kāryaṃ pārthivavigrahe //
katham aṃśāvataraṇaṃ kurmaḥ sarve pitāmaha
antarikṣagatā ye ca pṛthivyāṃ ye ca pārthivāḥ //
sadasyānāṃ ca viprāṇāṃ pārthivānāṃ kuleṣu ca
ayonijāś cāpi tanūḥ sṛjāma jagatītale //
surāṇām ekakāryāṇāṃ śrutvaitan niścitaṃ mahat
devaiḥ parivṛtaḥ prāha vākyaṃ lokapitāmahaḥ //
rocate me suraśreṣṭhā yuṣmākam api niścayaḥ
sṛjadhvaṃ svaśarīrāṃśāṃs tejasātmasamān bhuvi //
sarva eva suraśreṣṭhās tejobhir avarohata
bhāvayanto bhuvaṃ devīṃ labdhvā tribhuvanaśriyam //
pārthive bhārate vaṃśe pūrvam eva vijānatā
pṛthivyāṃ saṃbhavam imaṃ śrūyatāṃ yan mayā kṛtam //
samudre 'haṃ surāḥ pūrve velām āsādya paścimām
āse sārdhaṃ tanūjena kaśyapena mahātmanā //
kathābhiḥ pūrvavṛttābhir lokavedānugāmibhiḥ
itivṛttaiś ca bahubhiḥ purāṇaprabhavair guṇaiḥ //
Note: k: S (except T3.4) ins.: :k
nirūpayaṃs taṃ deveśaṃ pramāṇair bahulakṣaṇaiḥ |
kurvatas tu kathās tās tāḥ samudraḥ saha gaṅgayā
samīpam ājagāmāśu yuktas toyadamārutaiḥ //
sa vīciviṣamāṃ kurvan gatiṃ vegataraṅgiṇīm
yādogaṇavicitreṇa saṃchannas toyavāsasā //
śaṅkhamuktāmalatanuḥ pravālamaṇibhūṣaṇaḥ
yuktaś candramasā pūrṇaḥ sābhragambhīranisvanaḥ //
sa māṃ paribhavann eva svāṃ velāṃ samatikraman
kledayām āsa capalair lāvaṇair ambuvisravaiḥ //
taṃ ca deśaṃ vyavasitaḥ samudro 'dbhir vimarditum
uktaḥ saṃrabdhayā vācā śānto 'sīti tato mayā //
śānto 'sīty uktamātras tu tanutvaṃ sāgaro gataḥ
saṃhatormitaraṅgaughaḥ sthito rājaśriyā jvalan //
bhūyaś caiva mayā śaptaḥ samudraḥ saha gaṅgayā
sakāraṇāṃ matiṃ kṛtvā yuṣmākaṃ hitakāmyayā //
yasmāt tvaṃ rājatulyena vapuṣā samupasthitaḥ
gacchārṇava mahīpālo rājaiva tvaṃ bhaviṣyasi //
tatrāpi sahajāṃ līlāṃ dhārayan svena tejasā
bhaviṣyasi nṛṇāṃ bhartā bhāratānāṃ kulodvahaḥ //
śānto 'sīti mayoktas tvaṃ yac cāsi tanutāṃ gataḥ
sutanur yaśasā loke śaṃtanus tvaṃ bhaviṣyasi //
iyam apy āyatāpāṅgī gaṅgā sarvāṅgaśobhanā
Note: k: K3 subst.: :kiyam apy āgatā gaṅgā tavārthe varavarṇinī |
rūpiṇī vai saric chreṣṭhā tatra tvām upayāsyati //
evam uktas tu māṃ kruddhaḥ so 'bhigamyāṛṇavo 'bravīt
māṃ prabho devadeveśa kimarthaṃ śaptavān asi //
ahaṃ tava vidheyātmā tvatkṛtas tvatparāyaṇaḥ
aśapo 'sadṛśair vākyair ātmajaṃ māṃ kim ātmanā //
bhagavaṃs tvatprasādena vegāt parvaṇi vardhitaḥ
yady ahaṃ calito brahman ko 'tra doṣo mamātmanaḥ //
kṣiptābhiḥ pavanenādbhiḥ spṛṣṭo yady asi parvaṇi
atra me bhagavan kiṃ nu vidyate śāpakāraṇam //
uddhūtaiś ca mahāvātaiḥ pravṛddhaiś ca balāhakaiḥ
parvaṇā cenduyuktena tribhiḥ kṣubdho 'smi kāraṇaiḥ //
evaṃ yady aparāddho 'haṃ kāraṇais tvatpravartitaiḥ
kṣantum arhasi me brahmañ śāpo 'yaṃ vinivartyatām //
evaṃ mayi nirālambe śāpāc chithilatāṃ gate
kāruṇyaṃ kuru deveśa pramāṇaṃ yady avekṣase //
asyāś ca deva gaṅgāyā gāṃ gatāyās tavājñayā
maddoṣāt samadoṣāyāḥ prasādaṃ kartum arhasi //
Note: k: For 35cd, Ś1 subst.: :k
prasādaṃ kuru me brahman vidyate śāpakāraṇam |
tam ahaṃ ślakṣṇayā vācā mahārṇavam athābruvam
akāraṇajñaṃ devānāṃ trastaṃ śāpānileritam //
śāntiṃ vraja na bhetavyaṃ prasanno 'smi mahāmate
śāpe 'smin saritāṃ nātha bhaviṣyaṃ śṛṇu kāraṇam //
tvaṃ gaccha bhārate vaṃśe svadehaṃ svena tejasā
ādhatsva saritāṃ nātha tyaktvemāṃ sāgarīṃ tanum //
mahodadhe mahīpālas tatra rājaśriyā vṛtaḥ
pālayaṃś caturo varṇān raṃsyase salileśvara //
iyaṃ ca tvāṃ saric chreṣṭhā bibhratī mānuṣīṃ tanum
tat kālaramaṇīyāṅgī gaṅgā paricariṣyati //
anayā saha jāhnavyā modamāno mamājñayā
imaṃ salilasaṃkledaṃ vismariṣyasi sāgara //
tvaratā caiva kartavyaṃ tvayedaṃ devaśāsanam
prājāpatyena vidhinā gaṅgayā saha sāgara //
vasavaḥ pracyutāḥ svargāt praviṣṭāś ca rasātalam
teṣām utpādanārthāya tvaṃ mayā viniyojitaḥ //
aṣṭau tāñ jāhnavīgarbhān apatyārthaṃ dadāmy aham
vibhāvasos tulyaguṇān surāṇāṃ prītivardhanān //
utpādya tvaṃ vasūñ śīghraṃ kṛtvā kurukulaṃ mahat
praveṣṭāsi tanuṃ tyaktvā punaḥ sāgara sāgarīm //
evam etan mayā pūrvaṃ hitārthaṃ vaḥ surottamāḥ
bhaviṣyaṃ paśyatā bhāraṃ pṛthivyāḥ pārthivātmakam //
tad eṣa śaṃtanor vaṃśaḥ pṛthivyāṃ ropito mayā
vasavo yatra gaṅgāyāṃ utpannās tridivaukasaḥ //
adyāpi bhuvi gāṅgeyas tatraiva vasur aṣṭamaḥ
sapteme vasavaḥ prāptāḥ sa ekaḥ parilambate //
dvitīyāyāṃ striyāṃ sṛṣṭā dvitīyā śaṃtanos tanuḥ
vicitravīryo dyutimān āsīd rājā pratāpavān //
vaicitravīryau dvāv eva pārthivau bhuvi sāṃpratam
pāṇḍuś ca dhṛtarāṣṭraś ca vikhyātau puruṣarṣabhau //
tatra pāṇḍoḥ śriyā juṣṭe dve bhārye yauvanasthite
śubhe kuntī ca mādrī ca devayoṣopame bhuvi //
dhṛtarāṣṭrasya rājñas tu bhāryaikā tulyacāriṇī
gāndhārī bhuvi vikhyātā bhartur nityaṃ vrate sthitā //
atra vo 'ṃśā vibhajyantāṃ vipakṣaḥ pakṣa eva ca
putrāṇāṃ hi tayo rājñor bhavitā vigraho mahān //
teṣāṃ vimarde dāyādye nṛpāṇāṃ bhavitā kṣayaḥ
yugāntapratimaṃ caiva bhaviṣyati mahad bhayam //
sabaleṣu narendreṣu śātayatsv itaretaram
viviktapurarāṣṭraughā kṣitiḥ śaithilyam eṣyati //
dvāparasya yugasyānte mayā dṛṣṭaṃ purātane
kṣayaṃ yāsyanti śastreṇa pārthivāḥ saha vāhanaiḥ //
tatrāvaśiṣṭān manujān suptān niśi vicetasaḥ
dhakṣyate śaṃkarasyāṃśaḥ pāvakenāstratejasā //
antakapratime tasmin nivṛtte krūrakarmaṇi
samāptam idam ākhyāsye tṛtīyaṃ dvāparaṃ yugam //
maheśvarāṃśe 'pasṛte tato māheśvaraṃ yugam
tiṣyaṃ prapatsyate paścād yugaṃ dāruṇamānuṣam //
adharmaprāyapuruṣaṃ svalpadharmaparigraham
utsannasatyasaṃyogaṃ vardhitānṛtasaṃcayam //
maheśvaraṃ kumāraṃ ca dvau ca devau samāśritāḥ
bhaviṣyanti narāḥ sarve loke nasthavirāyuṣaḥ //
tad eṣa nirṇayaḥ śreṣṭhaḥ pṛthivyāṃ pārthivāntakaḥ
aṃśāvataraṇaṃ sarve surāḥ kuruta māciram //
dharmasyāṃśo 'tha kuntyāṃ vai mādryāṃ ca viniyujyatām
vigrahasya kalir mūlaṃ gāndhāryāṃ viniyujyatām //
etau pakṣau bhaviṣyanti rājānaḥ kālacoditāḥ
jātarāgāḥ pṛthivyarthe sarve saṃgrāmalālasāḥ //
gacchatv iyaṃ vasumatī svāṃ yoniṃ lokadhāriṇī
sṛṣṭo 'yaṃ naiṣṭhiko rājñām upāyo lokaviśrutaḥ //
śrutvā pitāmahavacaḥ sā jagāma yathāgatam
pṛthivī saha kālena vadhāya pṛthivīkṣitām //
devān acodayad brahmā nigrahārthaṃ suradviṣām
naraṃ caiva purāṇarṣiṃ śeṣaṃ ca dharaṇīdharam //
sanatkumāraṃ sādhyāṃś ca devāṃś cāgnipurogamān
varuṇaṃ ca yamaṃ caiva sūryācandramasau tathā
gandharvāpsarasaś caiva rudrādityāṃs tathāśvinau //
tato 'ṃśān avaniṃ devāḥ sarva evāvatārayan
yathā te kathitaṃ pūrvam aṃśāvataraṇaṃ mayā //
ayonijā yonijāś ca te devāḥ pṛthivītale
daityadānavahantāraḥ saṃbhūtāḥ puruṣeśvarāḥ
kṣīrikāvṛkṣasaṃghātā vajrasaṃhananās tathā //
nāgāyutabalāḥ kecit kecid oghabalānvitāḥ
gadāparighaśaktīnāṃ sahāḥ parighabāhavaḥ
giriśṛṅgaprahartāraḥ sarve parighayodhinaḥ //
vṛṣṇivaṃśe samutpannāḥ śataśo 'tha sahasraśaḥ
kuruvaṃśe ca devās te pāñcāleṣu ca pārthivāḥ //
yājñikānāṃ samṛddhānāṃ brāhmaṇānāṃ ca yoniṣu
sarvāstrajñā maheṣvāsā vedavrataparāyaṇāḥ //
Note: k: K2-4 Ñ2.3 V B Dn Ds D1.3-5 T G1-3.5 M ins.: :k
sarvarddhiguṇasaṃpannā yajvānaḥ puṇyakarṃiṇaḥ |
ācālayeyuḥ śailāṃs te kruddhā bhindyur mahītalam
utpateyur athākāśaṃ kṣobhayeyur mahodadhim //
evam ādiśya tān brahmā bhūtabhavyabhavatprabhuḥ
nārāyaṇe samāveśya lokāñ śāntim upāgamat //
bhūyaḥ śṛṇu yathā viṣṇur avatīrṇo mahītalam
prajānāṃ vai hitārthāya prabhuḥ prāṇadhaneśvaraḥ //
yayātivaṃśajasyātha vasudevasya dhīmataḥ
kule pūjye yaśaskāmo jajñe nārāyaṇaḥ prabhuḥ //
Note: Colophon
Note: h: HV (CE) chapter 44, transliterated and proof-read by Horst Brinkhaus, version of October 24, 2002 :h
kṛtakārye gate kāle jagatyāṃ ca yathānayam
aṃśāvataraṇe vṛtte surāṇāṃ bhārate kule //
bhāge 'vatīrṇe dharmasya śakrasya pavanasya ca
aśvinor devabhiṣajor bhāge vai bhāskarasya ca //
pūrvam evāvanigate bhāge devapurodhasaḥ
vasūnām aṣṭame bhāge prāg eva dharaṇīṃ gate //
mṛtyor bhāge kṣitigate kaler bhāge tathaiva ca
bhāge somasya vahneś ca varuṇasya ca gāṃ gate //
śaṃkarasya gate bhāge viśveṣāṃ ca divaukasām
gandharvoragayakṣāṇāṃ bhāgāṃśeṣu gateṣv atha //
Note: k: V2 B1.2 ins.: :k
bhāge 'vatīrṇe mitrasya yamasyāṃśe tathaiva ca |
varuṇasya gate tv aṃśe pṛthivīṃ janamejaya |
bhāgeṣv eteṣu gaganād avatīrṇeṣu medinīm
tiṣṭhan nārāyaṇasyāṃśe nāradaḥ pratyadṛṣyata //
jvalitāgnipratīkāśo bālārkasadṛśekṣaṇaḥ
savyāpavṛttaṃ vipulaṃ jaṭāmaṇḍalam udvahan //
candrāṃśuśukle vasane vasāno rukmabhūṣaṇaḥ
vīṇāṃ gṛhītvā mahatīṃ kakṣāsaktāṃ sakhīm iva //
kṛṣṇājinottarāsaṅgo hemayajñopavītavān
daṇḍī kamaṇḍaludharaḥ sākṣāc chakra ivāparaḥ //
Note: k: T1.2 G M ins. after 9: :k
mudrāsamarpitakaraḥ sumanoveṣṭitāṅgavān |
bhettā jagati guhyānāṃ vigrahāṇāṃ grahopamaḥ
maharṣir vigraharucir vidvān gāndharvavedavit //
vairikelikilo vipro brāhmaḥ kalir ivāparaḥ
gātā caturṇāṃ vedānām udgātā prathamartvijām //
Note: k: Ś1 K1 Ñ2.3 V B Ds D2.4.5 ins. after 11ab, K4 after 9, D1 G1.3.5 after 11: :k
devagandharvalokānām ādivaktā mahāmuniḥ |
sa nārado 'tha brahmarṣir brahmalokacaro 'vyayaḥ
sthito devasabhāmadhye saṃrabdho viṣṇum abravīt //
Note: k: S ins.: :k
svaraiś ca saptabhir viṣṇuṃ jagau vipraḥ sa nāradaḥ |
ṣaḍjaṃ prathamam āvidhya ṛṣabhaṃ ca tataḥ param ||
miśrayitvā ca gāndhāraṃ tato dhaivatamadhyamau |
pañcamaṃ ca tataḥ kurvan niṣādaṃ tadanantaram ||
kākalīṃ ca vimātrāṃ tu tato dve ca śrutī prabho |
tisras tisras tathā rājaṃl layaiś ca saha sarvaśaḥ ||
tānatānāgaṇānāṃ ca vivicya kramaśaḥ prabhuḥ |
taiś cāpi saptabhir vācyaṃ vācakaiś cāpi sarvaśaḥ |
anantavīryaṃ deveśaṃ jagau brahmapuraḥsaram ||
etaiḥ saptabhir ādyeśaṃ vicinvan prabhavaṃ tathā |
evaṃ samāpya geyaṃ tu vākyam etad uvāca ha |
aṃśāvataraṇaṃ viṣṇo yad idaṃ tridaśaiḥ kṛtam
kṣayāya pṛthivīndrāṇāṃ sarvam etad akāraṇam //
yad etat pārthivaṃ kṣatraṃ sthitaṃ tvayi vidhīśvara
nṛnārāyaṇayukto 'yaṃ kāryārthaḥ pratibhāti me //
na yuktaṃ jānatā deva tvayā tattvārthadarśinā
devadeva pṛthivyarthe prayoktuṃ kāryam īdṛśam //
tvaṃ hi cakṣuṣmatāṃ cakṣuḥ ślāghyaḥ prabhavatāṃ prabhuḥ
śreṣṭho yogavatāṃ yogī gatir gatimatām api //
devabhāgān gatān dṛṣṭvā kiṃ tvaṃ sarvāgrago vibhuḥ
vasuṃdharāyāḥ sāhyārtham aṃśaṃ svaṃ nānuyuñjase //
tvayā sanāthā devāṃśās tvanmayās tvatpracoditāḥ
jagatyāṃ saṃtariṣyanti kāryāt kāryāntaraṃ gatāḥ //
tad ahaṃ tvarayā viṣṇo prāptaḥ surasabhām imām
tava saṃcodanārthaṃ vai śṛṇu cāpy atra kāraṇam //
ye tvayā nihatā daityāḥ saṃgrāme tārakāmaye
teṣāṃ śṛṇu gatiṃ viṣṇo ye gatāḥ pṛthivītalam //
pūḥ pṛthivyāṃ samuditā mathurā nāma nāmataḥ
niviṣṭā yamunātīre sphītā janapadāyutā //
madhur nāma mahān āsīd dānavo yudhi durjayaḥ
tasya sma sumaharddhyāsīn mahāpādapasaṃtatam
ghoraṃ madhuvanaṃ nāma yatrāsau nyavasat tadā //
tasya putro mahān āsīl lavaṇo nāma dānavaḥ
Note: k: For 23ab, S (except T3.4) subst.: :klavaṇas tasya putro 'bhūn mahābalaparākramaḥ |
trāsanaḥ sarvabhūtānāṃ bale mahati tasthivān //
sa tatra dānavaḥ krīḍan varṣapūgān anekaśaḥ
sadaivatagaṇāṃl lokān udvāsayati darpitaḥ //
ayodhyāyām ayodhyāyāṃ rāme dāśarathau sthite
rājyaṃ śāsati dharmajñe rākṣasānāṃ bhayāvahe //
sa dānavo balaślāghī ghoraṃ vanam upāśritaḥ
preṣayām āsa rāmāya dūtaṃ paruṣavādinam //
viṣayāsannabhūto 'smi tava rāma ripuś ca saḥ
na ca sāmantam icchanti rājāno baladarpitam //
rājñā rājavratasthena prajānāṃ śubham icchatā
jetavyā ripavaḥ sarve sphītaṃ viṣayam icchatā //
abhiṣekārdrakeśena rājñā rañjanakāmyayā
jetavyānīndriyāṇy ādau taj jaye hi dhruvo jayaḥ //
samyagvartitukāmasya viśeṣeṇa mahīpateḥ
nayānām upadeśena nāsti lokasamo guruḥ //
vyasaneṣu jaghanyasya dharmamadhyasya dhīmataḥ
balajyeṣṭhasya nṛpater nāsti sāmantajaṃ bhayam //
sahajair badhyate sarvaḥ pravṛddhair indriyāribhiḥ
amitrāṇāṃ priyakarair mohair adhṛtir īśvaraḥ //
yat tvayā strīkṛte mohāt sabalo rāvaṇo hataḥ
naitad aupayikaṃ manye mahat te karma kutsitam //
vanavāsapravṛttena yat tvayā vrataśālinā
prahṛtaṃ rākṣase nīce naiṣa dṛṣṭaḥ satāṃ vidhiḥ //
satām akrodhajo dharmaḥ śubhāṃ nayati sadgatim
yat tvayā nihato mohād dūṣitāś ca vanaukasaḥ //
sa eva rāvaṇo dhanyo yas tvayā vratacāriṇā
strīnimittaṃ hato yuddhe grāmyān dharmān avekṣatā //
yadi te sa hataḥ saṃkhye durbuddhir ajitendriyaḥ
yudhyasvādya mayā sārdhaṃ mṛdhe yady asi vīryavān //
tasya dūtasya tac chrutvā bhāṣitaṃ tattvavādinaḥ
dhairyād asaṃbhrāntavapuḥ sasmitaṃ rāghavo 'bravīt //
asad etat tvayā dūta kathitaṃ tasya gauravāt
yan māṃ kṣipasi doṣeṇa vedātmānaṃ ca susthiram //
yady ahaṃ satpathe mūḍho yadi vā rāvaṇo hataḥ
yadi vā me hṛtā bhāryā tasya kā paridevanā //
na vāṅmātreṇa duṣyanti sādhavaḥ satpathe sthitāḥ
jāgarti ca yathā daivaṃ sadā satsv itareṣu ca //
kṛtaṃ dūtena yat kāryaṃ gaccha tvaṃ dūta māciram
nātmaślāghiṣu nīceṣu praharantīha madvidhāḥ //
ayaṃ mamānujo bhrātā śatrughnaḥ śatrutāpanaḥ
tasya daityasya durbuddhe mṛdhe pratikariṣyati //
evam uktaḥ sa dūtas tu yayau saumitriṇā saha
anujñāto narendreṇa rāghaveṇa mahātmanā //
sa śīghrayānaḥ saṃprāptas tad dānavavanaṃ mahat
cakre niveśaṃ saumitrir vanānte yuddhalālasaḥ //
tato dūtasya vacanāt sa daityaḥ krodhamūrcchitaḥ
jaghane tad vanaṃ kṛtvā yuddhāyābhimukhaḥ sthitaḥ //
tad yuddham abhavad ghoraṃ saumitrer dānavasya ca
ubhayor eva dhṛtayoḥ śūrayo raṇamūrdhani //
tau śaraiḥ sādhuniśitair anyonyam abhijaghnatuḥ
na ca tau yuddhavaimukhyaṃ śramaṃ vāpy upajagmatuḥ //
atha saumitriṇā bāṇaiḥ pīḍito dānavo yudhi
tataḥ sa śūlarahitaḥ paryahīyata dānavaḥ //
Note: k: N (except Ñ1) S (except M1-3) ins.: :k
sa gṛhītvāṅkuśaṃ caiva devair dattavaraṃ raṇe |
karṣaṇaṃ sarvabhūtānāṃ lavaṇo virarāsa ha ||
śirodharāyāṃ jagrāha so 'ṅkuśena cakarṣa ha |
praveśayitum ārabdho lavaṇo rāghavānujam |
sa rukmatsarum udyamya śatrughnaḥ śatrutāpanaḥ
śiraś ciccheda khaḍgena lavaṇasya mahāmṛdhe //
Note: k: For 50cd, Ñ2 V1.3 B1.2(marg) Ds D4.5 subst.: :k
aṅkuśaṃ caiva ciccheda daityasya ca śiro mahat |
sa hatvā dānavaṃ saṃkhye saumitrir mitranandanaḥ
tad vanaṃ tasya daityasya cicchedāstreṇa buddhimān //
chittvā vanaṃ sa saumitrir niveśam abhirocayat
bhavāya tasya deśasya purīṃ paramadharmavit //
tasmin madhuvanasthāne mathurā nāma sā purī
śatrughnena purā sṛṣṭā hatvā taṃ dānavaṃ raṇe //
sā purī paramodārā sāṭṭaprākāratoraṇā
sphītā rāṣṭrasamākīrṇā samṛddhabhavanākulā //
udyānavanasaṃpannā susīmā supratiṣṭhitā
prāṃśuprākārasaṃpannā parikhārgalamekhalā //
cayāṭṭālakakeyūrā prāsādavarakuṇḍalā
susaṃvṛtadvāramukhī catvarodgārahāsinī //
arogavīrapuruṣā hastyaśvarathasaṃkulā
ardhacandrapratīkāśā yamunātīraśobhitā //
puṇyāpaṇavatī durgā ratnasaṃcayagarvitā
kṣetrāṇi rasavanty asyāḥ kāle devaś ca varṣati //
Note: k: T2 ins.: :k
aṃśāvataraṇe vṛtte surāṇāṃ bhāvitātmanām |
nārāyaṇaṃ samabhyetya nārado vākyam abravīt ||
yamunāyās taṭe ramye mathurā nāma viśrutā |
naranārīsamuditā sā purī sma prakāśate
niviṣṭo viṣayaś caiva śūrasenas tato 'bhavat //
tasyāṃ puryāṃ mahāvīryo rājā bhojakulodvahaḥ
ugrasena iti khyāto mahāsenaparākramaḥ //
tasya putratvam āpanno yo 'sauviṣṇo tvayā hataḥ
kālanemir mahādaityaḥ saṃgrāme tārakāmaye //
kaṃso nāma viśālākṣo bhojavaṃśavivardhanaḥ
rājā pṛthivyāṃ vikhyātaḥ siṃhavispaṣṭavikramaḥ //
rājñāṃ bhayaṃkaro ghoraḥ śaṅkanīyo mahīkṣitām
bhayadaḥ sarvabhūtānāṃ satpathād bāhyatāṃ gataḥ //
dāruṇābhiniveśena dāruṇenāntarātmanā
yuktas tenaiva darpeṇa prajānāṃ lomaharṣaṇaḥ //
na rājadharmābhirato nātmapakṣasukhāvahaḥ
nātmarājyapriyakaraś caṇḍaḥ kararuciḥ sadā //
sa kaṃsas tatra saṃbhūtas tvayā yuddhe parājitaḥ
Note: k: T1 G M2-4 ins.: :ksa badhvā pitaraṃ rājā mathurām abhyarakṣata |
kravyādo bādhate lokān āsureṇāntarātmanā //
yo 'py asau hayavikrānto hayagrīva iti smṛtaḥ
keśī nāma hayo jātaḥ sa tasyaiva jaghanyajaḥ //
sa duṣṭo heṣitapaṭuḥ kesarī niravagrahaḥ
vṛndāvane vasaty eko nṛṇāṃ māṃsāni bhakṣayan //
ariṣṭo baliputras tu kakudmī vṛṣarūpadhṛk
gavām aritvam āpannaḥ kāmarūpī mahāsuraḥ //
riṣṭo nāma diteḥ putro variṣṭho dānaveṣu yaḥ
sa kuñjaratvam āpanno daityaḥ kaṃsasya vāhanaḥ //
Note: k: For 70cd, K2-4 Ñ V B D (D6 om.) T3.4 subst.: :k
kuñjaratvam agād daityaḥ kaṃsasyaiva sa vāhanaḥ |
lambo nāmeti vikhyāto yo 'saudaityeṣu darpitaḥ
pralambo nāma bhūtvāsau vaṭaṃ bhāṇḍīram āśritaḥ //
Note: k: T1.2 G M4 ins.: :k
śikharo nāma balavān ya āsīd dānavarṣabhaḥ |
khara ity ucyate daityo dhenukaḥ so 'surottamaḥ
ghoraṃ tālavanaṃ daityaś caraty utsārayan prajāḥ //
varāhaś ca kiśoraś ca tāv ubhau dānavottamau
mallau raṅgagatau tau tu jātau cāṇūramuṣṭikau //
yau tau mayaś ca tāraś ca dānavau dānavāntaka
prāgjyotiṣe tau bhaumasya narakasya pure ratau //
ete daityā vinihatās tvayā viṣṇo nirākṛtāḥ
mānuṣaṃ vapur āsthāya bādhante bhuvi mānavān //
tvatkathādveṣiṇaḥ sarve tvanmayān ghnanti mānavān
tava prasādāt teṣāṃ vai dānavānāṃ kṣayo bhavet //
tava te divi bibhyanti tvatto bibhyanti sāgare
pṛthivyāṃ bibhyati tvatto nānyasya tu kathaṃcana //
durvṛttasya hatasyāpi tvayā nānyena śrīdhara
divaś cyutasya daityasya gatir bhavati medinī //
vyutthitasya tu medinyāṃ hatasya nṛśarīriṇaḥ
durlabhaṃ svargagamanaṃ tvayi jāgrati keśava //
tad āgaccha svayaṃ viṣṇo gacchāva pṛthivītalam
dānavānāṃ vināśāya visṛjātmānam ātmanā //
mūrtayo hi tavāvyaktā dṛśyādṛśyāḥ surottamaiḥ
tāsu sṛṣṭās tvayā devāḥ saṃbhaviṣyanti bhūtale //
tavāvataraṇe viṣṇo kaṃsaḥ sa vinaśiṣyati
setsyate ca sa kāryārtho yasyārthe bhūmir āgatā //
tvaṃ bhārate kāryagurus tvaṃ cakṣus tvaṃ parāyaṇaḥ
tad āgaccha hṛṣīkeśa kṣitau tāñ jahi dānavān //
Note: Colophon
Note: h: HV (CE) chapter 45, transliterated and proof-read by Horst Brinkhaus, version of December 19, 2002 :h
nāradasya vacaḥ śrutvā sasmitaṃ madhusūdanaḥ
pratyuvāca śubhaṃ vākyaṃ vareṇyaḥ prabhur īśvaraḥ //
trailokyasya hitārthāya yan mā vadasi nārada
tasya samyakpravṛttasya śrūyatām uttaraṃ vacaḥ //
viditā dehino jātā mayaite bhuvi dānavāḥ
yāṃ yāṃ tanuṃ samāsthāya daityaḥ puṣyati vigraham //
jānāmi kaṃsaṃ saṃbhūtam ugrasenasutaṃ bhuvi
keśinaṃ cāpi jānāmi daityaṃ turagavigraham //
hastinaṃ cotpalāpīḍaṃ mallau cāṇūramuṣṭikau
ariṣṭaṃ caiva jānāmi daityaṃ vṛṣabharūpiṇam //
vidito me kharaś caiva pralambaś ca mahāsuraḥ
sā ca me viditā vipra pūtanā duhitā baleḥ //
kāliyaṃ cāpi jānāmi yamunāhradagocaram
vainateyabhayād vipra sarpam ajñātarūpiṇam //
vidito me jarāsaṃdhaḥ sthito mūrdhni mahīkṣitām
prāgjyotiṣapure cāpi narakaṃ sādhu tarkaye //
Note: k: Ñ2.3 V B Ds D4 T3.4 ins. after 8, D2 cont. after *563: :k
mānuṣe pārthive loke mānuṣatvam upāgatam |
Note: k: Ñ2.3 V B Ds D4 T3.4 cont., K Dn D1-3.5 T1.2 G M4 ins. after 8: :k
bāṇaṃ ca śoṇitapure guhapratimatejasam |
dṛptaṃ bāhusahasreṇa devair api sudurjayam |
Note: k: T1.2 G M4 cont., M1-3 ins. after 8: :k
śiśupālaṃ ca jānāmi tau haṃsaḍimakau tathā |
jānāmi pauṇḍraṃ sālvaṃ ca taṃ kālayavanaṃ tathā ||
ekalavyaṃ ca jānāmi ye cānye duṣṭacāriṇaḥ |
tān sarvān nihaniṣyāmi nātra kāryā vicāraṇā |
mayy āsaktāṃ ca jānāmi bhāratīṃ mahatīṃ dhuram
tac ca sarvaṃ vijānāmi yathā sthāsyanti te nṛpāḥ //
kṣayo bhuvi mayā dṛṣṭaḥ śakraloke ca satkriyā
teṣāṃ puruṣadehānām aparāvṛttivartinām //
saṃpravekṣyāmy ahaṃ yogam ātmanaś ca parasya ca
saṃprāpya pārthivaṃ lokaṃ mānuṣatvam upāgataḥ //
kaṃsādīṃś cāpi tān sarvān vadhiṣyāmi mahāsurān
tena tena vidhānena yena yaḥ śāntim eṣyati //
anupraviśya yogena tās tā hi gatayo mama
amīṣām amarendrāṇāṃ hantavyā ripavo yudhi //
jagatyarthe kṛto yo 'yam aṃśotsargo mahātmabhiḥ
suradevarṣigandharvair etac cānumataṃ mama //
viniścayo hi prāg eva nāradāyaṃ kṛto mayā
nivāsaṃ tu na me brahmā vidadhāti pitāmahaḥ //
yatra deśe yathā jāto yena veṣeṇa vā vasan
tān ahaṃ samare hanyāṃ tan me brūhi pitāmaha //
nārāyaṇemaṃ siddhārtham upāyaṃ śṛṇu me vibho
bhuvi yas te janayitā jananī ca bhaviṣyati //
yatra vai tvaṃ mahābāho jātaḥ kulakaro bhuvi
yādavānāṃ mahadvaṃśam akhilaṃ dhārayiṣyasi //
tāṃś cāsurān samutsādya vaṃśaṃ kṛtvātmano mahat
sthāpayiṣyasi maryādāṃ nṛṇāṃ tan me niśāmaya //
purā hi kaśyapo viṣṇo varuṇasya mahātmanaḥ
jahāra yajñiyā gāvaḥ payodāś ca mahāmakhe //
aditiḥ surabhiś cobhe dve bhārye kaśyapasya tu
pradīyamānā gās tās tu naicchatāṃ varuṇasya vai //
tato māṃ varuṇo 'bhyetya praṇamya śirasānataḥ
uvāca bhagavan gāvo guruṇā me hṛtā iti //
kṛtakāryo hi gās tās tu nānujānāti me guruḥ
anvavartata bhārye dve aditiṃ surabhiṃ tathā //
mama tā hy akṣayā gāvo divyāḥ kāmadughā vibho
caranti sagārān sarvān rakṣitāḥ svena tejasā //
kas tā dharṣayituṃ śakto mama gāḥ kaśyapād ṛte
akṣayaṃ yāḥ kṣaranty agraṃ payo devāmṛtopamam //
prabhur vā vyutthito brahman gurur vā yadi vetaraḥ
tvayā niyamyāḥ sarve vai tvaṃ hi naḥ paramā gatiḥ //
yadi prabhavatāṃ daṇḍo loke kāryam ajānatām
na vidyate lokaguro na syur vai lokasetavaḥ //
yathā vāstu tathā vāstu kartavye bhagavān prabhuḥ
mama gāvaḥ pratīyantāṃ tato gantāsmi sāgaram //
yas te 'tmā devatā gāvo yā gāvaḥ sa tvam avyayam
lokānāṃ tvatpravṛttānām ekaṃ gobrāhmaṇaṃ smṛtam //
trātavyāḥ prathamaṃ gāvas trātās trāyanti tā dvijān
gobrāhmaṇaparitrāṇāt paritrātaṃ jagad bhavet //
ity ambupatinā prokto varuṇenāham acyuta
gavāṃ kāraṇatattvajñaḥ kaśyape śāpam utsṛjam //
yenāṃśena hṛtā gāvaḥ kaśyapena mahātmanā
sa tenāṃśena jagatīṃ gatvā gopatvam eṣyati //
yā ca sā surabhir nāma yāditiś ca surāraṇiḥ
te 'py ubhe tasya vai bhārye saha tenaiva yāsyataḥ //
Note: k: K1(marg.).2.3 Ñ2.3 V B Dn Ds D1.2.4.5 T3.4 ins.: :k
tābhyāṃ saha sa gopatve kaśyapo bhuvi raṃsyate |
tad asya kaśyapasyāṃśas tejasā kaśyapopamaḥ
vasudeva iti khyāto goṣu tiṣṭhati bhūtale //
girir govardhano nāma mathurāyās tv adūrataḥ
tatrāsau goṣu nirataḥ kaṃsasya karadāyakaḥ //
tasya bhāryādvayaṃ caiva aditiḥ surabhis tathā
devakī rohiṇī caiva vasudevasya dhīmataḥ //
Note: k: K3 Dn D2-5 ins.: :k
surabhī rohiṇī devī cāditir devakī tv abhūt |
tatrāvatara lokānāṃ bhavāya madhusūdana
jayāśīrvacanais tv ete vardhayanti divaukasaḥ //
ātmānam ātmanā hi tvam avatārya mahītalam
devakīṃ rohiṇīṃ caiva garbhābhyāṃ paritoṣaya //
tatra tvaṃ śiśur evādau gopālakṛtalakṣaṇaḥ
vardhayasva mahābāho purā traivikrame yathā //
chādayitvātmanātmānaṃ māyayā yogarūpayā
gopakanyāsahasrāṇi ramayaṃś cara medinīm //
gāś ca te rakṣato viṣṇo vanāni paridhāvataḥ
vanamālāparikṣiptaṃ dhanyā drakṣyanti te vapuḥ //
Note: k: T1.2 G1-3.5 M ins.: :k
pītāmbaradharaṃ caiva nīlakuñcitamūrdhajam |
vanamālākṛtoraskaṃ mayūravyajanākulam |
viṣṇo padmapalāśākṣa gopālavasatiṃ gate
bāle tvayi mahābāho loko bālatvam eṣyati //
tvadbhaktāḥ puṇḍarīkākṣa tava cittavaśānugāḥ
Note: k: K3 Ñ2.3 V B Dn D2.5(marg.) ins.: :kgoṣu gopā bhaviṣyanti sahāyāḥ satataṃ tava |
vane cārayato gās tu goṣṭhāṃś ca paridhāvataḥ
majjato yamunāyāṃ ca ratim āpsyanti te tvayi //
jīvitaṃ vasudevasya bhaviṣyati sujīvitam
yas tvayā tāta ity uktaḥ putra ity eva vakṣyati //
Note: k: S ins. after 44, G(ed.) after 41: :k
sa hi dhanyataro loke yasya tvaṃ putratāṃ gataḥ |
sa hi puṇyakṛtāṃ śreṣṭho yas tvāṃ putreti kīrtayet ||
ye namasyanti deva tvāṃ gopālakṛtalakṣaṇam |
te hi puṇyakṛtāṃ śreṣṭhāḥ praṇamyāḥ sarvajantubhiḥ |
atha vā kasya putratvaṃ gaccheran yatra kaśyapāt
kā ca dhārayituṃ śaktā viṣṇo tvām aditiṃ vinā //
yogenātmasamutthena tvaṃ gaccha vijayāya vai
vayam apy ālayaṃ svaṃ gacchāmo madhusūdana //
Note: k: T G1.2.4.5 M ins. after 46, G3 after 48ab: :k
ity uktvā devadeveśaṃ brahmā lokapitāmahaḥ |
jagāma sa prabhur gehaṃ devāś cāpi yathāgatam |
sa devān abhyanujñāya vivikte tridivālaye
jagāma viṣṇuḥ svaṃ deśaṃ kṣīrodasyottarāṃ diśam //
tatraiva pārvatī nāma guhā meroḥ sudurgamā
tribhis tasyaiva vikrāntair nityaṃ parvasu pūjitā //
purāṇaṃ tatra vinyasya dehaṃ harir udāradhīḥ
ātmānaṃ yojayām āsa vasudevagṛhe prabhuḥ //
Note: Colophon
Note: h: HV (CE) ch. 46, transliterated by Peter Schreiner; version March 4, 2002. Not yet proof-read. :h
Note: k: Before the ref., Poona ed. ins. the introductory mantra; while G(ed.) ins.: :k
||* śrīr astu *||
||* śrīvājivadanāya namaḥ *||
||* atha dvitīyaṃ viṣṇuparva samārabhyate *||
vedavyāsaguṇāvāsa vidyādhīśa satāṃ vaśa |
māṃ nirāśaṃ gatakleśaṃ kurvan āśaṃ hare 'niśam |
jñātvā viṣṇuṃ kṣitigataṃ bhāgāṃś ca tridivaukasām
vināśaśaṃsī kaṃsasya nārado mathurāṃ yayau //
triviṣṭapād āpatito mathuropavane sthitaḥ
preṣayām āsa kaṃsasya ugrasenasutasya vai //
Note: k: K3 Ñ2.3 V B D(D6 om.) T3.4 ins. after 2; G(ed.) cont. after *573: :k
sa dūtaḥ kathayām āsa muner āgamanaṃ nṛpe |
Note: k: On the other hand, T1.2 G M G(ed.) ins. after 2: :k
dvāḥsthaṃ viditavistāraṃ dvāri tiṣṭhati nāradaḥ |
iti śrutvā sa kaṃsasya dvārapālas tvarann iva ||
gatvā tu tvaritaṃ rājann uvāca madhureśvaram |
eṣa tiṣṭhati rājendra nārado lokanāradaḥ |
sa nāradasyāgamanaṃ śrutvā tvaritavikramaḥ
nirgajāmāsuraḥ kaṃsaḥ svapuryāḥ padmalocanaḥ //
sa dadarśātithiṃ ślāghyaṃ devarṣiṃ vītakalmaṣam
tejasā jvalanākāraṃ vapuṣā sūryavarcasam //
so 'bhivādyarṣaye tasmai pūjāṃ cakre yathāvidhi
āsanaṃ cāgnivarṇābhaṃ visṛjyopajahāra vai //
niṣasādāsane tasmin sa vai śakrasakho muniḥ
uvāca cograsenasya sutaṃ paramakopanam //
pūjito 'haṃ tvayā vīra vidhidṛṣṭena karmaṇā
gate tv evaṃ mama vacaḥ śrūyatāṃ gṛhyatāṃ ca vai //
Note: k: For 7cd, T3 subst.: :k
evaṃ gate mahārāja śrūyatāṃ vacanaṃ mama |
anusṛtya divo lokān ahaṃ brahmapurogamān
gataḥ sūryasakhaṃ tāta vipulaṃ meruparvatam //
sanandanavanaṃ caiva dṛṣṭvā caitrarathaṃ vanam
āplutaṃ me sutīrthāsu saritsu saha daivataiḥ //
divyā tridhārā dṛṣṭā me puṇyā tripathagā nadī
Note: k: For 10ab, T1.2 G M4 subst.: :kdivyāṃ tripathagāṃ dṛṣṭvā puṇyāṃ bhāgirathīṃ nadīm |
Note: k: While T3 M1-3 subst. for 10ab: :kdivyā tripathagā dṛṣṭā puṇyā bhāgīrathī nadī |
Note: k: After 10ab, N (except Ś1 K4 Ñ1; D6 om.) T G M4 ins.: :ksmaraṇād eva sarveṣām aṃhasāṃ yā vibhedinī |
upaspṛṣṭaṃ ca tīrtheṣu divyeṣu ca yathākramam //
dṛṣṭaṃ me brahmasadanaṃ brahmarṣigaṇasevitam
devagandharvanirghoṣair apsarobhiś ca nāditam //
so 'haṃ kadācid devānāṃ samājaṃ merumūrdhani
saṃgṛhya vīṇāṃ saṃsaktām agacchaṃ brahmaṇaḥ sabhām //
so 'haṃ tatra sitoṣṇīṣān nānāratnavibhūṣitān
divyāsanagatān devān apaśyaṃ sapitāmahān //
tatra manatrayatām evaṃ devatānāṃ mayā śrutaḥ
bhavataḥ sānugasyeha vadhopāyaḥ sudāruṇaḥ //
tatraiṣā devakī yā te mathurāyāṃ pitṛṣvasā
asyā garbho 'ṣṭamaḥ kaṃsa sa te mṛtyur bhaviṣyati //
devānāṃ sa tu sarvasvaṃ tridivasya gatiś ca saḥ
paraṃ rahasyaṃ devānāṃ sa te mṛtyur bhaviṣyati //
parato 'pi paras tv eṣāṃ svayaṃbhūś ca savayaṃbhuvām
tatas te tan mahad bhūtaṃ divyaṃ na kathayāmy aham //
ślāghyaś ca sa hi te mṛtyur bhūtapūrvaś ca taṃ smara
yatnaś ca kriyatāṃ kaṃsa garbhasthe yadi śakyate //
eṣā me tvadgatā prītir ityarthaṃ cāham āgataḥ
bhujyantāṃ sarvakāmārthāḥ svasti te 'stu vrajāmy aham //
Note: k: After 19c, S (except T2.4) ins.: :k
dāsyantāṃ dānavistarāḥ |
bhujyantāṃ kaṃsa kāmāś ca |
ity uktvā nārade yāte tasya vākyaṃ vicintayan
jahāsoccais tataḥ kaṃsaḥ pakāśadaśanaś ciram //
sasmitaṃ ceva provāca bhṛtyānām agrataḥ sthitaḥ
hāsyaḥ khalu sa sattveṣu nārado na viśāradaḥ //
nāhaṃ bhīṣayituṃ śakyo devair api savāsavaiḥ
āhavasthaḥ śayāno vā pramato matta eva vā //
yo 'haṃ dorbhyām udārābhyāṃ kṣobhaye 'haṃ dharām imām
ko 'sti yo mānuṣe loke māṃ kṣobhayitum utsahet //
adyaprabhṛti bhūtānām eṣa devānuvartinām
nṛpakṣipaśusaṃghānāṃ karomi kadanaṃ mahat //
ājñāpyatāṃ hayaḥ keśī pralambo dhenukas tathā
ariṣṭo vṛṣabhaś caiva pūtanā kāliyas tathā //
aṭadhvaṃ pṭhivīṃ kṛtsnāṃ yatheṣṭaṃ kāmarūpiṇaḥ
praharadhvaṃ ca sarveṣu ye 'smākaṃ pakṣadūṣakāḥ //
garbhasthānām api gatir vijñeyā bhuvi dehinām
nāradena hi garbhebhyo bhayaṃ naḥ samudāhṛtam //
bhavanto hi yathākāmaṃ modantāṃ vigatajvarāḥ
māṃ ca vo nātham āśritya nāsti devakṛtaṃ bhayam //
sa tu kelikilo vipro bhedaśīlaś ca nāradaḥ
suśliṣṭān api lokeṣu bhedayaṃl labhate ratim //
kaṇḍūyamānaḥ satataṃ lokān aṭati cañcalaḥ
ghaṭayāno narendrāṇāṃ tantrīvairāṇi caiva ha //
evaṃ sa vilapann eva vāṅmātreṇa tu kevalam
viveśa kaṃso bhavanaṃ dahyamānena cetasā //
Note: h: HV (CE) ch. 47, transliterated by Peter Schreiner; version March 4, 2002. Not yet proof-read. :h
so ājñāpayata saṃrabdhaḥ sacivān ātmano hitān
yattā bhavata sarve vai devakyā garabhakṛntane //
prathamād eva hantavyā garbhās te sarva eva hi
mūlād eva hi hantavyaḥ so 'nartho yatra saṃśayaḥ //
devakī ca gṛhe guptā pracchannair abhirakṣitā
svairaṃ caratu visrabdhā madbalair yatnam āsthitaiḥ //
māsān vai puṣpamāsādīn gaṇayantu mama striyaḥ
pariṇāme tu garbhasya śeṣaṃ jñāsyāmahe vayam //
vasudevaś ca saṃrakṣyaḥ strīsanāthāstu bhūmiṣu
apramattair mama hitai rātrāv ahani caiva ha
strībhir varṣavaraiś caiva vaktavyaṃ na ca kāraṇam //
eṣa mānuṣako yatno mānuṣair eva sādhyate
śrūyatāṃ yena daivaṃ hi madvidhaiḥ pratihanyate //
mantragrāmaiḥ suvihitair auṣadhaiś ca suyojitaiḥ
yatnena cānukūlena daivam apy anuvartate //
evaṃ sa yatnavān kaṃso devakīgarbhakṛntane
bhayena mantrayām āsa śrutārtho nāradāt sa vai //
Note: k: After 8, D6 S (except T3.4) ins.: :k
atha brahmatanūjas tu nārado munipuṃgavaḥ |
viṣṇave sarvam ācakhyau yathā kaṃsaviceṣṭitam |
evaṃ śrutvā prayatnaṃ vai kaṃsasyāriṣṭasaṃjñitam
Note: k: For 9ab, D6 S (except T3.4) subst.: :kśrutvaiva kaṃsarājasya ceṣṭitaṃ jagatīpatiḥ |
antardhānaṃ gato viṣṇuś cintayām āsa vīryavān //
saptemān devakīgarbhān bhojaputro vadhiṣyati
aṣṭame ca mayā garbhe kāryam ādhānam ātmanaḥ //
tasya cintayatas tv evaṃ pātālam agaman manaḥ
yatra te garbhaśayanāḥ ṣadgarbhā nāma dānavāḥ //
vikrāntavapuṣo dīptās te 'mṛtaprāśanopamāḥ
amarapratimā yuddhe putrā vai kālaneminaḥ //
Note: k: After 12, all Mss. (except Ś1 M1-3; G4 damaged) ins.: :k
āryakaṃ vai parityajya hiraṇyakaśipuṃ purā |
upāsāṃ cakrire daityāḥ purā lokapitāmaham
tapyamānās tapas tīvraṃ jaṭāmaṇḍaladhāriṇaḥ //
Note: k: After 13, D6 S (except T3.4) ins.: :k
samāḥ sahasram ayutam ambuvāyuvicāriṇaḥ |
teṣāṃ prīto 'bhavad brahmā ṣadgarbhāṇāṃ varaṃ dadau
Note: k: Ñ (except Ś1) T G1.3-5 M4 G2 ins.: :kbho bho dānavaśārdūlās tapasāhaṃ sutoṣitaḥ |
brūta vo yasya yaḥ kāmaḥ ko varo vaḥ pradīyatāṃ //
te tu sarve samānārthā daityā brahmāṇam abruvan
yadi no bhagavān prītaḥ śrūyatāṃ no varo varaḥ //
avadhyāḥ syāma bhagavan daivataiḥ samahauragaiḥ
śāpapraharaṇaiś cāpi niyataiḥ paramarṣibhiḥ //
yakṣagandharvapatibhiḥ siddhacāraṇamānavaiḥ
mā bhūd vadho no bhagavan dadāsi yadi no varam //
tān uvāca tato brahmā suprītenāntarātmanā
bhavadbhir yad idaṃ proktaṃ sarvam etad bhaviṣyati //
ṣaḍgarbhāṇāṃ varaṃ dasttvā svayaṃbhūs tridivaṃ gataḥ
tato hiraṇyakaśipuḥ saroṣo vākyam abravīt //
mām utsṛjya varo yasmād vṛto vaḥ padmasaṃbhavāt
tasmād vas tyājitaḥ snehaḥ śatrubhūtāṃs tyajāmy aham //
ṣaḍgarbhā iti yo yaṃ vaḥ śabdaḥ pitrābhivardhitaḥ
sa eva vo garbhagatān pitā sarvān vadhiṣyati //
ṣaḍ eva devakīgarbhāḥ ṣadgarbhā vai mahāsurāḥ
bhaviṣyanti tataḥ kaṃso garbhasthān vo vadhiṣyati //
Note: k: D6 S ins.: :k
śaptvā caivaṃ tato daityān daityeśo roṣamūrcchitaḥ |
pātāle jalagarbhasthāṃś cakārāmitavikramaḥ |
jñātvā haris tu taṃ śāpaṃ kaṃsasya ca viniścayam |
jagāmātha tato viṣṇuḥ pātālaṃ yatra te śurāḥ
ṣaḍgarbhāḥ saṃyatāḥ santi jalagarbhagṛheśayāḥ //
sa dadarśa jale suptān ṣaḍgarbhān garbhasaṃsthitān
nidrayā kālarūpiṇyā sarvān antarhitān iva //
svapnarūpeṇa teṣāṃ vai viṣṇur dehān athāviśat
prāṇeśvarāṃś ca niṣkṛṣya nidrāyai pradadau tadā //
tāṃ covāca tadā nidrāṃ viṣṇuḥ satyaparākramaḥ
gaccha nidre mayotsṛṣṭā devakībhavanāntikam //
imān prāṇeśvarān gṛhya ṣaḍgarbhān nāma dehinaḥ
Note: k: K N V B2 Dn Ds D1.4.5 G4 ins. after 27a, D6 after 27b: :kṣaḍgarbhān dānavottamān |
sarvaprāṇeśvarī caiva |
ṣaṭsu garbheṣu devakyā yojayasva yathākramam //
jāteṣv eteṣu garbheṣu nīteṣu ca yamakṣayam
kaṃsasya viphale yatne devakyāḥ saphale śrame //
prasādaṃ te kariṣyāmi matprasādasamaṃ bhuvi
yena sarvasya lokasya devi devī bhavīṣyasi //
Note: k: D6 S (except T3.4) ins.: :k
bhaviṣyanti mamāsrāṇi tathā bāhusthitāni te |
śārṅgaśaṅkhagadācakra+ +musalaṃ śūlam eva ca |
saptamo devakīgarbho yo 'ṃśaḥ saumyo mamāgrajaḥ
sa saṃkrāmayitavyas te saptame māsi rohiṇīm //
saṃkarṣaṇāt tu garbhasya sa tu saṃkarṣaṇo yuvā
bhaviṣyaty agrajo bhrātā mama śītāṃśudarśanaḥ //
patito devakīgarbhaḥ saptamo 'yaṃ bhayād iti
aṣṭame mayi garbhasthe kaṃso yatnaṃ kariṣyati //
yā tu sā nandagopasya dayitā kaṃsagopateḥ
yaśodā nāma bhadraṃ te bhāryā gopakulodvahā //
tasyās tvaṃ navamo 'smākaṃ kule garbho bhaviṣyasi
navamyām eva saṃjāto kṛṣṇapakṣasya vai tithau //
ahaṃ tv abhijito yoge niśāyā yauvane gate
ardharātre kariṣyāmi garbhamokṣaṃ yathāsukham //
aṣṭamasya tu māsasya jātāv āvāṃ tataḥ samam
prāpsyāvo garabhavyatyāsaṃ prāpte kaṃsasya śasane //
ahaṃ yaśodāṃ yāsyāmi tvaṃ devi bhaja devakīm
āvayor garbhavyatyāse kaṃso gacchatu mūḍhatām //
tatas tvāṃ gṛhya caraṇe śilāyāṃ nirasiṣyati
Note: k: S except T3.4 ins.: :ktatas taddhastavibhraṣṭā madyogād bhavitā śubhā |
nirasyamānā gagane sthānaṃ prāpsyasi śāśvatam //
macchavīsadṛśī kṛṣṇā saṃkarṣaṇasamānanā
bibhratī vipulān bāhūn mama bāhūpamān bhuvi //
triśikhaṃ śūlam udyamya khaḍgaṃ ca kanakatsarum
pātrīṃ ca pūrṇāṃ madhunaḥ paṅkajaṃ ca sunirmalam //
vasānā mecakaṃ kṣaumaṃ pītenottaravāsasā
śaśiraśmiprakāśena hāreṇorasi rājatā //
divyakuṇḍalapūrṇābhyāṃ śravaṇābhyāṃ vibhūṣitā
candrasāpatnyabhūtena tvaṃ mukhena virājitā //
mukuṭena tricakreṇa keśabandhena śobhitā
bhujagābhoganirghoṣair bāhubhiḥ parighopamaiḥ //
Note: k: K Ñ2.3 V B Dn Ds D1-5 T3.4 subst.: :k
bhujagābhair bhujair bhīmair bhūṣayantī diśo daśa |
Note: k: D6 T1.2 G M ins.: :k
aṣṭabhiḥ śobhayanty ugraiḥ śārṅgacakrāsidhāribhiḥ |
dhvajena śikhibarhāṇām ucchritena samīpataḥ
aṅgajena mayūrāṇām aṅgadena ca bhāsvatā //
kīrṇā bhūtagaṇair ghorair mannideśānuvartinī
kaumāraṃ vratam āsthāya atridivaṃ tvaṃ gamiṣyasi //
tatra tvāṃ śatadṛk śakro matpradiṣṭena karmaṇā
abhiṣekeṇa divyena daivataiḥ saha yokṣyate //
tatraiva tvāṃ bhaginyarthe grahiṣyati sa vāsavaḥ
kuśikasya tu gotreṇa kauśikī tvaṃ bhaviṣyasi //
sa te vindhye nagaśreṣṭhe sthānaṃ dāsyati śāśvatam
tataḥ sthānasahasreais tvaṃ pṛthivīṃ śobhayiṣyasi //
tataḥ sumbhanisumbhau a dānavau nagacārtiṇau
tau ca kṛtvā manasi māṃ sānugau nāśayiṣyasi //
trailokyacāriṇī sā tvaṃ bhuvi satyopayācitā
bhaviṣyasi mahābhāge varadā kāmarūpiṇī //
kṛtānuyātrā bhūtais tvaṃ nityaṃ māṃsabalipriyā
tithau navamyāṃ pūjāṃ ca prāpsyase sapaśukriyām //
ye ca tvāṃ matprabhāvajñāḥ praṇamiṣyanti mānavāḥ
na teṣāṃ durlabhaṃ kiṃcit putrato dhanato 'pi vā //
kāntāreṣv avasannānāṃ mganānāṃ ca mahārṇave
dasyubhir vā niruddhānāṃ tvaṃ gatiḥ paramā nṛṇām //
tvaṃ siddhiḥ śrīr dhṛtiḥ kīrtir hrīr vidyā saṃnatir matiḥ
Note: k: D3 ins.: :ksaṃdhyā lakṣmīr vapur medhā kāntiḥ śraddhā kriyā gatiḥ |
saṃdhyā rātriḥ prabhā nidrā kālarātris tathaiva ca //
Note: k: K1-3 Ñ V B D T2-4 G M4 ins.: :k
tvāṃ tu stoṣyanti ye bhaktyā stavenānena vai śubhe |
tasyāhaṃ na praṇaśyāmi sa ca me na praṇaśyati ||
Note: Colophon
āryāstavaṃ pravakṣyāmi yathoktam ṛṣibhiḥ purā |
nārāyaṇīṃ namasyāmi devīṃ tribhuvaneśvarīm |
Note: k: Ś1 K4 Ñ1 V2.3 B1 Ds D1 T3 ins. after 54, K1-3 Ñ2.3 V1 B2.3 Dn D2-6 T1.2.4 G1.2.4.5 M4 after the repetition of 54, G3 after the repetition of 54ab, a passage given in App. I (No. 8). :k
nṛṇāṃ bandhaṃ vadhaṃ ghoraṃ putranāśaṃ dhanakṣayam
vyādhimṛtyubhayaṃ caiva pūjitā śamayiṣyasi //
Note: k: After 55, Ś1 Dn ins.: :k
bhaviṣyasi mahābhāge varadā kāmarūpiṇī |
mohayitvā ca taṃ kaṃsam ekā tvaṃ bhokṣyase jagat
Note: k: K Ñ2.3 V B Dn Ds D1-5 T3 ins. after 56ab; D6 T2 G1-3.5 M4 after the repetition of 56ab; T1 after 56: :kaham apy ātmano vṛttiṃ vidhāsye goṣu gopavat |
svavṛddhyartham ahaṃ caiva kariṣye kaṃsaghātanam //
evaṃ tu tāṃ samādiśya gato 'ntardhānam īśvaraḥ
sā cāpi taṃ namaskṛtya tathāstv iti vinirgatā //
Note: k: Ś1 D2.5 ins. after 57; D6 after the repetition of 57: :k
yaś caitat paṭhate stotraṃ śṛṇuyād vāpy abhīkṣṇaśaḥ |
sarvārthasiddhiṃ labhate naro nāsty atra saṃśayaḥ |
Note: h: HV (CE) ch. 48, transliterated and collated with ViP and BrP by Utz Podzeit, extracted from the collation and edited by Peter Schreiner. version March 4, 2002. Not yet proof-read. :h
kṛte garbhavidhāne tu devakī devatopamā
jagrāha sapta tān garbhān yathāvat samudāhṛtān //
ṣaḍgarbhān niḥsṛtān kaṃsas tāñ jaghāna śilātale
āpannaṃ saptamaṃ garbhaṃ sā nināyātha rohiṇīm //
sārdharātre sthitaṃ garbhaṃ śātayantī rajasvalā
nidrayā sahasāviṣṭā papāta dharaṇītale //
sā svapnam iva taṃ dṛṣṭvā garbhaṃ niḥsṛtam ātmanaḥ
apaśyantī ca taṃ garbhaṃ muhūrtaṃ vyathitābhavat //
tām āha nidrā saṃvignāṃ naiśe tamasi rohiṇīm
rohiṇīm iva somasya vasudevasya rohiṇīm //
karsaṇenāsya garbhasya svagarbhe cāhitasya vai
saṃkarṣaṇo nāma śubhe tava putro bhaviṣyati //
sā taṃ putram avāpyaiva hṛṣṭā kiṃcid avāṅmukhī
viveśa rohiṇī veśma suprabhā rohiṇī yathā //
tasya garbhasya mārgeṇa garbham ādhatta devakī
yadarthaṃ sapta te garbhāḥ kaṃsena vinipātitāḥ //
taṃ tu garbhaṃ prayatnena rarakṣur tasya rakṣiṇaḥ
Note: k: D6 T G1.2.4.5 M ins. after 9ab: :kjāgrataḥ prayatāḥ sarve māsān saṃkhyāya śastriṇaḥ |
sa tatra garbhavasatiṃ vasaty ātmecchayā hariḥ //
Note: k: D6 T G1.2.4.5 M ins. after 9: :k
yasminn ahani deveśaṃ garbham ādatta devakī |
yaśodāpi samādhatta garbhaṃ tadahar eva tu
viṣṇoḥ śarīrajāṃ nidrāṃ viṣṇor nirdeśakāriṇīm //
garbhakāle tv asaṃpūrṇe aṣṭame māsi te striyau
devakī ca yaśodā ca suṣuvāte samaṃ tadā //
yām eva rajanīṃ kṛṣṇo jajñe vṛṣṇikule prabhuḥ
tām eva rajanīṃ kanyāṃ yaśodāpi vyajāyata
nandagopasya bhāryā vai kaṃsagopasya saṃmatā //
tulyakālaṃ hi garbhiṇyau yaśodā devakī tathā
Note: k: After 13ab, D6 T2 G1.3-5 M4 ins.: :kaṣṭamyāṃ śrāvaṇe māse kṛṣṇapakṣe mahātithau |
rohiṇyām ardharātre ca sudhāṃśor udaye tathā |
devaky ajanayad viṣṇuṃ yaśodā tāṃ tu kanyakām
muhūrte 'bhijite prāpte sārdharātre vibhūṣite //
sāgarāḥ samakampanta celuś ca dharaṇīdharāḥ
jajvaluś cāgnayaḥ śāntā jāyamāne janārdane //
śivāḥ saṃpravavur vātāḥ praśāntam abhavad rajaḥ
jyotīṃsi ca prakāśanta jāyamāne janārdane //
Note: k: K1.2,V1.2,B,Ds,D2.4.5 ins. after 15; Ñ2,Dn after line 1 of *601; Ñ3 after 16ab; D3 after 14: :k
abhijin nāma nakṣatraṃ jayantī nāma śarvarī |
muhūrto vijayo nāma yatra jāto janārdanaḥ ||
avyaktaḥ śāśvataḥ sūkṣmo harinārāyaṇaḥ prabhuḥ |
jāyate bhagavāṃs tatra nayanair mohayañ jagat |
anāhatā duṃdubhayo devānāṃ prāṇadan divi
ākāśāt puṣpavarṣaṃ ca vavarṣa tridiveśvaraḥ //
Note: k: D6,T2-4,G,M ins. after 16; T1 after line 2 of *601: :k
antardhānagatāḥ sarve munayaḥ saṃśitavratāḥ |
astuvan niśi deveśaṃ jāyamānaṃ janārdanam ||
eṣa eva jagatsvāmī vasudevasya veśmani |
bālyaṃ vapuḥ samāsthāya tūṣṇīm āste 'tha paśyata ||
paśyatainaṃ suviśrabdhāḥ sākṣāl lokeśvaraṃ prabhum |
mānuṣīṃ tanum āsthāya lambantaṃ devakīkare ||
eṣa hantuṃ durātmānaṃ kaṃsam āvirbhaviṣyati ||
namas tasmai jagaddhātre viṣṇave kṛṣṇarūpiṇe |
acintyavibhave tasmai viśvakartre namo namaḥ |
gīrbhir maṅgalayuktābhiḥ stuvanto madhusūdanam
Note: k: For 17ab D6 S subst.: :karthyābhir gīrbhir evaṃ taṃ jāyamānaṃ janārdanam |
maharṣayaḥ sagandharvā upatasthuḥ sahāpsarāḥ //
Note: k: Ś1,K1-3,Ñ2.3,V,B,Dn,Ds,D2-4,T1.3.4,G4 ins. after 17; D5 after 17ab: :k
jāyamāne hṛṣīkeśe prahṛṣṭam abhavaj jagat |
indraś ca tridaśaiḥ sārdhaṃ tuṣṭāva madhusūdanam ||
vasudevas tu taṃ rātrau jātaṃ putram adhokṣajam |
śrīvatsalakṣaṇaṃ dṛṣṭvā yutaṃ divyaiś ca lakṣaṇaiḥ |
Note: k: B2 ins. after line 2 of *601: :k
devakī ca tato dīnā tam uvāca śucismitā |
upasaṃhara sarvāsu divyaṃ rūpam idaṃ hare ||
jānātu māvatāraṃ te kaṃso 'yaṃ ditijāntaka |
Note: k: K1-3,Ñ2.3,V,B,Dn,Ds,D2-5,T1.3.4,G4 cont.; D6,T2,G1-3.5,M4 cont. after *604: :k
uvāca vasudevas taṃ rūpaṃ saṃhara vai prabho |
bhīto 'haṃ deva kaṃsasya tasmād evaṃ vadāmy aham |
mama putrā hatās tena tava jyeṣṭhāmbujekṣaṇa ||
vasudevavacaḥ śrutvā rūpaṃ saṃharad acyutaḥ |
anujñāpya pitṛtvena nandagopagṛhaṃ naya |
Note: k: K1 Ñ2.3 V1 D3 cont. *602: :k
ugrasenamate tiṣṭhan yaśodāyai dadau tadā |
Note: k: D6,T2,G1-3.5,M ins. after 17; T1.3.4,G4 cont. after *602: :k
evaṃ samākule kāle suṣupū rakṣiṇas tadā ||
na kevalaṃ rakṣitāraḥ sāyudhā mohitāḥ kila |
sā purī madhurā sarvā suṣvāpa harimāyayā |
vasudevād ṛte tasmād devakyāś ca mahīpate ||
vasudevas tato gatvā devakīgarbhaveśma tat |
dadarśa devadeveśaṃ rātrau jātam adhokṣajam ||
nīlakuñcitakeśāntam unnidrāmbujavaktrakam |
nīlameghanibhaṃ kāntaṃ tejoraśim amānuṣam ||
śayānam ambuje patre vaṭapatre yathā purā |
prācīnaśirasaṃ kṛṣṇaṃ paścimanyastapādakam ||
tatra dṛṣṭo jarāyur na na ca prasavavedanā ||
devakī sumukhī dṛṣṭvā sāsīnā putralokinī |
atyantavismayāviṣṭā vasudevena sābhavat |
vasudevas tu saṃgṛhya dārakaṃ kṣipram eva tu
Note: k: D6 T1.3 G M4 ins. after 18ab; M1-3 subst. for 18ab: :kśayānam aṅke devakyā rātrāv ādāya yādavaḥ |
yaśodāyā gṛhaṃ bhīto viveśa sutavatsalaḥ //
Note: k: After 18, K3 D2 ins.: :k
tayā hṛtapratyayasarvavṛttiṣu |
dvāḥstheṣu paureṣv anuśāyiteṣv atha |
dvāras tu saravāḥ pihitā duratyayā |
bṛhatkapāṭāyasakīlaśṛṅkhalaiḥ ||
tāḥ kṛṣṇavāhe vasudeva āgate |
svayaṃ viśīryanta tamo yathā raveḥ |
vavarṣa parjanya upāṃśugarjitaṃ |
śeṣo 'nvagād vāri nivārayan phaṇaiḥ ||
magho 'tivarṣaty asakṛd yamānujā |
gambhīratoyaughajavormiphenilā |
bhayānakāvartaśatākulā nadī |
mārgaṃ dadau sindhur iva śriyaḥ pateḥ ||
nandavrajaṃ śaurir upetya tatra tān |
gopān prasuptān upalabhya nidrayā |
sutaṃ yaśodāśayane nidhāya tam |
sutām upādāya punar gṛhān agāt ||
yaśodāyās tv avijñātaṃ tatra nikṣipya dārakam
gṛhya tāṃ dārikāṃ cāpi devakīśayane 'nyasat //
Note: k: D6,S (except T3.4) ins.: :k
suptā eva tadā sarve rakṣiṇo viṣṇumāyayā |
parivarte kṛte tābhyāṃ garbhābhyāṃ bhayaviklavaḥ
vasudevaḥ kṛtārtho vai nirjagāma niveśanāt //
Note: k: After 20, K3 D2 ins.: :k
bahir antaḥ puradvāraḥ sarvāḥ pūrvavad āvṛtāḥ |
tato bāladhvaniṃ śrutvā gṛhapālāḥ samutthitāḥ ||
te tu tūrṇam upavrajya devakyā garbhajanma tat |
ācakhyur bhojarājāya yad udvignaḥ pratīkṣate |
ugrasenasutāyātha kaṃsāyānakaduṃdubhiḥ
nivedayām_āsa tadā kanyāṃ tāṃ varavarṇinīm //
Note: k: For 21cd, M1-3 subst.: :k
bhīto nivedayām āsa jātā naḥ kanyaketi ha |
tac chrutvā tvaritaḥ kaṃso rakṣibhiḥ saha vegitaḥ
ājagāma gṛhadvāraṃ vasudevasya vīryavān //
sa tatra tvarito dvāri kiṃ jātam iti cābravīt
dīyatāṃ śīghram ity evaṃ vāgbhiḥ samabhitarjayat //
tato hāhākṛtāḥ sarvā devakīpramukhāḥ striyaḥ
Note: k: After 24ab, N (except Ś1 D6) T1.3.4 ins.: :kuvāca devakī dīnā bāṣpaviklavayā girā |
dārikā putra jāteti kaṃsaṃ tūvāca devakī //
śrīmanto me hatāḥ sapta putragarbhās tvayā vibho
dārikeyaṃ hataivaiṣā paśyasva yadi manyase //
dṛṣṭvā kaṃsas tu tāṃ kanyām ahṛṣyata mudā yutaḥ
hataivaiṣā yadā kanyā jātety uktvā vṛthāmatiḥ //
sā garbhaśayane kliṣṭā garbhāmbuklinnamūrdhajā
kaṃsasya purato nyastā pṛthivyāṃ pṛthivīsamā //
pāde tāṃ gṛhya puruṣaḥ samāvidhyāvadhūya ca
udyacchann eva sahasā śilāyāṃ samapothayat
sāvadhūtā śilāpṛṣṭhe 'niṣpiṣṭā divam utpatat //
hitvā garbhatanuṃ cāpi sahasā muktamūrdhajā
jagāmākāśam āviśya divyasraganulepanā
Note: k: Dn D2.5 ins. (Dn: "mukuṭāṭopabhūṣitā"): :khāraśobhitasarvāṅgī mukuṭojjvalabhūṣitā |
kanyaiva cābhavan nityaṃ divyā devair abhiṣṭutā //
nīlapītāmbaradharā gajakumbhopamastanī
rathavistīrṇajaghanā candravaktrā caturbhujā //
vidyudvispaṣṭavarṇābhā bālārkasadṛśekṣaṇā
payodharasvanavatī saṃdhyeva sapayodharā //
sā vai niśi tamograste babhau bhūtagaṇākule
nṛtyatī hasatī caiva viparītena bhāsvatī //
vihāyasagatā raudrā papau pānam anuttamam
jahāsa ca mahāhāsaṃ kaṃsaṃ ca ruṣitābravīt //
kaṃsa kaṃsa vināśāya yad ahaṃ ghātitā tvayā
sahasā ca samutkṣipya śilāyāṃ vinipātitā //
tasmāt tavāntakāle 'haṃ kṛṣyamāṇasya śatruṇā
pāṭayitvā karair deham uṣṇaṃ pāsyāmi śoṇitam //
evam uktvā vaco ghoraṃ sā yatheṣṭena vartmanā
khaṃ sā devālayaṃ devī sagaṇā vicacāra ha //
Note: K,Ñ2.3,V,B,Dn,Ds,D1.2.4-6,T,G ins. after 36, D3 after 36c, M4 after 36b
sā kanyā vavṛdhe atra vṛṣṇisadmani pūjitā |
putravat pālyamānā sā devī devājñayā tadā ||
viddhi caināṃ athotpannām aṃśād devīṃ prajāpateḥ |
ekānaṃśāṃ yogakanyāṃ rakṣārthaṃ keśavasya tu ||
tāṃ vai sarve sumanasaḥ pūjayanti sā yādavāḥ |
devavaddivyavapuṣaṃ kṛṣṇaḥ saṃrakṣito yayā |
Note: K2,Ñ2,Ds,D5 ins. after line 3
ekānaṃśeti yām āhur utpannāṃ mānavā bhuvi |
tasyāṃ gatāyāṃ kaṃsas tu tāṃ mene mṛtyum ātmanaḥ
vivikte devakīṃ caiva vrīḍitaḥ pratyabhāṣata //
pitṛṣvasaḥ kṛto yatnas tava garbhā hatā mayā
anyathaivānyato devi mama mṛtyuḥ samutthitaḥ //
nairāśyena kṛto yatnaḥ svajane prahṛtaṃ mayā
daivaṃ puruṣakāreṇa na cātikrāntavān aham //
tyaja garbhakṛtāṃ cintāṃ tvam imāṃ śokakārikām
hetubhūtas tv ahaṃ teṣāṃ sati kālaviparyaye //
kāla eva nṛṇāṃ śatruḥ kālaś ca pariṇāmakaḥ
kālo nayati sarvaṃ vai hetubhūtaś ca madvidhaḥ //
Note: k: K1.3.4 Ñ2.3 V B D S (except M1-3) ins.: :k
āgamiṣyanti vai devi yathābhāgam upadravaḥ |
idaṃ tu kaṣṭaṃ yaj jantuḥ kartāham iti manyate |
mā kārṣīḥ putrajāṃ cintāṃ vilāpaṃ śokajaṃ tyaja
evaṃprāyā nṛṇāṃ yonir nāsti kālasya saṃsthitiḥ //
patāmi pādayor mūrdhnā putravat tava devaki
madgatas tyajyatāṃ roṣo jānāmy apakṛtaṃ svayam //
Note: k: K4 Ñ2 V2.3 B Ds D6 T1.3 G M4 ins.: :k
ity uktavantaṃ kaṃsaṃ sā devakī vākyam abravīt |
sāśrupūrṇamukhī dīnā bhartāram abhivīkṣatī
uttiṣṭhottiṣṭha vatseti kaṃsaṃ māteva jalpatī //
mamāgrato hatā garbhā ye tvayā kālarūpiṇā
kāraṇaṃ tvaṃ na vai putra kṛtānto hy atra kāraṇam //
garbhakṛntanam etan me sahanīyaṃ tvayā kṛtam
mūrdhnā padbhyāṃ nipatatā svaṃ ca karma jugupsatā //
garbhe 'pi niyato mṛtyur bālye 'pi na nivartate
yuvāpi mṛtyor vaśagaḥ sthaviro mṛta eva tu //
kālamūlam idaṃ sarvaṃ hetubhūtas tvam eva hi |
ajāte darśanaṃ nāsti yathā nāsti tathaiva saḥ
jāto 'py ajātatāṃ yāti vidhātrā yatra nīyate //
tad gaccha putra mā te bhūn madgataṃ manyukāraṇam
mṛtyunāpahṛte pūrvaṃ śeṣo hetuḥ pravartate //
vidhinā pūrvadṛṣṭena prajāsargeṇa tattvataḥ
mātāpitros tu kāryeṇa janmatas tūpapadyate //
niśamya devakīvākyaṃ sa kaṃsaḥ svam niveśanam
Note: k: K2-4 Ñ2.3 V B D S except M1-3 ins. after 51ab: :kpraviveśa susaṃrabdho dahyamānena cetasā |
kṛtye pratihate dīno jagāma vimanā bhṛśam //
Note: k: After 51, Ñ2 V3 B1 ins.: :k
svavadhaṃ cintyamānas tu kanyāvākyam anusmaran |
Note: h: HV (CE) ch. 49, transliterated and collated with ViP and BrP by Utz Podzeit, extracted from the collation and edited by Peter Schreiner; version of March 4, 2002. Not yet proof-read. :h
prāg eva vasudevas tu vraje śuśrāva rohiṇīm
prajātāṃ putram evāgre candrāt kāntatarānanam //
sa nandagopaṃ tvaritaḥ provāca śubhayā girā
gacchānayā saha tvaṃ tu vrajam eva yaśodayā //
Note: k: D6,T1.2,G,M4 ins. after 2; M1.2 after 2ab; M3 cont. after *618: :k
yadā ca rohiṇī putraṃ prasūtā kamalekṣaṇā |
yaśodāpi tadaiveyaṃ prasūtā tanayaṃ vibho |
tatremau dārakau gatvā jātakarmādibhir guṇaiḥ
yojayitvā vraje tāta saṃvardhaya yathāsukham
rauhiṇeyaṃ ca me putraṃ parirakṣa śiśuṃ vraje //
Note: k: After 3, D6,T2,G1.2.4.5,M4 ins.: :k
pālayasva tadā tāta pramādabahule vraje |
bālye kelikilaḥ sarvo bālye mūrcchanty amānuṣāḥ
bālye caṇḍatamaḥ sarvas tatra yatnaparo bhava //
ahaṃ vācyo bhaviṣyāmi pitṛpakṣeṣu putriṇām
yo 'ham ekasya putrasya na paśyāmi śiśor mukham //
hriyate hi balāt prajñā prājñasyāpi sato mama
asmād dhi me bhayaṃ kaṃsān nirghṛṇād vai śiśor vadhe //
tad yathā rauhiṇeyaṃ tvaṃ nandagopa mamātmajam
gopāyasi yathā tāta tattvānveṣī tathā kuru
vighnā hi bahavo loke bālān uttrāsayanti hi //
sa ca putro mama jyāyān kanīyāṃs tava cāpy ayam
ubhāv api samaṃ premṇā nirīkṣasva yathāsukham //
vardhamānāv ubhāv etau samānavayasau yathā
śobhetāṃ govraje tasmin nandagopa tathā kuru //
na ca vṛndāvane kāryo gavāṃ ghoṣaḥ kadācana
Note: k: After 10ab, D6,S ins.: :ktatrāsau vasati krūro māṃsabhojī durātmavān |
tatra vāse tu bhetavyaṃ keśinaḥ pāpadarśinaḥ //
sarīsṛpebhyaḥ kīṭebhyaḥ śakunibhyas tathaiva ca
goṣṭheṣu gobhyo vatsebhyo rakṣyau te dvāv imau śiśū //
Note: k: After 11, D6,T1.4,G1-3,M ins.: :k
yamunā naiva gantavyā tasyāṃ vasati kāliyaḥ |
nandagopa gatā rātriḥ śīghrayāno vrajāśugaḥ
ime tvāṃ tvarayantīha pakṣiṇaḥ savyadakṣiṇāḥ //
rahite vasudevena so 'nujñāto mahātmanā
yānaṃ yaśodayā sārdham āruroha mudā yutaḥ //
kumāraṃ skandhavāhyāyāṃ śivikāyāṃ samāhitaḥ
Note: k: After 14ab, D6,T2,G1.3.5,M4 ins.: :kśayane taṃ śiśuṃ caiva saṃveśya mṛdusaṃstare |
saṃveśayāmāsa śiśuṃ śayanīye mahāmatiḥ //
sa jagāma viviktena śītānilavisarpiṇā
bahūdakena mārgena yamunātīraśobhinā //
sa dadarśa śive deśe govardhananagopage
yamunātīrasaṃbaddhaṃ śītamārutasevitam //
virataśvāpadaṃ ramyaṃ latāvallīmahādrumam
gobhis tṛṇanimagnābhiḥ syandantībhir alaṃkṛtam //
samapracāraṃ ca gavāṃ samatīrthajalāśayam
viṣāṇaskandhaghātaiś ca vṛṣāṇāṃ ghṛṣṭapādapam //
bhāsāmipādānusṛtaṃ śyenaiś cāmiṣagṛddhibhiḥ
sṛgālamṛgasiṃhaiś ca vasāmedośibhir vṛtam //
śārdūlaśabdābhirutaṃ nānāpakṣisamākulam
svādupuṣpaphalaṃ ramyaṃ paryāptatṛṇasaṃstaram //
govrajaṃ gorutaśivaṃ gopanārībhir āvṛtam
hambhāravaiś ca vatsānāṃ sarvataḥ kṛtanisvanam //
sakaṭāvartavipulaṃ kaṇṭakīvāṭasaṃkulam
paryanteśv āvṛtaṃ vanyair bṛhadbhiḥ patitair drumaiḥ //
vatsānāṃ ropitaiḥ kīlair dāmabhiś ca vibhūṣitam
karīṣākīrṇavasudhaṃ kaṭacchannakuṭīmaṭham //
kṣamapracārabahulaṃ hṛṣṭapuṣṭajanāyutam
dāmanīprāyabahulaṃ gargarodgāranisvanam //
takranisrāvabahulaṃ dadhimaṇḍārdramṛttikam
Note: k: After 25ab, D6,T1.2.4,G1.2.4.5,M ins.: :knavanītaparikṣiptam ājyagandhavibhūṣitam |
manthānavalayodgārair gopīnāṃ janitasvanam //
kākapakṣadharair bālair gopālaiḥ krīḍitālayam
Note: k: After 26ab, D6,T2.4,G,M ins.: :kdārakair dārikābhiś ca parasparasamākulam |
sārgaladvāragovāṭaṃ madhye gosthānasaṃkulam
sarpiṣā pacyamānena surabhīkṛtamārutam //
nīlapītāmbarābhiś ca taruṇībhiḥ samantataḥ
vanyapuṣpāvataṃsābhir gopakanyābhir āvṛtam //
Note: k: After 27, D2.5 ins.: :k
sīmantamadhurālāpāḥ smitabhrūlalitekṣaṇāḥ |
sītkārabhrūvilāsaiś ca cetobuddhimanoharāḥ |
sarvās tāś candravadanā gopanāryaḥ suśobhanāḥ ||
tāsāṃ nūpuraśabdena mekhalānāṃ svanena ca |
svanantīnāṃ ca śabdena mayūrā nanṛtus tadā |
śirasā dhṛtakumbhābhir baddhair udgrathitāmbaraiḥ
yamunātīramārgeṇa jalahārībhir āvṛtam //
Note: k: D6,T1.2,G ins. after 28; T4,M1-3 after 28ab: :k
takravikrayayuktābhir dadhisarpiḥkrayeṣu ca |
sa tatra praviśan hṛṣṭo govrajaṃ gopanāditam
pratyudgato gopavṛddhaiḥ strībhir vṛddhābhir eva ca
niveśaṃ rocayāmāsa parivarte sukhāśraye //
sā yatra rohiṇī devī vasudevasukhāvahā
tatra taṃ bālasūryābhaṃ kṛṣṇaṃ gūḍhaṃ nyaveśayat //
Note: k: After 30, D6,S ins.: :k
vasudevaprayuktaś ca tayor gargo mahātapāḥ |
akaroj jātakarmādyāḥ kriyāḥ sarvā yathākramam |
brāhmaṇebhyo dhanaṃ dattvā bhojanaṃ ca yathākramam |
gopāś caivotsavaṃ cakrur gobhyo viprebhya eva ca |
Note: h: HV (CE) ch. 50, transliterated and collated with ViP and BrP by Utz Podzeit, extracted from the collation and edited by Peter Schreiner; version of March 4, 2002. Not yet proof-read. :h
tatra tasyāsataḥ kālaḥ sumahān atyavartata
govraje nandagopasya ballavatvaṃ prakurvataḥ //
Note: k: After 1, B2 ins.: :k
(gargaś ca) [gargo] gopakule tatra vasudevapracoditaḥ |
pracchanna eva gopānāṃ saṃskārān akarot tayoḥ |
dārakau kṛtanāmānau vavṛdhāte sukhaṃ ca tau
jyeṣṭhaḥ saṃkarṣaṇo nāma yavīyān kṛṣṇa eva tu //
meghakṛṣṇas tu kṛṣṇo 'bhūd dehāntaragato hariḥ
vyavardhata gavāṃ madhye sāgarasya ivāmbudaḥ //
Note: k: After 3, D6, S (except G4) ins.: :k
vistareṇātha vakṣyāmi bālasya caritaṃ mahat |
avadhānaparo bhūtvā śṛṇu rājan yad icchasi ||
sa tatra yogam āsthāya dānavāṃś cāvadhīt kila ||
kaścid danoḥ suto vīraḥ kṛṣṇasya vadhakāṅkṣayā |
nandasya priyatām āyāc chākaṭaṃ vapur udvahan |
śakaṭasya tv adhaḥ suptaṃ kadācit putragṛddhinī
yaśodā taṃ samutsṛjya jagāma yamunāṃ nadīm //
śiśulīlāṃ tataḥ kurvan svahastacaraṇau kṣipan
Note: k: D6,T,G,M1.2.4 ins. after 5ab; M3 after 6ab: :kaṅguṣṭham āsye nikṣipya pādābhyāṃ paricikṣipan |
hāsyaṃ kurvañ śiśuḥ kṛṣṇo netrābhyāṃ parivibhraman ||
karaṃ kareṇa saṃpīḍya pādaṃ pādena pīḍayan |
anekābhiḥ sa līlābhir lokāṃs tadgatamānasān |
kalmaṣaṃ kṣālayan viṣṇus tadgatāsaktacetasām |
ruroda madhuraṃ kṛṣṇaḥ pādāv ūrdhvaṃ prasārayan //
sa tatraikena pādena śakaṭaṃ paryavartayat
Note: k: M3 ins. *631. D6,T,G,M1.2.4 ins. after 6ab: M3 cont. after *631: :kañjanena parikṣiptaṃ mukham unnamayan hariḥ |
nyubjaṃ payodharākāṅkṣī cakāra ca ruroda ca //
etasminn antare prāptā yaśodā śīghragāminī
snātā prasnavadigdhāṅgī baddhavatseva saurabhī //
sā dadarśa viparyastaṃ śakaṭaṃ vāyunā vinā
hāheti kṛtvā tvaritā dārakaṃ jagṛhe tadā //
na sā bubodha tat tena śakaṭaṃ parivartitam
svasti me dārakāyeti prītyā bhītā ca sābhavat //
kiṃ nu vakṣyati te putra pitā paramakopanaḥ
tvayy adhaḥ śakaṭe supte śakaṭe ca viloḍite //
kiṃ me snānena duḥsnānaṃ kiṃ ca me gamane nadīm
paryaste śakaṭe putra yā tvā paśyāmy apāvṛtam //
etasminn antare gobhir ājagāma vanecaraḥ
kāṣāye vāsasī bibhran nandagopo vrajāntikam //
sa dadarśa viparyastaṃ bhinnabhāṇḍaghaṭīghaṭam
apāstadhūrvibhagnākṣaṃ śakaṭaṃ cakramāli vai //
bhītas tvaritam āgamya sahasā sāśrulocanaḥ
api me svasti putrāyety asakṛd vacanaṃ vadan //
pibantaṃ stanam ālakṣya putraṃ svastho 'bravīt punaḥ
vṛṣayuddhaṃ vinā kena paryastaṃ śakaṭaṃ mama //
pratyuvāca yaśodā taṃ bhītā gadgadabhāṣiṇī
na vijānāmy ahaṃ kena śakaṭaṃ pātitaṃ bhuvi //
ahaṃ gatā nadīm ārya cailaprakṣālanārthinī
āgatā ca viparyastam apaśyaṃ śakaṭaṃ bhuvi //
tayoḥ kathayator evam abruvaṃs tatra dārakāḥ
anena śiśunā yānam etat pādena pātitam
asmābhiḥ saṃpatadbhis tu dṛṣṭam etad yadṛcchayā //
Note: k: After 18, K3,V2,Dn,Ds2,D2.4.5,(marg.)T2 ins.: :k
nandagopas tu tac chrutvā vismayaṃ paramaṃ yayau |
prahṛṣṭaś caiva bhītaś ca kim etad iti cintayan |
na ca te śraddadhur gopāḥ sarve mānuṣabuddhayaḥ |
āścaryam iti te sarve vismayotphullalocanāḥ
svasthāne śakaṭaṃ caiva cakrabandham akārayan //
Note: k: After 19, D6,S,G ins.: :k
nando 'ṅkam enam āropya bhūreṇuṃ parigṛhya ca |
pradakṣiṇaṃ śiraḥ kurvan mantram etaj jajāpa ha |
viṣṇus te pūrvataḥ pātu rudro rakṣatu dakṣiṇam |
brahmā ca paścimaṃ pāyāt skando rakṣatv athottaram |
upariṣṭāt tathā sūryaḥ pāyāc cādhaś ca vāsukiḥ |
pāyāc ca tvām atho vatsa śiṣṭāḥ kāṣṭhāḥ samīraṇaḥ |
svastiṃ karotu bhagavān pinākī vṛṣabhadhvajaḥ |
gāvo rakṣantu sarvatra bhūmiḥ pātu sadāśivaḥ |
evam uccārya nandas tu kṛṣṇaṃ pasparśa sarvaśaḥ |
sa eva mantro bālānāṃ rakṣāyai parikīrtitaḥ |
Note: k: K1.2,Ñ,V,B,D1-5,T3 ins. after the addl. colophon; K3.4,Ñ1,Dn,Ds after 19; D6,T1.2.4,G,M4 cont. after *634: :k
kasyacit tv atha kālasya sakunīveṣadhāriṇī |
dhātrī kaṃsasya bhojasya pūtaneti pariśrutā
Note: k: After 20ab, K2,Ñ2.3,V,B,Dn,Ds,D4-6,T,G,M4 ins.: :kpūtanā nāma śakunī thorā prāṇabhayaṃkarī |
ājagāmārdharātre vai pakṣau krodhād vidhunvatī |
Note: k: While D2 ins. after 20ab: :ktasmai stanaṃ durjaravīryam ulbaṇaṃ |
ghorāṅkam ādāya śiśor dadāv atha |
gāḍhaṃ karābhyāṃ bhagavān prapīḍya |
prāṇaiḥ samaṃ roṣasamanvito 'pibat ||
sā muñca muñca bālam iti prabhāṣiṇī |
niṣpīḍyamānākhilajīvamarmaṇi |
vivṛtya netre caraṇau bhujau muhur |
viklinnagātrā kṣipatī ruroda ha ||
tasyāḥ svanenātigabhīraraṃhasā |
sādrir mahī dyauś ca cacāla sagrahā |
rasā diśaś ca pratinedire janāḥ |
petuḥ kṣitau vajranipātaśaṅkayā ||
niśācarītthaṃ vyathitastanā vyasur |
vistārya keśāṃś caraṇau bhujāv api |
prasārya goṣṭhe nijarūpam āśritā |
vajrāhato vṛtra ivāpatan nṛpa ||
patamāno 'pi taddehas trigavyūtyantaradrumān |
cūrṇayām āsa rājendra mahad āsīt tad adbhutam ||
īṣāmātrogradaṃṣṭrāsyaṃ girikandaranāsikam |
gaṇḍaśailastanaṃ raudraṃ prakīrṇāruṇamūrdhajam |
andhakūpagabhīrākṣaṃ pulinārohabhīṣaṇam |
baddhasetubhujorvaṅghri śūnyatoyahradodaram |
bālaṃ ca tasyā urasi krīḍantam akutobhayam |
gopyas tūrṇaṃ samabhyetya jagṛhur jātasaṃbhramāḥ ||
yaśodārohiṇībhyāṃ tāḥ samaṃ bālasya sarvataḥ |
rakṣām vidadhire samyag gopucchabhramaṇādibhiḥ ||
gomūtreṇa snāpayitvā punar gorajasārbhakam |
rakṣāṃ cakruś ca śakṛtā dvādaśāṅgeṣu nāmabhiḥ |
tato 'rdharātrasamaye śakuniḥ pratyadṛśyata //
vyāghragambhīranirghoṣā vyāharantī punaḥ punaḥ
nililye śakaṭākṣe sā prasnavotpīḍavarṣiṇī //
dadau stanaṃ ca kṛṣṇāya tatra suptajane niśi
tasyāḥ stanaṃ papau kṛṣṇaḥ prāṇaiḥ saha nanāda ca //
Note: k: D6,T1.2,G,M ins. after 22cd; T3 after 22: :k
stanyaṃ tadviṣasaṃmiśraṃ rasyam āsīj jagadguroḥ |
patantīṃ tāṃ tu saṃdṛśya śakunīṃ bhayaviklavām |
prayāṇe śīghracapalāṃ vāśamānāṃ ca visvaram |
pādāṅguṣṭena tāṃ kṛṣṇaś cakrākrāntām akārayat |
cakrākrāntā tu śakunī papāta ca mamāra ca |
nanāda ca mahānādaṃ punaḥ punar asau hariḥ |
tena śabdena vitrastās tato bubudhire janāḥ
sa nandagopo gopāś ca yaśodā ca suviklavā //
te tām apaśyan patitāṃ visaṃjñāṃ vipayodharām
śakuniṃ nihatāṃ bhūmau vajreṇeva vidāritām //
idaṃ kiṃ nv iti saṃtrastāḥ kasyedaṃ karma ceti ca
nandagopaṃ puraskṛtya gopās taṃ paryavārayan //
Note: k: After 25, N (except Ś1, Ñ1),S (except M1-3) ins.: :k
nādhyagacchanta ca tadā hetuṃ tatra kadācana |
āścaryam āścaryam iti bruvanto 'nuyayur gṛhān |
gateṣu teṣu gopeṣu vismiteṣu yathāgṛham
yaśodāṃ nandagopas tu papracchāgatasaṃbhramaḥ //
ko 'yaṃ vidhir na jānāmi vismayo me mahān ayam
putrasya me bhayaṃ bhīru bhīrutvaṃ samupāgatam //
yaśodā tv abravīd bhītā nārya jānāmi kiṃ nv idam
dārakeṇa sahānena suptā śabdena bodhitā //
yaśodāyām ajānantyāṃ nandagopaḥ sabāndhavaḥ
kaṃsād bhayaṃ cakārograṃ vismayaṃ ca jagāma ha //
Note: h: HV (CE) ch. 51, transliterated and collated with ViP and BrP by Utz Podzeit, extracted from the collation and edited by Peter Schreiner. version March 4, 2002. Not yet proof-read. :h
kāle gacchati saumyau tau dārakau kṛtanāmakau
Note: k: D6,T2-4,G1.2.4.5,M3.4 ins. after 1ab; M2 after 10ab: :kpañca saṃvatsarān prāptau śobhayānau vrajaṃ muhuḥ |
kṛṣṇasaṃkarṣaṇau cobhau riṅginau samapadyatām //
tāv anyonyagatau bālau bālyād evaikatāṃ gatau
ekamantradharau kāntau bālacandrārkavarcasau //
ekanirmāṇaniryuktāv ekaśayyāsanāśanau
ekaveṣadharāv ekaṃ puṣyamāṇau śiśuvratam //
ekakāryāntaragatāv ekadehau dvidhā kṛtau
ekacaryau mahāvīryāv ekasya śiśutāṃ gatau //
ekapramāṇau lokānāṃ devavṛttāntamānuṣau
kṛtsnasya jagato gopau saṃvṛttau gopadārakau //
anyonyavyatiṣaktābhiḥ krīḍābhir abhiśobhitau
anyonyakiraṇagrastau candrasūryāv ivāmbare //
visarpantau tu sarvatra sarpabhogabhujāv ubhau
rejatuḥ pāṃśudigdhāṅgau dṛptau kalabhakāv iva //
kvacid bhasmapradigdhāṅgau karīṣaprokṣitau kvacit
tau tatra paridhāvetāṃ kumārāv iva pāvakī //
kvacij jānubhir uddhṛṣṭaiḥ sarpamāṇau virejatuḥ
krīḍantau vatsaśālāsu śakṛddigdhāṅgamūrdhajau //
śuśubhāte śriyā juṣṭāv ānandajananau pituḥ
janaṃ ca vipra kurvāṇau hasantau ca kvacit kvacit //
tau bālakau lalitakau mūrdhajavyākulekṣaṇau
rejatuś candravadanau dārakau sukumārakau //
Note: k: After 11, D6,T1,G2-5,M4 ins.: :k
atiprasaktau ghoṣeṣu ghoṣam āpūrya dārakau |
atiprasaktau tau dṛṣṭvā sarvavrajavicāriṇau
nāśaknuvad vārayitum nandagopaḥ sudurmadau //
tato yaśodā saṃkruddhā kṛṣṇaṃ kamalalocanam
Note: k: After 13ab, D6,S,G(ed.) ins.: :kuvāca śiśurūpeṇa carantaṃ jagataḥ prabhum |
ehi vatsa piba stanyaṃ durvoḍhuṃ mama saṃprati ||
etāvantam itaḥ kālaṃ kvā gato 'si gṛhād bahiḥ |
ity ādāya kare putraṃ gṛhān nirvāsya sā ruṣā |
ānāyya śakaṭīmūlaṃ bhartsayantī punaḥ punaḥ //
dāmnā caivodare baddhvā pratyabandhad udūkhale
yadi śaknoṣi gaccheti tam uktvā karma sākarot
vyagrāyām tu yaśodāyām nirjagāma tato 'ṅgaṇāt //
śiśulīlāṃ tataḥ kurvan kṛṣṇo vismāpayan vrajam
so 'ṅgaṇān niḥsṛtaḥ kṛṣṇaḥ karṣamāṇa udūkhalam //
sa yamābhyām pravṛddhābhyām arjunābhyāṃ caran vane
niścakrāma śiśur madhyāt karṣamāṇa udūkhalam //
tat tasya karṣato baddham tiryag gatam udūkhalam
lagnaṃ tābhyāṃ samūlābhyām arjunābhyāṃ cakarṣa ha //
tāv arjunau kṛṣyamāṇau tena bālena raṃhasā
samūlaviṭapau bhagnau sa tu madhye jahāsa vai //
nidarśanārthaṃ gopānāṃ divyaṃ svabalam āsthitaḥ
tad dāma tasya bālasya prabhāvād abhavad dṛḍham //
yamunātīramārgasthā gopyas taṃ dadṛśuḥ śiśum
krandantyo vismayantyaś ca yaśodānikaṭaṃ yayuḥ //
tās tu saṃbhrāntavadanā yaśodām ūcur aṅganāḥ
ehy āgaccha yaśodeti saṃbhrame kiṃ vilambase //
yau tāv arjunavṛkṣau tu vraje satyopayācitau
Note: k: For 22cd, Ś1,K1 subst.: :ktāv etau tava putrasya patitāv upari drumau |
putrasyopari tāv etau patitau te mahīruhau //
dṛḍhena dāmnā tatraiva baddho vatsa ivodare
jahāsa madhye vṛkṣābhyāṃ tava putraḥ sa bālakaḥ //
Note: k: M1.3 subst. for 23cd; M2 ins. after 23ab: :k
prahasann eva vṛkṣābhyāṃ madhye krīḍann ivāṅgaṇe |
uttiṣṭha gaccha durmedhe mūḍhe paṇḍitamānini
putram ānaya jīvantuṃ muktaṃ mṛtyumukhād iva //
sā bhītā sahasotthāya hāhākāraṃ prakurvatī
taṃ deśam agamad yatra patitau tau mahādrumau //
dadarśa tābhyāṃ sā madhye drumābhyām ātmajaṃ śiśum
dāmnā nibaddham udare karṣamāṇam udūkhalam //
sagopīgopavṛddhaś ca sayuvā ca vrajas tadā
paryagacchat tato draṣṭuṃ gopeṣu mahad adbhutam //
jajalpus te yathākāmaṃ gopā vanavicāriṇaḥ
Note: k: After 28ab, D6,S ins.: :kjajalpur jātasaṃbhrāntā sarve vismitacetasaḥ |
kenemau pātitau vṛkṣau ghoṣasyaivāgrapādapau //
vinā vātaṃ vinā varṣaṃ vidyutprapatanaṃ vinā
vinā hastikṛtaṃ doṣam kenemau pātitau drumau //
aho bata na śobhetāṃ vimūlāv arjunāv imau
imau nipatitau bhūmau vitoyau jaladāv iva //
Note: k: After 30, B2 Poona, Bom. and Cal. eds. and G(ed.) ins.: :k
yadīmau ghoṣaracitau ghoṣakalyāṇakāriṇau |
nandagopa prasannau te drumāv evaṃgatāv api
yatra te dārako mukto vimūlābhyām avikṣataḥ //
autpātikam idaṃ ghoṣe tṛtīyaṃ vartate tv iha
pūtanāyā nipātaś ca drumayoḥ śakaṭasya ca //
asmin sthāne niveśo 'yaṃ ghoṣasyāsya na vidyate
utpātā hy atra dṛśyante kathayanto naśobhanam //
nandagopas tu sahasā muktvā kṛṣṇam udūkhalāt
niveśya cāṅke suciraṃ mṛtaṃ punar ivāgatam //
Note: k: K1.4,Ñ2,V2,B2.3,Dn,Ds,D2.3,T3,M4,G(ed.) ins. after 34: D5 after the repetition of 34cd: :k
nātṛpyat prekṣamāṇo vai kṛṣṇaṃ kamalalocanam |
tato yaśodāṃ garhan vai nandagopo viveśa ha
sa ca gopajanaḥ sarvo ghoṣam eva jagāma ha //
sa ca tenaiva nāmnā tu kṛṣṇo vai dāmabandhanāt
Note: k: For 36ab, D6,S(except T3.4) subst.: :kyena dāmnā nibaddho 'sāv udare sudṛḍhaṃ vraje |
ghoṣe dāmodara iti gopībhiḥ parigīyate //
etad āścaryabhūtaṃ hi bālasyāsīd viceṣṭitam
kṛṣṇasya bharataśreṣṭha ghoṣe nivasatas tadā //
Note: h: HV (CE) ch. 52, transliterated and collated with ViP and BrP by Utz Podzeit, extracted from the collation and edited by Peter Schreiner. version March 4, 2002. Not yet proof-read. :h
evaṃ tau bālyam uttīrṇau kṛṣṇasaṃkarṣalṇāvubhau
tasminn eva vrajasthāne saptavarṣau babhūvatuḥ //
nīlapītāmbaradharau pītaśvetānulepanau
babhūvatur vatsapālau kākapakṣadharāv ubhau //
parṇavādyaṃ śrutisukhaṃ vādayantau varānanau
Note: k: D6,T2,G,M1-3 ins. after 3ab; T1,M4,G(ed.) after the repetition of 3ab: :kgopavīthyāṃ sumadhuraṃ gāyantau kāmarūpiṇau |
śuśubhāte vanagatau triśīrṣāv iva pannagau //
mayūrāṅgadabāhū tau ballavāpīḍadhāriṇau
vanamālākṛtoraskau drumapotāv ivodgatau //
aravindakṛtāpīḍau rajjuyajñopavītinau
saśikyatumbakarakau gopaveṇaupravādakau //
Note: k: After 5, D6,S,G(ed.) ins.: :k
parṇavādyasamāyuktau dadhyodanakarau kṛtī |
kiṃkiṇījālasaṃbaddhakaṭideśavibhūṣitau ||
kakṣakūṭasamālambiśikyasthadhṛtapāyasau |
kālayantau ca daṇḍena vatsān vatsau diśaṃ prati ||
gulmeṣu madhumādhvīkaṃ mārgamāṇāvitas tataḥ |
khādantau vanyamūlāni pibantau madhumākṣikam ||
dadatau madhumūlāni dārakebhyaḥ samantataḥ |
khādantau khādayantau ca mūlāni ca phalāni ca ||
tindukaṃ bhakṣayantu ca gopair āpatya bhūtale |
kīlair āpatya vṛkṣebhyaḥ khādayantu phalāni ca |
kvacid dhasantāv anyonyaṃ krīḍamānau kvacit kvacit
Note: k: After 6ab, D6,S ins.: :kdadhyodanaṃ prabhuñjānau kvacit kakṣavilambitam |
kvacic ca pānasaṃbhrāntau kvacit pāyasamoditau |
kvacid vṛkṣeṣu viśrāntau sthalīṣv iva yathāsukham |
parṇaśayyāsu saṃsuptau kvacin nidrāntaraiṣiṇau //
Note: k: After 6 D6,S (außer T3,) ins.: :k
vatsān anu yathākāmaṃ carantau vatsapālakau |
vatsapucchān samādhūya vikṣiptantau pṛthak pṛthak |
evaṃ vatsān pālayantau śobhayantau mahāvanam
Note: k: For 7ab Ś1 subst.: :kevaṃ tu vatsapālau tau śobhayām āsatur vanam |
cañcūryantau ramantau sma kiśorāv iva cañcalau //
Note: k: After 7, Db,T,G1-3.5,M ins.: :k
gāyantu ca kvacid geyān susvaraṃ madhurasvaram |
utkarṇaṃ mṛgasaṃghaṃ ca kurvantau gītanisvanaiḥ ||
gajān paravaśān geyaiḥ kurvantau ca gahāvane |
lokam itthaṃ carantau ca ramayantau ca ceṣṭitaiḥ |
atha dāmodaraḥ śrīmān saṃkarṣaṇam uvāca ha
ārya nāsmin vane śakyaṃ gopālaiḥ saha krīḍitum //
avagītam idaṃ sarvam āvābhyāṃ bhuktabhojanam
prakṣīṇatṛṇakāṣṭhaṃ ca gopair mathitapādapam //
gahanānīha yāny āsan kānanāni vanāni ca
tāny ākāśanikāśāni dṛśyante 'dya yathāsukham //
govāteṣv api ye vṛkṣāḥ parivṛttārgaleṣu ca
sarve goṣṭhāgniṣu gatāḥ kṣayam akṣayavarcasaḥ //
saṃnikṛṣṭāni yāny āsan kāṣṭhāni ca tṛṇāni ca
tāni dūrāvakṛṣṭāni mārgitavyāni bhūmiṣu //
araṇyam idam alpodam alpakakṣaṃ nirāśrayam
anveṣitavyaviśrāmaṃ dāruṇaṃ viraladrumam
akarmaṇyeṣu vṛkṣeṣu sthitaviprasthitadvijam //
Note: k: K1.2,Ñ2(last two first time),V2,B,Dn,Ds,D2.3,T1,G4 ins. after 13; K2(second time).3,Ñ1.2(second time) after 16ab; Ñ3,V1 after 14ab; V3,D1.4.6, T2,G1-3.5,M4 cont. after *656: :k
saṃvāsasyāsya mahato janenotsāditadrumam |
nirānandaṃ nirāsvādaṃ niṣprayojanam ārutam
nirvihaṃgam idaṃ śūnyaṃ nirvyañjanam ivāśanam //
vikrīyamāṇaiḥ kaṣṭhaiś ca śākaiś ca vanasaṃbhavaiḥ
utsannasaṃcayatṛṇo ghoṣo 'yaṃ nagarāyate //
śailānāṃ bhūṣaṇaṃ ghoṣo ghoṣāṇāṃ bhūṣaṇaṃ vanam
Note: k: After 16ab, K2(second time).3,Ñ1.2(second time) ins. *655, while K1,Ñ3,V,B,D,T2,G,M4 ins. after 16ab; K2,Ñ2 cont. after *655; T3.4 after 28ab: :kvanānāṃ bhūṣaṇaṃ gāvas tāś cāsmākaṃ parā gatiḥ |
tasmād anyad vanaṃ yāmaḥ pratyagravayasendhanam //
icchanty anupabhuktāni bhoktuṃ gāvas tṛṇāni ca
tasmād vanaṃ navatṛṇaṃ gacchantu dhanino vrajāḥ //
na dvārabandhāvaraṇā na gṛhakṣetriṇas tathā
praśastā vai vrajā loke yathā vai cakracāriṇaḥ //
śakṛnmūtreṣu teṣv eva jātaṃ kṣārarasāyanam
na tṛṇaṃ bhuñjate gāvo nāpi tatpayaso hitam //
sthalīprāyāsu ramyāsu navāsu vanarājiṣu
carāmaḥ sahitā gobhiḥ kṣipraṃ saṃvāhyatāṃ vrajaḥ //
śrūyate hi vanaṃ ramyaṃ paryāptatṛṇasaṃstaram
nāmnā vṛndāvanaṃ nāma svāduvṛkṣaphalodakam //
ajhillikaṇṭakavanaṃ sarvair vanaguṇair yutam
kadambapādapaprāyaṃ yamunātīrasaṃśritam //
snigdhaśītānilavanaṃ sarvartunilayaṃ śubham
gopīnāṃ sukhasaṃcāraṃ cārucitravanāntaram //
tasya govardhano nāma nātidūre girir mahān
bhrājate dīrghaśikharo nandanasyeva mandaraḥ //
madhye cāsya mahāśākho nyagrodho yojanocchritaḥ
bhāṇḍīro nāma śuśubhe nīlamegha ivāmbare //
madhyena cāsya kālindī sīmantamiva kurvatī
prayātā nandanasyeva nalinī saritāṃ varā //
tatra govardhanaṃ caiva bhāṇḍīraṃ ca vanaspatim
kālindīṃ ca nadīṃ ramyāṃ drakṣyāvaś carataḥ sukham //
Note: k: For 27cd, Ś1 subst.: :k
sukhaṃ carantaṃ drakṣyāvaḥ kālindīṃ ca nadīṃ śubhām |
tatrāyaṃ vasatāṃ ghoṣas tyajyatāṃ nirguṇaṃ vanam
saṃvāhayāma bhadraṃ te kiṃcid utpādya kāraṇam //
evaṃ kathayatas tasya vāsudevasya dhīmataḥ
prādurbabhūvuḥ śataśo raktamāṃsavasāśanāḥ //
ghorāś cintayatas tasya svatanūruhajās tadā
viniṣpetur bhayakarāḥ sarvataḥ śataśo vṛkāḥ //
Note: k: Ś1,K3,V2,(marg.)B1,Dn,Ds2,D5 ins. after 30; D4 after 28ab: :k
niṣpatanti sma bahavo vrajasyotsādanāya vai |
vṛkān niṣpatitān dṛṣṭvā goṣu vatseṣv atho nṛṣu
gopīṣu ca yathākāmaṃ vraje trāso 'bhavan mahān //
te vṛkāḥ pancabaddhāś ca daśabaddhās tathāpare
triṃśadviṃśatibaddhāś ca śatabaddhās tathāpare //
Note: k: After 32, M1-3 ins.: :k
pañcāśatṣaṣṭibaddhāś ca catvāriṃśat tathaiva ca |
niścerus tasya gātrād dhi śrīvatsakṛtalakṣaṇāḥ
kṛṣṇasya kṛṣṇavadanā gopānāṃ bhayavardhanāḥ //
bhakṣayadbhiś ca tair vatsāṃs trāsayadbhiś ca govrajān
niśi bālān haradbhiś ca vṛkair utsādyate vrajaḥ //
na vanaṃ śakyate gantuṃ na gāś ca parirakṣitum
na vanāt kiṃcid āhartuṃ na ca vā tarituṃ nadīm //
Note: k: After 35, all Mss. (except Ś1,M1-3) ins.: :k
trastā hy udvignamanaso gatās tasmin vane 'vasan |
evaṃ vṛkair udīrṇais tu vyāghratilyaparākramaiḥ
vrajo niṣpandaceṣṭaḥ sa ekasthānacaraḥ kṛtaḥ //
Note: h: HV (CE) ch. 53, transliterated and collated with ViP and BrP by Utz Podzeit, extracted from the collation and edited by Peter Schreiner. version March 4, 2002. Not yet proof-read. :h
ītiṃ vṛkānāṃ dṛṣṭvā tu vardhamānāṃ durāsadām
sastrīpuṃso 'tha ghoṣo vai samasto 'mantrayat tadā //
sthāneneha na naḥ kāryaṃ vrajāmo 'nyan mahad vanam
Note: k: After 2ab, D6,T2,G1.3-5,M4,G(ed.) ins.: :kyan nirbhayaṃ sukhakaraṃ sukhasaṃcāramārutam |
yac chivaṃ ca sukhāḍhyaṃ ca gavāṃ caiva sukhāvaham //
adyaiva kiṃ cireṇa sma vrajāmaḥ saha godhanaiḥ
yāvad vṛkair vadhaṃ ghoraṃ na naḥ sarvo vrajo vrajet //
eṣāṃ dhūmrāruṇāṅgānāṃ daṃṣṭriṇāṃ mukhakarṣiṇām
vṛkāṇāṃ kṛṣṇavaktrāṇāṃ bibhīmo niśi garjatām //
mama putro mama bhrātā mama vatso 'tha gaur mama
vṛkair vyāpāditety evaṃ krandanti sma gṛhe gṛhe //
tāsāṃ ruditaśabdena gavāṃ hambhāraveṇa ca
vrajasyotthāpanaṃ cakrur ghoṣavṛddhāḥ samāgatāḥ //
teṣāṃ matam athājñāya gantuṃ vṛndāvanaṃ prati
vrajasya ca niveśāya gavāṃ caiva sukhāya ca //
vṛndāvananiveśāya jñātvā tān kṛtaniścayān
nandagopo bṛhadvākyaṃ bṛhaspatir ivādade //
adyaiva niścayaprāptir yadi gantavyam eva naḥ
śīghram ājñāpyatāṃ ghoṣaḥ sajjībhavata māciram //
tato 'vaghuṣyata tadā ghoṣe tatprākṛtair naraiḥ
śīghram gāvaḥ prakālyantāṃ yujyantāṃ śakaṭāni ca //
vatsayūthāni kālyantāṃ bhāṇd.aṃ samadhiropayatām
vṛndāvanam itaḥ sthānān niveśāya ca gamyatām //
tac chrutvā nandagopasya vacanaṃ sādhu bhāṣitam
Note: k: For 12ab, G4 subst.: :ktac chrutvā vacanaṃ tasya nandagopasya bhāṣitam |
udatiṣṭhad vrajaḥ sarvaḥ śīghraṃ gamanalālasaḥ //
prayāhy uttiṣṭha gacchāmaḥ kiṃ śeṣe yāhi yojaya
uttiṣṭhati vraje tasmin gopakolāhalo hy abhūt //
uttiṣṭhamānaḥ śuśubhe śakaṭīsaṃkaṭas tu saḥ
vyāghraghoṣamahāghoṣo ghoṣaḥ sāgaraghoṣavān //
gopīnāṃ gargarībhiś ca mūrdhni cottaṃsitair ghaṭaiḥ
niṣpapāta vrajāt paṅktis tārāpaṅktir ivāmbarāt //
nīlapītāruṇais tāsāṃ vastrair udgrathitocchritaiḥ
śakracāpāyate paṅktir gopīnāṃ mārgagāminī //
dāmanīdāmabhāraiś ca kecit kāyāvalambibhiḥ
gopā mārgagatā bhānti sāvarohā iva drumāḥ //
sa vrajo vrajatā bhāti śakaṭaughena bhāsvatā
oghaiḥ pavanavikṣiptair niṣpatadbhir ivārṇavaḥ //
kṣaṇena tadvrajasthānam iriṇaṃ samapadyata
dravyāvayanirdhūtaṃ kīrṇaṃ vāyasamaṇḍalaiḥ //
tataḥ krameṇa ghoṣaḥ sa prāpto vṛndāvanaṃ vanam
niveśaṃ vipulaṃ cakre niveśāya gavāṃ hitam //
śakaṭāvartaparyantaṃ candrārdhākārasaṃsthitam
madhye yojanavistāraṃ tāvad dviguṇam āyatam //
kaṇṭakībhiḥ pravṛddhābhis tathā kaṇṭakitair drumaiḥ
nikhātocchritaśākhāgrair abhiguptaṃ samantataḥ //
manthair āropyamānaiś ca manthabandhānukarṣaṇaiḥ
adbhiḥ prakṣālyamānābhir gargarībhis tatas tataḥ //
kilair āropyamāṇaiś ca dāmanīpāśapāśitaiḥ
stambhanībhir dhṛtaiś cāpi śakaṭaiḥ parivartitaiḥ //
niyogapāśair āsaktair gargarīstambhamūrdhasu
chādanārthaṃ prakīrṇaiś ca kaṭais tṛṇagṛhais tathā //
śākhāviṭaṅkair vṛkṣāṇāṃ kriyamāṇair itas tataḥ
śodhamānair gavāṃ sthānaiḥ sthāpyamānair udūkhalaiḥ //
prāṅmukhaiḥ sicyamānaiś ca saṃdīpyadbhiś ca pāvakaiḥ
savatsacarmāstaraṇaiḥ paryaṅkaiś cāvaropitaiḥ //
toyam uttārayantībhiḥ prokṣantībhiś ca tadvanam
śākhāś cākarṣamāṇābhir gopībhiś ca samantataḥ //
yuvabhiḥ sthaviraiś caiva gopair vyagrakarair bhṛśam
viśasadbhiḥ kuṭhāraiś ca kāṣṭhāny api tarūn api //
tad vrajasthānam adhikaṃ cakāśe kānanāvṛtam
ramyaṃ vananiveśaṃ vai svabhivṛṣṭyāmṛtopamam //
tās tu kāmadughā gāvaḥ sarvakālatṛṇaṃ vanam
vṛndāvanam anuprāptā nandanopamakānanam //
pūrvam eva tu kṛṣṇena gavāṃ satkārakāriṇā
śivena manasā dṛṣṭaṃ tadvanaṃ vanacāriṇā //
paścime tu tataḥ pakṣe gharmamāsi nirāmaye
varṣatīvāmṛtaṃ deve tṛṇaṃ tatravyavardhata //
na tatra vatsāḥ sīdanti na gāvo netare janāḥ
yatra tiṣṭhati lokānāṃ bhavāya madhusūdanaḥ //
tās tu gāvaḥ sa ghoṣaś ca sa ca saṃkarṣaṇo yuvā
kṛṣṇena vihitaṃ vāsaṃ tam adhyāsanta nirvṛtāḥ //
Note: k: D6,T,G ins. after 35; M4 after 34: :k
yatra tiṣṭhati deveśo devadevo janārdanaḥ |
na tatra prāṇināṃ duḥkhaṃ sa ca sarvasukhāvahaḥ |
Note: k: After the colophon, D3.6,S ins. a passage given in App I, No 11. (CE vol. 1, p. 799) :k
Note: h: HV (CE) ch. 54, transliterated and collated with ViP and BrP by Utz Podzeit, extracted from the collation and edited by Peter Schreiner. version March 4, 2002. Not yet proof-read. :h
tau tu vṛndāvanaṃ prāptau vasudevasutāv ubhau
ceratur vatsayūthāni cārayantau sunirvṛttau //
pūrṇas tu gharmasamayas tayos tatra vane sukham
krīḍatoḥ saha gopālair yamunāṃ cāvagāhatoḥ //
Note: k: After 2, D6,T1.2,G1-3.5,M ins.: :k
gate tasmin mahāgharme rajaḥpūrais tirohitaiḥ |
tataḥ prāvṛd anuprāptā manasaḥ kāmadīpanī
pravavarṣur mahāghorāḥ śakracāpāṅktitodarāḥ
babhūvādarśanaḥ sūryo bhūmiś cādarśayat tṛṇam //
patatā meghavātena navatoyānukarṣiṇā
saṃmārjitatalā bhūmir yauvanastheva lakṣyate //
navavarṣāvasiktāni śakragopakulāni ca
naṣṭadāvāgnidhūmāni vavāni pracakāśire //
nṛttavyāpārakālaś ca mayūrāṇāṃ kalāpinām
madaraktāḥ pravṛttāś ca kekāḥ paṭuravāḥ kṛtāḥ //
navaprāvṛṣi kāntānāṃ ṣaṭpadāhāradāyinām
yauvanasthaṃ kadambānāṃ navābhrair bhrājate vapuḥ //
hāsitaṃ kuṭajaiḥ phullaiḥ kadambair vāsitaṃ vanam
trāsitaṃ jaladair uṣṇaṃ toṣitā vasudhā jalaiḥ //
saṃtaptā bhāskarajalair abhitaptā devāgnibhiḥ
jalair balāhakotsṛṣṭair ucchvasantīva parvatāḥ //
mahāvātasamuddhūtaṃ mahāmeghagaṇārpitam
mahīmahārajaḥpūrais tulyam āpadyate nabhaḥ //
kvacit kadambahāsāḍhyaṃ silindhrābharaṇaṃ kvacit
saṃpradīptaṃ ivābhāti phullanīpadrumaṃ vanam //
aindreṇa payasā siktaṃ mārutena navīkṛtam
pārthivaṃ gandham āghrāya lokaḥ kṣubhitamānasaḥ //
dṛptasāraṅganinadair dardur avyāhṛtena ca
navaiś ca śikhivikruṣṭair ekavarṇā vasuṃdharā //
bhramattūrṇamahāvegā varṣaprāptamahārayāḥ
haryantas tīrajān vṛksān vistarāṃ yānti nimnagāḥ //
saṃtatāsāraniryatnāḥ klinnapatrottaracchadāḥ
na tyajanty agamāgrāṇi śrāntā iva patatriṇaḥ //
toyagambhīralambeṣu prasravatsu nadatsu ca
udareṣu navābhrāṇāṃ majjatīva divākaraḥ //
tanūruhair utpatitaiḥ salilotpīḍasaṃkulā
anveṣyamārgā vasudhā bhāti śāḍvalamālinī //
vajreṇevāvarugnānāṃ nagānāṃ nagaśālinām
srotobhiḥ parikṛttāni patanti śikharāṇi ca //
patatā meghavarṣeṇa yathānimnānusāriṇā
palvalodgīrṇaraktena pūryante vanarājayaḥ //
hastocchritamukhā vanyā meghanādānusāriṇaḥ
bhāntyātivṛṣṭyā mātaṅgā gāṃ gatā iva toyadāḥ //
prāvṛṭpravṛttiṃ saṃdṛśya dṛṣṭvā cāmbudharān ghanān
rauhiṇeyo mithaḥ kāle kṛṣṇaṃ vacanam abravīt //
paśya kṛṣṇa ghanān kṛṣṇān balākotpātabhūṣaṇān
gagane tava gātrāṇāṃ varṇacorān samutthitān //
Note: k: After 22, T3 ins.: :k
kāmināṃ hṛdayasyāśu nighnatas tān samantataḥ (sic) |
tava nidrākaraḥ kālas tava gātropamam nabhaḥ
tvam ivājñātavasatiṃ candro vasati vārṣikīm //
etan nīlotpalaśyāmaṃ nīlotpaladalaprabham
Note: k: After 24ab M2 ins.: :knīlotpaladale kāle bhāti vṛndāvanaṃ vanam |
saṃprāpte durdine kāle durdinaṃ bhāti vai nabhaḥ //
paśya kṛṣṇa jalodagraiḥ kṛṣṇair udgrathitair ghanaiḥ
govardhano yathā ramyo bhāti govardhano giriḥ //
patitenāmbhasā hy ete samantān madatarpitāḥ
bhrājante kṛṣṇasāraṅgāḥ kānaneṣu mudānvitāḥ //
etāny ambuprahṛṣṭāni haritāni mṛdūni ca
tṛṇāni śatapatrākṣa patrair gūhanti medinīm //
kṣarajjalānāṃ śailānāṃ vanānāṃ ca jalāgame
sasasyānāṃ ca sīmānāṃ na lakṣmīr vyatiricyate //
śīghravātasamuddhūtāḥ proṣitautsukyakāriṇaḥ
dāmodaroddāmaravāḥ prāgalbhyaṃ yānti toyadāḥ //
hare haryaśvacāpena trivarṇena trivikrama
vibāṇajyena dhanuṣā tavedaṃ madhyamaṃ padam //
nabhasya ca nabhaś cakṣur na bhāty eṣa nabhaścaraḥ
meghaiḥ śītātapakaro viraśmir iva raśmimān //
dyāvāpṛthivyoḥ saṃsargaḥ satataṃ vitataiḥ kṛtaḥ
avyavacchinnadhāraughaiḥ samudraughanibhair ghanaiḥ //
nīpārjunakadambānāṃ pṛthivyāṃ cābhivṛṣtayaḥ
gandhaiḥ kolāhalā vānti vātā madanadīpanāḥ //
saṃpravṛttamahāvarṣaṃ lambamānamahāmbudam
bhāty agādham aparyantaṃ sasāgaram ivāmbaram //
dhārānirmalanārācaṃ vidyut kavacanirmalam
śakracāpāyudhadharaṃ yuddhasajjam ivāmbaram //
śailānāṃ ca vanānāṃ ca drumāṇāṃ ca varānana
praticchannāni bhāsante śikharāṇi ghanair ghanaiḥ //
gajānīkair ivākīrṇaṃ salilodgāribhir ghanaiḥ
varṇasārūpyatāṃ yāti gaganaṃ sāgarasya vai //
samudroddhūtajanitā lolaśāḍvalakampinaḥ
śītāh sapṛṣatodgārāḥ karkaśā vānti mārutāḥ //
niśāsu suptacandrāsu muktatoyāsu toyadaiḥ
magnasūryasya nabhaso nābhibhānti diśo daśa //
Note: k: After 39, K,Ñ2.3,V,B,D(except D6),T1.3.4 ins.: :k
cetanaṃ puṣkaraṃ kośaiḥ kṣudhādhmātaiḥ samantataḥ |
na ghṛṇīnāṃ na ramyāṇāṃ vivekaṃ yānti kṛṣṭayaḥ |
Note: k: Ñ2 cont.: :k
saṃhatānāṃ dvirephānāṃ niveśaṃ yānti paṅkayaḥ |
gharmadoṣaparityaktaṃ meghatoyavibhūṣitam
paśya vṛndāvanaṃ kṛṣṇa vanaṃ caitrarathaṃ yathā //
evaṃ prāvṛṅgunān sarvāñ śrīmān kṛṣṇasya pūrvajaḥ
kathayann eva balavān vrajam eva jagāma ha //
tau rāmayantāv anyonyaṃ kṛṣṇasaṃkarṣaṇāv ubhau
tatkālaṃ jñātibhiḥ sārdhaṃ ceratus tau mahad vanam //
Note: k: After adhy. 54, D3.6,S ins. App12. :k
Note: h: HV (CE) ch. 55, transliterated and collated with ViP and BrP by Utz Podzeit, extracted and edited by Peter Schreiner. version March 4, 2002. Not yet proof-read. :h
kadācit tu tadā kṛṣṇo vinā saṃkarṣaṇaṃ gurum
cacāra tadvanavaraṃ kāmarūpī varānanaḥ //
kākapakṣadharaḥ śrīmāñ śyāmaḥ padmadalekṣaṇaḥ
śrīvatsenorasā yuktaḥ śaśāṅka iva lakṣmaṇā //
sāṅgadenāgrapādena paṅkajodbhinnavarcasā
sukumārābhitāmreṇa krāntavikrāntagāminā //
pīte prītikare nṝṇāṃ padmakiñjalkasaprabhe
sūkṣme vasāno vasane sasaṃdhya iva toyadaḥ //
vanyavyāpārayuktābhyāṃ vyagrābhyāṃ daṇḍarajjubhiḥ
bhujābhyāṃ sādhuvṛttābhyāṃ pūjitābhyāṃ divaukasaiḥ //
sadṛśaṃ puṇḍarīkasya gandhena kamalasya ca
rarāja tasya tadbālye ruciroṣṭhapuṭaṃ mukham //
śikhābhis tasya muktābhī rarāja mukhapaṅkajam
vṛttaṃ ṣaṭpadapaṅktībhir yathā syāt padmamaṇḍalam //
tasyārjunakadambāḍhyā nīpakandalamālinī
rarāja mālā śirasi nakṣatrāṇāṃ yathā divi //
sa tayā mālayā vīraḥ śuśubhe sarvapuṣpayā
meghakālāmbudaśyāmo nabhasya iva mūrtimān //
ekenāmalapatreṇa kaṇṭhasūtrāvalambinā
rarāja barhipatreṇa mandamārutakampinā //
kvacid gāyan kvacit krīḍaṃś cañcūryaṃś ca kvacit kvacit
parṇavādyaṃ śrutisukhaṃ vādayānaḥ kvacid vane //
gopaveṇuṃ sumadhuraṃ kāmāt tam api vādayan
prahlādanārthaṃ ca gavāṃ kvacid vanagato yuvā
gokule 'mbudharaśyāmaś cacāra dyutimān prabhuḥ //
Note: k: After 12, Ś1 ins.: :k
govardhanasya ca gireḥ parṇavādyaṃ śruteḥ sukham |
reme ca tatra ramyāsu citrāsu vanarājiṣu
mayūraravaghuṣṭāsu madanoddīpanīṣu ca
meghanādaprativyūhair nāditāsu samantataḥ //
śāḍvalacchannamārgāsu śilīndhrābharaṇāsu ca
kandalāmaladantīṣu sravantīṣu navaṃ jalam //
kesarāṇāṃ navair gandhair madaniḥśvasitopamaiḥ
abhīkṣṇaṃ niḥśvasantīṣu yoṣitsv iva samantataḥ //
sevyamāno navair vātair drumasaṃghātaniḥsṛtaiḥ
tāsu kṛṣṇo mudaṃ lebhe saumyāsu vanarājiṣu //
sa kadācid vane tasmin gobhiḥ saha parivrajan
dadarśa vipulodagraṃ śākhinaṃ śākhināṃ varam //
sthitaṃ dharaṇyāṃ meghābhaṃ nibiḍaṃ patrasaṃcayaiḥ
gaganārdhocchritākāraṃ pavanābhogakāriṇaṃ //
nīlacitrāṅgavarṇaiś ca sevitaṃ bahubhir dvijaiḥ
phalaiḥ pravālaiś ca ghanaṃ sendracāpaghanopamam //
bhavanākāraviṭapaṃ latāpuṣpasumaṇḍitam
viśālamūlāvatataṃ pavanāmbhodadhāriṇam //
ādhipatyam ivānyeṣāṃ tasya deśasya śākhinām
kurvāṇaṃ śubhakarmāṇaṃ tiro varṣantam avyayam //
nyagrodhaṃ parvatākāraṃ bhāṇḍīraṃ nāma nāmataḥ
dṛṣṭvā tatra matiṃ cakre nivāsāya divā prabhuḥ //
sa tatra vayasā tulyair vatsapālaiḥ sahānaghaḥ
reme vai divasaṃ kṛṣṇaḥ purā svargagato yathā //
Note: k: After 55.23, D2.6 S ins. a passage given in App13. :k
taṃ krīḍamāṇaṃ gopālāḥ kṛṣṇaṃ bhāṇḍīravāsinam
ramayanti sma bahavo vanyaiḥ krīḍanakais tadā //
anye sma parigāyanti gopā muditamānasāḥ
gopālāḥ kṛṣṇam evānye gāyanti sma ratipriyāḥ //
teṣāṃ sa gāyatām eva vādayāmāsa vīryavān
parṇavādyāntare veṇuṃ tumbīvīṇāṃ ca tatra ha //
kadācic cārayann eva gāḥ sa govṛṣabhekṣaṇaḥ
jagāma yamunātīraṃ latālaṃkṛtapādapam //
taraṃgāpāṅgakuṭilāṃ vārisparśasukhānilām
tāṃ ca padmotpalavatīṃ dadarśa yamunāṃ nadīm //
sutīrthāṃ svādusalilāṃ hradinīṃ vegagāminīm
toyavātoddhatair vegair avanāmitapādapām //
haṃsakāraṇḍavodghuṣṭāṃ sārasaiś ca vināditām
anyonyamithunaiś caiva sevitāṃ mithunecaraiḥ //
jalajaiḥ prāṇibhiḥ kīrṇāṃ jalajair bhūṣitāṃ guṇaiḥ
jalajaiḥ kusumaiś citrāṃ jalajair haritodakām //
prasthitasrotacaraṇāṃ pulinaśroṇimaṇḍalām
āvartanābhigambhīrāṃ padmalomānurañjitām //
hradaśātodarākrāntāṃ tritaraṃgavalīdharām
cakravākastanataṭāṃ tīrapārśvāyatānanām //
Note: k: After 33, Ds ins.: :k
mīnākṣicapalāṃ kāntāṃ kāntaśaivalamūrdhajām |
phenaprahṛṣṭadaśanāṃ prasannāṃ haṃsahāsinīm
rucirotpalapatrākṣīṃ natabhrūṃ jalajekṣaṇām //
hradadīrghalalāṭāntāṃ kāntāṃ śaivalamūrdhajām
dīrghasrotāyatabhujām ābhogaśravaṇāyatām //
kāraṇḍavākuṇḍalinīṃ śrīmatpaṅkajalocanām
kāśacāmīkaraṃ vāso vasānāṃ haṃsalakṣaṇām //
taṭajābharaṇopetāṃ mīnanirmalamakhalām
vāriplavaplavakṣaumāṃ sārasārāvanūpurām //
jhāṣanakrānuliptāṅgīṃ kūrmalakṣaṇaśobhinīm
nipānaśvāpadāpīḍāṃ nṛbhiḥ pītapayodharām
śvāpadocchiṣṭasalilām āśramasthānasaṃkulām //
Note: k: After 38, D3.6,S ins.: :k
siddhārādhyamahādeva+ +sikatāliṅgamaṇḍitām |
munimṛtkuṇḍikāpūra+ +samūdbhūtamahāravām (sic) |
siddhayoṣit kucasrasta+ +kuṅkumakṣodapiṅgalām |
sutīrthāṃ sarvapāpaghnīṃ nṛṇāṃ tadgatacetasām |
tāṃ samudrasya mahiṣīṃ vīkṣamāṇaḥ samantataḥ
cacāra ruciraṃ kṛṣṇo yamunām upaśobhayan //
tāṃ caran sa nadīṃ śreṣṭhāṃ dadarśa hradam uttamam
dīrghaṃ yojanavistāraṃ dustaraṃ tridaśair api //
gambhīram akṣobhyajalaṃ niṣkampam iva sāgaram
toyapaiḥ śvāpadais tyaktaṃ śūnyaṃ toyacaraiḥ khagaiḥ //
agādhenāmbhasā pūrṇaṃ meghapūrṇam ivāmbaram
duḥkhopasarpyaṃ tīreṣu sasarpair vipulair bilaiḥ //
viṣāraṇigatasyāgner dhūmena pariveṣṭitam //
upabhogaiḥ parityaktaṃ sadbhis triṣavaṇārthibhiḥ
ākāśād apy asaṃcāryaṃ khagair ākāśagocaraiḥ //
tṛṇeṣv api patatsv apsu jvalantam iva tejasā
samantād yojanaṃsāgraṃ tīreṣv api durāsadam //
viṣānalena ghoreṇa jvālāprajvalitaṃ hradam
vajrasyottaratas tasya krośamātre nirāmaye //
taṃ dṛṣṭvā cintayāmāsa kṛṣṇo vai vipulaṃ hradam
agādhaṃ dyotamānaṃ ca kasyedaṃ sumahad dhradam //
asmin sa kāliyo nāma kālāñjanacayopamaḥ
uragādhipatiḥ sākṣād dhrade vasati dārunaḥ //
utsṛjya sāgare vāsaṃ yo mayā vāhitaḥ purā
bhayāt patagarājasya suparṇasyoragāśinaḥ //
teneyaṃ dūṣitā sarvā yamunā sāgaraṃgamā
bhayāt tasyoragapater nāyaṃ deśo niṣevyate //
tad idaṃ dāruṇākāram araṇyaṃ rūḍhaśāḍvalam
sāvarohadrumaṃ ghoraṃ kīrṇaṃ nānālatādrumaiḥ //
rakṣitaṃ sarparājasya sacivair vanavāsibhiḥ
vanaṃ nirviṣayākāraṃ viṣānnam iva duḥspṛśam
tair āptakāribhir nityaṃ sarvataḥ parirakṣitam //
śaivālamalinaiś cāpi vṛkṣaiḥ kṣupalatākulaiḥ
kartavyamārgau bhrājete hradasyāsya taṭāv ubhau //
tad asya sarparājasya kartavyo nigraho mayā
yathevaṃ saridambhodā bhavec chivajalāśayā //
Note: k: For 54cd, D3.6,T1.2,G,M subst.: :k
ayaṃ ca sevyaḥ kartavyo hradaḥ śītajalāśraya |
Note: k: After *672, K2 ins.: :k
sa saṃkarṣaṇaṃ āmantrya keśavas tv idam abravīt |
Note: k: K2 cont.; Ñ2.3,V2,B1 ins. after 54; V1.3,D2 after 55; K1 after the repetition of 56ab; K4,D5 after 56ab; Ds2 cont. after *675: :k
ātmānam ātmano vākyaṃ provāca sa priyaṃvadaḥ |
idaṃ vanaṃ nadī ceyaṃ śaraṇyam iti me matiḥ |
na nisarpanti dṛśyante sattvānīha mahītale |
vrajopabhogyā ca śubhā nāge vai damite mayā
sarvartusukhasaṃcārā sarvatīrthasukhāśrayā //
etadarthaṃ ca vāso 'yam vraje 'smin gopajanma ca
amīṣām utpathasthānāṃ śāsanārthaṃ durātmanām //
etaṃ kadambam āruhya tad eṣa śiśulīlayā
vinipatya hrade ghore damayiṣyāmi kāliyam //
Note: k: After 57, K2,Ñ2.3,V,B,Ds,D4.5 ins.: :k
evaṃ kṛte bāhuvīryaṃ loke khyātiṃ gamiṣyati |
Note: k: After *675, Ds2 cont. *674; while D3.6,S(except T3.4) ins. after 57: :k
mama jpādatalasparśād dīrghajīvī bhaved ayam |
kadambaḥ puṣpaphalavān samārādhyaś ca matpriyaiḥ ||
so 'yaṃ kadambaśikharaḥ sarvaprāṇisukhāvahaḥ |
adyāpi bhrājate viṣṇoḥ pādasaṃsparśaśobhayā |
Note: h: HV (CE) ch. 56, transliterated and collated with ViP and BrP by Utz Podzeit, extracted from the collation and edited by Peter Schreiner. version March 4, 2002. Not yet proof-read. :h
sopasṛtya nadītīraṃ baddhvā parikaraṃ dṛḍham
ārohac capalaḥ kṛṣṇaḥ kadambaśikharaṃ yuvā //
kṛṣṇaḥ kadambaśikharāl lambamāno 'mbudākṛtiḥ
hradamadhye 'karoc chabdaṃ nipatann ambujekṣaṇaḥ //
Note: k: After 2, D2 ins.: :k
nīlotpaladalaśyāmo hrade tasmin papāta ha |
sa kṛṣṇenāvapatatā kṣobhitaḥ sa mahāhradaḥ
saṃprāśicyata vegena bhidyamāna ivārṇavaḥ //
tena śabdena saṃkṣubdhaṃ tatsarpabhavanaṃ mahat
uttiṣṭhad udakāt sarpo roṣaparyākulekṣaṇaḥ //
sa coragapatiḥ kruddho megharāśisamaprabhaḥ
tato raktāntanayanaḥ kāliyaḥ samadṛśyata //
pañcāsyaḥ pāvakocchvāsaś calajjihvo 'nalānanaḥ
pṛtubhiḥ pañcabhir ghoraiḥ śirobhiḥ parivāritaḥ //
pūrayitvā hradaṃ sarvaṃ bhogenānalavarcasā
sphurann iva sa roṣeṇa jvalann iva ca tejasā //
krodhena tajjalaṃ tasya sarvaṃ śṛtam ivābhavat
pratiśrotāś ca bhīteva jagāma yamunā nadī
tasya krodhāgnipūrṇena vaktreṇābhūc ca mārutaḥ //
dṛṣṭvā kṛṣṇaṃ hradagataṃ krīḍantaṃ śiśulīlayā
sadhūmāḥ pannagendrasya mukhān niścerur arciṣaḥ //
sṛjatā tena roṣāgniṃ samīpe tīrajā drumāḥ
kṣaṇena bhasmasān nītā yugāntapratimena vai //
tasya putrāś ca dārāś ca bhṛtyāś cānye mahoragāḥ
vamantaḥ pāvakaṃ ghoraṃ vaktrebhyo viṣasaṃbhavam
sadhūmāḥ pannagendrās te nipetur amitaujasaḥ //
praveśitaś ca taiḥ sarpaiḥ sa kṛṣṇo bhogabandhanam
niryatnacaraṇākāras tasthau girir ivācalaḥ //
dadaṃśur daśanais tīkṣṇair viṣotpīḍajalāvilaiḥ
te kṛṣṇaṃ sarpapatayo na mamāra ca vīryavān //
Note: k: After 13, D6,S (außer T3.4,), G(ed.) ins.: :k
saṃdaśyamāno daśanair na cacāla sa keśavaḥ |
vyacarat suciraṃ kālaṃ kṛṣṇo vai kāliye hrade |
etasminn antare bhītā gopālāḥ sarva eva te
krandamānā vrajaṃ jagmur bāṣpasaṃdigdhayā girā //
eṣa mohaṃ gataḥ kṛṣṇo magno vai kāliyahrade
bhakṣyate sarparājena tad āgacchata māciram //
nandagopāya vai kṣipraṃ ballavāya nivedyatām
eṣa te kṛṣyate putraḥ sarpeṇeti mahāhrade //
nandagopas tu tac chrutvā vajrapātopamaṃ vacaḥ
ārtaḥ skhalitavikrāntas taṃ jagāma hradottamam //
sabālayuvatīvṛddhaḥ sa ca saṃkarṣaṇo yuvā
ākrīḍaṃ pannagendrasya janas taṃ samupāgamat //
nandagopamukhā gopās te sarve sāśrulocanāḥ
Note: k: After 19ab, D6,T1.2,G1-3.5,M1.2.4 ins.: :kidaṃ kiṃ tv iti saṃbhrāntāḥ kasyedaṃ karma ceti vai |
hāhākāraṃ prakurvantas tasthus tīre hradasya vai //
vrīḍitā vismitāś caiva śokārtāś ca punaḥ punaḥ
kecit tu kṛṣṇa hā heti hā dhig ity apare punaḥ
apare hā hatāḥ smeti rurudur bhṛśaduḥkhitāḥ //
striyaś caiva yaśodāṃ tām hā hatāsīti cukruśuḥ
yā paśyasi priyaṃ putraṃ sarparājavaśaṃgataṃ
saṃditaṃ sarpabhogena kṛṣyamāṇaṃ yathā mṛgam //
aśmasāramayaṃ nūnaṃ hṛdayaṃ te 'bhilakṣyate
putraṃ katham imaṃ dṛṣṭvā yaśode nāvadīryate //
duḥkhitaṃ bata paśyāmo nandagopaṃ hradāntike
nyasya putramukhe dṛṣṭiṃ niścetanam avasthitam //
yaśodām anugacchantyaḥ sarpāvāsam imaṃ hradam
praviśāmo na yāsyāmaḥ sarvā dāmodaraṃ vinā //
divasaḥ ko vinā sūryaṃ vinā candreṇa kā niśā
vinā vṛṣeṇa kā gāvo vinā kṛṣṇena ko vrajaḥ
vinā kṛṣṇaṃ na yāsyāmo vivatsā iva dhenavaḥ //
tāsāṃ vilapitaṃ śrutvā teṣām ca vrajavāsinām
Note: k: After 26ab, Ñ2.3,V,B1.2,Ds,D3.5 ins.: :kvilāpaṃ nandagopasya yaśodāṃ rudatīṃ tathā |
ekabhāvaśarīrajña ekadeho dvidhākṛtaḥ
saṃkarṣaṇas tu saṃkruddho babhāṣe kṛṣṇam avyayam //
kṛṣṇa kṛṣṇa mahābāho gopānāṃ nandivardhana
damyatām eṣa vai kṣipraṃ sarparājo viṣāyudhaḥ //
ime no bāndhavās tāta tvāṃ matvā mānuṣaṃ prabho
paridevanti karuṇam sarve mānuṣabuddhayaḥ //
tac chrutvā rauhiṇeyasya vākyaṃ saṃjñāsamīritam
vikrīḍyāsphoṭayad bāhū tad bhittvā bhogabandhanam //
tasya padbhyāṃ athākramya bhogarāśiṃ jalokṣitam
śiro 'sya kṛṣṇo jagrāha svahastenāvanāmya ca //
tasyāruroha sahasā madhyamaṃ tan mahac chiraḥ
so 'sya mūrdhni sthitaḥ kṛṣṇo nanarta rucirāṅgadaḥ //
Note: k: After 31, D6,S ins.: :k
lāsyaṃ bahuvidhaṃ kṛṣṇo vidadhe tasya mūrdhani ||
tasya nṛttaṃ smaran viṣṇor harṣo 'dya mama jāyate |
romṇāṃ sarveṣu gātreṣu rājann udgamayan sadā |
mṛdyamānaḥ sa kṛṣṇena śrāntamūrdhā bhujaṃgamaḥ
asyaiḥ sarudhirodgāraiḥ kātaraṃ vākyam abravīt //
avijñānān mayā kṛṣṇa roṣo 'yaṃ saṃpradarśitaḥ
damito 'haṃ hataviṣo vaśagas te varānana //
tadājñāpaya kiṃ kuryāṃ sadārāpatyabāndhavaḥ
kasya vā vaśatāṃ yāmi jīvitaṃ me pradīyatām //
Note: k: After 34, D6,T1.2,G1.3.5,M1.2.4 ins.: :k
namas te brahmarudrendra+ +surāsuranamaskṛta |
śaraṇaṃ tvāṃ prapanno 'smi jīvitaṃ me pradīyatām ||
aparādhaṃ kṛtaṃ yat tu mūḍhenākṛtabuddhinā |
darpānvitena ca mayā na tat saṃsmartum arhasi ||
prasanne tvayi deveśa vainateyo na māṃ haret |
tasmād vidhatsva yat kāryaṃ mayā kartavyam īśvara |
ity uktvā sa śirobhis tu kṛṣṇapādāv apūjayat |
pañcamūrdhānataṃ dṛṣṭvā sarpaṃ sarpāriketanaḥ
akruddha eva bhagavān pratyuvācorageśvaram //
tavāsmin yamunātoye naiva sthānaṃ dadāmy aham
gacchārṇavajalaṃ sarpa saputraḥ sahabāndhavaḥ //
yaś ceha bhūyo dṛśyeta sthale vā yadi vā jale
tava bhṛtyas tanūjo vā kṣipraṃ vadhyaḥ sa me bhavet //
śivaṃ cāsya jalasyāstu tvaṃ ca gaccha mahārṇavam
sthāne tv iha bhaved doṣas tavāntakaraṇo mahān //
matpadāni ca te sarpa dṛṣṭvā mūrdhani sāgare
garudaḥ pannagaripus tvayi na prahariṣyati //
Note: k: After 39, D6,T1,G1-3,M1.2.4 ins.: :k
evam uktas tu kṛṣṇena patatrivaraketunā |
Note: k: *682 occurs twice, after 56.34 and after 56.39; the second occurrence has been numbered *682A. :k
gṛhya mūrdhnā tu caraṇau kṛṣṇasyoragapuṃgavaḥ
paśyatām eva gopānāṃ jagāmādarśanaṃ hradāt //
nirjite tu gate sarpe kṛṣṇam uttīrya viṣṭhitam
vismitās tuṣṭuvur gopāś cakruś caiva pradakṣiṇam //
ūcuḥ sarve susaṃprītā nandagopaṃ vanecarāḥ
dhanyo 'sy anugṛhīto 'si yasya te putra īdṛśaḥ //
adyaprabhṛti gopānāṃ gavāṃ ghoṣasya cānagha
āpatsu śaraṇaṃ kṛṣṇaḥ prabhuś cāyatalocanaḥ //
jātā śivajalā sarvā yamunā munisevitā
sarvais tīrthaiḥ sukhaṃ gāvo vicariṣyanti naḥ sadā //
vyaktam eva vayaṃ gopā vane yat kṛṣṇam īdṛśam
mahadbhūtaṃ na jānīmaś channam agnim iva vraje //
evaṃ te vismitāḥ sarve stuvantaḥ kṛṣṇam avyayam
jagmur gopagaṇā ghoṣaṃ devāś caitrarathaṃ yathā //
Note: h: HV (CE) ch. 57, transliterated and collated with ViP and BrP by Utz Podzeit, extracted from the collation and edited by Peter Schreiner; March 4, 2002. Not yet proof-read. :h
damite sarparāje tu kṛṣṇena yamunāhrade
tam eva ceratur deśam sahitau rāmakeśavau //
jagmatus tau tu saṃraktau godhanaiḥ saha gāminau
giriṃ govardhanaṃ ramyaṃ vasudevasutāv ubhau //
govardhanasyottarato yamunātīram āśritam
dadṛśāte 'tha tau vīrau ramyaṃ tālavanaṃ mahat //
tau tālaparṇapratate ramye tālavane ratau
ceratuḥ paramaprītau vṛṣapotāv ivodgatau //
sa tu deśaḥ samaḥ snigdho loṣṭapāṣāṇavarjitaḥ
darbhaprāyasthalībhūtaḥ sumahān kṛṣṇamṛttikaḥ //
tālais tair vipulaskandhair ucchritaiḥ śyāmaparvabhiḥ
phalāgraśākhibhir bhāti nāgahastair ivocchritaiḥ //
tatra dāmodaro vākyam uvāca vadatāṃ varaḥ
aho tālaphalaiḥ pakvair vāsiteyaṃ vanasthalī //
svādūny ārya sugandhīni śyāmāni rasavanti ca
tālapakvāni sahitau pātayāvo laghukramau //
yady eṣām īdṛśo gandho madhuro ghrānasaṃmataḥ
rasenāmṛtakalpena bhaviṣyantīti me matiḥ //
dāmodaravacaḥ śrutvā rauhiṇeyo hasann iva
pātayaṃs tālapakvāni cālayām āsa tāṃs tarūn //
tat tu tālavanaṃ nṝṇām asevyaṃ duratikramam
nirmāṇabhūtam iriṇaṃ puruṣādālayopamam //
Note: k: After 11, D6,T1.2,G1.3-5,M ins.: :k
pāṣāṇair atha rājendra bahubhiḥ parvatopamaiḥ |
pakvāni caiva rājendra pātayām āsa kāmataḥ |
dāruṇo dhenuko nāma daityo gardabharūpavān
kharayūthena mahatā vṛtaḥ samupasevate //
sa tat talavanaṃ ghoraṃ gardabhaḥ parirakṣati
nṛpakṣiśvāpadagaṇāṃs trāsayānaḥ sa durmatiḥ //
tālaśabdaṃ sa taṃ śrutvā saṃghuṣṭaṃ phalapātane
nāmarṣayata saṃkruddhas tālasvanam iva dvipaḥ //
śabdānusārī saṃkruddho darpāviddhasaṭānanaḥ
stabdhākṣo heṣitapaṭuḥ khurair nirdārayan mahīm //
āviddhapuccho hṛṣito vyāttānana ivāntakaḥ
āpatann eva dadṛśe rauhiṇeyam avasthitam //
tālānāṃ tam adho dṛṣṭvā sa dhvajākāram avyayam
rauhiṇeyaṃ kharo duṣṭaḥ so 'daśad daśanāyudhaḥ //
padbhyām ubhābhyāṃ ca punaḥ paścimābhyāṃ parāṅmukhaḥ
jaghānorasi daityaḥ sa rauhiṇeyaṃ nirāyudham //
tābhyām eva sa jagrāha padbhyāṃ taṃ daityagardabham
āvarjitamukhaskandhaṃ prairayat tālamūrdhani //
sa bhagnorukaṭignīvo bhagnapṛṣṭho durākṛtiḥ
kharas tālaphalaiḥ sārdhaṃ papāta dharaṇītale //
taṃ gatāsuṃ gataśrīkaṃ patitaṃ vīkṣya gardabham
jñātīṃs tathāparāṃs tasya cikṣepa tṛṇarājani //
Note: k: After 21, T1.2,G1.2.5,M1-3 ins.: :k
te sarve tālapakvaiś ca nipetur dharaṇītale |
sā bhūr gardabhadehaiś ca tālapakvaiś ca pātitaiḥ
babhāse channajaladā dyaur ivāvyaktaśāradī //
tasmin gardabhadaiteya tu sānuge vinipātite
ramyaṃ tālavanaṃ tadd hi bhūyo ramyataraṃ babhau //
vipramuktabhayaṃ śubhraṃ viviktākāradarśanam
caranti sma sukhaṃ gāvas tattālavanam uttamam //
tataḥ pravyāhṛtāḥ sarve gopā vananivāsinaḥ
vītaśokā vanaṃ sarve cañcūryante sma te sukham //
tataḥ sukhaṃ prakīrṇāsu goṣu nāgendravikramau
drumaparṇāsane kṛtvā tau yathārhaṃ niṣidatuḥ //
Note: h: HV (CE) ch. 58, transliterated and collated with ViP and BrP by Utz Podzeit, extracted from the collation and edited by Peter Schreiner; March 4, 2002. Not yet proof-read. :h
atha tau jātaharṣau tu vasudevasutāv ubhau
tattālavanam utsṛjya bhūyo bhāṇḍīraṃ āgatau //
cārayantau vivṛddhāni godhanāni śubhānanau
sphītasasyaprarūḍhāni vīkṣamāṇau vanāni ca //
kṣvedayantau pragāyantau pracinvantau ca pādapān
nāmabhir vyāharantau ca savatsā gāḥ paraṃtapau //
niryogapāśair āsaktau skandhābhyām śubhalakṣaṇau
vanamālākṛtoraskau bālaśṛṅgāv ivarṣabhau //
suvarṇāñjanavarṇābhāv anyonyasadṛśāmbarau
mahendrāyudhasaṃsaktau śuklakṛṣṇāv ivāmbudau //
kuśāgrakusumānāṃ ca karṇapūramanoramau
vanamārgeṣu kurvāṇau vanyaveṣadharāv ubhau //
govardhanasyānucarau vane sānucarau ca tau
ceratur lokasiddhābhiḥ krīḍābhir aparājitau //
tāv enaṃ mānuṣīṃ dīkṣāṃ vahantau surapūjitau
tajjātiguṇayuktābhiḥ krīḍābhiś ceratur vanam //
tau tu bhāṇḍīram ucite kāle krīḍānuvartinau
prāptau paramaśākhāḍhyaṃ nyagrodhaṃ śākhināṃ varam //
tatra spandolikābhiś ca yuddhamārgaiś ca daṃśitau
aśmabhiḥ kṣepaṇīyaiś ca tau vyāyāmam akurvatām //
yuddhamārgaiś ca vividhair gopālaiḥ sahitāv ubhau
muditau siṃhavikrāntau yathākāmaṃ viceratuḥ //
tayo ramayator evaṃ tallipsur asurottamaḥ
pralambo 'bhyāgamat teṣāṃ chidrānveṣī tayos tadā //
gopālaveṣam āsthāya vanyapuṣpavibhūṣitaḥ
lobhayānaḥ sa tau vīrau hāsyaiḥ krīḍanakais tathā //
so 'vagāhata niḥśaṅkas teṣāṃ madhyam amānuṣaḥ
mānuṣaṃ vapur āsthāya pralambo dānavottamaḥ //
prakrīḍitāś ca te sarve saha tenāmarāriṇā
gopālavapuṣaṃ gopā manyamānāḥ svabāndhavam //
sa tu chidrāntaraprepsuḥ pralambo gopatāṃ gataḥ
dṛṣṭiṃ paridadhe kṛṣṇe rauhiṇeye ca dāruṇām //
aviṣahyaṃ tato matvā kṛṣṇam adbhutavikramamḥ
rauhiṇeyavadhe yatnam akarod dānavottamaḥ //
hariṇākrīḍanaṃ nāma bālakrīḍanakaṃ tataḥ
prakrīḍitāś ca te sarve dvau dvau yugapad utpatan //
kṛṣṇaḥ śrīdāmasahitaḥ pupluve gopasūnunā
saṃkarṣaṇas tu plutavān pralambena sahānaghaḥ //
gopālās tv apare dvaṃdvaṃ gopālair aparaiḥ saha
pradrutā laṅghayanto vai te 'nyonyaṃ laghuvikramāḥ //
śrīdāmam ajayat kṛṣṇaḥ pralambaṃ rohiṇīsutaḥ
gopālaiḥ kṛṣṇapakṣīyair gopālās tv apare jitāḥ //
te vāhayantas tv anyonyam saṃharṣāt sahasā drutāḥ
bhāṇḍīraskandham uddiśya maryādāṃ punar āgaman //
saṃkarṣaṇaṃ tu skandhena śīghram utkṣipya dānavaḥ
drutaṃ jagāma vimukhaḥ sacandra iva toyadaḥ //
Note: k: After 23, K4 ins.: :k
aviṣahyaṃ manyamānaḥ kṛṣṇaṃ dānavapuṃgavaḥ |
vahan drutataraṃ prāgād avarohaṇataḥ param |
sa bhāram asahaṃs tasya rauhiṇeyasya dhīmataḥ
vavṛdhe sumahākāyaś candrākrānta ivāmbudaḥ //
sa bhāṇḍīravaṭaprakhyaṃ dagdhāñjanagiriprabham
svaṃ vapur darśayām āsa pralambo dānavottamaḥ //
pañcastabakayuktena mukuṭenārkavarcasā
dīpyamānānano daityaḥ sūryākrānta ivāmbudaḥ //
mahānano mahāgrīvaḥ umahān antakopamaḥ
raudraḥ śakaṭacakrākṣo nāmayaṃs caraṇaiḥ kṣitim //
sragdāmalambābharaṇaḥ pralambāmbarabhūṣaṇaḥ
dhīraḥ pralambaḥ prayayau toyalamba ivāmbudaḥ //
sa jahāraiva vegena rauhiṇeyaṃ mahāsuraḥ
sāgaropaplavagataṃ kṛtsnaṃ lokam ivāntakaḥ //
hriyamāṇaḥ pralambena sa tu saṃkarṣaṇo yuvā
uhyamāna ivaikena kālameghena candramāḥ //
sa saṃdigdham ivātmānaṃ mene saṃkarṣaṇas tadā
daityaskandhagataḥ śrīmān kṛṣṇaṃ cedam uvāca ha //
hriye 'haṃ kṛṣṇa daityena parvatodagravarcasā
pradarśayitvā mahatīm māyāṃ mānuṣarūpiṇīm //
katham asya mayā kāryaṃ śāsanaṃ duṣṭacetasaḥ
pralambasya pravṛddhasya darpād dviguṇavarcasaḥ //
tam āha sasmitaṃ kṛṣṇaḥ sāmnā harṣakalena vai
abhijño rauhiṇeyasya vṛttasya ca balasya ca //
aho 'yaṃ mānuṣo bhāvo vyaktam evānugṛhyate
yas tvaṃ jaganmayaṃ guhyaṃ guhyād guhyataraṃ gataḥ //
smarārya tanum ātmānam lokānāṃ tvaṃ viparyaye
avagacchātmanātmānam samudrāṇāṃ samāgame //
purātanānāṃ devānāṃ brahmaṇaḥ salilasya ca
ātmavṛttapravṛttāni saṃsmarādyaṃ ca vai vapuḥ //
śiraḥ khaṃ te jalaṃ mūrtiḥ kṣamā bhūr dahano mukham
vāyur lokāyur ucchvāso manaḥsraṣṭā manus tava //
sahasrāsyaḥ sahasrāṅgaḥ sahasracaraṇekṣaṇaḥ
Note: k: After 39ab Ś1 ins.: :ksahasraśīrṣo viśvātmā śatajihvaḥ śatodaraḥ |
sahasrapatranābhas tvaṃ sahasrāṃśudharo 'rihā //
yat tvayā darśitaṃ loke tat paśyanti divaukasaḥ
yat tvayā noktapūrvaṃ hi kas tad anveṣṭum arhati //
yad veditavyaṃ loke 'smiṃs tat tvayā samudāhṛtam
viditaṃ yat tavaikasya devā api na tad viduḥ //
ātmajaṃ te vapur vyomni na paśyanty ātmasaṃbhavam
yat tu te kṛtrimaṃ rūpaṃ tad arcanti divaukasaḥ //
Note: k: For 42cd T3 subst.: :k
yasya caivaṃvidhaṃ rūpaṃ paśyanti tridivaukasaḥ |
davair na dṛṣṭaś cāntas te tenānanta iti smṛta
tvaṃ hi sūkṣmo mahān ekaḥ sūkṣmair api durāsadaḥ //
tvayy eva parvatastambhā śāśvatī jagatī sthitā
acalā prāṇināṃ yonir dhārayaty akhilaṃ jagat //
catuḥsāgarabhogas tvaṃ cāturvarṇyavibhāgavit
caturyugeśo lokānāṃ cāturhotraphalāśanaḥ //
yathā tvam asi lokānāṃ tathāhaṃ tac ca me matam
ubhāv ekaśarīrau svo jagadarthe dvidhā kṛtau //
Note: k: After 46 Ñ2.3,V2.3,BDs,D4 ins.: :k
ahaṃ vā śāśvataḥ kṛṣṇas tvaṃ vā śeṣaḥ purātanaḥ |
lokānāṃ śāśvato devas tvaṃ hi śeṣaḥ sanātanaḥ
āvayor dehamātreṇa dvidhedaṃ dhāryate jagat //
ahaṃ yaḥ sa bhavān eva yas tvaṃ so 'haṃ sanātanaḥ
dvāv eva vihitau hy āvām ekadehau mahābalau //
tadāsse mūḍhavat kiṃ tvaṃ prāg enaṃ jahi dānavam
mūrdhni devaripuṃ deva vajrakalpena muṣṭinā //
saṃsmāritaḥ sa kṛṣṇena rauhiṇeyaḥ purātanam
sa balena tadā pūrṇas trailokyāntaracāriṇā //
Note: k: For 50cd, T3 subst.: :k
balenāyujyata tadā mahatānyena dīptimān |
tataḥ pralambaṃ durvṛttaṃ subaddhena mahābhujaḥ
muṣṭinā vajrakalpena mūrdhni vīraḥ samāhanat //
tasyottamāṅgaṃ sve kāye vikapālaṃ viveśa ha
Note: k: For 52ab, T3 subst.: :ktena muṣṭiprahāreṇa kapālaṃ tad dvidhābhavat |
jānudbhyāṃ jagatīṃ caiva gatāsuḥ sa jagāma ha //
jagatyāṃ vinikīrṇasya tasya rūpam abhūt tadā
pralambasyāmbarasthasya meghasyeva vidīryataḥ //
tasya bhagnottamāṅgasya dehāt susrāva śoṇitam
bahugairikasaṃyuktaṃ śailaśṛṅgād ivodakam //
sa nihatya pralambaṃ tu saṃhṛtya balam ātmanaḥ
paryaṣvajata kṛṣṇaṃ vai rauhiṇeyaḥ pratāpavān //
taṃ tu kṛṣṇaś ca gopāś ca divisthāś ca divaukasaḥ
tuṣṭuvur nihate daitye jayāśīrbhir mahābalam //
balenāyaṃ hato daityo bālenākliṣṭakarmaṇā
Note: k: After 57ab Ś1 K1.3 Ñ2 V2 Dn Ds1 (marg.) Ds2 D4.5 (marg.) ins.: :kvicaranty aśarīriṇyo vācaḥ surasamīritāḥ |
baladeveti nāmasya devaiś coktaṃ divi sthitaiḥ //
balaṃ tu baladevasya tadā bhuvi janā viduḥ
karmajaṃ nihate daitye devair api durāsade //
Note: h: HV (CE) ch. 59, transliterated and collated with ViP and BrP by Utz Podzeit, extracted from the collation and edited by Peter Schreiner; March 4, 2002. Not yet proof-read. :h
tayoḥ pravṛttayor evaṃ kṛṣṇasya ca balasya ca
vane vicarator māsau vyatiyātau sma vārṣikau //
vrajam ājagmatus tau tu vraje śuśruvatus tadā
prāptaṃ śakramahaṃ vīrau gopāṃś cotsavalālasān //
kautūhalād idaṃ vākyaṃ kṛṣṇaḥ provāca tatra vai
ko 'yaṃ śakramaho nāma yena vo harṣa āgataḥ //
tatra vṛddhatamas tv eko gopo vākyam uvāca ha
śrūyatāṃ tāta śakrasya yadarthaṃ maha iṣyate //
devānām īśvaraḥ śakro meghānāṃ cārisūdana
tasya cāyaṃ kratuḥ kṛṣṇa lokapālasya śāśvataḥ //
tena saṃcoditā meghās tasyāyudhavibhūṣitāḥ
tasyaivājñākarāḥ sasyaṃ janayanti navāmbubhiḥ //
meghasya payaso dātā puruhūtaḥ puraṃdaraḥ
saṃprahṛṣṭaḥ sa bhagavān prīṇayaty akhilaṃ jagat //
tena saṃpāditaṃ sasyaṃ vayam anye ca mānavāḥ
vartayāmopabhujjānās tarpayāmaś ca devatāḥ //
devo varṣati lokeṣu tataḥ sasyaṃ pravartate
pṛthivyāṃ tarpitāyāṃ ca sāmṛtaṃ lakṣyate jagat //
kṣīravatya imā gāvo vatsavatyaś ca nirvṛtāḥ
tena saṃvardhitā gāvas tṛṇaiḥ puṣṭāḥ sapuṃgavāḥ //
nāsasyā nātṛṇā gāvo na bubhukṣārdito janaḥ
dṛśyate yatra dṛśyante vṛṣṭimanto balāhakāḥ //
dudoha savitur gā vai śakro divyāḥ payasvalāḥ
tāḥ kṣaranti navaṃ kṣīraṃ medhyaṃ meghaughadhāritam //
vāyvīritaṃ tu megheṣu karoti ninadaṃ mahat
javenāvarjitaṃ caiva garjatīti janā viduḥ //
tasya caivohyamānasya vātayuktair balāhakaiḥ
vajrāśanisamāḥ śabdā bhavanty agamabhedinaḥ //
Note: k: For 14cd, D6 subst.: :k
vajrāśanisamāñ śabdān garjanto gagane sthitāḥ |
taj jalaṃ vajraniṣpeṣair vimuñcati nabhogatam
bahubhiḥ kāmagair meghaiḥ śakro bhṛtyair iveśvaraḥ //
kvacid durdinasaṃkāśaiḥ kvacic channābhrasaṃsthitaiḥ
kvacic chīkaramuktābhaṃ kurvadbhir gaganaṃ ghanaiḥ //
Note: k: Ñ2.3,V,B,D2.3,T3 ins. after 16ab; Ds after 16: :k
kvacidbhinnāñjanākāraiḥ kvacicchīkaravarṣibhiḥ |
maṇḍayaty eva devendro viśvam eva nabho ghanaiḥ |
evam etat payo dugdhaṃ gobhiḥ sūryasya vāridaḥ
parjanyaḥ sarvalokānāṃ bhavāya bhuvi varṣati //
Note: k: After 17, K,Ñ2.3,V,B,D (except D6,),T3 ins.: :k
yasmāt prāvṛḍ iyaṃ kṛṣṇa śakrasya bhuvi bhāvinī |
tasmāt prāvṛṣi rājānaḥ sarve śakraṃ mudā yutāḥ
mahaiḥ sureśam arcanti vayam anye ca mānavāḥ //
gopavṛddhasya vacanaṃ śrutvā śakraparigrahe
prabhāvajño 'pi śakrasya vākyaṃ dāmodaro 'bravīt //
vayaṃ vanacarā gopa gopā godhanajīvinaḥ
gāvo 'smaddaivataṃ viddhi girayaś ca vanāni ca //
karṣakāṇāṃ kṛṣir vṛttiḥ paṇyaṃ vipaṇijīvinām
asmākaṃ gauḥ parā vṛttir etat traividhyam ucyate
vidyayā yo yayā yuktas tasya sā daivataṃ param //
Note: k: After 21, Ñ2.3 V B1.2 Dn Ds T3.4 ins.: :k
saiva pūjyārcanīyā ca saiva tasyopakāriṇī |
yo 'nyasya phalam aśnānaḥ karoty anyasya satkriyām
dvāv anarthau sa labhate pretya ceha ca mānavaḥ //
kṛṣyantāḥ prathitāḥ sīmāḥ sīmāntaṃ śrūyate vanam
vanāntā girayaḥ sarve sā cāsmākaṃ gatir dhruvā //
śrūyante girayaś cāpi vane 'smin kāmarūpiṇaḥ
praviśya tās tās tanavo ramante sveṣu sānuṣu //
bhūtvā kesariṇaḥ siṃhā vyāghrāś ca nakhināṃ varāḥ
vanāni svāni rakṣanti trāsayanto drumacchidaḥ //
yadā caiṣāṃ vikurvanti te vanālayajīvinaḥ
ghnanti tān eva durvṛttān pauruṣādena karmaṇā //
mantrayajñaparā viprāḥ sītāyajñāś ca karṣakāḥ
giriyajñā vayaṃ gopā ijyo 'smābhir girir vane //
tan mahyaṃ rocate gopā giriyajñaṃ vayaṃ vane
kurmaḥ kṛtvā sukhaṃ sthānaṃ pādape vātha vā girau //
tatra hatvā paśūn medhyān vitatyāyatane kṛte
sarvaghoṣasya saṃdohaḥ kriyatāṃ kiṃ vicāryate //
taṃ śaratkusumāpīḍāḥ parivārya pradakṣiṇam
gāvo girivaraṃ sarvās tato yāntu vanaṃ punaḥ //
prāptā kileyaṃ hi gavāṃ svāduvīryatṛṇā guṇaiḥ
śaratpramuditā ramyā gatameghajalāśayā //
priyakaiḥ puṣpitair gauraṃ śyāmaṃ bāṇavanaiḥ kvacit
kaṭhoratṛṇam ābhāti nirmayūrarutaṃ vanam //
vimalā vijalā vyomni vibalākā vividyutaḥ
vivartante jaladharā vimadā iva kuñjarāḥ //
paṭunā meghavātena vārṣikeṇāvakampitāḥ
parṇotkaraghanāḥ sarve prasādaṃ yānti pādapāḥ //
Note: k: For 34, T2 subst.: :k
vinā ca meghanādena nirmayūrarutaṃ vanam |
nadyo bahuvidhākārā jalaṃ svacchaṃ vahanti ca |
sitavarṇāmbudoṣṇīṣaṃ haṃsacāmaravījitam
pūrṇacandrāmalacchatraṃ sābhiṣekam ivāmbaram //
haṃsair vihasitānīva sumutkuṣṭāni sārasaiḥ
sarvāṇi tanutāṃ yānti jalāni jaladakṣaye //
cakravākastanataṭāḥ pulinaśroṇimaṇḍalāḥ
haṃsalakṣaṇahāsinyaḥ patiṃ yānti samudragāḥ //
kumudotphullam udakaṃ tārābhiś catram ambaram
samam abhyutsmayantīva śarvarīṣv itaretaram //
mattakrauñcāvaghuṣṭeṣu kalamāpakvapāṇḍuṣu
nirviṣṭaramaṇīyeṣu vaneṣu ramate manaḥ //
puṣkariṇyas taḍāgāni vāpyaś ca vikacotpalāḥ
kedārāḥ saritaś caiva sarāṃsi ca śriyājvalan //
paṅkajāni ca padmāni tathānyāni sitāni ca
Note: k: For 41ab, G3-5 subst.: :kśriyā jvalatpaṅkajāni tāmrāṇi ca sitāni ca |
utpalāni ca nīlāni bhejire vārijāṃ śriyam //
madaṃ jahuḥ sitāpāṅgā mandaṃ vavṛdhire 'nilāḥ
abhavad vyabhramākāśam abhūc ca nibhṛto rṇavaḥ //
ṛtuparyāyaśithilair vṛttanṛttasamujjhitaiḥ
mayūrāṅgaruhair bhūmir bahunetreva lakṣyate //
svapaṅkamalinais tīraiḥ kāśapuṣpalatākulaiḥ
haṃsasārasavinyāsair yamunā yāti saṃyatā //
kalamāpakvasasyeṣu kedāreṣu vaneṣu ca
sasyādā jalajādāś ca mattā viruruvuḥ khagāḥ //
siṣicur yāni jaladā jalena jaladāgame
tāni śaṣpāṇy abālāni kaṭhinatvaṃ gatāni vai //
tyaktvā meghamayaṃ vāsaḥ śaradguṇavidīpitaḥ
eṣa vītamale vyomni hṛṣṭo vasati candramāḥ //
kṣīriṇyo dviguṇaṃ gāvaḥ pramattā dviguṇaṃ vṛṣāḥ
vanānāṃ dviguṇā lakṣmīḥ sasyair guṇavatī mahī //
jyotīṃṣi ghanamuktāni padmavanti jalāni ca
manāṃsi ca manuṣyāṇāṃ prasādam upayānti vai //
asṛjat savitā vyomni nirmuktajalade bhṛśam
śaratprajvalitaṃ tejas tīkṣṇaraśmir viśoṣayan //
nīrājayitvā sainyāni niryānti vijigīṣavaḥ
anyonyarāṣṭrābhimukhāḥ pārthivāḥ pṛthivīkṣitaḥ //
bandhujīvābhitāmrāsu baddhapaṅkavatīṣu ca
manas tiṣṭhati kāntāsu citrāsu vanarājiṣu //
vaneṣu ca virājante pādapā vanaśobhinaḥ
asanāh saptaparṇāś ca kovidārāś ca puṣpitāḥ //
iṣusāhvā nikumbhāś ca priyakāḥ svarṇakās tathā
Note: k: For 54ab, D6 T1.2 G M subst.: :kikṣusasyā nikupyāś ca priyaṅguś ca viśeṣataḥ |
sṛmarāḥ picukāś caiva ketakyaś ca samantataḥ //
vrajepu ca viśeṣeṇa gargarodgārahāsiṣu
śaratprakāśayoṣeva goṣṭheṣv aṭati rūpiṇī //
nūnaṃ tridaśalokasthaṃ meghakālasukhoṣitam
patatriketanaṃ devaṃ bodhayanti divaukasaḥ //
śarady evaṃ susasyāyāṃ prāptāyāṃ prāvṛṣaḥ kṣaye
Note: k: V3,B1 ins. after 57ab; V2,D2-5 after 56ab; Dn,Ds2 after 53: :knīlacandrārkavarṇaiś ca racitaṃ bahubhir dvijaiḥ |
phalaiḥ pravālaiś ca ghanam indracāpaghanopamam |
bhavanākāraviṭapaṃ latāparam amaṇḍitam |
viśālamūlāvanataṃ pavanābhogamaṇḍitam |
arcayāma giriṃ devaṃ gāś caiva saviśeṣataḥ //
sāvataṃsair viṣāṇaiś ca barhāpīḍaiś ca daṃśitaiḥ
ghaṇṭābhiś ca pralambābhiḥ puṣpaiḥ śāradikais tathā //
śivāya gāvaḥ pūjyantāṃ giriyajñaḥ pravartatām
pūjyantāṃ tridaśaiḥ śakro girir asmābhir ijyatām //
kāriṣyāmi goyajñaṃ balād api na saṃśayaḥ
yadāsti mayi vaḥ prītir yadi vā suhṛdo vayam //
gāvo hi pūjyāḥ satataṃ sarveṣāṃ nātra saṃśayaḥ
syāt tu sāmnā bhavet prītir bhavatāṃ vaibhavāya ca
tata etan mama vacaḥ kriyatām avicāritam //
Note: h: HV (CE) ch. 60, transliterated and collated with ViP and BrP by Utz Podzeit, extracted from the collation and edited by Peter Schreiner; March 4, 2002. Not yet proof-read. :h
dāmodaravacaḥ śrutvā hṛṣṭās te goṣu jīvinaḥ
tadvāg amṛtam ākhyātaṃ pratyūcur aviśaṅkayā //
tavaiṣā bāla mahatī gopānāṃ harṣavardhinī
prīṇayaty eva naḥ sarvān buddhir vṛddhikarī nṛṇām //
tvaṃ gatis tvaṃ ratiś caiva tvaṃ vettā tvaṃ parāyaṇam
bhayeṣv abhayadas tvaṃ nas tvaṃ caiva suhṛdāṃ suhṛt //
tvatkṛte kṛṣṇa ghoṣo 'yaṃ kṣemo muditagokulaḥ
kṛtsno vasati śāntārir yathā svargagatas tathā //
janmaprabhṛti divyais tair vikrāntair bhuvi duṣkaraiḥ
boddhavyāc cābhimānāc ca vismitāni manāṃsi naḥ //
balena ca parārdhyena yaśasā vikrameṇa ca
uttamas tvaṃ ca martyeṣu deveṣv iva puraṃdaraḥ //
Note: k: After 6, K, Ñ2.3,V,B,D (except D3),T1.3.4,G,M4 ins.: :k
pratāpena ca tīkṣṇena dīptyā pūrṇatayāpi ca |
uttamas tvaṃ ca martyeṣu deveṣv iva divākaraḥ |
kāntyā lakṣmyā prasādena vadanena smitena ca
uttamas tvaṃ ca martyeṣu deveṣv iva niśākaraḥ //
veṣeṇa vapuṣā caiva bālyena caritena ca
syāt te śaktidharas tulyo na tu kaścana mānuṣaḥ //
yat tvayābhihitaṃ vākyaṃ giriyajñaṃ prati prabho
kas tal laṅghayituṃ śakto velām iva mahodadheḥ //
sthitaḥ śakramahas tāta śrīmān girimahas tv ayam
tvatpraṇīto 'dya gopānāṃ gavāṃ hetoḥ pravartatām //
bhojanāny upakalpyantāṃ payasaḥ peśalāni ca
kumbhāś ca viniveśyantām udapāneṣu śobhanāḥ
lehyasya pāyasasyārthe droṇyaś ca vipulāyatāḥ //
bhakṣyaṃ bhojyaṃ ca peyaṃ ca tat sarvam upanīyatām
bhājanāni ca māṃsasya nyasyantām odanasya ca
trirātraṃ caiva saṃdohaḥ sarvaghoṣasya gṛhyatām //
viśasyantāṃ ca paśavo bhojyā ye mahiṣādayaḥ
pravartatāṃ ca yajño 'yaṃ sarvagopasusaṃkulaḥ //
ānandajanano ghoṣo mahān muditagokulaḥ
tūryapraṇādaghoṣaiś ca vṛṣabhāṇāṃ ca garjitaiḥ //
hambhāravaiś ca vatsānāṃ gopānāṃ harṣavardhanaḥ
dadhihrado ghṛtāvartaḥ payaḥkulyāsamākulaḥ //
māṃsarāśipraklṛptāḍhyaḥ prakāśaudanaparvataḥ
saṃprāvartata yajñaḥ sa girer gobhiḥ samākulaḥ
tuṣṭagopajanākīrṇo gopanārīmanoharaḥ //
Note: k: After 16, K3, Dn, D2.5 (marg.) ins.: :k
bhakṣyāṇāṃ rāśayas tatra śataśaś copakalpitāḥ |
gandhamālyaiś ca vividhair dhūpair uccāvacais tathā |
athādhiśritaparyante paryāpte yajñasaṃvidhau
yajñaṃ gires tithau saumye cakrur gopā dvijaiḥ saha //
yajanānte tad annaṃ tu tat payo dadhi cottamam
māṃsaṃ ca māyayā kṛṣṇo girir bhūtvā samaśnute //
Note: k: After 18, D2 ins.: :k
īdṛśaṃ hy abhavat tatra gopānāṃ bharatarṣabha |
tarpitāś cāpi viprāgryās tuṣṭāḥ saṃpūrṇabhojanāḥ
uttasthuḥ prītamanasaḥ svasti vācya yathāsukham //
bhuktvā cāvabhṛte kṛṣṇaḥ payaḥ pītvā ca kāmataḥ
saṃtṛpto 'smīti divyena rūpeṇa prajahāsa vai //
Note: k: After 20, T3 ins.: :k
prajahāsa girer mūrdhni sthitaḥ kamalalocanaḥ |
taṃ gopāḥ parvatākāraṃ divyasraganulepanam
girimūrdhni sthitaṃ dṛṣṭvā kṛṣṇaṃ jagmuḥ pradhānataḥ //
bhagavān api tenaiva rūpeṇāc chāditaḥ prabhuḥ
saha taiḥ praṇato gopair vavandātmānam ātmanā //
tam ūcur vismitā gopā devaṃ girivare sthitam
bhagavaṃs tvadvaśe yuktā dāsāḥ kiṃ kurma kiṃkarāḥ //
sa uvāca tato gopān giriḥ suprabhayā girā
adyaprabhṛti yājyo 'haṃ goṣu yady asti vo dayā //
ahaṃ vaḥ prathamo devaḥ sarvakāmakaraḥ śivaḥ
mama prabhāvāc ca gavām ayutāny eva bhokṣyatha //
śivas ca vo bhaviṣyāmi madbhaktānāṃ vane vane
raṃsye ca saha yuṣmābhir yathā divigatas tathā //
ye ceme prathitā gopā nandagopādayaḥ sthitāḥ
eṣāṃ prītaḥ prayacchāmi gopānāṃ vipulaṃ dhanam //
paryāpnuvantu māṃ kṣipraṃ gāvo vatsasamākulāḥ
evaṃ mama parā prītir bhaviṣyati na saṃśayaḥ //
tato nīrājanārthaṃ vai vṛndaśo gokulāni ca
parivavrur girivaraṃ savṛṣāṇi sahasraśaḥ //
tā gāvaḥ prasnutā vatsaiḥ sāpīḍastabakāṅgadāḥ
sasragāpīḍaśṛṅgāgrāḥ śataśo 'tha sahasraśaḥ //
anujagmuś ca gopālāḥ kālayanto dhanāni ca
bhakticchedānuliptāṅgā raktapītāsitāmbarāḥ //
mayūracitrāṅgadino bhujaiḥ praharaṇāvṛtaiḥ
mayūrapatravṛntānāṃ keśabandhaiḥ suyojitaiḥ
babhrājur adhikaṃ gopāḥ samavāye tadādbhute //
anye vṛṣān āruruhur nṛtyanti smāpare mudā
gopālās tv apare gāś ca jagṛhur vegagāminaḥ //
tasmin paryāyanirvṛtte gavāṃ nīrājanotsave
antardhānaṃ jagāmāśu tena dehena so giriḥ //
kṛṣṇo 'pi gopasthito viveśa vrajam eva ha
giriyajñapravṛttena tenāścaryeṇa vismitaḥ //
Note: k: After 35, N(except Ñ1), S (except M1-3), G(ed.) ins.: :k
gopāḥ sabālavṛddhā vai tuṣṭuvur mudhusūdanam (sic) |
Note: k: K4 cont.: :k
nṛtyaṃ gītaṃ prakurvāṇāḥ sahakṛṣṇā vrajaṃ yayuḥ |
Note: h: HV (CE) ch. 61, transliterated and collated with ViP and BrP by Utz Podzeit, extracted from the collation and edited by Peter Schreiner; March 4, 2002. Not yet proof-read. :h
mahe pratihate śakraḥ sakrodhas tridaśeśvaraḥ
saṃvartakaṃ nāma gaṇaṃ toyadānām athābravīt //
bho balāhakamātaṅgāḥ śrūyatāṃ mama bhāṣitam
yadi vo matpriyaṃ kāryaṃ rājabhaktipuraskṛtam //
ete vṛndāvana gatā dāmodaraparāyaṇāḥ
nandagopādayo gopā vidviṣanti mamotsavam //
ājīvo yaḥ paras teṣāṃ gopatvaṃ ca yataḥ smṛtam
tā gāvaḥ saptarātreṇa pīḍyantāṃ vṛṣṭimārutaiḥ //
airāvatagataś cāham svayam evāmbu dāruṇam
srakṣyāmi vṛṣṭiṃ vātaṃ ca vajrāśanisamaprabham //
bhavadbhiś caṇḍavarṣeṇa caratā mārutena ca
hatās tāḥ savrajā gāvas tyakṣyanti bhuvi jīvitam //
evam ājñāpayām āsa sa sarvāñ jaladān prabhuḥ
pratyāhate vai kṛṣṇena śāsane pākaśāsanaḥ //
Note: k: For 7cd, M1-3 subst.: :k
mahe pratihate viṣṇoḥ śāsanāt pākaśāsanaḥ |
tatas te jaladāḥ kṛṣṇā ghoranādā bhayāvahāḥ
ākāśaṃ chādayāmāsuḥ sarvataḥ parvatopamāḥ //
vidyutsaṃpātajananāḥ śakracāpavibhūṣitāḥ
timirāvṛtam ākāśaṃ cakrus te jaladās tadā //
gajā ivānye saṃsaktāḥ kecin makaravarcasaḥ
nāgā ivānye gagane cerur jaladapuṃgavāḥ //
te 'nyonyavapuṣā baddhā nāgayūthāyutopamāḥ
durdinaṃ vipulaṃ cakruś chādayanto nabhas talam //
nṛhastanāgahastānāṃ veṇūnāṃ caiva sarvaśaḥ
Note: k: For 12ab, M1-3 subst.: :ksthūlanāgoruhastānāṃ satataṃ sarvatodiśam |
dhārābhis tulyarūpābhir vavṛṣus te balāhakāḥ //
samudraṃ menire taṃ hi kham ārūḍhaṃ nṛcakṣuṣaḥ
durvigāhyam aparyantam agādhaṃ durdinaṃ mahat //
na saṃpatanti khagamā dudruvur mṛgajātayaḥ
parvatābheṣu megheṣu khe nadatsu samantataḥ //
suptasūryendusadṛśe meghair nabhasi dāruṇaih
ativṛṣṭena lokasya virūpam abhavad vapuḥ //
meghaughair niṣprabhākāram adṛśyagrahatārakam
candrasūryāṃśurahitaṃ khaṃ babhūvātiniṣprabham //
vāriṇā meghamuktena mucyamānena cāsakṛt
Note: k: After 17ab,D6 T1.2 G M ins.: :kmeghayuktena vātena ghūrṇitam viśvatomukham |
ābabhau sarvatas tatra bhūmis toyamayī yathā //
vinedur barhiṇas tatra stokakālparutāḥ khagāḥ
vivṛddhiṃ nimnagā yātāḥ plavagāḥ saṃplavaṃ gatāḥ //
garjitena ca meghānāṃ parjanyaninadena ca
tarjitānīva kampante tṛṇāni tarubhiḥ saha //
prāpto 'ntakālo lokānāṃ prāptā caikārṇavā mahī
iti gopagaṇā vākyaṃ vyāharanti bhayārditāḥ //
Note: k: After 20, all Mss. (except Ś1 Ñ1 M1-3) ins.: :k
tenotpātāmbuvarṣeṇa gāvo viprahatā bhṛśam |
hambhāravaiḥ krandamānā na celuḥ stambhitopamāḥ
niṣkampasakthiśravaṇā niṣprayatnakhurānanāḥ
hṛṣṭalomārdratanavaḥ kṣāmakukṣipayodharāḥ //
kāścit prāṇān jahuḥ śrāntā nipetuḥ kāścid āturāḥ
kāścit savatsāḥ patitā gāvaḥ śīkaravejitāḥ //
kāścid ākramya kroḍena vatsāṃś tiṣṭhanti mātaraḥ
vimukhāḥ śrāntasakthyaś ca nirāhārāḥ kṛśodarāḥ //
petur ārtā vepamānā gāvo varṣaparājitāḥ
vatsāś conmukhakā bālā dāmodara mukhāḥ sthitāḥ
trāhīti vadanair dīnaiḥ kṛṣṇam ūcur ivārtavat //
Note: k: After 24, T3 ins.: :k
gavāṃ paśya mahābāho vedanāṃ paramāturāḥ |
gavāṃ tatkadanaṃ dṛṣṭvā durdināgamajaṃ bhayam
gopāṃś cāsannavadanān kopaṃ kṛṣṇaḥ samādadhe //
Note: k: After 25c, T3 ins.: :k
gāś cāpi paramāturāḥ |
roṣatāmrekṣaṇaḥ śrīmān |
Note: k: After 25, D6,T1.3.4,G1-3,M4 ins.: :k
aho dhārṣṭyaṃ surapater mām anādṛtya saṃprati |
gavāṃ vadhaḥ kṛtas tasya gopānāṃ ca tathā kṛtaḥ |
sa cintayitvā saṃrabdho dṛṣṭo yogo gavām iti
ātmānam ātmanā vākyam idam āha priyaṃvadaḥ //
adyāham imam utpāṭya sakānanavanaṃ girim
kalpayeyaṃ gavāṃ sthānaṃ varṣatrāṇāya durdharam //
ayaṃ dhṛto mayā śailo bhūmīgṛhanibhopamaḥ
trāsyante savrajā gāvo madvaśyaś ca bhaviṣyati //
evaṃ sa cintayitvā tu viṣṇuḥ satyaparākramaḥ
Note: k: After 29ab, K4 ins.: :kity uktvaikena hastena kṛtvā govardhanācalam |
dadhāra līlayā kṛṣṇaś chatrākam iva bālakaḥ |
bāhvor balaṃ darśayiṣyan samīpaṃ taṃ mahīdharam
dorbhyāṃ utpāṭayāmāsa kṛṣṇo girir ivāparaḥ //
Note: k: After 29, D6 S ins.: :k
samūlaviṭapaskandhaś cacāla sa mahāgiriḥ |
ghaṇāghaṇakṛtaḥ śailaḥ saprāṇa iva niḥśvasan |
sa dhṛtaḥ saṃgato meghair giriḥ savyena pāṇinā
gṛhabhāvaṃ gatas tatra gṛhākāreṇa varcasā //
bhūmer utpāṭyamānasya tasya śailasya sānuṣu
śilāḥ praśithilāś celur niṣpetuś ca sapādapāḥ //
Note: k: After 31, D6,S ins.: :k
rakṣiṣyan godhanaṃ viṣṇur gopānāṃ gopatir hariḥ |
gomadhyasthitagovindo gopān rakṣan sagokulān ||
dadhāra godhanaṃ viṣṇur godharaṃ ca vilambayan |
gopān vismāpayan gopo gomārge saṃsthito hariḥ |
ādyaṃ vapuś ca gṛhṇāno lokānām īśvareśvaraḥ ||
vyarthaṃ cakāra govindo godharasya samīhitam |
govardhanasyāsya gireḥ khe khaṇāyitavigrahaḥ |
śikharair ghūṇamānaiś ca sīdamānaiś ca sarvataḥ
vidhṛtaiś cocchritaiḥ śṛṅgair agamaḥ khagamo 'bhavat //
calatprasravaṇaiḥ pārśvair meghaughair ekatāṃ gataiḥ
bhidyamānāśmanicayaś cacāla dharaṇīdharaḥ //
na meghānāṃ pravṛṣṭānāṃ na śailasyāśmavarṣiṇaḥ
Note: k: After 34ab, M1-3 ins.: :kvāyoś ca ghūrṇamānasya vidyutāṃ bhramatām api |
viṣṇutejobhibhūtānām adṛśyanta vapūṃṣi ca |
vividus te janā rūpaṃ vāyos tasya ca garjataḥ //
meghaiḥ śikharasaṃdhānair jalaprasravaṇānvitaiḥ
miśrīkṛta ivābhāti girir uddāmabarhiṇaḥ //
āpluto 'yaṃ giriḥ pakṣair iti vidyādharoragāḥ
gandharvaṛṣayaś caiva vāco muñcanti susvarāḥ //
sa kṛṣṇatalavinyasto muktamūlaḥ kṣites talāt
rītīr nirvartayāmāsa kāñcanāñ janarājatīḥ //
kānicic chāditānīva saṃkīrṇārdhāni kānicit
girer meghaṃ praviṣṭāni tasya śṛṅgāṇi cābhavan //
giriṇā kampyamānena kampitānāṃ tu śākhinām
puṣpam uccāvacaṃ bhūmau vyaśīryata samantataḥ //
niḥsṛtāḥ pṛthumūrdhānaḥ svastikārdhavibhūṣitāḥ
dvijihvapatayaḥ kruddhāḥ khecarāḥ khe samantataḥ //
ārtiṃ jagmuḥ khagagaṇā varṣeṇa ca bhayena ca
utpatyotpatya gaganāt punaḥ petur avāṅmukhāḥ //
rejuś cāroṣitāḥ siṃhāḥ sajalā iva toyadāḥ
gargarā iva mathyanto neduḥ śārdūlapuṃgavāḥ //
viṣamaiś ca samībhūtaiḥ samaiś cātyantadurgamaiḥ
vyāvṛttadehaḥ sa girī ramya evopalakṣyate //
abhivṛṣṭasya tair meghais tasya rūpaṃ babhūva ha
stambhitasyeva rudreṇa tripurasya vihāyasi //
bāhudaṇḍena kṛṣṇasya vidhṛtaṃ sumahat tadā
nīlābhrapaṭalac channaṃ tadgiricchatram ābabhau //
svapnāyamāno jaladair nimīlitaguhāmukhaḥ
bāhūpadhāne kṛṣṇasya prasupta iva khe giriḥ //
nirvihaṃgarutair vṛkṣair nirmayūrarutair vanaiḥ
nirālamba ivābhāti giriḥ sa śikharair vṛtaḥ //
paryastair ghūrṇamānaiś ca pracaladbhiś ca sānubhiḥ
sajvarāṇīva śailasya vanāni śikharāṇi ca //
uttamāṅgagatās tasya meghāḥ pavanavāhanāḥ
tvaryamāṇā mahendreṇa toyaṃ mumucur akṣayam //
sa lambamānaḥ kṛṣṇasya bhujāgre saghano giriḥ
cakrārūḍha ivābhāti deśo nṛpatipīḍitaḥ //
sa meghanicayas tasthau giriṃ taṃ parivārya ha
puraṃ puraskṛtya yathā sphīto janapado mahān //
niveśya taṃ kare śailaṃ tulayitvā ca sasmitam
provāca goptā gopānāṃ prajāpatir iva sthitaḥ //
etad devair asaṃbhāvyaṃ divyena vidhinā mayā
kṛtaṃ girigṛhaṃ gopā nivātaśaraṇaṃ gavām //
Note: k: After 53, K4 ins.: :k
na trāsa iha vaḥ kāryo maddhastād dhi nipātane |
vātavarṣabhayenālaṃ tattrāṇaṃ vihitaṃ hi vaḥ |
Note: k: = BhP 10,25.21 :k
kṣipraṃ viśantu yūthāni gavām iha hi śāntaye
nivāteṣu ca deśeṣu nivasantu yathāsukham
yathāvrajaṃ yathāyūthaṃ yathāsāraṃ ca vai sukham //
vibhajyatām ayaṃ deśaḥ kṛto varṣanivāraṇaḥ
śailotpāṭanabhūr eṣā mahatī nirmitā mayā
Note: k: After 55cd, Ds D5 Bom. Poona eds. ins.: :kyuthaśaś ca vibhajyātha vasadhvaṃ gopasattamāḥ |
pañcakrośapramāṇena krauśaikaṃ vistaro mahān |
trailokyam apy utsahate grasituṃ kiṃ punar vrajam //
tataḥ kilakilāśabdo gavāṃ hambhāravāśritaḥ
gopānāṃ tumulo jajñe meghanādaś ca bāhyataḥ //
praviśanti tato gāvo gopair yūthaprakalpitāḥ
tasya śailasya vipulaṃ pradaraṃ gahvarodaram //
kṛṣṇo 'pi mūle śailasya śailastambha ivocchritaḥ
dadhāraikena hastena śailaṃ priyam ivātithim //
tato vrajasya bhāṇḍāni yuktāni śakaṭāni ca
viviśur varṣabhītāni tad gṛhaṃ girinirmitam //
atidaivaṃ tu kṛṣṇasya dṛṣṭvā tat karma vajrabhṛt
mithyāpratijño jaladān vārayāmāsa vai vibhuḥ //
saptarātre tu nirvṛtte dharaṇyāṃ vigatotsave
jagāma saṃvṛto meghair vṛtrahā svargam uttamam //
nivṛtte saptarātre tu tiṣye skanne śatakratau
gatābhre vimale vyomni divase dīptabhāskare //
gāvas tenaiva mārgeṇa parijagmur gataśramāḥ
khaṃ ca sthānaṃ tato ghoṣaḥ pratyayāt punar eva saḥ //
kṛṣṇo 'pi taṃ giriśreṣṭhaṃ svasthāne sthāvarātmavān
prīto niveśayāmāsa dhruvāya varado vibhuḥ //
Note: h: HV (CE) ch. 62, transliterated and collated with ViP and BrP by Utz Podzeit, extracted from the collation and edited by Peter Schreiner; March 4, 2002. Not yet proof-read. :h
dhṛtaṃ govardhanaṃ dṛṣṭvā paritrātaṃ ca gokulam
kṛṣṇasya darśanaṃ śakro rocayāmāsa vismitaḥ //
sa nirjalāmbudākāraṃ mattaṃ madajalokṣitam
āruhyairāvataṃ nāgam ajagāma mahītalam //
sa dadarśopaviṣṭaṃ vai govardhanaśilātale
kṛṣṇam akliṣṭakarmāṇaṃ puruhūtaḥ puraṃdaraḥ //
taṃ dṛśya bālaṃ mahatā tejasā dīptam avyayam
gopaviṣadharaṃ viṣṇuṃ parijajñe puraṃdaraḥ //
tālastambhavanaśyāmaṃ sa taṃ śrīvatsalakṣaṇam
paryāptanayanaḥ śakraḥ sarvair netrair udaikṣata //
dṛṣṭvā cainaṃ śriyā juṣṭaṃ martyaloke 'maropamam
Note: k: After 6ab, D6,T1.2,G,M4 ins.: :ksurāṇāṃ kāryasiddhyarthaṃ nityaṃ karmasu niṣṭhitam |
sūpaviṣṭaṃ śilāpṛṣṭe śakraḥ sa vrīḍito 'bhavat //
tasyopaviṣṭasya sukham pakṣābhyāṃ pakṣipuṃgavaḥ
antardhānagataś chāyām cakāroragabhojanaḥ //
Note: k: After 7, D6,S (except T3.4,) ins.: :k
chāyayā ca tayā yuktaṃ keśavaṃ yajñarūpiṇam |
taṃ vivikte nagagataṃ lokavṛttāntatatparam
upatasthe gajaṃ hitvā kṛṣṇaṃ balaniṣūdanaḥ //
sa samīpagatas tasya divyasraganulepanaḥ
rarāja devarājo vai vajrapūrṇakaraḥ prabhuḥ //
kirīteṇārkavarṇena vidyudvidyotakāriṇā
Note: k: N (except Ś1),T,G1-3.5,M4 ins. after 10ab; G4 after 8: :kkuṇḍalābhyāṃ sa divyābhyāṃ satataṃ śobhitānanaḥ |
pañcastabakalambena devabhūṣaṇabhūṣitaḥ ||
sahasrapatrakāntena dehabhūṣaṇakāriṇā |
īkṣamāṇaḥ sahasreṇa netrāṇāṃ kāmarūpiṇām |
tridaśājñāpanārthena meghanirghoṣakāriṇā |
Note: k: D6,T,G,M4 ins. after line 4; M1-3 after 10ab: :kpraṇāma akaroc chakraḥ kṣantavyam iti cābravīt |
tuṣṭāva ca hariṃ viṣṇuṃ gopaveṣavibhūṣitam ||
namas te devadeveśa bhūtabhāvanabhāvana |
hiraṇyaretase tubhyaṃ namaḥ somapradāyine ||
namo vedaikatattvārtha tannibodhana bodhana |
namaḥ praṇavavācyāya vācakāya namo namaḥ ||
namas te viśvarūpāya namo lokahitāya te |
namo gopavirūpāya namo godharadhāriṇe ||
namaḥ purāṇarūpāya namas te madhusūdana ||
kiṃ vānena jagannātha namaskāreṇa keśava |
yā yās tu devadevasya mūrtayo mūrtimattara |
namas tābhyas tathā viṣṇo sarvābhyaḥ sarvakāmada ||
kṣantavyaṃ mama deveśa kṛtaṃ gopālanandana |
ajñānād etha vā jñānād roṣād vā yadunandana ||
samartheṣv asamartheṣu roṣaḥ prasphurati prabho |
na kenacid bhavāñ śāsyaḥ śāstā sarvasya vai prabho ||
tvannimittam idaṃ sarvam aindraṃ mama sudurlabham |
tvatprasādaj jagannātha devānām īśvaro yataḥ ||
tataś ca devadeveśa kṣantavyaṃ dāsa ity aham |
ity uktvātha punar vākyaṃ vyājahāra śacīpatiḥ ||
kṛṣṇaṃ kamalapatrākṣam abālaṃ bālarūpiṇam |
atasīpuṣpasaṃkāśaṃ śrīvatsakṛtalakṣaṇam |
upaviṣṭaṃ śilāpṛṣṭhe kṛtvā karmātimānuṣam ||
na hi dāseṣu kopo 'sti svāmināṃ svāmisattama |
atha divyena madhuram vyājahāra svareṇa tam //
kṛṣṇa kṛṣṇa mahābāho jñātīnāṃ nandivardhana
atidaivaṃ kṛtaṃ karma tvayā prītimatā gavām //
mayā sṛṣṭeṣu megheṣu yugāntāvartakāriṣu
yat tvayā rakṣitā gāvas tenāsmi paritoṣitaḥ //
svāyaṃbhuvena yogena yac cāyaṃ parvatottamaḥ
dhṛto veśma ivākāśe ko hy etena na vismayet //
pratiṣiddhe mama mahe mayeyaṃ ruṣitena vai
ativṛṣṭiḥ kṛtā kṛṣṇa gavāṃ vai saptarātrikī //
sā tvayā pratiṣiddheyaṃ meghavṛṣṭir durāsadā
devaiḥ sadānavagaṇair durnivāryā mayi sthite //
aho me supriyaṃ kṛṣṇa yat tvaṃ mānuṣadehavān
samagraṃ vaiṣṇavaṃ tejo vinigūhasi roṣitaḥ //
sādhitaṃ devatānāṃ hi manye 'haṃ kāryam avyayam
tvayi mānuṣyam āpanne yuktenaivaṃ svatejasā //
setsyate vīra kāryārtho na kiṃcit parihāsyate
devānām yad bhavān netā sarvakāryapurogamaḥ //
ekas tvam asi lokānāṃ devānāṃ ca sanātanaḥ
dvitīyaṃ nānupaśyāmi dhuraṃ yas te samudvahet //
yathā hi puṃgavaḥ śreṣṭho magne dhuri niyujyate
evaṃ tvam asi devānāṃ magnānāṃ dvijavāhana //
tvaccharīragataṃ kṛṣṇa jagatpraharaṇaṃ tv idam
brahmaṇā sādhu nirdiṣṭaṃ dhātubhya iva kāñcanam //
svayaṃ svayaṃbhūr bhagavān buddhyātha vayasāpi vā
na tvānugantuṃ śakto vai paṅgur drutagatiṃ yathā //
stāṇubhyo himavāñ śreṣṭho hradānāṃ varuṇālayaḥ
garutmān pakṣiṇāṃ śreṣṭho devatānāṃ bhavān varaḥ //
apām adhastāl loko vai tasyopari mahīdharāḥ
nāgānām upariṣṭād bhūḥ pṛthivyupari mānuṣāḥ //
manuṣyalokād ūrdhvaṃ tu khagānāṃ gatir ucyate
ākāśasyopari ravir dvāraṃ svargasya bhānumān //
devalokaḥ paras tasmād vimānagahano mahān
yatrāhaṃ kṛṣṇa devānām aindre vinihitaḥ pade //
Note: k: After 26, D6,T1.2,G,M ins.: :k
tvayā hi lokanāthena viṣṇunā prabhaviṣṇunā |
svargād ūrdhvaṃ brahmaloko brahmarṣigaṇasevitaḥ
tatra somagatiś caiva jyotiṣāṃ ca mahātmanām //
tasyopari gavāṃ lokaḥ sādhyās taṃ pālayanti hi
sa hi sarvagataḥ kṛṣṇa mahākāśagato mahān //
uparyupari tatrāpi gatis tava tapomayī
yāṃ na vidmo vayaṃ sarve pṛcchanto 'pi pitāmaham //
Note: k: After 29, D6,S (except T4) ins.: :k
pitāmaho 'pi bhagavāṃs tvatprasādād yadṛcchayā |
yāṃ yoganiratā viṣṇo bhajante brahmavādinaḥ |
lokas tv arvāg duṣkṛtināṃ nāgalokas tu dāruṇaḥ
pṛthivī karmaśīlānāṃ kṣetraṃ sarvasya karmaṇaḥ //
kham asthirāṇāṃ viṣayo vāyunā tulyavṛttinām
gatiḥ śamadamāḍhyānāṃ svargaḥ sukṛtakarmaṇām //
brāhme tapasi yuktānāṃ brahmalokaḥ parā gatiḥ
gavām eva hi goloko durārohā hi sā gatiḥ //
sa tu lokas tvayā kṛṣṇa sīdamānaḥ kṛtātmanā
dhṛto dhṛtimatā vīra nighnatopadravaṃ gavām //
tad ahaṃ samanuprāpto gavāṃ vākyena coditaḥ
brahmanaś ca mahābhāga gauravāt tava cāgataḥ //
ahaṃ bhūtapatiḥ kṛṣṇa devarājaḥ puraṃdaraḥ
aditer garbhaparyāye pūrvajas te purātanaḥ //
tejas tejasvinaś caiva yat te darśitavān aham
megharūpeṇa tat sarvaṃ kṣantum arhasi me vibho //
evaṃ kṣāntamanāḥ kṛṣṇa svena saumyena tejasā
brahmaṇaḥ śṛṇu me vākyaṃ gavāṃ ca gajavikrama //
āha tvā bhagavān brahmā gāvaś cākāśagā divi
karmabhis toṣitā divyais tava saṃrakṣaṇādibhiḥ //
bhavatā rakṣitā gāvo gobhir lokāś ca rakṣitāḥ
yad vayaṃ puṃgavaiḥ sārdhaṃ vardhāmaḥ prasavais tathā //
karṣakān puṃgavair vāhyair medhyena haviṣā surān
śriyaṃ śakṛtpavitreṇa tarpayiṣyāma kāmagāḥ //
tad asmākaṃ gurus tvaṃ hi prāṇadaś ca mahābala
adyaprabhṛti no rājā tvam indro vai bhaviṣyasi //
tasmāt tvaṃ kāñcanaiḥ pūrṇair divyasya payaso ghaṭaiḥ
ebhis tvam abhiṣicyasva mayā hastāvanāmitaiḥ //
ahaṃ kilendro devānāṃ tvaṃ gavām indratāṃ gataḥ
govinda iti lokās tvāṃ stoṣyanti bhuvi śāśvatam //
mamopari yathendras tvam sthāpito gobhir īśvaraḥ
upendra iti kṛṣṇa tvām gāsyanti divi devatāḥ //
ye ceme vārṣikā māsāś catvāro vihitā mama
eṣām ardhaṃ prayacchāmi śaratkālaṃ tu paścimam //
varṣārdhe ca dhvajo nityaṃ tataḥ pūjām avāpsyati
mamāmbuprabhavaṃ darpaṃ tadā tyakṣyanti barhinaḥ //
alpavīryamadāś caiva ye cānye meghanādinaḥ
śāntiṃ sarve gamiṣyanti jalakālavicāriṇaḥ //
triśaṅkvagastyacaritām āśāṃ ca vicariṣyati
sahasraraśmir ādityas tāpayan svena tejasā //
tataḥ śaradi yuktānāṃ maunamūkeṣu barhiṣu
yāvat sukhatarais toyair vipluteṣu pluteṣu ca //
Note: k: N (except Ś,Ñ1),T2-4,G,M4 ins. after 49; T1 after 52ab: :k
haṃsasārasapūrṇeṣu nadīnāṃ pulineṣu ca |
mattakrauñcapraṇādeṣu matteṣu vṛṣabheṣu ca
goṣu caiva prahṛṣṭāsu kṣarantīṣu payo bahu //
nivṛtteṣu ca megheṣu niryātya jagato jalam
ākāśe śastrasaṃkāśe haṃseṣu vicaratsu ca //
jātapadmeṣu toyeṣu vāpīṣu ca saritsu ca
Note: k: K1.2,Ñ,V,B,D,T2-4,G1.3-5,M4 ins. after 52ab; Ś1 after 51: :ktaḍāgeṣu ca kānteṣu toyeṣu vimaleṣu ca |
kalamāvanatāgrāsu pakvakedārapaṅktiṣu //
madhyasthaṃ salilārambhaṃ kurvantīṣu nadīṣu ca
sasasyāyāṃ ca sīmāyāṃ manoharyāṃ muner api //
pṛthivyāṃ pṛthurāṣṭrāyāṃ ramāyāṃ varṣasaṃkṣaye
śrāmatsu paṅktimārgeṣu phalavatsu tṛṇeṣu ca
ikṣumatsu ca deśeṣu pravṛtteṣu makheṣu ca //
tataḥ pravartsyate puṇyā śaratsuptotthite tvayi
loke 'smin kṛṣṇa nikhile yathaiva tridive tathā //
narās tvāṃ caiva māṃ caiva dhvajākārāsu yaṣṭiṣu
mahendraś cāpy upendraś ca mahīyetāṃ mahītale //
ye cāvayoḥ sthitā vṛtte mahendropendrasaṃjñite
mānavāḥ praṇamiṣyanti teṣāṃ nāsty anayāgamaḥ //
Note: k: After 57, T2 ins.: :k
svargalokādayānīya maṇipīṭhaṃ surādhipaḥ |
niveśya kṛṣṇaṃ ratnaiḥ prāṅ+ +muktādyair abhiṣecayat |
kṛtvā nīrājanaṃ divyair alaṃkṛtya ca bhūṣaṇaiḥ |
tataḥ śakras tu tān gṛhya ghaṭān divyapayodharān
abhiṣekeṇa govindaṃ yojayāmāsa yogavit //
dṛṣṭvā tam abhiṣicyantaṃ gāvas tāḥ saha yūthapaiḥ
stanaiḥ prasnavasaṃyuktaiḥ siṣicuḥ kṛṣṇam avyayam //
meghāś ca divi muktābhiḥ sāmṛtābhiḥ samantataḥ
siṣicus toyadhārābhir abhiṣicyantam avyayam //
vanaspatīnāṃ sarveṣāṃ susrāvendunibhaṃ payaḥ
vavarṣuḥ puṣpavarṣaṃ ca nedus tūryāṇi cāmbare //
stuvanti munayaḥ sarve vāgbhir mantraparāyaṇāḥ
Note: k: After 62ab, D6,S ins.: :kvasiṣṭho vāmadevaś ca jābālir atha kāśyapaḥ |
viśvāmitro bharadvājaḥ kaṇvo 'trir bhagavān prabhuḥ |
ete ca munayaḥ sarve siddhāś ca paramarṣayaḥ |
ekārṇavavimuktaṃ ca dadhāra vasudhā vapuḥ //
prasādaṃ sāgarā jagmur vavur vātā jagaddhitāḥ
ītayaḥ praśamaṃ jagmur jagmur nirvairatāṃ nṛpāḥ //
Note: k: After 63, K4 ins.: :k
kṛṣṇe 'bhiṣita etāni sarvāṇi kurunandana |
nirvairāṇyabhavaṃs tāta krūrāṇy api nisargataḥ |
mārgastho vibabhau bhānuḥ somo yogena saṃgataḥ
pravālapuṣpaśabalāḥ phalavantaś ca pādapāḥ //
madaṃ prasusruvur nāgā yātās toṣaṃ vane mṛgāḥ
alaṃkṛtā gātraruhair vātubhir bhānti parvatāḥ //
devalokopamo lokas tṛpto 'mṛtasutarpitaḥ
āsīt kṛṣṇābhiṣeke hi divyasvargarasokṣitaḥ //
abhiṣiktaṃ tu taṃ gobhiḥ śakro govindam avyayam
divyaśuklāmbaradharam devarājo 'bravīd idam //
eṣa me prathamaḥ kṛṣṇa niyogo goṣu yaḥ kṛtaḥ
śrūyatāmaparaṃ cāpi mamāgamanakāraṇam //
kṣipraṃ saṃsādhyatāṃ kaṃsaḥ keśī ca turagādhamaḥ
ariṣṭaś ca madāviṣṭo rājarājyaṃ tataḥ kuru //
pitṛṣvasari jātas te mamāṃśo 'ham iva sthitaḥ
sa te rakṣyaś ca mānyaś ca sakhye ca viniyujyatām //
tvayā hy anugṛhītaḥ sa tava vṛttānuvartakaḥ
tvadvaśe vartamānaḥ sa prāpsyate vipulaṃ yaśaḥ //
bhāratasya ca vaṃśasya sa variṣṭho dhanurdharaḥ
bhaviṣyaty anurūpaś ca tvām ṛte na ca raṃsyate //
bhārataṃ tvayi cāsaktaṃ tasmiṃś ca puruṣottame
ubhābhyām api saṃyoge yāsyanti nidhanaṃ nṛpāḥ //
pratijñātaṃ ca me kṛṣṇa ṛṣimadhye sureṣu ca
mama putro 'rjuno nāma jātaḥ kuntyāṃ kurūdvahaḥ //
so 'strāṇāṃ pāratantrajñaḥ śreṣṭhaś cāpavikarṣaṇe
taṃ pravekṣyanti vai sarve rājānaḥ śastrayodhinaḥ //
akṣauhiṇyaś ca śūrāṇāṃ rājñāṃ saṃgrāmaśālinām
samare rājadharmeṇa yojayiṣyanti mṛtyunā //
tasyāstracaritaṃ mārgaṃ dhanuṣo lāghavena ca
nānuyāsyanti rājāno devā vā tvāṃ vinā prabho //
sa te bandhuḥ sahāyaś ca saṃgrāmeṣu bhaviṣyati
tasya yogo vidhātavyas tvayā govinda matkṛte //
draṣṭavyaḥ sa yathāhaṃ vai tvayā mānyaś ca nityaśaḥ
jñātā tvam eva lokānām arjunasya ca nityaśaḥ //
tvayā hi nityaṃ rakṣyaḥ sa āhaveṣu mahatsu ca
rakṣitasya tvayā tasya na mṛtyuḥ prabhaviṣyati //
arjunaṃ viddhi māṃ kṛṣṇa māṃ caivātmānam ātmanā
ātmā te 'haṃ yathā śaśvat tathaiva tava so 'rjuna //
tvayā lokān imāñ jitvā baler hastāt tribhiḥ kramaiḥ
devatānāṃ kṛto rājā purā jyeṣṭhakramād aham //
tvāṃ ca satyamayaṃ jñātvā satyeṣṭaṃ satyavikramam
satyenopetya devā vai yojayanti ripukṣaye //
so 'rjuno nāma me putraḥ pitus te bhaginīsutaḥ
iha sauhṛdatāṃ yātu bhūtvā sahacaraḥ purā //
tasya te yudhyataḥ kṛṣṇa svasthāne 'tha gṛhe 'pi vā
voḍhavyā puṃgaveneva dhūḥ sarvā raṇavāhinī //
kaṃse vinihate kṛṣṇa tvayā bhāvyarthadarśinā
abhitas tan mahadyuddhaṃ bhaviṣyati mahīkṣitām //
tatra teṣāṃ nṛvīrāṇām atimānuṣakarmaṇām
vijayasyārjuno bhoktā yaśasā tvaṃ tu yokṣyase //
etan me kṛṣṇa kārtsnyena kartum arhasi bhāṣitam
yady ahaṃ te surāś caiva satyaṃ ca priyam acyuta //
śakrasya vacanaṃ śrutvā kṛṣṇo govindatāṃ gataḥ
prītena manasā yuktaḥ prativākyaṃ jagāda ha //
prīto 'smi darśanād eva tava śakra śacīpate
yat tvayābhihitaṃ cedaṃ na kiṃcit parihāsyate //
jānāmi bhavato bhāvaṃ jānāmy arjunasaṃbhavam
jāne pitṛṣvasā dattā pāṇḍor vasumatīpateḥ //
yudhiṣṭhiraṃ ca jānāmi kumāraṃ dharmanirmitam
bhīmasenaṃ ca jānāmi vāyoḥ saṃtānajāṃ tanum //
Note: k: After 92, T4 ins.: :k
nāgāyutasamaprāṇam anekāsuramardanam |
aśvibhyāṃ sādhu jānāmi sṛṣṭaṃ putradvayaṃ śubham
nakulaṃ sahadevaṃ ca mādryāḥ kukṣibhavāv ubhau //
kānīnaṃ cāpi jānāmi savituḥ prathamaṃ sutam
pitṛṣvasari karṇaṃ vai prasūtaṃ sūtatāṃ gatam //
dhārtarāṣṭrāś ca me sarve viditā yuddhakāṅkṣiṇaḥ
Note: k: After 95ab, V2,B1 ins.: :kduryodhanamukhāḥ śakra kauravāṇāṃ mahābalāḥ |
pāṇḍor uparamaṃ caiva śāpāśaninipātajam //
tad gaccha tridivaṃ śakra sukhāya tridivaukasām
nārjunasya ripuḥ kaścin mamāgre prabhaviṣyati //
arjunārthe ca tān sarvān pāṇḍavān akṣatān yudhi
kuntyā niryātayiṣyāmi nivṛtte bhārate mṛdhe //
yac ca vakṣyati māṃ śakra tanūjas tava so 'rjunaḥ
bhṛtyavat tat kariṣyāmi tava snehena yantritaḥ //
satyasaṃdhasya tac chrutvā priyaṃ prītasya bhāṣitam
Note: k: After 99ab D6,S ins.: :kpraṇamya devadevasya mūrdhnā śakraḥ padāmbujam |
kṛṣṇasya sākṣāt tridivaṃ jagāma tridaśeśvaraḥ //
Note: k: After 99 D6,T2,G,M4 ins.: :k
etad ākhyānam āyuṣyāṃ puṇyaṃ pāpaprāṇāśanam |
parjanyaprītijanakam avagrahanivārakam |
sarvasaukhyapriyakaraṃ devaguhyam anuttamam |
Note: h: HV (CE) ch. 63, transliterated and collated with ViP and BrP by Utz Podzeit, extracted from the collation and edited by Peter Schreiner; March 4, 2002. Not yet proof-read. :h
gate śakre tataḥ kṛṣṇaḥ pūjyamāno vrajaukasaiḥ
govardhanadharaḥ śrīmān viveśa vrajam eva ha //
taṃ sma vṛddhābhinandanti jñātayaś ca sahoṣitāḥ
dhanyāḥ smo 'nugṛhītāḥ smas tvaddhṛtena nagena ha //
gāvo varṣabhayāt tīrṇā vayaṃ tīrṇā mahābhayāt
tava prasādād govinda devatulya mahādyute //
amānuṣāṇi karmāṇi tava paśyāma gopate
dhāraṇenāsya śailasya vidmas tvāṃ kṛṣṇam avyayam //
kas tvaṃ bhavasi rudrāṇāṃ marutāṃ vā mahābala
vasūnāṃ vā kimarthaṃ ca vasudevaḥ pitā tava //
vane ca bālakrīḍā te janma cāsmāsu garhitam
kṛṣṇa divyā ca te ceṣṭā śaṅkitāni manāṃsi naḥ //
kimarthaṃ gopaveṣeṇa ramase 'smāsu garhitam
lokapālopamaś caiva gās tvaṃ kiṃ parirakṣasi //
devo vā dānavo vā tvam yakṣo gandharva eva vā
asmākaṃ bāndhavo jāto yo 'si so 'si namo 'stu te //
Note: k: After 8, D6,S ins.: :k
namo 'stu kṛṣṇa kṛṣṇeti namo gopālabandhave |
namo bālāya goptre ca gopaveṣāya bāndhava ||
namas te śiśusiṃhāya namo bhūdharadhāriṇe |
devāyātha variṣṭhāya yakṣāya ca namo namaḥ ||
namas te nandaputrāya yaśodāyāḥ sutāya ca |
ko bhavān kaś ca vā devaḥ kimarthaṃ no 'bhirakṣasi |
kenacid yadi kāryeṇa vasasi*iha yadṛcchayā
vayaṃ* tava*anugāḥ sarve bhavantaṃ* śaraṇaṃ* gatāḥ //
gopānāṃ* vacanaṃ* śrutvā kṛṣṇaḥ padmanibhekṣaṇaḥ
pratyuvāca smitaṃ* kṛtvā jñātīn sarvān samāgatān //
yathā manyanti māṃ sarve bhavanto bhīmavikramāḥ
tathāhaṃ nāvagantavyaḥ svajātīyo 'smi bāndhavaḥ //
yadi tv avaśyaṃ śrotavyaḥ kālaḥ saṃpratipālyatām
tato bhavantaḥ śroṣyanti māṃ ca drakṣyanti tattvataḥ //
yady ahaṃ bhavatāṃ ślāghyo bāndhavo devasaprabhaḥ
parijñānena kiṃ kāryam yady eṣo 'nugraho mama //
evam uktās tu te gopā vasudevasutena vai
baddhamaunā diśaḥ sarve bhejire pihitānanāḥ //
kṛṣṇas tu yauvanaṃ dṛṣṭvā niśi candramaso navam
śāradīnāṃ niśānāṃ ca manaś cakre ratiṃ prati //
sa karīṣāṅgarāgāsu vrajarathyāsu vīryavān
vṛṣāṇāṃ jātarāgāṇāṃ yuddhāni samayojayat //
gopālāṃś ca balodagrān yodhayām āsa vīryavān
vane sa vīro gāś caiva jagrāha grāhavad vibhuḥ //
yuvatyo gopakanyāś ca rātrau saṃkālya kālavit
kaiśorakaṃ mānayānaḥ saha tābhir mumoda ha //
tās tasya vadanaṃ kāntaṃ kāntā gopastriyo niśi
pibanti nayanākṣepair gāṃ gataṃ śaśinaṃ yathā //
haritālārdrapītena kauśeyena ca bhāsvatā
bhadravastreṇa vasitaḥ kṛṣṇaḥ kāntataro 'bhavat //
sa baddhāṅgadaniryūhaś citrayā vanamālayā
śobhamāno hi govindaḥ śobhayām āsa taṃ vrajam //
namo dāmodarāyeti gopakanyās tadābruvan
vicitraṃ caritaṃ ghoṣe dṛṣṭvā tat tasya bhāsvataḥ //
Note: k: After 22, D6,S ins.: :k
namas te kṛṣṇa gopeti prasīda prabhaveti ca |
tās taṃ payodharottānair urobhiḥ samapīḍayan
bhrāmitākṣaiś ca vadanair nirīkṣante varāṅganāḥ //
tā vāryamānāḥ pitṛbhir bhrātṛbhir mātṛbhis tathā
kṛṣṇaṃ gopāṅganā rātrau mṛgayanti ratipriyāḥ //
tās tu paṅktīkṛtāḥ sarvā* ramayanti manoramam
gāyantyaḥ kṛṣṇacaritaṃ* dvaṃdvaśo gopakanyakāḥ //
kṛṣṇalīlānukāriṇyaḥ kṛṣṇapraṇihitekṣaṇāḥ
kṛṣṇasya gatigāminyas taruṇyas tā varāṅganāḥ //
vaneṣu tālahastāgraiḥ kuṭṭayantyas tathāparāḥ
cerur vai caritaṃ tasya kṛṣṇasya vrajayoṣitaḥ //
tās tasya nṛtyaṃ gītaṃ ca vilāsasmitavīkṣitam
muditāś cānukurvantyaḥ krīḍanti vrajayoṣitaḥ //
bhāvaniṣpannamadhuraṃ gāyantyas tā varāṅganāḥ
vrajaṃ gatāḥ sukhaṃ cerur dāmodaraparāyaṇāḥ //
Note: k: For 29cd, D2 subst.: :k
cerur dāmodaraparāḥ sukhaṃ nāryo vrajaṃ gatāḥ |
karīṣapāṃsudigdhāṅgyas tāḥ kṛṣṇam anuvavrire
ramayantyo yathā nāgaṃ sapramodāḥ kareṇavaḥ //
tam anyā bhāvavikacair netraiḥ prahasitānanāḥ
pibanty atṛptā vanitāḥ kṛṣṇaṃ kṛṣṇamṛgekṣaṇāḥ //
mukham asyāparā vīkṣya tṛṣitā gopakanyakāḥ
ratyantaragatā rātrau pibanti ratilālasāḥ //
hāheti kurvatas tasya prahṛṣṭās tā varāṅganāḥ
jagṛhur niḥsṛtāṃ vāṇīṃ sāmnā dāmodareritām //
tāsāṃ grathitasīmantā raticintākulīkṛtāḥ
cāru visraṃsire keśāḥ kucāgre gopayoṣitām //
Note: k: D6,T,G,M4,G(ed.) ins. after 34; M1-3 subst. for 33-34: :k
atha dāmodaraḥ kāścij jagrāha ratilālasaḥ ||
evaṃ gopāṅganāḥ kṛṣṇaṃ ramayanti manoramāḥ |
alaṃkṛtāḥ sumadhuraṃ gāyantyo madhuvihvalāḥ ||
kṛṣṇo 'pi madhuraktākṣo gopīnāṃ harṣavardhanaḥ |
papau tāsāṃ mukhaṃ viṣṇur ghūrṇayan netraṣaṭpadam ||
aparāṃ vāsasī gṛhya cucumbe gopakanyakām |
āliliṅge 'tha kāṃcit tu kṛṣṇo madavilocanaḥ ||
anyayā saha govindaḥ śete līlāvidhānavit |
anyasyā vāsasī gṛhya dṛṣṭvā cāru papau mukham |
anyāṃ lilekha govindo nakhaiḥ śātaiś ca keśavaḥ ||
anyāṃ ca keśe saṃgṛhya mukham unnamya līlayā |
āliliṅge 'tha govindo gopaveṣatiraskṛtaḥ ||
ekāṃ saṃgṛhya saṃtyajya kāṃcid anyām avāsṛjat |
paśyantyā ramayām āsa kāṃcid anyām arīramat ||
āhūya kāṃcid deveśaḥ kāṃcid anyām arīramat |
tāṃ punaḥ sahasā gṛhya tatsamakṣam arīramat ||
tāś ca gopyaḥ svabhartṛṃś ca saṃtyajya harim eva ha |
ayam eva hi no jyeṣṭhaḥ śreṣṭhaś ceti varāṅganāḥ |
kṛṣṇe ca devadeveśe paraṃ bhāvaṃ samāyayuḥ |
evaṃ sa kṛṣṇo gopīnāṃ cakravālair alaṃkṛtaḥ
śāradīṣu sacandrāsu niśāsu mumude sukhī //
Note: h: HV (CE) ch. 64, transliterated and collated with ViP and BrP by Utz Podzeit, extracted from the collation and edited by Peter Schreiner; March 4, 2002. Not yet proof-read. :h
pradoṣārdhe kadācit tu kṛṣṇe ratiparāyaṇe
trāsayan samado goṣṭhān ariṣṭaḥ pratyadṛśyata //
nirvāṇāṅgārameghābhas tīkṣṇaśṛṅgo'rkalocanaḥ
kṣuratīkṣṇāgracaraṇaḥ kālaḥ kāla ivāparaḥ //
lelihānaḥ saniṣpeṣaṃ jihvayauṣṭhau punaḥ punaḥ
garvitāviddhalāṅgūlaḥ kaṭhinaskandhabandhanaḥ //
kakudodagranirmāṇaḥ pramāṇād duratikramaḥ
śakṛnmūtropaliptāṅgo gavām udvejano bhṛśam //
mahākaṭiḥ sthūlamukho dṛḍhajānur mahodaraḥ
viṣāṇāvalgitagatir lambatā kaṇṭhacarmaṇā //
gavāroheṣu capalas tarughātaṅkitānanaḥ
yuddhasañjaviṣāṇāgro dviṣadvṛṣabhasūdanaḥ //
ariṣṭo nāma hi gavām ariṣṭo dāruṇākṛtiḥ
daityo vṛṣabharūpeṇa goṣṭhān viparidhāvati //
pātayāno gavāṃ garbhān dṛpto gacchaty anārtavam
bhajamānaś ca capalo gṛṣṭīḥ saṃpracacāra ha //
śṛṅgapraharaṇo raudraḥ praharan goṣu durmadaḥ
goṣṭheṣu na ratiṃ lebhe vinā yuddhaṃ sa govṛṣaḥ //
Note: k: 9 After 9, K1.2,D2-4 ins.: :k
kasyacit tv atha kālasya sa vṛṣaḥ keśavāgrataḥ |
ājagāma balodragro vaivasvatavaśe sthitaḥ |
Note: k: K1,D2-4 cont.; K3.4,Ñ,V,B,Dns,D1.5.6,T,G,M4 ins. after 9: :k
sa tatra gās tu prasabhaṃ bādhamāno madotkaṭaḥ |
etasminn eva kāle tu gavāḥ kṛṣṇasamīpagāḥ
trāsayāmāsa duṣṭātmā vaivasvata pathe sthitaḥ //
sendrāśanir ivāmbhodo nardamāno mahāvṛṣaḥ
cakāra nirvṛṣaṃ goṣṭhaṃ nirvatsaśiśupuṃgavam //
Note: k: V2,B1,D4,T2,G1,M ins. after 11; D6,T1,G2.3.5 after the second occurrence of 11cd: :k
tam ārād abhidhāvantaṃ nardamānaṃ mahāvṛṣam |
tālaśabdena taṃ kṛṣṇaḥ siṃhanādaiś ca mohayan
abhyadhāvata govindo daityaṃ vṛṣabharūpiṇam //
sa kṛṣṇaṃ govṛṣo dṛṣṭvā hṛṣṭalāṅgūlalocanaḥ
ruṣitas talaśabdena yuddhākāṅkṣī nanarda ha //
tam āpatantam udvṛttam dṛṣṭvā vṛṣabhadānavam
tasmāt sthānān na vyacalat kṛṣṇo girir ivācalaḥ //
vṛṣaḥ kakṣayor dṛṣṭiṃ praṇidhāya dhṛtānanaḥ
kṛṣṇasya nidhanākāṅkṣī tūrṇam abhyutpapāta ha //
tam āpatantaṃ pramukhe pratijagrāha durdharam
kṛṣṇaḥ kṛṣṇāñjananibhaṃ vṛṣaṃ prati vṛṣopamaḥ //
sa saṃsaktas tu kṛṣṇena vṛṣeṇeva mahāvṛṣaḥ
mumoca vaktrajaṃ phenaṃ nastato 'tha sa śabdavat //
tāv anyonyāv aruddhāṅgau yuddhe kṛṣṇavṛṣāv ubhau
rejatur meghasamaye saṃsaktāv iva toyadau //
tasya darpabalaṃ hatvā kṛtvā śṛṅgāntare padam
apīḍayad ariṣṭasya kaṇṭhaṃ klinnam ivāmbaram //
śṛṅgaṃ cāsya punaḥ savyam utpāṭya yamadaṇḍavat
tenaiva prāharad vaktre sa mamāra bhṛśaṃ hataḥ //
vibhinnaśṛṅgo bhagnāsyo bhagnaskandhaś ca dānavaḥ
papāta rudhirodgārī sāmbudhāra ivāmbudaḥ //
govindena hataṃ dṛṣṭvā dṛptaṃ vṛṣabhadānavam
sādhu sādhv iti bhūtāni tatkarmāsyābhituṣṭuvuḥ //
sa copendro vṛṣaṃ hatvā kāntavaktro niśāmukhe
aravindābhanayanaḥ punar eva rarāja ha //
te 'pi govṛttayaḥ sarve kṛṣṇaṃ kamalalocanam
upāsāṃcakrire hṛṣṭāḥ svarge śakram ivāmarāḥ //
Note: h: HV (CE) ch. 65, transliterated and collated with ViP and BrP by Utz Podzeit, extracted from the collation and edited by Peter Schreiner; March 4, 2002. Not yet proof-read. :h
kṛṣṇaṃ vrajagataṃ śrutvā vardhamānam ivānalam
udvegam agamat kaṃsaḥ śaṅkamānas tato bhayam //
pūtanāyāṃ hatāyāṃ ca kāliye ca parājite
dhenuke pralayaṃ nīte pralambe ca nipātite //
dhṛte govardhane caiva viphale śakraśāsane
goṣu trātāsu ca tathā spṛhaṇīyena karmaṇā //
kakudmini hate 'riṣṭe gopeṣu muditeṣu ca
dṛśyamāne vināśe ca saṃnikṛṣṭe mahābhaye //
karṣaṇena ca vṛkṣābhyāṃ bālenābālakarmaṇā
acintyaṃ karma tac chrutvā vardhamāneṣu śatruṣu //
prāptāriṣṭam ivātmānaṃ mene sa mathureśvaraḥ
visaṃjñendriyabhūtātmā gatāsupratimo 'bhavat //
tato jñātīn samānāyya pitaraṃ cograśāsanaḥ
niśi stimitamūkāyām mathurāyāṃ janādhipaḥ //
vasudevaṃ ca devābhaṃ kahvaṃ cāhūya yādavam
satyakaṃ dārukaṃ caiva kahvāvarajam eva ca //
bhojaṃ vaitaraṇaṃ caiva vikadruṃ ca mahābalam
bhayesakhaṃ ca rājānaṃ vipṛthuṃ ca pṛthuśriyam //
babhruṃ dānapatiṃ caiva kṛtavarmāṇam eva ca
bhūritejasam akṣobhyaṃ bhūriśravasam eva ca //
etān sa yādavān sarvān ābhāṣya śṛṇuteti ca
ugrasenasuto rājā provāca mathureśvaraḥ //
bhavantaḥ sarvakāryajñāḥ sarvaśāstraviśāradāḥ
nyāyavṛttāntakuśalās trivargasya pravartakāḥ //
kartavyānāṃ ca kartāro lokasya vibudhopamāḥ
parvatā iva niṣkampā vṛtte mahati tasthuṣaḥ //
Note: k: For 13cd, K,Ñ2.3,V1.3,B,D(except D6),T3.4 subst.: :k
tasthivāṃso mahāvṛtte niṣkampā iva parvatāḥ |
adambhavṛttayaḥ sarve gurukarmasu codyatāḥ
rājamantradharāḥ sarve sarve dhanuṣi pāragāḥ //
yaśaḥpradīpā lokānāṃ vedārthānāṃ vivakṣavaḥ
āśramāṇāṃ nisargajñā varṇānāṃ kramapāragāḥ //
pravaktāraḥ suniyatā netāro nayadarśinaḥ
bhettāraḥ pararāṣṭrāṇāṃ trātāraḥ śaraṇārthinām //
evam akṣatacāritraiḥ śrīmadbhir uditoditaiḥ
dyaur api anugṛhītā syād bhavadbhiḥ kiṃ punar mahī //
ṛṣīṇām iva vo vṛttaṃ prabhāvo marutām iva
rudrāṇām iva vaḥ krodho dīptir aṅgirasām iva //
vyāvartamānaṃ sumahad bhavadbhiḥ khyātakīrtibhiḥ
dhṛtaṃ yadukulaṃ vīrair bhūtalaṃ parvatair iva //
evaṃ bhavatsu yukteṣu mama cittānuvartiṣu
vardhamāno mamānartho bhavadbhiḥ kim upekṣitaḥ //
eṣa kṛṣṇa iti khyāto nandagopasuto vraje
vardhamāna ivāmbhodo mūlaṃ naḥ parikṛntati //
anamātyasya śūnyasya cārāndhasya mamaiva tu
kāraṇān nandagopasya sa suto gopito gṛhe //
upekṣita iva vyādhiḥ pūryamāṇa ivāmbudaḥ
nadanmegha ivoṣṇānte sa durātmā vivardhate //
tasya nāhaṃ gatiṃ jāne na yogaṃ na parāyaṇam
nandagopasya bhavane jātasyādbhutakarmaṇaḥ //
kiṃ tadbhūtaṃ samutpannaṃ devāpatyaṃ na vidmahe
atidevair amānuṣyaiḥ karmabhiḥ so 'numīyate //
pūtanā śakunī bālye śiśunā stanapāyinā
stanapānepsunā pītā prāṇaiḥ saha durāsadā //
Note: k: D6,T1.2,G2-5,M2.4,G ins. after 26 ein; G1 ins. after 25: :k
tathaiva tena bālena pādāṅguṣṭhena līlayā |
śayane vai śayānena śakaṭaṃ parivartitam ||
tathā bālena balinā ane jātau bṛhattarau |
samūlaviṭapau bhagnau sahajau yamalārjunau |
yamunāyāṃ hrade nāgaḥ kāliyo damitas tathā
rasātalacaro nītaḥ kṣaṇenādarśanaṃ hradāt
nandagopasuto yogaṃ kṛtvā ca punar utthitaḥ //
dhenukas tālaśikharāt pātito jīvitaṃ vinā
Note: k: After 28, D6,S (except T3.4) ins.: :ktasyāgrajo mahāvīryo balabhadro durātmavān |
pralambaṃ yaṃ mṛdhe devā na śekur abhivīkṣitum
bālena muṣṭinaikena sa hataḥ prākṛto yathā //
vāsavasyotsavaṃ bhaṅktvā varṣaṃ vāsavaroṣajam
nirjalaṃ gokulaṃ kṛtvā dhṛto govardhano giriḥ //
hatas tv ariṣṭo balavān viśṛṅgaś ca kṛto vraje
Note: k: D6,T1,G2.3.5,M ins. after 31ab; T2,G1.4 after 30: :kkena vā nararūpeṇa śakyo govardhano giriḥ |
uddhartuṃ govraje satyaṃ na jāne 'py adbhutaṃ tataḥ ||
idam atyadbhutaṃ sarvaṃ varṣaṃ vāsavanirmitam |
nivāritaṃ saptadinaṃ kim ataḥ param adbhutam |
abālo bālyam āsthāya ramate bālalīlayā //
prabandhaḥ karmaṇām eṣa tasya govrajavāsinaḥ
saṃnikṛṣṭaṃ bhayaṃ caiva keśino mama ca dhruvam //
bhūtapūrvaś ca me mṛtyuḥ sa nūnaṃ pūrvadaihikaḥ
yuddhakāṅkṣī hi sa yathā tiṣṭhatīva mamāgrataḥ //
kva ca gopatvam aśubhaṃ mānuṣyaṃ mṛtyudurbalam
kva ca devaprabhāvena krīḍitavyaṃ vraje mama //
aho nīcena vapuṣā cchādayitvātmano vapuḥ
ko 'py eṣa ramate devaḥ śmaśānastha ivānalaḥ //
Note: k: After 35, D5 ins.: :k
aho yādavaśreṣṭhā vai kathayantu samāhitāḥ |
Note: k: While D6,T1.2,GM1-3 ins. after 35: :k
idam apy aparaṃ manye śrotavyaṃ yadupuṃgavāḥ |
yathā mama tathā yūyaṃ jānītha sakalaṃ vacaḥ |
śrūyate hi purā viṣṇuḥ surāṇāṃ kāraṇāntare
vāmanena tu rūpeṇa jahāra pṛthivīm imām //
Note: k: After 36, D6,T1.2,G1-3.5,M,G ins.: :k
devarājāya tu tadā dattavān kila keśavaḥ |
kṛtvā kesariṇo rūpaṃ viṣṇunā prabhaviṣṇunā
hato hiraṇyakaśipur dānavānāṃ pitāmahaḥ //
Note: k: G(ed.) cont. after *746; D6,T1.2,G,M ins. after 37: :k
hatvā tu dānavaṃ saṃkhye rājānaṃ kṛtavān hariḥ |
acintyaṃ rūpam āsthāya śvetaśailasya mūrdhani
bhavena cyāvitā daityāḥ purā tat tripuraṃ ghnatā //
pālito guruputreṇa bhārgavo 'ṅgirasena vai
praviśya cāsurīṃ māyām anāvṛṣṭiṃ cakāra ha //
anantaḥ śāśvato devaḥ sahasravadano 'vyayaḥ
vārāhaṃ rūpam āsthāya ujjahārārṇavān mahīm //
Note: k: After 40, D6,S (except T3.4) ins.: :k
sabhūdharavanām urvīṃ śakrāya pradadau hariḥ |
amṛte nirmite pūrvaṃ viṣṇuḥ strīrūpam āsthitaḥ
surāṇām asurāṇāṃ ca yuddhaṃ cakre sudāruṇam //
amṛtārthe purā cāpi devadaityasamāgame
dadhāra mandaraṃ viṣṇur akūpāra iti śrutiḥ //
Note: k: N (except Ś1) TG1.3-5,M4 ins. after 42; G2 after 41ab: :k
vapur vāmanam āsthāya nindanīyaṃ purā vapuḥ |
tribhiḥ kramais tu trīlokāñ jahāra tridivālayam |
caturdhā tejaso bhāgaṃ kṛtvā dāśarathe gṛhe
sa eva rāmasaṃjño vai rāvaṇaṃ vyaśasat tadā //
Note: k: After 43, D6,S (except T3.4) ins.: :k
sa eva bhagavān viṣṇur bhūtvā bhārgavanandanaḥ |
paraśvadhane śātena jaghāna kṛtavīryajam ||
triḥsaptakṛtvaḥ pṛthivīṃ hatvā kṣatriyapuṃgavān |
hayamedhe tadā yajñe kāśyapāya dadau kila |
evam eṣa nikṛtyā vai tattadrūpam upāgataḥ
sādhayaty ātmanaḥ kāryaṃ surāṇām arthasiddhaye //
tad eṣa nūnaṃ viṣṇur vā śakro vā marutāṃ varaḥ
matsādhanepsayā prāpto nārado māṃ yad uktavān //
atra me śaṅkate buddhir vasudevaṃ prati prabho
asya buddhiviśeṣeṇa vayaṃ kātaratāṃ gatāḥ //
ahaṃ hi khaṭvāṅgavane nāradena samāgataḥ
dvitīyaṃ sa hi māṃ vipraḥ punar evābravīd vacaḥ //
yat tvayānuṣṭhito yatnaḥ kaṃsa garbhakṛte mahān
vasudevena te rātrau karma tad viphalīkṛtam //
dārikā yā tvayā rātrau śilāyāṃ kaṃsa pātitā
tāṃ yaśodāsutāṃ viddhi kṛṣṇaṃ ca vasudevajam //
rātrau vyāvartitāv etau garbhau tava vadhāya vai
vasudevena saṃdhāya mitrarūpeṇa śatruṇā //
sā tu kanyā yaśodāyā vindhye parvatasattame
hatvā śumbhaniśumbhau dvau dānavau nagacāriṇau //
kṛtābhiṣekā varadā bhūtasaṃghaniṣevitā
arcyate dasyubhir ghorair mahāpaśubalipriyā //
surāpiśitapūrṇābhyāṃ kumbhābhyām upaśobhitā
mayūrāṅgadacitraiś ca barhabhāraiś ca bhūṣitā //
dṛptakukuṭasaṃnādaṃ vanaṃ vāyasanāditam
chāgayūthaiś ca saṃpūrṇam aviruddhaiś ca pakṣibhiḥ //
siṃhavyāghravarāhāṇāṃ nādena pratināditam
vṛkṣagambhīranibiḍaṃ kāntāraiḥ sarvato vṛtam //
divyabhṛṅgāracamarair ādarśaiś ca vibhūṣitam
devatūryaninādaiś ca śataśaḥ pratināditam
sthānaṃ tasyā nage vindhye nirmitaṃ svena tejasā //
ripūṇāṃ trāsajananī nityaṃ tatra manorame
vasate paramaprītā daivatair api pūjitā //
yas tv ayaṃ nandagopasya kṛṣṇa ity ucyate sutaḥ
atra me nāradaḥ prāha sumahat karma kāraṇam //
dvitīyo vasudevād vai vāsudevo bhaviṣyati
sa hi te sahajo mṛtyur bāndhavaś ca bhaviṣyati //
sa eva vāsudevo vai vasudevasuto balī
bāndhavo dharmato mahyaṃ hṛdayenāntako ripuḥ //
yathā hi vāyaso mūrdhni padbhyāṃ yasyaiva tiṣṭhati
netre tudati tasyaiva vaktreṇāmiṣagṛddhinā //
vasudevas tathaivāyaṃ saputraḥ sahabāndhavaḥ
cchinatti mama mūlāni bhuṅkte ca mama pārśvataḥ //
bhrūṇahatyāpi saṃtāryā govadhaḥ strīvadho 'pi vā
na kṛtaghnasya loko 'sti bāndhavasya viśeṣataḥ //
patitānugataṃ mārgaṃ niṣevaty acireṇa saḥ
yaḥ kṛtaghno 'nubandhena prītiṃ vahati dāruṇām //
narakādhyuṣitaḥ panthā gantavyas tena dāruṇaḥ
apāpe pāpahṛdayo yaḥ pāpam anutiṣṭhati //
Note: k: After 65, D6,T1.2,G1-3.5,M1.2 ins.: :k
sa yāti narakaṃ ghoraṃ punarāvṛttidurlabham |
ahaṃ vā svajanaḥ ślāghyaḥ sa vā ślāghyataraḥ sutaḥ
niyamair guruvṛttena tvayā bāndhavakāmyayā //
hastināṃ kalahe ghore vadham ṛcchanti vīrudhaḥ
yuddhavyuparame te tu sahāśnanti mahāvane //
bāndhavānām api tathā bhedakāle samutthite
vadhyate yo 'ntaraprepsuḥ svajano yāti vikriyām //
kalis tvaṃ hi vināśāya mayā puṣṭo vijānatā
Note: k: After 69ab, T1.2,G,M1-3 ins.: :kgaccha gaccha yathākāmaṃ vasudeva narādhama ||
tad dattaṃ kṛpaṇaṃ piṇḍaṃ yad dattaṃ tava jānatā |
tac chvabhyo yadi dattaṃ syāc chreyo mama bhaviṣyati |
vasudeva kulasyāsya yad virodhayase bhṛśam
amarṣī vairaśīlaś ca sadā pāpamatiḥ śaṭhaḥ //
sthāne yadukulaṃ mūḍha śocanīyaṃ tvayā kṛtam
vasudeva vṛthāvṛddha yan mayā tvaṃ puraskṛtaḥ //
śvetena śirasā vṛddho naiva varṣaśatī bhavet
yasya buddhiḥ pariṇatā sa vai vṛddhatamo nṛṇām //
Note: k: After 71, Bom., Poona eds. ins.: :k
na tena vṛddho bhavati yenāsya palitaṃ śiraḥ |
tvaṃ tu karkaśaśīlaś ca buddhyā ca na bahuśrutaḥ
kevalaṃ vayasā vṛddho yathā śaradi toyadaḥ //
kiṃ ca tvaṃ sādhu jānīṣe vasudeva vṛthāmate
hate kaṃse mama suto mathurāṃ pālayiṣyati //
chinnāśas tvaṃ vṛthāvṛddha mithyā hy evaṃ vicāritam
jijīviṣur na sa hy asti yo hi tiṣṭhen mamāgrataḥ //
prahartukāmo viśvaste yas tvaṃ svasthena cetasā
tat te pratikariṣyāmi putrayos tava paśyataḥ //
na me vṛddhavadhaḥ kaścid dvijastrīvadha eva vā
kṛtapūrvaḥ kariṣye vā viśeṣeṇa tu bāndhave //
iha tvaṃ jātasaṃvṛddho mama pitrā vivardhitaḥ
pitṛṣvasur me bhartā ca yadūnāṃ prathamo guruḥ //
kule mahati vikhyātaḥ prathite cakravartinām
gurvarthaṃ pūjitaḥ sadbhir yadubhir dharmabuddhibhiḥ //
kiṃ kariṣyāmahe sarve satsu vaktavyatāṃ gatāḥ
yadūnāṃ yūthamukhyasya yasya te vṛttam īdṛśam //
madvadho vā jayo vātha vasudevasya durṇayaiḥ
satsu yāsyanti puruṣā yadūnām avaguṇṭhitāḥ //
tvayā hi madvadhopāyaṃ tarkayānena vai mṛdhe
aviśvāsyaṃ kṛtaṃ karma vācyāś ca yadavaḥ kṛtāḥ //
aśāmyaṃ vairam utpannaṃ mama kṛṣṇasya cobhayoḥ
śāntim ekatare śāntiṃ gate yāsyanti yādavāḥ //
Note: k: After 82, D6,S (except T3,T4 ins.: :k
tiṣṭha vā gaccha vā mūḍha yatheṣṭaṃ mama pārśvataḥ ||
hantuṃ svajanam udvṛttaṃ so 'yaṃ yadukulodvahaḥ |
mā bhūd ayaṃ parīvādo loke yādavasattamāḥ |
anyathā vadhayogyo 'si nātra kāryā vicāraṇā |
gacchatv ayaṃ dānapatiḥ kṣipram ānayituṃ vrajāt
nandagopaṃ ca gopāṃś ca karadān mama śāsanāt //
vācyaś ca nandagopo vai karam ādāya vārṣikam
śīghram āgaccha nagaraṃ gopaiḥ sarvaiḥ samanvitaḥ //
kṛṣṇasaṃkarṣaṇau caiva vasudevasutāv ubhau
draṣṭum icchati vai kaṃsaḥ sabhṛtyaḥ sapurohitaḥ //
etau yuddhavidau raṅge kālanirmāṇayodhinau
dṛḍhapratikṛtī caiva śṛṇomi vyāyatodyamau //
asmākam api mallau dvau sajjau jayadhṛtotsavau
tābhyāṃ saha niyotsyete tau yuddhakuśalāv ubhau //
draṣṭavyau ca mayāvaśyaṃ bālau tāv amaropamau
pitṛṣvasuḥ sutau mukhyau vrajavāsau vanecarau //
vaktavyaṃ ca vraje tasmin samīpe vrajavāsinām
rājā dhanurmahaṃ nāma kārayiṣyati vai sukhī //
saṃnikṛṣṭe vrajās tatra nivasantu yathāsukham
janasyāmantritasyārthe yathā syāt sarvam avyayam //
payasaḥ sarpiṣaś caiva dadhno dadhyuttarsya ca
yathākāmapradānāya bhojyādhiśrayaṇāya ca //
akrūra gaccha śīghraṃ tvaṃ tāv ānaya mamājñayā
saṃkarṣaṇaṃ ca kṛṣṇaṃ ca draṣṭuṃ kautūhalaṃ hi me //
tābhyām āgamane prītiḥ parā mama kṛtā bhavet
dṛṣṭvā tu tau mahāvīryau tad vidhāsyāmi yad dhitam //
syān nāma vākyaṃ śrutvaivaṃ mama tau paribhāṣitam
na gacchetāṃ yathākālaṃ nigrāhyāv api tau mama //
sāntvam eva tu bāleṣu pradhānaṃ prathamo nayaḥ
madhureṇaiva tau mandau svayam evānayāśu vai //
akrūra kuru me prītim etāṃ paramadurlabhām
yadi vā nopajapto 'si vasudevena suvrata //
Note: k: After 96, N (except Ś1), T1-3,G,M4, ins.: :k
tathā kartavyam etad dhi yathā tāv āgamiṣyataḥ |
Note: k: T1.2,G1.4.5,M4 cont.; D6,G2.3 ins. after 95; M1-3 ins. after 93 ab: :k
ity uktvā virarāmaiva kaṃsaḥ sa madhureśvaraḥ |
evam ākruṣyamānas tu vasudevo vasūpamaḥ
sāgarākāram ātmānaṃ niṣprakampam adhārayat //
vākśalyais tāḍyamānas tu kaṃsenādīrghadarśinā
kṣamāṃ manasi saṃdhyāya nottaraṃ pratyabhāṣata //
ye tu taṃ dadṛśus tatra kṣipyamāṇam anekaśaḥ
dhig dhig ity asakṛt te vai śanair ūcur avāṅmukhāḥ //
akrūras tu mahātejā jānan divyena cakṣuṣā
jalam dṛṣṭveva tṛṣitaḥ preṣitaḥ prītimān abhūt //
Note: k: After 100, D6,T1.2,G,M,G(ed.) ins.: :k
paśyāmi devadeveśaṃ śaṅkhacakragadādharam |
yogināṃ yogagamyaṃ tam īśvaraṃ sakaleśvaram ||
paśyāmi bālaṃ govindaṃ gopaveṣavibhūṣitam |
saṃkarṣaṇasahāyaṃ taṃ padmapatranibhekṣaṇam ||
adya me saphalaṃ janma dṛṣṭo yena mayā hariḥ ||
mayūrāṅgadacitrāṅgaṃ tumbavīṇāvimiśritam |
drakṣyāmi lokanāthaṃ taṃ gopīstanavilālasam ||
yadi māṃ cakṣuṣā samyak prītiyuktena paśyati |
tadānīṃ saphalaṃ janma mama taṃ paśyato harim ||
yaṃ dṛṣṭvā munayaḥ sarve viramante tapobalāt |
sa māṃ vakṣyati kiṃcit tu vacanaṃ vāgvidāṃ varaḥ ||
evaṃ vicintya manasā gantuṃ śīghrataro 'bhavat |
tasminn eva muhūrte tu mathurāyāḥ sa niryayau
prītimān puṇḍarīkākṣaṃ draṣṭuṃ dānapatiḥ svayam //
Note: h: HV (CE) ch. 66, transliterated and collated with ViP and BrP by Utz Podzeit, extracted from the collation and edited by Peter Schreiner; March 4, 2002. Not yet proof-read. :h
kṣiptaṃ yaduvṛṣaṃ dṛṣṭvā sarve te yadupuṃgavāḥ
nipīḍya śravaṇān hastair menire taṃ gatāyuṣam //
andhas tv anāvignamanā dhairyād avikṛtaṃ vacaḥ
provāca vadatāṃ śreṣṭhaḥ samāsāt kaṃsam ojasā //
aślāghyo me mataḥ putra tavāyaṃ vākpariśramaḥ
ayukto garhitaḥ sadbhir bāndhaveṣu viśeṣataḥ //
ayādavo yadi bhavāñ śṛṇu tāvad yad ucyate
na hi tvāṃ yādavā vīra balāt kurvanti yādavam //
aślāghyā vṛṣṇayaḥ putra yeṣāṃ tvam anuśāsitā
ikṣvākuvaṃśajo rājā vinivṛttaḥ svavaṃśakṛt //
bhojo vā yādavo vāsi kaṃso vāsi yathā tathā
sahajaṃ te śiras tāta jaṭī muṇḍo 'pi vā bhava //
ugrasenas tv ayaṃ śocyo yo 'smākaṃ kulapāṃsanaḥ
durjātīyena yena tvam īdṛśo janitaḥ sutaḥ //
na cātmano guṇāṃs tāta pravadanti manīṣiṇaḥ
pareṇoktā guṇā gauṇyaṃ yānti vedārtasaṃmitāḥ //
pṛthivyāṃ yaduvaṃśo 'yaṃ nindanīyo mahīkṣitām
bālaḥ kulāntakṛn mūḍho yeṣāṃ tvam anuśāsitā //
sādhus tvam ebhir vākyaiś ca tvayā sādhv iti bhāṣitaiḥ
na vācā sādhitaṃ kāryam ātmā ca vivṛtaḥ kṛtaḥ //
guror anavaliptasya mānyasya mahatām api
kṣepaṇaṃ kaḥ śubhaṃ manyed dvijasyeva vadhaṃ kṛtam //
mānyāś caivābhigamyāś ca vṛddhās tāta yathāgrayaḥ
krodho hi teṣāṃ pradahel lokān antargatān api //
budhena tāta dāntena nityam abhyucchritātmanā
dharmasya gatir anveṣyā matsyasya gatir apsv iva //
kevalaṃ tvaṃ tu garveṇa vṛddhān agnisamān iha
vācā dunoṣi marmaghnyā amantroktā yathāhutiḥ //
vasudevaṃ ca putrārthe yadi tvaṃ parigarhase
tatra mithyāpralāpaṃ te nindāmi kṛpaṇaṃ vacaḥ //
dāruṇe 'pi pitā putre naiva dāruṇatāṃ vrajet
Note: k: For 16ab, Ś1 subst.: :kdāruṇo 'pi pituḥ putraḥ kaḥ putre dāruṇaḥ pitā |
putrārthe hy āpadaḥ kaṣṭāḥ pitaraḥ prāpnuvanti hi //
Note: k: For 16cd, T1,G2,M1-3 subst.: :k
putrās te hy āpadaḥ kaṣṭāt pitaraṃ tārayanti tu |
chādito vasudevena yadi putraḥ śiśus tadā
manyase yady akartavyaṃ pṛcchasva pitaraṃ svakam //
garhatā vasudevaṃ ca yaduvaṃśaṃ ca nindatā
tvayā yādavaputrāṇāṃ vairajaṃ viṣam arjitam //
akartavyaṃ yadi kṛtaṃ vasudevena putrajam
kimartham ugrasenena śiśus tvaṃ na vināśitaḥ //
pun nāmno narakāt putro yasmāt trātā pitṝn sadā
tasmād bruvanti putreti putraṃ dharmavido janāḥ //
Note: k: After 20, D6,T1.2,G,M,G(ed.) ins.: :k
pitrā putras tu goptaś cet ko doṣo vada sāṃpratam |
rakṣitas tava pitrāsi kimarthaṃ vada bāliśa ||
anena tava vākyena śatravo yādavāḥ kṛtāḥ |
jātyā hi yādavaḥ kṛṣṇaḥ sa ca saṃkarṣaṇo yuvā
tvaṃ cāpi vidhṛtas tābhyāṃ jātavaireṇa cetasā //
uddhūtānīha sarveṣāṃ yadūnāṃ hṛdayāni vai
vasudeve tvayā kṣipte vāsudeve ca kopite //
kṛṣṇe ca bhavato dveṣād vasudevavigarhaṇāt
Note: k: After 23ab, D6,T1.2,G1-3.5,M,G(ed.) ins.: :ktyakṣyāmahe vayaṃ sarve bhavantaṃ yadi sādhavaḥ |
asanto vayam evātra loke khyātā narādhama ||
yadi saktāḥ parityaktuṃ putra tvāṃ sāṃprataṃ vayam |
sarvān asmān parityajya gacchasīti na saṃśayaḥ |
śaṃsanti hīmāni bhayaṃ nimittāny aśubhāni te //
sarpāṇāṃ darśanaṃ tīvraṃ svapnānāṃ ca niśākṣaye
puryā vaidhavyaśaṃsīni kāraṇair anumīmahe //
eṣa ghoro grahaḥ svātīm ullikhan khe gabhastibhiḥ
vakram aṅgārakaś cakre vyāharanti kharaṃ dvijāḥ //
Note: k: N (except Ś1) T1-3 ins. after 25; T4 after 65.46a: :k
budhena paścimā saṃdhyā vyāptā ghoreṇa tejasā |
vaiśvānarapathe śukro hy aticāraṃ cacāra ha ||
ketunā dhūmaketos tu nakṣatrāṇi trayodaśa |
bharaṇyādīni bhinnāni nānuyanti niśākaram |
śivā śmaśānān niṣkramya niḥśvāsāṅgāravarṣiṇī
ubhe saṃdhye purīṃ ghorā paryeti bahu vāśatī //
ulkā nirghātanādena papāta dharaṇītale
calaty aparvaṇi mahī girīṇāṃ śikharāṇi ca //
prāksaṃdhyā parighagras tā bhābhir badhnāti bhāskaram
pratilomaṃ ca yānty ete vyāharanto mṛgadvijāḥ //
grastaḥ svarbhānunā sūryo divā naktam ajāyata
dhūmotpātair diśo vyāptāḥ śuṣkāśanisamāhatāḥ //
prasravanti ghanā raktaṃ sāśanistanayitnavaḥ
calitā devatāḥ sthānāt tyajanti vihagā nagān //
yāni rājavināśāya daivajñāḥ kathayanti hi
tāni sarvāṇi paśyāmo nimittāny aśubhāni vai //
tvaṃ cāpi svajanadveṣī rājadharmaparāṅmukhaḥ
animittāgatakrodhaḥ saṃnikṛṣṭabhayo hy asi //
yas tvaṃ devopamaṃ vṛddhaṃ vasudevam dhṛtavratam
mohāt kṣipasi durbuddhe kutas te śāntir ātmanaḥ //
tvadgato yo hi naḥ snehas taṃ tyajāmo 'dya vai vayam
ahitaṃ svasya vaṃśasya na tvāṃ vayam upāsmahe //
sa hi dānapatir dhanyo yo drakṣyati vanegatam
puṇḍarīkapalāśākṣaṃ kṛṣṇam akliṣṭakāriṇam //
Note: k: After 35 D6,S (except T3.4,)G(ed.) ins.: :k
bālaṃ cābālasadvṛttam īśvaraṃ sakaleśvaram |
yogidhyeyaṃ sadādṛśyaṃ santaṃ sadasadātmakam ||
yo hi drakṣyati taṃ kṛṣṇaṃ tasmai bhūyo namo namaḥ ||
ādyānām ādyam ādiṃ ca sakalaṃ niṣkalaṃ hariṃ |
yo hi drakṣyati taṃ devaṃ tasmai bhūyo namo namaḥ ||
vayam eva nirānandās vayā guptā yataḥ sadā |
yeṣāṃ tvam īśvaro 'dhanyas teṣāṃ śāntiḥ kuto ratiḥ |
chinnamūlo hy ayaṃ vaṃśo yadūnāṃ tvatkṛte kṛtaḥ
kṛṣṇo jñātīn samānāyya sa saṃdhānaṃ kariṣyati //
kṣāntam eva tadānena vasudevena dhīmatā
kālasaṃpakvavijñāno brūhi tvaṃ yad yad icchasi //
mahyaṃ tu rocate kaṃsa vasudevasahāyavān
gaccha kṛṣṇasya nilayaṃ prītis te tena rocatām //
Note: k: After 38, Ś1,K,Ñ,V,B,Dn,Ds,D1-5,T.3.4 ins. the colophon. While D6,S (except T3.4),G(ed.) ins.: :k
anyathā tu gatiḥ kaṃsa tava nāstīti niścayaḥ |
andhakasya vacaḥ śrutvā kaṃsaḥ saṃraktalocanaḥ
kiṃcid apy abruvan krodhād viveśa svaṃ niveśanam //
te ca sarve yathāveśma yādavāḥ śrutavistarāḥ
jagmur vigatasaṃkalpāḥ kaṃsavaikṛtaśaṃsinaḥ //
Note: h: HV (CE) ch. 67, transliterated and collated with ViP and BrP by Utz Podzeit, extracted from the collation and edited by Peter Schreiner; March 4, 2002. Not yet proof-read. :h
akrūro 'pi yathājñaptaḥ kṛṣṇadarśanalālasaḥ
jagāma rathamukhyena manasas tulyagāminā //
kṛṣṇasyāpi nimittāni śubhāny aṅgagatāni vai
pitṛtulyena śaṃsanti bāndhavena samāgamam //
prāg eva ca narendreṇa māthureṇaugraseninā
keśinaḥ preṣito dūto vadhāyopendrakāraṇāt //
sa tu dūtavacaḥ śrutvā keśī kleśakaro nṛṇām
vṛndāvanagato gopān bādhate sma durāsadaḥ //
mānuṣaṃ māṃsam aśnānaḥ kruddho duṣṭaparākramaḥ
durdānto vājidaityo 'sau karoti kadanaṃ mahat //
nighnan gā vai sagopālā gavāṃ piśitabhojanaḥ
durdamaḥ kāmacārī ca kesarī niravagrahaḥ //
tadaraṇyaṃ śmaśānābhaṃ nṛṇām asthibhir āvṛtam
yatrāste sa hi duṣṭātmā keśī turagadānavaḥ //
khurair dārayate bhūmim vegenārujate drumān
heṣitaiḥ spardhate vāyum plutair laṅghyate nabhaḥ //
atipravṛddho mattaś ca duṣṭāśvo vanagocaraḥ
ākampitasaṭo raudraḥ kaṃsasya caritānugaḥ //
iriṇaṃ tadvanaṃ sarvaṃ tena saudāsakarmaṇā
kṛtaṃ turagadaityena sarvān gopāñ jighāṃsatā //
tena duṣṭapracāreṇa dūṣitaṃ tadvanaṃ mahat
na nṛbhir godhanair vāpi sevyate vanavṛttibhiḥ //
niḥsaṃpātaḥ kṛtaḥ panthās tena tadviṣayāśrayaḥ
madāc calitavṛttena nṛmāṃsāny aśnatā bhṛśam //
nṛśabdānusaraḥ kruddhaḥ sa kadācid dināgame
jagāma ghoṣasaṃvāsaṃ coditaḥ kāladharmaṇā //
taṃ dṛṣṭvā dudruvur gopāḥ striyaś ca śiśubhiḥ saha
krandamānā jagannātham kṛṣṇaṃ nātham upāśritāḥ //
tāsāṃ ruditaśabdena gopānāṃ kranditena ca
dattvābhayaṃ tu kṛṣṇo vai keśinaṃ so 'bhidudruve //
keśī cābhyudyata grīvaḥ prakāśadaśanekṣaṇaḥ
heṣamāṇo javodagro govindābhimukho yayau //
tam āpatantaṃ saṃprekṣya keśinaṃ hayadānavam
pratyujjagāma govindas toyadaḥ śaśinaṃ yathā //
keśinas tu tam abhyāśe dṛṣṭvā kṛṣṇam avasthitam
manuṣyabuddhayo gopāḥ kṛṣṇam ūcur hitauṣiṇaḥ //
Note: k: After 18, V2 ins.: :k
kṛṣṇa kṛṣṇa mahābāho jñātīnāṃ nandivardhana |
jagatām abhayado 'si tvaṃ trāyasvāsmān viśeṣataḥ |
kṛṣṇa tāta na khalv eṣa sahasā te hayādhamaḥ
upasarpyo bhavān bālaḥ pāpaś caiṣa durāsadaḥ //
eṣa kaṃsasya sahajaḥ prāṇas tāta bahiścaraḥ
uttamaś ca hayendrāṇāṃ dānavo 'pratimo yudhi //
trāsanaḥ parasainyānāṃ turagāṇāṃ mahābalaḥ
svadhyaḥ sarvasattvānāṃ prathamaḥ pāpakarmaṇām //
gopānāṃ tadvacaḥ śrutvā vadatāṃ madhusūdanaḥ
keśinā saha yuddhāya matiṃ cakre 'risūdanaḥ //
tataḥ savyaṃ dakṣiṇaṃ ca maṇḍalāni paribhraman
padbhyām ubhābhyāṃ sa hayaḥ krodhenārujate drumān //
mukhe lambasaṭe cāsya skandhadeśe ghanāvṛte
valayo 'bhrataraṃgābhāḥ susruvuḥ krodhajaṃ jalam //
sa phenaṃ vaktrajaṃ caiva vavarṣa rajasāvṛtam
himakāle yathā vyomni nīhāram iva candramāḥ //
govindam aravindākṣaṃ heṣitogāraśīkaraiḥ
sa phenair gātranirgīrṇaiḥ prokṣayāmāsa sarvataḥ //
khuroddharaṇamuktena madhurakṣodapāṇḍunā
rajasā sa hayaḥ kṛṣṇaṃ cakārāruṇamūrdhajam //
plutavalgitapādas tu takṣamāṇo dharāṃ khuraiḥ
dantān nirdaśamānas tu keśī kṛṣṇam upādravat //
sa saṃsaktas tu kṛṣṇena keśī turagasattamaḥ
purvābhyāṃ caraṇābhyāṃ vai kṛṣṇaṃ vakṣasy atāḍayat //
punaḥ punaś ca sa balī prāhiṇot pārśvataḥ khurān
Note: k: After 30ab N (except Ś1,Ñ1,D2.6),T3 ins.: :kkṛṣṇasya dānavo ghoraṃ prahāram amitaujasaḥ |
vaktreṇa cāsya ghoreṇa tīkṣṇadaṃṣṭrāyudhena vai
adaśad bāhuvivaraṃ kṛṣṇasya ruṣito hayaḥ //
sa lambakesarasaṭaḥ kṛṣṇena saha saṃgataḥ
rarāja keśī meghena saṃsaktaḥ kha ivāṃśumān //
uraś cāsyorasā hantum iyeṣa balavān hayaḥ
vegena vāsudevasya krodhād dviguṇavikramaḥ //
tasyotsiktasya balavān kṛṣṇo 'py amitavikramaḥ
bāhum ābhoginaṃ kṛtvā mukhe kruddhaḥ samādadhat //
sa taṃ bāhum aśakto vai khādituṃ bhoktum eva vā
Note: k: After 34ab, D6,T1.2,G1-3.5,M,G(ed.) ins.: :kpunar ābhoginaṃ bāhuṃ tadvaktragatam añjasā |
kṛṣṇaḥ prasārayāmāsa līlayā dānavaṃ hasan |
daśanair mūlanirmuktaiḥ saphenaṃ rudhiraṃ vaman //
vipāṭitābhyām oṣṭhābhyām kaṭābhyāṃ vidalīkṛtaḥ
akṣiṇī vikṛte cakre visṛte muktabandhane //
nirastahanur āviṣṭaḥ śoṇitāsrāvilekṣaṇaḥ
utkarṇo naṣṭacetās tu sa keśī bahvaceṣṭata //
utpatya cāsakṛt pādaiḥ sakṛnmūtraṃ samutsṛjan
svinnārdralomā śrāntas tu niryatnacaraṇo 'bhavat //
keśivaktravilagnas tu kṛṣṇabāhur aśobhata
vyābhugna iva gharmānte candrārdhakiraṇair ghanaḥ //
keśī ca kṛṣṇasaṃsaktaḥ śrāntagātro vyarocata
prabhātāvanataś candraḥ śrānto merum ivāśritaḥ //
tasya kṛṣṇabhujoddhūtāḥ keśino daśanā mukhāt
Note: k: For 40ab M1-3 subst.: :kkeśino vaktranirdhūtā vividhā daśanā bhuvi |
petuḥ śaradi nistoyāḥ sitābhrāvayavā iva //
Note: k: Ś1,KÑ1.3,V1.2,B,D,T,G,M4 ins. after 40; Ñ2,V3 ins. lines 1-2 after 37 and lines 3-8 after 36: :k
sa tu keśī bhṛśaṃ śrāntaḥ kṛṣṇenākliṣṭakarmaṇā |
svabhujaṃ svāyataṃ kṛtvā pāṭito balavat tadā ||
sa pāṭito bhujenājau kṛṣṇena vikṛtānanaḥ |
keśī nadan mahānādaṃ dānavo vyathitas tadā ||
vighūrṇamānaḥ srastāṅgo mukhād rudhiram udvaman |
bhṛśaṃ vyaṅgīkṛtavapur nikṛttārdha ivācalaḥ ||
vyāditāsyo mahāraudraḥ so 'suraḥ kṛṣṇabāhunā |
nipapāta yathā kṛtto nāgo hi dvidalīkṛtaḥ |
Note: k: After line 4, Ś1 ins.: :k
sa papātāśu vegena bhujāyāmena pāṭitaḥ |
bāhunā kṛttadehasya keśino rūpam ābabhau
paśor iva mahāghoraṃ nihatasya pinākinā //
Note: k: For 41cd, Ś1 subst.: :k
droṇībhyāṃ māṃsapūrṇābhyāṃ pinākibhavane yathā |
dvipādapṛṣṭhapucchārdhe sravaṇaikākṣināsike
keśinas te dvidhā bhūte dve ardhe rejatuḥ kṣitau //
Note: k: After 42, D6,S(except T3.4),G(ed.) ins.: :k
vajreṇa vinikṛttārdhau parvatāv iva bhūtale |
keśidantakṣataś cāpi kṛṣṇasya śuśubhe bhujaḥ
vṛddhas tāla ivāraṇye gajendradaśanāṅkitaḥ //
taṃ hatvā keśinaṃ yuddhe kalpayitvā ca bhāgaśaḥ
kṛṣṇaḥ padmapalāśākṣo hasaṃs tatraiva tasthivān //
taṃ hataṃ keśinaṃ dṛṣṭvā gopā gopastriyaś ca tāḥ
babhūvur muditāḥ sarve hatavighnā hataklamāḥ //
dāmodaraṃ ca śrīmantam yathāsthānaṃ yathāvayaḥ
abhyanandan priyair vākyaiḥ pūjayantaḥ punaḥ punaḥ //
aho tāta kṛtaṃ karma hato 'yaṃ lokakaṇṭakaḥ
daityaḥ kṣiticaraḥ kṛṣṇa hayarūpaṃ samāsthitaḥ //
kṛtaṃ vṛndāvanaṃ kṣemaṃ sevyaṃ sarvanṛpakṣiṇām
ghnatā pāpam imaṃ tāta keśinaṃ hayam āhave //
hatā no bahavo gopā gāvo vatsāś ca vatsalāḥ
naike cānye janapadā hatānena durātmanā //
eṣa saṃvartakaṃ kartum udyataḥ kila pāpakṛt
nṛlokaṃ nirnaraṃ kṛtvā cartukāmo yathāsukham //
naitasya pramukhe sthātuṃ kaścic chakto jijīviṣuḥ
api devasamūheṣu kiṃ punaḥ pṛthivītale //
Note: k: After 51, S(except T3.4) ins.: :k
evaṃ te tuṣṭuvur gopāḥ kṛṣṇaṃ kamalalocanam |
athāhāntarhito vipro nāradaḥ khagamo muniḥ
prīto 'smi viṣṇo deveśa kṛṣṇa kṛṣṇeti cāsakṛt //
Note: k: After 52, D6,S,G(ed.) ins.: :k
namas tubhyaṃ jagannātha devadeva janārdana |
namas tubhyaṃ namas tubhyaṃ śaṅkhacakragadādhara ||
namas te jñānarūpāya keśavāya ca cakriṇe |
nama ādyāya bījāya nirguṇāya guṇātmane ||
namaḥ sahasraśirase tvāṃ nato 'smi janārdana |
namāmi lokanāthaṃ tvāṃ namas te devarūpiṇe ||
namas te 'stu hṛṣīkeśa pāhi naḥ sarvato hare |
iti stutvā jagannāthaṃ punar evābravīd vacaḥ |
yad idaṃ duṣkaraṃ karma kṛtaṃ keśijighāṃsayā
tvayy eva kevalaṃ yuktam tridive tryambake 'pi vā //
ahaṃ yuddhotsukas tāta tarpitenāntarātmanā
idaṃ narahayaṃ yuddham darṣṭuṃ svargād ihāgataḥ //
pūtanānidhanādīni karmāṇi tava dṛṣṭavān
ahaṃ tv anena govinda karmaṇā paritoṣitaḥ //
hayasyāsya mahendro 'pi bibheti balasūdanaḥ
kurvāṇasya vapur ghoram keśino duṣṭacetasaḥ //
yat tvayā pāṭito dvaidhaṃ bhujenāyataparvaṇā
eṣo 'sya mṛtyur antāya vihito viśvayoninā //
yasmāt tvayā hataḥ keśī tasmān macchāsanaṃ śṛṇu
keśavo nāma nāmnā tvaṃ khyāto loke bhaviṣyasi //
svasty astu bhavato loke sādhayāmy aham āśugaḥ
kṛtyaśeṣaṃ ca te kāryaṃ śaktas tvam asi māciram //
tvayi kāryāntaragate narā iva divaukasaḥ
viḍambayantaḥ krīḍanti līlāṃ tvadbalam āśritāḥ //
abhyāśe vartate kālo bhāratasyāhavodadheḥ
hastaprāptāni yuddhāni rājñāṃ tridivagāminām //
panthānaḥ śodhitā vyomni vimānārohiṇordhvagāḥ
avakāśā vibhajyante śakraloke mahīkṣitām //
ugrasenasute śānte padasthe tvayi keśava
abhitas tan mahadyuddhaṃ bhaviṣyati mahīkṣitām //
tvāṃ cāpratimakarmāṇaṃ saṃśrayiṣyanti pārthivāḥ
bhedakāle narendrāṇāṃ pakṣagrāho bhaviṣyasi //
tvayi rājāsanasthe hi rājaśrīṃ vahati prabho
śriyaṃ tyakṣyanti rājānas tvatprabhāvān na saṃśayaḥ //
eṣa me kṛṣṇa saṃdeśaḥ śrutibhiḥ khyātim eṣyasi
devatānāṃ divisthānāṃ jagataś ca jagatpate //
dṛṣṭaṃ me bhavataḥ karma dṛṣṭaś cāsi mayā prabho
kaṃse bhūyaḥ sameṣyāmi śāsite sādhayāmy aham //
Note: k: After 67, D6,S(except T3.4) ins.: :k
bahunāpi kim uktena pāhi viprān yathāsukham |
jānāmi tvāṃ mahābāho devānām api daivatam |
Note: k: D6,T1.2,G,M4 cont.; K,Ñ2.3,V,B,Dn,Ds,D1-5,T3.4 ins. after 67: :k
evam uktvā tu sa tadā nāradaḥ khaṃ jagāma ha |
nāradasya vacaḥ śrutvā devasaṃgītayoginaḥ
Note: k: After 68ab K1.2.4,Ñ1,D5,M4 ins.: :ktatheti sa samābhāṣya punar gopān samāsadat |
gopān kṛṣṇaḥ samāsādya vrajam eva viveṣa ha //
Note: h: HV (CE) ch. 68, transliterated and collated with ViP and BrP by Utz Podzeit, extracted from the collation and edited by Peter Schreiner; March 4, 2002. Not yet proof-read. :h
athāstaṃ gacchati tadā mandaraśmau divākare
saṃdhyāraktatale vyomni śaśāṅke pāṇḍumaṇḍale //
nīḍastheṣu vihaṃgeṣu satsu prāduṣkṛtāgniṣu
īṣat tamaḥ saṃvṛtāsu dikṣu sarvāsu sarvataḥ //
ghoṣāvāseṣu supteṣu vāśantīṣu śivāsu ca
naktaṃcareṣu hṛṣṭeṣu piśitām iṣakāṅkṣiṣu //
śakragopāpāhvayāmode pradoṣe 'bhyāśatas kare
saṃdhyāmayīm iva guhāṃ saṃpraviṣṭe divākare //
adhiśrayaṇavelāyāṃ prāptāyāṃ gṛhamedhinām
vanyair vaikhānasair mantrair hūyamāne hutāśane //
upāvṛttāsu vai goṣu duhyamānāsu ca vraje
asakṛd vyāharantīṣu baddhavatsāsu dhenuṣu //
prakīrṇadāmanīkeṣu gās tathaivāhvayatsu ca
saninādeṣu gopeṣu kālyamāne ca godhane //
karīṣeṣu praklṛpteṣu dīpyamāneṣu sarvaśaḥ
kāṣṭhabhārānataskandhair gopair abhyāgatais tathā //
kiṃcid abhyutthite some mandaraśmau virājati
īṣad vigāhamānāyāṃ rajanyāṃ divase gate //
prāpte dinavyuparame pravṛtte kṣaṇadāmukhe
bhāskare tejasi gate saumye tejasy upasthite //
agnihotrākule kāle saumyendau pratyupasthite
agnīṣomātmake saṃdhau vartamāne jaganmaye //
paścimenāgninā dīpte pūrveṇottaravarcasā
dagdhādrisadṛśe vyomni kiṃcit tārāgaṇākule //
vayobhir vāsaśubhatām bandhubhiś ca samāgamam
śaṃsadbhiḥ syandanenāśu prāpto dānapatir vrajam //
praviśann eva papraccha sāṃnidhyaṃ keśavasya saḥ
rauhiṇeyasya cākrūro nandagopasya cāsakṛt //
Note: k: After 14 D4 ins. (BhP 10,38.25-27): :k
padāni tasyākhilalokapāla+ |
kirīṭajuṣṭāmalapādareṇoḥ |
dadarśa goṣṭhe kṣitikautukāni |
vilakṣitāny abjayavāṅkuśādyaiḥ ||
taddarśanāhlādavivṛddhasaṃbhramaḥ |
premṇordhvaromāśrukalākulekṣaṇaḥ |
rathād avaskandya sa teṣv aceṣṭata |
prabhor amūny aṅghrirajāṃsy aho iti ||
dehabhṛtām iyān artho hitvā dambhaṃ bhiyaṃ śucam |
saṃdeśād yo harer liṅga+ +darśanaśravaṇādibhiḥ |
Note: k: On the other hand, D6,T1.2,G,M ins. after 14: :k
tato nivedito gopair idaṃ tad iti yādavaḥ |
sa nandagopasya gṛhaṃ vāsāya vasudopamaḥ
avaruhya tato yānāt praviveśa mahābalaḥ //
Note: k: After 15, Ñ2.3,V,B,Dn,Ds1(marg.)ṣ2,D3-5,T1.2,G,M4 ins.: :k
harṣapūrṇena vaktreṇa sāśrunetreṇa caiva hi |
praviśann eva ca dvāri dadarśādohane gavām
vatsamadhye sthitaṃ kṛṣṇaṃ savatsam iva govṛṣam //
sa taṃ harṣaparītena vacasā gadgadena vai
Note: k: After 17ab D6,T1.2,G,M,G(ed.) ins.: :knetrābhyāṃ yādavo viṣṇum ākulaṃ samudaikṣata ||
acintayat tadākrūro loke matsadṛśo na hi |
ya enaṃ lokanāthaṃ taṃ sakalaṃ dṛṣṭavān aham ||
nārāyaṇam aṇīyāṃsaṃ sthūlāt sthūlataraṃ harim ||
ko 'yaṃ matsadṛśo loke dṛṣṭavān yo 'ham īśvaram |
ehi keśava tāteti pravyāharata dharmavit //
uttānaśāyinaṃ dṛṣṭvā punar dṛṣṭvā śriyā vṛtam
avyaktayuvanaṃ kṛṣṇam akrūraḥ praśaśaṃse ha //
ayaṃ sa puṇḍarīkākṣaḥ siṃhaśārdūlavikramaḥ
saṃpūrṇajalameghābhaḥ parvatapravarākṛtiḥ //
mṛdheṣv adharṣaṇīyena saśrīvatsena vakṣasā
dviṣannidhanadakṣābhyāṃ bhujābhyāṃ sādhu bhūṣitaḥ //
mūrtimān sarahasyātmā jagato 'gryasya bhājanam
gopaveṣadharo viṣṇur udagrāgratanūruhaḥ //
kirīṭalāñcchanenāpi śirasā cchatravarcasā
kuṇḍalottamayogyābhyāṃ śravaṇābhyāṃ vibhūṣitaḥ //
hārārheṇa ca pīnena suvistīrṇena vakṣasā
dvābhyāṃ bhujābhyāṃ dīrghābhyāṃ vṛttābhyām upaśobhitaḥ //
strīsahasropacaryeṇa vapuṣā manmathāgninā
pīte vasāno vasane so 'yaṃ viṣṇuḥ sanātanaḥ //
dharaṇyāśrayabhūtābhyāṃ caraṇābhyām ariṃdamaḥ
trailokyākrāntibhūtābhyāṃ bhuvi padbhyām avasthitaḥ //
rucirāgrakaraś cāsya cakrocita ivekṣyate
dvitīya udyataś caiva gadāsaṃyogam icchati //
avatīrṇo bhavāyeha prathamaṃ padam ātmanaḥ
śobhate 'dya bhuvi śreṣṭhas tridaśānāṃ dhuraṃdharaḥ //
ayaṃ bhaviṣye dṛṣṭo vai bhaviṣyakuśalair budhaiḥ
gopālo yādavaṃ vaṃśaṃ kṣīṇaṃ vistārayiṣyati //
tejasā cāsya yadavaḥ śataśo 'tha sahasraśaḥ
vaṃśam āpūrayiṣyanti oghā iva mahārṇavam //
asyedaṃ śāsane sarvaṃ jagat sthāsyati śāśvatam
nihatāmitrasāmantaṃ sphītaṃ kṛtayuge yathā //
ayam āsthāya vasudhāṃ sthāpayitvā jagadvaśe
rājñāṃ bhaviṣyaty upari na ca rājā bhaviṣyati //
nūnaṃ tribhiḥ kramair jitvā yathānena kṛtaḥ prabhuḥ
purā puraṃdaro rājā devatānāṃ triviṣṭape //
tathaiva vasudhāṃ jitvā jitapūrvāṃ tribhiḥ kramaiḥ
sthāpayiṣyati rājānam ugrasenaṃ na saṃśayaḥ //
pramṛṣṭavairagādho 'yaṃ praśnaiś ca bahubhiḥ śrutaḥ
brāhmaṇair brahmavādaiś ca purāṇo 'yaṃ hi gīyate //
spṛhaṇīyo hi lokasya bhaviṣyati ca keśavaḥ
tathā hy asyotthitā buddhir mānuṣyam upasevitum //
ahaṃ tv asyādya vasatiṃ pūjayiṣye yathāvidhi
viṣṇutvaṃ manasā caiva pūjayiṣyāmi mantravat //
Note: k: For 36cd Ś1 subst.: :k
viṣṇuṃ tvāṃ pūjayiṣyāmi manasā caiva mantravān |
yac ca jātiparijñānaṃ prādurbhāvaś ca vai nṛṣu
amānuṣaṃ vedmi cainaṃ ye cānye divyacakṣuṣaḥ //
Note: k: After 37 D6,T1.2,G1-3.5,M,G(ed.) ins.: :k
stoṣye devaṃ jagannāthaṃ vārāhaṃ vāmanaṃ harim |
namāmi puṇḍarīkākṣaṃ naranārāyaṇākṛtim |
namāmi vāmanaṃ viṣṇuṃ trailokyākrāntapauruṣam |
so 'haṃ kṛṣṇena vai rātrau saṃmantrya viditātmanā
sahānena gamiṣyāmi savrajo yadi maṃsyate //
evaṃ bahuvidhaṃ kṛṣṇaṃ dṛṣṭvā hetvarthakāraṇaiḥ
viveśa nandagopasya kṛṣṇena saha saṃsadam //
Note: h: HV (CE) ch. 69, transliterated and collated with ViP and BrP by Utz Podzeit, extracted from the collation and edited by Peter Schreiner; March 4, 2002. Not yet proof-read. :h
sa nandagopasya gṛhaṃ praviṣṭaḥ sahakeśavaḥ
gopavṛddhān samānīya provācāmitadakṣiṇaḥ //
kṛṣṇaṃ caivābravīt prīto rauhiṇeyena saṃgatam
śvaḥ purīṃ mathurāṃ tāta gamiṣyāmaḥ śivāya vai //
yāsyanti ca vrajāḥ sarve sagokulaparigrahāḥ
kaṃsājñayā samucitaṃ karam ādāya vārṣikam //
Note: k: After 3, Ñ2.3,V2,B1.2,Ds,D4,T3.4 ins.: :k
vayaṃ caiva pragantāro ratham āsthāya saṃgatāḥ |
samṛddhas tasya kaṃsasya bhaviṣyati dhanurmahaḥ
taṃ drakṣyatha samṛddhaṃ ca svajanaṃ ca sameṣyatha //
pitaraṃ vasudevaṃ ca satataṃ duḥkhabhājanam
dīnaṃ putravadhaśrāntaṃ yuvām atha sameṣyathaḥ //
satataṃ pīḍyamānaṃ ca kaṃsenāśubhabuddhinā
daśānte śoṣitaṃ vṛddhaṃ duḥkhaiḥ śithilatāṃ gatam //
kaṃsasya ca bhayāt trastaṃ bhavadbhyāṃ ca vinākṛtam
dahyamānaṃ divā rātrau sotkaṇṭhenāntarātmanā //
tāṃ ca drakṣyāmi govinda putrair amṛditastanīm
devakīṃ devasaṃkāśāṃ sidantīṃ vihataprabhām //
putraśokena śuṣyantīṃ tvaddarśanaparāyaṇām
viyogaśokasaṃtaptāṃ vivatsām iva saurabhīm //
upaplutekṣaṇāṃ nityaṃ nityaṃ malinavāsasam
svarbhānuvadanagrastāṃ śaśāṅkasya prabhām iva //
tvaddarśanaparāṃ nityaṃ tavāgamanakāṅkṣiṇīm
tvatpravṛttena śokena sīdantīṃ vai tapasvinīm //
tvatpralāpeṣv akuśalāṃ tvayā bālye viyojitām
arūpajñāṃ tava vibho vaktrasyāsyenduvarcasaḥ //
yadi tvāṃ janayitvā sā kliśyate kṛṣṇa devakī
apatyārtho nu kas tasyā varaṃ hy evānapatyatā //
ekaḥ śoko hi nārīṇām aputrāṇāṃ vidhīyate
saputrā tv aphale putre dhik prajātena tapyate //
tvaṃ tu śakrasamaḥ putro yasyās tvatsadṛśo guṇaiḥ
pareṣām apy abhayado na sā śocitum arhati //
vṛddhau tavāmbāpitarau parabhṛtyatvam āgatau
tvatkṛte bhartsyamānau tau kaṃsenādīrghadarśinā //
yadi te devakī mānyā pṛthivīvātmadhāriṇī
tāṃ śokasalile magnām uttārayitum arhasi //
taṃ ca vṛddhaṃ priyasutaṃ vasudevaṃ mahābalam
putrayogena saṃyojya kṛṣṇa dharmam avāpsyasi //
yathā nāgaḥ sudurvṛtto damino yamunāhrade
vipulaś ca dhṛtaḥ śailo yathā vai bhūdharas tvayā //
darpodvṛttaś ca balavān ariṣṭo vinipātitaḥ
paraprāṇaharaḥ keśī duṣṭātmā ca hatas tvayā //
etenaiva prayatnena vṛddhāv uddhṛtya duḥkhitau
yathā dharmam avāpnoṣi tat kṛṣṇa paricintyatām //
nirbhartsyamāno yair dṛṣṭaḥ pitā te kṛṣṇa saṃsadi
te sarve cakrur aśrūṇi netrair duḥkhānvitā bhṛśam //
Note: k: After 22 D6,T1.2,G1-3.5,M,G(ed.) ins.: :k
andhena kiṃcid uktvaiva kaṃso nirbhartsitaḥ kila |
garbhāvakartanādīni duḥkhāni subahūni sā
mātā te devakī kṛṣṇa kaṃsasya sahate 'vaśā //
mātāpitṛbhyāṃ sarveṇa jātena nibhṛtena vai
ṛṇaṃ vai pratikartavyaṃ yathāyogam udāhṛtam //
evaṃ te kurvataḥ kṛṣṇa mātāpitror anugraham
parityajetāṃ tau śokaṃ syāc ca dharmas tavātulaḥ //
Note: k: After 25, T3 ins.: :k
dharmas te vipulo 'nanto bhaviṣyati na saṃśayaḥ |
kṛṣṇas tu viditārtho vai tam āhāmitadakṣiṇam
bāḍham ity eva tejasvī na ca cukrodha keśavaḥ //
te ca gopāḥ samāgamya nandagopapurogamāḥ
akrūravacanaṃ śrutvā saṃceluḥ kaṃsaśāsanāt //
gamanāya ca te sajjā babhūvur vrajavāsinaḥ
sajjaṃ copāyanaṃ kṛtvā gopavṛddhāḥ pratasthire //
karaṃ cānaḍuhaḥ sarpir mahiṣāṃś copanāyikān
yathāsāraṃ yathāyūtham upanīya payo ghṛtam //
taṃ sajjayitvā kaṃsasya karaṃ copāyanāni ca
te sarve gopapatayo gamanāyopatasthire //
akrūrasya kathābhis tu saha kṛṣṇena jāgrataḥ
rauhiṇeyatṛtīyasya sā niśā vyatyavartata //
Note: h: HV (CE) ch. 70, transliterated and collated with ViP and BrP by Utz Podzeit, extracted from the collation and edited by Peter Schreiner; March 4, 2002. Not yet proof-read. :h
tataḥ prabhāte vimale pakṣivyāhārasaṃkule
naiśākare raśmijāle kṣaṇadākṣayasaṃhṛte //
nabhasy aruṇasaṃtīrṇe paryaste jyotimaṇḍale
pratyūṣapavanāsāraiḥ kledite dharaṇītale //
kṣīṇākārāsu tārāsu suptaniṣpratibhāsu ca
naiśam antardadhe rūpam udagacchad divākaraḥ
śītāṃśuḥ śāntakiraṇo niṣprabhaḥ samapadyata //
Note: k: After 3, N T1.3.4 G2 M4 ins.: :k
eko nāśayate rūpam eko vardhayate vapuḥ |
gobhiḥ samavakīrṇāsu vrajaniryāṇabhūmiṣu
manthāvartanapūrṇeṣu gargareṣu nadatsu ca //
dāmabhir yamyamāneṣu vatseṣu taruṇeṣu ca
gopair āpūryamāṇeṣu ghoṣarathyāsu sarvaśaḥ //
tatraiva gurukaṃ bhāṇḍaṃ sakaṭāropitaṃ bahu
tvaritāḥ pṛṣṭhataḥ kṛtvā jagmuḥ syandanavāhanāḥ //
kṛṣṇo 'tha rauhiṇeyaś ca sa caivāmitadakṣiṇaḥ
trayo rathagatā jagmus trilokapatayo yathā //
athāha kṛṣṇam akrūro yamunātīram āśritaḥ
syandanaṃ tāta rakṣasva yatnaṃ ca kuru vājiṣu //
hayebhyo yavasaṃ dattvā hayabhāṇḍe rathe tathā
pragāḍhaṃ yatnam āsthāya kṣaṇaṃ tāta pratīkṣatām //
yamunāyā hrade hy asmin toṣyāmi bhujageśvaram
divyair bhāgavatair mantraiḥ sarvalokaprabhuṃ yataḥ //
Note: k: After 10, V2.3,B,D(except D1),T1.3.4,M4 ins.: :k
guhyaṃ bhāgavataṃ devaṃ sarvalokasya bhāvanam |
śrīmatsvastikamūrdhānaṃ praṇamiṣyāmi bhoginam
sahasraśirasaṃ devam anantaṃ nīlavāsasam //
dharmadevasya tasyāsyād yad viṣaṃ prabhaviṣyati
sarvaṃ tad amṛtaprakhyam aśiṣyāmy amaro yathā //
svastikāyatanaṃ dṛṣṭvā dvijihvaṃ śrīvibhūṣitam
samājas tatra sarpāṇāṃ śāntyarthaṃ vai bhaviṣyati //
āstāṃ māṃ samudīkṣantau bhavantau saṃgatāv ubhau
nivṛtto bhujagendrasya yāvad asmi hradottamāt //
tam āha kṛṣṇaḥ saṃhṛṣṭo gaccha dharmiṣṭha māciram
āvāṃ khalu na śaktau svas tvayā hīnāv ihāsitum //
Note: k: After 15, D6,T2,G,M1.2.4 ins.: :k
evam uktas tu kṛṣṇena praṇamya manasā harim |
sa hrade yamunāyās tu mamajjāmitadakṣiṇaḥ
rasātale sa dadṛśe sarpalokam imaṃ yathā //
Note: k: For 16cd, D5 subst.: :k
rasātale hradāntaś ca darśanāgamanaṃ yathā |
tasya madhye sahasrāsyam hematālocchritadhvajam
lāṅgalāsaktahastāgram musalāpāśritodaram //
asitāmbarasaṃvītam pāṇḍuraṃ pāṇḍurānanam
kuṇḍalaikadharaṃ mattam suptam amburuhekṣaṇam //
bhogodarāsane śubhre svena dehena kalpite
svāsīnaṃ svastikābhyāṃ ca varābhyāṃ ca mahīdharam //
kiṃcit savyāpavṛttena maulinā hemacūlinā
jātarūpamayaiḥ padmair mālayā cchannavakṣasam //
raktacandanadigdhāṅgam dīrghabāhum ariṃdamam
padmanābhaṃ sitābhrābham bhābhir jvalitatejasam //
dadarśa bhogināṃ nātham sthitam ekārṇaveśvaram
pūjyamānaṃ dvijihvendrair vāsukipramukhaiḥ prabhum //
kambalāśvatarau nāgau tau cāmaradharāv ubhau
avījayetāṃ taṃ devam dharmāsanagataṃ prabhum //
tasyābhyāsagato bhāti vāsukiḥ pannageśvaraḥ
vṛto 'nyaiḥ sacivaiḥ sarpaiḥ karkoṭakapuraḥsaraiḥ //
taṃ ghaṭaiḥ kāñcanair divyaiḥ paṅkajacchannamūrdhajam
rājānaṃ snāpayāmāsuḥ snātam ekārṇavāmbubhiḥ //
tasyotsaṅge ghanaśyāmam śrīvatsācchāditodaram
Note: k: After 26a, T4 ins.: :kkoṭikandarpasundaram |
dakṣiṇāvartasusnigdha- |
Note: k: After 26ab, D6,T1.2,G,M4,G(ed.) ins.: :ksahasraśubhanāmānam arkacandrekṣaṇadyutim |
pītāmbaradharaṃ viṣṇuṃ sūpaviṣṭaṃ dadarśa ha //
āsīnaṃ caiva somena tulyasaṃhananaṃ prabhum
saṃkarṣaṇam ivāsīnaṃ taṃ divyaṃ viṣṭaraṃ vinā //
sa kṛṣṇaṃ tatra sahasā vyāhartum upacakrame
tasya saṃstambhayāmāsa vākyaṃ kṛṣṇaḥ svatejasā //
Note: k: After 28, D6,S(except T3.4),G(ed.) ins.: :k
sa ca bhāgavatair mantrair arcayitvā gadādharam |
stutvā ca devam īśānaṃ varadaṃ bhaktavatsalam |
ātmānaṃ kṛtakṛtyānām agresaram amaṃsta saḥ |
so 'nubhūya bhujaṃgānāṃ taṃ bhāgavatam avyayam
udatiṣṭhat punas toyād vismito 'mitadakṣiṇaḥ //
sa tau rathasthāv āsinau tatraiva balakeśavau
udīkṣamāṇāv anyonyaṃ dadarśādbhutarūpiṇau //
athāmajjat punas tatra tadākrūraḥ kutūhalāt
ijyate yatra devaḥ sa nīlavāsāḥ sanātanaḥ //
tathaivāsīnam utsaṅge sahasrāsyadharasya vai
dadarśa kṛṣṇam akrūraḥ pūjyamānaṃ yathāvidhi //
bhūyaś ca sahasotthāya taṃ mantraṃ manasā vahan
rathaṃ tenaiva mārgeṇa jagāmāmitadakṣiṇaḥ //
tam āha keśavo hṛṣṭaḥ sthitam akrūram āgatam
kīdṛśaṃ nāgalokasya vṛttaṃ bhāgavate hrade //
ciraṃ tu bhavatā kālaṃ vyākṣepeṇa vilambitam
manye dṛṣṭaṃ tvayāścaryaṃ hṛdayaṃ te yathācalam //
pratyuvāca sa taṃ kṛṣṇam āścaryaṃ bhavatā vinā
kiṃ bhaviṣyati lokeṣu careṣu sthāvareṣu ca //
tatrāścaryaṃ mayā dṛṣṭaṃ yat kṛṣṇa bhuvi durlabham
tad ihāpi yathā tatra paśyāmi ca ramāni ca //
saṃgataś cāsmi lokānām āścaryeṇeha rūpiṇā
ataḥ parataraṃ kṛṣṇa nāścaryaṃ draṣṭum utsahe //
Note: k: After 38, T1,G2.3,M ins.: :k
ko vāyaṃ triṣu lokeṣu vismayaṃ bhavatā vinā |
Note: k: T1,G2.3,M cont.; D6,T2,G1.4.5,G(ed.) ins. after 38: :k
namaḥ sarvātmane tubhyaṃ vismayāya jagatpate |
namo 'stu devadeveśa tubhyaṃ sarvātmane namaḥ |
namo 'stu viṣṇave tubhyam ameyāya jagatpate ||
kiṃ vānena jagannātha kṛtakṛtyo 'smi sāṃpratam |
kṛtyaśeṣaṃ sadā viṣṇo kim utsṛjasi sāṃpratam |
tad āgaccha gamiṣyāmaḥ kaṃsarājapurīṃ prabho
yāvann āstaṃ vrajaty eṣa divasānte divākaraḥ //
Note: h: HV (CE) ch. 71, transliterated and collated with ViP and BrP by Utz Podzeit, extracted from the collation and edited by Peter Schreiner; March 4, 2002. Not yet proof-read. :h
te tu yuktvā rathavaraṃ sarva evāmitaujasaḥ
Note: k: After 1ab, all Mss. (except Ś1,Ñ1,M1-3) ins.: :kkṛṣṇena sahitāḥ prāptās tathā saṃkarṣaṇena ca |
Note: k: Ñ2.3 V1.2 B D2-6 T2-4 cont.: :kasasāda purīṃ rasyāṃ mathurāṃ kaṃsapālitām |
viviśuḥ pūḥpradhānāṃ vai kāle raktadivākare //
tau tu svabhavanaṃ vīrau kṛṣṇasaṃkarṣaṇāv ubhau
praveśitau buddhimatā akrūreṇārkatejasā //
tāv āha varavarṇāṅgau bhīto dānapatis tadā
tyaktavyā tāta gamane vasudevagṛhe spṛhā //
yuvayor hi kṛte vṛddhaḥ kaṃsena sa nirasyate
bhartsyate ca divā rātrau neha sthātavyam ity api //
Note: k: After 4, all Mss. (except Ś1,Ñ1,M1-3) ins.: :k
tad yuvābhyāṃ hi kartavyaṃ pitrarthaṃ sukham uttamam |
yathā sukham avāpnoti tad vai kāryaṃ hitānvitam |
Note: k: D2 cont. (=BhP 10,41.11.12ab.13.15-16): :k
nāhaṃ yuvābhyāṃ rahitaḥ pravekṣye mathurāṃ purīm |
tyaktuṃ nārhasi māṃ nātha bhaktaṃ te bhaktavatsala ||
āgaccha yāma gehān naḥ sanāthān kurv adhokṣaja |
punīhi pādarajasā gṛhān no gṛhamedhinām |
yacchaucenānutṛpyanti pitaraḥ sāgnayaḥ surāḥ ||
āpas te 'ṅghryavanejanyas trīn lokān śucayo 'punan |
śirasādhatta yāḥ śarvaḥ svayaṃ tāḥ sagarātmajāḥ ||
devadeva jagannātha puṇyaśravaṇakīrtana |
yadūnām uttamaḥśloka nārāyaṇa namo 'stu te |
tam uvāca tataḥ kṛṣṇo yāsyāvo 'vām atarkitau
prekṣantau mathurāṃ vīra rājamārgaṃ ca dhārmika //
Note: k: K,Ñ,V,B,D,T3.4 ins. after 5; T1,G2-5 after 5ab: :k
tasyaiva tu gṛhaṃ sādho gacchāvo yadi manyase |
Note: k: D2 cont. (=BhP10,41.18]): :k
evam ukto bhagavatā so 'krūro vimanā iva |
purīṃ praviṣṭaḥ kaṃsāya karmāvedya gṛhaṃ yayau |
Note: k: V2,Dn,D6 cont. after *799; T1.2,G,G(ed.) ins. after 6ab; M1-3 after 5: :k
akrūro 'pi namaskṛtya manasā viṣṇum avyayam |
jagāma kaṃsapārśvaṃ tu prahṛṣṭenāntarātmanā |
Note: k: T1.2,G,M cont.: :k
tau ca devau jagannāthau balakeśavasaṃjñitau |
anuśiṣṭau ca tau vīrau prasthitau prekṣakāv ubhau
ālānābhyām ivotsṛṣṭau kuñjarau yuddhakāṅkṣiṇau //
Note: k: After 6, D6,S(except T3.4) ins.: :k
dārakāś ca tayor mārgam anuvavruḥ samantataḥ |
tau tu mārgagataṃ dṛṣṭvā rajakaṃ raṅgakārakam
ayācetāṃ tatas tāni vāsāṃsi virajāni vai //
rajakaḥ sa tu tau prāha yuvāṃ kasya vanecarau
rājño vāsāṃsi yau mūrkhau yācetāṃ nirbhayāv ubhau //
ahaṃ kaṃsasya vāsāṃsi nānādeśodbhavāni ca
kāmarāgāṇi śataśo rajāmi vividhāni ca //
yuvāṃ kasya vane jātau mṛgaiḥ saha vivardhitau
jātarāgāv idaṃ dṛṣṭvā raktam ācchādanaṃ bahu //
aho vāṃ jīvitaṃ tyaktaṃ yau bhavantāv ihāgatau
mūrkhau prākṛtavijñānau vāso yācitum arhatha //
tasmai cukrodha vai kṛṣṇo rajakāyālpamedhase
prāptāriṣṭāya mūrkhāya sṛjate vāṅmayaṃ viṣam //
talenāśanikalpena sa taṃ mūrdhany atāḍayat
gatāsuḥ sa papātorvyāṃ rajako vyastamastakaḥ //
taṃ hataṃ paridevantyo bhāryās tasya vicukruśuḥ
tvaritaṃ muktakeśyaś ca jagmuḥ kaṃsaniveśanam //
Note: k: After 14, D6,S (except T3.4) ins.: :k
kṛṣṇo 'pi balabhadraś ca vāsāṃsy ādāya sarvataḥ |
paridhāya tu tau pūrvaṃ śobhayetāṃ mahāmatī ||
dārakebhyas tato dattvā suślakṣṇāni mṛdūni ca |
te ca sarve suvasanā virejuḥ śataśas tathā ||
śeṣāṇi tu tadā kṛṣṇo vāsāṃsi subahūny api |
ācchichācchidya sahasā ciccheda ca pipeṣa ca ||
bhasmasād akarot tasya rajakasya niveśanam |
tāv apy ubhau suvasanau jagmatur mālyakāraṇāt
Note: k: After 15ab, V2 ins.: :kyathāyogaṃ yathābhogyaṃ yathāyogaṃ ni[darśya] ca |
vīthīṃ mālyāpaṇānāṃ vai gandhāghrātau dvipāv iva //
guṇako nāma tatrāsīn mālyavṛttiḥ priyaṃvadaḥ
prabhūtamālyāpaṇavāl lakṣmīvān mālyajīvanaḥ //
taṃ kṛṣṇaḥ ślakṣṇayā vācā mālyārtham abhisṛṣṭayā
dehīty uvāca tatkālaṃ mālākāram akātaram //
tābhyāṃ prīto dadau mālyaṃ prabhūtaṃ mālyajīvanaḥ
bhavatoḥ svam idaṃ ceti provāca priyadarśanaḥ //
prītas tu manasā kṛṣṇo guṇakāya varaṃ dadau
śrīs tvāṃ matsaṃśrayā saumya dhanaughair abhivartsyate //
sa labdhvā varam avyagro mālyavṛttir adhomukhaḥ
kṛṣṇasya patito mūrdhnā pratijagrāha taṃ varam //
yakṣāv imāv iti tadā sa mene mālyajīvanaḥ
sa bhṛśaṃ bhayasaṃvigno nottaraṃ pratyapadyata //
Note: k: After 21, D6,S (except T3.4),G(ed.) ins.: :k
adyāpi tasya prabhavo vaṃśo bhavati ratnavān |
kīrtimān balavān nityaṃ keśavena tadā kṛtaḥ ||
viṣṇoḥ prasādaḥ sumahān sadārakṣat tadanvayam |
vasudevasutau tau tu rājamārgagatāv ubhau
kubjāṃ dadṛśatur bhūyaḥ ānulepanabhājanām //
tām āha kṛṣṇaḥ kubjeti kasyedam anulepanam
nayasy ambujapatrākṣi kṣipram ākhyātum arhasi //
sā sthitāvekṣiṇī bhūtvā pratyuvācāmbujekṣaṇam
kṛṣṇaṃ jaladagambhīraṃ vidyutkuṭilagāminī //
rājñaḥ snānagṛhaṃ yāmi tad gṛhāṇānulepanam
Note: k: After the first occurrence of 25ab, Bom., Poona eds. ins.: :kdṛṣṭvaiva tvāravindākṣa vismitāsmi varānana |
sthitāsmy āgaccha bhadraṃ te hṛdayasyāsi me priyaḥ //
kutaś cāgamyate saumya yan māṃ tvaṃ nāvabudhyase
mahārājasya dayitāṃ niyuktām anulepane //
tām uvāca hasantīṃ tu kṛṣṇaḥ kubjām avasthitām
Note: k: For 27ab, K1.2 subst.: :ktām uvāca tataḥ kṛṣṇaḥ sairandhrīṃ prahasann iva |
Note: k: After 27ab, G4 ins.: :ksugandham etad rājārhaṃ ruciraṃ rucirānane |
āvayor gātrasadṛśaṃ dīyatām anulepanam //
vayaṃ hi deśātithayo mallāḥ prāptā varānane
draṣṭuṃ dhanurmahaṃ divyaṃ rāṣṭraṃ caiva maharddhimat //
pratyuvācātha sā kṛṣṇaṃ priyo 'si mama darśane
Note: k: After 29ab, D5 (marg.) ins.: :ktataḥ sā praṇatā bhūtvā pradadāv anulepanam |
rājārham idam agryaṃ ca tad gṛhāṇānulepanam //
Note: k: T1,G,M,G(ed.) ins. after 29; T2 after the second occurrence of 29: :k
kṛṣṇo 'tha balabhadraś ca tadādāyānulepanam |
aṅgāni cāpy alimpetāṃ śubhaṃ ca susugandhi ca ||
mālayātha tadā viṣṇur baddhayā bahupuṣpayā |
govindo gopatiḥ kṛṣṇo rarāja kṛtaśekharaḥ |
saṃkarṣaṇo 'tha balavān rarāja bahumālayā |
tāv ubhāv anuliptāṅgāv ārdragātrau virejatuḥ
tīrthagau paṅkadigdhāṅgau yamunāyāṃ yathā vṛṣau //
Note: k: After 30, D6,S(except T3.4),G(ed.) ins.: :k
dārakāś ca tathā sarve virejuḥ kṛtaśekharāḥ |
vikṛtaṃ bhūṣayanto 'pi prabhāvāc chārṅgadhanvanaḥ |
tāṃ tu kubjāṃ tataḥ kṛṣṇo dvyaṅgulenāgrapāṇinā
śanaiḥ saṃtolayāmāsa kṛṣṇo līlāvidhānavit //
sā tu magnastanayugā svāyatāṅgī śucismitā
jahāsoccaiḥ stanataṭā ṛjuyaṣṭir latā yathā //
praṇayāc cāpi kṛṣṇaṃ sā babhāṣe mattakāśinī
kva yāsyasi mayā ruddhaḥ kānta tiṣṭha gṛhāṇa mām //
tau jātahāsāv anyonyaṃ satalākṣepam avyayau
vīkṣamāṇau prahasitau kubjāyāḥ śrutavistarau //
kṛṣṇas tu kubjāṃ kāmārtāṃ sasmitaṃ visasarja ha
Note: k: After 35ab, D6,T1.2,G,M,G(ed.)ins.: :kyatheṣṭaṃ gamyatāṃ bhadre nāhaṃ tādṛgvidho naraḥ |
tatas tau kubjayā muktau praviṣṭau rājasaṃsadam //
tāv ubhau vrajasaṃvṛddhau gopaveṣavibhūṣitau
gūḍhaceṣṭānanau bhūtvā praviṣṭau rājaveṣma tat //
dhanuḥśālāṃ gatau tau tu bālāv apariśaṅkitau
himavadvanasaṃbhūtau siṃhāv iva balotkaṭau //
didṛkṣantau mahat tatra dhanur āyāgabhūṣitam
papracchatuś ca tau vīrāv āyudhāgārikaṃ tadā //
bhoḥ kaṃsadhanuṣāṃ pāla śrūyatām āvayor vacaḥ
katarat tad dhanuḥ saumya maho 'yaṃ yasya vartate
āyāgabhūtaṃ kaṃsasya darśayasva yadīcchasi //
sa tayor darśayāmāsa tad dhanuḥ stambhasaṃnibham
anāropyam asaṃbhedyaṃ devair api savāsavaiḥ //
tad gṛhītvā tataḥ kṛṣṇas tolayāmāsa vīryavān
dorbhyāṃ kamalapatrākṣaḥ prahṛṣṭenāntarātmanā //
tolayitvā yathākāmaṃ tad dhanur daityapūjitam
āropayāmāsa balī nāmayāmāsa cāsakṛt //
ānamyamānaṃ kṛṣṇena prakarṣād uragopagam
dvidhābhūtam abhūn madhye dhanur āyāgabhūṣitam //
Note: k: After 43, D2 ins. (=BhP 10,42.18-22): :k
dhanuṣo bhajyamānasya śabdaḥ khaṃ rodasī diśaḥ |
pūrayām āsa yaṃ śrutvā kaṃsas trāsam upāgamat ||
tadrakṣiṇaḥ sānucarā kupitā ātatāyinaḥ |
gṛhītukāmā āvavrur gṛhyatāṃ vadhyatām iti ||
atha tān durabhiprāyān vilokya balakeśavau |
kruddhau dhanvana ādāya śakale tāṃś ca jaghnatuḥ ||
balaṃ ca kaṃsaprahitaṃ hatvā śālāmukhāt tataḥ |
niṣkramya ceratur dṛptau nirīkṣya purasaṃpadaḥ ||
tayos tad adbhutaṃ vīryaṃ niśamya puravāsinaḥ |
tejaḥ prāgalbhyarūpaṃ ca menire vibudhottamau |
bhaṅktvā tu tad dhanuḥ śreṣṭhaṃ kṛṣṇas tvaritavikramaḥ
niścakrāma mahāvegaḥ sa ca saṃkarṣaṇo yuvā //
anuyuktau tatas tau ca bhagne dhanuṣi rakṣibhiḥ
dhanuṣo bhaṅganādena vāyunirghoṣakāriṇā
cacālāntaḥpuraṃ sarvaṃ diśaś caiva pupūrire //
Note: k: After 45, Bom., Poona eds., G(ed.) ins.: :k
nirgamya tv āyudhāgārāj jagmatur gopasaṃnidhau ||
vegenāyudhapālas tu gacchan saṃbhrāntamānasaḥ |
sa tv āyudhāgāranaro bhītas tvaritavikramaḥ
samīpaṃ nṛpater gatvā kākocchvāso 'bhyabhāṣata //
śrūyatāṃ mama vijñāpyam āścaryaṃ dhanuṣo gṛhe
nirvṛttam asmin kāle yaj jagataḥ saṃbhramopamam //
narau kasyāpi sahitau śikhāvitatamūrdhajau
nīlapitāmbaradharau pītaśvetānulepanau //
Note: k: After 48, Ñ2.3,V,B,Ds,D2.4-6,T1.3.4 ins.: :k
tāv antaḥpuram ajñātau praviṣṭau kāmaveginau |
devaputropamau vīrau bālāv iva hutāśanau
sthitau dhanurgṛhe saumyau sahasā khād ivāgatau
Note: k: After 49cd, D3 ins.: :ksaumyau mahasya codyuktāv āgatau puruṣarṣabhau |
mayā dṛṣṭau parivyaktaṃ rucirācchādanasrajau //
tābhyām ekas tu padmākṣaḥ śyāmaḥ pītāmbarasrajaḥ
jagrāha tad dhanūratnaṃ durgrahaṃ daivatair api //
tat sa bālo bṛhadrūpaṃ balād yantram ivāyasam
āropayitvā vegena nāmayāmāsa līlayā //
kṛṣyamāṇaṃ tu tat tena vibāṇaṃ bāhuśālinā
muṣṭideśe vikūjitvā dvidhābhūtam abhajyata //
Note: k: After 52, K1-3,Ñ2.3,V,B,D,S(except M1-3) ins.: :k
tataḥ pracalitā bhūmir naiva bhāti ca bhāskaraḥ |
dhanuṣo bhaṅganādena bhramatīva nabahstalam ||
tad adbhutam ahaṃ dṛṣṭvā vismayaṃ paramaṃ gataḥ |
bhayād bhayadasatrūṇāṃ tad ihākhyātum āgataḥ ||
na jānāmi mahārāja kau tāv amitavikramau |
ekaḥ kailāsasaṃkāśa eko 'ñjanagiriprabhaḥ |
sa tu tac cāparatnaṃ vai bhaṅktvā stambham iva dvipaḥ
niṣpapātānilagatiḥ sānugo 'mitavikramaḥ
jagāma tad dvidhā kṛtvā na jāne ko 'py asau nṛpa //
śrutvaiva dhanuṣo bhaṅgaṃ kaṃso 'py udvignamānasaḥ
visṛjyāyudhapālaṃ vai praviveśa gṛhottamam //
Note: h: HV (CE) ch. 72, transliterated and collated with ViP and BrP by Utz Podzeit, extracted from the collation and edited by Peter Schreiner; March 4, 2002. Not yet proof-read. :h
sa cintayitvā dhanuṣo bhaṅgaṃ bhojavivardhanaḥ
Note: k: After 1ab, N(except Ś1,Ñ1), S(except r M1-3) ins.: :kbabhūva vimanā rājā cintayan bhṛśaduḥkhitaḥ ||
kathaṃ bālo vigatabhīr avamatya mahābalam |
prekṣamāṇas tu puruṣair dhanur bhaṅktvā vinirgataḥ ||
yasyārthe dāruṇaṃ karma kṛtvā lokavigarhitam |
pitṛsvasrātmajān bhītaḥ ṣaḍevāhaṃ upasthitam ||
daivaṃ puruṣakāreṇa na śakyam ativartitum |
nāradoktaṃ ca vacanaṃ nūnaṃ mahyam upasthitam ||
evaṃ rājā vicintyātha niṣkramya sa gṛhottamāt |
prekṣāgāraṃ jagāmāśu mañcānām avalokakaḥ //
sa dṛṣṭvā sarvaniryuktaṃ prekṣāgāraṃ nṛpottamaḥ
śreṇīnāṃ dṛḍhasaṃyuktair mañcavāṭair nirantaram //
sottamāgārayuktābhir valabhībhir vibhūṣitam
kuṭībhiś ca pravṛddhābhir ekastambhaiś ca bhūṣitam //
sarvataḥ sāraniryuktaṃ svāyataṃ supratiṣṭhitam
udakpravaṇasaṃśliṣṭaṃ mañcārohaṇam uttamam //
nṛpāsanaparikṣiptaṃ saṃcārapathasaṃkulam
channaṃ tad vedikābhiś ca mānavaughabharakṣamam //
sa dṛṣṭvā bhūṣitaṃ raṅgam ājñāpayata buddhimān
śvaḥ sacitrāḥ samālyāś ca sapatākās tathaiva ca //
suvāsitā vapuṣmanta upanītottaracchadāḥ
kriyantāṃ mañcavāṭāś ca valabhīvīthayas tathā //
akṣavāṭe karīṣasya kalpyantāṃ rāśayo 'vyayāḥ
paṭās taraṇaśobhāś ca balayaś cānurūpataḥ //
sthāpyantāṃ sunikhātāś ca mahākumbhā yathākramam
udabhārasahāḥ sarve sakāñcanaghaṭottarāḥ //
balayaś copakalpyantāṃ kaṣāyāś caiva kumbhaśaḥ
prāśnikāś ca nimantryantāṃ śreṇyaś ca sapurogamāḥ //
ājñā ca deyā mallānāṃ prekṣakāṇāṃ tathaiva ca
samāje mañcaśobhāś ca kalpyantāṃ sūpakalpitāḥ //
evam ājñāpya rājā sa samājavidhim uttamam
samājavāṭān niṣkramya viveśa svaṃ niveśanam //
āhvānaṃ tatra saṃcakre tasya malladvayasya vai
cāṇūrasyāprameyasya muṣṭikasya tathaiva ca //
tau tu mallau mahāvīryau balinau yuddhaśālinau
kaṃsasyājñāṃ puraskṛtya hṛṣṭau viviśatus tadā //
tau samīpagatau mallau dṛṣṭvā jagati viśrutau
uvāca kaṃso nṛpatiḥ sopanyāsam idaṃ vacaḥ //
bhavantau mama vikhyātau mallau vīradhvajocitau
pūjitau ca yathānyāyaṃ satkārārhau viśeṣataḥ //
tan matto yadi satkāraḥ smaryate sukṛtāni vā
kartavyaṃ me mahat karma bhavadbhyāṃ svena tejasā //
yāv etau mama saṃvṛddhau vraje gopālakāv ubhau
saṃkarṣaṇaś ca kṛṣṇaś ca bālāv api jitaśramau //
etau raṅgagatau yuddhe yudhyamānau vanecarau
nipātān antaraṃ śīghraṃ hantavyau nātra saṃśayaḥ //
bālāv imau capalakāv akriyāv iti sarvathā
nāvajñā tatra kartavyā kartavyo yatna eva hi //
tābhyāṃ yudhi nirastābhyāṃ gopābhyāṃ raṅgasaṃnidhau
āyatāṃ ca tadātve ca śreyo mama bhaviṣyati //
nṛpateḥ snehasaṃyuktair vacobhir hṛṣṭamānasau
ūcatur yuddhasaṃmattau mallau cāṇūramuṣṭikau //
yady āvayās tau pramukhe sthāsyete gopakilbiṣau
hatāv ity avagantavyau pretarūpau tapasvinau //
yadi vā pratiyotsyete tāv ariṣṭapariplutau
āvābhyāṃ roṣayuktābhyāṃ pramukhasthau vanaukasau //
Note: k: After 24, D6,T1.2,G,M,G(ed.) ins.: :k
hatvā tau goṣu saṃvṛddhau dāsyāvas tava bhūtalam |
vyapaitu te bhayaṃ rājann āvāṃ mallottamau mṛdhe ||
ity uktvāspoṭanaṃ cakre mattamalladvayaṃ tathā |
siṃhanādaṃ ca tac cakre bhūgolakavidārakam |
evaṃ vāgviṣam utsṛjya tāv ubhau mallapuṃgavau
anujñātau narendreṇa svagṛhaṃ pratijagmatuḥ //
Note: h: HV (CE) ch. 73, transliterated and collated with ViP and BrP by Utz Podzeit, extracted from the collation and edited by Peter Schreiner; March 4, 2002. Not yet proof-read. :h
mahāmātraṃ tataḥ kaṃso babhāṣe hastijīvinam
hastī kuvalayāpīḍaḥ samājadvāri tiṣṭhatu //
balavān madalolākṣaś capalaḥ krodhano nṛṣu
dānotkaṭakaṭaś caṇḍaḥ prativāraṇaroṣaṇaḥ //
sa saṃcodayitavyas te tāv uddiśya vanaukasau
vasudevasutau nīcau yathā syātāṃ gatāyuṣau //
tvayā caiva gajendreṇa yadi tau goṣu jīvinau
bhavetāṃ ghātitau raṅge paśyeyam aham utkaṭau //
tatas tau patitau dṛṣṭvā vasudevaḥ sabāndhavaḥ
chinnamūlo nirālambaḥ sabhāryo vinaśiṣyati //
ye ceme yādavā mūrkhāḥ sarve kṛṣṇaparāyaṇāḥ
vinaśiṣyanti chinnāśā dṛṣṭvā kṛṣṇaṃ nipātitam //
etau hatvā gajendreṇa mallair vā svayam eva vā
purīṃ niryādavāṃ kṛtvā vicariṣyāmy ahaṃ sukhī //
pitāpi me parityakto yo yādavakulodvahaḥ
śeṣāś ca me parityaktā yādavāḥ kṛṣṇapakṣiṇaḥ //
na cāham ugrasenena jātaḥ kila sutārthinā
mānuṣeṇālpavīryeṇa yathā mām āha nāradaḥ //
Note: k: After 9, N(except Ś1 Ñ1) S (except M1-3) ins. a passage given in App. I (No. 14). :k
suyāmunaṃ nāma giriṃ mama mātā rajasvalā
prekṣituṃ saha sā strībhir gatā vanakutūhalāt //
sā tatra ramaṇīyeṣu ruciradrumasānuṣu
cacāra nagaśṛṅgeṣu kandareṣu nadīṣu ca //
kiṃnarodgītamadhurāḥ pratiśrutyānunāditāḥ
śṛṇvantī kāmajananīr vācaḥ śrotrasukhāvahāḥ //
barhiṇānāṃ ca virutaṃ khagānāṃ ca vikūjitam
abhīkṣṇam abhiśṛṇvantī strīdharmam abhirocayat //
etasminn antare vāyur vanarājiviniḥsṛtaḥ
hṛdyaḥ kusumagandhāḍhyo vavau manmathabodhanaḥ //
dvirephābharaṇāś caiva kadambā vāyughaṭṭitāḥ
mumucur gandham adhikaṃ saṃtatāsāramūrchitāḥ //
kesarāḥ puṣpavarṣaiś ca vavṛṣuḥ madabodhanāḥ
nīpā dīpā ivābhānti puṣpakaṇṭakadhāriṇaḥ //
mahī navatṛṇacchannā śakragopavibhūṣitā
yauvanastheva vanitā khaṃ dadhārārtavaṃ vapuḥ //
atha saubhapatiḥ śrīmān drumilo nāma dānavaḥ
Note: k: After 18ab, N(except Ś1,Ñ1),S(except M1-3) ins. App. I (No. 15). :kugrasenasya rūpeṇa mātaraṃ me pradharṣayat //
sā patisnigdhahṛdayā bhāvenopasasarpa tam
śaṅkitā cābhavat paścāt tasya gauravadarśanāt //
sā tam āhotthitā bhītā na tvaṃ mama patir dhruvam
kaś ca tvaṃ vikṛtākāro yenāsmi malinīkṛtā //
ekapatnīvratam idaṃ mama saṃdūṣitaṃ tvayā
patyur me rūpam āsthāya nīca nīcena karmaṇā //
kiṃ māṃ vakṣyanti ruṣitā bāndhavāḥ kulapāṃsanīm
jugupsitā ca vatsyāmi patipakṣair nirākṛtā //
dhik tvām īdṛśam akṣāntaṃ dauṣkulaṃ vyutthitendriyam
aviśvāsyam anāyuṣyaṃ paradārābhimarśanam //
sa tām āha prasajjantīṃ kṣiptaḥ krodhena dānavaḥ
ahaṃ vai drumilo nāma saubhasya patir ūrjitaḥ //
kiṃ māṃ kṣipasi doṣeṇa mūḍhe paṇḍitamānini
mānuṣaṃ patim āśritya hīnavīryaparākramam //
vyabhicārān na duṣyanti striyaḥ strīmān agarvite
ny hy āsīnn iyatā buddhir mānuṣīṇāṃ viśeṣataḥ //
śrūyante hi striyo bahvyo vyabhicāravyatikramaiḥ
prasūtā devasaṃkāśān putrān amitavikramān //
atīva tvaṃ hi loke 'smin patidharmavatī satī
śuddhā keśānvidhunvantī bhāṣase yad yad icchasi //
kasya tvam iti yac cāhaṃ tvayokto mattakāśinī
kaṃso nāma ripudhvaṃśī tava putro bhaviṣyati //
sā saroṣā punar bhūtvā nindatī tasya taṃ varam
uvāca vyathitā devī dānavaṃ duṣṭavādinam //
dhik te vṛttaṃ sudurvṛtta yaḥ sarvā nindase striyaḥ
santi striyo nīcavṛttāḥ santi caiva pativratāḥ //
yās tv ekapatnyaḥ śrūyante 'rundhatīpramukhāḥ striyaḥ
dhṛtās tābhis trayo lokāḥ sarve vai kulapāṃsana //
yas tvayā mama putro vai datto vṛttavināśanaḥ
na me bahumatas tv eṣa śṛṇu cāpi yad ucyate //
utpatsyati pumān nīca pativaṃśe mamāvyayaḥ
bhaviṣyati sa te mṛtyur yaś ca dattas tvayā sutaḥ //
drumilas tv evam uktas tu jagāmākāśam eva tu
Note: k: After 35ab, N(except Ś1,Ñ1), S(except M1-3) ins.: :ktenaiva rathamukhyena divyenāpratigāminā |
jagāma ca purīṃ dīnā mātā tad ahar eva me //
Note: k: After 35, N(except Ś1,Ñ1),S(except M1-3) ins.: :k
mām evam uktvā bhagavān nārado munisattamaḥ |
dīpyamānas tapovīryāt sākṣād agnir iva jvalan ||
vallakīṃ vādyamānas tu saptasvaravimūrchitām |
gāyano lakṣyavīthīṃ ca jagāma brahmaṇo 'ntikam ||
śṛṇuṣvedaṃ mahāmātra nibodha vacanaṃ mama |
tathyaṃ coktaṃ nāradena traikālajñena dhīmatā ||
ahaṃ balena vīryeṇa nayena vinayena ca |
prabhāveṇaiva śauryeṇa tejasā vikrameṇa ca ||
satyena caiva dānena nānyo 'sti sadṛśaḥ pumān |
viditvā sarvam ātmānaṃ vacanaṃ śraddadhāmy aham |
kṣetrajo 'haṃ sutas tv evam ugrasenasya hastipa
mātāpitṛbhyāṃ saṃtyaktaḥ sthāpitaḥ svena tejasā //
ubhābhyāṃ cāpi vidviṣṭo bāndhavaiś ca viśeṣataḥ
Note: k: After 37ab K1.2,Ñ2.3,D2.3 ins.: :ktad imau ghātayitvā tu hastinā gopakilbiṣau |
Note: k: While D6,T1.2,G,M1-2 ins. after 37ab: :kbadhvā ca pitaraṃ rājye sthito 'smi ca balīyasā |
etān api haniṣyami hatvā gopālakāv ubhau //
tad gaccha gajam āruhya sāṅkuśaprāsatomaraḥ
sthiro bhava mahāmātra samājadvāri mā ciram //
Note: k: After 38, Ds1(marg.) ins.: :k
samāgatau ca tau dṛṣṭvā jahi gopālakāv ubhau |
Note: h: HV (CE) ch. 74, transliterated and collated with ViP and BrP by Utz Podzeit, extracted from the collation and edited by Peter Schreiner; March 4, 2002. Not yet proof-read. :h
tasminn ahani nirvṛtte dvitīye samupasthite
saṃkīryata mahāraṅgaḥ paurair yuddhadidṛkṣubhiḥ //
Note: k: After 1, V2,D5 ins.: :k
rājabhir viṣayāntasthaiḥ pradhānapuruṣais tataḥ |
nārībhir māthurīyābhiḥ śyāmābhiḥ saṃghasaṃsthitāḥ ||
pīnastanībhiḥ kaṃsasya tathā bilvapayodharaiḥ |
aparākhaṇḍitābhis tu mañjarīsadṛśaiḥ stanaiḥ |
Note: k: D5 cont.: :k
bhrū dhanurdṛṣṭiviśikhaṃ nāsā jyā siñjati tataḥ |
ghnanty ākṛṣya ca kṛṣṇaṃ tāḥ kaṃsena viniyojitāḥ ||
kandalīdaṇḍakāṇḍena badhvā taṃ mohapāśakaiḥ |
nābhīhrade ca gambhīre kālayākhye parājite ||
kaṃsadhātrīsṛtāṃ snātvā dantaiś chinnastanīṃ tataḥ |
pāṇibhyāṃ tatkucau gopo na samarthaḥ pradharṣitum ||
śakaṭasya ca bhaṅgaṃ sa yathā kāritavāñ śiśuḥ |
asmākaṃ śakaṭībhaṅgaṃ yugmayoḥ kucayos tataḥ ||
ariṣṭaṃ hatavān yo 'yaṃ kakudā sadṛśau stanau |
ghātayiṣyati gopo 'yaṃ mallābhyāṃ balavattaraḥ |
sacitrāṣṭāstricaraṇāḥ sārgaladvāravedikāḥ
sagavākṣārdhacandrāś ca satalottamabhūṣitāḥ //
prāṅmukhaiś cārunirmuktaiḥ mālyadāmāvataṃsitaiḥ
alaṃkṛtair virājadbhiḥ śāradair iva toyadaiḥ //
mañcāgāraiḥ suniryuktair yuddhārthaṃ suvibhūṣitaiḥ
samājavāṭaḥ śuśubhe sa meghaughair ivārṇavaḥ //
svakarmadravyayuktābhiḥ patākābhir nirantaram
śreṇīnāṃ ca gaṇānāṃ ca mañcā bhānty acalopamāḥ //
antaḥpuragatānāṃ ca prekṣāgārāṇy adūrataḥ
rejuḥ kāñcanacitrāṇi ratnajvālākulāni ca //
tāni ratnaughakḷptāni sasānupragrahāṇi ca
rejur javanikākṣepaiḥ sapakṣā iva khe nagāḥ //
tatra cāmarahāsaiś ca bhūṣaṇānāṃ ca śiñjitaiḥ
maṇīnāṃ ca vicitrāṇāṃ vicitrāś cerur arciṣaḥ //
gaṇikānāṃ pṛthaṅmañcāḥ śubhair āstaraṇāmbaraiḥ
śobhitā vāramukhyābhir vimānapratimaujasaḥ //
tatrāsanāni mukhyāni paryaṅkāś ca hiraṇmayaḥ
prakīrṇāś ca kuthāś citrāḥ sapuṣpastabakadrumāḥ //
sauvarṇāḥ pānakumbhāś ca pānabhūmyaś ca śobhitāḥ
phalāvadaṃśapūrṇāś ca cāṅger yaḥ pānayojitāḥ //
anye ca mañcā bahavaḥ kāṣṭhasaṃcayabandhanāḥ
rejuḥ prastaraśas tatra prakāśā mañcasaṃcayāḥ //
uttamāgārikāś cānye sūkṣmajālāvalokinaḥ
strīnāṃ prekṣāgṛhā bhānti rājahaṃsā ivāmbare //
prākhaṅmuś cāruniryukto meruśṛṅgasamaprabhaḥ
rukmapatranibhastambhaś citraniryogaśobhitaḥ //
prekṣāgāraḥ sa kaṃsasya pracakāśe 'dhikaṃ śriyā
śobhito mālyadāmaiś ca nivāsakṛtalakṣaṇaḥ //
tasminn ānājanākīrṇe janaughapratinādite
samājavāṭe saṃstabdhe kampamānārṇavaprabhe //
Note: k: After 16, D2.5 ins.: :k
nandagopādayo gopā bhojarājasamāhṛtāḥ |
niveditopāyanās te ekasmin mañca āviśan |
rājā kuvalayāpīḍo raṅgasya dvāri kuñjaraḥ
tiṣṭhatv iti samājñāpya prekṣāgāram athāyayau //
sa śukle vāsasī bibhrac chvetavyajanacāmaraḥ
śuśubhe śvetamukuṭaḥ śvetābhra iva candramāḥ //
tasya siṃhāsanasthasya sukhāsīnasya dhīmataḥ
rūpam apratimaṃ dṛṣṭvā paurāḥ procur jayāśiṣaḥ //
Note: k: After 19, D6,T1.2,G,M,G(ed.) ins.: :k
tato devāḥ sagandharvāḥ siddhāś ca paramarṣayaḥ |
puraṃdaraṃ puraskṛtya jagmur yuddhadidṛkṣavaḥ ||
vimānasthās tu te sarve virejuḥ sitacāmarāḥ |
śakro 'py airāvatagataḥ śuśubhe ca samātaliḥ ||
ūrvaśīpramukhāḥ sarvā vāramukhyās tadābhavan |
śakrapārśvagatās tās tu sitacāmarapāṇayaḥ ||
dilīpapramukhās te tu munayo rājasattamāḥ |
anekayugaparyantaṃ sthitā divi ca śakravat |
bhagavantaṃ jagannāthaṃ draṣṭuṃ gopavibhūṣitam |
nāradād yās tu munayo yuddhaṃ draṣṭuṃ vyavasthitāḥ ||
mallābhyāṃ devayoḥ sārdhaṃ raṅgamadhye samutthitam |
amaraughais tadākāśaṃ nibiḍaṃ samapadyata ||
raṅgavāṭas tadā caiva janaiḥ sarvaiḥ samāvṛtaḥ |
dyauś cāpi devasaṃghaiś ca nibiḍābhūd viyaccaraiḥ |
ekākāraṃ samabhavad bhūtalaṃ ca nabhaḥsthalam |
tataḥ praviviśur mallā raṅgam āvalgitāmbarāḥ
tisraś ca bhāgaśaḥ kakṣyāḥ prāviśan balaśālinaḥ //
tatas tūryaninādena kṣveḍitāsphoṭitena ca
vasudevasutau hṛṣṭau raṅgadvāram upasthitau //
Note: k: After 21, Ds,D5, Bom.,Poona eds., G (ed.) ins.: :k
ballavau vastrasaṃvītau suravandanabhūṣitau |
ūrdhvapīḍau sragāpīḍau bāhuśastrakṛtodyamau |
āsphoṭayantāv anyonyaṃ bāhū caivārgalāpamau |
tāv āpatantau tvaritau pratiṣiddhau varānanau
Note: k: After 22ab, D2 ins. (=BhP 10,43.2-5): :kraṅgadvāraṃ samāsādya tasmin gajam avasthitam |
apaśyat kuvalayāpīḍaṃ kṛṣṇo 'mbaṣṭhapraṇoditam ||
baddhvā parikaraṃ śauriḥ samuhya kuṭilālakān |
uvāca hastipaṃ vācā meghanādagabhīrayā ||
ambaṣṭhāmbaṣṭha mārgaṃ nau dehy apākrama mā ciram |
no cet sakuñjaraṃ hatvā nayāmi yamasādanam ||
evaṃ nirbhartsito 'mbaṣṭhaḥ kupitaḥ kopitaṃ gajam |
codayām āsa kṛṣṇāya kālāntakayamopamam |
tena mattena nāgena codyamānena vai bhṛśam //
sa mattahastī duṣṭātmā kṛtvā kuṇḍalinaṃ karam
cakāra codito yatnaṃ nihantuṃ balakeśavau //
tataḥ prahasitaḥ kṛṣṇas trāsyamāno gajena vai
kaṃsasyamatsaraṃ caiva jagarhe sa durātmanaḥ //
Note: k: For 24cd, D6,T1.2,G,M subst.: :k
anena gajamukhyena hantuṃ vyavasitaḥ kila ||
aho tu kaṃso durmedhāḥ kim ato vismayaḥ paraḥ |
iti saṃcintya bhagavān balabhadram udaikṣata ||
tasya tāṃ jagṛhe buddhiṃ balabhadro durātmanaḥ |
tvarate khalu kaṃso 'yaṃ gantuṃ vaivasvatakṣayam
yo mām anena nāgena pradharṣayitum icchati //
saṃnikṛṣṭe tato nāge garjamāne yathā ghane
sahasotpatya govindaś cakre tālasvanaṃ prabhuḥ //
kṣveditāsphoṭitaravaṃ kṛtvā nāgasya cāgrataḥ
karaṃ ca śrīdharas tasya pratijagrāha vakṣasā //
viṣāṇāntarago bhṛtvā punaś caraṇamadhyagaḥ
babādhe taṃ gajaṃ kṛṣṇaḥ pavanas toyadaṃ yathā //
sa hastāc ca viniṣkrānto viṣāṇāgrāc ca dantinaḥ
vimuktaḥ pādamadhyāc ca kṛṣṇo dvipam amohayat //
so 'ntikāyas tu saṃmūḍho hantuṃ kṛṣṇam aśaknuvan
gajaḥ sveṣv eva gātreṣu mathyamāno rarāsa ha //
papāta bhūmau jānubhyāṃ daśanābhyāṃ tutoda ha
madaṃ susrāva roṣāc ca gharmāpāya yathā ghanaḥ //
kṛṣṇas tu tena nāgena krīḍitvā śiśunā yathā
nidhanāya matiṃ cakre kaṃsadviṣṭena cetasā //
sa tasya pramukhe pādaṃ kṛtvā kumbhād anantaram
dorbhyāṃ viṣāṇam utpāṭya tenaiva prāharat tadā //
sa tena vajrakalpena svena dantena kuñjaraḥ
hanyamānaḥ śakṛnmūtraṃ cakārārto rarāsa ha //
kṛṣṇajarjaritāṅgasya kuñjarasyārtacetasaḥ
kaṭābhyām atisusrāva vegavad bhūri śoṇitam //
lāṅgūlaṃ cāsya vegena niścakarṣa halāyudhaḥ
śailapṛṣṭhārdhasaṃlīnaṃ vainateya ivoragam //
tenaiva gajadantena kṛṣṇo hatvā tu kuñjaram
jaghānaikaprahāreṇa gajāroham atholbaṇam //
so 'rtanādaṃ mahat kṛtvā vidanto dantināṃ varaḥ
papāta samahāmātro vajrabhinna ivācalaḥ //
Note: k: K,Ñ2.3,V,B,D,S(except M1-3) ins. after 38, Ñ1 after 39ab: :k
tatas tau tu gajāṅgāni pragṛhya raṇakarkaśau |
gajasya pādarakṣāṃś ca jaghnatuḥ puruṣarṣabhau ||
tāṃś ca hatvā viviśatur madhyaṃ raṅgasya tāv ubhau |
nāsatyāv aśvinau svargād avatīrṇāv ivecchayā ||
vṛṣṇyandhakāś ca bhojāś ca dadṛsur vanamālinau |
kṣveḍitotkruṣṭanādena bāhvor āsphoṭitena ca ||
siṃhanādaiś ca tālaiś ca harṣayām āsatur janam ||
tau dṛṣṭvā bhojarājas tu viṣasāda vṛthāmatiḥ |
paurāṇām anurāgaṃ ca harṣaṃ cālakṣya bhārata |
taṃ hatvā puṇḍarīkākṣo nadantaṃ dantināṃ varam
avatīrṇo 'rṇavākāraṃ samājaṃ sahapūrvajaḥ //
Note: k: After 39, D2 ins. (= BhP 10,43.17): :k
mallānām aśanir nṛṇāṃ naravaraḥ strīṇāṃ smaro mūrtimān |
gopānāṃ svajano 'satāṃ kṣitibhujāṃ śāstā svapitroḥ śiśuḥ |
mṛtyur bhojapater virāḍ aviduṣāṃ tattvaṃ paraṃ yogināṃ |
vṛṣṇīnāṃ paradevateti vidito raṅgaṃ praviṣṭo hariḥ |
Note: k: On the other hand, D6,S(except T3.4) ins. after 39: :k
devāś ca munayaḥ sarve namaskṛtvā gadādharam |
vimānasthās tato yuddhaṃ dṛṣṭiṃ draṣṭuṃ samādadhuḥ ||
tataḥ kṛṣṇo mahābāhur baladevena saṃyutaḥ |
janāṃś ca manasā pūjya kaṃsaṃ hantuṃ samudyataḥ |
Note: h: HV (CE) ch. 75, transliterated and collated with ViP and BrP by Utz Podzeit, extracted from the collation and edited by Peter Schreiner; March 4, 2002. Not yet proof-read. :h
praviśantaṃ tu vegena mārutāvalgitāmbaram
pūrvajaṃ purataḥ kṛtvā kṛṣṇaṃ kamalalocanam //
gajadantakṛtollekhaṃ subhujaṃ devakīsutam
līlākṛtāṅgadaṃ vīraṃ madena rudhireṇa ca //
valgamānaṃ yathā siṃhaṃ garjamānaṃ yathā ghanam
bāhuśabdaprahāreṇa cālayantaṃ vasuṃdharām //
augraseniḥ samālokya dantidantodyatāyudham
kṛṣṇaṃ bhṛśāyastamukhaḥ saroṣaṃ samudaikṣata //
Note: k: After 4, D6,S(except T3.4) ins.: :k
raṅgasthā api te sarve netrair animiṣais tathā |
dadṛśuḥ puṇḍarīkākṣaṃ prahṛṣṭenāntarātmanā |
bhujāsaktena śuśubhe gajadantena keśavaḥ
candrārdhabimbasaṃyukto yathaikaśikharo giriḥ //
valgamāne govinde sa kṛtsno raṅgasāgaraḥ
janaughapratinādena pūryamāṇa ivābabhau //
Note: k: After 6, all Mss. (except Ś1,M1-3) ins.: :k
tataḥ krodhābhitāmrākṣaḥ kaṃsaḥ paramakopanaḥ |
cāṇūram ādiśad yuddhe kṛṣṇasya sumahābalam ||
andhraṃ mallaṃ ca nikṛtiṃ muṣṭikaṃ ca mahābalam |
baladevāya sakrodho dideśādricayopa-mam |
kaṃsenāpi samājñaptaś cāṇūraḥ pūrvam eva tu
yodhavyaṃ saha kṛṣṇena tvayā yatnavateti vai //
sa roṣeṇa tu cāṇūraḥ kaṣāyīkṛtalocanaḥ
abhyavartata yuddhāya apāṃ pūrṇo yathā ghanaḥ //
Note: k: After 8, D5,S(except T3.4),G(ed.) ins.: :k
āha cainaṃ sa govindaṃ vyapaneṣyāmi te madam |
acirād drakṣyase gopa mama vaivasvataṃ balāt ||
tac chrutvaiva tu govindo babhāṣe taṃ gatāyuṣam |
tādṛśaṃ tava sāmarthyaṃ drakṣyāmi balam uttamam |
acirād drakṣyase malla tvayā vātha mayādhama ||
darśayasva samarthaś cet tvadbalaṃ kathyase 'dhama |
evam uktvā tu govindo nanāda vividhaṃ bahu |
avaghuṣṭe samāje tu niḥśabdastimite jane
yādavās tatra sahitā idaṃ vacanam abruvan //
Note: k: After 9, B2 ins.: :k
bāṇapakṣaṃ parityaṃ ca yuddhaṃ sāmnā nirīkṣya ca |
bāhuyuddham idaṃ raṅge saprāśnikam akātaram
kriyābalasamājñātam aśastraṃ nirmitaṃ purā //
adbhiś cāpi śramo nityaṃ vineyaḥ kāladarśibhiḥ
karīṣeṇa ca mallasya satataṃ prakriyā smṛtā //
sthito bhūmigataś caiva yo yathāmārgataḥ sthitaḥ
Note: k: For 12ab, D6,T1.2,G,M subst.: :ksthitau bhūmigatau caiva yathā tau mārgam āsthitau |
niyudhyataś ca paryāyaḥ prāśnikaiḥ samudāhṛtaḥ //
bālo vā yadi vā madhyaḥ sthaviro vā kṛśo 'pi vā
balastho vā sthito raṅge jñeyaḥ kakṣyāntareṇa vai //
balataś ca kriyātaś ca bāhuyuddhavidhir yudhi
nirghātānantaraṃ kiṃcin na kartavyaṃ vijānatā //
tad idaṃ prastutaṃ raṅge yuddhaṃ kṛṣṇāndhramallayoḥ
bālaḥ kṛṣṇo mahān andhras tatra na syād vicāraṇā //
tataḥ kilakilāśabdaḥ samāje samavartata
prāvalgata ca govindo vākyaṃ cedam uvāca ha //
ahaṃ bālo mahān andhro vapuṣā parvatopamaḥ
yuddhaṃ mama sahānena rocate bāhuśālinā //
yuddhavyatikramaḥ kaścin na bhaviṣyati matkṛtaḥ
na hy ahaṃ bāhuyodhānāṃ dūṣayiṣyāmi yan matam //
yo 'yaṃ karīṣadharmaś ca toyadharmaś ca raṅgajaḥ
kaṣāyasya ca saṃsargaḥ samayo hy eṣa kalpitaḥ //
saṃyamaḥ sthiratā śauryaṃ vyāyāmaḥ matkriyā balam
reṅge ca niyatā siddhir etad yuddhamukhe vratam //
yad ayaṃ bāhubhir yuddhaṃ savairaṃ kartum udyataḥ
atra vai nigrahaḥ kāryas toṣayiṣyāmy ahaṃ jagat //
karūṣeṣu prasūto 'yaṃ cāṇūro nāma nāmataḥ
bāhuyodhī sarīreṇa karmabhiś cānucintyatām //
etena bahavo mallā nihatā yuddhadurmadāḥ
raṅgapratāpakāmena mallamārgaś ca dūṣitaḥ //
sastrasiddhis tu yodhānāṃ saṃgrāme śastrayodhinām
raṅgasiddhis tu mallānāṃ pratimallanighātajā //
raṇe vijayamānasya kīrtir bhavati śāśvatī
hatasyāpi raṇe sastrair nākapṛṣṭhaṃ vidhīyate //
raṇe hy ubhayataḥ siddhir hatasyāpi ghnato 'pi vā
sā hi prāṇāntikā yātrā mahadbhiḥ sādhu pūjitā //
ayaṃ tu mārgo balataḥ kriyātaś ca viniḥsṛtaḥ
mṛtasya raṅge kaḥ svargo jayato vā kuto ratiḥ //
ye tu kecit svadoṣeṇa rājñaḥ paṇḍitamāninaḥ
Note: k: After 28ab D6,T,G,M4,G(ed.) ins.: :kyotsyāma bālā balibhir bāhubhiḥ saha saṃkaṭe |
evam uktvā tataḥ kṛṣṇaś cāṇūraṃ samapadyata |
āsphoṭya bāhū rājendra cāṇūraḥ kṛṣṇam abhyayāt ||
tāv ubhau siṃhavikrāntau mattāv iva mahāgajau |
yuyudhāte tadānyonyam ebhir mallapariśramaiḥ |
pratāpārthe hatā mallā mallahantur vadho hi saḥ //
evaṃ saṃjalpatām eva tābhyāṃ yuddhaṃ sudāruṇam
ubhābhyām abhavad ghoraṃ vāraṇābhyāṃ yathā vane //
kṛtapratikṛtaiś citrair bāhubhiś ca sasaṃkaṭaiḥ
saṃnipātāvadhūtaiś ca pramāthonmathanais tathā //
Note: k: After 30, N(except Ñ1,D6),T3.4 ins.: :k
tāv ubhāv api saṃśliṣṭau yathā śailamayau tathā |
kṣepaṇair muṣṭibhiś caiva varāhodbhūtanisvanaiḥ
kīlair vajranipātaiś ca prasṛṣṭābhis tathaiva ca //
śalākānakhapātaiś ca pādoddhūtaiś ca dāruṇaiḥ
jānubhiś cāsmanirghoṣaiḥ śirobhiś cāvaghaṭṭitaiḥ //
tad yuddham abhavad ghoram asastraṃ bāhutejasā
balaprāṇena śūrāṇāṃ samājotsavasaṃnidhau //
saṃrajyata janaḥ sarvaḥ sotkruṣṭaninadotthitaḥ
sādhu vādāṃś ca mañceṣu ghoṣayanty apare janāḥ //
Note: k: After 34, D6,S(except T3.4) ins.: :k
diviṣṭhāś ca tathā devāḥ sādhu sādhv iti cābruvan |
tataḥ prasvinnavadanaḥ kṛṣṇapraṇihitekṣaṇaḥ
nyavārayata tūryāṇi kaṃsaḥ savyena pāṇinā //
pratiṣiddheṣu tūryeṣu mṛdaṅgādiṣu teṣu vai
khe saṃgatāny avādyanta devatūryāṇy anekaśaḥ //
yudhyamāne hṛṣīkeśe puṇḍarīkanibhekṣaṇe
svayam eva pravādyanta tūryaghoṣāś ca sarvaśaḥ //
antardhānagatā devā vimānaiḥ kāmarūpibhiḥ
cerur vidyādharaiḥ sārdhaṃ kṛṣṇasya jayakāṅkṣiṇaḥ //
jayasva kṛṣṇa cāṇūraṃ dānavaṃ malladehinam
iti saptarṣayaḥ sarve ūcuś caiva nabhogatāḥ //
cāṇūreṇa ciraṃ kālaṃ krīḍitvā devakīsutaḥ
balam āhārayāmāsa kaṃsasyābhāvadarśivān //
tataś cacāla vasudhā mañcāś caiva jughūrṇire
mukutāc cāpi kaṃsasya papāta maṇir uttamaḥ //
dorbhyām ānamya kṛṣṇas tu cāṇūraṃ pūrṇajīvitam
prāharan muṣṭinā mūrdhni vakṣasyāhatya jānunā //
niḥsṛte sāśrurudhire tasya netre sabandhane
tāpanīye yathā ghaṇṭe vakṣyopari vilambite //
sa papāta ca raṅgasya madhye niḥsṛtalocanaḥ
cāṇūro vigataprāṇo jīvitānte mahītale //
dehena tasya raṅgasya cāṇūrasya gatāyuṣaḥ
saṃniruddho mahāmārgaḥ sa śaileneva lakṣyate //
Note: h: HV (CE) ch. 76, transliterated by Peter Schreiner; version of March 4, 2002. Not yet proof-read. :h
rauhiṇeyo hate tasmiṃś cāṇūre baladarpite
jagrāha muṣṭikaṃ raṅge kṛṣṇas tosalakaṃ punaḥ //
Note: k: After 1c, D2 ins.: :k
... muṣṭinā cāhanad bhṛśam |
papāta rudhirodgārī tatkṣaṇād gatajīvitaḥ |
agamad baladevo 'ndhram ... |
saṃnipāte tu tau mallau prathame krodhamūrcchitau
sameyātāṃ rāmakṛṣṇau kālasya vaśavartinau //
Note: k: K1(marg.),Ñ2.3,V,B,Dn,D2.4.5 ins. after 2; K3 after 9: :k
nirghātāvanatau bhūtvā raṅgamadhye vavalgatuḥ |
kṛṣṇas tosalam udyamya giriśṛṅgopamaṃ balī
bhrāmayitvā śataguṇaṃ niṣpipeṣa mahītale //
tasya kṛṣṇābhipannasya pīḍitasya balīyasā
mukhād rudhiram atyartham ājagāma mumūrṣataḥ //
saṃkarṣaṇas tu suciraṃ yodhayitvā mahābalaḥ
andhramallaṃ mahāmallo maṇḍalāni vidarśayan //
muṣṭinaikena tejasvī sāśanistanayitnunā
śirasy abhyahanad vīro vajreṇeva mahāgirim //
sa niṣpatitamastiṣko visrastanayanānanaḥ
papātābhimukhas tatra tato nādo mahān abhūt //
andhratosalakau hatvā kṛṣṇasaṃkarṣaṇāv ubhau
krodhasaṃraktanayanau raṅgamadhye vavalgatuḥ //
samājavāṭo nirmallaḥ so 'bhavad bhīmadarśanaḥ
andhre tadā mahāmalle muṣṭike ca nipātite //
ye ca saṃprekṣakā gopā nandagopapurogamāḥ
bhayakṣobhitasarvāṅgāḥ sarve tatrāvatasthire //
harṣajaṃ vāri netrābhyāṃ vartayānā pravepatī
prasnavotpīḍitā kṛṣṇaṃ devakī samudaikṣata //
kṛṣṇadarśanayuktena bāṣpeṇākulitekṣaṇaḥ
vasudevo jarāṃ tyaktvā snehena taruṇāyate //
vāramukhyāś ca tāḥ sarvāḥ kṛṣṇasya mukhapaṅkajam
papur hi netrabhramarair nimeṣāntaragāmibhiḥ //
kaṃsasyāpi mukhe svedo bhrūbhedāntaragocaraḥ
abhavad roṣaniryāsaḥ kṛṣṇasaṃdarśaneritaḥ //
keśavāyāsadhūmena roṣaniḥśvāsavāyunā
dīptam antargataṃ tasya hṛdayaṃ mānasāgninā //
tasya prasphuritauṣṭhasya bhinnālīkasya tasya vai
kaṃsavaktrasya roṣeṇa raktasūryāyate vapuḥ //
krodharaktān mukhāt tasya prasṛtāḥ svedabindavaḥ
udyatasyeva sūryasya prasṛtāḥ pādapaṅktayaḥ //
Note: k: For 17cd, K,Ñ2.3,V1.3,B,Dn,Ds,D1-5,T3.4 subst.; Ñ1,T1,G4 ins. after 17ab: :k
yathā ravikaraspṛṣṭā vṛkṣāvaśyāyabindavaḥ |
so ājñāpayata saṃkruddhaḥ puruṣān vyāyatān bahūn
gopāv etau samājaughān niṣkrāmyetāṃ vanecarau //
na caitau draṣṭum icchāmi vikṛtau pāpadarśinau
gopānām api me rājye na kaścit sthātum arhati //
nandagopaś ca durmedhāḥ pāpeṣv abhirato mama
āyasair nigaḍākārair lohapāśair nigṛhyatām //
vasudevaś ca durvṛtto nityaṃ chadmacaro mama
avṛddhārheṇa daṇḍena kṣipram adyaiva vadhyatām //
ye ceme prākṛtā gopā dāmodaraparāyaṇāḥ
eṣāṃ hriyantāṃ gāvaś ca yac cāsti vasu kiṃcana //
evam ājñāpayānaṃ tu kaṃsaṃ paruṣabhāṣiṇam
dadarśāyastanayanaḥ kṛṣṇaḥ satyaparākramaḥ //
kṣipte pitari cukrodha nandagope ca keśavaḥ
jñātīnāṃ ca vyathāṃ dṛṣṭvā visaṃjñāṃ caiva devakīm //
sa siṃha iva vegena kesarī jātavikramaḥ
ārurukṣur mahābāhuḥ kaṃsanāśārtham acyutaḥ //
raṅgamadhyād utpapāta kṛṣṇaḥ kaṃsāsanāntikam
asajjan vāyunā kṣipto yathā vidyud ghanād ghanam //
dadṛśur na hi taṃ sarve raṅgamadhyād avaplutam
kevalaṃ kaṃsapārśvasthaṃ dadṛśuḥ puravāsinaḥ //
so 'pi kaṃsas tathāyastaḥ parītaḥ kāladharmaṇā
ākāśād iva govindaṃ mene tatrāgataṃ vibhum //
Note: k: After 28, D2 ins.: :k
tam āviśantam ālokya mṛtyum ātmana āsanāt |
manasvī sahasotthāya jagṛhe so 'sicarmaṇī ||
taṃ khaḍgapāṇiṃ vicarantam āśu |
śyenaṃ yathā dakṣiṇasavyam ambare |
samagrahīd durviṣahogratejā |
yathoragaṃ tārkṣyasutaḥ prasahya |
Note: k: After 28, D5 ins.: :k
kiṃcid dayāparāmṛṣṭo hantuṃ naicchat sa keśavaḥ |
ātmabhrātaram ājñāya nāyudhaṃ pātayat tadā ||
kāmācārapravṛttinyā striyā vai lālito naraḥ |
kāmācāreṣu niḥśaktaḥ śvasann iva viṣīdate ||
sthitaḥ kaṃsas tu mañceṣu prasvinnaḥ sarvagātrakaiḥ |
iti cintāsamāviṣṭaṃ dayāviṣṭaṃ ca keśavam ||
antarīkṣasamutpannā tatra vāṇī babhūva ha |
jahi kaṃsaṃ yavīyāṃsam āyudhaiś ca vivarjitam ||
etac chrutvā tu kaṃsaṃ sa sahasotthitavāṃs tataḥ |
vadan vākyaṃ janān vīkṣya vepamāno yathā nagaḥ ||
jahi keśava devānāṃ kuru kāryānuśāsanam |
devam ūrjastaraṃ jñātvā yathā yatno hi pauruṣaḥ ||
ekadaiveṣu bhejāte sarvalokaśubhāvahaḥ |
jahi gopa mahābāho prāṇā [hi] tvarayanti mām ||
kaivalyam āpnuyāṃ svarge tvatkarāmbujasāyakaiḥ |
sa kṛṣṇenāyataṃ kṛtvā bāhuṃ parighasaṃnibham
mūrdhajeṣu parāmṛṣṭaḥ kaṃso vai raṅgasaṃsadi //
mukuṭaś cāpatat tasya kāñcano vajrabhūṣitaḥ
sirasas tasya kṛṣṇena parāmṛṣṭasya pāṇinā //
sa hastagrastakeśaś ca kaṃso niryatnatāṃ gataḥ
tathaiva ca visaṃmūḍho vihvalaḥ samapadyata //
nigṛhītaś ca keśeṣu mandāsur iva niḥśvasan
na śaśāka mukhaṃ draṣṭuṃ kaṃsaḥ kṛṣṇasya vai tadā //
vikuṇḍalābhyāṃ karṇābhyāṃ chinnahāreṇa vakṣasā
pralambābhyāṃ ca bāhubhyāṃ gātrair visṛtabhūṣaṇaiḥ //
bhraṃśitenottarīyeṇa sahasā calitāsanaḥ
veṣṭamānaḥ samākṣiptaḥ kaṃsaḥ kṛṣṇena tejasā //
Note: k: After 34, D6,s (außer T3.4) ins.: :k
śirasy abhyahanat kṛṣṇo muṣṭinā balavad balī |
yenaiva muṣṭinā viṣṇur yathā syāt prāṇasaṃśayaḥ |
cakarṣa ca mahāraṅge mañcān niṣkramya keśavaḥ
keśeṣu balavad gṛhya kaṃsaṃ kleśārhatāṃ gatam //
kṛṣyamāṇaḥ sa kṛṣṇena bhojarājo mahādyutiḥ
Note: k: After 36ab G3.5,G(ed.) ins.: :kvaitaneyakaroddhūtaḥ patagendra ivābhavat |
samājavāṭe parikhāṃ dehakṛṣṭāṃ cakāra ha //
samājavāṭe vikrīḍya vikṛṣya ca gatāyuṣam
kṛṣṇo visarjayām_āsa kaṃsadeham adūrataḥ //
dharaṇyāṃ mṛditaḥ śete tasya dehaḥ sukhocitaḥ
krameṇa viparītena pāṃsubhiḥ paruṣīkṛtaḥ //
tasya tad vadanaṃ śyāvaṃ suptākṣaṃ mukuṭaṃ vinā
na vibhāti viparyastaṃ vipalāśaṃ yathāmbujam //
asaṃgrāme hataḥ kaṃsaḥ sa bāṇair aparikṣataḥ
kaṇṭhagrāhān nirastāsur vīramārgān nirākṛtaḥ //
tasya dehe prakāśante sahasā keśavārpitāḥ
māṃsacchedaghanāḥ sarve nakhāgrā jīvitacchidaḥ //
taṃ hatvā puṇḍarīkākṣaḥ praharṣād dviguṇaprabhaḥ
vavande vasudevasya pādau nihatakaṇṭakaḥ //
mātuś ca śirasā pādau nipīḍya yadunandanaḥ
sāsiñcat prasnavotpīḍaiḥ kṛṣṇam ānandaniḥsṛtaiḥ //
Note: k: After 43, G3.5,G(ed.) ins.: :k
abhiṣekaṃ tadā cakre devakī kṛṣṇam avyayam |
Note: k: After *851 G3.5 cont.; D6,T1.2,G1.2.4,M ins. after 43: :k
ugrasenasya ca tadā vavande śirasā hariḥ |
hatvā putraṃ mahāvīryaṃ sabalo yadusaṃsadi |
yādavāṃś caiva tān sarvān yathāsthānaṃ yathāvayaḥ
papraccha kuśalaṃ kṛṣṇo dīpyamānaḥ svatejasā //
baladevo 'pi dharmātmā kaṃsabhrātaram ūrjitam
bāhubhyām eva tarasā sunāmānam apothayat //
Note: k: For 45cd, D3 subst.: :k
bāhunā vasunāmānaṃ baladevo vyapothayat |
tau jitārī jitakrodhau ciraṃ viproṣitau vraje
svapitur bhavanaṃ vīrau jagmatur hṛṣṭamānasau //
Note: k: After 46, D6,S (except T3.4),G(ed.) ins.: :k
te ca devāḥ samunayo hate kaṃse durātmani |
namaskṛtya jagannāthaṃ svaṃ svaṃ jagmur yathālayam |
Note: k: After line 1 (of *854) D6,T1.2,G1.3-5,M4,G(ed.) ins.: :k
tuṣṭuvuḥ puṇḍarīkākṣaṃ kṛṣṇaṃ vijayinaṃ vibhum ||
hatvā pūtānikāṃ vibhajya śakaṭaṃ bhaṅktvārjunau dānavān |
saptāhatya vināśya kāliyaviṣaṃ niṣpīḍya riṣṭetaram |
hatvā keśinam unmadaṃ viṣataruṃ coddhṛtya govardhanaṃ |
yaḥ kaṃsaṃ sagajendramallam avadhīt tasmai namo viṣṇave ||
pralambadhenukaprāṇa+ +hāriṇe muṣṭikadviṣe |
sunāmonmāthine nityaṃ dhīmate haline namaḥ ||
iti stutvā bahuvidhaṃ te devā hṛṣṭamānasāḥ |
Note: h: HV (CE) chapter 77, transliterated by John Brockington, proof-read by John Brockington, version of 7th November 2001 :h
bhartāraṃ patitaṃ dṛṣṭvā kṣīṇapuṇyam iva graham
kaṃsapatnyo hataṃ kaṃsaṃ samantāt paryavārayan //
taṃ mahīśayane suptaṃ kṣitināthaṃ gatāyuṣam
bhāryāḥ sma dṛṣṭvā śocanti mṛgyo mṛgavadhe yathā //
hā hatāḥ sma mahābāho hatāṣā hatabāndhavāḥ
vīraptnyo hate vīre tvayi vīravratapriye //
imām avasthāṃ paśyantyaḥ paścimāṃ tava naiṣṭhikīm
kṛpaṇaṃ rājaśārdūla vilapāmaḥ sabāndhavāḥ //
chinnamūlāḥ sma saṃvṛttāḥ parityaktāḥ sma śobhanaiḥ
tvayi pañcatvam āpanne nāthe 'smākaṃ mahābale //
ko naḥ pāṃsuparītāṅgyo ratisaṃsargalālasāḥ
latā iva viceṣṭantyaḥ śayanīyāni neṣyati //
idaṃ te satataṃ saumya hṛdyaniḥśvāsamārutam
dahaty arko mukhaṃ kāntaṃ nistoyam iva paṅkajam //
imau te śravaṇau śūnyau na śobhete vikuṇḍalau
śirodharāyāṃ saṃlīnau satataṃ kuṇḍalapriya //
kva te sa mukuṭo vīra sarvaratnavibhūṣitaḥ
atyantaṃ śiraso lakṣmīṃ yo dadhāty arkasaprabhaḥ //
anena strīkalatreṇa tavāntaḥpuraśobhinā
kathaṃ dīnena kartavyaṃ tvayi lokāntaraṃ gate //
nanu nāma striyaḥ sādhvyaḥ priyabhogeṣv avañcitāḥ
patīnām aparityajyās tvaṃ tu nas tyajya gacchasi //
aho kālo mahāvīryo yena paryāyakarmaṇā
Note: k: Ñ2.3 V1.3 B2 ins.: :kasmāsu prekṣamāṇāsu tvam ākṣipyāśu nīyase |
kālatulyaḥ sapatnānāṃ tvaṃ kṣipram apanīyase //
vayaṃ duḥkheṣv anucitāḥ sukheṣv eva tu yojitāḥ
kathaṃ vatsyāma vidhavā nātha kārpaṇyam āśritāḥ //
strīṇāṃ cāritralubdhānāṃ patir ekaḥ parā gatiḥ
tvaṃ hi naḥ sā gatiś chinnā kṛtāntena balīyasā //
vaidhavyenābhibhūtāḥ smaḥ śokasaṃtaptamānasāḥ
Note: k: Ñ2 V.12 B Ds (D2 after 12) ins.: :kaho kṛtāntasya vaśaṃ gantavyaṃ sarvajantubhiḥ |
roditavye dhruve magnāḥ kva gacchāmas tvayā vinā //
saha tvayā gataḥ kālas tvadaṅke krīḍitaṃ gatam
kṣaṇena ca vihīnāḥ sma anityā hi nṛṇāṃ gatiḥ //
aho bata vipannāḥ sma vipanne tvayi mānada
ekaduṣkṛtakāriṇyaḥ sarvāḥ vaidhavyalakṣaṇāḥ //
tvayā svargapraticchandair lālitāḥ sma ratipriyāḥ
tvayi kāmavaśāḥ sarvāḥ sa nas tyajya kva gacchasi //
Note: k: Ñ3 V2.3 B Dn Ds D4 (V1 after 18ab, D2 after *856) ins.: :k
asmākaṃ tvam anāthānāṃ nātho hy asi suropama |
āsāṃ vilapamānānāṃ kurarīṇām iva prabho
prativākyaṃ jagannātha dātum arhasi mānada //
evam ārtakalatrasya śrāmyamāṇeṣu bandhuṣu
gamanaṃ te mahārāja dāruṇaṃ pratibhāti naḥ //
nūnaṃ kāntatarāḥ kānta tasmiṃl loke varastriyaḥ
tatas tvaṃ prasthito vīra vihāyemaṃ gṛhe janam //
kiṃ nu te karuṇaṃ vīra bhāryāsv etāsu bhūmipa
ārtanādaṃ rudantīṣu yan nehādyāvabudhyase //
aho niṣkaruṇā yātrā narāṇām aurdhvadehikī
ye parityajya dārān svān nirapekṣā vrajanti ha //
apatitvaṃ striyāḥ śreyo na tu śūraḥ striyāḥ patiḥ
svargastrīṇāṃ priyāḥ śurās teṣām api ca tāḥ priyāḥ //
aho kṣipram adṛśyena nayatā tvayā raṇapriyam
prahṛtaṃ naḥ kṛtāntena sarvāsām antarātmasu //
hatvā jarāsaṃdhabalaṃ jitvā yakṣāṃś ca saṃyuge
Note: k: K2 subst. for 26ab: :kjarāsaṃdhabalaṃ jitvā hatvā rājñāṃ ca saṃyuge |
Note: k: D6 S (except T3.4) subst. for 26ab: :kjitvā devagaṇaṃ yuddhe yakṣān api ca saṃyuge |
kathaṃ mānuṣamātreṇa hatas tvaṃ jagatīpate //
indreṇa saha saṃgrāmaṃ kṛtvā sāyakavigraham
amartyair ajito yuddhe martyenāsi kathaṃ hataḥ //
tvayā sāgaram akṣokhyaṃ vikṣobhya śaravṛṣṭibhiḥ
ratnasarvasvaharaṇaṃ jitvā pāśadharaṃ kṛtam //
tvayā paurajanāsyārthe mandaṃ varṣati vāsave
sāyakair jaladān bhittvā balād varṣaṃ pravartitam //
pratāpāvanatāḥ sarve tava tiṣṭhanti pārthivāḥ
preṣayāṇā varārhāṇi ratnāny ācchādanāni ca //
tavaivaṃ devakalpasya dṛṣṭavīryasya śatrubhiḥ
kathaṃ prāṇāntikaṃ ghoram īdṛśaṃ bhayam āgatam //
prāptāḥ smo vidhavāśabdaṃ tvayi nāthe nipātite
apramattāḥ pramattāḥ sma kṛtāntena nirākṛtāḥ //
yady evaṃ nātha gantavyaṃ yadi vā vismṛtā vayam
vākyamātreṇa yāsyeti kartavyo naḥ parigrahaḥ //
prasīda nātha bhītāḥ sma pādau te yāma mūrdhabhiḥ
alaṃ dūrapravāsena nivarta mathurādhipa //
aho vīra kathaṃ śeṣe niṣaṇṇas tṛṇapāṃsuṣu
śayānasya hi te bhūmau kasmān nodvijate manaḥ //
kena suptaprahāro 'yaṃ datto 'smākam atarkitaḥ
prahṛtaṃ kena sarvāsu nārīsv evaṃ sudāruṇam //
ruditānuśayo nāryā jīvantyāḥ paridevanam
kiṃ vayaṃ sati gantavye saha bhartrā rudāmahe //
etasminn antare dīnā kaṃsamātā pravepatī
kva me vatsaḥ kva me putra iti rorūyate bhṛśam //
sāpaśyat taṃ hataṃ putraṃ nipītaṃ śaśinaṃ yathā
hṛdayena vidīrṇena śrāmyamāṇā punaḥ punaḥ //
putraṃ samabhivīkṣantī hā hatāsmīti vāśatī
Note: k: D6 T1.2 G M subst. for 40ab: :khā hatāsmīti vāśantī papāta bhuvi duḥkhitā |
snuṣāṇām ārtanādena vilalāpa ruroda ca //
sā tasya vadanaṃ dīnam utsaṅge putragṛddhinī
kṛtvā putreti karuṇaṃ vilalāpārtayā girā //
putra śūravrate yukta jñātīnāṃ nandivardhana
kim idaṃ tvaritaṃ tāta prasthānaṃ kṛtavān asi //
prasuptaś cāsi vivṛte kiṃ putra śayanaṃ vinā
tāta naivaṃvidhā bhūmau śerate kṛtalakṣaṇāḥ //
rāvaṇena purā gītaḥ śloko 'yaṃ sādhusaṃmataḥ
balajyeṣṭhena lokeṣu rākṣasānāṃ samāgame //
evam ūrjitavīryasya mama devanighātinaḥ
bāndhavebhyo bhayaṃ ghoram anivāryaṃ bhaviṣyati //
tathaiva jñātilubdhasya mama putrasya dhīmataḥ
jñātibhyo bhayam utpannaṃ śarīrāntakaraṃ mahat //
Note: k: V2 ins.: :k
vinamrasya hy anaukasya (?) vaktur vigraham ṛcchataḥ |
jātivigrahabhūtasya [nūnaṃ] mṛtyur bhaviṣyati |
sā patiṃ bhūpatiṃ vṛddham ugrasenaṃ vicetasam
uvāca rudatī vākyaṃ vivatsā saurabhī yathā //
ehy ehi rājan dharmātman paśya putraṃ janeśvaram
śayānaṃ vīraśayane vajrāhatam ivācalam //
asya kurmo mahārāja niryāṇasadṛśīṃ kriyām
pretatvam upapannasya gatasya yamasādanam //
vīrabhojyāni rājyāni vayaṃ cāpi parājitāḥ
gaccha vijñāpyatāṃ kṛṣṇaḥ kaṃsasaṃskārakāraṇāt //
maraṇāntāni vairāṇi śānte śāntir bhaviṣyati
pretakāryāṇi kāryāṇi mṛtaḥ kim aparādhyate //
evam uktvā patiṃ bhojaṃ keśān ārujya duḥkhitā
putrasya mukham īkṣantī vilalāpaiva sā bhṛśam //
imās te kiṃ kariṣyanti bhāryā rājan sukhocitāḥ
tvāṃ patiṃ supatiṃ prāpya yā vipannamanorathāḥ //
imaṃ te pitaraṃ vṛddhaṃ kṛṣṇasya vaśavartinam
kathaṃ drakṣyāmi śuṣyantaṃ kāsārasalilaṃ yathā //
ahaṃ te jananī putra kimarthaṃ nābhibhāṣase
prasthito dīrgham adhvānaṃ parityajyya priyaṃ janam //
aho vīrālpabhāgyāyāḥ kṛtāntenānivartinā
ācchidya mama mandāyā nīyase nayakovida //
dānamānagṛhītāni tṛptāny etāni te guṇaiḥ
Note: k: M1-2 subst.: :knāmāni ca gṛhītāni samyagvṛttāni tair guṇaiḥ |
rudanti tava bhṛtyānāṃ kulāni kulayūthapa //
uttiṣṭha naraśārdūla dīrghabāho mahābala
trāhi dīnaṃ janaṃ sarvaṃ puram antaḥpuraṃ tathā //
rudatīnām bhṛśārtānāṃ kaṃsastrīṇāṃ savistaram
jagāmāstaṃ dinakaraḥ saṃdhyārāgeṇa rañjitaḥ //
Note: h: HV (CE) chapter 78, transliterated by John Brockington, proof-read by John Brockington, version of 12th November 2001 :h
ugrasenas tu kṛṣṇasya samīpaṃ duḥkhito yayau
putraśokābhisaṃtapto viṣapīta iva skhalan //
sa dadarśa gṛhe kṛṣṇaṃ yādavair abhisaṃvṛtam
paścānutāpād dhyāyantaṃ kaṃsasya nidhanāvilam //
kaṃsārīpralopāṃś ca śrutvā sukaruṇān bahūn
vigarhamāṇam ātmānaṃ tasmin yādavasaṃsadi //
Note: k: D2 ins.: :k
kṛṣṇaḥ provāca nikhilaṃ sarveṣām upaśṛṇvatām |
aho mayātibālyena nararoṣānuvartinā
vaidhavyaṃ strīsahasrāṇāṃ kaṃsasyāsya kṛte kṛtam //
kāruṇyaṃ khalu nārīṣu prākṛtasyāpi jāyate
evam ārtaṃ rudantīṣu mayā bhartari pātite //
paridevitamātreṇa śokaḥ khalu vidhīyate
kṛtāntasyānabhijñātaḥ strīṇāṃ kāruṇyasaṃbhavaḥ //
kaṃsasya hi vadhaḥ śreyān prāg evābhimato mama
sutām udvejanīyasya pāpeṣv abhiratasya ca //
loke patitavṛttasya puruṣasyālpamedhasaḥ
akliṣṭaṃ maraṇaṃ śreyo na vidviṣṭasya jīvitam //
kaṃsaḥ pāparatiś caiva sādhūnāṃ cāpy asaṃmataḥ
dhikśabdapatitaś caiva jīvite cāsya kā dayā //
svarge tapobhṛtāṃ vāsaḥ phalaṃ puṇyasya karmaṇaḥ
ihāpi yaśasā yuktas tatrasthair upadhāryate //
yadi syur nirvṛttā lokāḥ syuś ca dharmaparāḥ prajāḥ
narā dharmapravṛttāś ca na nṛpo vikṛto bhavet //
guṇeṣu duṣṭavṛttānāṃ kṛttāntaḥ kurute padam
iṣṭadharmeṣu lokeṣu kartavyaṃ pāralaukikam //
atīva devā rakṣanti naraṃ dharmaparāyaṇam
kartāraḥ sulabhā loke duṣkṛtasyeha karmaṇaḥ //
hataḥ so 'yaṃ mayā kaṃsaḥ sādhv etad avagamyatām
mūlacchedaḥ kṛtas tasya viparītasya karmaṇaḥ //
Note: k: D6 S (except T3.4) G(ed.) ins.: :k
na ced dhanyāṃ durācāraṃ vinaṅkṣyati tadā jagat |
kaḥ kuryāt khalv idaṃ kāryaṃ badhvā pitaram ojasā |
rājyaṃ sakalasāmantaṃ kariṣyati sadā hi saḥ |
tad eṣa sāntvyatāṃ sarvaḥ śokārtaḥ pramadājanaḥ
paurāś ca puryāṃ śreṇyaś ca sāntvyatāṃ sarva eva hi //
evaṃ bruvati govinde viveśāvanatānanaḥ
Note: k: D2 ins.: :kugraseno mahātejāḥ kṛṣṇam asrāvilekṣaṇam |
pralapantaṃ jagāmaivaṃ yādavānāṃ ca saṃsadi |
ugraseno yadūn gṛhya putrakilbiṣaśaṅkitaḥ //
Note: k: D6 S (except T3.4) ins.: :k
vṛṣṇibhiḥ sahitaḥ sarvaiḥ śiniprabhṛtibhis tadā |
sa kṛṣṇaṃ puṇḍarīkākṣam uvāca yadusaṃsadi
bāṣpasaṃdigdhayā vācā dīnayā sajjamānayā //
putra niryātitaḥ krodho nīto yāmyāṃ diśaṃ ripuḥ
svadharmādhigatā kīrtir nāma viśrāvitaṃ bhuvi //
sthāpitaṃ satsu māhātmyaṃ śaṅkitā ripavaḥ kṛtāḥ
sthāpito yādavo vaṃśo garvitāḥ suhṛdaḥ kṛtāḥ //
sāmanteṣu narendreṣu pratāpas te prakāśitaḥ
mitrāṇi tvāṃ bhajiṣyanti saṃśrayiṣyanti cārthinaḥ //
prakṛtayo 'nuyāsyanti stoṣyanti tvāṃ dvijātayaḥ
saṃdhivigrahamukhyās tvāṃ praṇamiṣyanti mantriṇaḥ //
hastyaśvarathasaṃpūrṇaṃ padātigaṇasaṃkulam
pratigṛhāṇa kṛṣṇedaṃ kaṃsasya balam avyayam //
dhanaṃ dhānyaṃ ca yat kiṃcid ratnāny ācchādanāni ca
Note: k: all mss (except Ś1 Ñ1 M1-3) G(ed.) ins.: :kpratīcchantu niyuktā vai tvadīyāḥ kṛṣṇa puruṣāḥ |
striyo hiraṇyaṃ vāsāṃsi yac cānyad vasu kiṃcana //
evaṃ hi vihite yoge paryāpte kṛṣṇa vigrahe
pratiṣṭhitāyāṃ medinyāṃ yadūnāṃ śatrusūdana //
Note: k: N (except K4 D2) T1-3 G1-3 M4 ins.: :k
tvaṃ gatiś cāgatiś caiva yadūnāṃ yadunandana |
śṛṇu tad bruvatāṃ vīra kṛpaṇānām idaṃ vacaḥ
asya tvatkrodhadagdhasya kaṃsasyāśubhakarmaṇaḥ
tava prasādād govinde pretakāryaṃ kriyate ha //
asya kṛtvā narendrasya vipannasyaurdhvadehikam
sasnuṣo 'haṃ sabhāryaś ca cariṣyāmi mṛgaiḥ saha //
pretasaṃskāramātreṇa kṛte bāndhavakarmaṇi
ānṛṇyaṃ laukikaṃ kṛṣṇa gataḥ kila bhavāmy aham //
asyāgniṃ paścimaṃ dattvā cittisthāne vidhiṃ vinā
toyapradānamātreṇa kaṃsasyānṛṇyam āpnuyām //
etan me kṛṣṇa vijñāpyaṃ sneho 'tra mama yujyatām
prāpnotu sugatiṃ tatra kṛpaṇaḥ paścimāṃ kriyām //
etac chrutvā vacas tasya kṛṣṇaḥ paramaharṣitaḥ
pratyuvācograsenaṃ vai sāntvapūrvam idaṃ vacaḥ //
Note: k: K2.3 Ñ2.3 V1.2 B D T1.2 (second time, first time after 25ab) G M ins.: :k
kālayuktam idaṃ tāta tvayaitad bhāṣitaṃ vacaḥ |
sadṛśaṃ rājaśārdūla vṛttasya ca kulasya ca
yat tvaṃ evaṃvidhaṃ brūṣe gate 'rthe duratikrame //
prāpsyate nṛpa saṃskāraṃ kaṃsaḥ pretagate 'pi san
Note: k: K Ñ2.3 V1.2 B Dn Ds D1-5 T1.3.4 G4 M1-3 G(ed.) (Ñ1 after 29abc, D6 T2 G1-3.5 M4 after first occurrence of 32cd, V3 after first occurrence of 32ab) ins.: :kkule mahati te janma vedān viditavān asi |
kathaṃ na jñāyate tāta niyatir duratikramā ||
sthāvarāṇāṃ ca bhūtānāṃ jaṅgamānāṃ ca pārthiva |
pūrvajanmakṛtaṃ karma kālena paripacyate ||
śrutavanto 'rthavantaś ca dātāraḥ priyadarśanāḥ |
brahmaṇyā nayasaṃpannā dīnānugrahakāriṇaḥ ||
lokapālasamās tāta mahendrasamavikramāḥ |
kṣitipālāḥ kṛtāntena nīyante nṛpasattama ||
dhārmikāḥ sarvabhāvajñāḥ prajāpālanatatparāḥ |
kṣatradharmaparā dāntāḥ kālena nidhanaṃ gatāḥ ||
svayam eva kṛtaṃ karma śubhaṃ vā yadi vāśubham |
prāpte kāle tu tat karma dṛśyate sarvadehinām ||
eṣā hy antarhitā māyā durvijñeyā surair api |
yathāyaṃ muhyate loko hy atra karmaiva kāraṇam ||
kālenābhihataḥ kaṃsaḥ pūrvakarmapracoditaḥ |
na hy ayaṃ kāraṇaṃ tatra kālaḥ karma ca kāraṇam ||
sūryasomamayaṃ tāta kṛtsnaṃ sthāvarajaṅgamam |
kālena nidhanaṃ gatvā kālenaiva ca jāyate |
kālas tu sarvabhūtānāṃ nigrahe pragrahe rataḥ |
tasmāt sarvāṇi bhūtāni kālasya vaśagāni vai ||
svadoṣeṇaiva dagdhasya sūnos tava narādhipa |
nāhaṃ vai kāraṇaṃ tatra kālas tatra tu kāraṇam ||
atha vāhaṃ bhaviṣyāmi kāraṇaṃ nātra saṃśayaḥ |
palāyanaparaḥ kālaḥ kiṃ kariṣyaty akāraṇam |
kālas tu balavān rājan durvijñeyā hi sā gatiḥ ||
parāvaraviśeṣajñā yāṃ yānti samadarśinaḥ |
gatiḥ kālasya sā yena sarvaṃ kālasya gocaram |
bravīmi yad ahaṃ tāta tad anuṣṭhīyatāṃ vacaḥ //
na hi rājyena me kāryaṃ nāpy ahaṃ rājyalālasaḥ
na cāpi rājyalubdhena mayā kaṃso nipātitaḥ //
kiṃ tu lokahitārthāya kīrtyarthaṃ ca sutas tava
vyaṅgabhūtaḥ kulasyāsya sānujo vinipātitaḥ //
ahaṃ sa eva gomadhye gopaiḥ saha vanecaraḥ
prītimān vicariṣyāmi kāmacārī yathā gajaḥ //
etāvac chataśo 'py evaṃ satyena prabravīmi te
na me kāryaṃ nṛpatvena vijñāpyaṃ kriyatām idam //
bhavān rājāstu me mānyo yadūnām agraṇīḥ prabhuḥ
vijayāyābhiṣicyasva svarājye rājasattama //
yadi te matpriyaṃ kāryaṃ yadi vā nāsti te vyathā
mayā nisṛṣṭaṃ rājyaṃ svaṃ cirāya pratigṛhyatām //
Note: k: K1.2 Ñ2.3 V B Dn Ds D2-4.5(marg.).6 ins.: :k
etac chrutvā tu vacanaṃ nottaraṃ pratyabhāṣata |
Note: k: D4 cont.: :k
vrīḍito 'dhomukhas tasthau kṛṣṇasya purato nṛpaḥ |
vrīḍitādhomukhaṃ taṃ tu rājānaṃ yadusaṃsadi
abhiṣekeṇa govindo yojayām āsa yogavit //
sa baddhamukuṭaḥ śrīmān ugraseno mahīpatiḥ
cakāra saha kṛṣṇena kaṃsasya nidhanakriyām //
taṃ sarve yādavā mukhyā rājānaṃ kṛṣṇaśāsanāt
anujagmuḥ purīmārge devā iva śatakratum //
rajanyāṃ tu prabhātāyāṃ tataḥ sūrye cirodite
paścimaṃ kaṃsasaṃskāraṃ cakrus te yadupuṃgavāḥ //
śibikāyāṃ samāropya kaṃsadehaṃ yathākramam
naiṣṭhikena vidhānena cakrus te tasya satkriyām //
sa nīto yamunātīram uttaraṃ nṛpateḥ sutaḥ
saṃskṛtaś ca yathānyāyaṃ naidhanena citāgninā //
tathaiva bhrātaraṃ cāsya sunāmānaṃ mahābhujam
saṃskāraṃ lambhayām āsuḥ saha kṛṣṇena yādavāḥ //
tābhyāṃ te salilaṃ cakrur vṛṣṇyandhakamahārathāḥ
akṣayaṃ cāpi pretebhyo bhāṣamāṇāḥ pratasthire //
Note: k: D6 S (except T3.4) subst. for 46cd: :k
akṣayaṃ bhāṣamāṇaś ca pretebhyaś ca pratasthire |
Note: k: G2 cont., K3 B3 (after second occurrence of 46cd) D4.5(marg.) G(ed.) ins.: :k
hiraṇyasya suvarṇasya daśa koṭīs tathā hariḥ |
gāvo ratnāni vāsāṃsi grāmān nagarasaṃmatān ||
dadau kaṃsaṃ samuddiśya brāhmaṇebhyo nṛpottamaḥ |
tayos te salilaṃ dattvā yādavā dīnamānasāḥ
puraskṛtyograsenaṃ vai viviṣur mathurāṃ purīm //
Note: k: D2 ins.: :k
sarvān svajātisaṃbandhān digbhyaḥ kaṃsabhayārditān |
yaduvṛṣṇyandhakamadhu dāśārhakukurādikān ||
sabhājitān samāśvāsya videśāvāsakarśitān |
nyavāsayat svageheṣu vittaiḥ saṃtarpya viśvakṛt ||
kṛṣṇasaṃkarṣaṇabhujair guptā labdhamanorathāḥ |
svagṛhe remire siddhāḥ kṛṣṇarāmagatajvarāḥ ||
vīkṣanto 'har ahaḥ prītā mukundavadanāmbujam |
nityapramuditaṃ śrīmān sadayasmitavīkṣaṇam |
Note: k: 78.47*875 = (var.) Bhāgavata P. 10.45.15-18. :k
Note: h: HV (CE) chapter 79, transliterated by John Brockington, proof-read by John Brockington, version of 10th December 2001 :h
sa kṛṣṇas tatra balavān rauhiṇeyena saṃgataḥ
mathurāṃ yādavādhīnāṃ purīṃ tāṃ sukham āvasat //
Note: k: K2.4 om. the ref. After the ref., D2 ins.: :k
atha nandaṃ samāsādya bhagavān devakīsutaḥ |
saṃkarṣaṇaś ca rājendra pariṣvajyedam ūcatuḥ ||
pitur yuvābhyāṃ snigdhābhyāṃ poṣitau lalitau bhṛśam |
pitror abhyadhikā prītir ātmajeṣv ātmano 'pi hi ||
sa pitā sā ca jananī yau puṣṇītāṃ svaputravat ||
śiśūn bandhubhir utsṛṣṭān ākalpaiḥ poṣarakṣaṇaiḥ ||
yāta yūyaṃ vrajaṃ tāta vayaṃ ca snehaduḥkhitān |
jñātīn vo draṣṭum eṣyāmo vidhāya suhṛdāṃ sukham ||
evaṃ sāntvayya bhagavān sa nandavrajam acyutaḥ |
vāsolaṃkārarūpāgryai rañjayām āsa sādaram ||
ity uktas tau pariṣvajya nandaḥ praṇayavihvalaḥ |
pūrayann aśrubhir netre saha gopair vrajaṃ yayau |
Note: k: 79.0*876 = (var.) Bhāgavata P., 10.45.20-25. :k
prāptayauvanadehas tu yukto rājaśriyā jvalan
cakāra mathurāṃ vīrah. sa ratnākarabhūṣaṇām //
kasyacit tv atha kālasya sahitau rāmakeśavau
guruṃ saṃdīpaniṃ kāśyam avantipuravāsinam
dhanurvedacikīrṣārtham ubhau tāv abhijagmatuḥ //
nivedya gotraṃ svādhyāyām ācāreṇābhyalaṃkṛtau
śuśrūśū nirahaṃkārāv ubhau rāmajanārdanau
Note: k: Dc T1.2 G M ins.: :kcakratuḥ puṇḍarīkākṣau vidyāgrahaṇalālasau |
pratijagrāha tāu kāśyo vidyāḥ prādāc ca kevalāḥ //
tau ca śrutidharau vīrau yathāvat pratipadyatām
ahorātraiś catuḥṣaṣṭyā sāṅgaṃ vedam adhīyatām //
Note: k: D6 T1.2 G M subst. for 5cd: :k
sāṅgaṃ vedam adhīyatāṃ catuḥṣaṣṭyā dinais tathā |
catuṣpāde dhanurvede cāstragrāme sasaṃgrahe
Note: k: D6 S (except T3.4) G(ed.) ins.: :klekhyaṃ ca gaṇitaṃ cobhau prāpnutāṃ yadunandanau |
gāndhavavedaṃ kṛtsnaṃ ca tathā lekhyāś ca tāv ubhau |
hastiśikṣāśvaśikṣāś ca dvādaśāhena cāpnutām ||
tāv ubhau jagmatur vīrau guruṃ sāṃdīpaniṃ tataḥ |
dhanurvedacikīrṣārthaṃ dharmajñau dharmacāriṇau ||
tāv iṣvāsavarācāryam abhigamya praṇamya ca |
tena tau satkṛtau rājan vicarantāv avantiṣu ||
pañcāśadbhir ahorātrair daśāṅgaṃ supratiṣṭhitam |
sarahasyaṃ dhanurvedaṃ sakalaṃ tāv avāpnutām |
acireṇaiva kālena gurus tāv abhyaṣikṣayat //
atīvamānuṣīṃ medhāṃ tayoś cintya gurus tadā
mene tāv āgatau devāv ubhau candradivākarau //
dadarśa ca mahātmānāv ubhau tāv api parvasu
pūjayantau mahādevaṃ sākṣāt tryakṣam avasthitam //
guruṃ sāṃdīpaniṃ kṛṣṇaḥ kṛtakṛtyo 'bhyabhāṣata
gurvarthaṃ kiṃ dadānīti rāmeṇa saha bhārata //
tayoḥ prabhāvaṃ sa jñātvā guruḥ provāca hṛṣṭavat
putram icchāmy ahaṃ dattaṃ yo mṛto lavaṇāmbhasi //
putra eko hi me jātaḥ sa cāpi timinā hṛtaḥ
prabhāse tīrthayātrāyāṃ taṃ me tvaṃ punar ānaya //
tathety evābravīt kṛṣṇo rāmasyānumate sthitaḥ
gatvā samudraṃ tejasvī viveśāntarjalaṃ hariḥ //
samudraḥ prāñjalir bhūtvā darśayām āsa taṃ tadā
tam āha kṛṣṇaḥ kvāsau bhoḥ putraḥ sāṃdīpaner iti //
samudras tam uvācedaṃ daityaḥ pañcajano mahān
timirūpeṇa taṃ bālaṃ grastavān iti mādhava //
Note: k: Ds G5 ins.: :k
unmathya salilād asmād grastavān iti bhārata |
sa pañcajanam āsādya jaghāna puruṣottamaḥ
na cāsasāda taṃ bālaṃ guruputraṃ tadācyutaḥ //
sa tu pañcajanaṃ hatvā śaṅkhaṃ lebhe janārdanaḥ
yaḥ sa devamanuṣyeṣu pāñcajanya iti śrutaḥ //
Note: k: D6 T1.2 G1-3.4(after 13).5 M ins.: :k
gatvā yamapuraṃ viṣṇuḥ krodhasaṃraktalocanaḥ |
āsanasthaṃ tato viṣṇuḥ provāca yamam ūrjitam |
dīyatāṃ putra ity evaṃ kāśyasāṃdīpaner iti ||
tam uvāca tato viṣṇuṃ mṛtyunā cāhṛto hare |
evam uktas tadā kṛṣṇo yamenāmitavikramaḥ |
aho dhārṣṭyaṃ tato mṛtyor ity uktvā dhanur ādade ||
ādāya niśitaṃ bāṇaṃ dīyatām iti cābravīt |
kruddhaṃ viṣṇuṃ samājñāya dattavān kila bālakam |
tato vaivasvataṃ devaṃ nirjitya puruṣottamaḥ
Note: k: Ñ1 B1 D8 ins., Ñ2.3 B2.3 after second occurrence of 17ab: :kāsasāda ca taṃ bālaṃ guruputraṃ tadācyutaḥ |
Note: k: Dn ins.: :kśaṅkham āpūrya govindas trāsayām āsa vai janam |
Note: k: Dn cont., K1 Ñ2.3 V1.2 B2.3 D2 ins. after first occurrence of 17ab: :ktato yamo 'bhyupāgamya vavande taṃ gadādharam |
kim āgamanakṛtyaṃ te kiṃ karomīti cābravīt ||
tam uvācātha vai kṛṣṇo guruputraḥ pradīyatām |
tayos tatra tadā yuddham āsīd ghorataraṃ mahat |
ānināya guroḥ putraṃ ciranaṣṭaṃ yamakṣayāt //
tataḥ sāṃdīpaneḥ putraḥ prasādād amitaujasaḥ
dīrghakālagataḥ pretaḥ punar āsīc charīravān //
tad aśakyam acintyaṃ ca dṛṣṭvā sumahad adbhutam
sarveṣām eva bhūtānāṃ vismayaḥ samajāyata //
sa guroḥ putram ādāya pāñcajanyaṃ ca mādhavaḥ
ratnāni ca mahārhāṇi punar āyāj jagatpatiḥ //
rakṣasas tasya ratnāni mahārhāṇi bahūni ca
ānāyyāvedayām āsa gurave vāsavānujaḥ //
gadāparighayuddheṣu sarvāstreṣu ca tāv ubhau
acirān mukhyatāṃ prāptau sarvaloke dhanurbhṛtām //
tataḥ sāṃdīpaneḥ putraṃ tadrūpavayasaṃ tadā
prādāt kṛṣṇaḥ pratītāya saha ratnair udāradhīḥ //
ciranaṣṭena putreṇa kāśyaḥ sāṃdīpanis tadā
sametya mumude rājan pūjayan rāmakeśavau //
kṛtāstrau tāv ubhau vīrau gurum āmantrya suvratau
āyātau mathurāṃ bhūyo vasudevasutāv ubhau //
tataḥ pratyudyayuḥ sarve yādavā yadunandanau
sabālā hṛṣṭamanasa ugrasenapurogamāḥ //
śreṇyaḥ prakṛtayaś caiva mantriṇo 'tha purohitāḥ
sabālavṛddhā sā caiva purī samabhivartata //
nanditūryāṇy avādyanta tuṣṭuvuś ca janārdanam
rathyāḥ patākāmālinyo bhrājanti sma samantataḥ //
prahṛṣṭamuditaṃ sarvam antaḥpuram aśobhata
govindāgamane 'tyarthaṃ yathaivendramahe tathā //
muditāś cāpy agāyanta rājamārgeṣu gāyanāḥ
stavāśīḥprathamā gāthā yādavānāṃ priyaṃkarāḥ //
govindarāmau saṃprāptau bhrātarau lokaviśrutau
sve pure nirbhayāḥ sarve krīḍadhvaṃ saha bāndhavaiḥ //
Note: k: T1.2 G1.3-5 M4 G(ed.) ins.: :k
tebhyo 'gacchan videśebhyaḥ kaṃsenodvijitāś ca ye |
na tatra kaś cid dīno vā malino vā vicetanaḥ
mathurāyāṃ babhau rājan govinde samupasthite //
vayāṃsi sādhuvākyāni prahṛṣṭā gohayadvipāḥ
naranārīgaṇāḥ sarve bhejire manasaḥ sukham //
śivāś ca vātāḥ pravavur virajaskā diśo daśa
daivatāni ca sarvāṇi hṛṣṭāny āyataneṣv api //
yāni liṅgāni lokasya babhuḥ kṛtayuge purā
tāni sarvāṇy adṛśyanta purīṃ prāpte janārdane //
tataḥ kāle śive puṇye syandanenārimardanaḥ
hariyuktena govindo viveśa mathurāṃ purīm //
viśantaṃ mathurāṃ ramyāṃ tam upendram ariṃdamam
anujagmur yadugaṇāḥ śakraṃ devagaṇā iva //
vasudevasya bhavanaṃ tatas tau yadunandanau
praviṣṭau hṛṣṭavadanau candrādityāv ivācalam //
Note: k: Ks Ñ2.3 V B Dn Ds D4 T4 ins.: :k
pareṇa tejasopetau surendrāv iva rūpinau |
tāv āyudhāni vinyasya gṛhe sve svairacāriṇau
mumudāte yaduvarau vasudevasutāv ubhau //
Note: k: N (except Ś1 Ñ1) S (except M1-3) ins.: :k
udyāneṣu vicitreṣu phalapuṣpāvanāmiṣu |
ceratuḥ sumahātmānau yādavaiḥ parivāritau ||
raivatasya samīpeṣu saritsu vimalāsu ca |
padmapatrasamṛddhāsu kāraṇḍavayutāsu ca |
Note: k: D6 T1 G M4 cont., M1-3 ins.: :k
evaṃ tau bālyam uttīrṇau balabhadrajanārdanau |
evaṃ tāv ekanirmāṇau mathurāyāṃ śubhānanau
ugrasenānugau bhūtvā kaṃ cit kālaṃ mumodatuḥ //
Note: k: D6 T1.2 G1.3-5 M4 ins.: :k
uṣitvā caturo māsān nandagopa udāradhīḥ |
rāmakṛṣṇau samāliṅgya yadubhiś cānumoditaḥ |
vasudevābhyanujñātaḥ svam eva śakaṭaṃ yayau |
Note: k: D6 T1.2 G.1.3-5 M4 cont., G2 M1-3 ins.: :k
etad vo bālacaritaṃ sakalaṃ munipuṃgavāḥ |
yathāśrutaṃ yathāyogaṃ yathājñānam udāhṛtam |
Note: k: M3 cont.: :k
kṛṣṇaṃ keśavam acyutaṃ muraripuṃ śauriṃ hariṃ śārṅgiṇaṃ |
viṣṇuṃ viśvasṛjaṃ caturbhujaṃ śrīvallabhaṃ śrīdharam |
jiṣṇuṃ daityaripuṃ tridhāmanilayaṃ trailokyanāthaṃ paraṃ |
govindaṃ puruṣaṃ namāmi śirasā nārāyaṇaṃ cakriṇam |
Note: h: HV (CE) chapter 80, transliterated by John Brockington, proof-read by John Brockington, version of 14th December 2001 :h
Note: k: T1 M read adhy. 80-82 after App.I (No.18), T3 repeats them after App.I (No.19), and G3 repeats adhy. 80 after App.I (No.18). :k
Note: k: After the ref. N (except Ś1 Ds D6) T3.4 Bom. Poona Cal. eds repeat 79.1-2 :k
kasya cit tv atha kālasya rājā rājagṛheśvaraḥ
śuśrāva nihataṃ kaṃsaṃ jarāsaṃdhaḥ pratāpavān //
Note: k: K Ñ V B Dn Ds D1-5 T3.4 M4 (first time) ins. after 1abc, Ś1 after the ref.: :k
duhitṛbhyāṃ mahīpatiḥ |
tato nāticirāt kālāj |
Note: k: T1 M4 repeat from line 2 to 3b after App.I (No.18). :k
Note: k: after line 1, D2 ins.: :k
astiḥ prāptiś ca kaṃsasya mahiṣyau bharatarṣabha |
hate bhartari duḥkhārte īyatuḥ svapitur gṛhān |
Note: k: 80.1*892A = (var.) Bhāgavata P., 10.5.1. :k
Note: k: D6 T1(first time).2 G1.2.3(first time).4 M1-3.4(first time) ins. after 1: :k
sa sādhanena mahatā pākaśāsanavikramaḥ |
ājagāma ṣaḍaṅgena balena mahatā vṛtaḥ
Note: k: T1 G3 (both second time) ins., G5 cont. after *895, M4 cont. after *893: :kkṛṣṇasya vadham anvicchan madhurām anvavartata |
jighāṃsur hi yadūn kruddhaḥ kaṃsasyāpacitiṃ caran //
Note: k: D6 T1.2.3(second time) G1.2.3(second time).4.5 M ins.: :k
ayaśo hy ātmano rakṣaṃl lokanirvādaśaṅkayā |
duhitṛprītikāmārthaṃ madhurām avarodhakaḥ |
akṣauhinyaikaviṃśatyā senayā ca tadā saha |
astiḥ prāptiś ca nāmnās tāṃ māgadhasya sute nṛpa
Note: k: T1(first time) M1-3.4(first time) ins., G3(second time).5 cont. after *897: :kte dve ca kaṃsarājāya dadau hṛṣṭaḥ sa māgadhaḥ ||
tena te vidhave syātām ubhe kṛṣṇena māgadhe |
jīvaty eva tathā rājan vīre rājñāṃ purogame |
jarāsaṃdhasya kalyānyau pīnaśroṇipayodhare
ubhe kaṃsasya te bhārye prādād bārhadratho nṛpaḥ //
sa tābhyāṃ mumude rājā badhvā pitaram āhukam
samāśritya jarāsaṃdham anādṛtya ca yādavān
śūraseneśvaro rājā yathā te bahuśo śrutaḥ //
jñātikāryārthasiddhyartham ugrasenahite sthitaḥ
vasudevo 'bhavan nityaṃ kaṃso na mamṛṣe ca tam //
rāmakṛṣṇau vyapāśritya hate kaṃse durātmani
ugraseno 'bhavad rājā bhojavṛṣṇyandhakair vṛtaḥ //
Note: k: D6 T2.3(second time) G1.2 M1-3 ins.: :k
madhurāṃ pālayām āsa keśavānumate sthitaḥ |
duhitṛbhyāṃ jarāsaṃdhaḥ priyābhyāṃ balavān nṛpaḥ
priyārthaṃ vīrapatnībhyām upāyān mathurāṃ tataḥ
Note: k: D2 ins.: :ksa tad apriyam ākarṇya śokāmarṣayuto nṛpaḥ |
ayādavīṃ mahīṃ kartuṃ cakre paramam udyamam ||
akṣauhiṇībhir viṃśatyā tisṛbhiś cāpi saṃyutaḥ |
yadurājadhānīṃ mathurāṃ roddhum abhyāgato nṛpaḥ |
Note: k: 80.7cd*898 = Bhagavata P., 10.50.3-4. :kkṛtvā sarvasamudyogaṃ krodhād abhiyayau yadūn //
pratāpāvanatā ye hi jarāsaṃdhasya pārthivāḥ
mitrāṇi jñātayaś caiva saṃyuktāḥ suhṛdas tathā //
ta enam anvayuḥ sarve sainyaiḥ samuditair vṛtāḥ
Note: k: T1.3(second time) G3(second time) M ins.: :kye nṛpāḥ parvatāt tasmād gomantād vrīḷitā gatāḥ |
te ca sarve yadūn hantuṃ jarāsaṃdhaṃ samanvayuḥ |
maheṣvāsā mahāvīryā jarāsaṃdhapriyaiṣiṇaḥ //
kārūṣo dantavaktraś ca cedirājaś ca vīryavān
kaliṅgādhipatiś caiva pauṇḍraś ca balināṃ varaḥ
āhvṛtiḥ kauśikaś caiva bhīṣmakaś ca narādhipaḥ //
putraś ca bhīṣmakasyāpi rukmī mukhyo dhanurbhṛtām
vāsudevārjunābhyāṃ yaḥ spardhate sma sadā bale //
veṇudāriḥ śrutarvā ca krāthaś caivāṃśumān api
aṅgarājaś ca balavān vaṅgānām adhipas tathā //
kausalyaḥ kāśirājaś ca daśārṇādhipatis tathā
suhmeśvaraś ca vikrānto videhādhipatis tathā //
madrarājaś ca balavāṃs trigartānām atheśvaraḥ
sālvarājaś ca vikrānto daradaś ca mahābalaḥ //
yavanādhipatiś caiva bhagadattaś ca vīryavān
sauvīrarājaḥ śaibyaś ca pāṇḍyaś ca balināṃ varaḥ
gāndhārarājaḥ subalo nagnajic ca mahābalaḥ //
Note: k: K3 Dn Ds D5 ins.: :k
kāśmīrarājo gonardo daradādhipatir nṛpaḥ |
Note: k: K3 Dn Ds D5 cont., K1.4 Ñ V B D1.3.4.6 T2.3(both times).4 G1.2.3(first time).5 ins., K2 after 14, D2 after 14ab: :k
duryodhanādayaś caiva dhārtarāṣṭrā mahābalāḥ |
ete cānye ca rājāno balavanto mahārathāḥ
tam anvayur jarāsaṃdhaṃ vidviṣanto janārdanam //
te śūrasenān āviśya prabhūtayavasendhanān
ūṣuḥ saṃrudhya mathurāṃ parikṣipya balais tadā //
Note: h: HV (CE) chapter 81, transliterated by John Brockington, proof-read by John Brockington, version of 17th December 2001 :h
mathuropavane gatvā niviṣṭāṃs tān narādhipān
Note: k: After the ref. D6 T2 G1.4.5 M4 ins. a passage given in App. I (No. 16) :kapaśyan vṛṣṇayaḥ sarve puraskṛtya janārdanam //
Note: k: T1 G3 M1-3 ins.: :k
tān āgatān nṛpān rājan māgadhān rājasattamān |
tato hṛṣṭamanāḥ kṛṣṇo rāmaṃ vacanam abravīt
tvarate khalu kāryārtho devatānāṃ na saṃśayaḥ //
yathāyaṃ saṃnikṛṣṭo hi jarāsaṃdho narādhipaḥ
lakṣyante hi dhvajāgrāṇi rathānāṃ vātaraṃhasām //
etāni śaśikalpāni narāṇāṃ vijigīṣatām
chatrāṇy ārya virājante procchritāni sitāni ca //
aho nṛparathodagrā vimalāś chatrapaṅktayaḥ
abhivartanti naḥ śubhrā yathā khe haṃsapaṅktayaḥ //
kāle khalu nṛpaḥ prāpto jarāsaṃdho mahīpatiḥ
āvayor yuddhanikaṣaḥ prathamaḥ samarātithiḥ //
ārya tiṣṭhāva sahitāv anuprāpte mahīpatau
yuddhārambhaḥ prayoktavyo balaṃ tāvad vimṛśyatām //
evam uktvā tataḥ kṛṣṇaḥ svasthaḥ saṃgrāmalālasaḥ
jarāsaṃdham abhiprepsuś cakāra baladarśanam //
vīkṣamāṇaś ca tān sarvān nṛpān yaduvaro 'vyayaḥ
ātmānam ātmanā vākyam uvāca hṛdi mantravit //
ime te pṛthivīpālāḥ pārthive vartmani sthitāḥ
ye vināśam iheṣyanti śāstradṛṣṭena karmaṇā //
prokṣitāḥ khalv ime manye mṛtyunā nṛpapuṃgavāḥ
svargagāni tathā hy eṣāṃ vapūṃṣi pracakāśire //
sthāne bhārapariśrāntā vasudheyaṃ divaṃ gatā
eṣāṃ nṛpatimukhyānāṃ balaughair abhipīḍitā
bhūmir nirantarā ceyaṃ balarāṣṭrābhisaṃvṛtā //
svalpena khalu kālena viviktaṃ pṛthivītalam
bhaviṣyati narendraughaiḥ śataśo vinipātitaiḥ //
Note: k: T1.3(second time) G1.3.5 M4 ins.: :k
evaṃ cintayatas tasya kṛṣṇasyādbhutakarmaṇaḥ |
Note: k: M1.2 ins.: :k
evaṃ saṃcintya bhagavān yuddhāya kṛtaniścayaḥ |
saṃkarṣaṇena sahitas tasthau girir ivācalaḥ |
jarāsaṃdhas tataḥ kruddhaḥ prabhuḥ sarvamahīkṣitām
narādhipasahasraughair anuyāto mahādyutiḥ //
vyāyatodagraturagaiḥ sayantraiḥ susamāhitaiḥ
rathaiḥ sāṃgrāmikair yuktair asaṅgagatibhiḥ kva cit //
hemakakṣyair mahāghaṇṭair vāraṇair vāridopamaiḥ
mahāmātrottamārūḍhaiḥ kalpitai raṇakovidaiḥ //
svārūḍhaiḥ sādibhir yuktaiḥ prekṣamāṇaiḥ pravalgitaiḥ
vājibhir meghasaṃkāśaiḥ plavadbhir iva pattibhiḥ //
khaḍgacarmadharodagraiḥ pattibhir valgitāmbaraiḥ
sahasrasaṃkhyāsaṃyuktair utpatadbhir ivoragaiḥ //
evaṃ caturvidhaiḥ sainyaiḥ kampamānair ivāmbudaiḥ
nṛpo 'bhiyāto balavāñ jarāsaṃdho dhṛtavrataḥ //
sa rathair meghanirghoṣair gajaiś ca madaśiñcitaiḥ
heṣamāṇaiś ca turagaiḥ kṣveḍamāṇaiś ca pattibhiḥ //
nādayāno diśaḥ sarvās tasyāḥ puryā vanāni ca
Note: k: T1.3(second time) G3.5 M G(ed.) ins.: :kakṣauhiṇyā ca viṃśatyā anuyāto narādhipaḥ |
sa rājā sāgarākāraḥ sasainyaḥ pratyadṛśyata //
tad balaṃ pṛthivīśānāṃ dṛptayodhajanākulam
kṣveḍitāsphoṭitaravaṃ meghasainyam ivābabhau //
rathaiḥ pavanasaṃpātair gajaiś ca jaladopamaiḥ
turagaiś ca javopetaiḥ pattibhiḥ khagamair iva //
vimiśraṃ sarvato bhāti mattadviparathākulam
gharmānte sāgaragataṃ yathaivābhrabalaṃ tathā //
sabalās te mahīpālā jarāsaṃdhapurogamāḥ
parivārya purīṃ sarve niveśāyopacakrire //
babhau tasya niviṣṭasya balaśrīḥ śibirasya vai
śuklaparyantapūrṇasya yathā rūpaṃ mahodadheḥ //
vītarātre tataḥ kāle samuttasthur mahīkṣitaḥ
ārohaṇārthaṃ puryās te samīyur yuddhalālasāḥ //
samavāyīkṛtāḥ sarve yamunām anu te nṛpāḥ
niviṣṭā mantrayāmāsur yuddhakālakutūhalāḥ //
teṣāṃ sutumulaḥ śabdaḥ śuśruve pṛthivīkṣitām
yugānte bhidyamānānāṃ sāgarāṇāṃ yathā svanaḥ //
teṣāṃ sakañcukoṣṇīṣāḥ sthavirā vetrapāṇayaḥ
cerur mā śabda ity evaṃ bruvanto rājaśasanāt //
tasya rūpaṃ balasyāsīn niḥśabdastimitasya vai
līnamīnagrahasyeva niḥśabdasya mahodadheḥ //
niḥśabdastimite tasmin yogād iva mahārṇave
jarāsaṃdho bṛhad vākyaṃ bṛhaspatir ivādade //
śīghraṃ samabhivartantāṃ balāni pṛthivīkṣitām
sarvato nagarī ceyaṃ janaughaiḥ parivāryatām //
aśmayantrāṇi yujyantāṃ kṣepaṇīyāś ca mudgarāḥ
Note: k: Ñ2.3 V1.2 B Ds D4-6 T1 G3 G(ed.) ins.: :kkāryā bhūmiḥ samā sarvā jalaughaiś ca pariplutā |
ūrdhvaṃ cāpāni vāhyantāṃ prāsā vai tomarās tathā //
dāryatāṃ caiva ṭaṅkaughaiḥ khanitraiś ca purī drutam
nṛpaś ca yuddhamārgajñā vinyasyantām adūrataḥ //
adyaprabhṛti sainyair me purīrodhaḥ pravartyatām
Note: k: N (except Ś1 Ñ1) T1.2.3(first time).4 G ins.: :kyāvad etau raṇe gopau vasudevasutāv ubhau |
saṃkarṣaṇaṃ ca kṛṣṇaṃ ca ghātayāmi śitaiḥ śaraiḥ |
ākāśam api bāṇaughair niḥsaṃpātaṃ yathā bhavet //
mayānuśiṣṭās tiṣṭhantu purībhūmiṣu pārthivāḥ
teṣu teṣv avakāśeṣu śīghram āruhyatāṃ purī //
madraḥ kaliṅgādhipatiś cekitānaḥ sabāhlikaḥ
kaśmīrarājo gonardaḥ karūṣādhipatis tathā //
drumaḥ kiṃpuruṣaś caiva pārvatīyaṣ ca dāmanaḥ
nagaryāḥ paścimaṃ dvāraṃ kṣipram ārohayantv iti //
pauravo veṇudāriś ca vaidarbhaḥ somakas tathā
rukmī ca bhojādhipatiḥ sūryākṣaś caiva mālavaḥ //
Note: k: Ñ2.3 D4 ins.: :k
pāñcālānām adhipatir drupadānāṃ mahābalaḥ |
vindānuvindāv āvantyau dantavaktraś ca vīryavān
Note: k: D1.5 ins.: :kdakṣiṇaṃ nagaradvāraṃ śīghram ārodhayantv iti |
chāgaliḥ purumitraś ca virāṭaś ca mahīpatiḥ //
kauśāmbyo mālavaś caiva śatadhanvā vidūrathaḥ
bhūriśravās trigartaś ca bāṇaḥ pañcanadas tathā //
uttaraṃ nagaradvāram ete durgasahā nṛpāḥ
ārohantāṃ vimardantāṃ vajrapratimagauravāḥ //
ulūkaḥ kaitaveyaś ca vīraś cāṃśumataḥ sutaḥ
ekalavyo bṛhatkṣatraḥ kṣatradharmā jayadrathaḥ //
uttamaujāś ca śalyaś ca kauravāḥ kaikayās tathā
vaidiśo vāmadevaś ca sāketaś ca sinīpatiḥ //
pūrvaṃ nagaranirvyūham eteṣv āyattam astu vaḥ
tvarayanto 'bhidhāvantu vātā iva balāhakān //
ahaṃ ca daradaś caiva cedirājaś ca saṃgatāḥ
dakṣiṇaṃ nagaradvāraṃ pālayiṣyāma daṃśitāḥ //
evam eṣā purī kṣipraṃ samantād veṣṭitā balaiḥ
vajrāvapātapratimaṃ prāpnotu tumulaṃ bhayam //
gadino ye gadābhis te parighaiḥ parighāyudhāḥ
apare vividhaiḥ śastrair dārayantu purīm imām //
adyaiva tu nagary eṣā viṣamoccayasaṃkaṭā
kāryā bhūmisamā sarvā bhavadbhir vasudhādhipaiḥ //
Note: k: T1.3(second time) G3.5 G(ed.) ins.: :k
evam uktvā jarāsaṃdhaḥ śakratulyaparākramaḥ |
caturaṅgabalaṃ vyūhya jarāsaṃdho vyavasthitaḥ
athābhyayād yadūn kruddhaḥ saha sarvair narādhipaiḥ
pratijagmur daśārhās taṃ vyūḍhānīkāḥ prahāriṇaḥ //
Note: k: D2 ins.: :k
tāv āgatau tadā dṛṣṭvā yādavau sainyam agragau |
ruṣāha māgadho vīkṣya he kṛṣṇa puruṣādhama |
na tvayā yoddhum icchāmi bālakeneti lajjayā ||
tava rāma yada śraddhā yuddhe sthairyaṃ samudvaha |
hato vā maccharaiś channa dehaḥ svar yāhi māṃ jahi ||
na vai śūrā vikatthante darśayanty eva pauruṣam |
na gṛhṇīmo vaco rājan nāturasya mumūrṣataḥ |
Note: k: cf. Bhāgavata P., 10.50.17c-20d. :k
tad yuddham abhavad ghoraṃ teṣāṃ devāsuropamam
alpānāṃ bahubhiḥ sārdhaṃ vyatiṣaktarathadvipam //
Note: k: D6 T1.2.3(second time) G1.3.5 M G(ed.) ins.: :k
ugrasenaṃ puraskṛtya vāsudevahalāyudhau |
rathasthāv abhivartetāṃ yuddhāya raṇakovidau |
nagarān niḥsṛtau dṛṣṭvā vasudevasutāv ubau
kṣubdhaṃ naravarānīkaṃ trastasaṃmūḍhavāhanam //
rathasthau daṃśitau caiva ceratus tatra yādavau
makarāv iva saṃrabdhau samudrakṣobhaṇāv ubhau //
tābhyāṃ mṛdhe prayuktābhyāṃ yādavābhyāṃ matir babhau
Note: k: For 55ab K1.3.4 Ñ2.3 V B D T2.3(first time).4 G1.2.5 subst.: :ktayoḥ prayudhyatoḥ saṃkhye matir āsīd dhṛtātmanoḥ |
āyudhānāṃ purāṇānām ādāne kṛtalakṣaṇā //
tataḥ khān nipatanti sma dīptāny āhavasaṃplave
lelihānāni divyāni mahānti sudṛḍhāni ca //
kravyādair anuyātāni mūrtimanti bṛhanti ca
tṛṣitāny āhave bhoktuṃ nṛpamāṃsāni vai bhṛśam //
divyasragdāmadhārīṇi trāsayanti nabhaścarān
prabhayā bhāsamānāni daṃśitāni diśo daśa //
halaṃ saṃvartakaṃ nāma saunandaṃ musalaṃ tathā
dhanuṣāṃ pravaraṃ śārṅgaṃ gadā kaumodakī ca ha //
catvāry etāni tejāṃsi viṣṇupraharaṇāni ca
tābhyāṃ samavatīrṇāni yādavābhyāṃ mahāraṇe //
jagrāha prathamaṃ rāmo lalāmapratimaṃ halam
taṃ sarpam iva sarpantaṃ divyamālākulaṃ mṛdhe //
saunandaṃ ca tataḥ śrīmān nirānandakaraṃ dviṣām
savyena sātvatāṃ śreṣṭho jagrāha musalottamam //
darśanīyaṃ ca lokeṣu dhanur jaladanisvanam
nāmnā śārṅgam iti khyātaṃ viṣṇur jagrāha vīryavān //
devair nigaditārthasya gadā tasyāpare kare
viṣaktā kumudākṣasya nāmnā kaumodakīti sā //
tau sapraharaṇau vīrau sākṣād viṣṇos tanūpamau
samare rāmagovindau ripūṃs tān pratyayudhyatām //
sāyudhapragrahau vīrau tāv anyonyamayāv ubhau
pūrvajānujasaṃjñau tau rāmagovindalakṣaṇau
dviṣatsu pratikurvāṇau parākrāntau yatheśvarau //
Note: k: N (except Ñ1) T1.2.3(first time).4 G ins.: :k
viceratur yathā devau vasudevasutāv ubhau |
halam udyamya rāmas tu sarpendram iva kopitaḥ
cacāra samare vīro dviṣatām antako yathā //
vikarṣan rathayūthāni kṣatriyāṇāṃ mahātmanām
cakāra roṣaṃ saphalaṃ nāgeṣu ca hayeṣu ca //
kuñjarāṃl lāṅgalakṣiptān musalākṣepatāḍitān
rāmo virājan samare nirmamantha yathācalān //
te vidhyamānā rāmeṇa samare kṣatriyarṣabhāḥ
jarāsaṃdhāntikaṃ vīrāḥ samarārtāḥ prajagmire //
tān uvāca jarāsaṃdhaḥ kṣatradharme vyavasthitaḥ
dhig etāṃ kṣatravṛttiṃ vaḥ samare kātarātmanām //
parāvṛttasya samare virathasya palāyataḥ
bhrūṇahatyām ivāsahyāṃ pravadanti manīṣiṇaḥ //
bhītāḥ kasmān nivartadhvaṃ dhig etāṃ kṣatravṛttitām
kṣipraṃ samabhivartadhvaṃ mama vākyena coditāḥ
Note: k: N (except Ś1Ñ1 D1) T1.2.3(first time).4 G1.2.5 ins.: :katha vā tiṣṭhata rathaiḥ prekṣakāḥ samavasthitāḥ |
yāvad etau raṇe gopau preṣayāmi yamakṣayam //
Note: k: M1-3 ins.: :k
sthito 'smi yuddhe saṃrabdhaḥ kṣatriyā vijayāya hi |
tatas te kṣatriyāḥ sarve jarāsaṃdhena coditāḥ
sṛjantaḥ śarajālāni hṛṣṭā yoddhuṃ vyavasthitāḥ //
te hayaiḥ kāñcanāpīḍai rathaiś cāmbudanādibhiḥ
nāgaiś cāmbhodasaṃkāśair mahāmātrapracoditaiḥ //
satanutrāḥ sanistriṃśāḥ sapatākāyudhadhvajāh.
svāropitadhanuṣmantaḥ sutūṇīrāḥ satomarāḥ //
sacchatrotsedhinaḥ sarve cārucāmaravījitāḥ
raṇe te 'bhigatā rejuḥ syandanasthā mahīkṣitaḥ //
te yuddharāgā rathino vyagāhanta yudhāṃ varāḥ
gadābhiś caiva gurvībhiḥ kṣepaṇīyaiś ca mudgaraiḥ //
Note: k: Ñ2.3 V B Dn Ds D2-5 T3(first time).4 ins.: :k
etasminn antare tatra devānāṃ nandivardhanaḥ |
Note: k: D6 T1.2.3(second time) G1.3.5 M G(ed.) ins.: :k
etasminn antare rājā jarāsaṃdhaḥ pratāpavān |
dadhmau śaṅkhaṃ mahānādaṃ diśaḥ sarvā vinādayan ||
tac chrutvā devadevo 'pi pāñcajanyam anuttamam |
yasya nādena vitrastā divisthāḥ sarvadevatāḥ |
kim u sainyāni sarvāṇi vitrastānīti kā kathā |
suparṇadhajam āsthāya kṛṣṇas tu ratham uttamam
tadābhyayāj jarāsaṃdhaṃ śarair vivyādha cāṣṭabhiḥ //
Note: k: D6 T1.3(second time) G1.3.5 M ins., T2 cont. after *918, G4 ins. after 79ab: :k
so 'pi vidhvāṣṭabhir viṣṇum ugrasenaṃ dadarśa ha |
pārśvasthaṃ ca harer āha śṛṇu rājan vaco mama ||
tvaṃ kim āsīn nṛpo rānan vṛṣṇīnāṃ sāṃprataṃ vada |
ajñānām agraṇīḥ sa tvaṃ ko 'nyas tvatsadṛśo bhuvi ||
yat tu dattaṃ kilānena piṇḍam ātmajaghātinā |
tad bhuṅkte tad bhavān nityaṃ vadāndha kim ataḥ param ||
hatvā cāyaṃ sutaṃ śauris tava rājaka nirdayaḥ |
tvām eva rājye saṃsthāpya sāṃprataṃ yuddhalālasaḥ ||
tasya bhṛtyatvam āyāsi rājaśabdaṃ samudvahan |
kevalaṃ vayasā vṛddho na tu jñānena rājaka ||
nirlajja bhogasaṃsakta kṣudrajanto nṛpādhama |
ito yāhi vṛthāvṛddha tvāṃ draṣṭuṃ nāham utsahe ||
atha yuddhaṃ samālipsuḥ kṣaṇaṃ tiṣṭha mamāgrataḥ |
haniṣye tvāṃ hi sabalaṃ sahariṃ sabalaṃ tathā ||
ity uktvā dhanur ādāya tasthau tatpuratas tadā ||
tac chrutva roṣatāmrākṣo babhāṣe māgadhaṃ hariḥ |
antardhānaṃ gatas tasmād gomantāt parvatottamāt ||
tvam idānīṃ samāyāsi balaiḥ sarvaiḥ samanvitaḥ |
sthito 'smi yuddhasaṃrabdhaḥ kṣatriyāṇāṃ kṣayāvahaḥ ||
sa evāsmi śiśū rājan bhavān api sa eva hi |
naitad yuktaṃ vṛthā rājann ugrasenaṃ prabhāṣitum |
mām eva vada rājendra śatrur asmi tava prabho |
drakṣyase yat kṛtaṃ rājan mayā sāṃpratam īdṛśam ||
atha kiṃ bahunoktena śiraś chetsyāmi te nṛpa |
na karoṣi yadi tvaṃ hi rājendrādya palāyanam ||
ity uktvā pañcaviṃśatyā nṛpaṃ vivyādha keśavaḥ |
sārathiṃ cāsya vivyādha pañcabhir niśitaiḥ śaraiḥ
jaghāna turagāṃś cājau yatamānasya vīryavān //
Note: k: T2 G1.4.5 ins., D6 T1 G3 M after 80ab, T3(second time) after second occurrence of 80ab: :k
dhanuś ciccheda rājendra jarāsaṃdhasya keśavaḥ |
dhvajaṃ cāsya praciccheda sārathiṃ ca jaghāna ha ||
rathaṃ cāsya praciccheda sarvakṣatrasya paśyataḥ |
viratho vidhanuṣkaś ca tasthau bhūtalam āsthitaḥ |
taṃ kṛcchragatam ājñāya citraseno mahārathaḥ
senānīḥ kauśikaś caiva kṛṣṇaṃ vivyādhatuḥ śaraiḥ //
tribhir vivyādha saṃsaktaṃ baladevaṃ ca kauśikaḥ
baladevo dhanuś cāsya bhallenājau dvidhākarot
javenābhyardayac cāpi tān arīñ śaravṛṣṭibhiḥ //
Note: k: N (except Ñ1) T3(first time) G ins.: :k
bahubhir bahudhā vīraḥ samantāt svarṇabhūṣaṇaiḥ |
taṃ citrasenaḥ saṃrabdho vivyādha navabhiḥ śaraiḥ
kauśikaḥ pañcabhiś cāpi jarāsaṃdhaś ca saptabhiḥ //
tribhis tribhiś ca nārācais tān bibheda janārdanaḥ
Note: k: D6 T1.2.3(second time) G1.4.5 M ins.: :kdhanur anyat samādāya magadhendro mahīpatiḥ |
ugrasenaṃ samājaghne śareṇa niśitena ha ||
sa śaro 'tha mahārāja rājānaṃ sa vyacūcudat |
pitā kaṃsasya rājendra śarair vivyādha saptabhiḥ ||
saptatyā ca jarāsaṃdhaṃ punaś ca navabhiḥ śaraiḥ |
jarāsaṃdhaḥ samājaghne rājānaṃ yadunandanam |
śarair daśasahasraiś ca mādhavasya hi paśyataḥ ||
ugraseno dhanuṣpāṇir dhanuś cāsya dvidhākarot ||
punar ādāya cāpaṃ tu jarāsaṃdhaḥ pratāpavān |
ugrasenaṃ viṃśatibhiḥ śaraiḥ suniśitair api ||
vivyādha rājarājānaṃ baladevasya paśyataḥ |
dhanuś cāsya dvidhā rājan muṣṭideśe tathākarot ||
ādāya niśitaṃ bāṇaṃ jarāsaṃdhaḥ pratāpavān |
vivyādha rājan rājendro rājānaṃ hṛdaye prabhuḥ ||
aśvāṃś caiva praciccheda śareṇa nataparvaṇā |
rathaṃ cāsya dvidhā cakre dhvajaṃ ca prādunon nṛpaḥ ||
rathāc caiva pradudrāva vṛṣṇīnāṃ nṛpasattamaḥ ||
kauśikaś citrasenaś ca jarāsaṃdho mahīpatiḥ |
janārdanaṃ mahārāja samājaghnus tribhis tribhiḥ |
Note: k: After line 17, T1.3 M2.4 ins.: :kjarāsaṃdhaḥ śarair bhagno vasudevasya paśyataḥ |
pañcabhiḥ pañcabhiś caiva baladevaḥ śitaiḥ śaraiḥ //
ratheṣāṃ cāpi ciccheda citrasenasya vīryavān
baladevo dhanuś cājau bhallenāsya dvidhākarot //
sa cchinnadhanvā viratho gadām ādāya vīryavān
abhyadravat susaṃkruddho jighāṃsur musalāyudham //
sisṛkṣatas tu nārācāṃś citrasenavadhaiṣiṇaḥ
dhanuś ciccheda rāmasya jarāsaṃdho mahābalaḥ
gadayā ca jaghānāśvān kopāt sa magadheśvaraḥ //
Note: k: K2.3 Ñ2.3 V B Dn Ds D1-4.8 T2.3(second time).4 G1.2.4.5 ins., K1 after 88, K4 D5 after 87cd: :k
rāmaṃ cābhyadravad vīro jarāsaṃdho mahābalaḥ |
ādāya musalaṃ rāmo jarāsaṃdham upādravat
tayos tu yuddham abhavat parasparavadhaiṣiṇoḥ //
Note: k: K2-4 Ñ2.3 V B D T2.3(first time).4 G1.2.4.5 ins., K1 cont. after *923: :k
citrasenas tu saṃsaktaṃ dṛṣṭvā rāmeṇa māgadham |
ratham anyaṃ samāruhya jarāsaṃdham avārayat ||
tato balena mahatā gajānīkena cāpy atha |
ubhayor antare tābhyāṃ saṃkulaṃ samapadyata |
tataḥ sainyena mahatā jarāsaṃdho 'bhisaṃvṛtaḥ
rāmakṛṣṇāgragān bhojān āsasāda mahābalaḥ //
tataḥ prakṣubhitasyeva sāgarasya mahāsvanaḥ
prādur babhūva tumulaḥ senayor ubhayos tayoḥ //
veṇubherīmṛdaṅgānāṃ śaṅkhānāṃ ca sahasraśaḥ
ubhayoḥ senayo rājan prādur āsīn mahāsvanaḥ //
kṣveḍitāsphoṭitotkruṣṭais tumulaḥ sarvato 'bhavat
utpapāta rajaś cāpi khuranemisamuddhatam //
samudyatamahāśastrāḥ pragṛhītaśarāsanāḥ
anyonyam abhigarjantaḥ śūrās tatrāvatasthire //
rathinaḥ sādinaś caiva pattayaś ca sahasraśaḥ
gajāś cātibalās tatra saṃnipetur abhītavat //
Note: k: D2 ins.: :k
tatas teṣāṃ mahārāja nṛpāṇāṃ jayakāṅkṣiṇām |
sa saṃprahāras tumulas tyaktvā prāṇān avartata
vṛṣṇībhiḥ saha yodhānāṃ jarāsaṃdhasya dāruṇaḥ //
tataḥ śinir anādhṛṣṭir babhrur vipṛthur āhukaḥ
baladevaṃ puraskṛtya sainyasyārdhena daṃśitāḥ //
dakṣiṇaṃ pakṣam āseduḥ śatrusainyasya bhārata
pālitaṃ cedirājena jarāsaṃdhena cābhibho //
udīcyaiś ca mahāvīryaiḥ śalyasālvādibhir nṛpaiḥ
sṛjantaḥ śaravarṣāṇi samabhityaktajīvitāḥ //
āgāvahaḥ pṛthuḥ kahvaḥ śatadyumno vidūrathaḥ
hṛṣīkeśaṃ puraskṛtya sainyasyārdhena daṃśitāḥ //
bhīṣmakeṇābhiguptasya rukmiṇā ca mahātmanā
Note: k: Ś1 K1-3 Ñ2.3 B Dn Ds D2.4 ins.: :kdevakenāpi rājendra tathā madreśvareṇa ca |
prācyaiś ca dākṣiṇātyaiś ca guptavīryabalānvitaiḥ //
teṣāṃ yuddhaṃ samabhavat samabhityaktajīvitam
śaktyṛṣṭiprāsabāṇaughān sṛjatāṃ tumulaṃ mahat //
sātyakiś citrakaḥ śyāmo yuyudhānaś ca vīryavān
rājādhidevo mṛduraḥ śvaphalkaś ca mahābalaḥ //
satrājic ca prasenaś ca balena mahatā vṛtāḥ
vyūhasya pakṣaṃ te savyaṃ pratīyur dviṣatāṃ mṛdhe //
vyūhasyārdhaṃ samāsedur mṛdureṇābhirakṣitam
Note: k: T1.3(second time) G3 M4 ins.: :ktatra yuddhaṃ samabhavan mahad devāsuropamam |
alpānāṃ bahubhiḥ sardhaṃ vāsudevavyapāśrayāt ||
evaṃ yuddham abhūt teṣāṃ śūrāṇāṃ harṣavardhanam |
bhīrūṇāṃ trāsajananaṃ yamarāṣṭravivardhanam |
rājabhiś cāpi bahubhir veṇudārimukhaiḥ saha //
Note: k: Ś1 M1-3 om. 104cd :k
Note: k: Ñ3 V1.2 B2.3 Cal. ed. ins.: :k
pratīcyaiś ca balodagrair dhārtarāṣṭraiś ca pālitam |
Note: h: HV (CE) chapter 82, transliterated by John Brockington, proof-read by John Brockington, version of 21st December 2001 :h
tato yuddhāni vṛṣṇīnāṃ babhūva sumahānty atha
māgadhasya mahāmātyair nṛpaiś caivānuyāyibhiḥ //
Note: k: T1.3(second time) G3.5 M G(ed.) ins.: :k
dvaṃdvayuddhaṃ samabhavat senayor ubhayos tadā |
rukmiṇā vāsudevasya bhīṣmakasyāhukena ca
krāthasya vasudevena kauśikasya ca babhruṇā
gadena cedirājasya dantavaktrasya śaṃbhunā //
Note: k: D6 T1.2.3(second time) G1.3-5 M ins.: :k
vindānuvindāv āvantyau yuyudhānena saṃgatau |
ekalavyo mahārāja pradyumnenātha saṃgataḥ |
tathānyair vṛṣṇivīrāṇāṃ nṛpāṇāṃ ca mahātmanām
yuddham āsīd dhi sainyānāṃ sainikair bharatarṣabha //
Note: k: N (except Ś1 K3 Ñ1) T1.2.3(first time).4 G M4 ins., T3(second time) ins. after 3ab: :k
ahāni pañca caikaṃ ca ṣaṭ saptāṣṭau ca dāruṇam |
gajair gajā hayair aśvāḥ padātāś ca padātibhiḥ
rathā rathair vimiśraiś ca yodhā yuyudhire nṛpa //
jarāsaṃdhasya rajñas tu rāmeṇāsīt samāgamaḥ
mahendrasyeva vṛtreṇa dāruṇo lomaharṣaṇaḥ //
Note: k: after 5, T1.3 G3.5 M ins. a passage given in App.I (No.17) :k
Note: k: Ś1 K Ñ V B Dn Ds D1-4 T4 G1.2 ins., D5 ins. after 4: :k
avekṣya rukmiṇīṃ kṛṣṇo rukmiṇaṃ na vyapothayat ||
jvalanārkāṃśusaṃkāśān āśīviṣaviṣopamān |
vārayām āsa kṛṣṇo vai śarāṃs tasya tu śikṣayā |
Note: k: D6 T2 G1.4.5 then ins. a passage given in App.I (No.17): :k
anyeṣāṃ sumahān āsīd balaughānāṃ parikṣayaḥ
ubhayoḥ senayo rājan māṃsaśoṇitakardamaḥ //
kabandhāni samuttasthuḥ subahūni samantataḥ
Note: k: T3(second time) G3.5 M ins.: :kpiśācā rākṣasāś caiva māṃsaśoṇitalālasāḥ |
tasmin vimarde yodhānāṃ saṃkhyāvyaktir na vidyate //
rathī rāmo jarāsaṃdhaṃ śarair āśīviṣopamaiḥ
āvṛnvann abhyayād vīras taṃ ca rājā sa māgadhaḥ //
Note: k: N (except Ś1 Ñ1) T2.3(first time).4 G1.2.4.5 ins.: :k
abhyavartata vegena syandanenāśugāminā |
anyonyaṃ vividhair astrair vidhvā vidhvā vinedatuḥ |
tau kṣīnaśastrau virathau hatāśvau hatasārathī
gade gṛhītvā vikrāntāv anyonyam abhidhāvatām //
kampayantau bhuvaṃ vīrau tāv udyatamahāgadau
dadṛśāte mahātmānau girī saśikharāv ubhau //
vyupāramanta yuddhāni prekṣantau puruṣarṣabhau
saṃrabdhāv abhidhāvantau gadāyuddheṣu viśrutau //
ubhau tau paramācāryau loke khyātau mahābalau
mattāv iva gajau yuddhe anyonyam abhidhāvatām //
tato devāḥ sagandharvāḥ siddhāś ca paramarṣayaḥ
samantataś cāpsarasaḥ samājagmuḥ sahasraśaḥ //
Note: k: V ins.: :k
pitāmahaś ca bhagavān yuddhaṃ draṣṭuṃ samāgataḥ |
tad devayakṣagandharva maharṣibhir alaṃkṛtam
śuśubhe 'bhyadhikaṃ rājan divaṃ jyotir gaṇair iva //
abhidudrāva rāmaṃ tu jarāsaṃdho mahābalaḥ
savyaṃ maṇḍalam āvṛtya baladevas tu dakṣiṇam //
tau prajahrur anyonyaṃ gadāyuddhaviśāradau
dantābhyām iva mātaṅgau nādayantau diśo daśa //
gadānipāto rāmasya śuśruve 'śaninisvanaḥ
jarāsaṃdhasya caraṇe parvatasyeva dīryataḥ //
na sma kampayate rāmaṃ jarāsaṃdhakaracyutā
gadā gadābhṛtāṃ śreṣṭhaṃ vindhyaṃ girim ivācalam //
rāmasya tu gadāvegaṃ vīryāt sa magadheśvaraḥ
sehe dhairyeṇa mahatā śikṣayā ca vyapohayat //
Note: k: K Ñ2.3 V B Dn Ds D1-5 T3(first time).4 G2 ins., D6 T2 G1.4.5 cont. after 82.19*937: :k
evaṃ tau tatra saṃgrāme vicarantau mahābalau |
maṇḍalāni vicitrāṇi viceratur ariṃdamau ||
vyāyacchantau ciraṃ kālaṃ pariśrāntau ca tasthatuḥ |
samāśvāsya muhūrtaṃ tu punar anyonyam āhatām ||
evaṃ tau yodhamukhyau tu samaṃ yuyudhatuś ciram |
na ca tau yuddhavaimukhyam ubhāv eva prajagmatuḥ ||
athāpaśyad gadāyuddhe viśeṣaṃ tasya vīryavān |
rāmaḥ kruddho gadāṃ tyaktvā jagrāha musalottamam ||
tam udyataṃ tadā dṛṣṭvā musalaṃ ghoradarśanam |
amoghaṃ baladevena kruddhena tu mahāraṇe |
Note: k: D6 T1.2.3(second time) G1.3-5 M ins.: :k
kruddho 'tha rāmabhadras tu gadayā taṃ jagāma ha |
jarāsaṃdho 'tha gadayā balabhadraṃ samāhanat ||
prathamas tv atha rāmeṇa gadāpādaḥ samādade |
dvitīyo magadhendreṇa tṛtīyaṃ tu halāyudhaḥ |
caturthaṃ tu jarāsaṃdhaḥ pañcamaṃ tu yadūdvahaḥ ||
tayoḥ pādaprahāraś ca cālayām āsa medinīm ||
tato devāḥ sagandharvā yakṣāś ca paramarṣayaḥ |
bhītāḥ svastīti caivāhur lokānāṃ brahmaṇaś ca ha ||
tataḥ kruddho jarāputras tāḍayām āsa vakṣasi |
śoṇitaṃ codvaman rāmaḥ śramaṃ ca samavāpa ha ||
viśramya bhūmau kiṃcit tu punar utthāya yādavaḥ |
āhatya gadayā mūrdhni siṃhanādaṃ samānadat ||
papāta ca mahīṃ vīro gatāsur iva niḥśvasan |
hato hato jarāsaṃdha ity ūcur yādaveśvarāḥ ||
saṃjñāṃ ca pratilabhyāśu jarāsaṃdhaḥ pratāpavān |
gadayā ca samājaghne vakṣasy eva halāyudham ||
mūrcchāṃ caiva samāpede saṃjñāṃ ca pratilabdhavān |
tato rudhirarāśis tu babhau jalam ivodgataḥ ||
gadājarjarasarvāṅgau rejatuḥ kiṃśukāv iva |
samādīptau tu rājendra virathau vidhanurdharau ||
gadāhatau mahāvīrau kevalau yuddharaṅginau |
śuśubhāte gadāhastau parasparavadhaiṣiṇau ||
dvāv eva mṛtyū rājendra saṃgatāv iva śobhitau ||
tataḥ kruddho haladharaś chettum aicchaj jarāsutam |
ūrū ca pothayām āsa gadayā rājasaṃsadi ||
ūrvo raktaṃ samāpede majjā samabhavat tataḥ |
tato halī jarāsaṃdhaṃ śiraś chettum udaikṣata |
tato 'ntarikṣe vāg āsīt susvarā lokasākṣiṇī
Note: k: Ś1 K2 Ñ2.3 V1.2 B Dn Ds D2.5.6 ins.: :kuvāca baladevaṃ taṃ samudyatahalāyudham |
na tvayā rāma vadhyo 'yam alaṃ khedena mādhava //
vihito 'sya mayā mṛtyus tasmāt sādhu vyupārama
acireṇaiva kālena prāṇāṃs tyakṣyati māgadhaḥ //
jarāsaṃdhas tu tac chrutvā vimanāḥ samapadyata
na prajahre tatas tasmai punar eva halāyudhaḥ
tau vyupāramatāṃ caiva vṛṣṇayas te ca pārthivāḥ //
prasaktam abhavad yuddhaṃ teṣām eva mahātmanām
dīrghakālaṃ mahārāja nighnatām itaretarām //
Note: k: T1.3(second time) G3 M4 ins.: :k
te sarve nirjitā rājan kṛṣṇena ripughātinā |
jarāsaṃdhena sahitā viprajagmur yathāgatam |
parājite tv apakrānte jarāsaṃdhe mahīpatau
astaṃ yāte dinakare nānusasrus tadā niśi //
Note: k: T1.3(second time) G3 M4 ins.: :k
vṛṣṇayaś ca mahābhāgāḥ kṛṣṇasaṃkarṣaṇāśrayāḥ |
samānīya svasainyaṃ tu labdhalakṣyā mahābalāḥ
purīṃ praviviśur hṛṣṭāḥ keśavenābhipūjitāḥ //
Note: k: N (except Ś1 K2 Ñ1) T2.3(first time).4 G1.2.4.5 ins.: :k
khāc cyutāny āyudhāny eva tāny evāntardadhus tadā ||
jarāsaṃdho 'pi nṛpatir vimanāḥ svapuraṃ yayau |
rājānaś cānugā ye 'sya svarāṣṭrāṇy eva te yayuḥ |
jarāsaṃdhaṃ tu te jitvā manyante naiva taṃ jitam
vṛṣṇayaḥ kuruśārdūla rājā hy atibalaḥ sa vai //
Note: k: T1.3(second time) G3 M ins.: :k
ko nāma hi jarāsaṃdhaṃ raṇe jetuṃ mahīpatiḥ |
śaknuyāl lokavikhyātaḥ sākṣād api śatakratuḥ |
daśa cāṣṭau ca saṃgrāmāñ jarāsaṃdhasya yādavāḥ
dadur na cainaṃ samare hantuṃ śekur mahārathāḥ //
Note: k: T1.3(second time) G3.5 M1.2.4 ins.: :k
kṛṣṇas tu samare rājañ śaktimān api māgadham |
anyo mṛtyur iti jñātvā na ca hiṃsitavān prabhuḥ |
akṣauhiṇyo hi tasyāsan viṃśatir bharatarṣabha
jarāsaṃdhasya nṛpates tadarthaṃ yāḥ samāgatāḥ //
alpatvād abhibhūtās tu vṛṣṇayo bharatarṣabha
bārhadrathena rājendra rājabhiḥ sahitena vai //
Note: k: Ñ2 Bom. Poona eds. G(ed.) ins., K2 after the first occurrence of line 9 of App.I (No. 18): :k
bhūyaḥ kṛtvodyamaṃ prāyād yādavān kṛṣṇapālitān |
jitvā tu māgadhaṃ saṃkhye jarāsaṃdhaṃ mahīpatim
viharanti sma sukhino vṛṣṇisiṃhā mahārathāḥ //
Note: k: M3 ins.: :k
ojas tejo balaṃ dhīr dhṛtir iti mahimā śrīr yaśo rūpam ājñā |
vīryaṃ cetyevamādīn paramaguṇagaṇān ye smaranto labhante |
yad bhaktānāṃ yam ājñāpy akhilajanamanaḥkṣobhaṇī naiti pārśvaṃ |
cetas tvaṃ tasya śaśvac caraṇakamalayor bhṛṅgatāṃ yāhi viṣṇoḥ |
Note: h: HV (CE) chapter 83, transliterated by Kreshimir Krnic, proof-read by Kreshimir Krnic, version of June 15, 2004 :h
etasminn eva kāle tu smṛtvā gopeṣu yatkṛtam
jagāmaiko vrajaṃ rāmaḥ kṛṣṇasyānumate svayam //
sa tatra gatvā ramyāṇi dadarśa vipulāni vai
bhuktapūrvāṇy araṇyāni sarāṃsi surabhīṇi ca //
sa praviṣṭaḥ pravegena taṃ vrajaṃ kṛṣṇapūrvajaḥ
vanyena ramaṇīyena veṣeṇālaṃkṛtaḥ prabhuḥ //
sa tān sarvān ābabhāṣe yathāpūrvaṃ yathāvidhi
gopaṃs tenaiva vidhinā yathānyāyaṃ yathāvayaḥ //
tathaiva prāha tān sarvāṃs tathaiva pariharṣayan
tathaiva saha gopībhī rocayan madhurāḥ kathāḥ //
tam ūcuḥ sthavirā gopāḥ priyaṃ madhurabhāṣiṇaḥ
rāmaṃ ramayatāṃ śreṣṭhaṃ pravāsāt punarāgatam //
svāgataṃ te mahābāho yadūnāṃ kulanandana
Note: k: V2 ins.: :kjīvitasya phalaṃ prāptam adya te darśanena ca |
adya smo nirvṛtās tāta yat tvāṃ paśyāma nirvṛtam //
prītāś caiva vayaṃ vīra yat tvaṃ punar ihāgataḥ
vikhyātas triṣu lokeṣu rāmaḥ śatrubhayaṃkaraḥ //
Note: k: V2 ins.: :k
yādavāś ca balodagrāḥ sarve saṃgrāmalālasāḥ |
tiṣṭhanti nṛpaśārdūlā hy apramattā mahābalāḥ |
Note: k: B2 inserts *947 after the first occurrence of 9ab :k
vardhanīyā vayaṃ nūnaṃ tvayā yādavanandana
atha vā prāṇinas tāta ramante janmabhūmiṣu //
tridaśānāṃ vayaṃ mānyā dhruvam adyāmalānana
ye sma dṛṣṭās tvayā tāta kāṅkṣamāṇās tavāgamam //
diṣṭyā te nihatā mallāḥ kaṃsaś ca vinipātitaḥ
ugraseno 'bhiṣiktaś ca māhātmyenānujena vai //
samudre ca śruto 'smābhis timinā saha vigrahaḥ
Note: k: K3 Ñ1 V2 Dn D1 (marg.) T2 G2 M4 ins.: :kvadhaḥ pañcajanasyaiva jarāsaṃdhena vigrahaḥ |
Note: k: K3 V2 Dn D1 (marg.) T2 G2 M4 cont.: K1.2.4 Ñ2.3 V1.3 B Ds D1 (orig.). 2-6 T3.4 G1 (marg.). 4.5 ins.: :kgomante ca śruto 'smābhiḥ kṣatriyaiḥ saha vigrahaḥ |
daradasya vadhaś caiva jarāsaṃdhe ca yā matiḥ |
Note: k: T1 G3 M1-3 ins. *949 after 11 :ktac cāyudhāvataraṇaṃ śrutaṃ naḥ paramāhave //
Note: k: K Ñ2.3 V B D S ins.: :k
vadhaś caiva śṛgālasya karavīrapurottame |
Note: k: K2 Ñ2.3 V1.3 B1.2 D2.5 (marg.) G2 cont.: :k
tatsutasyābhiṣekaś ca nāgarāṇāṃ ca sāntvanam |
Note: k: V2 Ds D6 cont. after 950*: :k
tatpatnīnāṃ pralāpaś ca śakradevābhiṣecanam |
Note: k: V2 cont.: Ñ2 V3 cont. after *951: :k
mathurāyāvarodhaś ca jarāsaṃdhena dhīmatā |
yuddhaṃ sarvair narendraiś ca yādavānāṃ mahātmanām |
mathurāyāṃ praveśaś ca kīrtanīyaḥ surair api
pratiṣṭhitā ca vasudhā śaṅkitāḥ sarvapārthivāḥ //
tava cāgamanaṃ dṛṣṭvā sabhāgyāḥ sma yathā purā
tena sma parituṣṭāś ca hṛṣitāś ca sabāndhavāḥ //
pratyuvāca tato rāmaḥ sarvāṃs tān abhitaḥ sthitān
yādaveṣv api sarveṣu bhavanto mama bāndhavāḥ //
sahāsmābhir gataṃ bālyaṃ sahāsmābhī rataṃ vane
bhavadbhir vardhitāś caiva kathaṃ yāsyāma vikriyām //
gṛheṣu bhavatāṃ bhuktaṃ gāvaś ca parirakṣitāḥ
asmākaṃ bāndhavāḥ sarve bhavanto baddhasauhṛdāḥ //
evaṃ bhuvati sattvaṃ vai gopamadhye halāyudhe
saṃhṛṣṭavadanās tatra babhūvur gopayoṣitaḥ
Note: k: Ñ2 ins.: :kevaṃ bahuvidhālāpaṃ kṛtvā gopais tu lāṅgalī |
jagāma yamunātīraṃ paśyan vṛndāvanaṃ mudā |
tato vanāntaragato reme rāmo mahābalaḥ //
etasminn antare gopā rāmāya viditātmane
gopālair deśakālajñair upānīyata vāruṇī //
so 'pibat pāṇḍurābhrābhas tatkālaṃ jñātibhir vṛtaḥ
vanāntaragato rāmaḥ pānaṃ madasamīraṇam //
upajahrus tatas tasmai vanyāni vividhāni ca
pratyagraramaṇīyāni puṣpāṇi ca phalāni ca //
medhyāṃś ca vividhān bhakṣān gandhāṃś ca hṛdayaṃ gamān
sadyoddhṛtāvamuktaṃ ca prabhūtaṃ kamalotpalam //
śirasā cārukeśena kiṃcid āvṛttamaulinā
śravaṇaikāvalambena kuṇḍalena virājatā //
candanāgaruśītena vanamālāvalambinā
vibabhāv urasā rāmaḥ kailāseneva mandaraḥ //
nīle vasāno vasane pratyagrajaladaprabhe
rarāja vapuṣā śubhraḥ śaśīva ghanamālayā //
lāṅgalenāvasaktena bhujagābhogavartinā
tathā bhujāgraśliṣṭena musalena ca bhāsvatā //
sa matto balināṃ śreṣṭho rarājāghūrṇitānanaḥ
śaiśirīṣv iva rātrīṣu yathā khedālasaḥ śaśī //
sa matto yamunām āha snātum icche mahānadi
ihaiva mābhigacchasva rūpiṇī sāgaraṃgame //
saṃkarṣaṇasya mattoktāṃ bhāratīṃ paribhūya sā
nābhyavartata taṃ deśaṃ strīsvabhāvena mohitā //
tataś cukrodha balavān rāmo madasamīritaḥ
cakāra ca halaṃ haste karṣaṇādhomukhaṃ balī //
tasyāṃ tu pānamedinyāṃ petus tāmarasasrajaḥ
mumucuḥ puṣpakośaiś ca svaṃ rajorañjitaṃ jalam //
sa halenānantāgreṇa tīre gṛhya mahānadīm
cakarṣa yamunāṃ rāmo vyutthitāṃ vanitām iva //
sā vihvalajalasrotā hradaprasthitasaṃcayā
vyāvartata nadī bhītā halamārgānusāriṇī //
lāṅgalākṛṣṭamārgā sā vegavakrānugāminī
saṃkarṣaṇabhayatrastā yoṣevākulatāṃ gatā //
srotaḥpulinabimboṣṭhī mṛditais toyatāḍitaiḥ
phenamekhalasūtraiś ca cihnais tīrānuhāsibhiḥ //
taraṃgaviṣamāpīḍā cakravākonmukhastanī
vegagambhīravakrāṅgī trastamīnavahaṃgamā //
sā tu haṃsekṣaṇāpāṅgī kāśakṣaumojjhitāmbarā
tīrajoddhūtakeśāntā jalaskhalitagāminī //
lāṅgalollikhitāpāṅgī kṣubhitā sāgaraṃgamā
Note: k: T3 M4 (M1-3 after 37) ins.: :kśaivālamaladigdhāṅgī ghanabudbudaviklavā |
matteva kuṭilā nārī rājamārgeṇa gacchatī //
kṛṣyate sā sma vegena srotaḥskhalitagāminī
unmārgānītamārgā sā yena vṛndāvanaṃ vanam //
vṛndāvanasya madhyena sā nītā yamunā nadī
rorūyamāṇaiḥ khagamair anvitā tīravāsibhiḥ //
sā yadā samatikrāntā nadī vṛndāvanaṃ vanam
tataḥ strīvigrahā bhūtvā yamunā rāmam abravīt //
prasīda rāma bhītāsmi pratilomena karmaṇā
viparītam idaṃ rūpaṃ toyaṃ ca mama jāyate //
asatyahaṃ nadīmadhye rauhiṇeya tvayā kṛtā
Note: k: Ñ1 subst.: :krauhiṇeya hasiṣyati māṃ nandaḥ saṃgatā tvayā |
karṣaṇena mahābāho svamārgavyabhicāriṇī //
prāptāṃ māṃ sāgare nūnaṃ sapatnyo vegagarvitāḥ
phenahāsair hasiṣyanti toyavyāvṛttagāminīm //
prasādaṃ kuru me vīra yāce tvāṃ kṛṣṇapūrvaja
Note: k: K2 Ñ2.3 V B Dn Ds D4.6 T3.4 G2 (G(ed.) after 44ab) ins.: :ksuprasannamanā nityaṃ bhavasva tvaṃ surottama |
karṣaṇāyudhakṛṣṭāsmi roṣo 'yaṃ vinivartyatām //
eṣā mūrdhnābhigacchāmi caraṇau te halāyudha
mārgam ādiṣṭam icchāmi kva gacchāmi mahābhuja //
tām evaṃ bruvatīṃ drṣṭvā yamunāṃ lāṅgalāyudhaḥ
pratyuvācārṇavavadhūṃ madākrāntālaso balaḥ //
lāṅgalākṛṣṭamārgā tvam imaṃ me priyadarśane
deśam ambupradānena nikhilaṃ bhāvayasva naḥ //
eṣa te subhru saṃdeśaḥ kathitaḥ sāgaraṃgame
śāntiṃ vraja mahābhāge gamyatāṃ ca yathāsukham
lokā hi yāvat sthāsyanti tāvat sthāsyati me yaśaḥ //
Note: k: T1.3 G3.5 M4 ins.: :k
ity uktā sā tathā cakre yamunā rāmaśāsanam |
anujñātā tu rāmeṇa yathāmārgaṃ jagāma sā |
yamunākarṣaṇaṃ dṛṣṭvā savre te vrajavāsinaḥ
sādhu sādhv iti rāmāya praṇāmaṃ cakrire tadā //
Note: k: T1-3 G1.3.5 M ins.: :k
namo 'stu te jagannātha balabhadra halāyudha |
prasīda devadeveśa rāma rāmeti gopakāḥ |
tāṃ visṛjya mahāvegāṃ tāṃś ca sarvān vrajaukasaḥ
tataḥ saṃcintya manasā buddhyā niścitya caiva ha
punaḥ pratijagāmāśu mathurāṃ rohiṇīsutaḥ //
sa gatvā mathurāṃ rāmo bhavane madhusūdanam
parivartamānaṃ dadṛśe pṛthivyāḥ sāram avyayam //
tathaiva vanaveṣeṇa sopasṛpto janārdanam
pratyagravanamālena vakṣasābhivirājatā //
sa dṛṣṭvā tūrṇam āyāntaṃ rāmaṃ laṅgaladhāriṇam
sahasotthāya govindo dadāv āsanam uttamam //
Note: k: D6 T1-3 G1.3.4 (both times).5 M ins.: :k
abhivādya mahātmānaṃ balabhadraṃ janārdanaḥ |
punaḥ praṇāmam akarot svāgataṃ te halāyudha |
upaviṣṭaṃ tato rāmaṃ papraccha kuśalaṃ vraje
bāndhaveṣu ca sarveṣu goṣu caiva janārdanaḥ //
pratyuvāca tato rāmo bhrātaraṃ sādhubhāṣiṇam
sarvatra kuśalaṃ kṛṣṇa yeṣāṃ kuśalam icchasi //
tatas tayor vicitrāś ca paurāṇyaś ca kathābhavan
vasudevāgrataḥ puṇyā rāmakeśavayos tadā //
Note: h: HV (CE) chapter 84, transliterated by Kreshimir Krnic, proof-read by Kreshimir Krnic, version of June 15, 2004 :h
kasyacit tv atha kālasya sabhāyāṃ yadusaṃsadi
babhāṣe puṇḍarīkākṣo hetumad vākyam uttamam //
Note: k: D6 T1-3 G1.3.5 M ins.: :k
śrūyatāṃ yādavā vākyaṃ sarve cāvahitā mama |
yādavānām iyaṃ bhūmir mathurā rāṣṭravardhanī
vayaṃ caiveha saṃbhūtā vraje ca parivardhitāḥ //
tad idānīṃ gataṃ duḥkhaṃ śatravaṣ ca parājitāḥ
nṛpeṣu janitaṃ vairaṃ jarāsaṃdhe ca vigrahaḥ //
vāhanāni ca naḥ santi pādātaṃ cāpy anantakam
ratnāni ca vicitrāṇi mitrāṇi bahulāni ca //
iyaṃ ca māthurī bhūmir alpā gamyā parasya naḥ
vṛddhiś cāpi parāsmākaṃ balato mitratas tathā //
kumārakoṭyo yāś cemā gaṇāś caiva padātinām
eṣām apīha vasatāṃ saṃmardam upalakṣaye //
tan me na rocate hy atra nivāso yadupuṃgavāḥ
purīṃ niveśayiṣyāmi mama tat kṣantum arhatha //
etad yady anukūlaṃ vo mamābhiprāyajaṃ vacaḥ
bhavāya bhavatāṃ kāle rocatāṃ yadusaṃsadi //
tam ūcur yādavāḥ sarve hṛṣṭena manasā tadā
sādhyatāṃ yad abhipretaṃ janasyāsya bhavāya ca //
tataḥ saṃmantrayām āsur vṛṣṇayo mantram uttamam
avadhyo 'saukṛto 'smākaṃ sumahacca ripor balam //
kṛtaḥ sainyakṣayaś cāpi mahān iha narādhipaiḥ
balāni ca sasainyāni hantuṃ varṣaśatair api
na śakṣyāmo hy atas teṣām apayāne 'bhavan matiḥ //
etasminn antare rājā sa kālayavano mahān
sainyena tadvidhenaiva mathurām abhyupāgamat //
tato jarāsaṃdhabalaṃ durnivāryaṃ mahat tadā
te kālayavanaṃ caiva śrutvaivaṃ pratipedire //
Note: k: G2 ins.: :k
etasminn antare caiva yadūnāṃ nandivardhanaḥ |
keśavaḥ punarevāha yādavān satyasaṃgarān
adyaiva divasaḥ puṇyo niryāma sapadānugāḥ //
niścakramus te yadavaḥ sarve keśavaśāsanāt
oghā iva samudrasya balaughaprativāraṇāḥ //
saṃgṛhya te kalatrāṇi vasudevapurogamāḥ
susaṃnaddhair gajair mattai rathair aśvaiś ca daṃśitaiḥ //
āhatya duṃdubhīn sarve sadhanajñātibāndhavāḥ
niryayur yādavāḥ sarve mathurām apahāya vai //
syandanaiḥ kāñcanāpīḍair mattaiś ca varavāraṇaiḥ
sṛtaplutaiś ca turagaiḥ kaśāpārṣṇipracoditaiḥ //
svāni svāni balāgrāṇi śobhayantaḥ prakarṣiṇaḥ
pratyaṅmukhā yayur hṛṣṭā vṛṣṇayo bharatarṣabha //
tato mukhyatamāḥ sarve yādavā raṇaśobhinaḥ
anīkāgrāṇi karṣanto vāsudevapurogamāḥ //
te sma nānālatācitraṃ nārikelavanāyutam
kīrṇaṃ nāgavanaiḥ kāntaiḥ ketakīṣaṇḍamaṇḍitam //
puṃnāgatālībahulaṃ drākṣāvanaghanaṃ kvacit
Note: k: Ś1 ins. (D2 after 20): :ksusaṃnaddhair balais tatra tadā nṛpavarottamāḥ |
anūpaṃ sindhurājasya prapedur yadupuṃgavāḥ //
te tatra ramaṇīyeṣu viṣayeṣu sakhapriyāḥ
mumudur yādavāḥ sarve devāḥ svargagatā iva //
puravāstu vicinvan sa kṛṣṇas tu paravīrahā
dadarśa vipulaṃ deśaṃ sāgarānūpabhūṣitam //
vāhanānāṃ hitaṃ caiva sikatātāmramṛttikam
puralakṣaṇasaṃpannaṃ kṛtāspadam iva śriyā //
sāgarānilasaṃvītaṃ sāgarāmbuniṣevitam
viṣayaṃ sindhurājasya śobhitaṃ puralakṣaṇaiḥ //
tatra raivatako nāma parvato nātidūrataḥ
mandarodāraśikharaḥ sarvato 'bhivirājate //
tatraikalavyasaṃvāso droṇenādhyuṣitaś ciram
babhūva puruṣopetaḥ sarvaratnasamākulaḥ //
vihārabhūmis tatraiva tasya rājñaḥ sunirmitā
nāmnā dvāravatī nāma svāyatāṣṭāpadopamā //
keśavasya matis tatra puryarthe viniveśitā
niveśaṃ tatra sainyānāṃ rocayanti sma yādavāḥ //
te raktasūrye divase tatra yādavapuṃgavāḥ
Note: k: T1-3 G1.3-5 M4 ins.: :kniveśāya matiṃ cakruḥ kṛṣṇasyānumate sthitāḥ |
Note: k: kṛpṇa corrected :ksenāpālāś ca saṃcakruḥ skandhāvāraniveśanam //
dhruvāya tatra nyavasat keśavaḥ saha yādavaiḥ
deśe puraniveśāya sa yadupravaro vibhuḥ //
tasyāstu vidhivan nāma vāstūni ca gadāgrajaḥ
nirmame puruṣaśreṣṭho manasā yādavottamaḥ //
evaṃ dvāravatīṃ caiva purīṃ prāpya sabāndhavāḥ
sukhino nyavasan rājan svarge devagaṇā iva //
kṛṣṇo 'pi kālayavanaṃ jñātvā keśiniṣūdanaḥ
jarāsaṃdhabhayāc cāpi purīṃ dvāravatīṃ yayau //
Note: h: ḥV (CE) chapter 85, transliterated by Kreshimir Krnic, proof-read by Kreshimir Krnic, version of June 20, 2004 :h
bhagavañ śrotum icchāmi vistareṇa mahātmanaḥ
caritaṃ vāsudevasya yaduśreṣṭhasya dhīmataḥ //
kimarthaṃ ca parityajya mathurāṃ madhusūdanaḥ
madhyadeśasya kakudaṃ dhāma lakṣmyāś ca kevalam //
śṛṅgaṃ pṛthivyāḥ svālakṣyaṃ prabhūtadhanadhānyavat
āryāḍhyajanabhūyiṣṭham adhiṣṭhānavarottamam
ayuddhenaiva dāśārhas tyaktavān dvijasattama //
sa kālayavanaś cāpi kṛṣṇe kiṃ pratyapadyata //
dvārakāṃ ca samāśritya vāridurgāṃ janārdanaḥ
kiṃ cakāra mahābāhur mahāyogī mahāmanāḥ //
kiṃvīryaḥ kālayavanaḥ kena jātaś ca vīryavān
yam asahyaṃ samālakṣya vyapayāto janārdanaḥ //
vṛṣṇīnām andhakānāṃ ca gurur gārgyo mahātapāḥ
brahmacārī purā bhūtvā na sma dārān sa vindati //
tathā hi vartamānaṃ taṃ ūrdhvaretasam avyayam
Note: k: D4 ins.: :kgārgyaṃ goṣṭhe dvijaṃ syālaḥ ṣaṇḍham ity uktavān dvijaḥ |
yadūnāṃ saṃnidhau sarve jahasur yādavās tataḥ ||
evaṃ varṣasahasraṃ me ṣaṭśataṃ bhūpasaṃmitam |
vatsarā dvādaśāś caiva cūrṇaṃ loharajodbhavam |
syālo 'bhiśaptavān gārgyam apumān iti bhūpate //
so 'bhiśaptas tadā rājan nagare tv amitaṃjaye
lipsuḥ putraṃ tato gatvā tapas tepe sudāruṇam //
tato dvādaśa varṣāṇi so 'yaś cūrṇam abhakṣayat
ārādhayan mahādevam acintyaṃ śūlapāṇinam //
rudras tasmai varaṃ prādāt samarthaṃ yudhi nigrahe
vṛṣṇīnām andhakānāṃ ca sarvatejomayaṃ sutam //
tataḥ śuśrāva taṃ rājā yavanādhipatir varam
putraprasavajaṃ devād aputraḥ putrakāmukaḥ //
tam upānāyya sa nṛpaḥ sāntvayitvā dvijottamam
gopamadhye yavanarāḍ gopastriṣu samutsṛjat //
gopālī tv apsarās tatra gopastrīveṣadhāriṇī
dhārayām āsa gārgyasya garbhaṃ durdharam acyutam //
mānuṣyāṃ gārgyabhāryāyāṃ niyogāc chūlapāṇinaḥ
sa kālayavano nāma jajñe śūro mahābalaḥ
aputrasyātha rājñas tu vavṛdhe 'ntaḥpure śiśuḥ //
tasminn uparate rājan sa kālayavano nṛpaḥ
yuddhābhikāmo rājā tu paryapṛcchad dvijottamam
vṛṣṇyandhakakulaṃ tasya nārado vai nyavedayat //
jñātvā tu varadānaṃ tan nāradān madhusūdanaḥ
upapraikṣata tejasvī vardhantaṃ yavaneṣu tam //
sa vivṛddho yadā rājā yavanānāṃ mahābalaḥ
tata enaṃ nṛpā mlecchāḥ saṃśrityānuyayus tadā //
śakās tuṣārā daradāḥ pāradās taṅgaṇāḥ khaśāḥ
pahlavāḥ śataśaś cānye mlecchā haimavatās tathā //
sa taiḥ parivṛto rājā dasyubhiḥ śalabhair iva
nānāveṣadharair bhīmair matrurām abhyavartata //
gajavājikharoṣṭrāṇāṃ sahasrair ayutair api
pṛthivīṃ kampayām āsa sainyena mahatā tadā //
reṇunā sūryamārgaṃ tu samavacchādya pārthivaḥ
mūtreṇa śakṛtā caiva sainyena sasṛje nadīm //
aśvoṣṭraśakṛto rāśer niḥsṛteti janādhipa
tato 'śvaśakṛd ityeva nāma nadyā babhūva ha //
tat sainyaṃ mahad āyād vai śrutvā vṛṣṇyandhakāgraṇīḥ
vāsudevaḥ samānāyya jñātīn idam uvāca ha //
idaṃ samutthitaṃ ghoraṃ vṛṣṇyandhakabhayaṃ mahat
avadhyaś cāpi naḥ śatrur varadānāt pinākinaḥ //
sāmādayo 'bhyupāyāś ca vihitās tasya sarvaśaḥ
matto madabalābhyāṃ ca yuddham eva cikīrṣati
etāvān iha vāsaś ca kathito nāradena me //
Note: k: Ñ2.3 V B Ds D3.5.6 G2 ins. (Dn after 27ab): :k
etāvati ca vaktavyaṃ sāmaiva paramaṃ matam |
jarāsaṃdhaś ca no rājā nityam eva na mṛṣyate
tathānye pṛthivīpālā vṛṣṇicakrapratāpitāḥ //
kecit kaṃsavadhāc cāpi viraktās tadgatā nṛpāḥ
samāśritya jarāsaṃdham asmān icchanti bādhitum //
bahavo jñātayaś caiva yadūnāṃ nihatā nṛpaiḥ
vivardhituṃ na śakṣyāmaḥ pure 'sminn iti keśavaḥ
Note: k: Ś1 K3.4 D2 ins.: :ktato vṛṣṇyandhakāḥ kṛṣṇaṃ puraskṛtya mahāmatim |
sametya mantrayām āsur jarāsaṃdhabhayena ca |
kṛtvā ca niścayaṃ sarve palāyanam arocayan ||
vihāya mathurāṃ ramyāṃ mānayantaḥ pinākinam |
kuśasthalīṃ dvāravatīṃ niveśayitum īpsavaḥ |
apayāne matiṃ kṛtvā dūtaṃ tasmai sasarja ha //
tataḥ kumbhe mahāsarpaṃ bhinnāñjanacayopamam
ghoram āśīviṣaṃ kṛṣṇaṃ kṛṣṇaḥ prākṣepayat tadā //
tatas taṃ mudrayitvā tu svena dūtena hārayat
nidarśanārthaṃ govindo bhīṣayāṇaś ca taṃ nṛpam
sa dūtaḥ kālayavanaṃ darśayām āsa taṃ ghaṭam //
Note: k: T1-3 G1.3-5 M ins.: :k
idaṃ covāca rājānaṃ rājñāṃ samsadi dūtakaḥ |
bho rājann āha kṛṣṇas tvāṃ kim ebhiḥ śalabhais tava |
aham ekas tavaiteṣāṃ samartho vāraṇe prabhuḥ ||
tvāṃ ca hatvā nṛpaśreṣṭha sabalaṃ sasuhṛdgaṇam |
idaṃ tava balaṃ rājan grahīṣyāmīti niścitam ||
anyathā gaccha rājaṃs tvaṃ balenānena saṃyutaḥ |
ity uktvā darśayām āsa ghaṭaṃ kṛṣṇapracoditam |
kālasarpopamaḥ kṛṣṇa ity uktvā bharatarṣabha
tat kālayavano budhvā trāsanaṃ yādavaiḥ kṛtam
pipīlikānāṃ caṇḍānāṃ pūrayām āsa taṃ ghaṭam //
Note: k: Ds1 (marg.) ins.: :k
ślokam ekaṃ likhitvā tu ghaṭamadhye 'kṣipat tadā |
sa sarpo bahubhis tīkṣṇaiḥ sarvatas taiḥ pipīlikaiḥ
bhakṣyamāṇaḥ kilāṅgeṣu bhasmībhūto 'bhavat tadā //
taṃ mudrayitvātha ghaṭaṃ tathaiva yavanādhipaḥ
preṣayām āsa kṛṣṇāya bāhulyam upavarṇayan //
Note: k: Ds1 (marg.) ins.: :k
dūtānītaṃ harir dṛṣṭvā patraṃ tad vācayaṃs tadā |
bahubhir na viroddhavyaṃ durjayo 'pi mahājanaḥ |
sphuran tam api nāgendraṃ bhakṣayiṣyanti kīṭikāḥ |
vāsudevas tu taṃ dṛṣṭvā yogaṃ vihitam ātmanaḥ
utsṛjya mathurām āśu dvārakām abhijagmivān //
vairasyāntaṃ vidhitsaṃs tu vāsudevo mahāyaśāḥ
niveśya dvārakāṃ rājan vṛṣṇīn āśvāsya caiva ha //
padātiḥ puruṣavyāghro bāhupraharaṇas tadā
ājagāma mahāyogī mathurāṃ madhusūdanaḥ //
taṃ dṛṣṭvā niryayau hṛṣṭaḥ sa kālayavano ruṣā
prekṣāpūrvaṃ ca kṛṣṇo 'pi niścakrāma mahābalaḥ //
athānvagacchad govindaṃ jighṛkṣur yavaneśvaraḥ
na cainam aśakad rājā grahītuṃ yogadharmiṇam //
Note: k: D2 ins.: :k
hastaprāptam ivātmānaṃ hariṇā sa pade pade |
nīto darśayatā dūraṃ yavaneśo 'drikandaram ||
palāyanaṃ yadukule jātasya tava nocitam |
iti kṣipann anugato nainaṃ prāpāhatāśubhaḥ |
evaṃ kṣipto 'pi bhagavān prāviśad girikandaram |
Note: k: D6 T G1.3-5 M ins.: :k
ko hi nāma jagannāthaṃ balād yātuṃ priyād ṛte |
hastaprāpta ivābhāti tasya gacchañ janārdanaḥ |
māndhātus tu suto rājā mucukundo mahāyaśāḥ
Note: k: T4 ins.: :kyatra tiṣṭhati rājendras tatra cāśu viveśa vai |
purā devāsure yuddhe kṛtakarmā mahābalaḥ //
vareṇa cchandito devair nidrām eva gṛhītavān
śrāntasya tasya vāg evaṃ tadā prādur abhūt kila //
prasuptam bodhayed yo māṃ taṃ daheyam ahaṃ surāḥ
cakṣuṣā krodhadīptena evam āha punaḥ punaḥ //
evam astv iti śakras tam uvāca tridaśaiḥ saha
sa surair abhyanujñāto lokaṃ mānuṣam āgamat //
sa parvataguhāṃ kāṃcit praviśya śramakarśitaḥ
suṣvāpa kālam etaṃ vai yāvat kṛṣṇasya darśanam //
tat sarvaṃ vāsudevasya nāradena niveditam
varadānaṃ ca devebhyas tejas tasya ca bhūpateḥ //
anugamyamānaḥ kṛṣṇaś ca tena mlecchena śatruṇā
tāṃ guhāṃ mucukundasya praviveśa vinītavat //
Note: k: Ds1 (marg.) ins.: :k
pītāmbareṇa svīyena tam ācchādya sa bhūpatim |
śiraḥsthāne tu rājarṣer mucukundasya keśavaḥ
saṃdarśanapathaṃ tyaktvā tasthau buddhimatāṃ varaḥ //
anupraviśya yavano dadarśa pṛthivīpatim
prasvapantaṃ kṛtāntābham āsasāda sudurmatiḥ //
vāsudevaṃ tu taṃ matvā ghaṭṭayām āsa pārthivam
pādenātmavināśāya śalabhaḥ pāvakaṃ yathā //
mucukundaś ca rājarṣiḥ pādasparśavibodhitaḥ
cukopa nicrācchedena pādasparśena tena ca //
saṃsmṛtya ca varaṃ śakrād avaikṣata tamagrataḥ
sa dṛṣṭamātraḥ kruddhena saṃprajajvāla sarvataḥ //
dadāha pāvakas taṃ tu śuṣkaṃ vṛkṣam ivāśaniḥ
kṣaṇena kālayavanaṃ netratejovinirgataḥ //
taṃ vāsudevaḥ śrīmantaṃ cirasuptaṃ narādhipam
kṛtakāryo 'bravīd dhīmān idaṃ vacanam uttamam //
rājaṃś ciraprasupto 'si kathito nāradena me
kṛtaṃ me sumahat kāryaṃ svasti te 'stu vrajāmy aham //
vāsudevam athālakśya rājā hrasvaṃ pramāṇataḥ
parivṛttaṃ yugaṃ mene kālena mahatā tataḥ //
Note: k: D2 ins.: :k
tam ālokya ghanaśyāmaṃ pītakauśeyavāsasam |
śrīvatsavakṣasaṃ bhrājat kaustubhena virājitam ||
caturbhujaṃ rocamānaṃ vaijayantyā ca mālayā |
cāruprasannavadanaṃ sphuran makarakuṇḍalam ||
prekṣaṇīyaṃ trilokeśaṃ sānurāgasmitekṣaṇam |
apīcyavayasaṃ matta+ +mṛgendrodāravikramam ||
paryapṛcchan mahābuddhis tejasā tasya dharṣitaḥ |
śaṅkitaḥ śanakaiḥ kṛṣṇaṃ durdharṣam iva tejasā |
uvāca rājā govindaṃ ko bhavān kim ihāgataḥ
kaś ca kālaḥ prasuptasya yadi jānāsi kathyatām //
Note: k: D2 ins.: :k
niḥśaṅko gatabhīḥ prāpto vipine girigahvare |
padbhyāṃ padmapalāśābhyāṃ vicarasy urukaṇṭake ||
kiṃ svit tejasvināṃ tejo bhagavāṃs tvaṃ vibhāvasuḥ |
sūryaḥ somo mahendro vā lokapālo 'paro 'pi vā ||
manye tvāṃ devadevānāṃ trayāṇāṃ puruṣarṣabham |
yad bādhase guhādhvāntaṃ pradīpaḥ prabhayā yathā ||
śuśrūṣatām avyalīkam asmākaṃ narapuṃgava |
svaṃ janma karma gotraṃ vā kathyatāṃ yadi rocate |
somavaṃśodbhavo rājā yayātir nāma nāhuṣaḥ
tasya putro yadur jyeṣṭhaś catvāro 'nye yavīyasaḥ //
yaduvaṃśe samutpannaṃ vasudevātmajaṃ vibho
vāsudevaṃ vijānīhi nṛpate mām ihāgatam //
tretāyuge samutpanno vidito me 'si nāradāt
idaṃ kaliyugaṃ viddhi kim anyat karavāṇi te //
mama śatrus tvayā dagdho devadattavaro nṛpa
avadhyo yo mayā saṃkhye bhaved varṣaśatair api //
Note: k: Ds2 ins.: :k
yaduvaṃśodbhavaṃ devaṃ jānāmi śāśvataṃ vibhum |
ādyaṃ puruṣam īśānam acyutaṃ madhusūdanam ||
purā gargeṇa kathitam aṣṭāviṃśatime yuge |
dvāparādau harer janma yaduvaṃśe bhaviṣyati ||
namas tasmai bhagavate puruṣāya mahātmane |
anantāya mahābāho viṣṇave prabhaviṣṇave ||
evaṃ stutas tadā viṣṇur mucukundena dhīmatā |
vareṇa cchandayām āsa bhagavān acyutas tadā ||
punar apy abravīt kṛṣṇo mucukundaṃ mahābhujam |
tvadarthe 'py āgato vīra nāradena prabodhitaḥ |
uttiṣṭhottiṣṭha bhadraṃ te yathākāmaṃ caratv iha |
ityuktaḥ sa tu kṛṣṇena nirjagāma guhāmukhāt
Note: k: kṛṣjena corrected :kanvīyamānaḥ kṛṣṇena kṛtakāryeṇa dhīmatā //
tato dadarśa pṛthivīm āvṛtāṃ hrasvakair naraiḥ
alpotsāhair alpabalair alpavīryaparākramaiḥ
pareṇādhiṣṭhitaṃ caiva rājyaṃ kevalam ātmanaḥ //
Note: k: Ds ins.: :k
yat syāt tvaddarśane puṇyaṃ tan me kṛṣṇa bhaved iti |
visarjayitvā govindaṃ praviveśa mahad vanam
himavantam agād rājā tapase dhṛtamānasaḥ //
tataḥ sa tapa āsthāya vinirmucya kalevaram
āruroha divaṃ rājā karmabhiḥ svair jitaṃ śubhaiḥ //
vāsudevo 'pi dharmātmā upāyena mahāmanāḥ
ghātayitvātmanaḥ śatruṃ tat sainyaṃ pratyapadyata //
Note: k: Ds1 (marg.) ins.: :k
mucukundena mahātmanā |
mathurāṃ punarāgatya |
prabhūtarathahastyaśva+ +varmaśastrāyudhadhvajam
ādāyopayayau dhīmāṃs tat sainyaṃ nihateśvaram //
nivedayām āsa tato narādhipe tad ugrasene pratipūrṇamānasaḥ
janārdano dvāravatīṃ ca tāṃ purīm aśobhayat tena dhanena bhūriṇā //
Note: h: HV (CE) chapter 86, transliterated by Kreshimir Krnic, proof-read by Kreshimir Krnic, version of June 20, 2004 :h
Note: k: D4 ins.: :k
kṛṣṇāya ca namas tubhyaṃ rāmarāmāya te namaḥ |
vāmanāya namas tubhyaṃ kapilāya namo 'stu te ||
nānārūpa namas tubhyaṃ namas te karmasākṣiṇe |
viśvarūpa namas tubhyaṃ hṛṣīkeśāya te namaḥ ||
evaṃ saṃstūyamānaś ca mucukundena dhīmatā |
uttarāṃ diśam āśritya tapam ācara sāttvikam |
tataḥ prabhāte vimale bhāskare 'bhyudite tadā
kṛtajapyo hṛṣīkeśo vanānte niṣasāda ha //
paricakrāma taṃ deśaṃ durgasthānadidṛkṣayā
upatasthuḥ kulaprāgryā yādavā yadunandanam //
rohiṇyām ahani śreṣṭhe svasti vācya dvijottamān
puṇyāhaghoṣair vipulair durgasyārabdhavān kriyāṃ //
tataḥ paṅkajapatrākṣo yādavān keśisūdanaḥ
provāca vadatāṃ śreṣṭho devān vṛtraripur yathā //
kalpiteyaṃ mayā bhūmiḥ paśyadhvaṃ devasadmavat
nāma cāsyāḥ kṛtaṃ puryāḥ khyātiṃ yad upayāsyati //
iyaṃ dvāravatī nāma pṛthivyāṃ nirmitā mayā
bhaviṣyati purī ramyā śakrasyevāmarāvatī //
tāny evāsyāḥ kārayiṣye cihnāny āyatanāni ca
Note: k: B1 ins.: :ksthānāni vidadhuś cātra brahmādīnāṃ yathākramam |
catvarān rājamārgāṃś ca samān antaḥpurāṇi ca //
devā ivātra modantu bhavanto vigatajvarāḥ
bādhamānā ripugaṇān ugrasenapurogamāḥ //
gṛhyantāṃ veśmavāstūni kalpyantāṃ trikacatvarāḥ
mīyantāṃ rājamārgāś ca prākārasya ca yā gatiḥ //
preṣyantāṃ śilpimukhyāś ca niyuktā veśmakarmasu
niyujyantāṃ ca deśeṣu preṣyakarmakarā janāḥ //
evam uktās tu kṛṣṇena gṛhasaṃgrahatatparāḥ
yathānideśaṃ saṃhṛṣṭāś cakrur vāstuparigrahān //
sūtrahastās tato mānaṃ cakrur yādavasattamāḥ
puṇye 'hani mahārāja dvijātīn abhipūjya ca //
vāstudaivatakarmāṇi vidhinā kārayanti ca
sthapatīn atha govindas tatrovāca mahāmatiḥ //
asmadarthe suvihitaṃ kriyatām atra mandiram
vibhaktacatvarapathaṃ suniviṣṭeṣṭadaivatam //
te tatheti mahābāhum uktvā sthapatayas tadā
durgakarmaṇi saṃbhārān upalabhya yathāvidhi //
yathānyāyaṃ nirmimire dvārāṇy āyatanāni ca
sthānāni vidadhuś cātra brahmādīnāṃ yathākramam //
upāmagneḥ sureśasya dṛṣadolūkhalasya ca
caturdaivāni catvāri dvārāṇi vidadhuś ca te
gṛhakṣetrendrabhallāṭaṃ puṣpadantaṃ tathaiva ca //
teṣu veśmasu yukteṣu yādaveṣu mahātmasu
puryāḥ kṣipraṃ niveṣārthaṃ cintayām āsa mādhavaḥ //
tasya daivī sthitā buddhiś capalā kṣiprakāriṇī
purī sā vai priyakarī yadūnām abhivardhanī //
śilpimukhyo 'sti devānāṃ prajāpatisutaḥ prabhuḥ
viśvakarmā svamatyā vai purīṃ saṃsthāpayiśyati //
manasā tam anudhyāya tasyāgamanakāraṇam
tridaṣābhimukhaḥ kṛṣṇo vivikte samapadyata //
tasminn eva tataḥ kāle śilpācāryo mahāmatiḥ
viśvakarmā suraśreṣṭhaḥ kṛṣṇasya pramukhe sthitaḥ //
daivena manasā kśipraṃ tava viṣṇo dhṛtavrata
kiṃkaraḥ samanuprāptaḥ śādhi māṃ kiṃ karomi te //
yathā syād devadeveśas tryambakaś ca yathāvyayaḥ
tathā tvaṃ deva mānyo 'si viśeṣo nāsti me prabho //
trailokyajñāpikāṃ vācam utsṛjasva mahābhuja
eṣo 'smi paridṛṣṭārthaḥ kiṃ karomi praśādhi mām //
śrutvā vinītavacanaṃ keśavo viśvakarmaṇaḥ
pratyuvāca yaduśreṣṭhaḥ kaṃsārir atulaṃ vacaḥ //
śrutārtho devaguhyasya bhavāny atra vayaṃ sthitāḥ
avaśyaṃ tv iha kartavyaṃ sadanaṃ me surottama //
tad iyaṃ bhūḥ prakāśārthaṃ niveśyā mayi suvrata
matprabhāvānurūpaiś ca gṛhaiś ceyaṃ samantataḥ //
uttamā ca pṛthivyāṃ vai yathā svarge 'marāvatī
tatheyaṃ hi tvayā kāryā śakto hy asi mahāmate //
mama sthānam idaṃ kāryaṃ yathā vai tridive tathā
martyāḥ paśyantu me lakṣmīṃ puryā yadukulasya ca //
evam uktas tataḥ prāha viśvakarmā matīśvaraḥ
kṛṣṇam akliṣṭakarmāṇaṃ devāmitravināśanam //
sarvam etat kariṣyāmi yat tvayābhihitaṃ prabho
purī tv iyaṃ janasyāsya na paryāptā bhaviṣyati //
bhaviṣyati ca vistīrṇā vṛddhir asyās tu śobhanā
catvāraḥ sāgarā hy asyāṃ vicariṣyanti rūpiṇaḥ //
yadīcchet sāgaraḥ kiṃcid utsraṣṭum iha toyarāṭ
tataḥ svāyatalakṣaṇyā purī syāt puruṣottama //
evam uktas tataḥ kṛṣṇaḥ prāg eva kṛtabuddhimān
sāgaraṃ saritāṃ nātham uvāca vadatāṃ varaḥ //
samudra daśa ca dve ca yojanāni jalāśaye
pratisaṃhriyatām ātmā yady asti mayi mānyatā //
avakāśe tvayā datte purīyaṃ māmakaṃ balam
paryāptaviṣayākārā samagrā visahiṣyati //
tataḥ kṛṣṇasya vacanaṃ śrutvā nadanadīpatiḥ
samārutena yogena utsasarja mahārṇavaḥ //
viśvakarmā tataḥ prītaḥ puryāḥ saṃdṛśya vāstu tat
govinde caiva saṃmānaṃ sāgaraḥ kṛtavāṃs tadā //
viśvakarmā tataḥ kṛṣṇam uvāca yadunandanam
adyaprabhṛti govinda sarve samadhirohata //
manasā nirmitā ceyaṃ mayā pūḥpravarā vibho
acireṇaiva kālena gṛhasaṃbādhamālinī //
bhaviṣyati purī ramyā sudvārā prāgryatoraṇā
cayāṭṭālakakeyūrā pṛthivyāḥ kakudopamā //
antaḥpuraṃ ca kṛṣṇasya paricaryākṣamaṃ mahat
cakāra tasyāṃ puryāṃ vai deśe tridaśapūjite //
tataḥ sā nirmitā kāntā purī dvāravatī tadā
mānasena prayatnena vaiṣṇavī viśvakarmaṇā //
Note: k: Ś1 K1.2.4 Ñ V B D T1.4 G2 ins.: :k
vidhānavihitadvārā prākāravaraśobhitā |
parikhācayasaṃguptā sāṭṭaprākāratoraṇā |
kāntanārīnaragaṇā vaṇigbhir upaśobhitā
nānāpaṇyasamākīrṇā khecarīva ca gāṃ gatā //
prapāvāpīprasannodair udyānair upaśobhitā
samantataḥ saṃvṛtāṅgī vanitevāyatekṣaṇā //
samṛddhacatvaravatī veśmottamaghanācitā
Note: k: N T4 G2 ins. (T1 cont. after *982): :krathyākoṭisahasrāḍhyā śubhrarājapathottarā |
bhūṣayantī samudraṃ sā svargam indrapurī yathā ||
pṛthivyāṃ sarvaratnānām ekā nicayaśālinī |
surāṇām api sukṣetrā sāmantakṣobhakāriṇī |
aprakāśaṃ tadākāśaṃ prāsādair upaśobhitā //
pṛthivyāṃ pṛthurāṣṭraughā janaughapratināditā
oghaiś ca vārirājasya śiśirīkṛtamārutā //
anūpopavanaiḥ kāntaiḥ kāntā janamanoramā
satārakā dyaur iva sā dvārakā pratyarājata //
prākāreṇārkavarṇena śātakaumbhena saṃvṛtā
hiraṇyapratipūrṇaiś ca gṛhair gambhīranisvanaiḥ //
śubhrameghapratīkāśair dvāraiḥ saudhaiś ca śobhitā
kvacit kvacid udagrāgrair upāvṛttamahāpathā //
tām āvasat purīṃ kṛṣṇaḥ sarvayādavanandanaḥ
abhipretajanākīrṇāṃ somaḥ kham iva bhāsayan //
Note: k: Ś1 Dn Ds D2 ins.: :k
viśvakarmakṛtāṃ divyāṃ ratnajālasamākulām |
viśvakarmā ca tāṃ kṛtvā purīṃ śakrapurīm iva
jagāma tridivaṃ devo govindenābhipūjitaḥ //
bhūyas tu buddhir abhavat kṛṣṇasya viditātmanaḥ
janān imān dhanaughais tu tarpayeyam ahaṃ yadi //
sa vaiśravaṇavastavyaṃ nidhīnām uttamaṃ nidhim
śaṅkham āhvayatopendro niśi svabhavane vibhuḥ //
sa śaṅkhaḥ keśavāhvānaṃ jñātvā guhyakarāṭ svayam
ājagāma samīpaṃ vai tasya dvāravatīpateḥ //
sa śaṅkhaḥ prāñjalir bhūtvā vinayādavaniṃ gataḥ
kṛṣṇaṃ vijñāpayām āsa yathā vaiśravaṇaṃ tathā //
bhagavan kiṃ mayā kāryaṃ surāṇāṃ vittarakṣiṇā
niyojaya mahābāho yatkāryaṃ yadunandana //
tam uvāca hṛṣīkeśaḥ śaṅkhaṃ guhyakam uttamam
janā ye 'smin kṛśadhanās tān dhanenābhipūraya //
necchāmy anāśitaṃ draṣṭuṃ kṛśaṃ malinam eva vā
dehīti cābhibhāṣantaṃ nagaryāṃ nirdhanaṃ naram //
śirasā śāsanaṃ gṛhya nidhīnaḥ keśavasya saḥ
nidhīnājñāpayām āsa dvāravatyāṃ gṛhe gṛhe
ghanaughair abhivarṣadhvaṃ cakruḥ sarve tathā ca te //
nādhano vidyate tatra hīnabhāgyo 'pi vā naraḥ
Note: k: K3. 4 Ñ V B D T4 G2 subst. for 62cd: :kdvāravatyāṃ puri purā keśavasya mahātmanaḥ |
kṛśo vā malino vāpi dvāravatyāṃ gṛhe gṛhe //
cakāra vāyor āhvānaṃ bhūyaś ca puruṣottamaḥ
tatrastha eva bhagavān yādavānāṃ priyaṃkaraḥ //
prāṇayonis tu bhūtānām upatasthe gadāgrajam
ekamāsīnam ekānte devaguhyadharaṃ prabhum //
kiṃ mayā deva kartavyaṃ sarvagenāśugāminā
Note: k: T1-3 G1.3.5 M subst. for 65bc: :k... śādhi māṃ puruṣottama |
yad bravīṣi mahābāho ... |
yathaiva dūto devānāṃ tathaivāsmi tavānagha //
tam uvāca tataḥ kṛṣṇo rahasyaṃ puruṣottamaḥ
mārutaṃ jagataḥ prāṇaṃ rūpiṇaṃ samupasthitam //
gaccha māruta deveśam anumānya sahāmaraiḥ
sabhāṃ sudharmām ādāya devebhyas tvam ihānaya //
yādavā dhārmikā hyete vikrāntāśca sahasraśaḥ
tasyāṃ viśeyur ete hi na tu yā kṛtrimā bhavet //
sā hy akṣayā sabhā vāyo kāmagā kāmarūpiṇī
sā yadūn dhārayet sarvān yathaiva tridaśāṃs tathā //
sa gṛhya vacanaṃ tasya kṛṣṇasyākliṣṭakarmaṇaḥ
vāyur ātmopamagatir jagāma tridivālayam //
so 'numānya surān sarvān kṛṣṇavākyaṃ nivedya ca
sabhāṃ sudharmām ādāya punar āyān mahītalam //
sudharmāṃ tāṃ sudharmāya kṛṣṇāyākliṣṭakāriṇe
devo devasabhāṃ dattvā vāyur antaradhīyata //
Note: k: D4 ins.: :k
na bhayaṃ vidyate yatra sabhā sā dharmavatsalā |
dvāravatyās tu sā madhye keśavena niveśitā
sudharmā yadumukhyānāṃ devānāṃ tridive yathā //
evaṃ sa divyair bhaumaiś ca jalajaiś cāvyayo hariḥ
dravyairalaṃkaroti sma purīṃ svāṃ pramadām iva //
Note: k: Ś1 D2 ins.: :k
śuśubhe sā purī ramyā ratnajālasamākulā |
nānāpakṣisamākīrṇā prāsādair upaśobhitā |
Note: k: after 74 Ś1 D2 repeat 73ab. After the repetition of 73ab Ś1 D2 ins. *988 :k
maryādāś caiva saṃcakre śreṇīḥ prakṛtayas tathā
balādhyakṣāṃś ca yuktāṃś ca prakṛtīśāṃs tathaiva ca //
ugrasenaṃ narapatiṃ kāśyaṃ caiva purohitam
senāpatim anādhṛṣṭiṃ vikadruṃ mantripuṃgavam //
yādavānāṃ kulakarān sthavirān daśa tatra vai
Note: k: V2.3 ins.: :kuddhavo vasudevaś ca kaṅko vipṛthur eva ca |
śvaphalkaś citrakaś caiva gadaḥ satyaka eva ca |
baladevaḥ pṛthuś caivaṃ matreśv abhyantarā daśa |
sthāpayām āsa matimān sarvakāryeṣv anantarān //
ratheṣv atiratho yantā dārukaḥ keśavasya vai
yodhamukhyaś ca yodhānāṃ sātyakiḥ satyavikramaḥ //
Note: k: T1-3 G1.3-5 M ins.: :k
ācāryo dhanuṣāṃ vede sākṣāddroṇa ivāparaḥ |
sātyakiḥ satyasaṃdhaś ca śatruhā yuddhadurmadaḥ |
vidhānam evaṃ kṛtvā sa kṛṣṇaḥ puryām aninditaḥ
mumude yadubhiḥ sārdhaṃ lokasraṣṭā mahītale //
revatasyātha kanyāṃ ca revatīṃ śīlasaṃmatām
prāptavān baladevas tu kṛṣṇasyānumate tadā //
Note: k: M3 ins.: :k
yaḥ sargajaiḥ suragaṇapriyakṛdbhir uccair |
dravyaiḥ samudranihitaiś ca samudrajātaiḥ |
hṛdyām akārayad aśeṣajagal lalāmāṃ |
śrīdvārakāṃ puravarīṃ tam upaimi viṣṇum |
Note: h: HV (CE) chapter 87, transliterated by Kreshimir Krnic, proof-read by Kreshimir Krnic, version of June 21, 2004 :h
etasminn eva kāle tu jarāsaṃdhaḥ pratāpavān
nṛpān udyojayām āsa cedirājapriyepsayā //
Note: k: T3 ins.: :k
yathārhaṃ ca yathāyogaṃ praśrayaṃ pradadau nṛpaḥ |
vivāhaṃ ghoṣayām āsa śiśupālasya māgadhaḥ ||
sarvam antaḥpuraṃ caiva vivāhe utsukaṃ kila |
śvobhūte tu vivāhasya caidyasyeti ca bhūmipāḥ |
saṃnaddhāḥ samapadyantāṃ vibhavaiḥ svair yathākramam ||
śiśupālo 'pi rājā tu varaveṣeṇa saṃyutaḥ |
kumārair ātmatulyaiś ca niyamastho 'bhavat tadā |
Note: Colophon
bhīṣmakasya sutāyāṃ vai rukmiṇyāṃ rukmabhūṣaṇaḥ
śiśupālasya nṛpater vivāho bhavitā kila //
dantavaktrasya tanayaṃ suvaktram amitaujasam
sahasrākṣasamaṃ yuddhe māyāsu ca viśāradam //
pauṇḍrasya vāsudevasya tathā putraṃ mahābalam
sudevaṃ vīryasaṃpannaṃ pṛthag akṣauhiṇīpatim //
ekalavyasya putraṃ ca vīryavantaṃ balānvitam
putraṃ ca pāṇḍyarājasya kaliṅgādhipatiṃ tathā //
kṛtāpriyaṃ ca kṛṣṇena veṇudāriṃ narādhipam
aṃśumantaṃ tathā krāthaṃ śrutarvāṇaṃ ca bhārata //
nikṛttaśatruṃ kāliṅgaṃ gāndhārādhipatiṃ tathā
paṭuśaṃ ca mahābāhuṃ kāśyādhipatim eva ca //
Note: k: Ds2 D5.6 ins. (Dn after the second occurrence of 7cd): :k
sabhārhān sakalān sarvān dhārtarāṣṭrān mahābalān |
vindānuvindāv āvantyau bāhlikān saha bāhlikaiḥ ||
saṃśaptakās tu te sarve āsyandā yavanās tathā |
yavanasya sutaś cāpi ārṣāyaṇas tathā śakāḥ ||
svabhāvaś candrahāsaś ca pārasīkās tathāpare |
virāṭo drupadaś caiva jayadrathavidūrathau |
Note: k: Dn Ds2 D5.6 Bom. Poona eds cont.; Ds1 G2 ins.: :k
bhagadatto mahāsenaḥ śalaḥ śālvo mahābalaḥ |
bhūriśravā mahāsenaḥ kuntibhojaś ca vīryavān ||
akṣauhiṇīnāṃ ṣaṣṭiṃ ca saptādhikadaśānugāḥ |
svayaṃvarārthaṃ saṃprāptā bhojarājaniveśane |
kasmin deśe nṛpo jajñe rukmī vedavidāṃ vara
kasyāṇvavāye dyutimān saṃbhūto dvijasattama //
rājarṣer yādavasyāsīd vidarbho nāma vai sutaḥ
vindhyasya dakṣiṇe pārśve vidarbhān yo nyaveśayat //
krathakaiśikamukhyās tu putrās tasya mahābalāḥ
babhūvur vīryasaṃpannāḥ pṛthag vaṃśakarā nṛpāḥ //
tasyānvavāye bhīmasya vṛṣṇayo jajñire nṛpa
krathasya tv aṃśumāṇ vaṃśe kaiśikasya tu bhīṣmakaḥ //
hiraṇyalomety āhur yaṃ dākṣiṇātyeśvaraṃ janāḥ
agastyaguptām āśāṃ yaḥ kuṇḍinastho 'nvaśān nṛpaḥ
rukmī tasyābhavat putro rukmiṇī ca viśāṃ pate //
rukmī cāstrāṇi divyāni drumāt prāpa mahābalaḥ
jāmadagnyāt tatha rāmād brāhmam astram avāptavān
prāspardhat saha kṛṣṇena nityam adbhutakarmaṇā //
rukmiṇī tv abhavad rājan rūpeṇāsadṛśī bhuvi
cakame vāsudevas tāṃ śravād eva mahādyutiḥ //
sa cābhilaṣitas tasyāḥ śravād eva janārdanaḥ
tejovīryabalopetaḥ sa me bhartā bhaved iti //
tāṃ dadau na tu kṛṣṇāya rukmī dveṣān mahābalaḥ
Note: k: K3 Dn ins.: :kkaṃsasya vadhasaṃtāpāt kṛṣṇāyāmitatejase |
yācamānāya kaṃsasya preṣyo 'sāv iti cintayan //
caidyasyārthe sunīthasya jarāsaṃdhas tu bhūmipaḥ
varayām āsa tāṃ rājā bhīṣmakaṃ bhīmavikramam //
cedirājasya hi vasor āsīt putro bṛhadrathaḥ
magadheṣu purā yena nirmitaṃ tad girivrajam //
tasyānvavāye jajñe 'tha jarāsaṃdho mahābalaḥ
vasor eva tadā vaṃśe damaghoṣo 'pi cedirāṭ //
damaghoṣasya putrās tu pañca bhīmaparākramāḥ
bhaginyāṃ vasudevasya śrutaśravasi jajñire //
śiśupālo daśagrīvo raibhyo 'thopadiśo balī
sarvāstrakuśalā vīrā vīryavanto mahābalāḥ //
jñāteḥ samānavaṃśasya sunīthaṃ pradadau sutam
Note: k: D4 ins.: :ktasyānvavāye saṃbhūtā bahavo rājavaṃśajāḥ |
Note: k: D6 S (except G2) ins.: :kjarāsaṃdhasya rājendra damaghoṣo mahābalaḥ |
jarāsaṃdhaḥ svasutavad dadarśainaṃ jugopa ca //
jarāsaṃdhaṃ puraskṛtya vṛṣṇiśatruṃ mahābalam
kṛtāny āgāṃsi caidyena vṛṣṇīnāṃ tatpriyaiṣiṇā //
jāmātā tv abhavat tasya kaṃsas tasmin hate yudhi
kṛṣṇārthaṃ vairamabhavaj jarāsaṃdhasya vṛṣṇibhiḥ //
bhīṣmakaṃ varayām āsa sunīthārthe 'tha rukmiṇīm
tāṃ dadau bhīṣmakaś cāpi śiśupālāya vīryavān //
tataś caidyam upādāya jarāsaṃdho narādhipaḥ
yayau vidarbhān sahito dantavaktreṇa yāyinā //
anuyātaś ca pauṇḍreṇa vāsudevena dhīmatā
aṅgavaṅgakaliṅgānām īśvaraḥ sa mahābalaḥ //
mānayiṣyaṃś ca tān rukmī pratyudgamya narādhipān
parayā pūjayopetān ānināya purīṃ prati //
pitṛṣv asuḥ priyārthaṃ ca rāmakṛṣṇāv ubhāv api
prayayur vṛṣṇayaś cānye rathais tatra balānvitāḥ //
Note: k: (mss evidence illegible): :k
dṛṣṭvā tān āgatān sarvān vāsudevapurogamān |
krathakaiśikabhartā tān pratigṛhya yathāvidhi
pūjayām āsa pūjārhān nyavasanta bahiś ca te //
Note: k: D6 ins.: :k
nyaveśayac ca tān sarvān bhīṣmako nagarād bahiḥ ||
sthite tasmiñ jarāsaṃdhe ripau teṣāṃ mahātmani |
saṃbhārāś caiva sarvatra vivāhāya samāhṛtāḥ ||
śaṅkhāś ca paṭahāś caiva sasvanāḥ sarvatas tadā |
brāhmaṇāś ca samāyātā nānādigbhyas tathaiva ca |
utthitāś caiva sarvatra dhvajāś ca samalaṃkṛtāḥ |
śvobhāvini vivāhe tu rukmiṇī niryayau bahiḥ
caturyujā rathenaindraṃ devatāyatanaṃ śubhā //
Note: k: D4 ins.: :k
dāsīśatasahasraughair veṣṭitā tu jagāma ha |
ambikāpūjanārthāya pādacārī yathāsthiti |
indrāṇīm arcayiṣyantī kṛtakautukamaṅgalā
dīpyamānena vapuṣā balena mahatā vṛtā //
Note: k: D6 ins.: :k
keśavo me bhaved bhartā nānyaḥ kaścid bhaved iti |
evaṃ manasi saṃsthāpya puṣpāñjalipuṭābhavat |
tāṃ dadarśa tataḥ kṛṣṇo lakṣmīṃ sākṣād iva sthitām
rūpeṇāgryeṇa saṃpannāṃ devatāyatanāntike //
vahner iva śikhāṃ dīptāṃ māyāṃ bhūmigatām iva
pṛthivīm iva gambhīrām utthitāṃ pṛthivītalāt //
marīcim iva somasya saumyāṃ strīvigrahāṃ bhuvi
śriyam agryām ivāpadmāṃ bhaviśyāṃ śrīsahāyinīm
kṛṣṇena manasā dṛṣṭāṃ durnirīkśyāṃ surair api //
śyāmāvadātā sā hy āsīt pṛthucārvāyatekṣaṇā
tāmrauṣṭhanayanāpāṅgī pīnorujaghanastanī //
bṛhatī cārusarvāṅgī tanvī śaśinibhānanā
tāmratuṅganakhī subhrūr nīlakuñcitamūrdhajā
Note: k: N (except Ś1 Ñ1) G2 ins.: :katyarthaṃ rūpataḥ kāntā pīnaśroṇipayodharā |
tīkṣṇaśuklaiḥ samair dantaiḥ prabhāsadbhir alaṃkṛtā //
ananyā pramadā loke rūpeṇa yaśasā śriyā
rukmiṇī rūpiṇī devī pāṇḍurakṣaumavāsinī //
tāṃ dṛṣṭvā vavṛdhe kāmaḥ kṛṣṇasya śubhadarśanām
haviṣevānalasyārcir manas tasyāṃ samādadhat //
Note: k: D6 ins.: :k
rukmiṇī ca tadā devī dadṛśe kṛṣṇam īśvaram ||
acintayac ca sā devī dṛṣṭvā kṛṣṇam avasthitam |
so 'yam viṣṇur jagannāthaḥ sākṣād rāmānujaḥ kṛtī ||
asya cakraṃ sadā śaṅkhaṃ bhujayor ubhayorapi |
śobhayetāṃ sadā tau tu daityadānavadāriṇau ||
asya haste sthitaṃ śārṅgaṃ daityadānavabhīṣaṇam |
sadā bhāti mahac cāpaṃ loke khyātataraṃ hareḥ ||
yamāśritya gadā devī sadā kaumodakīti sā |
daityadānavahantrī ca tad bhujopari dāruṇā ||
yad anujñāṃ samāśritya khaḍgo nandakasaṃjñakaḥ |
ripūn hanti mahāvīryān asahyān daivatair api ||
asya syād vāhanaṃ viṣṇor garutmān pakṣipuṃgavaḥ |
śakrādīṃś ca surāñ jitvā jahārāmṛtam uttamam ||
so 'yam viṣṇur guruḥ sākṣād gopaveṣeṇa bhūṣitaḥ |
gopastrīstanabhāreṣu vijahāra yathāsukham ||
yo nanarta hrade tasyā yamunāyās tadā hariḥ |
amathnāt kāliyaṃ tasmin viṣāgnijvālamālinam ||
ayaṃ govardhanaṃ śailaṃ dadhāv ekena bāhunā |
līlayā sa jagannātho kolakaṃ bālako yathā ||
ayaṃ sa puṇḍarīkākṣo yo hayaṃ prajaghāna ha ||
yaś cāṇūraṃ mṛdhe hatvā kaṃsaṃ caiva mahābalam |
nanarta raṅge govindo gopaiḥ sārdhaṃ sayādavaiḥ ||
ayaṃ sa yādavaśreṣṭhaḥ padmakañjalkalocanaḥ |
śyāmāvadātaḥ saśrīkaḥ sākṣādindrānujaḥ kṛtī ||
yuvā kṛtī purāṇātmā padmākṣaḥ padmasaprabhaḥ |
so 'yam adya jagannāthaḥ prāpto mām iha yādavaḥ ||
amuṣya pādayoḥ padmam udvahāmi na saṃśayaḥ |
śuśrūṣāṃ pratiyokṣyāmi pādayoḥ padmasaṃjñayoḥ ||
evaṃ vicintayitvā sā vavande tāṃ śacīṃ tadā |
rāmeṇa saha niścitya keśavaḥ sumahābalaḥ
tatpramāthe 'karod buddhiṃ vṛṣṇibhyaḥ praṇidhāya ca //
kṛte tu devatākārye niṣkrāmantīṃ surālayāt
unmathya sahasā kṛṣṇaḥ svaṃ nināya rathottamam //
vṛkṣam utpāṭya rāmo 'pi jaghānāpatataḥ parān
samanahyanta dāśārhās tadājñāya tu sarvaśaḥ //
te rathair vividhākāraiḥ samucchritamahādhvajaiḥ
vājibhir vāraṇaiś cāpi parivavrur halāyudham //
ādāya rukmiṇīṃ kṛṣṇo jagāmāśu purīṃ prati
rāme cāsajya taṃ bhāraṃ yuyudhāne ca vīryavān //
akrūre vipṛthau cāpi gade ca kṛtavarmaṇi
cakradeve sunakṣatre sāraṇe ca mahābale //
nivṛttaśatrau vikrānte bhaṅgakāre vidūrathe
ugrasenātmaje kaṅke śatadyumne ca keśavaḥ //
rājādhideve mṛdare prasene citrake tathā
atidānte bṛhaddurge śvaphalke citrake pṛthau //
vṛṣṇyandhakeṣu cānyeṣu mukhyeṣu madhusūdanaḥ
gurum āsajya taṃ bhāraṃ yayau dvāravatīṃ prati //
Note: k: D6 ins.: :k
tataś ca yādavāḥ sarve yuddhāya samupasthitāḥ |
Note: Colophon
dantavaktro jarāsaṃdhaḥ śiśupālaś ca vīryavān
saṃnaddhā niryayuḥ kruddhā jighāṃsanto janārdanam //
aṅgavaṅgakaliṅgaiś ca sārdhaṃ pauṇḍraiś ca vīryavān
niryayau cedirājaḥ sa bhrātṛbhiḥ sumahārathaiḥ //
Note: k: D6 ins.: :k
kva vāsudevaḥ kva ca gopakāste |
kuto nu rājā yaduvaṃśajanmanāṃ |
kuto nu rāmo madamattagarhitaḥ |
kuto nu vīro yudhi sātyakiḥ kila ||
iti bruvanto nṛpasattamās tadā |
raṇāya yuktāḥ sabalāḥ samāgadhāḥ |
śaraiś ca khaḍgair yudhi pātayanto |
mahārathā niryayur ugravīryāḥ ||
Note: k: [Colophon] :k
atha sainye mahārāja māgadhasya mahātmanaḥ |
śaṅkhaduṃdubhayaś caiva sasvanur yuddhaśaṃsavaḥ |
yādavāś ca mahārāja śaṅkhān dadhmuḥ pṛthak pṛthak ||
bherīṇāṃ ca mṛdaṅgānāṃ jharjharīṇāṃ ca sarvaśaḥ |
nādāḥ samabhavantaś ca yadūnāṃ sainyasaṃcaye ||
tato yuddhaṃ samabhavat senayor ubhayor api |
jarāsaṃdhapramukhato vṛṣṇayaḥ prathitās tadā |
tān pratyagṛhṇan saṃrabdhā vṛṣṇivīrā mahārathāḥ
saṃkarṣaṇaṃ puraskṛtya vāsavaṃ maruto yathā //
āpatantaṃ hi vegena jarāsaṃdhaṃ mahābalam
ṣaḍbhir vivyādha nārācair yuyudhāno mahāmṛdhe //
akrūro dantavaktraṃ tu vivyādha navabhiḥ śaraiḥ
taṃ pratyavidhyat kārūṣo bāṇair daśabhir āśugaiḥ //
vipṛthuḥ śiśupālaṃ tu śarair vivyādha saptabhiḥ
aṣṭabhiḥ pratyavidhyat taṃ śiśupālaḥ pratāpavāṇ //
gaveśaṇo 'pi caidyaṃ tu ṣaḍbhir vivyādha mārgaṇaiḥ
anirdāntas tathāṣṭābhir bṛhaddurgaś ca pañcabhiḥ //
prativivyādha tāṃś caidyaḥ pañcabhiḥ pañcabhiḥ śaraiḥ
jaghāna cāśvāṃś caturaś caturbhir vipṛthoḥ śaraiḥ //
bṛhaddurgasya bhallena śiraś ciccheda cārihā
gaveṣaṇasya sūtaṃ ca prāhiṇodyamasādanam //
hatāśvaṃ sa rathaṃ tyakvā vipṛthus tu mahābalaḥ
āruroha rathaṃ kṣipraṃ bṛhaddurgasya vīryavān //
vipṛthoḥ sārathiś cāpi gaveṣaṇarathaṃ drutam
āruhya javanān aśvān niyantum upacakrame //
te kruddhāḥ śaravarṣeṇa sunīthaṃ samavākiran
nṛtyantaṃ rathamārgeṣu cāpahastāḥ kalāpinaḥ //
cakradevo dantavaktraṃ bibhedorasi karṇinā
paṭuśaṃ pañcaviṃśatyā vivyādha yudhi mārgaṇaiḥ //
tābhyāṃ sa viddho daśabhir bāṇair marmātigaiḥ śitaiḥ
tato balī cakradevaṃ bibheda daśabhiḥ śaraiḥ //
pañcabhiś cāpi vivyādha so 'vidūrād vidūratham
vidūratho 'pi taṃ ṣaḍbhir vivyādhājau śitaiḥ śaraiḥ //
Note: k: V2 ins. (Ñ2 after 64ab): :k
dantavaktro 'pi vivyādha bhānumantaṃ vidūratham |
triṃśatā pratyavidhyat taṃ balī bāṇair mahābalam
kṛtavarmā bibhedājau rājaputraṃ tribhiḥ śaraiḥ //
nyahanat sārathiṃ cāsya dhvajaṃ ciccheda cocchritam
prativivyādha taṃ kruddhaḥ pauṇḍraḥ ṣaḍbhiḥ śilīmukhaiḥ //
dhanuś ciccheda cāpy asya bhallenāyataparvaṇā
nivṛttaśatruḥ kāliṅgaṃ bibheda niśitaiḥ śaraiḥ
tomareṇāṃsadeśe taṃ nirbibheda kaliṅgarāṭ //
gajenāsādya kaṅkas tu gajam aṅgasya vīryavān
tomareṇa bibhedāṅgaṃ bibhedāṅgaś ca taṃ śaraiḥ //
citrakaś ca śvaphalkaś ca satyakaś ca mahārathaḥ
kaliṅgasya tathānīkaṃ nārācair bibhiduḥ śitaiḥ //
visṛṣṭena drumeṇājau vaṅgarājasya kuñjaram
jaghāna rāmaḥ samkruddho vaṅgarājaṃ ca saṃyuge //
taṃ hatvā ratham āruhya dhanur ādāya vīryavān
saṃkarṣaṇo jaghānograir nārācaiḥ kaiśikān bahūn //
ṣaḍbhir nihatya kārūṣān maheṣvāsān sa vīryavān
śataṃ jaghāna saṃkruddho māgadhānāṃ mahārathaḥ
nihatya tān mahābāhur jarāsaṃdhaṃ tato 'bhyayāt //
tam āpatantaṃ vivyādha nārācair māgadhas tribhiḥ
taṃ bibhedāṣṭabhiḥ kruddho nārācair musalāyudhaḥ
ciccheda cāsya bhallena dhvajaṃ ratnavibhūṣitam //
Note: k: D6 ins.: :k
cāpaṃ ca mahad āyattaṃ śarair eva halāyudhaḥ |
rathaṃ cāsya mahārāja tilaśaś ca samāhanat ||
sa cchinnadhanvā viratho gadāmādāya māgadhaḥ |
bibheda balabhadraṃ tu jaghāna ca punaḥ punaḥ ||
rathaṃ ca cūrṇayām āsa gadayāsya sa māgadhaḥ ||
pātyamānād rathāt tasmād avaplutya halāyudhaḥ |
sātyakes tu rathaṃ prāyāt sarvakṣatrasya paśyataḥ ||
sātyakis tu mahārāja śarair vivyādha māgadham ||
baladevo mahārāja gadāṃ saṃgṛhya satvaram |
jaghāna māgadhaṃ saṃkhye vajreṇeva giriṃ hariḥ |
tad yuddham abhavad ghoraṃ teṣāṃ devāsuropamam
Note: k: Ś1 ins.: :kanivāryaṃ śarair eva praharṣogho mahodadheḥ |
sṛjatāṃ śaravarṣāṇi nighnatām itaretaram //
gajair gajā hi saṃkruddhāḥ saṃnipetuḥ sahasraśaḥ
rathai rathāś ca saṃrabdhāḥ sādibhiś cāpi sādinaḥ //
padātayaḥ padātīṃś ca śakticarmāsipāṇayaḥ
chindantaś cottamāṅgāni vicerur yudhi te pṛthak //
asīnāṃ pātyamānānāṃ kavaceṣu mahāsvanaḥ
śarāṇāṃ patatāṃ śabdaḥ pakṣiṇām iva śuśruve //
bherīśaṅkhamṛdaṅgānāṃ veṇūnāṃ ca mṛdhe dhvanim
jugūha ghoṣaḥ śastrāṇāṃ jyāghoṣaś ca mahātmanāṃ //
Note: k: D5 subst. for 65-77: :k
taṃ prāvidhyata saptatyā bāṇair gāḍhaṃ janārdanaḥ |
yatamānaś ca ciccheda dhvajaṃ cāsya mahābalaḥ |
jahāra ca śiraḥ kāyāt sārathes tasya vīryavān ||
taṃ kṛchragatam ājñāya parivavrur janārdanam |
dākṣiṇātyā jighāṃsanto rājānaḥ sarva eva te ||
tam aṃśumān mahābāhur vivyādha daśabhiḥ śaraiḥ |
śrutarvā pañcabhiḥ kruddho veṇudāriś ca saptabhiḥ ||
tato 'ṃśumantaṃ govindo bibhedorasi vīryavān |
niṣasāda rathopasthe vyathitaḥ sa narādhipaḥ ||
śrutarvaṇo jaghānāśvāṃś caturbhiś caturaḥ śaraiḥ |
veṇudārir dhvajaṃ chittvā bhujaṃ vivyādha dakṣiṇam ||
tathaiva ca śrutarvāṇaṃ śarair vivyādha saptabhiḥ |
śiśriye ca dhvajaṃ śrānto nyaṣīdac ca vyathānvitaḥ ||
muñcantaḥ śaravarṣāṇi vāsudevaṃ tato 'bhyayuḥ |
krathakaiśikamukhyās te rathavaṃśena sarvaśaḥ ||
bāṇān bāṇaiś ca ciccheda teṣāṃ yudhi janārdanaḥ |
jaghāna caiṣāṃ saṃrabdho yatamānān yatān bahūn ||
punar anyāṃś catuḥṣaṣṭyā nijaghāna śitaiḥ śaraiḥ |
kruddhān āpatato vīro prādravat tadbalaṃ tataḥ |
Note: k: D6 ins.: :k
etasminn antare vīro balabhadro mahāyaśāḥ |
jaghāna gadayā vīraṃ jarāsaṃdhaṃ mahāmṛdhe ||
mūrchāṃ jagāma rājā tu nipapāta ca bhūtale ||
sātyakir vaṅgarājaṃ tu jaghāna niśitaiḥ śaraiḥ |
tat sainyaṃ vimukhaṃ cāsīj jarāsaṃdhe pataty api ||
sātyakir balabhadraś ca jitvā yodhān sahasraśaḥ |
śaṅkhaṃ dadhmatū rājānau sarveṣām agrataḥ sthitau |
tataś ca vidrute sainye jarāsaṃdhe parājite |
tayoḥ śaṅkhadhvaniṃ śrutvā gacchann eva janārdanaḥ |
jitaṃ magadharājasya sainyaṃ bahunṛpāśrayam ||
ity evaṃ cintayitvā tu vāsudevaḥ pratāpavān |
pāñcajanyaṃ mahāśaṅkhaṃ dadhmau yadukulodvahaḥ |
Note: h: HV (CE) chapter 88, transliterated by Kreshimir Krnic, proof-read by Kreshimir Krnic, version of September 23, 2001 :h
kṛṣṇena hriyamāṇāṃ tu rukmī śrutvā tu rukmiṇīm
pratijñām akarot kruddhaḥ samakṣaṃ bhīṣmakasya ha //
ahatvā yudhi govindam anānīya ca rukmiṇīm
kuṇḍinaṃ na pravekṣyāmi satyam etad bravīmi te //
āsthāya sa rathaṃ vīraḥ samudagrāyudhadhvajam
javena prayayau kruddho balena mahatā vṛtaḥ //
tam anvayur nṛpāś caiva dakṣiṇāpathavāsinaḥ
krātho 'ṃśumāñ śrutarvā ca veṇudāriśca vīryavān //
bhīṣmakasya sutaś cāpi rathena rathināṃ varaḥ
krathakaiśikamukhyāśca sarva eva mahārathāḥ //
te gatvā dūram adhvānaṃ saritaṃ narmadām anu
govindaṃ dadṛśuḥ kruddhāḥ sahaiva priyayā sthitam //
avasthāpya ca tat sainyaṃ rukmī balamadānvitaḥ
Note: k: D6 T G1.3-5 M ins.: :kādāya niśitaṃ bāṇam idamāha janārdanam ||
are gopakadāyāda paradārapradharṣaṇa |
vimucyatām iyaṃ bālā sthātavyaṃ ca kṣaṇāntaram |
śiraśchetsyāmi te bāṇaiḥ sthito 'si yadi matpuraḥ |
ityuktvā niśitaṃ bāṇaṃ saṃdadhe dhanuṣi prabho |
cikīrṣur dvairathaṃ yuddham abhyayān madhusūdanam //
sa vivyādha catuḥṣaṣṭyā govindaṃ niśitaiḥ śraiḥ
taṃ pratyavidhyat saptatyā bāṇair yudhi janārdanaḥ //
yatamānasya ciccheda dhvajaṃ cāsya mahābalaḥ
jahāra ca śiraḥ kāyāt sāratheś cāsya vīryavān //
taṃ kṛcchragatam ājñāya parivavrur janārdanam
dākṣiṇātyā jighāṃsanto rājānaḥ sarva eva te //
tam aṃśumān mahābāhur vivyādha daśabhiḥ śraiḥ
śrutarvā pañcabhiḥ kruddho veṇudāriś ca saptabhiḥ //
tato 'ṃśumantaṃ govindo bibhedorasi vīryavān
niṣasāda rathopasthe vyathitaḥ sa narādhipaḥ //
śrutarvaṇo jaghānāśvāṃś caturbhiś caturaḥ śaraiḥ
veṇudārer dhvajaṃ chittvā bhujaṃ vivyādha dakṣiṇam //
tathaiva ca śrutarvāṇaṃ śarair vivyādha pañcabhiḥ
śiśriye sa dhvajaṃ klānto nyaṣīdacca vyathānvitaḥ //
muñcantaḥ śaravarṣāṇi vāsudevaṃ tato 'bhyayuḥ
krathakaiśikamukhyās te rathavaṃśena sarvaśaḥ //
bāṇair bāṇāṃś ca ciccheda teṣāṃ yudhi janārdanaḥ
jaghāna caiṣāṃ saṃrabdho yatamānāṃś ca tāñ śarān //
punar anyāṃś catuḥṣaṣṭyā jaghāna niśitaiḥ śaraiḥ
kruddhān ādravato vīrān ādravat sa mahābalaḥ //
vidrutaṃ svabalaṃ dṛṣṭvā rukmī krodhavaśaṃ gataḥ
pañcabhir niśitair bāṇair vivyādhorasi keśavam //
sārathiṃ cāsya vivyādha sāyakair niśitais tribhiḥ
ājaghāna dhvajaṃ cāsya śareṇa nataparvaṇā //
keśavaś cāpi taṃ ṣaṣṭyā kruddho vivyādha mārgaṇaiḥ
dhanuś ciccheda cāpy asya yatamānasya rukmiṇaḥ //
athānyad dhanur ādāya rukmī kṛṣṇajighāṃsayā
prāduś cakāra divyāni dīptāny astrāṇi vīryavān //
Note: k: D6 T G1.4.5 M ins.: :k
vāyavyaṃ vāruṇaṃ caiva māhendram atha nairṛtam |
paiśācaṃ rākṣasaṃ caiva raudraṃ māheśvaraṃ tathā ||
etānyastrāṇi davyāni vivyādra yudhi keśave |
tair eva tāni govindo nijaghāna janārdanaḥ |
astrair astrāṇi saṃvārya tasya kṛṣṇo mhābalaḥ
punaś ciccheda taṃ cāpaṃ ratheṣāṃ ca tribhiḥ śaraiḥ //
sa cchinnadhanvā virathaḥ khaḍgam ādāya carma ca
utpapāta rathād vīro garutmān iva vīryavān //
tasyābhipatataḥ khaḍgaṃ ciccheda yudhi keśavaḥ
nārācaiś ca tribhiḥ kruddho bibhedainam athorasi //
Note: k: K4 sub.: :k
kruddho bibhedainam atho śarair urasi pañcabhiḥ |
sa papāta mahābāhur vasudhām anunādayan
visaṃjño mūrchito rājā vajreṇeva hato giriḥ //
tāṃś ca rājñaḥ śaraiḥ sarvān punarvivyādha keśavaḥ
Note: k: K1 D3 ins.: :ksāśvadhvajarathāṃś caiva sasūtānsapadānugān |
rukmiṇaṃ patitaṃ dṛṣṭvā vyadravanta narādhipāḥ //
Note: k: T G1,3-5 M4 ins.: :k
kṛṣṇabāṇavibhinnāṅgā vīkṣamāṇāḥ parasparam |
viveṣṭamānaṃ bhūmau taṃ bhrātaraṃ vīkṣya rukmiṇī
pādayor nyapatad bhartur bhrātur jīvitakāṅkṣiṇī //
tāmutthāpya pariṣvajya sāntvayāmāsa keśavaḥ
abhayaṃ rukmiṇe dattvā prayayau svāṃ purīṃ tataḥ //
vṛṣṇayo 'pi jarāsaṃdhaṃ bhaṅktvā tāṃś cāpi pārthivān
Note: k: S (except G2) ins.: :kjitvā tu sātyakirvīraḥ śiśupālaṃ mahābalam |
baladevo 'pi vārṣṇeyo jitvā magadhapuṃgavam |
te 'pi vīrā yathāyogaṃ jitvā tān yādavottamāḥ |
prayayur dvārakāṃ hṛṣṭāḥ puraskṛtya halāyudham //
prayāte puṇḍarīkākṣe śrutarvābhyetya saṃyuge
rukmiṇaṃ ratham āropya prayayau svapuraṃ tataḥ //
anānīya svasāraṃ tu rukmī vīryamadānvitaḥ
hīnapratijño naicchat sa praveṣṭuṃ kuṇḍinaṃ puram //
vidarbheṣu ca vāsārthaṃ nirmame 'nyat puraṃ mahat
tadbhojakaṭam ity eva babhūva bhuvi viśrutam //
Note: k: D6 T1-3 G1.3-5 M ins.: :k
janmāspadaṃ bhagavato bhṛgusūnor mahātmanaḥ |
tacchaśāsa mahāvīryo rukmī jīvati tatra vai |
tatraujasā mahātejasāḥ so 'nvaśād dakṣiṇāṃ diśam
bhīṣmakaḥ kuṇḍine caiva rājovāsa mahāmanāḥ //
Note: k: D6 T G1.3-5 M ins.: :k
jarāsaṃdho 'pi saṃprāpya saṃjñāṃ prāpa svakaṃ puram |
sarvair nṛpatibhiḥ sārdhaṃ sajjayāvanatānanaḥ ||
śiśupālo 'pi mandātmā lajjāviṣṭaḥ sabāndhavaḥ |
paurajānapadair dṛṣṭaḥ so 'yaṃ bhojasutāpatiḥ |
idānīm anyathā vṛttaḥ svāṃ purī niryayau bahiḥ ||
ko nu nāma samartho 'tra kṛṣṇe jīvati sāṃpratam |
rukmiṇīm anyathākartuṃ sabale sahasātyakau ||
iti paurāś ca taṃ dṛṣṭvā sunīthaṃ mandavikramam |
āhuḥ parasparaṃ sarve gacchantaṃ svapuraṃ nṛpam |
dvārakām abhisaṃprāpte rāme vṛṣṇibalānvite
rukmiṇyāḥ keśavaḥ pāṇiṃ jagrāha vidhivat prabhuḥ //
Note: k: after 88.34, D6 S (except G2) ins. a passage given in App I (No. 23) :k
tataḥ saha tayā reme priyayā prīyamāṇayā
sītayeva purā rāmaḥ paulomy eva puraṃdaraḥ //
Note: k: D6 T1-3 G1.3-5 M ins.: :k
damayantyā yathā rājā puṇyaśloko nalastathā |
sā hi tasyābhavaj jyeṣṭhā patnī kṛṣṇasya bhāminī
pativratā guṇopetā rūpaśīlaguṇānvitā //
tasyām utpādayāmāsa putrān daśa mahārathān
cārudeṣṇaṃ sudeṣṇaṃ ca pradyumnaṃ ca mahābalam //
suṣeṇaṃ cāruguptaṃ ca cārubāhuṃ ca vīryavān
cāruvindaṃ sucāruṃ ca bhadracāruṃ tathaiva ca //
cāruṃ ca balināṃ śreṣṭhaṃ sutāṃ cārumatīṃ tathā
dharmārthakuśalās te tu kṛtāstrā yuddhadurmadāḥ //
mahiṣīḥ sapta kalyāṇīs tato 'nyā madhusūdanaḥ
upayeme mahābāhur guṇopetāḥ kulodbhavāḥ //
kālindīṃ mitravindāṃ ca satyāṃ nāgnajitīm api
sutāṃ jāmbavataś cāpi rohiṇīṃ kāmarūpiṇīm //
madrarājasutāṃ cāpi suśīlāṃ śubhalocanām
satrājitīṃ satyabhāmāṃ lakṣmaṇāṃ cāruhāsinīm
śaibyāṃ sudattāṃ rūpeṇa śriyā hy apsarasopamām //
strīsahasrāṇi cānyāni ṣoḍaśātulavikramaḥ
upayeme hṛṣīkeśaḥ sarvā bheje sa tāḥ samam
parārdhyavastrābharaṇāḥ kāmaih sarvaiḥ samedhitaḥ //
jajñire tasya putrāś ca tāsu vīrāḥ sahasraśaḥ
Note: k: Ś1 D2 ins.: :kaśītiṃ ca sahasrāṇi ṣoḍaśānyāni bhārata |
sarvāstrakuśalāḥ sarve balavanto mahārathāḥ
yajvānaḥ puṇyakarmāṇo mahābhāgā mahābalāḥ //
Note: k: D6 T G1.3-5 M ins.: :k
evaṃ vivāhaṃ yadupuṃgavastadā |
kṛtvā tu rāmeṇa ca yādavaiḥ saha |
pure tu tasminnyavasatsukhaṃ harir |
yathaiva śakraḥ svapure jagadguruḥ |
Note: k: after 88.34, D6 S (except G2) ins. a passage given in App I (No. 23) :k
Note: h: HV (CE) Chapter 89 transliterated by Eva De Clercq; version of March 5, 2002 :h
tataḥ kāle vyatīte tu rukmī mahati vīryavān
duhituḥ kārayām āsa svayaṃvaram ariṃdamaḥ //
tatrāhūtāś ca rājāno rājaputrāś ca rukmiṇā
samājagmur mahāvīryā nānādigbhyaḥ śriyānvitāḥ //
jagāma tatra pradyumnaḥ kumārair aparair vṛtaḥ
sā hi taṃ cakame kanyā sa ca tāṃ śubhalocanām //
śubhāṅgī nāma vaidarbhī kāntidyutisamanvitā
pṛthivyām abhavat khyātā rukmiṇas tanayā tadā //
upaviṣṭeṣu sarveṣu pārthiveṣu mahātmasu
vaidarbhī varayām āsa pradyumnam arisūdanam //
sa hi sarvāstrakuśalaḥ siṃhasaṃhanano yuvā
rūpeṇāpratimo loke keśavasyātmajo 'bhavat //
vayorūpaguṇopetā rājaputrī ca sābhavat
nārāyaṇī candrasenā jātakāmā ca taṃ prati //
vṛtte svayaṃvare jagmū rājānaḥ svapurāṇi te
upādāya tu vaidarbhīṃ pradyumno dvārakāṃ yayau //
Note: k: K3.4 D2.5 (marg.) T3 ins.: :k
reme saha tayā vīro damayantyā nalo yathā |
sa tasyāṃ janayām āsa devagarbhopamaṃ sutam
aniruddham iti khyātaṃ karmaṇāpratimaṃ bhuvi
dhanurvede ca vede ca nītiśāstre ca pāragam //
abhavat sa yadā rājann aniruddho vayonvitaḥ
tadāsya rukmiṇaḥ pautrīṃ rukmiṇī rukmasaṃnibhāṃ
patnyarthaṃ varayām āsa nāmnā rukmavatīti sā //
aniruddhaṃ guṇair dātuṃ kṛtabuddhir nṛpas tadā
prītyā ca raukmiṇeyasya rukmiṇyāś cāpy upagrahāt //
vispardhann api kṛṣṇena vairaṃ tad apahāya saḥ
dadānīty abravīd rājā prītimāñ janamejaya //
keśavaḥ saha rukmiṇyā putraiḥ saṃkarṣaṇena ca
anyaiś ca vṛṣṇibhiḥ sārdhaṃ vidarbhān sabalo yayau //
saṃyuktā jñātayaś caiva rukmiṇaḥ suhṛdaś ca ye
āhūtā rukmiṇā te 'pi tatrājagmur narādhipāḥ //
śubhe tithau mahārāja nakṣatre cābhipūjite
vivāhāyāniruddhasya babhūva paramotsavaḥ //
pāṇau gṛhīte vaidarbhyās tv aniruddhena bhārata
Note: k: K2.3 Ñ2.3 V B1.2 Dn Ds D1.2.4-6 T4 G2 ins.: :kvaidarbhayādavānāṃ ca babhūva paramotsavaḥ |
remire vṛṣṇayas tatra pūjyamānā yathāmarāḥ //
athāśmakānām adhipo veṇudārir udāradhīḥ
akṣaḥ śrutarvā cāṇūraḥ krāthaś caivāṃśumān api //
jayatsenaḥ kaliṅgānām adhipaś ca mahābalaḥ
pāṇḍyaś ca nṛpatiḥ śrīmān ṛṣīkādhipatis tathā //
ete saṃmantrya rājāno dākṣiṇātyā maharddhayaḥ
abhigamyābruvan sarve rukmiṇaṃ rahasi prabhum //
bhavān akṣeṣu kuśalo vayaṃ cāpi riraṃsavaḥ
priyadyūtaś ca rāmo 'sāv akṣeṣv anipuṇo 'pi ca //
te bhavantaṃ puraskṛtya jetum icchāma taṃ vayam
ity ukto rocayām āsa dyūtaṃ rukmī mahārathaḥ //
te śubhāṃ kāñcanastambhāṃ kusumair bhūṣitājirām
sabhām āviviśur hṛṣṭāḥ siktāṃ candanavāriṇā //
tāṃ praviśya tataḥ sarve śubhrasraganulepanāḥ
sauvarṇeṣv āsaneṣv āsāṃ cakrire vijigīṣavaḥ //
āhūto baladevas tu kitavair akṣakovidaiḥ
bāḍham ity abravīdd hṛṣṭaḥ saha dīvyāma paṇyatām //
nikṛtyā taṃ jigīṣanto dākṣiṇātyā narādhipāḥ
maṇimuktāḥ suvarṇaṃ ca tatrāninyuḥ sahasraśaḥ //
tataḥ prāvartata dyūtaṃ teṣām aratināśanam
kalahāyāspadaṃ ghoraṃ durmatīnāṃ kṣayāvaham //
niṣkāṇāṃ tu sahasrāṇi suvarṇasya daśāditaḥ
rukmiṇā saha saṃpāte baladevo glahaṃ dadau //
taṃ jigāya tato rukmī yatamānaṃ mahāratham
tāvad evāparaṃ bhūyo baladevaṃ jigāya saḥ //
asakṛj jīyamānas tu rukmiṇā keśavāgrajaḥ
suvarṇakoṭiṃ jagrāha glahaṃ tasya mahātmanaḥ //
jitam ity eva hṛṣṭo 'tha tam āhvṛtir abhāṣata
ślāghamānaś ca cikṣepa prahasan musalāyudham //
avidyo durbalaḥ śrīmān hiraṇyam amitaṃ mayā
ajeyo baladevo 'yam akṣadyūte parājitaḥ //
kaliṅgarājas tac chrutvā prajahāsa bhṛśaṃ tadā
dantān vidarśayan hṛṣṭas tatrākrudhyadd halāyudhaḥ //
rukmiṇaś ca vacaḥ śrutvā parājayanimittajam
nigṛhyamāṇas tīkṣṇābhir vāgbhir bhīṣmakasūnunā
roṣam āhārayām āsa jitaroṣo 'pi dharmavit //
saṃkruddho dharṣaṇāṃ prāpya rauhiṇeyo mahābalaḥ
dhairyān manaḥ saṃniyamya tato vacanam abravīt //
daśakoṭisahasrāṇi glaha eko mamāparaḥ
etaṃ saṃparigṛhṇīṣva pātayākṣān narādhipa
kṛṣṇākṣāṃl lohitākṣāṃś ca deśe 'smiṃs tvam apāṃsule //
ity evam āhvayām āsa rukmiṇaṃ rohiṇīsutaḥ
anuktvā vacanaṃ kiṃcid bāḍham ity abravīt punaḥ //
akṣān rukmī tato hṛṣṭaḥ pātayām āsa pārthivaḥ
cāturakṣe nivṛtte tu nirjitaḥ sa narādhipaḥ //
baladevena dharmeṇa nety uvāca tato balam
dhairyān manaḥ saṃniyamya sa na kiṃcid uvāca ha
Note: k: S (except G2) ins.: :kete bruvantu rājāno ye tathyavacanā iha |
baladevaṃ tato rukmī mayā jitam iti smayan //
baladevas tu tac chrutvā jihmaṃ vākyaṃ narādhipāt
bhūyaḥ krodhasamāviṣṭo nottaraṃ vyājahāra ha //
tato gambhīranirghoṣā vāg uvācāśarīriṇī
baladevasya taṃ kopaṃ vardhayantī mahātmanaḥ
satyam āha balaḥ śrīmān dharmeṇaiṣa parājitaḥ //
anuktvā vacanaṃ kiṃcit prāpto bhavati karmaṇā
manasā samanujñātaṃ tat syād ity avagamyatām //
iti śrutvā vacas tathyam antarikṣāt subhāṣitam
saṃkarṣaṇas tadotthāya sauvarṇenoruṇā balī
Note: k: D2 ins.: :ktām anādṛtya vaidarbho duṣṭarājanyanoditaḥ |
saṃkarṣaṇaṃ parihasan babhāṣe kālanoditaḥ ||
naivākṣakovidā yūyaṃ gopālā vanagocarāḥ |
akṣaiḥ krīḍanti rājāno bāṇaiś ca na bhavādṛśāḥ ||
rukmiṇaivam adhikṣipto rājabhiś copahāsitaḥ |
rukmiṇyā bhrātaraṃ jyeṣṭhaṃ niṣpipeṣa mahītale //
vivāde kupito rāmaḥ kṣeptāraṃ krūrabhāṣiṇam
jaghānāṣṭāpadenaiva prasahya yadupuṃgavaḥ //
tato 'pasṛtya saṃkruddhaḥ kaliṅgādhipater api
dantān babhañja saṃrambhād unnanāda ca siṃhavat
khaḍgam udyamya tāṃś cāpi trāsayām āsa pārthivān //
Note: k: D6 T G1.3-5 M ins.: :k
raṅgamadhye haladharaḥ paribabhrāma siṃhavat |
stambhaṃ sabhāyāḥ sauvarṇam utpāṭya balināṃ varaḥ
gajendra iva taṃ stambhaṃ karṣan samkarṣaṇas tataḥ
Note: k: T G1.3-5 M ins.: :ktenaiva tu jaghānāśu tatrasthān krathakaiśikān |
nirjagāma sabhādvārāt trāsayan krathakaiśikān //
Note: k: T1.3.4 G1.3.5 M (T2 G4 after 45cd) ins.: :k
keśeṣu rukmiṇaṃ gṛhya cakarṣa ca punaḥ punaḥ |
tam ādāya sabhādvārāc charapātaṃ sasarja ha |
rukmiṇaṃ nikṛtiprajñaṃ sa hatvā yādavarṣabhaḥ
vitrāsya dviṣataḥ sarvān siṃhaḥ kṣudramṛgān iva //
jagāma śibiraṃ rāmaḥ svam eva svajanāvṛtaḥ
nyavedayata kṛṣṇāya tac ca sarvaṃ yathābhavat //
novāca sa tadā kiṃcit kṛṣṇo rāmaṃ mahādyutim
Note: k: Ñ2 V2 B2 Dn Ds D6 ins.: :krukmiṇī tu tataḥ śrutvā nihataṃ bhrātaraṃ priyam |
nigṛhya ca tadātmānaṃ krodhād aśrūṇy avartayat //
na hato vāsudevena yaḥ pūrvaṃ paravīrahā
Note: k: K1 (marg.) V3 D2.3 ins.: :kjyeṣṭho bhrātātha rukmiṇyā rukmiṇīsnehakāraṇāt |
sa rāmakaramuktena nihato dyūtamaṇḍale
aṣṭāpadena balavān rājā vajradharopamaḥ //
tasmin hate mahāmātre nṛpatau bhīṣmakātmaje
drumabhārgavatulye vai drumabhārgavaśikṣite //
kṛtau ca yuddhakuśale nityayājini pātite
vṛṣṇayaś cāndhakāś caiva sarve vimanaso 'bhavan //
Note: k: Ś1 K3 D4.5 T4 ins.: :k
rukmiṇī ca mahābhāgā vilapanty ārtayā girā |
vilapantīṃ tathā dṛṣṭvā sāntvayām āsa keśavaḥ |
etat te sarvam ākhyātaṃ rukmiṇo nidhanaṃ yathā
vairasya ca samutthānaṃ vṛṣṇibhir bharatarṣabha //
vṛṣṇayo 'pi mahārāja dhanāny ādāya sarvaśaḥ
rāmakṛṣṇau samāśritya yayur dvāravatīṃ purīm //
Note: k: After 89.53, V1.3 Ds D6 ins. a passage given in App. I (No. 24) :k
Note: h: HV (CE) Chapter 90 transliterated by Eva De Clercq; version of March 5, 2002 :h
bhūya eva tu viprarṣe baladevasya dhīmataḥ
māhātmyaṃ śrotum icchāmi śeṣasya dharaṇībhṛtaḥ //
atīva balavantaṃ hi tejorāśim anirjitam
kathayanti mahātmānaṃ ye purāṇavido janāḥ //
tasya karmāṇy ahaṃ vipra śrotum icchāmi tattvataḥ
anantaṃ yaṃ vidur nāgam ādidevaṃ mahaujasam //
purāṇe nāgarājo 'sau paṭhyate dharaṇīdharaḥ
śeṣas tejonidhiḥ śrīmān akampyaḥ puruṣottamaḥ //
yogācāryo mahāvīryaḥ subalo balavān balī
jarāsaṃdhaṃ gadāyuddhe jitavān yo na cāvadhīt //
bahavaś caiva rājānaḥ pārthivāḥ pṛthivīpate
anvayur māgadhaṃ saṃkhye te cāpi vijitā raṇe //
nāgāyutasamaprāṇo bhīmo bhīmaparākramaḥ
asakṛd baladevena bāhuyuddhe parājitaḥ //
duryodhanasya kanyāṃ tu haramāṇo nyagṛhyata
sāmbo jāmbavatīputro nagare nāgasāhvaye //
Note: k: K1 (marg.).2 Ñ2.3 V B Ds D2-6 T G M4 ins.: :k
rājabhiḥ sarvato ruddho haramāṇo balāt kila |
tam upaśrutya saṃkruddha ājagāma halāyudhaḥ
rāmas tasya vimokṣārtham āgato nālabhac ca tam
tataś cukrodha balavān adbhutaṃ cākaron mahat //
anivāryam abhedyaṃ ca divyam apratimaṃ balī
lāṅgalāstraṃ samudyamya brahmadaṇḍānumantritam //
prākāravapre vinyasya purasya sa mahābalaḥ
prakṣeptum aicchad gaṅgāyāṃ nagaraṃ kauravasya tat //
tad āghūrṇitam ālakṣya puraṃ duryodhano nṛpaḥ
sāmbaṃ niryātayām āsa sabhāryaṃ tasya dhīmataḥ //
dadau śiṣyaṃ tadātmānaṃ rāmasya sumahātmanaḥ
gadāyuddhe kurupatiḥ pratijagrāha taṃ ca saḥ //
tataḥ prabhṛti rājendra puram etad vighūrṇitaṃ
āvarjitam ivābhāti gaṅgām abhimukhaṃ nṛpa //
idam atyadbhutaṃ karma rāmasya prathitaṃ bhuvi
bhāṇḍīre kathyate rājan yat kṛtaṃ śauriṇā purā //
pralambaṃ muṣṭinaikena yaj jaghāna halāyudhaḥ
dhenukaṃ ca mahākāyaṃ cikṣepa nagamūrdhani //
Note: k: K2.3 Ñ2.3 V B D T4 G2 ins.: :k
sa gatāsuḥ papātorvyāṃ daityo gardabharūpadhṛk |
lavaṇajalagamā mahānadī drutajalavegataraṃgamālinī
nagaram abhimukhā yad āhṛtā halavidhṛtā yamunā yamasvasā //
baladevasya māhātmyam etat te kathitaṃ mayā
anantasyāprameyasya śeṣyasya sumahātmanaḥ //
iti puruṣavarasya lāṅgaler bahuvidham uttamam anyad eva ca
yad akathitam ihādya karma te tad upalabhasva purāṇavistarāt //
Note: k: M3 ins.: :k
ālolatulasīmālam ārūḍhavinatāsutam |
jyotirindīvaraśyāmam āvir astu mamāgrataḥ |
Note: h: HV (CE) Chapter 91 transliterated by Eva De Clercq; version of March 5, 2002 :h
pratyetya dvārakāṃ viṣṇur hate rukmiṇi vīryavān
akarod yan mahābāhus tan me vada mahāmune //
sa tair vṛtaḥ purīṃ gatvā sarvayādavanandanaḥ
dvārakāṃ bhagavān viṣṇuḥ pratyavaikṣata vīryavān //
pratyapadyata ratnāni vividhāni vasūni ca
yathārhaṃ puṇḍarīkākṣo nairṛtān pratyapādayat //
tatra vighnaṃ caranti sma daiteyāḥ saha dānavaiḥ
tāñ jaghāna mahābāhur varadattān mahāsurān //
vighnaṃ tatrākarot tasya narako nāma dānavaḥ
trāsanaḥ surasaṃghānāṃ devarājaripur mahān //
sa babhau mūrtiliṅgasthaḥ sarvadaivatabādhitā
Note: k: After 6ab, D6 S ins. a passage given in App. I (No. 25). :kṛṣīṇāṃ mānuṣāṇāṃ ca pratīpam akarot tadā //
tvaṣṭur duhitaraṃ bhaumaḥ kaśerum agamat tadā
gajarūpeṇa jagrāha rucirāṅgīṃ caturdaśīm //
pramathya ca varārohāṃ narako vākyam abravīt
naṣṭaśokabhayo mohāt prāgjyotiṣapatis tadā //
yāni devamanuṣyeṣu ratnāni vividhāni ca
bibharti ca mahī kṛtsnā sāgareṣu ca yad vasu //
adya prabhṛti tānīha sahitāḥ sarvanairṛtāḥ
mamaivopahariṣyanti daityāś ca saha dānavaiḥ //
evam uttamaratnāni vastrāṇi vividhāni ca
saṃjahāra tadā bhaumas tac ca nādhicacāra saḥ //
gandharvāṇāṃ ca yāḥ kanyā jahāra narako balī
yāś ca devamanuṣyāṇāṃ sapta cāpsarasāṃ gaṇāḥ //
caturdaśa sahasrāṇi ekaviṃśacchatāni ca
ekaveṇīdharāḥ sarvāḥ satāṃ mārgam anuvratāḥ //
tāsāṃ puravaraṃ bhaumo 'kārayan maṇiparvatam
alakāyām adīnātmā murasya viṣayaṃ prati //
tāś ca prāgjyotiṣapatir muroś caiva daśātmajāḥ
nairṛtāś ca yathāmukhyāḥ pālayanta upāsate //
sa eṣa tamasaḥ pāre varadatto mahāsuraḥ
aditiṃ dharṣayām āsa kuṇḍalārthe mahāsuraḥ //
Note: k: D6 T G1.2.4.5 M ins.: :k
ye hi devamanuṣyeṣu kuṇḍale te śubhe ubhe |
na cāsuragaṇaiḥ sarvaiḥ sahitaiḥ karma tat purā
kṛtapūrvaṃ tadā ghoraṃ yad akārṣīn mahāsuraḥ //
yaṃ mahī suṣuve devī yasya prāgjyotiṣaṃ puram
tasyāntapālāś catvāras tasyāsan yuddhadurmadāḥ //
hayagrīvo nisundaś ca vīraḥ pañcajanas tathā
muruḥ putrasahasraiś ca varadatto mahāsuraḥ //
Note: k: Ś1 ins.: :k
aditiṃ dharṣayām āsa so 'suro madadarpitaḥ |
ādevayānam āvṛtya panthānaṃ samavasthitaḥ
vitrāsanaḥ sukṛtināṃ virūpai rākṣasaiḥ saha //
tadvadhārthaṃ mahābāhuḥ śaṅkhacakragadāsibhṛt
jāto vṛṣṇiṣu devakyāṃ vasudevāj janārdanaḥ //
Note: k: After 21, D6 S(except G2) ins. an addl. colophon :k
Note: k: After the addl. colophon, D6 S(except G2) ins. a passage given in App. I (No. 26) :k
tasyātha puruṣendrasya loke prathitatejasaḥ
nivāso dhārakā devair upāyād upapāditā //
atīva hi purī ramyā dvārakā vāsavakṣayāt
mahārṇavaparikṣiptā pañcaparvataśobhitā //
Note: k: T2-4 G1.3-5 M ins.: :k
tasyaiva devadevasya nirmitā viśvakarmaṇā |
tasyāṃ devapurābhāyāṃ sabhā kāñcanatoraṇā
sudāśārhīti vikhyātā yojanāyutavistṛtā //
Note: k: After 24, D6 S(except G2) ins. a passage given in App. I (No. 27) :k
tatra vṛṣṇyandhakāḥ sarve rāmakṛṣṇapurogamāḥ
lokayātrām imāṃ kṛtsnāṃ parirakṣanta āsate //
Note: k: T G1.3-5 M4 subst.: :k
narakasya vadhaṃ sarve cintayantas tadāsate |
tatrāsīneṣu sarveṣu kadācid bharatarṣabha
divyagandho vavau vāyuḥ puṣpavarṣaṃ papāta ha //
tataḥ kilakilāśabdaḥ prabhājālābhisaṃvṛtaḥ
muhūrtam antarikṣe 'bhūt tato bhūmau pratiṣṭhitaḥ //
madhye tu tejasas tasya pāṇḍuraṃ gajam āsthitaḥ
vṛto devagaṇaiḥ sarvair vāsavaḥ pratyadṛśyata //
Note: k: D6 T G1.3-5 M G(ed.) ins.: :k
pīḍito narakeṇājau lokapālasamanvitaḥ |
icchan rakṣāṃ jagannāthād yādavād nāmasaṃyutāt |
hananaṃ ca tathā viṣṇor narakasya durātmanaḥ ||
āgataṃ taṃ vṛtrahaṇaṃ pīḍitaṃ dānavottamaiḥ |
rāmakṛṣṇai ca rājā ca vṛṣṇyandhakagaṇaiḥ saha
pratyudyayur mahātmānaṃ pūjayantaḥ sureśvaram //
so 'vatīrya gajāt tūrṇaṃ pariṣvajya janārdanam
sasvaje baladevaṃ ca taṃ ca rājānam āhukam
Note: k: D6 T2.4 G1.4 M1.2.4 ins.: :kpradyumnam atha deveśas tatputraṃ ca mahādyutim |
vṛṣṇīn anyān sasvaje ca yathā sthānaṃ yathā vayaḥ //
pūjito rāmakṛṣṇābhyām āviveśa sabhāṃ śubhām
tatrāsanam alaṃkṛtya sabhām tāṃ sa sureśvaraḥ
arghyādisamudācāraṃ pratyagṛhṇād yathāvidhi //
Note: k: D6 T G1.3-5 M subst.: :k
arghyādibhis tathā rājan madhuparkeṇa vṛtrahā |
āsanaṃ lambhayām āsa svātmatulyaṃ śacīpatiḥ |
athovāca mahātejā vāsavo vāsavānujaṃ
sāntvapūrvaṃ kareṇāsya saṃspṛṣan vadanaṃ śubham //
devakīnandana vacaḥ śṛṇu me madhusūdana
yena tvābhigato 'smy adya kāryeṇāmitrakarśana //
nairṛto narako nāma brahmaṇo varadarpitaḥ
Note: k: D6 T G1.3-5 M ins.: :kbādhate no hṛṣīkeśa lokapālān samantataḥ |
svargaśreṇiṃ vihāyāśu nirgatāḥ sma vayaṃ diśaḥ |
adityāḥ kuṇḍale mohāj jahāra ditinandanaḥ //
devānāṃ vipriye nityam ṛṣīṇāṃ ca sa vartate
Note: k: G2 ins.: :knāhaṃ śaknomi taṃ jetuṃ tasmāt tvāṃ śaraṇaṃ gataḥ |
tava caivāntaraprekṣī jahi taṃ pāpapūruṣam //
ayaṃ tvāṃ garuḍas tatra prāpayiṣyati kāmagaḥ
kāmavīryo 'titejasvī vainateyo 'ntarikṣagaḥ //
avadhyaḥ sarvabhūtānāṃ bhaumaḥ sa narako 'suraḥ
niṣūdayitvā taṃ pāpaṃ kṣipram āgantum arhasi //
ity uktaḥ puṇḍarīkākṣo devarājena keśavaḥ
pratijajñe mahābāhur narakasya nibarhaṇam //
Note: k: D6 T1-3 G1.4.5 M G(ed.) ins.: :k
idaṃ provāca śakraṃ taṃ keśavaḥ keśisūdanaḥ |
etad artham ihāgamya munayaḥ saṃśitavratāḥ ||
badarīvāsinaḥ śakra mām uktvā nirgatā hare ||
abhayaṃ ca mayā deva dattaṃ tebhyaḥ śatakrato |
tad artham udyato deva taṃ hantuṃ dānavaṃ raṇe ||
tad artham āgato deva garuḍaḥ pakṣipuṃgavaḥ |
Note: k: After line 5 of *1044, T4 ins.: :k
kāmarūpo 'titejasvī vainateyo 'ntarikṣagaḥ |
tataḥ sahaiva śakreṇa śaṅkhacakragadāsibhṛt
Note: k: T1-3 G1.3-5 M4 ins.: :knarakasya vadhārthāya yayau vai sa hi keśavaḥ |
pratasthe garuḍenātha satyabhāmāsahāyavān //
krameṇa sapta skandhān sa marutāṃ sahavāsavaḥ
paśyatāṃ yadusiṃhānām ūrdhvam ācakrame balī //
vāraṇendragataḥ śakro garuḍastho janārdanaḥ
vidūrasthau prakāśete sūryācandramasāv iva //
athāntarikṣe gandharvair apsarobhiś ca mādhavaḥ
stūyamāno yathā śakraḥ krameṇāntaradhīyata //
samādhāyetikartavyaṃ vāsavo vibudhādhipaḥ
svam eva bhavanaṃ prāyāt kṛṣṇaḥ prāgjyotiṣaṃ yayau //
Note: k: K2 Ñ2.3 V1.2 B Dn Ds D2.5.6 T G M4 ins.: :k
pakṣānilahato vāyuḥ pratilomaṃ vavau tadā ||
tato bhīmaravair meghair babhramur gaganecarāḥ |
kṣaṇena samanuprāpto divam ākāśagena vai ||
dūrād eva ca tān dṛṣṭvā prayayau yatra te sthitāḥ |
apaśyat parvatadvāri hastyaśvarathavāhanam |
Note: k: T G1.5 M4 cont., D6 ins. after line 4 of *1046, M1-3 ins. after 43: :k
ārakṣakān mahārāja narakasya durātmanaḥ |
so 'gryān rakṣogaṇān hatvā narakasya mahābalān
Note: k: T G1.3-5 M ins.: :kpradadhmau devadeveśaḥ pāñcajanyaṃ mahāsvanam |
kṣurāntān mauravān pāśān ṣaṭsahasrān dadarśa ha //
Note: k: K2 Ñ2.3 V B1.3 Dn Ds D5.6 T G M4 B2 ins.: :k
garuḍasyopari śrīmāñ chaṅkhacakragadāsibhṛt |
bibhran nīlāmbudākāraṃ pītavāsāś caturbhujaḥ ||
vanamālākuloraskaḥ śrīvatsendunibhorasaḥ |
kirīṭamūrdhā sūryābhaḥ savidyud iva candramāḥ |
jyāṃ vikūjan mahāśabdaḥ śrūyate 'śaninisvanaḥ ||
jñātvā ca dānavaḥ sarvaṃ svayaṃ viṣṇur ihāgataḥ |
krodhād rudhiraraktākṣo muraḥ kālāntakaprabhaḥ ||
abhyadhāvata vegena śaktiṃ gṛhya mahāsuraḥ |
cikṣepa ca mahāśaktiṃ vajrakāñcanabhūṣitām ||
tām āpatantīṃ śaktiṃ tu maholkāṃ jvālitām iva |
samādhatta śaraṃ caiva rukmapuṅkhaṃ janārdanaḥ ||
dvidhācchinat kṣurapreṇa vāsudevaḥ sa vīryavān |
śaktiṃ ciccheda tatrāsau vidyutpuñja iva jvalan ||
punas tu krodharaktākṣo murur gṛhya mahāgadām |
indrāśanir ivendreṇa visṛṣṭa iva nisvanaḥ ||
ākarṇamuktaṃ cikṣepa ardhacandraṃ surottamaḥ |
madhyadeśe tu ciccheda gadāṃ tāṃ rukmabhūṣitām |
punaś ciccheda bhallena dānavasya śiro raṇe |
Note: k: T1-3 G1.3-5 M4 ins., D6 after line 4, M1-3 after 44: :k
sa piśācagaṇaṃ sarvaṃ jaghāna yudhi keśavaḥ |
niyutaṃ cārbudaṃ caiva sa murasya durātmanaḥ ||
ācchidya pāśān sarvāṃs tān mureṇa saha saṃgataḥ |
sa muro dānavo rājan dadarśa yadunandanam |
Note: k: T1-3 G1.3-5 M4 ins., T4 after line 15, M1-3 cont. after *1049A: :k
siṃhanādaṃ tataś cakre gadayā taṃ jaghāna ha |
garuḍaṃ ca samājaghne mūrdhni deśe mahāsuraḥ |
keśavaṃ pothayām āsa prāsaśaktyṛṣṭitomaraiḥ |
Note: k: T G1.3-5 M4 cont., M1-3 after *1049B: :k
tataḥ kruddho hṛṣīkeśaḥ kṣurapreṇāharac chiraḥ |
tasya dānavamukhyasya dadhmau śaṅkhaṃ tadā hariḥ ||
kṣubdhāś ca dānavāḥ sarve tena śabdena parvatāḥ |
saṃchidya pāśān sarvāṃs tān muraṃ hatvā sahānvayam
śilāsaṃghān atikramya nisundam avapothayat
Note: k: After 45c, K2 Ñ2.3 V B Dn Ds D5.6 S ins.: :k... bhagavān devakīsutaḥ |
apaśyad dānavaṃ sainyaṃ ... |
Note: k: K2 Ñ2.3 V B Dn Ds D5.6 T G M4 ins.: :khayagrīvaṃ ca ditijaṃ tathānyāṃś citrayodhinaḥ |
rodhayām āsa tan mārgaṃ svasainyena mahābalaḥ ||
nisundo balināṃ śreṣṭho ratham āruhya satvaram |
jagrāha kārmukaṃ divyaṃ hemapṛṣṭhaṃ durāsadam ||
vivyādha daśabhir bāṇair nisundo madhusūdanam |
keśavaś cāpi saptatyā vivyādha niśitaiḥ śaraiḥ |
aprāptāṃś cāntarikṣe tāñ śarāṃś ciccheda mādhavaḥ ||
te sarve sainikāḥ kṛṣṇaṃ samantāt paryavārayan |
śarajālena mahatā chādyamānaḥ surottamaḥ ||
dṛṣṭvā tān dānavān sarvān sakrodho madhusūdanaḥ |
tato divyena cāstreṇa pārjanyena janārdanaḥ |
mahatā śaravarṣeṇa vārayām āsa tad balam ||
pañcapañcaśarais teṣu ekaikena ca tān bahūn |
pārjanyasya prabhāveṇa sarvān marmasv atāḍayat |
dudruvur bhayasaṃtrastā bhagnās te dānavā raṇe ||
svasainyaṃ vidrutaṃ dṛṣṭvā niścakrāma punar mṛdhe |
visṛjañ śaravarṣāṇi chādayām āsa keśavam ||
na vibhāti raṇe sūryo nāpi vyoma diśo daśa |
śaraiḥ saṃchādayām āsa nisundo garuḍadhvajam ||
sāvitraṃ nāma divyāstraṃ jagrāha puruṣottamaḥ |
tena bāṇena tān bāṇāṃś ciccheda samare hariḥ ||
bāṇair bāṇāṃs tu saṃchidya tasya kṛṣṇo mahābalaḥ |
chatram ekena bāṇena ratheṣāṃ ca tribhiḥ śaraiḥ |
punaś ciccheda tān aśvāṃś caturbhiś caturaḥ śaraiḥ ||
sārathiṃ pañcabhir bāṇair dhvajam ekena cicchide |
śaraikena punaḥ kṛṣṇaḥ sutīkṣṇena śitena vai |
śiraś ciccheda bhallena nisundasya surottamaḥ ||
sa mamāra mahādaityaḥ papāta ca mahītale |
Note: k: D6 T1.2.4 G1.3-5 M4 ins. after line 25, M1-3 after 45cd: :knisundaṃ tu gadāpāṇim āpatantaṃ raṇājire ||
tataḥ śārṅgavinirmuktaiḥ śarair vivyādha keśavaḥ |
nisundo 'pi mahārāja gadayāpothayadd harim ||
satyabhāmā tataḥ kruddhā gadayā bāhumuktayā |
prāharad dānavendraṃ taṃ keśavasyaiva paśyataḥ ||
tatas tuṣṭo hṛṣīkeśaḥ satyabhāmām udaikṣata |
sa tayā gadayā viddha udvamañ śoṇitaṃ bahu |
muhyan saṃjñām avāpyātha nisundas tv abhyadhāvata |
tataḥ kruddho hṛṣīkeśas taṃ jaghāna śilīmukhaiḥ |
yaḥ sahasrasamās tv ekaḥ sarvān devān apothayat //
Note: k: K2 Ñ2.3 V B Dn Ds D5.6 T G M4 ins.: :k
nisundaṃ patitaṃ dṛṣṭvā hayagrīvaḥ pratāpavān |
śilāṃ pragṛhya mahatīṃ tolayām āsa dānavaḥ ||
āvidhya sahasā yuktaḥ śilāṃ śailasamaprabhaḥ |
gṛhītvā divyapārjanyam astram astravidāṃ varaḥ ||
divyāstreṇa śilāṃ viṣṇuḥ saptadhākṛta tejasā |
tad vidārya mahac cāśma pātayām āsa bhūtale |
Note: k: After line 5, T1-3 G1.3-5 M4 ins.: :k
tataḥ kruddho hayagrīvaḥ saṃdadhe dhanuṣi kṣuram |
Note: k: T1 G1.3-5 M4 cont., M1-3 ins. after 45: :k
tataḥ kruddho hayagrīvaś cāpam ādāya cāparam |
keśavaṃ vividhaiś cāstrair ājaghāna tadā yudhi |
Note: k: G5 cont.: :k
tac cāpi ca dhanuś chitvā pātayām āsa keśavaḥ |
yathā devāsuraṃ yuddham abhavad bharatarṣabha
nānāpraharaṇākīrṇaṃ tathā ghoram avartata //
tataḥ śārṅgavinirmuktair nānāvarṇair mahāśaraiḥ
garuḍastho mahābāhur nijaghāna mahāsurān //
mahālāṅgalanirbhinnāḥ śarakhaṅganipātitāḥ
vineśur dānavās tatra samāsādya janārdanam //
kecic cakrāgninirdagdhā dānavāḥ petur ambarāt
saṃnikarṣagatāḥ kecid gatāsuvikṛtānanāḥ //
Note: k: D6 T G1.5 M1-3 ins. after 49, G3 after 47: :k
garuḍasya hatāḥ pakṣaiḥ kecin mathitamastakāḥ |
kecid dhanuḥprahāraiś ca pātitā dharaṇītale |
kecit talanipātaiś ca pakṣapātaiś ca pakṣiṇaḥ |
Note: k: D6 T2.3 G1.5 cont., K2 Ñ2.3 V B Dn Ds D5 T4 G2.4 ins. after 49: :k
asṛjañ śaravarṣāṇi vṛṣṭimanta ivāmbudāḥ |
vikṛtāṅgāsurāḥ sarve kṛṣṇabāṇaprapīḍitāḥ ||
śoṇitāktāś ca dṛśyante puṣpitā iva kiṃśukāḥ |
vyadravanta suvitrastā bhagnāstrāś citrayodhinaḥ ||
punaś ca krodharaktākṣo vāyuvegena dānavaḥ |
daśavyāmocchritaṃ vṛkṣaṃ samāruhya vanaspatim |
vṛkṣam utpāṭya vegena pratigṛhyābhyadhāvata ||
cikṣepa sumahāvṛkṣaṃ śikṣayā tu ghanākṛtiḥ |
vṛkṣavegāniloddhūtaḥ śuśruve sumahāsvanaḥ ||
tataḥ śarasahasreṇa tvaramāṇo janārdanaḥ |
naikadhā taṃ praciccheda citrabhaktinibhākṛtim ||
punaś caikena bāṇena hayagrīvasya corasi |
vivyādha stanayor madhye sāyako jvalanaprabhaḥ |
viveśa so 'tivegena hṛdaṃ bhittvā vinirgataḥ |
taṃ jaghāna mahāghoraṃ hayagrīvaṃ mahāsuram
apāratejā durdharṣaḥ sarvayādavanandanaḥ //
madhye lohitagaṅgasya bhagavān devakīsutaḥ
alakāyāṃ virūpākṣaṃ pāpmānaṃ puruṣottamaḥ //
aṣṭau śatasahasrāṇi dānavānāṃ paraṃtapaḥ
nihatya puruṣavyāghraḥ prāgjyotiṣam upādravat
Note: k: T G2-5 M ins.; D6 after 52ab: :kbāhyaprākāramadhye tu jaghāna puruṣottamaḥ |
Note: k: After the above, D6 T G1.3-5 M1-3 ins. a passage given in App. I (No. 28), while D3 ins. it after 52cd. :kNote: k: After App. I (No. 28), T1.2 G M4 ins.: :kbhagavañ śrotum icchāmi vistareṇa kathām imām |
avadhīn narakaṃ kṛṣṇaḥ kathaṃ vada tapodhana |
taṃ ca pañcajanaṃ ghoraṃ narakasya mahāsuram //
tataḥ prāgjyotiṣaṃ nāma dīpyamānam iva śriyā
puram āsādayām āsa tatra yuddham abhūn mahat //
Note: k: K2 ins. after 52, Ñ2.3 V B Dn2 Ds G2 after 53, Dn1 after 50ab, D5 after 53ab: :k
Note: k: read 1058A* for "1058*" (second time!) :k
tataḥ prādhmāyac chaṅkhaṃ pāñcajanyaṃ mahābalaḥ |
Note: k: the first pada is one long syllable short :k
śuśruve sumahāśabdaḥ saṃvartaninado yathā ||
śrūyate triṣu lokeṣu bhīmagambhīranisvanaḥ |
taṃ śrutvā narakaś cāsīt krodhasaṃraktalocanaḥ ||
lohacakrāṣṭasaṃyuktaṃ trinalvapratimaṃ ratham ||
ratnakāñcanacitrāḍhyaṃ vedikābhogavistaram ||
vajradhvajena mahatā kāñcanena virājitam |
hemadaṇḍapatākāḍhyaṃ vaidūryamaṇikūbaram ||
yuktam aśvasahasreṇa rathaṃ pararathārujam |
lohajālaiś ca saṃchannaṃ citrabhaktivirājitam ||
rathamadhyagato vīraḥ sasaṃdhya iva bhāskaraḥ |
nānāpraharaṇākīrṇaṃ rathaṃ hemapariṣkṛtam ||
vajraṃ tathoraśchadam induvarṇaṃ |
vyānaddhamuktānalatulyatejāḥ |
kirīṭamūrdhārkahutāśanābhaḥ |
karṇau tathā kuṇḍalayor jvalantau ||
dhūmravarṇā mahākāyā raktākṣā vikṛtānanāḥ |
nānākavacinaḥ sarve daityadānavarākṣasāḥ ||
khaṅgacarmadharāḥ kecit kecit tūṇīrasaṃvṛtāḥ |
śaktihastās tathā kecic chūlahastās tathāpare ||
gajavājirathaughaiś ca cālayantaś ca medinīm |
niryayur nagarāc chūrāḥ susaṃnaddhāḥ prahāriṇaḥ ||
vṛto daityagaṇaiḥ sārdhaṃ narakaḥ kālasaṃnibhaḥ ||
bherīśaṅkhamṛdaṅgānāṃ paṇavānāṃ sahasraśaḥ |
vādyamānān sa śuśrāva jīmūtaninadopamam ||
yataḥ kṛṣṇas tato gatvā sarve te vikṛtānanāḥ |
parivārya garutmantaṃ sarve 'yudhyanta saṃgatāḥ |
mahatā chādayām āsuḥ śaravarṣeṇa sainikāḥ ||
śaktiśūlagadāprāsāṃs tomarān sāyakān bahūn |
ākāśaṃ chādayām āsur vimuñcantaḥ sahasraśaḥ ||
kṛṣṇaḥ kṛṣṇāmbudākāraḥ śārṅgaṃ gṛhya dhanus tataḥ |
visphārya sumahaccāpaṃ dhanur jaladanisvanam ||
vyasṛjac charavarṣāṇi dānavānāṃ janārdanaḥ |
śaravarṣeṇa tat sainyaṃ vyadravat tu mahāhavāt ||
tad yuddham abhavad ghoraṃ ghorarūpeṇa rakṣasā ||
bhagnavyūhāś ca te sarve kṛṣṇabāṇaprapīḍitāḥ |
kecic chinnabhujāś caiva cchinnagrīvā śirānanāḥ |
kecic cakradvidhācchinnāḥ kecid bāṇārditorasaḥ ||
kecid dvidhākṛtāḥ śaktyā gajāśvarathavāhanāḥ |
kecit kaumodakībhinnāḥ kecic cakravidāritāḥ ||
evaṃ vipothitā sarvā gajāśvarathavāhinī |
tatrāsīn narakeṇāsya yuddhaṃ paramadāruṇam
yat samāsena vakṣyāmi tan me nigadataḥ śṛṇu //
trāsanaḥ surasaṃghānāṃ narakaḥ puruṣottamam
yodhayām āsa tejasvī madhuvanmadhusūdanam //
Note: k: K2 Ñ2.3 V B Dn Ds D5 G2 ins.: :k
krodharaktākṣavadano narakaḥ kālasaṃnibhaḥ |
jagrāha kārmukaṃ vīraḥ śakracāpam ivocchritam ||
tathārkakiraṇaprakhyaṃ bāṇaṃ jagrāha keśavaḥ |
divyenāstreṇa samare pūrayām āsa taṃ ratham ||
uttamāstraṃ mahāpātaṃ mumoca narako balī ||
vajravisphūrjitākāram āyāntaṃ vīkṣya keśavaḥ |
cicchedāstraṃ mahābhāgaś cakreṇa puruṣottamaḥ ||
vyahanat sārathiṃ cāsya śaraikeṇa jarārdanaḥ |
sarathaṃ sadhvajaṃ sāśvaṃ jaghāna daśabhiḥ śaraiḥ ||
tanutraṃ caiva ciccheda śareṇa madhusūdanaḥ |
tato vimuktakavacaḥ sarpasyeva tanur yathā ||
hatāśvo viratho vīro vitanutraś ca dānavaḥ |
jagrāha vimalajvālaṃ lohabhārārpitaṃ dṛḍham |
āvidhya sahasā muktaṃ śūlam indrāśaniprabham ||
tadāpatat tu saṃprekṣya śūlaṃ hemapariṣkṛtam |
dvidhā chinnaṃ kṣurapreṇa kṛṣṇenādbhutakarmaṇā |
Note: k: Ñ2.3 V1.2 B Ds D5 cont., Ś1 K1.3 D1.2 ins. after 55: :k
tad yuddham abhavad ghoraṃ ghorarūpeṇa rakṣasā |
śastrapātamahāghātaṃ narakeṇa mahātmanā |
muhūrtaṃ yodhayām āsa narakaṃ madhusūdanaḥ
athogracakraś cakreṇa pradīptenākarod dvidhā //
cakradvidhākṛtaṃ tasya śarīram apatad bhuvi
vibhaktaṃ krakaceneva gireḥ śṛṅgaṃ dvidhā kṛtam //
Note: k: K2 Ñ2 V B Dn Ds D1.2.4.5 G2 ins.: :k
kṛṣṇam āsādya deveśaṃ jagāmāstam ivāṃśumān ||
cakrotkṣiptanikṛttāṅgam uttamaṃ patitaṃ raṇe |
vajreṇeva vinirbhinnaṃ yathā gairikaparvatam |
Note: k: D1.2 cont.: :k
taṃ hatvā narakaṃ bhaumaṃ viṣṇur yādavanandanaḥ |
mumude tripuraṃ hatvā pureva tripurāntakaḥ |
bhūmis tu patitaṃ putraṃ nirīkṣyādāya kuṇḍale
upātiṣṭhata govindaṃ vacanaṃ cedam abravīt //
dattas tvayaiva govinda tvayaiva vinipātitaḥ
Note: k: After 59ab, K Ñ2.3 V B Dn Ds D1-5 G2 ins.: :kyathecchasi tathā krīḍa bālaḥ krīḍanakair iva |
ime te kuṇḍale deva prajās tasyānupālaya //
Note: k: After 59, D6 T1-3 G1.3-5 M ins.: :k
nirvighnam ṛṣayo devāś carantu vigatajvarāḥ |
prajāś carantu sukhinas tava deva prapālanāt |
nirvighnaṃ brāhmaṇā deva bhūyāsus tava śāsanāt |
ityuktvā sā dadau tasmai kuṇḍale lokaviśrute |
antardhānaṃ gatā devī tadā bhartṛsamīpataḥ |
Note: h: HV (CE) chapter 92, transliterated by Peter Bisschop, version of march 19, 2002 :h
nihatya narakaṃ bhaumaṃ vāsavopamavikramaḥ
vāsavāvarajo viṣṇur dadarśa narakālayam //
athārthagṛham āsādya narakasya janārdanaḥ
dadarśa dhanam akṣayyaṃ ratnāni vividhāni ca //
maṇimuktāpravālāni vaidūryasya ca saṃcayān
mahārajatakūṭāni tathā vajrasya saṃcayān //
jāmbūnadamayāny atra śātakumbhamayāni ca
pradīptajvalanābhāni ca śītaraśmiprabhāṇi ca
śayanāni mahārhāṇi tathā siṃhāsanāni ca //
hiraṇyavarṇaṃ ruciraṃ śītaraśmisamaprabham
dadarśa ca mahac chatraṃ varṣamāṇam ivāmbudam //
jātarūpasya śubhrasya dhārāḥ śatasahasraśaḥ
varuṇād āhṛtaṃ pūrvaṃ narakeṇeti naḥ śrutam //
yādṛśaṃ tu gṛhe dṛṣṭaṃ narakasya dhanaṃ bahu
na vai rājñā kubereṇa na śakreṇa yamena ca
ratnasaṃnicyas tādṛg dṛṣṭapūrvo na ca śrutaḥ //
hate bhaume nisunde ca hayagrīve ca dānave
upaninyus tatas tāni ratnāny antaḥpurāṇi ca //
dānavā hataśiṣṭā ye kośasaṃcayarakṣiṇaḥ
keśavāya mahārhāṇi yāny arhati janārdanaḥ //
imāni maṇiratnāni vividhāni vasūni ca
bhīmarūpāś ca mātaṅgāḥ pravālavikṛtāṅkuśāḥ //
hemasūtramahākakṣyāś cāpatomaraśālinaḥ
rucirābhiḥ patākābhir vasānā vividhāḥ kuthāḥ //
te ca viṃśatisāhasrā dvistāvatyaḥ kareṇavaḥ
aṣṭau śatasahasrāṇi deśajāś cottamā hayāḥ //
goṣu cāpi kṛto yāvat kāmas tava janārdanaḥ
tāvatīḥ prāpayiṣyāmo vṛṣṇyandhakaniveśanam //
āvikāni ca sūkṣmāṇi śayanāny āsanāni ca
kāmavyāhāriṇaś caiva pakṣiṇaḥ priyadarśanāḥ //
candanāgarukāṣṭhāni tathā kālīyakāny api
vasu yat triṣu lokeṣu dharmeṇādhigataṃ tvayā
prāpayiṣyāma tat sarvaṃ vṛṣṇyandhakaniveśanam //
devagandharvaratnāni pannagānāṃ ca yad vasu
tāni santīha sarvāṇi narakasya niveśane //
Note: k: D6 S ins.: :k
iti vijñāpitas tais tu dānavaiś ca janārdanaḥ |
Note: k: N2 ins. after 16 an addl. colophon. :k
sa tat sarvaṃ hṛṣīkeśaḥ pratigṛhya parīkṣya ca
sarvam āhārayāmāsa dānavair dvārakāṃ purīm //
tatas tad vāruṇaṃ chatraṃ svayam utkṣipya mādhavaḥ
hiraṇyavarṣaṃ varṣantam āruroha vihaṃgatam //
garuḍaṃ patatāṃ śreṣṭhaṃ mūrtimantam ivāmbudam
tato 'bhyayād giriśreṣṭham abhito maṇiparvatam //
tatra puṇyā vavur vātā hy abhavaṃś cāmalāḥ prabhāḥ
maṇīnāṃ hemavarṇānām abhibhūya divākaram //
tatra vaidūryavarṇāni dadarśa madhusūdanaḥ
satoraṇapatākāni dvārāṇi śayanāni ca //
vidyudgrathitameghābhaḥ prababhau maṇiparvataḥ
hemacitravimānaiś ca prāsādair upaśobhitaḥ //
tatra tā varahemābhā dadarśa madhusūdanaḥ
gandharvāsuramukhyānāṃ priyā duhitaras tathā //
dadarśa pṛthulaśroṇīḥ saṃruddhā girikandare
narakeṇa samānītā rakṣyamāṇāḥ samantataḥ //
triviṣṭapasame deśe tiṣṭhantam aparājitam
nivasantyo yathā devyaḥ sukhinyaḥ kāmavarjitāḥ //
parivavrur mahābāhum ekaveṇīdharāḥ striyaḥ
sarvāḥ kāṣāyavāsinyaḥ sarvāś ca niyatendriyāḥ //
vratopavāsatanvaṅgyaḥ kāṅkṣantyaḥ kṛṣṇadarśanam
sametya yadusiṃhasya sarvāś cakruḥ striyo 'ñjalīn //
narakaṃ nihataṃ jñātvā muraṃ caiva mahāsuram
hayagrīvaṃ nisundaṃ ca tāḥ kṛṣṇaṃ paryavārayan //
te cāsāṃ rakṣiṇo vṛddhā dānavā yadunandanam
kṛtāñjalipuṭāḥ sarve praṇipetur vayodhikāḥ //
tāsāṃ paramanārīṇām ṛṣabhākṣaṃ nirīkṣya tam
sarvāsām eva saṃkalpaḥ patitvenābhavat tataḥ //
tasya candropamaṃ vaktram udīkṣya niyatendriyāḥ
saṃprahṛṣṭā mahābāhum idaṃ vacanam abruvan //
satyaṃ bata purā vāyur ihāsmān vākyam abravīt
sarvabhūtarutajñaś ca devarṣir api nāradaḥ //
viṣṇur nārāyaṇo devaḥ śaṅkhacakragadāsibhṛt
sa bhaumaṃ narakaṃ hatvā bhartā ca bhavitā hi saḥ //
supriyaṃ bata paśyāmaś ciraśrutam ariṃdamam
darśanena kṛtārthā hi vayam adya mahātmanaḥ //
tatas tāḥ sāntvayāmāsa pramadā vāsavānujaḥ
sarvāḥ kamalapatrākṣīr dṛṣṭyā vācā ca mādhavaḥ //
yathārhataḥ sāntvayitvā samābhāṣya ca keśavaḥ
yānaiḥ kiṃkarasaṃyuktair uvāha madhusūdanaḥ //
kiṃkarāṇāṃ sahasrāṇāṃ rakṣasāṃ vātaraṃhasām
śibikāṃ vahatāṃ tatra nirghoṣaḥ sumahān abhūt //
tasya parvatamukhyasya śṛṅgaṃ yat paramārcitam
vimalārkendusaṃkāśaṃ maṇikāñcanatoraṇam //
sapakṣigaṇamātaṅgaṃ savyālamṛgapannagam
śākhāmṛgagaṇair juṣṭaṃ suprastaraśilātalam //
nyaṅkubhiś ca varāhaiś ca rurubhiś ca niṣevitam
saprapātamahāsānuṃ vicitraśikharadrumam //
atyadbhutam acintyaṃ ca mṛgavṛndaviloḍitam
jīvaṃjīvakasaṃghaiś ca barhibhiś ca nināditam //
tad apy atibalo viṣṇur dorbhyām utpāṭya bhāsvaram
āropayāmāsa tadā garuḍe pakṣiṇāṃ vare //
maṇiparvataśṛṅgaṃ ca sabhāryaṃ ca janārdanam
uvāha līlayā pakṣī garuḍaḥ patatāṃ varaḥ //
sa pakṣabalavikṣepair mahādriśikharopamaḥ
dikṣu sarvāsu saṃhrādaṃ janayāmāsa pakṣirāṭ //
ārujan parvatāgrāṇi pādapāṃś ca samākṣipan
saṃjahāra mahābhrāṇi vijahāra ca kānicit //
viṣayaṃ samatikramya devayoś candrasūryayoḥ
yayau vātajavaḥ pakṣī janārdanavaśe sthitaḥ //
sa merugirim āsādya devagandharvasevitam
devasadmāni sarvāṇi dadarśa madhusūdanaḥ //
viśveṣāṃ marutāṃ caiva sādhyānāṃ ca narādhipa
bhrājamānāny atikrāmad aśvinoś ca paraṃtapaḥ //
prāpya puṇyakṛtāṃ lokān devalokam ariṃdamaḥ
śakrasadma samāsādya praviveśa janārdanaḥ //
avatīrya sa tārkṣyāt tu dadarśa vibudhādhipam
prītaś caivābhyanandat taṃ devarājaḥ śatakratuḥ //
pradāya kuṇḍale divye vavande taṃ tadācyutaḥ
sabhāryo vibudhaśreṣṭhaṃ naraśreṣṭho janārdanaḥ //
so 'rcito devarājena ratnaiś ca pratipūjitaḥ
satyabhāmā ca paulomyā yathāvad abhinanditā //
Note: k: D6 T1.2.4 G1.3-5 M ins.: :k
āśliṣyete mahārāja te devyau lokaviśrute ||
idaṃ provāca paulomī satyabhāmāṃ haripriyām |
prītāsmi darśanād devi kiṃ bhūyaḥ karavāṇi te |
diṣṭyā hato bhavatyā tu narako duṣṭacetanaḥ |
ity uktā sā tadā devī kṛtam ity abravīc ca tām |
vāsavo vāsudevaś ca sahitau jagmatus tataḥ
adityā bhavanaṃ puṇyaṃ devamātur maharddhimat //
tatrāditim upāsyantīm apsarobhiḥ samantataḥ
dadṛśāte mahātmānau mahābhāgāṃ taponvitām //
tatas te kuṇḍale dattvā vavande tāṃ śacīpatiḥ
janārdanaṃ puraskṛtya kama caiva śaśaṃśa tat //
Note: k: For 55b, K2-4 N2.3 V B2 Dn Ds D1-5 T G M4 subst.: :k
pradāyāditinandanaḥ |
vavande tāṃ śacībhartā mātaraṃ svāṃ puraṃdaraḥ |
aditis tau sutau prītyā pariṣvajyābhinandya ca
āśirbhir anurūpābhir ubhāv abhyavadat tadā //
paulomī satyabhāmā ca prītyā paramayā yute
agṛhṇītāṃ varārhāyā devyāś ca caraṇau śubhau //
te cāpy abhyavadat premṇā devamātā yaśasvinī
yathāvad abravīc caiva janārdanam idaṃ vacaḥ //
adhṛsyaḥ sarvabhūtānām avadhyaś ca bhaviṣyasi
yathaiva devarājo 'yam ajito lokapūjitaḥ //
Note: k: K2.4 N2.3 V B D ins.: :k
Note: k: G2 cont. after *1069: :k
tava ceyaṃ varārohā nityaṃ ca priyadarśanā |
sarvalokeṣu vikhyātā divyagandhā manoramā |
Note: k: While G2 ins. after 59: :k
tatpurogamadevānām adhipas tvaṃ bhaviṣyasi |
satyabhāmottamā strīṇāṃ subhagā sthirayauvanā
jarāṃ na yāsyati vadhūr yāvat tvaṃ kṛṣṇa mānuṣaḥ //
evam abhyārcitaḥ kṛṣṇo devamātrā mahābalaḥ
devarājābhyanujñāto ratnaiś ca pratipūjitaḥ //
vainateyaṃ samāruhya sahitaḥ satyabhāmayā
devākrīḍān parikrāman pūjyamānaḥ surarṣibhiḥ //
sa dadarśa mahābāhur ākrīḍe vāsavasya ha
divyam abhyarcitaṃ caityaṃ pārijātaṃ mahādrumam //
nityapuṣpadharaṃ divyaṃ puṇyagandham anuttamam
yam āsādya janaḥ sarvo jātiṃ smarati paurvikīm //
saṃrakṣyamāṇaṃ devais taṃ prasahyāmitavikramaḥ
utpāṭyāropayāmāsa viṣṇus taṃ vai mahādrumam //
so 'paśyat satyabhāmāṃ ca divyām apsarasaṃ hariḥ
Note: k: K2 N2.3 V1.2 B Ds D2.4-6 ins.: :kpṛṣṭhataḥ satyabhāmā ca divyā yoṣābhivīkṣitā |
tataḥ prāyād dvāravatīṃ vāyujuṣṭena vai pathā //
śrutvā tad devarājas tu karma kṛṣṇasya vai tadā
anumene mahābāhuḥ kṛtaṃ karmeti cābravīt //
sa pūjyamānas tridaśair maharṣigaṇasaṃstutaḥ
pratasthe dvārakāṃ kṛṣṇo devalokād ariṃdamaḥ //
so 'bhipatya mahābāhur dīrgham adhvānam alpavat
Note: k: S1 K1 ins.: :kāsasāda mahābāhuḥ purīṃ dvāravatīṃ tadā |
pūjito devarājena dadṛśe yādavīṃ purīm //
Note: k: T1-3 G1.3-5 M ins.: :k
hatvā tu narakaṃ bhaumaṃ dattvā kuṇḍalam uttamam |
hṛtvā taṃ pārijātaṃ ca praṇamya suramātaram |
tathā karma mahat kṛtvā bhagavān vāsavānujaḥ
upāyād dvārakāṃ viṣṇuḥ śrīmān garuḍavāhanaḥ //
Note: k: After this adhy. All Mss. (except S1 M1-3) ins. a passage given in App. I (No. 29). :k
Note: h: HV (CE) chapter 93, transliterated by Julie Bélanger, proof-read by André Couture, version of May 25, 2002 :h
dadarśātha purīṃ kṛṣṇo dvārakāṃ garuḍe sthitaḥ
devasadmapratīkāśāṃ samantāt pratināditām //
maṇiparvatayātrāṃ hi gate devakinandane
Note: k: After 2a, Ñ2 V B Ds D5.6 T1-3 G1.3-5 M4 ins.: :ktathā krīḍāgṛhāṇi ca |
Note: k: Ñ2 V1 B DS D6 ins. (Dn D2.3.5 after the first occurrence of 8cd): :kudyānavanamukhyāni valabhīcatvarāṇi ca |
Note: k: Ñ2 V1 B Dn Ds D5.6 ins. (T1-3 G1.3-5 M4 after 1073): :ksaṃprāpte tu tadā kṛṣṇe |
viśvakarmāṇam āhūya devarājo 'bravīd idam //
priyam icchasi cet kartuṃ mahyaṃ śilpavatāṃ vara
kṛṣṇapriyārthaṃ bhūyas tvaṃ kariṣyasi manoharām //
udyānavanasaṃbādhāṃ dvārakāṃ svargasaṃnibhām
kuruṣva vibudhaśreṣṭha yathā mama purī tathā //
yat kiṃ cit triṣu lokeṣu ratnabhūtaṃ prapaśyasi
tena saṃyujyatāṃ kṣipraṃ purī dvāravatī tvayā //
kṛṣṇo hi surakāryeṣu sarveṣu satatotthitaḥ
saṃgrāmān ghorarūpāṃś ca vigāhati mahābalaḥ //
tām indravacanād gatvā viśvakarmā purīṃ tataḥ
alaṃcakre samantād vai yathendrasyāmarāvatī //
tāṃ dadarśa daśārhāṇām īśvaraḥ pakṣivāhanaḥ
viśvakarmakṛtair divyair abhiprāyair alaṃkṛtām //
tāṃ purīṃ dvārakāṃ dṛṣṭvā vibhunārāyaṇo hariḥ
hṛṣṭaḥ sarvārthasaṃpannaḥ praveṣṭum upacakrame //
so 'paśyad vṛkṣaṣaṇḍāṃś ca ramyān dṛṣṭimanoharān
dvārakāṃ prati dāśārhaś citritāṃ viśvakarmaṇā //
padmaṣaṇḍākulābhiś ca haṃsasevitavāribhiḥ
gaṅgāsindhuprakāśābhiḥ parikhābhir vṛtāṃ purīm //
prākāreṇārkavarṇena śātakaumbhena rājatā
cayamūrdhni niviṣṭena dyāṃ yathaivābhramālayā //
kānanair nandanaprakhyais tathā caitrarathopamaiḥ
babhau cāruparikṣiptā dvārakā dyaur ivāmbubhiḥ //
bhāti raivatakaḥ śailo ramyasānuguhājiraḥ
pūrvasyāṃ diśi lakṣmīvān maṇikāñcanatoraṇaḥ //
dakṣiṇasyāṃ latāveṣṭaḥ pañcavarṇo virājate
indraketupratīkāśaḥ paścimasyāṃ tathākṣayaḥ //
Note: k: T1-3 G1.3.5 M4 ins.: :k
citrakānanaramyaś ca pañcānananiṣevitaḥ |
uttarāṃ diśam atyarthaṃ vibhūṣayati veṇumān
mandarādripratīkāśaḥ pāṇḍuraḥ pārthivarṣabha //
citrakambalavarṇaṃ ca pāñcajanyavanaṃ mahat
sarvartukavanaṃ caiva bhāti raivatakaṃ prati //
latāveṣṭaṃ samantāt tu meruprabhavanaṃ mahat
bhāti bhārgavanaṃ caiva puṣpakaṃ ca mahad vanam //
akṣakair bījakaiś caiva mandāraiś copaśobhitam
śatāvartavanaṃ caiva karavīrakarambhi ca //
bhāti caitrarathaṃ caiva nandanaṃ ca mahad vanam
ramaṇaṃ bhāvanaṃ caiva veṇumad vai samantataḥ //
vaidūryapatrair jalajais tathā mandākinī nadī
bhāti puṣkariṇī ramyā pūrvasyāṃ diśi bhārata //
sānavo bhūṣitās tatra keśavasya priyaiṣibhiḥ
bahubhir devagandharvaiś coditair viśvakarmaṇā //
mahānadī dvāravatīṃ pañcāśadbhir mahāmukhaiḥ
praviṣṭā puṇyasalilā bhāvayantī samantataḥ //
aprameyāṃ mahotsedhām agādhaparikhāyutām
prākāravarasaṃpannāṃ sudhāpāṇḍuralepanām //
tīkṣṇayantraśataghnībhir yantrajālaiś ca bhūṣitām
āyasaiś ca mahācakrair dadṛśe dvārakāṃ purīm //
aṣṭau rathasahasrāṇi nagare kiṃkiṇīkinām
samucchritapatākāni yathā devapure tathā //
aṣṭayojanavistīrṇām acalāṃ dvādaśāyatām
dviguṇopaniveśāṃ ca dadṛśe dvārakāṃ purīm //
aṣṭamārgamahākakṣyāṃ mahāṣoḍaśacatvarām
ekamārgaparikṣiptāṃ sākṣād uśanasā kṛtām
striyo 'pi yasyāṃ yudhyeran kim u vṛṣṇimahārathāḥ //
vyūhānām uttamā mārgāḥ sapta caiva mahāpathāḥ
tatra vai vihitāḥ sākṣād vividhā viśvakarmaṇā
tasmin puravaraśreṣṭhe dāśārhāṇāṃ yaśasvinām //
veśmāni jahṛṣe dṛṣṭvā tato devakinandanaḥ
kāñcanair maṇisopānair upetāni nṛharṣaṇaiḥ //
bhīmaghoṣamahāghoṣaiḥ prāsādavaracatvaraiḥ
samucchritapatākāni pāriplavanibhāni ca //
kāñcanāgrāṇi bhāsvanti merukūṭanibhāni ca
pāṇḍupāṇḍuraśṛṅgaiś ca śātakumbhaparicchadaiḥ
ramyasānuguhāśṛṅgair vicitrair iva parvataiḥ //
Note: k: K Ñ2.3 V B D T G M4 ins.: :k
prāsādaśikharāṇi ca |
gṛhāṇi ramaṇīyāni |
pañcavarṇasavarṇaiś ca puṣpavṛṣṭisamaprabhaiḥ
parjanyatulyanirghoṣair nānārūpair ivādribhiḥ //
dāvāgnijvalitaprakhyair nirmitair viśvakarmaṇā
ālikhadbhir ivākāśam aticandrārkabhāsvaraiḥ //
tair dāśārhair mahābhāgair babhāse bhavanahradaiḥ
vāsudevendraparjanyair gṛhameghair alaṃkṛtā //
dadṛśe dvārakā cāru meghair dyaur iva saṃvṛtā
sākṣād bhagavato veśma vihitaṃ viśvakarmaṇā //
dadṛśe vāsudevasya caturyojanam āyatam
tāvad eva ca vistīrṇam aprameyaṃ mahādhanaiḥ //
prāsādavarasaṃpannair yuktaṃ jagati parvataiḥ
yaś cakāra mahābhāgas tvaṣṭā vāsavacoditaḥ //
prāsādaṃ caiva hemābhaṃ sarvabhūtamanoharam
meror iva gireḥ śṛṅgam ucchritaṃ kāñcanaṃ mahat
rukmiṇyāḥ pravaraṃ vāsaṃ vihitaṃ viśvakarmaṇā //
satyabhāmā punar veśma yadāvasata pāṇḍuram
vicitramaṇisopānaṃ tad vidur bhogavān iti
vimalādityavarṇābhiḥ patākābhir alaṃkṛtam //
vyaktasaṃjavanoddeśo yaś caturdiṅmahādhvajaḥ
sa ca prāsādamukhyo yo jāmbavatyā vibhūṣitaḥ
prabhayābhyabhavat sarvāṃs tān anyān bhāskaro yathā //
udyadbhāskaravarṇābhas tayor antaramāśritaḥ
viśvakarmakṛto divyaḥ kailāsaśikharopamaḥ //
jāmbūnada ivādīptaḥ pradīptajvalanopamaḥ
sāgarapratimas tiṣṭhan merur ity abhiviśrutaḥ //
tasmin gāndhārarājasya duhitā kulaśālinī
gāndhārī bharataśreṣṭha keśavena niveśitā //
padmakūṭam iti khyātaṃ padmvarṇaṃ mahāprabham
subhīmāyā mahākūṭaṃ vāsaṃ suparamārcitam //
sūryaprabhas tu prāsādaḥ sarvakāmaguṇair yutaḥ
lakṣmaṇāyāḥ kuruśreṣṭha nirdiṣṭaḥ śārṅgadhanvanā //
vaidūryamaṇivarṇābhaḥ prāsādo haritaprabhaḥ
yaṃ viduḥ sarvabhūtāni param ity eva bhārata //
vāsaṃ taṃ mitravindāyā devarṣigaṇapūjitam
mahiṣyā vāsudevasya bhūṣaṇaṃ teṣu veśmasu //
yas tu prāsādamukhyo 'tra vihito viśvakarmaṇā
atīva saumyaḥ so 'py āsīd viṣṭhitaḥ parvato yathā //
sudattāyā nivāsaṃ taṃ praśastaṃ sarvadaivataiḥ
mahiṣyā vāsudevasya ketumān iti viśrutaḥ //
tatra prāsādamukhyo vai yaṃ tvaṣṭā vidadhe svayam
yojanāyataviṣkambhaḥ sarvaratnamayaḥ śubhaḥ //
sa śrīmān virajo nāma vyarājat tatra suprabhaḥ
upasthānagṛhaṃ yatra keśavasya mahātmanaḥ //
tasmin suvihitāḥ sarve rukmadaṇḍāḥ patākinaḥ
sadane vāsudevasya mārgasaṃjavanadhvajāḥ
ratnajālāni tatraiva tatra tatra niveśitāḥ //
āhṛtya yadusiṃhena vaijayanto 'calo mahān
haṃsakūṭasya yacchṛṅgam indradyumnasaraḥ prati
ṣaṣṭitālasamutsedham ardhayojanam āyatam //
sakiṃnaramahānāgaṃ tad apy amitatejasā
paśyatāṃ sarvabhūtānām ānītaṃ lokaviśrutam //
ādityapathagaṃ yat tu meroḥ śikharam uttamam
jāmbūnadamayaṃ divyaṃ triṣu lokeṣu viśrutam
tad apy utpāṭya kṛṣṇārtham ānītaṃ viśvakarmaṇā //
bhrājamānam atīvograṃ sarvauṣadhivibhūṣitam
tad indravacanāt tvaṣṭā ānayat kāryahetunā
pārijātas tu tatraiva keśavenāhṛtaḥ svayam //
nīyamāne hi tatrāsīd yuddham adbhutakarmaṇaḥ
kṛṣṇasya yo 'bhyarakṣaṃs taṃ devāḥ pādapam uttamam
puṇḍarīkaśatair juṣṭaṃ vimānaiś ca hiraṇmayaiḥ //
vihitā vāsudevārthaṃ brahmasthalamahādrumāḥ
padmākulajalopetā ratnasaugandhikotpalāḥ
maṇihemaplavākīrṇāḥ puṣkariṇyaḥ sarāṃsi ca //
tāsāṃ paramakūlāni śobhayanti mahādrumāḥ
sālās tālāḥ kadambāś ca śataśākhāś ca rohiṇāḥ //
ye ca haimavatā vṛkṣā ye ca meruruhās tathā
āhṛtya yadusiṃhārthaṃ vihitā viśvakarmaṇā //
raktapītāruṇaprakhyāḥ śvetapuṣpāś ca pādapāḥ
sarvartuphalasaṃpannās teṣu kānanasaṃdhiṣu //
samākulajalopetāḥ pītaśarkaravālukāḥ
tasmin puravare nadyaḥ prasannasalilā hradāḥ //
puṣpākulajalopetā nānādrumalatākulāḥ
aparāś cābhavan nadyo hemaśarkaravālukāḥ //
Note: k: D5 ins.: :k
... nīlotpalavibhūṣitāḥ |
nadyaḥ padmacayodbhāsaḥ ... |
mattabarhiṇasaṃghaiś ca kokilaiś ca sadāmadaiḥ
bahūvuḥ paramopetās tasyāṃ puryāṃ tu pādapāḥ //
tatraiva gajayūthāni pure gomahiṣās tathā
nivāsaś ca kṛtas tatra varāhamṛgapakṣiṇām //
puryāṃ tasyāṃ tu ramyāyāṃ prākāro vai hiraṇmayaḥ
vyaktaṃ kiṣkuśatotsedho vihito viśvakarmaṇā //
tena te ca mahāśailāḥ saritaś ca sarāṃsi ca
parikṣiptāni bhaumena vanāny upavanāni ca //
Note: k: T1.3.4 G1.3-5 M ins. (T2 after 67): :k
prāsādāś caiva saṃvītā lokālokaviśāradāḥ |
tasyaiva yadusiṃ hasya bhavanāl lokaviśrutāt ||
tasmād abhyadhikaṃ sadma vihitaṃ viśvakarmaṇā |
rāmasya yadusiṃhasya śobhate 'timanoharam |
Note: h: HV (CE) chapter 94, transliterated by Julie Bélanger, proof-read by André Couture, version of June 12, 2002 :h
evam ālokayām āsa dvārakāṃ vṛṣabhekṣaṇaḥ
apaśyat svagṛhaṃ kṛṣṇaḥ prāsādaśataśobhitam //
maṇistambhasahasrāṇām ayutair vidhṛtaṃ sitam
toraṇair jvalanaprakhyair maṇividrumarājataiḥ
tatra tatra prabhāsadbhiś citrakāñcanavedikaiḥ //
prāsādas tatra sumahān kṛṣṇopasthāniko 'bhavat
sphāṭikastambhavidhṛto vistīrṇaḥ sarvakāñcanaḥ //
padmākulajalopetā raktasaugandhikotpalāḥ
maṇihemanibhāś citrā ratnasopānabhūṣitāḥ //
mattabarhiṇasaṃghaiś ca kokilaiś ca sadāmadaiḥ
babhūvuḥ paramopetā vāpyaś ca vikacotpalāḥ //
viśvakarmakṛtaḥ śailaḥ prākāras tasya veśmanaḥ
vyaktakiṣkuśatotsedhaḥ parikhāyūthaveṣṭitaḥ //
tad gṛhaṃ vṛṣṇisiṃhasya nirmitaṃ viśvakarmaṇā
mahendraveśmapratimaṃ samantād ardhayojanam //
tatas taṃ pāṇḍuraṃ śaurir mūrdhni tiṣṭhan garutmataḥ
prītaḥ śaṅkham upādhmāsīd dviṣatāṃ lomaharṣaṇam //
tasya śaṅkhasya śabdena sāgaraś cukṣubhe bhṛśam
rarāsa ca nabhaḥ kṛtsnaṃ tac citram abhacat tadā //
pāñcajanyasya nirghoṣaṃ saṃśrutya kukurāndhakāḥ
viśokāḥ samapadyanta garuḍasya ca darśanāt //
śaṅkhacakragadāpāṇiṃ garuḍasyopari sthitam
dṛṣṭvā jahṛṣire bhaumā bhāskaropamatejasam //
tatas tūryapraṇādaś ca bherīṇāṃ ca mahāsvanaḥ
siṃhanādaś ca saṃjajñe sarveṣāṃ puravāsinām //
tataḥ sarve daśārhāś ca sarve ca kukurāndhakāḥ
prīyamāṇāḥ samājagmur ālokya madhusūdanam //
vasudevaṃ puraskṛtya bherīśaṅkharavaiḥ saha
ugraseno yayau rājā vāsudevaniveśanam //
anandinī paryacarat sveṣu veśmasu devakī
rohiṇī ca yathoddeśam āhukasya ca yāḥ striyaḥ //
tataḥ kṛṣṇaḥ suparṇena svaṃ niveśanam abhyayāt
cacāra ca yathoddeśam īśvarānucaro hariḥ //
avatīrya gṛhadvāri kṛṣṇas tu yadunandanaḥ
yathārhaṃ pūjayām āsa yādavān yādavarṣabhaḥ //
rāmāhukagadākrūra pradyumnādibhir arcitaḥ
praviveśa gṛhaṃ śaurir ādāya maṇiparvatam //
taṃ ca śakrasya dayitaṃ pārijātaṃ mahādrumam
praveśayām āsa gṛhaṃ pradyumno rukmiṇīsutaḥ //
te 'nyonyaṃ dadṛśur bhaumā dehabandhān amānuṣān
pārijātaprabhāvena tato mumudire janāḥ //
taiḥ stūyamāno govindaḥ prahṛṣṭair yādaveśvaraiḥ
praviveśa gṛhaṃ śrīmān vihitaṃ viśvakarmaṇā //
tato 'ntaḥpuramadhye tac chikharaṃ maṇiparvatam
nyaveśayad ameyātmā vṛṣṇibhiḥ sahito 'cyutaḥ //
taṃ ca divyaṃ drumaśreṣṭhaṃ pārijātam amitrajit
arcyam arcitam avyagram iṣṭe deśe nyaveśayat //
anujñāya tato jñātīn keśavaḥ paravīrahā
tāḥ striyaḥ pūjayām āsa saṃkṣiptā narakeṇa yāḥ //
vastrair ābharaṇair bhogair dāsībhir dhanasaṃcayaiḥ
hāraiś candrāṃśusaṃkāśair maṇibhiś ca mahāprabhaiḥ //
Note: k: Ś1 ins.: :k
bhūṣaṇair vividhair api |
gandhaiś ca vividhair divyair |
pūrvam abhyarcitāś caiva vasudevena tāḥ striyaḥ
vedakyā saha rohiṇyā revatyā cāhukena ca //
satyabhāmottamā strīṇāṃ saubhāgyenābhavat tadā
kuṭumbasyeśvarī tv āsīd rukmiṇī bhīṣmakātmajā //
Note: k: S (except G2.3) G (ed.) ins.: :k
sarvakāryasamādhyakṣā keśavasyātivallabhā |
tāsāṃ yathārhaṃ harmyāṇi prāsādaśikharāṇi ca
ādideśa gṛhān kṛṣṇaḥ paribarhāṃś ca puṣkalān //
Note: k: S (except G2) G(ed) ins.: :k
satyabhāmā sadā viṣṇoḥ pārśvasthā saṃsadi priyā |
Note: h: HV (CE) chapter 95, transliterated by Julie Bélanger, proof-read by André Couture, version of June 12, 2002 :h
tataḥ saṃpūjya garuḍaṃ vāsudevo 'numānya ca
sakhivac copagṛhyainam anujajñe gṛhaṃ prati //
so 'nujñāto hi satkṛtya praṇamya ca janārdanam
ūrdhvam ācakrame pakṣī yatheṣṭaṃ gaganecaraḥ //
sa pakṣavātasaṃkṣubdhaṃ samudraṃ makarālayam
kṛtvā vegena mahatā yayau pūrvaṃ mahodadhim //
kṛtyakāla upasthāsya ity uktvā garuḍe gate
kṛṣṇo dadarśa pitaraṃ vṛddham ānakaduṃdubhim //
ugrasenaṃ ca rājānaṃ baladevaṃ ca mādhavaḥ
kāśyaṃ sāṃdīpaniṃ caiva brahmagārgyaṃ tathaiva ca //
anyāṃś ca vṛddhān vṛṣṇīnāṃ tāṃś ca bhojāndhakāṃs tathā
ratnapravekair dāśārho vīryalabdhais tadārcayat //
hatā brahmadviśaḥ sarve yajanty andhakavṛṣṇayaḥ
raṇāt pratinivṛtto 'yam akṣato madhusūdanaḥ //
Note: k: T1-3 G1.3-5 M4 ins. after the first occurrence of 7cd, T4 M1-3 G(ed.) after 7ab: :k
prītāś ca munayaḥ sarve rakṣitā yadusattamāḥ |
iti prītā yaduvṛṣā vardhayanti janārdanam |
iti catvararathyāsu dvāravatyāṃ supūjitaḥ
cākriko ghoṣayām āsa puruṣo mṛṣṭakuṇḍalaḥ //
Note: k: S (except G2) G(ed.) ins.: :k
nirvighnaṃ munayo rājaṃś carantu vividhaṃ tapaḥ |
nihato narako duṣṭaḥ sānugaḥ sabalānvitaḥ |
tataḥ sāṃdīpaniṃ pūrvam upagamya janārdanaḥ
vavande vṛṣṇinṛpatim āhukaṃ vinayānvitaḥ //
athāśruparipūrṇākṣam ānandagatacetasam
vavande saha rāmeṇa pitaraṃ vāsavānujaḥ //
tataḥ śeṣān abhikramya satkṛtya ca yathārhataḥ
sarveṣāṃ nāma jagrāha dāśārhāṇām adhokṣajaḥ //
tataḥ sarvāṇi divyāni sarvaratnamayāni ca
āsanāgryāṇi viviśur upendrapramukhās tadā //
tatas tad dhanam akṣayyaṃ kiṃkarair yat samāhṛtam
sabhāṃ samānayām āsuḥ puruṣāḥ kṛṣṇaśāsanāt //
tataḥ sa mānayām āsa dāśārhān yadusattamān
sarvān duṃdubhiśabdena pūjayiṣyañ janārdanaḥ //
tām āsanavatīṃ ramyāṃ maṇividrumatoraṇām
sudāśārhīṃ sudāśārhā viviśuḥ kṛṣṇaśāsanāt //
tataḥ puruṣasiṃhaiḥ sā yadubhiḥ sarvato vṛtā
Note: k: D1-3.5 T1-3 G M4 ins.: :ksarvārthaguṇasaṃpannā sā sabhā bharatarṣabha |
śuśubhe 'bhyadhikaṃ śubhrā siṃhair giriguhā yathā //
rāmeṇa saha govindaḥ kāñcanaṃ mahad āsanam
ugrasenaṃ puraskṛtya bheje vṛṣṇipuraskṛtaḥ //
tatropaviṣṭāṃs tān vīrān yathāprīti yathāvayaḥ
samābhāṣya yaduśreṣṭhān uvāca madhusūdanaḥ //
Note: h: HV (CE) chapter 96, transliterated by Julie Bélanger, proof-read by André Couture, version of June 17, 2002 :h
bhavatāṃ puṇyakīrtīnāṃ tapobalasamādhibhiḥ
apadhyānāc ca pāpātmā bhaumaḥ sa narako hataḥ //
mokṣitaṃ bandhanād guptaṃ kanyāpuravaraṃ mahat
maṇiparvatam utpāṭya śikharaṃ caitad āhṛtam //
ayaṃ dhanaughaḥ sumahān kiṃkarair āhṛto mayā
īśā bhavantas tasyeti tān uktvā virarāma ha //
tac chrutvā vāsudevasya bhojavṛṣṇyandhakā vacaḥ
jahṛṣur hṛṣṭalomānaḥ pūjayanto janārdanam //
ūcuś cainaṃ nṛvīrās te kṛtāñjalipuṭās tataḥ
naitac citraṃ mahābāho tvayi devakinandana //
yat kṛtvā duṣkaraṃ karma devair api suduṣkaram
lālayeḥ svajanaṃ bhogai ratnaiś ca svayam arjitaiḥ //
tataḥ sarvadaśārhāṇām āhukasya ca yāḥ striyaḥ
prīyamāṇāḥ sabhāṃ jagmur vāsudevadidṛkṣayā //
devakīsaptamā devyo rohiṇī ca śubhānanā
dadṛśuḥ kṛṣṇam āsīnaṃ rāmaṃ caiva mahābhujam //
tau tu pūrvam atikramya rohiṇīm abhivādya ca
abhyavādayatāṃ devau devakīṃ rāmakeśavau //
sā tābhyām ṛṣabhākṣābhyāṃ putrābhyāṃ śuśubhe 'dhikam
aditir devamāteva mitreṇa varuṇena ca //
tataḥ prāptau narāgryau tu tasyā duhitaraṃ tadā
ekānaṃśeti yām āhur narā vai kāmarūpiṇīm //
tathā kṣaṇamuhūrtābhyāṃ yayā jajñe saheśvaraḥ
yatkṛte sagaṇaṃ kaṃsaṃ jaghāna puruṣottamaḥ //
sā kanyā vavṛdhe tatra vṛṣṇisadmani pūjitā
putravat pālyamānā vai vāsudevājñayā tadā //
tām ekām āhur utpannām ekānaṃśeti mānavāḥ
Note: k: For 14ab, N (except Ś1) G2 subst.: :kekānaṃśeti yām āhur utpannāṃ mānavā bhuvi |
yogakanyāṃ durādharṣāṃ rakṣārthaṃ keśavasya ca //
tāṃ vai sarve sumanasaḥ pūjayanti sma yādavāḥ
devavad divyavapuṣā krṣṇaḥ saṃrakṣito yayā //
tāṃ ca tatropasaṃgamya priyām iva sakhīṃ sakhā
dakṣiṇena karāgreṇa parijagrāha mādhavaḥ //
tathaiva sāmo 'tibalas tāṃ pariṣvajya bhāvinīm
mūrdhny upāghrāya savyena parijagrāha pāṇinā //
dadṛśus tāṃ priyāṃ madhye bhaginīṃ rāmakṛṣṇayoḥ
rukmapadmakaravyagrāṃ śriyaṃ padmālayām iva //
athākṣatamahāvṛṣṭyā puṣpaiś ca vividhaiḥ śubhaiḥ
avakīrya ca lājais tāṃ striyo jagmur yathāgatam //
tatas te yādavāḥ sarve pūjayanto janārdanam
upopaviviśuḥ prītāḥ praśaṃsanto 'dbhutaṃ kṛtam //
pūjyamāno mahābāhuḥ paurāṇāṃ rativardhanaḥ
vijahāra mahākīrtir devair iva sa taiḥ saha //
samāsīneṣu sarveṣu yādaveṣu janārdanam
niyogāt tridaśendrasya nārado 'bhyāgamat sabhām //
so 'tha saṃpūjitaḥ pūjyaḥ śūrais tair yadupuṃgavaiḥ
kare saṃspṛśya govindaṃ viveśa mahad āsanam //
Note: k: Ds1 (marg.) ins.: :k
tataḥ prāha mahābāhur āhuko nṛpatir munim |
mune vācaya kiṃ cid vai purāṇaṃ paramottamam ||
tatheti hariṇā bhūpa harivaṃśasya pustakam |
nikṣiptam āsane puṇye nārado 'vācayat tadā ||
śrotavyo 'py uddhavaś cāśu bhūtvā maunam upāśritaḥ |
sukhopaviṣṭas tūṣṇīṃ tāṃ nārado 'vācayat kathāṃ |
sukhopaviṣṭas tān vṛṣṇīn upaviṣṭān uvāca ha
āgataṃ śakravacanāj jānīdhvaṃ māṃ nararṣabhāḥ //
śṛṇudhvaṃ rājaśārdūlāḥ kṛṣṇasyāsya parākramam
yāni karmāṇi kṛtavān bālyāt prabhṛti keśavaḥ //
ugrasenasutaḥ kaṃsaḥ sarvān nirmathya bāndhavān
rājyaṃ jagrāha durbuddhir badhvā pitaram āhukam //
samāśritya jarāsaṃdhaṃ śvaśuraṃ kulapāṃsanaḥ
bhojavṛṣṇyandhakān sarvān avamanyata durmatiḥ //
jñātikāryaṃ cikīrṣaṃs tu vasudevaḥ pratāpavān
ugrasenasya rakṣārthaṃ svaputraṃ paryarakṣata //
Note: k: Ñ2 ins.: :k
nandagopasya bhavane govrajeṣu ca vardhitaḥ |
sa gopaiḥ saha dharmātmā mathuropavane vasan
atyadbhutāni karmāṇi kṛtavān madhusūdanaḥ //
pratyakṣaṃ śūrasenānāṃ śrūyate mahad adbhutam
yathānena śayānena śakaṭāntaracāriṇā //
rākṣasī nihatā raudrā śakunīveṣadhāriṇī
pūtanā nāma ghorā sā mahākāyā mahābalā
viṣadigdhaṃ stanaṃ kṣudrā prayacchantī mahātmane //
dadṛśus tāṃ vinihatāṃ rākṣasīṃ te vanecarāḥ
Note: k: Ñ2 V2 B1 Dn Ds D1 ins.: :kbaleḥ sutāṃ mahāghorāṃ bhīṣaṇāṃ vikṛtānanām |
punarjāto 'yam ity āhur uktas tasmād adhokṣajaḥ //
atyadbhutam idaṃ cāsīd yac chiśuḥ puruṣottamaḥ
pādāṅguṣṭhena śakaṭaṃ krīḍamāno vyaloḍayat //
Note: k: T1-3 G1.3-5 M4 ins. (T4 M1-3 cont. after 1091*): :k
bhakṣayan dadhi govindaḥ payaḥpānaṃ ca sāgrajaḥ |
dāmnā colūkhale baddho viprakurvan kumārakān
Note: k: T4 M1-3 ins.: :kulūkhale parāmṛdgād (sic) vṛkṣau satyopacāyinau |
dāmodara iti khyāto vasudevasutas tataḥ //
Note: k: K V B Dn Ds D1.4-6 G2 subst. for 34cd (T1-3 G1.3.5 M4 ins. after 34ab): :k
babhañjārjunavṛkṣau dvau khyāto dāmodaras tataḥ |
kāliyaś ca mahānāgo durādharṣo mahābalaḥ
krīḍatā vāsudevena nirjito yamunāhrade //
akrūrasya ca pratyakṣaṃ yan nāgabhavane prabhuḥ
pūjyamānas tadā nāgair divyaṃ vapur adhārayat //
śītavātārditā gāś ca dṛṣṭvā kṛṣṇena dhīmatā
dhṛto govardhanaḥ śailaḥ saptarātraṃ mahātmanā
śiśunā vāsudevena gavāṃ trāṇārtham icchatā //
tathā suduṣṭo 'tibalo mahākāyo narāntakṛt
gopatir vāsudevena nihato 'riṣṭakaḥ kṣitau //
dhenukaḥ sa mahākāyo dānavaḥ sumahābalaḥ
nihato vāsudevena gavāṃ trāṇāya durmatiḥ //
sunāmānam amitraghnaṃ sarvasainyapuraskṛtam
vṛkair vidrāvayām āsa grahītuṃ samupāgatam //
rauhiṇeyena saṃgamya vane vicaratā punaḥ
gopaveṣadhareṇaiva kaṃsasya bhayam āhṛtam //
tathā vanagataḥ śaurir daṃṣṭrāyudhabalaṃ hayam
pragrahaṃ bhojarājasya jaghāna puruṣottamaḥ //
pralambaś ca mahākāyo rauhiṇeyena dhīmatā
dānavo muṣṭinaikena kaṃsāmātyo nipātitaḥ //
etau hi vasudevasya putrau surasutopamau
vavṛdhāte mahātmānau brahmagārgyeṇa saṃskṛtau //
janmaprabhṛti cāpy etau gārgyeṇa paramarṣiṇā
yāthātathyena vijñāya saṃskāraṃ pratipāditau //
yadā tv imau naraśreṣṭhau sthitau yauvanagau mukhe
siṃhaśāvāv ivodīrṇau mattau haimavatau yathā //
tato manāṃsi gopīnāṃ haramāṇau mahābalau
āstāṃ goṣṭhacarau vīrau devaputrasamadyutī //
naitau jave vā yuddhe vā krīḍāsu vividhāsu vā
nandagopasya gopālāḥ śekuḥ pratisamīkṣitum //
vyūḍhoraskau mahābāhū sālaskandhāv ivodgatau
śrutvemau vyathitaḥ kaṃso mantribhiḥ sahito 'bhavat //
nāśakac ca yadā kaṃso grahītuṃ balakeśavau
nijagrāha tataḥ krodhād vasudevaṃ sabāndhavam //
sahograsenena tadā coravad gāḍhabandhanam
kālaṃ mahāntam avasat kṛcchram ānakaduṃdubhiḥ //
kaṃsas tu pitaraṃ badhvā śūrasenā? śaśāsa ha
jarāsaṃdhaṃ samāśritya tathaivāhvṛtibhīṣmakau //
kasyacit tv atha kālasya mathurāyāṃ mahotsavam
pinākinaṃ samuddiśya kaṃsaś cakre narādhipaḥ //
tatra mallāḥ samāpetur nānādeśyā viśāṃ pate
nartakā gāyakāś caiva kuśalā nṛttasāmasu //
tataḥ kaṃso mahātejā raṅgavāṭaṃ mahādhanam
kuśalaiḥ kārayām āsa śilpibhiḥ sādhuniṣṭhitaiḥ //
tatra mañcasahasrāṇi paurajānapadair janaiḥ
samākīrṇāny adṛśyanta jyotirbhir gaganaṃ yathā //
bhojarājaḥ śriyā juṣṭaṃ rājamañcaṃ maharddhimat
aruroha tataḥ kaṃso vimānaṃ sukṛtī yathā //
raṅgadvāre gajaṃ mattaṃ prabhūtāyudhakalpitam
śūrair adhiṣṭhitaṃ kaṃsaḥ sthāpayām āsa vīryavān //
yadā hi sa mahābhojo rāmakṛṣṇau samāgatau
śuśrāva puruṣavyāghrau sūryācandramasāv iva //
tadāprabhṛti yatto 'bhūd rakṣāṃ prati narādhipaḥ
na ca śete sukhaṃ rātrau rāmakṛṣṇau vicintayan //
śrutvā tu rāmakṛṣṇau ca taṃ samājam anuttamam
ubhau viviśatur vīrau śārdūlau govrajaṃ yathā //
tataḥ praveśe saṃruddhau rakṣibhiḥ puruṣarṣabhau
hatvā kuvalayāpīḍaṃ sasādinam ariṃdamau
avamṛdya durādharṣau raṅgaṃ viviśatus tadā //
cāṇūrāndhrau viniṣpiṣya keśavena balena ca
augraseniḥ sa duṣṭātmā sānujo vinipātitaḥ //
yat kṛtaṃ yadusiṃhena devair api suduḥsaham
karma tat keśavād anyaḥ kartum arhati kaḥ pumān //
yad dhi nādhigataṃ pūrvaiḥ prahrādabaliśambaraiḥ
tad idaṃ śauriṇā cittaṃ prāpitaṃ bhavatām iha //
etena muram ākramya daityaṃ pañcajanaṃ tathā
śailasaṃghān atikramya nisundaḥ sagaṇo hataḥ //
narakaś ca hato bhaumaḥ kuṇḍale cāhṛte śubhe
prāptaṃ ca divi deveṣu keśavena mahad yaśaḥ //
vītaśokabhayābādhāḥ kṛṣṇabāhubalāśrayāḥ
yajantu bahubhir yajñair yādavā vītamatsarāḥ //
devānāṃ sumahat kāryaṃ kṛtaṃ kṛṣṇena dhīmatā
kṣipram āvedaye cedaṃ bhavatāṃ bhadram astu vaḥ //
yad iṣṭaṃ vo yaduśreṣṭhāḥ kartāsmi tad atandritaḥ
bhavatām asmi yūyaṃ ca mama yuṣmāsv ahaṃ sthitaḥ //
iti saṃbodhayan kṛṣṇam abravīt pākaśāsanaḥ
mām apraiṣīt suraśreṣṭhaḥ prītās tuṣṭās tathā vayam //
yatra hrīḥ śrīḥ sthitā tatra yatra śrīs tatra saṃnatiḥ
saṃnatir hrīs tathā śrīś ca nityaṃ kṛṣṇe mahātmani //
Note: k: D6 T2-4 G M ins.: :k
hatā brahmadviṣaḥ sarve yajadhvaṃ brāhmaṇāḥ sadā |
namaskurudhvaṃ haraye sadā namata mādhavam ||
yajadhvaṃ satataṃ yajñair enaṃ lokanamaskṛtam |
āraṇyakāḥ sadā santu bhavatāṃ jñānahetavaḥ |
Note: h: HV (CE) chapter 97, transliterated by Julie Bélanger, proof-read by André Couture, version of June 24, 2002 :h
sāditā mauravāḥ pāśā nisundanarakau hatau
kṛtaḥ kṣemaḥ punaḥ panthāḥ puraṃ prāgjyotiṣaṃ prati //
Note: k: After the ref., D6 T G1.3-5 M ins.: :k
bhūyaś ca khalu vakṣyāmi śṛṇudhvaṃ yādavottamāḥ |
yat kṛtaṃ śauriṇā samyag lokānāṃ hitakāmyayā |
śauriṇā pṛthivīpālās trāsitāḥ spardhino yudhi
dhanuṣaś ca ninādena pāñcajanyasvanena ca //
meghaprakhyair anīkaiś ca dākṣiṇātyābhirakṣitām
Note: k: All Mss. (except Ś1 Ñ1 M1-3) ins.: :krukmiṇaṃ yudhi nirjitya mahābalaparākramam |
rukmiṇīm ājahārāśu keśavo vṛṣṇipuṃgavaḥ //
tataḥ parjanyaghoṣeṇa rathenādityavarcasā
uvāha mahiṣīṃ bhojāṃ śaṅkhacakragadāsibhṛt //
jārūthyām āhvṛtiḥ krāthaḥ śiśupālaś ca nirjitaḥ
vaktraś ca saha sainyena śatadhanvā ca durjayaḥ //
indradyumno hataḥ kopād yavanaś ca kaśerumān
hataḥ saubhapatiḥ sālvaḥ śaubhaś ca dṛḍhadhanvanā //
parvatānāṃ sahasraṃ ca cakreṇa puruṣottamaḥ
vikīrya puṇḍarīkākṣo dyumatsenam apothayat //
mahendraśikhare caiva nimeṣontaracāriṇau
jaghāna yo naravyāghro rāvaṇasyābhitaś carau //
irāvatyāṃ mahābhojāv agnisūryasamau yudhi
gopatis tālaketuś ca nihatau śārṅgadhanvanā //
akṣaprapatane caiva nimir haṃsaś ca dānavau
ubhau tāv api kṛṣṇena sarāṣṭrau vinipātitau //
dagdhā vārāṇasī caiva keśavena mahātmanā
sānubandhaḥ sarāṣṭraś ca kāśīnām adhipo hataḥ //
vijitya ca yamaḥ saṃkhye śaraiḥ saṃnataparvabhiḥ
athaindrasenir ānītaḥ kṛṣṇenādbhutakarmaṇā //
sahitaḥ sarvayādobhiḥ sāgareṣu mahābalaḥ
prāpya lohitakūṭāni kṛṣṇena varuṇo jitaḥ //
mahendrabhavane jāto devair gupto mahātmabhiḥ
acintayitvā devendraṃ pārijātadrumo hṛtaḥ //
pāṇḍyaṃ pauṇḍraṃ ca matsyaṃ ca kaliṅgaṃ ca janārdanaḥ
jaghāna sahitān sarvān vaṅgarājaṃ tathaiva ca //
eṣa caikaśataṃ hatvā raṇe rājñāṃ mahātmanām
gāndhārīm āvahad dhīmān mahiṣīṃ priyadarśanām //
tathā gāṇḍīvadhanvānaṃ krīḍantaṃ madhusūdanaḥ
jigāya bharata śreṣṭhaṃ kuntyāḥ pramukhato vibhuḥ //
droṇaṃ drauṇiṃ kṛpaṃ karṇaṃ bhīmasenaṃ suyodhanam
cakrānuyāte sahitāñ jigāya puruṣottamaḥ //
babhroś ca priyam anvicchañ śaṅkhacakragadāsibhṛt
sauvīrarājasya sutāṃ prasahya hṛtavān prabhuḥ //
paryastāṃ pṛthivīṃ kṛtsnāṃ sāśvāṃ sarathakuñjarām
veṇudārikṛte yatnāj jigāya puruṣottamaḥ //
avāpya tapaso vīryaṃ balam ojaś ca mādhavaḥ
pūrvadehe jahārāyaṃ bales tribhuvanaṃ hariḥ //
vajrāśanigadāśṛṅgais trāsayadbhiś ca dānavaiḥ
yasya nādhigato mṛtyuḥ puraṃ prāgjyotiṣaṃ prati //
abhibhūtaś ca kṛṣṇena sagaṇaḥ sa mahābalaḥ
baleḥ putro mahāvīryo bāṇo draviṇavattaraḥ //
Note: k: D6 S (except G2) ins.: :k
jarāsaṃdhaṃ mahāvīryaṃ mahotsāhaṃ mahābalam |
asakṛj jitavān kṛṣṇo līlayā puruṣottamaḥ |
pīṭhaṃ tathā mahābāhuḥ kaṃsāmātyaṃ janārdanaḥ
paiṭhikaṃ cāsilomānaṃ nijaghāna mahābalaḥ //
jambham airāvataṃ cāpi virūpaṃ ca mahāyaśāḥ
jaghāna puruṣavyāghraḥ śambaraṃ cārimardanaḥ //
tathā nāgapatiṃ toye kāliyaṃ ca mahaujasam
nirjitya puṇḍarīkākṣaḥ preṣayām āsa sāgaram //
saṃjīvayām āsa mṛtaṃ putraṃ sāṃdīpanes tathā
nirjitya puruṣavyāghro yamaṃ vaivasvataṃ hariḥ //
evam eṣa mahābāhuḥ śāstā sarvadurātmanām //
Note: k: K Ñ2.3 V B Dn Ds D1.3-6 T G ins. (D2 cont. after 1098*): :k
devāṃś ca brāhmaṇāṃś caiva ye dviṣanti sadā nṛpa |
Note: k: instead, D2 ins.: :k
daityānāṃ dānavānāṃ ca rākṣasānāṃ janārdanaḥ |
nihatya narakaṃ bhaumam āhṛtya maṇikuṇḍale
devamātur dadau cāpi prītyarthaṃ vajrapāṇinaḥ //
Note: k: T1.3.4 G3-5 M1-3 ins.: :k
prāptaṃ ca divi deveṣu keśavena mahad yaśaḥ |
evaṃ sa devadaityānāṃ surāṇāṃ ca mahāyaśāḥ
bhayābhayakaraḥ kṛṣṇaḥ sarvalokeśvaro vibhuḥ //
saṃsthāpya dharmān martyeṣu yajñair iṣṭvāptadakṣiṇaiḥ
kṛtvā devārtham amitaṃ svasthānaṃ pratipatsyate //
kṛṣṇo bhogavatīṃ ramyām ṛṣikāntāṃ mahāyaśāḥ
dvārakām ātmasātkṛtvā samudraṃ gamayiṣyati //
bahuratnasamākīrṇā caityayūpaśatāṅkitā
dvārakā varuṇāvāsaṃ pravekṣyati sakānanā //
tāṃ sūryasadanaprakhyāṃ matajñaḥ śārṅgadhanvanaḥ
visṛṣṭāṃ vāsudevena sāgaraḥ plāvayiṣyati //
surāsuramanuṣyeṣu nāsin na bhavitā kvacit
ya imām āvaset kaścid anyatra madhusūdanāt //
evam eṣa daśārhāṇāṃ vidhāya vidhinā vidhim
viṣṇur nārāyaṇaḥ somaḥ sūryaś ca bhavitā svayam //
aprameyo 'niyojyaś ca yatrakāmagamo vaśī
modaty eṣa sadā bhūtair bālaḥ krīḍanakair iva //
na pramātuṃ mahābāhuḥ śakyo 'yaṃ madhusūdanaḥ
Note: k: S (except G2) ins.: :kpramāṇaṃ hy atra vicchinnaṃ pramāṇaṃ sarvavastuṣu |
yato 'yaṃ devadeveśo na pramāṇe pramā bhavet |
paraṃ hy aparam etasmād viśvarūpān na vidyate //
stavyo 'yam evaṃ śataśas tathā śatasahasraśaḥ
anto hi karmaṇām asya dṛṣṭapūrvo na kenacit //
evam etāni karmāṇi śiśur madhyavayās tathā
kṛtavān puṇḍarīkākṣaḥ saṃkarṣaṇasahāyavān //
ity uvāca purā vyāsas tapodīrgheṇa cakṣuṣā
mahāyogī mahābuddhiḥ sarvapratyakṣadarśivān //
iti saṃstūya govindaṃ mahendravacanād ṛṣiḥ
yadubhiḥ pūjitaḥ sarvair nāradas tridivaṃ gataḥ //
tatas tad vasu govindo dideśāndhakavṛṣṇiṣu
yathārhaṃ puṇḍarīkākṣo vidhivan madhusūdanaḥ //
Note: k: S (except G2) ins.: :k
namaskṛtya jagannathaṃ śirasā suprasāriṇā |
yādavāś ca dhanaṃ prāpya vidhivad bhūridakṣiṇaiḥ
yajñair iṣṭvā mahātmāno dvārakām āvasan purīm //
Note: h: HV (CE) chapter 98, transliterated by Julie Bélanger, proof-read by André Couture, version of June 26, 2002 :h
bahūnāṃ strīsahasrāṇām aṣṭau bhāryāḥ prakīrtitāḥ
tāsām apatyān yaṣṭānāṃ bhagavān prabravītu me //
aṣṭau mahiṣyaḥ putriṇya iti prādhānyataḥ smṛtāḥ
sarvā vīraprajāyinyas tāsv apatyāni me śṛṇu //
rukmiṇī satyabhāmā ca devī nagnajitī tathā
sudattā ca tathā śaibyā lakṣmaṇā cāruhāsinī //
mitravindā ca kālindī jāmbavaty atha pauravī
subhīmā ca tathā mādrī raukmiṇeyān imāñ śṛṇu //
pradyumnaḥ prathamo yajñe śambarāntakaraḥ sutaḥ
dvitīyaś cārudeṣṇaś ca vṛṣṇisiṃho mahārathaḥ //
cārubhadro bhadracāruḥ sudaṃṣṭro druma eva ca
suṣeṇaś cāruguptaś ca cāruvindaś ca cārumān
cārubāhuḥ kaniṣṭhaś ca kanyā cārumatī tathā //
jajñire satyabhāmāyāṃ bhānur bhimarathaḥ kṣupaḥ
rohito dīptimāṃś caiva tāmrajākṣo jalāntakaḥ
catasro jajñire teṣāṃ svasāro garuḍadhvajāt //
Note: k: K Ñ2.3 V B D S (except m1-3) ins.: :k
bhānur bhīmarikā caiva tāmrapakṣā jalaṃdhamā |
jāmbavatyāḥ suto jajñe sāmbaḥ samitiśobhanaḥ
Note: k: K2 ins.: :kmitrabāhur mitradhāmā mitrasenas tathaiva ca |
mitravān mitravindaś ca mitravaty api cāṅganā //
mitravāhaḥ sunīthaś ca nagnajityāḥ prajāḥ śṛṇu
bhadrakāro bhadravindaḥ kanyā bhadravatī tathā //
sudattāyās tu śaibyāyāḥ saṃgrāmajid ajāyata
satyajit senajic caiva tathā śūraḥ sapatnajit //
subhīmāyāḥ suto mādryā vṛkāśvo vṛkanirvṛtiḥ
kumāro vṛkadīptiś ca lakṣmaṇāyāḥ prajāḥ śṛṇu //
gātravān gātraguptaś ca gātravindaś ca vīryavān
jajñire gātravanty ete bhaginyānujayā saha //
aśrutaś ca suto jajñe kālindyāḥ śrutasattamaḥ
aśrutaṃ śrutasenāyai pradadau madhusūdanaḥ //
taṃ pradāya hṛṣīkeśas tāṃ bhāryāṃ mudito 'bravīt
eṣa vām ubhayor astu dāyādaḥ śāśvatīḥ samāḥ //
bṛhatyāṃ tu gadasyāhuḥ śaibyāyām aṅgadaṃ sutam
utpannaṃ kumudaṃ caiva śvetaṃ śvetāṃ tathāṅganām //
agāvahaḥ sumitraś ca śuciś citrarathas tathā
citrasenaḥ sute cāsya citrā citravatī tathā //
vanustambasya jajñāte stambaḥ stambavanaś ca ha
Note: k: Ñ3 V B Dn D5.6 G(ed.) ins.: :knivāsano vanastambaḥ kanyā stambavatī tathā |
upāsaṅgasya tu sutau vajraḥ sukṣipra eva ca //
kauśikyāṃ sutasomāyāṃ yaudhiṣṭhiryāṃ yudhiṣṭhirau
kāpālī garuḍaś caiva jajñāte citrayodhinau //
Note: k: K1.3 Ñ2.3 V B D T G M4 ins.: :k
evamādīni putrāṇāṃ sahastrāṇi nibodhata |
ayutaṃ tu samākhyātaṃ vāsudevasya te sutāḥ ||
ayutāni tathā cāṣṭau śūrā raṇaviśāradāḥ |
janārdanasya prasavaḥ kīrtito 'yaṃ yathā tathā |
pradyumnasya suto yas tu vaidarbhyāṃ rājasattamaḥ
aniruddho raṇe yoddhā jajñe sa mṛgaketanaḥ //
revatyāṃ baladevasya jajñāte niśaṭholmukau
bhrātarau devasaṃkāśāv ubhau puruṣasattamau //
sutanuś ca narācī ca śaurer āstāṃ parigrahaḥ
pauṇḍraś ca kapilaś caiva vāsudevasya tau sutau //
narācyāṃ kapilo jajñe pauṇḍraś ca sutanoḥ sutaḥ
tayor nṛpo 'bhavat pauṇḍraḥ kapilaś ca vanaṃ yayau //
Note: k: S (except G2) ins.: :k
samādhisthaḥ sa bhūteṣu dayāṃ kurvan mahāmatiḥ |
sa nṛpaḥ samacittātmā viṣṇusāyujyam āptavān |
turyāṃ samabhavad vīro vasudevān mahābalaḥ
jarā nāma niṣādānāṃ prabhuḥ sarvadhanuṣmatām //
kāśyā supārśvaṃ tanayaṃ lebhe sāmbāt tarasvinam
Note: k: Ñ2 ins.: :kaniruddhasya vaidarbhyā bhāryā rukmavatī śubhā |
tasyāṃ vajro 'niruddhasya vajrasya tanayaṃ śṛṇu |
sānor vajro 'niruddhasya vajras tv ādāv ajāyata //
vajrāj jajñe prativahaḥ sucārus tasya cātmajaḥ
anamitrāc chinir jajñe kaniṣṭhād vṛṣṇinandanāt //
śines tu satyavāg jajñe satyakaś ca mahārathaḥ
satyakasyātmajaḥ śūro yuyudhānas tv ajāyata //
asaṅgo yuyudhānasya bhūmis tasyābhavat sutaḥ
bhūmer yugaṃdharaḥ putra iti vaṃśaḥ samāpyate //
Note: h: HV (CE) chapter 99, transliterated by Julie Bélanger, proof-read by André Couture, version of June 29 :h
ya eṣa bhavatā pūrvaṃ śambaraghnety udāhṛtaḥ
pradyumnaḥ sa kathaṃ jaghne śambaraṃ tad bravīhi me //
rukmiṇyāṃ vāsudevasya lakṣmīkāmo dhṛtavrataḥ
śambarāntakaro jajñe pradyumnaḥ kāmadarśanaḥ //
Note: k: Ś1 D5 ins.: :k
sanatkumāra iti yaḥ purāṇe parigīyate |
taṃ saptarātre saṃpūrṇe niśīthe sūtikāgṛhāt
jahāra kṛṣṇasya sutaṃ śiśuṃ vai kālaśambaraḥ //
viditaṃ tac ca kṛṣṇasya devamāyānuvartinaḥ
tato na nigṛhītaḥ sa dānavo yuddhadurmadaḥ //
sa mṛtyunā parītāyur māyayābhijahāra tam
dorbhyām utkṣipya nagaraṃ svaṃ jagāma mahāsuraḥ //
anapatyā tu tasyāsīd bhāryā rūpaguṇānvitā
nāmnā māyāvatī nāma māyeva śubhadarśana //
dadau taṃ vāsudevasya putraṃ putram ivātmajam
tasyā mahiṣyā nāthinyā dānavaḥ kālacoditaḥ //
Note: k: All Mss. (except Ś1 Ñ1 M1-3) ins.: :k
māyāvatī tu taṃ dṛṣṭvā saṃprahṛṣṭatanūruhā |
harṣeṇa mahatā yuktā punaḥ punar udaikṣata ||
atha tasyā nirīkṣantyāḥ smṛtiḥ prādurbabhūva ha |
ayaṃ sa mama kānto 'bhūt smṛtvaivaṃ cānvacintayat ||
ayaṃ sa nātho bhartā me yasyārthaṃ hi divāniśam |
cintāśokahrade magnā na vindāmi ratiṃ kvacit ||
ayaṃ bhagavatā pūrvaṃ devadevena śūlinā |
kheditena kṛto 'naṅgo dṛṣṭo jātyantare mayā ||
katham asya stanaṃ dāsye mātṛbhāvena jānatī |
bhartur bhāryā tv ahaṃ bhūtvā vakṣye vā putra ity uta ||
evaṃ saṃcintya manasā dhātryās taṃ sā samarpayat |
rasāyanaprayogaiś ca śīghram evānvavardhayat ||
dhātryāḥ sakāśāt sa ca tāṃ śṛṇvan rukmiṇinandanaḥ |
māyāvatīm avijñānān mene svām eva mātaram |
sā taṃ saṃvardhayām āsa kārṣṇiṃ kamalalocanam
māyāś cāsmai dadau sarvā dānavīḥ kāmamohitā //
sa yadā yauvanasthas tu pradyumnaḥ kāmadarśanaḥ
cikīrṣitajño nārīṇāṃ sarvāstravidhipāragaḥ //
taṃ sā māyāvatī kāntaṃ kāmayām āsa kāminī
iṅgitaiś cāpi vīkṣantī prālobhayata sasmitā //
prasajjantīṃ tu tāṃ devīṃ babhāṣe cāruhāsinīm
mātṛbhāvaṃ parityajya kim evaṃ vartase 'nyathā //
aho duṣṭasvabhāvāsi strītvena calamānasā
yā putrabhāvam utsṛjya mayi kāmāt pravartase //
nanu te 'haṃ sutaḥ saumye ko 'yaṃ śīlavyatikramaḥ
tat tvam icchāmy ahaṃ devi kathitaṃ kas tv ayaṃ vidhiḥ //
vidyutsaṃpātacapalaḥ svabhāvaḥ khalu yoṣitām
yā nareṣu prasajjante nagāgreṣu ghanā iva //
yadi te 'haṃ sutaḥ saumye yadi vā nātmajaḥ śubhe
kathitaṃ tat tvam icchāmi kim idaṃ te cikīrṣitam //
evam uktā tu sā bhīruḥ kāmena vyathitendriyā
priyaṃ provāca vacanaṃ vivikte keśavātmajam //
na tvaṃ mama sutaḥ saumya nāpi te śambaraḥ pitā
rūpavān asi vikrāntas tvaṃ jātyā vṛṣṇinandanaḥ
putras tvaṃ vāsudevasya rukmiṇyā nandivardhanaḥ //
divase saptame bālo jātamātro 'pavāhitaḥ
sūtikāgāramadhyāt tvaṃ śiśur uttānaśāyitaḥ //
mama bhartrā hṛto vīra balavīryapravartinā
pitus te vāsudevasya dharṣayitvā gṛhaṃ mahat
pākaśāsanakalpasya hṛtas tvaṃ śambareṇa ha //
sā ca te karuṇaṃ mātā tvāṃ bālam anuśocatī
atyarthaṃ śrāmyate vīra vivatsā saurabhī yathā //
sa hi śakrād api mahān pitā te garuḍadhvajaḥ
iha tvāṃ nābhijānāti bālam evāpavāhitam //
kānta vṛṣṇikumāras tvaṃ na hi tvaṃ śambarātmajaḥ
vīra naivaṃvidhān putrān dānavā janayanti hi //
tato 'haṃ kāmayāmi tvāṃ na hi tvaṃ janito mayā
rūpaṃ te saumya paśyantī sīdāmi hṛdi durbalā //
yan me vyavasitaṃ kānta yac ca me hṛdi vartate
tanme manasi vārṣṇeya pratisaṃdhātum arhasi //
eṣa te kathitaḥ saumya sadbhāvas tvayi yo mama
yathā na mama putras tvaṃ na putraḥ śambarasya ca //
Note: k: B3 ins.: :k
kāmadevaś ca vīra tvaṃ ratiṃ māṃ viddhi vai prabho |
śaṃkarasya ca śāpena tvam anaṅgagatiḥ purā ||
tat kālamāyayā rūpaṃ kṛtvā daityasya veśmani |
viśīrṇā sāham uṣitā daityasyāsya ca veśmani |
śrutvaitan nikhilaṃ sarvaṃ māyāvatyā prabhāṣitam
cakrāyudhātmajaḥ kruddhaḥ śambaraṃ sa samāhvayat //
samastamāyāmāyājño vikrāntaḥ samare 'vyayaḥ
aṣṭamyāṃ nihato yuddhe māyayā kālaśambaraḥ //
tamṛkṣavante nagare nihatyāsurasattamam
gṛhya māyāvatīṃ devīṃ svām agacchat purīṃ pituḥ //
so 'ntarikṣagato bhūtvā māyayā śīghravikramaḥ
ājagāma purīṃ ramyāṃ rakṣitāṃ tejasā pituḥ //
so 'ntarikṣāt prapatitaḥ keśavāntaḥpure śiśuḥ
māyāvatyā saha tayā rūpavān iva manmathaḥ //
tasmiṃs tatrāvapatite mahiṣyaḥ keśavasya yāḥ
vismitāś caiva hṛṣṭāś ca bhīrāś caivābhavaṃs tadā //
tatas taṃ kāmasaṃkāśaṃ kāntayā saha saṃgatam
prekṣantyo hṛṣṭavadanāḥ pibantyo nayanāsavam //
taṃ vrīḍitamukhaṃ dṛṣṭvā sajjamānaṃ pade pade
abhavan snigdhasaṃkalpāḥ prahṛṣṭāḥ kṛṣṇayoṣitaḥ //
rukmiṇī tv eva taṃ dṛṣṭvā śokārtā putragṛddhinī
sapatnīśatasaṃkīrṇā sabāṣpā vākyam abravīt //
Note: k: Ñ2.3 V B Dn Ds D1.3.5(marg.).6 T1.2.4 G M4 ins. (K1 D4 after 40): :k
yādṛk svapno mayā dṛṣṭo niśāyā yauvane gate |
kaṃsāriṇā samānīya dattaṃ sāhārapallavam ||
śaśiraśmipratīkāśaṃ muktādāma ca śobhanam |
keśavenāṅkam āropya mama kaṇṭhe nyabadhyata ||
śyāmā sucārukeśā strī śuklāmbaravibhūṣitā |
padmahastā nirīkṣantī praviṣṭā mama veśmani ||
tayā punar ahaṃ gṛhya snāpitā rucirāmbunā ||
kuśeśayamayīṃ mālāṃ strī saṃgṛhyātha pāṇinā |
mama mūrdhany upāghrāya dattā srak sā tayā mama ||
evaṃ svapnaṃ kīrtayantī rukmiṇī hṛṣṭamānasā |
sakhījanavṛtā devī kumāraṃ vīkṣya taṃ muhuḥ |
Note: k: Ñ2 cont.: :k
ity ato 'nantaraṃ tatra abravīd vākyam eva tat |
dhanyāyāḥ khalv ayaṃ putro dīrghāyuḥ priyadarśanaḥ
idṛśaḥ kāmasaṃkāśo yauvane prathame sthitaḥ //
jīvaputrā tvayā putra kā sā bhāgyavibhūṣitā
kim arthaṃ cāmbudaśyāma sabhāryas tvam ihāgataḥ //
asmin vayasi suvyaktaṃ pradyumno mama putrakaḥ
bhaved yadi na nītaḥ syāt kṛtāntena balīyasā //
vyaktaṃ vṛṣṇikumāro 'yaṃ na mithyā mama tarkitam
vijñāto 'si mayā cihnair vinā cakraṃ janārdanaḥ //
mukhaṃ nārāyaṇasyeva keśāḥ keśānta eva ca
mūrdhavakṣobhujais tulyo halinaḥ śvaśurasya me //
kas tvaṃ vṛṣṇikulaṃ sarvaṃ vapuṣā dyotayan sthitaḥ
aho janārdanasyāsya divyā tvam aparā tanuḥ //
etasminn antare kṛṣṇaḥ sahasā praviveśa ha
nāradasya vacaḥ śrutvā śambarasya vadhaṃ prati //
so 'paśyat taṃ sutaṃ jyeṣṭhaṃ siddhaṃ manmathalakṣaṇaiḥ
snuṣāṃ māyāvatīṃ caiva hṛṣṭacetā janārdanaḥ //
so 'bravīt sahasā devīṃ rukmiṇīṃ devatām iva
ayaṃ te devi saṃprāptaḥ putraś cāpadharaḥ prabhuḥ //
anena śambaraṃ hatvā māyāyuddhaviśāradam
hatā māyāś ca tāḥ sarvā yābhir devān abādhata //
satī ceyaṃ śubhā sādhvī bhāryā vai tanayasya te
māyāvatīti vikhyātā śambarasya gṛhoṣitā
mā ca te śambarasyeyaṃ patnīty evaṃ vyathā bhavet //
manmathe tu gate nāśaṃ gate cānaṅgatāṃ purā
Note: k: T1.2.4 G1.3-5 M ins.: :knetrāgninā tryambakasya śūlapāṇeḥ purā yuge |
kāmapatnī hi kanyaiṣā kāmakāmā ratiḥ śubhā
māyārūpeṇa taṃ daityaṃ mohayaty asakṛc chubhā //
na caiṣā tasya kaumāre vaśe tiṣṭhati śobhanā
atmamāyāmayaṃ rūpaṃ kṛtvā śambaram āviśat //
patny eṣā mama putrasya snuṣā tava varāṅganā
lokakāntasya sāhāyyaṃ kariṣyati manomayam //
praveśayaināṃ bhavanaṃ pūjyā hy eṣā snuṣā mama
cirapranaṣṭaṃ ca sutaṃ bhajasya punarāgatam //
Note: k: Ñ2.3 V B Dn Ds D1-3.5(marg.).6 T2.4 G M4 ins. (T1 after 49a): :k
śrutvā tu vacanaṃ devī kṛṣṇenodāhṛtaṃ tadā |
praharṣam atulaṃ lebhe rukmiṇī vākyam abravīt ||
aho dhanyatarāsmīti vīraputrasamāgamāt |
adya me saphalaḥ kāmaḥ pūrṇaś cādya manorathaḥ |
cirapranaṣṭaputrasya darśanaṃ priyayā saha ||
āgaccha putra bhavanaṃ viśasva saha bhāryayā ||
tato 'bhivādya caraṇau govindaṃ mātaraṃ ca saḥ |
pradyumnaḥ pūjayām āsa halinaṃ ca mahābalam ||
utthāpya taṃ pariṣvajya mūrdhny upāghrāya vīryavān |
pradyumnaṃ balināṃ śreṣṭhaṃ keśavaḥ paravīrahā ||
snuṣāṃ cotthāpya tāṃ devīṃ rukmiṇī rukmabhūṣaṇāṃ |
pariṣvajyopasaṃgṛhya snehād gadgadabhāṣiṇī ||
sametaṃ bhavanaṃ patnyā śacyendram aditir yathā |
praveśayām āsa tadā rukmiṇī sutam āgatam |
Note: k: D2.3 cont.: :k
evam uktā tu kṛṣṇena rukmiṇī yoṣitāṃ varā |
putraṃ prītyā pariṣvajya mūrdhni cāghrāya tāṃ snuṣām |
gṛhaṃ praveśayām āsa snuṣayā saha bhāminī |
Note: h: HV (CE) chapter 100, transliterated by Julie Bélanger, proof-read by André Couture, version of July 7 :h
hṛto yadaiva pradyumnaḥ śambareṇātmaghātinā
tam eva māsaṃ sāmbas tu jāmbavatyām ajāyata //
bālyāt prabhṛti rāmeṇa māneṣu viniyojitaḥ
rāmād anantaraṃ caiva mānitaḥ sarvavṛṣṇibhiḥ //
Note: k: T2.4 G3-5 M ins.: :k
rāmasyaiva priyasutaḥ so 'bhavaj jyeṣṭha ity api |
jātamātre tataḥ kṛṣṇaḥ śubhaṃ tat puram āviśat
nihatāmitrasāmantaḥ śakrodyānaṃ yathāmaraḥ //
yādavīṃ ca śriyaṃ dṛṣṭvā svāṃ śriyaṃ dveṣṭi vāsavaḥ
janārdanabhayāc caiva na śāntiṃ lebhire nṛpāḥ //
kasyacit tv atha kālasya pure vāraṇasāhvaye
duryodhanasya yajñe vai sameyuḥ sarvapārthivāḥ //
tāṃ śrutvā mādhavīṃ lakṣmīṃ saputraṃ ca janārdanam
purīṃ dvārāvatīṃ caiva niviṣṭāṃ sāgarāntare //
dūtais taiḥ kṛtasaṃdhānāḥ pṛthivyāṃ sarvapārthivāḥ
śriyaṃ draṣṭuṃ hṛṣīkeśam ājagmuḥ kṛṣṇamandiram //
duryodhanamukhāḥ sarve dhṛtarāṣṭravaśānugāḥ
pāṇḍavapramukhāś caiva dhṛṣṭadyumnādayo nṛpāḥ //
pāṇḍyacolakaliṅgeśā bāhlīkā draviḍāḥ śakāḥ
akṣauhiṇīḥ prakarṣanto daśa cāṣṭau ca bhūmipāḥ
ājagmur yādavapurīṃ govindabhujapālitām //
te parvataṃ raivatakaṃ parivāryāvanīśvarāḥ
viviśur yojanāḍhyāsu svāsu svāsv avanīṣv atha //
Note: k: D6 T1.2.4 G1.3-5 M ins.: :k
dūtair ājñāpito devo balabhadrapurogamaḥ |
sātyakiṃ purataḥ kṛtvā sasainyaḥ sapadānugaḥ ||
śārṅgaṃ ca dhanur ādāya kiṃ syād iti vicintayan |
tataḥ śrīmān hṛṣīkeśaḥ saha yādavapuṃgavaiḥ
samīpaṃ mānavendrāṇāṃ niryayau kamalekṣaṇaḥ //
sa teṣāṃ naradevānāṃ madhye madhuniṣūdanaḥ
vyarājata yaduśreṣṭhaḥ śaradīva nabhaḥśaśī //
sa tatra samudācāraṃ yathāsthānaṃ yathāvayaḥ
kṛtvā siṃhāsane kṛṣṇaḥ kāñcane niṣasāda ha //
rājāno 'pi yathāsthānaṃ niṣedur vividheṣv atha
siṃhāsaneṣu citreṣu pīṭheṣu ca janādhipāḥ //
sa yādavanarendrāṇāṃ samājaḥ śuśubhe tadā
surāṇām asurāṇāṃ ca sadane brahmaṇo yathā //
Note: k: T1.2.4 G1.3-5 M G(ed.) ins.: :k
idaṃ provāca bhagavān kṣatriyān draṣṭum āgatān |
sarvan etan nṛpatayo yuṣmākaṃ samudāhṛtam ||
yad asmākaṃ nṛpaśreṣṭhās tulyaṃ tad bhavatāṃ sadā |
gṛhyatāṃ vasu yad divyaṃ yatheṣṭaṃ nṛpasattamāḥ ||
te tatheti jagannātham ūcur yādavasaṃsadi |
teṣāṃ citrāḥ kathās tatra pravṛttās tatsamāgame
yadūnāṃ pārthivānāṃ ca keśavasyopaśṛṇvataḥ //
Note: k: T2.4 G3.4 M G(ed.) ins.: :k
taṃ dṛṣṭvā devadeveśaṃ prahṛṣṭāḥ kṣatriyās tadā |
etasminn antare vāyur vavau megharavoddhataḥ
tumulaṃ durdinaṃ cāsīt savidyut stanayitnumat //
tad durdinatalaṃ bhittvā nāradaḥ pratyadṛśyata
saṃveṣṭitajaṭābhāro vīṇāsaktena bāhunā //
Note: k: T1.2.4 G3.4 M G(ed.) ins.: :k
gāyann eva harīṃ sāmnā vasantaṃ yadusaṃsadi |
sa papāta narendrāṇāṃ madhye pāvakavarcasām
nārado 'gniśikhākāraḥ śrīmāñ śakrasakho muniḥ //
tasmin bhūmau nipatite nārade munipuṃgave
tad uddhatamahāmeghaṃ durdinaṃ vyapakṛṣyata //
so 'vagāhya narendrāṇāṃ madhyaṃ sāgarasaṃnibham
āsanasthaṃ yaduśreṣṭam uvāca munir avyayaḥ //
āścaryaṃ khalu devānām ekas tvaṃ puruṣottama
dhanyaś cāsi mahābāho loke nānyo 'sti kaś cana //
evam uktaḥ smitaṃ kṛtvā pratyuvāca muniṃ prabhuḥ
āścaryaś caiva dhanyaś ca dakṣiṇābhiḥ sahety aham //
evam ukto muniśreṣṭhaḥ prāha madhye mahīkṣitām
kṛṣṇa paryāptavākyo 'smi gamiṣyāmi yathāgatam //
taṃ prasthitam abhiprekṣya pārthivāḥ prāhur īśvaram
guhyaṃ mantram ajānanto vacanaṃ nāraderitam //
āścarya ity abhihito dhanyo 'sīti ca mādhava
dakṣiṇābhiḥ sahety evaṃ pratyukte 'pi ca nārade //
kim etan nābhijānīmo divyaṃ mantrapadaṃ mahat
yadi śrāvyam idaṃ kṛṣṇa śrotum icchāmi tattvataḥ //
tān uvāca tataḥ kṛṣṇaḥ sarvān pārthivapuṃgavān
śrotavyaṃ nāradas tv eṣa dvijo vaḥ kathayiṣyati //
brūhi nārada tattvārthaṃ śrāvyantāṃ pṛthivīkṣitaḥ
yat tvayābhihitaṃ vākyaṃ mayā ca pratibhāṣitam //
sa pīṭhe kāñcane śubhre sūpaviṣṭaḥ svalaṃkṛtaḥ
prabhavaṃ tasya vākyasya pravaktum upacakrame //
śruyatāṃ bho nṛpaśreṣṭhā yāvantaḥ stha samāgatāḥ
asya praśnasya mahato yathā pāram ahaṃ gataḥ //
ahaṃ kadācid gaṅgāyās tīre triṣavaṇātithiḥ
carāmy ekaḥ kṣapāpāye saṃdṛśyati divākare //
apaśyam aśmakūṭābhaṃ kapāladvayadehinam
krośamaṇḍalavistāraṃ tāvadvṛttaṃ samantataḥ //
catuścaraṇasaṃśliṣṭaṃ klinnaṃ śaivalapaṅkilam
mama vīṇākṛtiṃ kūrmaṃ gajacarmacayopamam //
so 'haṃ taṃ pāṇinā spṛṣṭvā proktavāñ jalacāriṇam
tvam āścaryaśarīro 'si kūrma dhanyaś ca me mataḥ //
yas tvam evam abhedyābhyāṃ kapālābhyāṃ samāvṛtaḥ
toye carasi niḥśaṅkaḥ kiṃ cid apy avicintayan //
sa mām uvācāmbucaraḥ kūrmo mānuṣavat svayam
kim āścaryaṃ mayi mune dhanyaś cāhaṃ kathaṃ vibho //
gaṅgeyaṃ nimnagā dhanyā kim āścaryam ataḥ param
yatrāham iva sattvāni caranty ayutaśo jale //
so 'haṃ kutūhalāviṣṭo nadīṃ gaṅgām upasthitaḥ
dhanyāsi tvaṃ nadīśreṣṭhe nityam āścaryadarśane //
yā tvam evaṃ mahādehaiḥ śvāpadair upaśobhitā
hradinī sāgaraṃ yāsi rakṣantī tāpasālayān //
evam uktā tato gaṅgā rūpiṇī pratyabhāṣata
nāradaṃ devagandharvaṃ śakrasya dayitaṃ dvijam //
nāhaṃ dhanyā dvijaśreṣṭha nāpy āścaryopaśobhitā
tava satye niviṣṭasya vākyaṃ māṃ pratibādhate //
lokāścaryakaro loke dhanyaś caivārṇavo dvija
yatrāham iva vistīrṇāḥ śataśo yānti nimnagāḥ //
so 'haṃ tripathagāvākyaṃ śrutvārṇavam upasthitaḥ
āścaryaḥ khalu lokānāṃ dhanyaś cāsi mahārṇava
tena khalv asi yonis tvam ambhasāṃ salileśvaraḥ //
sthāne tvā vārivāhinyaḥ sarito lokabhāvanāḥ
imāḥ samabhigacchanti patnyo lokanamaskṛtāḥ //
samudras tv evam uktas tu tato mām abravīd vacaḥ
svaṃ jalaughatalaṃ bhittvā vyutthitaḥ pavaneritaḥ //
mā maivaṃ devagandharva nāsmy āś caryo dvijottama
vasudheyaṃ mune dhanyā yatrāham upari sthitaḥ
ṛte tu pṛthivīṃ loke kim āścaryam ataḥ param //
so 'haṃ sāgaravākyena kṣitiṃ kṣititale sthitaḥ
kautūhalasam āviṣṭo hy abruvaṃ jagato gatim //
dharitri dehināṃ yonir dhanyā khalv asi śobhane
āścaryā cāsi bhūteṣu mahatyā kṣamayā yute //
tena khalv asi lokānāṃ dharaṇī manujāraṇiḥ
kṣamā tvattaḥ prasūtā ca karma cāmbaragāminām //
tato bhūḥ stutivākyena sā mayoktena lajjitā
vihāya sahajaṃ dhairyam atha māṃ pratyabhāṣata //
devagandharva mā maivaṃ saṃgrāmakalahapriya
nāsmi dhanyā na cāścaryā pārakyeyaṃ dhṛtir mama //
ete dhanyā dvijaśrestha parvatā dhārayanti mām
eṣv āścaryāṇi dṛśyante ete lokasya setavaḥ //
so 'haṃ pṛthivyā vākyena parvatān samupasthitaḥ
dhanyā bhanto dṛśyante bahvāścaryāś ca bhūdharāḥ //
kāñcanasyāgraratnasya dhātūnāṃ ca viśeṣataḥ
tena ratnākarāḥ sarve bhavanto bhuvi śāśvatāḥ //
mama tv etad vacaḥ śrutvā parvatās tasthuṣāṃ varāḥ
ūcur māṃ sāntvayuktāni vacāṃsi vanaśobhitāḥ //
brahmarṣe na vayaṃ dhanyā nāpy āścaryāṇi santi naḥ
Note: k: T1.2 G1.3-5 M4 G(ed.) ins.: :kasmākam īśvaraḥ śūlī giriśo vṛṣabhadhvajaḥ |
nāś caryo vāpi dhanyo vā tasmāt parataro bhuvi ||
vihāya taṃ mahādevaṃ nāsmān stotum ihārhasi ||
iti teṣāṃ vacaḥ śrutvā kailāsam aham āgataḥ |
dṛṣṭvā taṃ pārvatīśānam abruvaṃ vacanaṃ tadā ||
devadeva mahādeva nīlakaṇṭha vṛṣadhvaja |
āścaryo 'si bhavān eko dhanyas tvaṃ jagatīpate |
tvattaḥ parataro nāsti devo jagati kaś cana ||
yad idaṃ dṛśyate deva bhuvanaṃ sacarācaram |
tasyādhāras tvam evāsi sarvasya tripurāntaka ||
atha mām abravīd devo virūpākṣas trilocanaḥ |
nāhaṃ dhanyo na cāścaryo naivaṃ māṃ vaktum arhasi |
mattaḥ parataro jñeyo jagat sraṣṭā dvijottama |
brahmā prajāpatir dhanyaḥ sa cāścaryaḥ sureṣv api //
so 'haṃ pitāmahaṃ gatvā sarvaprabhavam avyayam
tasya vākyasya paryāyaṃ paryāptam iva lakṣaye //
so 'haṃ svayaṃbhuvaṃ devaṃ lokayoniṃ caturmukham
pāraṃparyād upagataḥ praṇāmāvanatānanaḥ //
so 'haṃ vākyasamāptyarthaṃ śrāvayāmy ātmayoninam
āścaryo bhagavān eko dhanyaś ca jagato guruḥ //
na kiṃ cid anyat paśyāmi bhūtaṃ yad bhavatā samam
tvattaḥ sarvam idaṃ jātaṃ jagat sthāvarajaṃgamam //
sadevadānavā martyā loke bhūtendriyātmakāḥ
bhavanti sarvadeveśa dṛśyaṃ sarvam idaṃ vapuḥ //
tena khalv asi devānāṃ devadevaḥ sanātanaḥ
teṣāmevāsi yat sraṣṭā lokānām api saṃbhavaḥ //
tato mām āha bhagavān brahmā lokapitāmahaḥ
dhanyāścaryāśritair vākyaiḥ kiṃ māṃ nārada bhāṣase //
āścaryaṃ paramaṃ devā dhanyā devāś ca nārada
ye lokān dhārayanti sma devās tattvārthadarśinaḥ //
ṛksāmayajuṣāṃ satyam atharvaṇi ca yan matam
tanmayaṃ viddhi māṃ vipra dhṛto 'haṃ tair mayā ca te //
parameṣṭhyena vākyena codito 'haṃ svayaṃbhuvā
vedopasthānikāṃ cakre matiṃ saṃkrāntavistarām //
so 'haṃ svayaṃbhuvacanād vedān vai samupasthitaḥ
uvāca caināṃś caturo mantrapravacanārcitān //
dhanyā bhavantaḥ puṇyāś ca nityam āścaryaviśrutāḥ
ādhārāś caiva viprāṇām evam āha prajāpatiḥ //
svayaṃbhuvo 'pīha paraṃ bhavatsu praśna āhitaḥ
yuṣmat parataraṃ nāsti śrutyā vā tapasāpi vā //
pratūcus te tato vākyaṃ devā mām abhitaḥ sthitāḥ
āścaryāś caiva dhanyāś ca yajñāś cātmaparāyaṇāḥ //
yajñārthe tu vayaṃ sṛṣṭāḥ sṛṣṭā yena sma nārada
tad asmākaṃ parā yajñā na vayaṃ svavaśe sthitāḥ
svayaṃbhuvo 'pīha parā vedānāṃ ca parā gatiḥ //
tato 'ham abruvaṃ yajñān gṛhasthāgnipuraskṛtān //
bho yajñāḥ paramaṃ tejo yuṣmāsu khalu lakṣyate
brahmaṇābhihitaṃ vākyaṃ yan me vedair iheritam //
āścaryam etal lokeṣu bhavadbhyo nādhigamyate
dhanyāḥ khalu bhavanto ye dvijātīnāṃ svavaṃśinaḥ //
tena khalv agnayas tṛptiṃ puṣmābhir yānti tarpitāḥ
bhāgaiś ca tridaśāḥ sarve mantraiś caiva maharṣayaḥ //
agniṣṭomādayo yajñā mama vākyād anantaram
pratyūcur māṃ paraṃ vākyaṃ sarve yūpadhvajāḥ sthitāḥ //
āścaryaśabdo nāsmāsu dhanyaśabdo 'pi vā mune
āścaryaṃ paramaṃ viṣṇuḥ sa hy asmākaṃ parā gatiḥ //
yad ājyaṃ vayam aśnīmo hutam agniṣu pāvanam
tat sarvaṃ puṇḍarīkākṣo lokamūrtiḥ prayacchati //
Note: k: Dn ins.: :k
so 'pi dhanyo mahābāhur dakṣiṇāsahitaḥ kratuḥ |
yad rūpaṃ puṇḍarīkākṣo dakṣiṇāpriyayā saha |
so 'haṃ viṣṇor gatiṃ prepsur iha saṃpatito bhuvi
dṛṣṭaś cāyaṃ mayā viṣṇur bhavadbhir abhisaṃvṛtaḥ //
yan mayābhihito hy eṣa tvam āścaryaṃ janārdana
dhanyaś cāsīti bhavatāṃ madhyastho hy atra pārthivāḥ //
pratyukto'ham anenādya vākyasyāsya yad uttaram
dakṣiṇābhiḥ sahety evaṃ paryāptaṃ vacanaṃ mama //
yajñānāṃ hi gatir viṣṇuḥ sarveṣāṃ sahadakṣiṇaḥ
dakṣiṇābhiḥ sahety evaṃ praśno mama samāptavān //
kūrmeṇābhihitaṃ pūrvaṃ pāraṃparyād ihāgatam
sadakṣiṇe 'smin puruṣe tad vākyaṃ paryayāgatam //
yan māṃ bhavantaḥ pṛcchanti vākyasyāsya vinirṇayam
tad etat sarvam ākhyātaṃ sādhayāmi yathāgatam //
Note: k: T1.2 G1.3-5 M ins.: :k
nārāyaṇaparā vedā nārāyaṇaparā makhāḥ |
nārāyaṇaparaṃ jñānaṃ nārāyaṇaparaṃ tapaḥ ||
na ca nārāyaṇād anyat triṣu lokeṣu vidyate |
nārāyaṇātmakam idaṃ jagat sthāvarajaṅgamam ||
iyaṃ hi vedārthagatiḥ sanātanī |
nṛpā yadi śroṣyatha madvacaḥ param |
idaṃ tu satyaṃ sakalaṃ nṛpottamā |
ity evam uktvā sa divaṃ jagāma ha |
nārade tu gate svargaṃ sarve te pṛthivīkṣitaḥ
vismitāḥ svāni rāṣṭrāṇi jagmuḥ sabalavāhanāḥ //
Note: k: T1.2.4 G1.3.5 M (G4 cont. after *1123) ins.: :k
viṣṇuṃ jiṣṇuṃ hṛṣīkeśaṃ govindaṃ garuḍadhvajam |
parāt parataraṃ brahma nārāyaṇam anāmayam ||
sarvavedāntavedyaṃ ca namaskṛtya guruṃ harim |
dhanyo 'yaṃ nārado yasmād dṛṣṭaḥ sākṣād dhariḥ svayam ||
dhanyā vayaṃ jagannāthaṃ nāradena vibodhitāḥ |
sarve prītā jagannāthaṃ tuṣṭuvuḥ puruṣottamam ||
ko nāma viṣṇur ity evam anye mūḍhā narādhamāḥ |
dhanyāḥ sarvaṃ vāsudeva iti tattvārthatatparam ||
iti tattvena vijñāya nṛpā nārāyaṇaṃ param |
tataḥ pradakṣiṇaṃ kṛtvā namaskṛtya punaḥ punaḥ |
janārdano 'pi sahito yadubhiḥ pāvakopamaiḥ
svam eva bhavanaṃ vīro viveśa yadupuṃgavaḥ //
Note: h: HV (CE) chapter 101, transliterated by Julie Bélanger, proof-read by André Couture, version of July 13 :h
punar eva mahābāho kṛṣṇasya jagatīpateḥ
Note: k: S ins.: :kkṛtārthāḥ sarvathā vipra nārāyaṇasamāśrayāt |
jātā hi vayam adyaiva tatkathāśravaṇād dvija |
Note: k: After line 1, T1 ins.: :kity uktaḥ sa smitaṃ kṛtvā praṇamya munipuṃgavam |
māhātmyaṃ śrotum icchāmi paramaṃ dvijasattama //
na hi me tṛptir astīha śṛṇvatas tasya dhīmataḥ
karmaṇām anusaṃdhānaṃ purāṇasya mahātmanaḥ //
nāntaḥ śakyaṃ prabhāvasya vaktuṃ varṣaśatair api
govindasya mahārāja śrūyatām idam uttamam //
śaratalpe śayānena bhīṣmeṇa paricoditaḥ
gāṇḍīvadhanvā bībhatsur māhātmyaṃ keśavasya yat //
rājñāṃ madhye mahārāja jyeṣṭhaṃ bhrātaram abravīt
yudhiṣṭhiraṃ jitāmitram iti tac chṛṇu kaurava //
purāhaṃ dvārakāṃ yātaḥ saṃbandhīn avalokakaḥ
nyavasaṃ pūjitas tatra bhojavṛṣṇyandhakottamaiḥ //
tataḥ kadācid dharmātmā dīkṣito madhusūdanaḥ
ekāhena mahābāhuḥ śāstradṛṣṭena karmaṇā //
tato dīkṣitam āsīnam abhigamya dvijottamaḥ
kṛṣṇaṃ vijñāpayām āsa paritrāhīti cābravīt //
rakṣādhikāro bhavataḥ parirakṣasva māṃ vibho
caturthāṃśaṃ hi dharmasya rakṣitā labhate phalam //
na bhetavyaṃ dvijaśreṣṭha rakṣāmi tvāṃ kuto 'nagha
brūhi tattvena bhadraṃ te yady api syāt suduṣkaram //
jāto jāto mahābāho putro me hriyate vibho
trayo hṛtāś caturthaṃ tvaṃ kṛṣṇa rakṣitum arhasi //
brāhmaṇyāḥ sūtikālo 'dya tatra rakṣā vidhīyatām
yathā dhriyed apatyaṃ me tathā kuru janārdana //
tato mām āha govindo dīkṣito 'smi kratāv iti
rakṣā ca brāhmaṇe kāryā sarvāvasthāgatair api //
śrutvāham evaṃ kṛṣṇasya tato 'vocaṃ narottama
māṃ niyojaya govinda rakṣiṣyāmi dvijaṃ bhayāt //
ity uktaḥ sa smitaṃ kṛtvā mām uvāca janārdanaḥ
rakṣyasīty evam uktas tu vrīḍito 'smi narādhipa //
tato māṃ vrīḍitaṃ jñātvā punar āha janārdanaḥ
gamyatāṃ kauravaśreṣṭha śakyate yadi rakṣitum //
tvatpurogāś ca gacchantu vṛṣṇyandhakamahārathāḥ
ṛte rāmaṃ mahābāhuḥ pradyumnaṃ ca mahābalam //
tato 'haṃ vṛṣṇisainyena mahatā parivāritaḥ
tam agrato dvijaṃ kṛtvā prayātaḥ saha senayā //
Note: h: HV (CE) chapter 102, transliterated by Julie Bélanger, proof-read by André Couture, version of July 13 :h
sumuhūrtena tu vayaṃ taṃ grāmaṃ prāpya bhārata
viśrāntavāhanāḥ sarve vāsāyopagatās tadā //
tato grāmasya madhye 'haṃ niviṣṭaḥ kurunandanaḥ
samantād vṛṣṇisainyena parikṣitya janavrajam //
tataḥ śakunayo dīptā mṛgāś ca krūrabhāṣiṇaḥ
dīptāyāṃ diśi vāśanto bhayam āvedayanti me //
saṃdhyārāgo japāvarṇo bhānumāṃś caiva niṣprabhaḥ
papāta mahatī colkā pṛthivī cāpy akampata //
tān samīkṣya mahotpātān dāruṇāṃl lomaharṣaṇān
yogam ājñāpayaṃ tatra janasyotsukacetasaḥ //
yuyudhānapurogāś ca vṛṣṇyandhakamahārathāḥ
sarve yuktarathāḥ sajjāḥ svayaṃ cāhaṃ tathābhavam //
gate 'rdharātrasamaye brāhmaṇo bhayaviklavaḥ
upāgamya bhayād asmān idaṃ vacanam abravīt //
kālo 'yaṃ samanuprāpto brāhmaṇyāḥ prasavasya me
yattā bhavantas tiṣṭhantu na bhaved vañcanā yathā //
muhūrtād iva cāśrauṣaṃ kṛpaṇaṃ ruditasvanam
tasya viprasya bhavane hriyate hriyate iti //
athākāśe punar vācam aśrauṣaṃ bālakasya vai
hāheti hriyamāṇasya na ca paśyāmi rākṣasam //
tato 'smābhis tadā tāta śaravarṣaiḥ samantataḥ
viṣṭambhitā diśaḥ sarvā hṛta eva sa bālakaḥ //
brahmaṇo ''rtasvaraṃ kṛtvā hṛte tasmin kumārake
vācaḥ sa paruṣās tīvrāḥ śrāvayām āsa māṃ tadā //
vṛṣṇayo hatasaṃkalpās tathāhaṃ naṣṭacetanaḥ
mām eva hi viśeṣeṇa brāhmaṇaḥ paryabhāṣata //
rakṣiṣyāmīti coktaṃ te na ca rakṣasi me sutam
śṛṇu vākyam idaṃ śeṣaṃ yat tvam arhasi durmate //
vṛthā tvaṃ spardhase nityaṃ kṛṣṇenāmitabuddhinā
yadi syād iha govindo naitad atyāhitaṃ bhavet //
yathā caturthaṃ dharmasya rakṣitā labhate phalam
pāpasyāpi tathā mūḍha bhāgaṃ prāpnoty arakṣitā //
rakṣiṣyāmīti coktaṃ te na ca śaknoṣi rakṣitum
moghaṃ gāṇḍīvam etat te moghaṃ vīryaṃ yaśaś ca te //
Note: k: S (except G2; T3 missing) ins.: :k
arjuno 'smīti yā buddhiḥ sā vṛthā satyam ity uta |
akiṃcid uktvā taṃ vipraṃ tato 'haṃ prasthitas tadā
saha vṛṣṇyandhakasutair yatra kṛṣṇo mahādyutiḥ //
tato dvāravatīṃ gatvā dṛṣṭvā madhunighātinam
vrīḍitaḥ śokasaṃtapto govindenopalakṣitaḥ //
sa tu māṃ vrīḍitaṃ dṛṣṭvā samāśvasya ca mādhavaḥ
Note: k: After 20a, K1 (marg. sec. m.) D1.2.5 Bom. Poona eds. G(ed.) ins.: :kvinindan kṛṣṇasaṃnidhau |
mauḍhyaṃ paśyata me yo 'haṃ śraddadhe klībakatthanam ||
na pradyumno nāniruddho na rāmo na ca keśavaḥ |
yasya śaktāḥ paritrātuṃ ko 'nyas tadaviteśvaraḥ ||
dhig arjunaṃ vṛthāvādaṃ dhig ātmaślāghino dhanuḥ ||
daivopasṛṣṭo yo maurkhyād āgacchati ca durmatiḥ ||
evaṃ śapati viprarṣau vidyām āsthāya vaiṣṇavīm |
yayau saṃyaminīṃ vīro yatrāste bhagavān yamaḥ ||
viprāpatyam acakṣāṇas tata aindrīm agāt purīm |
āgneyīṃ nair ṛtīṃ saumyāṃ vāyavyāṃ vāruṇīṃ tathā ||
rasātalaṃ nākapṛṣṭhaṃ dhiṣṇyāny anyāny udāyudhaḥ ||
tato 'labdhvā dvijasutam anistīrṇapratiśravaḥ |
agniṃ vivikṣuḥ kṛṣṇena pradyumnena niṣedhitaḥ ||
darśaye dvijasūnuṃ te māvajñātmānam ātmanā |
kīrtiṃ ta ete vipulāṃ sthāpayiṣyanti mānavāḥ ||
iti saṃbhāṣya māṃ snehāt |
sāntvayitvā ca taṃ vipram idaṃ vacanam abravīt //
sugrīvaṃ caiva śaibyaṃ ca meghapuṣpabalāhakau
yojayāśvān iti tadā dārukaṃ pratyabhāṣata //
āropya brāhmaṇaṃ kṛṣṇas tv avaropya ca dārukam
mām uvāca tataḥ śauriḥ sārathyaṃ kriyatām iti //
tataḥ samāsthāya rathaṃ kṛṣṇo 'haṃ brāhmaṇaḥ sa ca
prayātāḥ sma diśaṃ saumyām udīcīṃ kauravarṣabha //
Note: h: HV (CE) chapter 103, transliterated by Julie Bélanger, proof-read by André Couture, version of July 17 :h
tataḥ parvatajālāni saritaś ca sarāṃsi ca
apaśyaṃ samatikramya sāgaraṃ makarālayam //
tato 'rghyam udadhiḥ sākād upaninye janārdane
prāñjaliḥ samupasthāya kiṃ karomīti cābravīt //
pratigṛhya tu tāṃ pūjāṃ tam uvāca janārdanaḥ
rathapanthānam icchāmi dattaṃ nadanadīpate //
athābravīt samudras taṃ prāñjalir garuḍadhvajam
prasīda bhagavan maivam anyo 'py evaṃ gamiṣyati //
tvayaiva sthāpitaḥ pūrvam agādho 'smi janārdana
tvayā pravartite gādhe yāsyāmi gamanīyatām //
anye 'py evaṃ gamiṣyanti rājāno darpamohitāḥ
evaṃ niścitya govinda yat kṣamaṃ tat samācara //
brāhmaṇārthe madarthe ca kuru sāgara madvacaḥ
mām ṛte na pumān kaścid anyas tvāṃ dharṣayiṣyati //
athābravīt samudras tu punar eva janārdanam
abhiśāpabhayād bhīto bāḍham evaṃ bhaviṣyati //
śoṣayāmy eṣa mārgaṃ te yena tvaṃ tāta yāsyasi
rathena sahasūtena sadhvajena ca keśava //
mayā dattavaraḥ pūrvaṃ na śoṣaṃ tvam ihārhasi
mānuṣās te na jānīyur vividhān ratnasaṃcayān //
jalaṃ stambhaya sādho tvaṃ tato yāsyāmy ahaṃ rathī
na hi kaścit pramāṇaṃ te ratnānāṃ vetsyate naraḥ //
sāgareṇa tathety ukte prasthitāḥ sma jalena vai
stambhitena yathā bhūmau maṇivarṇena bhāsvatā //
tato 'rṇavaṃ samuttīrya kurūn apy uttarān vayam
kṣaṇena samatikrāntā gandhamādanam eva ca //
tatas tu parvatāḥ sapta keśavaṃ samupasthitāḥ
jayanto vaijayantaś ca nīlo rajataparvataḥ //
mahāmeruḥ sakailāsa indrakūṭaś ca nāmataḥ
varṇarūpāṇi bibhranto vividhāny adbhutāni ca //
upasthāya ca govindaṃ kiṃ kurmetya bravaṃs tadā
tāṃś cāpi pratijagrāha vidhivan madhusūdanaḥ //
tān uvāca hṛṣīkeśaḥ praṇāmāvanatān sthitān
vivaraṃ gacchato me 'dya rathamārgaḥ pradīyatām //
te kṛṣṇasya vacaḥ śrutvā pratigṛhya ca parvatāḥ
pradaduḥ kāmato mārgaṃ gacchato bharatarṣabha //
tatraivāntarhitās te ca tad āścaryataraṃ mama
asaktaṃ ca ratho yāti meghajāleṣv ivāṃśumān //
Note: k: D1.2.5 ins.: :k
sapta dvīpān sasindhūṃś ca sapta sapta girīn atha |
lokālokaṃ tathātītya viveśa sumahat tamaḥ |
tataḥ kadā cid duḥkhena ratham ūhus turaṃgamāḥ
paṅkabhūtaṃ hi timiraṃ sparśād vijñāyate 'nagha //
atha parvatabhūtaṃ tat timiraṃ samapadyata
Note: k: K2 D2 ins.: :kaśvā nāśaknuvan gantuṃ tato'haṃ saṃbhramānvitaḥ |
tad āsādya hayā rājan niṣprayatnās tataḥ sthitāḥ //
tataś cakreṇa govindaḥ pāṭayitvā tu tat tamaḥ
ākāśaṃ darśayām āsa rathapanthānam ūttamam //
niṣkramya tamasas tasmād ākāśe darśite tadā
bhaviṣyāmīti saṃjñā me bhayaṃ ca vigataṃ mama //
tatas tejaḥ prajvalitam apaśyaṃ vadatāṃ vara
sarvalokaṃ samāviśya sthitaṃ puruṣavigraham //
taṃ praviṣṭo hṛṣīkeśo dīptaṃ tejonidhiṃ tadā
ratha eva sthitaś cāhaṃ sa ca brāhmaṇasattamaḥ //
sa muhūrtāt tataḥ kṛṣṇo niścakrāma tadā prabhuḥ
caturo bālakān gṛhya brāhmaṇasyātmajāṃs tadā //
pradadau brāhmaṇāyātha putrān sarvāñ janārdanaḥ
trayaḥ pūrvaṃ hṛtā ye ca sadyojātaś ca bālakaḥ //
prahṛṣṭo brāhmaṇas tāta putrān dṛṣṭvā punaḥ prabho
ahaṃ ca paramaprīto vismitaś cābhavaṃ nṛpa //
tato vayaṃ punaḥ sarve brāhmaṇasya ca te sutāḥ
yathāgatā nivṛttāḥ sma tathaiva bharatarṣabha //
tataḥ sma dvārakāṃ prāptāḥ kṣaṇena nṛpasattama
asaṃprāpte 'rdhadivase vismito 'haṃ tataḥ punaḥ //
saputraṃ bhojayitvā taṃ dvijaṃ kṛṣṇo mahāyaśāḥ
dhanena tarpayitvā ca gṛhaṃ prāsthāpayat tadā //
Note: h: HV (CE) chapter 104, transliterated by Julie Bélanger, proof-read by André Couture, version of July 17 :h
tataḥ kṛṣṇo bhojayitvā śatāni subahūni ca
viprāṇām ṛṣikalpānāṃ kṛtakṛtyo 'bhavat tadā //
Note: k: T1.2.4 G1.3-5 M ins.: :k
arcayitvā sahasrāṃśuṃ bhāskaraṃ bhuvaneśvaram |
tataḥ saha mayā bhuktvā vṛṣṇibhojaiś ca sarvaśaḥ
Note: k: S (except G2; T3 missing) ins.: :ksātyakiṃ purataḥ kṛtvā bhojayām āsa vṛṣṇipān ||
tataḥ sabhāṃ praviṣṭāḥ sma saha vṛṣṇipuraḥsaraiḥ |
vicitrāś ca kathā divyāḥ kathayām āsa bhārata //
tataḥ kathānte tatrāham abhigamya janārdanam
apṛcchaṃ tad yathāvṛttaṃ kṛṣṇaṃ yad dṛṣṭvān aham //
kathaṃ samudraḥ stabdhodaḥ kṛtas te kamalekṣaṇa
parvatānāṃ ca vivaraṃ kṛtaṃ te katham acyuta //
tamas tac ca kathaṃ ghoraṃ ghanaṃ cakreṇa pāṭitam
yac ca tat paramaṃ tejaḥ praviṣṭo 'si kutaś ca tat //
kim arthaṃ tena te bālās tadā cāpahṛtāḥ prabho
yac ca te dīrgham adhvānaṃ saṃkṣiptaṃ tat kathaṃ punaḥ //
Note: k: For 6cd, T2.4 G1.3-5 M subst.: :k
yo 'yaṃ dīrgho mahāmārgaḥ saṃkṣiptaḥ kena hetunā |
kathaṃ cālpena kālena kṛtaṃ nas tad gatāgatam
etat sarvaṃ yathāvṛttam ācakṣva mama keśava //
maddarśanārthaṃ te bālā hṛtās tena mahātmanā
viprārtham eṣyate kṛṣṇo nāgacched anyatheti hi //
brahmatejomayaṃ divyam āścaryaṃ dṛṣṭavān asi
ahaṃ sa bharataśreṣṭha mattejas tat sanātanam //
prakṛtiḥ sā mama parā vyaktāvyaktā ca bhārata
tāṃ praviśya bhavantīha muktā bharatasattama //
sā sāṃkhyānāṃ gatiḥ pārtha yogināṃ ca tapasvinām
tat padaṃ paramaṃ brahma sarvaṃ vibhajate jagat //
Note: k: T1.2 G1.3-5 M4 (G (ed.) after 10) ins.: :k
ādityavarṇaṃ vimalaṃ tamaḥpāre pratiṣṭhitam |
mām eva tad dhanaṃ tejo jñātum arhasi bhārata
samudraḥ stabdhatoyo 'ham ahaṃ stambhayitā jalam //
ahaṃ te parvatāḥ sapta ye dṛṣṭvā vividhās tvayā
Note: k: T2.4 G1.2.4 M4 ins.: :kpaṅkabhūtaṃ hi timiraṃ dṛṣṭavān asi yad dhi tat |
ahaṃ tamo ghanībhūtam aham eva ca pāṭakaḥ //
Note: k: Ś1 ins.: :k
yac ca taṃ dīrgham adhvānaṃ kṛtaṃ cāpi gatāgatam |
yogaśaktyā gataś cāhaṃ kṣipram āgatavāṃs tataḥ |
ahaṃ ca kālo bhūtānāṃ dharmaś cāhaṃ prakīrtitaḥ
Note: k: N (except Ś1 Ñ1) T2.4 G1.2.4 M4 ins.: :kcandrādityau mahāśailāḥ saritaś ca sarāṃsi ca |
cāturvarṇyaṃ matprasūtaṃ cāturāśramyam eva ca //
catasraś ca diśaḥ sarvā mamaivātmā caturvidhaḥ
cāturvedyasya kartāham iti budhyasva bhārata //
bhagavan sarvabhūteśa vettum icchāmi te prabho
Note: k: T1.2 G1.3-5 G(ed.) ins.: :kpriyo me 'si jagatpate |
punaś ca paramaṃ tattvaṃ |
Note: k: M1-3 ins.: :kparaṃ tattvaṃ suraśreṣṭha tvāṃ prapanno 'smi mādhava |
pṛcchāmi tvāṃ prapanno 'haṃ namas te puruṣottama //
brahma ca brāhmaṇāś caiva tapaḥ satyaṃ ca bhārata
ukthyaṃ bṛhadrathaṃ caiva mattas tad viddhi pāṇḍava //
priyas te 'haṃ mahābāho priyo me 'si dhanaṃjaya
Note: k: K Ñ2.3 V B Dn Ds D1.3-6 G2.4 subst. for 18cd ; D2 T2.4 M4 ins. after 18ab: :ktena te kathayiṣyāmi nānyathā vaktum utsahe |
vetsyase māṃ yathātattvaṃ tad vyākhyāsyāmi te 'nagha //
ahaṃ yajūṃṣi sāmāni ṛcaś cātharvaṇāni ca
Note: k: T1.2 G1.3-5 M4 ins.: :kbrahmā rudras tathendraś ca varuṇaś ca tathā yamaḥ |
kuberaś ca tathā cānye dikpālāḥ sanakādayaḥ |
ṛṣayo devatā yajñā mattejo bharatarṣabha //
pṛthivī vāyur ākāśam āpo jyotiś ca pañcamam
candrādityāv ahorātre pakṣā māsās tathā kṣapāḥ
muhūrtāś ca kalāś caiva kṣaṇāḥ saṃvatsarās tathā //
mantrāś ca vividhāḥ pārtha yāni śāstrāṇi kānicit
vidyāś ca veditavyaṃ ca mattaḥ prādurbhavanti vai //
manmayaṃ viddhi kaunteya kṣayaṃ sṛṣṭiṃ ca bhārata
sac cāsac ca mamaivātmā sad asac caiva yat param //
Note: k: S (except G2; T3 missing) G(ed.) ins.: :k
idam apy aparaṃ bhūyaḥ śṛṇu guhyaṃ sanātanam ||
sarveṣv api ca vedeṣu purāṇesu ca kṛtsnaśaḥ |
yad agryaṃ kathitaṃ pārthaṃ sarvair munivaraiḥ sadā ||
varṇatrayasamāyuktam ṛgyajuḥsāmalakṣitam |
praṇavākhyaṃ mahābāho viddhi māṃ jagatīpate ||
idaṃ japan mahābāho māṃ namaskuru yatnataḥ |
tato māṃ vetsyase samyak satyam etac chapāni te ||
anyat sarvaṃ mahābāho vihāyaitat paro bhava |
idam eva paraṃ śreyo nātra kāryā vicāraṇā |
evam ukto 'smi kṣṛṇena prīyatā bharatarṣabha
tathaiva ca mano nityam abhavan me janārdane //
etac chrutaṃ ca dṛṣṭaṃ ca māhātmyaṃ keśavasya me
yan māṃ pṛcchasi rājendra bhūyaś cāto janārdane //
etac chrutvā kuruśreṣṭho dharmarājo yudhiṣṭhiraḥ
pūjayām āsa manasā govindaṃ puruṣottamam //
vismitaś cābhavad rājā saha sarvaiḥ sahodaraiḥ
rājabhiś ca tathāsannair ye tatrāsan samāgatāḥ //
Note: h: HV (CE) chapter 105, transliterated by Julie Bélanger, proof-read by André Couture, version of July 26 :h
bhūya eva dvijaśreṣṭha yadusiṃhasya dhīmataḥ
karmāṇy aparimeyāni śrotum icchāmi tattvataḥ //
śrūyante vividhāni sma adbhutāni mahādyute
asaṃkhyeyāni divyāni prākṛtāny api sarvaśaḥ //
. yāny ahaṃ vividhāny asya śrutvā prīye mahāmune
prabrūyāḥ sarvaśas tāta tāni me vaktum arhasi //
bahūny āścaryabhūtāni keśavasya mahātmanaḥ
karmāṇy uktāni vai rājan bhūyaś caiva śrutāni te //
kathitāni mayā sādho nāntaṃ śakyaṃ hi karmaṇām
gantuṃ bharataśārdūla vistarasya mahātmanaḥ //
avaśyaṃ tu mayā vācyaṃ leśamātreṇa bhārata
viṣṇor atulavīryasya prathitodārakarmaṇaḥ
ānupūrvyā pravakṣyāmi śṛṇuṣvaikamanā nṛpa //
dvāravatyāṃ nivasatā yadusiṃhena dhīmatā
rāṣṭrāṇi nṛpamukhyānāṃ kṣobhitāni mahīkṣitām //
yadūnām antaraprepsur vicakro dānavo hataḥ //
puraṃ prāgjyotiṣaṃ gatvā punas tena mahātmanā
samudramadhye duṣṭātmā narako dānavo hataḥ //
vāsavaṃ ca raṇe jitvā pārijāto hṛto balāt
nirjitaś caiva bhagavān varuṇo lohitahrade //
dantavakraś ca kārūṣo nihato dakṣiṇāpathe
śiśupālaś ca saṃpūrṇe kilbiṣaikaśate hataḥ //
gatvā ca śoṇitapuraṃ śaṃkareṇābhirakṣitaḥ
baleḥ suto mahāvīryo bāṇo bāhusahasravān
mahāmṛdhe mahārāja jitvā jīvan visarjitaḥ //
nirjitāḥ pāvakāś caiva girimadhye mahātmanā
sālvaś ca vijitaḥ saṃkhye saubhaś ca vinipātitaḥ //
vikṣobhya sāgaraṃ sarvaṃ pāñcajanyo vaśīkṛtaḥ
hayagrīvaś ca nihato nṛpāś cānye mahābalāḥ //
jarāsaṃdhasya nidhane mokṣitāḥ sarvapārthivāḥ
rathena jitvā nṛpatīn gāndhāratanayā hṛtā //
bhraṣṭarājyāś ca śokārtāḥ pāṇḍavāḥ parirakṣitāḥ
dāhitaṃ ca vanaṃ ghoraṃ puruhūtasya khāṇḍavam //
gāṇḍīvaṃ cāgninā dattam arjunāyopapāditam
dautyaṃ ca tatkṛtaṃ ghoraṃ vigrahe janamejaya //
anena yadumukhyena yaduvaṃśaś ca vardhitaḥ
kuntyāś ca pramukhe proktā pratijñā pāṇḍavān prati
nivṛtte bhārate yuddhe pratidāsyāmi te sutān //
Note: k: B1 ins.: :k
api satyaṃ ca kṛtavān kuntyā niryātya pāṇḍavān |
mokṣitaś ca mahātejā nṛgaḥ śāpāt sudāruṇāt
yavanaś ca hataḥ saṃkhye kāla ity abhiviśrutaḥ //
vānarau ca mahāvīryau maindo dvivida eva ca
vijitau yudhi durdharṣau jāmbavāṃś ca parājitaḥ //
sāṃdīpanes tathā putras tava caiva pitā nṛpa
gatau vaivasvatavaśaṃ jīvitau tasya tejasā //
Note: k: Ś1 K2 Ñ1 M2-4 repeat and T1.2.4 G1.3.5 (all third time) read 13cd. T2 G1.3-5 ins. after the second occurrence of 13cd, T1 after 18: :k
nirjitau haṃsaḍibhakau hiḍimbaś caiva rākṣasaḥ |
saṃgrāmā bahavaś caiva ghorā naravarakṣayāḥ
nihatāś ca nṛpāḥ sarve kṛtvā tad rūpam adbhutam
janamejaya yuddheṣu yathā te kathitaṃ purā //
Note: h: HV (CE) chapter 106, transliterated by Julie Bélanger, proof-read by André Couture, version of July 26, 2002 :h
karmāṇy aparimeyāni śrutāni dvijasattama
Note: k: After the ref., N (except Ś1 Ñ1) T4 G2.4 ins.: :kbhūya eva mahābāhor yadusiṃhasya dhīmataḥ |
tvattaḥ śrutavatāṃ śreṣṭha vāsudevasya dhīmataḥ //
yac ca tat kathitaṃ pūrvaṃ bāṇaṃ prati mahāsuram
tad ahaṃ śrotum icchāmi vistareṇa tapodhana //
Note: k: Dn ins. (V3 after 3): :k
kathaṃ ca devadevasya putratvam asuro gataḥ |
Note: k: Dn V3 cont., Ñ2.3 V1.2 B Ds D5 (marg.).6 T4 G2.5 ins. after 2: :k
yo 'bhiguptaḥ svayaṃ brahmañ śaṃkareṇa mahātmanā |
sahavāsaṃ gateneha sagaṇena guhena ca ||
baler balavataḥ putro jyeṣṭho bhrātṛśatasya yaḥ |
vṛto bāhusahasreṇa divyāstraśatadhāriṇā |
asaṃkhyaiś ca mahākāyair māyāśatasahair balaiḥ |
Note: k: Ñ2 V3 D6 cont.: :k
māyāśatabalair daityair amarādibhir arcitaḥ |
vāsudevena sa kathaṃ bāṇaḥ saṃkhye parājitaḥ
saṃrabdho dvaṃdvayuddhārthī jīvan muktaḥ kathaṃ ca saḥ //
śṛṇuṣvāvahito rājan kṛṣṇasyāmitatejasaḥ
manuṣyaloke bāṇena yathābhūd vigraho mahān //
vāsudevena yatrāsau rudraskandasahāyavān
baliputro raṇaślāghī jitvā jīvan visarjitaḥ //
yathā cāsya varo dattaḥ śaṃkareṇa mahātmanā
nityaṃ sāṃnidhyatā caiva gāṇapatyaṃ tathākṣayam //
Note: k: K1-3 Ñ2.3 V1.3 B1.3 D T2.4 G1.2.4.5 M1.2.4 ins. (K4 V2 B2 D5 T1 G3 M3 - second time - after the first occurrence of 6cd): :k
yathā bāṇasya tad yuddhaṃ jīvan mukto yathā ca saḥ |
yathā ca devadevasya putratvaṃ so 'suro gataḥ |
yadarthaṃ ca mahad yuddhaṃ tat sarvam akhilaṃ śṛṇu ||
dṛṣṭvā vapuḥ kumārasya krīḍato 'sya mahātmanaḥ |
baliputro mahāvīryo vismayaṃ paramaṃ gataḥ ||
tasya buddhiḥ samutpannā tapaś cartuṃ sudāruṇam |
rudrasyārādhanārthāya yathāsya syām ahaṃ sutaḥ ||
tato 'glapayad ātmānaṃ tapasā so 'surottamaḥ |
devaś ca paramaṃ toṣaṃ jagāma ca sahomayā ||
nīlakaṇṭhaḥ parāṃ prītiṃ gatvā cāsuram abravīt |
varaṃ vṛṇīṣva bhadraṃ te yat te manasi vartate ||
atha bāṇo 'bravīd vākyaṃ devadevaṃ sanātanam |
devyāḥ putratvam icchāmi tvayā dattaṃ trilocana ||
śaṃkaraś ca tathety uktvā rudrāṇīm idam abravīt |
kanīyān kārtikeyasya putro 'yaṃ pratigṛhyatām ||
yatrotthito mahāsenaḥ so 'gnijo rudhire pure |
tatroddeśe puraṃ cāsya bhaviṣyati na saṃśayaḥ ||
nāmnā tac choṇitapuraṃ bhaviṣyati purottamam |
mayābhiguptaṃ śrīmantaṃ na kaścit prasahiṣyati ||
tataḥ sa nivasan bāṇaḥ pure śoṇitasāhvaye |
rājyaṃ praśāsate divyaṃ kṣobhayan sarvadevatāḥ ||
atha vīryamadotsikto bāṇo bāhusahasravān |
acintayan devagaṇān yuddham ākāṅkṣate sadā ||
dhvajaṃ cāsya dadau prītaḥ kumāro hy agnitejasam |
vāhanaṃ caiva bāṇasya mayūraṃ dīptatejasam ||
na devā na ca gandharvā na yakṣā na ca pannagāḥ |
tasya yuddhe vyatiṣṭhanta devadevasya tejasā ||
tryambakenābhiguptaś ca darpotsikto mahāsuraḥ |
bhūyo mṛgayate yuddhaṃ śūlinaṃ so 'bhyagacchata |
Note: k: After line 8 of *1148, D6 T1.2 G M Bom. Poona eds. G(ed.) ins.: :k
ārādhya ca jagannāthaṃ śaṃkaraṃ vṛṣavāhanam |
śūlinaṃ bhasmadigdhāṅgaṃ girivāsarataṃ sadā ||
jaṭinaṃ muṇḍinaṃ nityaṃ tryakṣaṃ girisutāśrayam |
tuṣṭāva devam īśānaṃ vareṣyaṃ varadaṃ śivam ||
namas te bhasmadigdhāṅga śūline te namo namaḥ |
namo virūparūpāya śmaśānaniratāya ca ||
harāya harirūpāya śaṃkarāya namo namaḥ |
namas tubhyaṃ virūpākṣa vyāghracarmanivāsine ||
namas tuṇḍāya devāya nagnāya vikaṭāya ca |
jñānapradāyine tubhyaṃ yogine yatacetase ||
nama ādyāya bījāya vṛṣāya vṛṣarūpiṇe |
namo ghorāya ghorāya ghoraghorāya te namaḥ ||
ghorapriyāya ghorāya rudrāya vṛṣaṇāya ca |
vṛṣaskandhāya moghāya gadine khaṅgine namaḥ ||
muṇḍāyātha virūpāya vāmadevāya te namaḥ |
namo dakṣamakhaghnāya bhaganetraharāya ca ||
namaḥ smaravināśāya guhapitre namo namaḥ |
namas tubhyaṃ namas tubhyaṃ dvīpicarmanivāsine ||
namo namaḥ paśupate sarvātman sarvabhāvana |
manoratho jagannātha pūryatāṃ tava bhāvanāt ||
evaṃ stuto jagannāthaḥ śūlī vṛṣabhaketanaḥ |
Note: k: After line 13 of *1148, Ñ2 Ds2 M2.3 (first time) repeat 6cd. While Ds1 (marg.) ins.: :k
dehi bāhusahasraṃ me devebhyaś cāpy avadhyatām |
sa rudram abhigamyātha praṇipatyābhivādya ca
balisūnur idaṃ vākyaṃ papraccha vṛṣabhadhvajam //
asakṛn nirjitā devāḥ sasādhyāḥ samarudgaṇāḥ
mayā balamadotsekāt sasainyena tavāśrayāt //
Note: k: K1.4 Ñ2.3 V1.2 B D (except D6) ins.: :k
imaṃ deśaṃ samāgamya vasanti sma pure sukham |
te parājayasaṃtrastā nirāśā matparājaye
nākapṛṣṭham upāgamya nivasanti yathāsukham //
so 'haṃ nirāśo yuddhasya jīvitaṃ nādya kāmaye
ayudhyato vṛthā hy eṣāṃ bāhūnāṃ dhāraṇaṃ mama //
tad brūhi mama yuddhasya kaccid āgamanaṃ bhavet
na me yuddhaṃ vinā deva ratir asti prasīda me //
tataḥ prahasya bhagavān abravīd vṛṣabhadhvajaḥ
bhavitā bāṇa yuddhaṃ te tathā tac chṛṇu dānava //
dhvajasyāsya yadā bhaṅgas tava tāta bhaviṣyati
svasthāne sthāpitasyātha tadā yuddhaṃ bhaviṣyati //
ity evam uktaḥ prahasan bāṇaḥ subahuśo mudā
prasannavadano bhūtvā pādayoḥ patito 'bravīt //
diṣṭyā bāhusahasrasya na vṛthā dhāraṇaṃ mama
diṣṭā sahasrākṣam ahaṃ vijetā punar āhave //
ānandajāśrupūrṇābhyāṃ netrābhyām arimardanaḥ
pañcāñjaliśatair devaṃ pūjayan patito bhuvi //
uttiṣṭhottiṣṭha bāhūnām ātmanaḥ svakulasya ca
sadṛśaṃ prātsyase vīre yuddham apratimaṃ raṇe //
evam uktas tato bāṇas tryambakena mahātmanā
harṣeṇābhyutthitaḥ śīghraṃ natvā sa vṛṣabhadhvajam //
śitikaṇṭhavisṛṣṭas tu bāṇaḥ parapuraṃjayaḥ
yayau svabhavanaṃ yena yatra dhvajagṛhaṃ mahat //
tatropaviṣṭaḥ prahasan kumbhāṇḍam idam abravīt
priyam āvedayiṣyāmi bhavato manaso 'nugam //
Note: k: D6 T1.2 G1.3-5 M1-3 ins.: :k
yenāham iha saṃprāptaḥ kumbhāṇḍa śṛṇu me vacaḥ |
ity evam uktaḥ prahasan bāṇam apratimaṃ raṇe
provāca rājan kiṃ tv etad vaktukāmo 'si matpriyam
vismayot phullanayanaḥ praharṣād iva sattama //
Note: k: N(except Ś1 ) T4 G5 ins.: :k
tvattas tac chrotum icchāmi varaṃ kiṃ labdhavān asi |
Note: k: Ñ V B2 Ds2 D2.6 T4 G5 cont.: :k
devadevaprasādāt tu skandasya ca mahātmanaḥ |
īpsitaṃ kiṃ tvayā prāptaṃ tan me brūhi mahāsura |
śitikaṇṭhaprasādena skandagopāyanena ca
kaccin trailokyarājyaṃ te vyādiṣṭaṃ śṛlapāṇinā //
kaccid indras tava bhayāt pātālam upayāsyati
kaccid viṣṇuparitrāsaṃ vimokṣyanti diteḥ sutāḥ //
yasya cakrabhayatrastā vasanti salilāśaye
kaccic chārṅgagadāpāṇeḥ sthitasya param āhave
na viṣṇor bhayasaṃtrāsāt prayāsyanti diśo 'surāḥ //
pātālavāsam utsṛjya kaccit tava balāśrayāt
vibudhāvāsaniratā bhaviṣyanti mahāsurāḥ //
balir viṣṇubalākrānto baddhas tava pitā nṛpa
salilaughād viniḥsṛtya kaccid rājyam avāpsyati //
divyamālyāmbaradharaṃ divyasraganulepanam
kaccid vairocaniṃ tāta drakṣyāmaḥ pitaraṃ tava //
kaccintrabhiḥ kramaiḥ pūrvaṃ hṛtāṃl lokān imān prabho
punaḥ pratyānayiṣyāmo jitvā sarvān divaukasaḥ //
snigdhagambhīranirghoṣaṃ śañkhasvanapurojavam
kaccin nārāyaṇaṃ devaṃ jeṣyāmaḥ samitiṃjayam //
kaccid vṛṣadhvajas tāta prasādasumukhas tava
yathā te hṛdayotkampaḥ sāśrubinduḥ pravartate //
kaccid īśvaratoṣeṇa kārttikeyamatena ca
prāptavān asi sarveṣām asmākaṃ pārthivaṃ padam //
iti kumbhāṇḍavacanaiś coditaḥ puruṣarṣabhaḥ
bāṇo vācam asaṃsaktāṃ provāca vadatāṃ varaḥ //
Note: k: Ś1 B1 D6 T4 ins. after 32 and T1.2 g M ins. after *1153 ad additionnal colophon, while T1.2 G M ins.: :k
nītimantam athāmātyam anayo nītimat tadā |
Note: k: [Colophon] :k
cirāt prabhṛti kumbhāṇḍa na yuddhaṃ prāpyate mayā
tadā mayā mudā pṛṣṭaḥ śitikaṇṭhaḥ pratāpavān //
Note: k: D2.3 ins.: :k
tato 'haṃ patito mūrdhnā devadevasya dhīmataḥ |
yuddhābhilāṣaḥ sumahān deva saṃjāyate mama
api prāpsyāmy ahaṃ yuddhaṃ manasas tuṣṭikārakam //
Note: k: D3 ins.: :k
vijñaptaḥ sa mayā deva prāha māṃ vṛṣabhadhvajaḥ |
tato 'haṃ devadevena hareṇāmitraghātinā
prahasya suciraṃ kālam ukto 'dya vacanaṃ priyam //
prāpsyase sumahad yuddhaṃ tvaṃ bāṇāpratimaṃ mahat
mayūradhvajabhaṅgas te bhaviṣyati yadāsura //
Note: k: N(except Ś1 K2 D3) T1.2.4 G ins.: :k
tadā tvaṃ prāpsyase yuddhaṃ sumahad ditinandana |
tato 'haṃ paramaprīto bhagavantaṃ vṛṣadhvajam
praṇamya śirasā devaṃ tavāntikam upāgataḥ //
ity evam uktaḥ kumbhāṇḍaḥ provāca nṛpatiṃ tadā
aho na śobhanaṃ rājan yad evaṃ bhāṣase vacaḥ //
evaṃ kathayator eva tayor anyonyam ucchritaḥ
dhvajaḥ papāta vegena śakrāśanisamāhataḥ //
taṃ tathā patitaṃ dṛṣṭvā so 'suro dhvajam uttamam
praharṣam atulaṃ lebhe mene cāhavam āgatam //
tataś cakampe vasudhā śakrāśanisamāhatā
nanādāntarhito bhūmau vṛṣadaṃśo jagarja ca //
devānām api yo devaḥ so 'py avarṣata vāsavaḥ
śoṇitaṃ śoṇitapure sarvataḥ puram antikāt //
sūryaṃ bhittvā maholkā ca papāta dharaṇītale
svapakṣe coditaḥ sūryo bharaṇīṃ samapīḍayat //
caityavṛkṣeṣu sahasā dhārāḥ śatasahasraśaḥ
śoṇitasyāsravan ghorā nipetus tārakā bhṛśam //
rāhur agrasad ādityam aparvaṇi viśāṃ pate
lokakṣayakare kāle nirghātaś cābhavan mahān //
dakṣiṇāṃ diśam āsthāya dhūmaketuḥ sthito 'bhavat
aniśaṃ cāpy avicchinnā vavur vātāḥ sudāruṇāḥ //
śvetalohitaparyantaḥ kṛṣṇagrīvas taḍiddyutiḥ
trivarṇaḥ parigho bhānoḥ saṃdhyārāgam athāvṛṇot //
vakram aṅgārakaś cakre kṛttikāsu bhayaṃkaraḥ
bāṇasya janmanakṣatraṃ bhartsayann iva sarvaśaḥ //
anekaśākhaś caityaś ca nipapāta mahītale
arcitaḥ sarvakanyābhir dānavānāṃ mahātmanām //
evaṃ vividharūpāṇi nimittāni niśāmayan
bāṇo balamadonmatto niścayaṃ nādhigacchati //
vicetās tv abhavat prājñaḥ kumbhāṇḍas tattvadarśivān
bāṇasya sacivas tatra kīrtayan bahu kilbiṣam //
Note: k: K1.3.4 Ñ2.3 V B D T1.2.4 G ins.: :k
utpātā hy atra dṛśyante kathayanto naśobhanam |
tava rājyavināśāya bhaviṣyanti na saṃśayaḥ ||
vayaṃ cānye ca sacivā bhṛtyā ye ca tavānugāḥ |
kṣayaṃ yāsyanti nacirāt sarve pārthiva durnayāt ||
yathā śakradhvajataroḥ svadarpāt patanaṃ bhavet |
raṇam ākāṅkṣato mohāt tathā bāṇasya nardataḥ ||
devadevaprasādāt tu trailokyavijayaṃ gataḥ |
utsekād dṛśyate nāśo yuddhākāṅkṣī nanarda ha |
bāṇaḥ prītamanās tv eva papau pānam anuttamam
daityadānavanārībhiḥ sārdham uttamavikramaḥ //
kumbhāṇḍaś cintayāviṣṭo rājaveśmābhyayāt tadā
acintayac ca tattvārthaṃ tais tair utpātadarśanaiḥ //
rājā pramādī durbuddhir jitakāśī mahāsuraḥ
yuddham evābhilaṣate na doṣān paśyate madāt //
mahotpātabhayaṃ caiva na tan mithyā bhaviṣyati
apīdānīṃ bhaven mithyā sarvam utpātadarśanam //
iha tv āste trinayanaḥ kārttikeyaś ca vīryavān
tenotpanno 'pi doṣo naḥ kaccid gacchet parābhavam //
utpannadoṣaprabhavaḥ kṣayo 'yaṃ bhavitā mahān
doṣāṇāṃ na bhaven nāśa iti me dhīyate matiḥ //
niyataṃ doṣa evāyaṃ bhaviṣyati na saṃśayaḥ
daurātmyān nṛpater asya doṣabhūtā hi dānavāḥ //
devadānavasaṃghānāṃ yaḥ kartā bhuvanaprabhuḥ
sa bhavaḥ kārttikeyaś ca kṛtavāso hi naḥ pure //
prāṇaiḥ priyataro nityaṃ bhavasya tu guhaḥ sadā
tad viśiṣṭaś ca bāṇo 'pi bhavasya satataṃ priyaḥ //
Note: k: K1.2 Ñ V B Ds D2.4.5 (marg.).6 T1.2.4 G1.3.4 ins. (G2 after 60ab): :k
darpotsekāt tu nāśāya varaṃ yācitavān bhavam |
yuddhahetoḥ sa lubdhas tu sarvathā na bhaviṣyati ||
yadi viṣṇupurogāṇām indrādīnāṃ divaukasām |
bhavitā hy abhayat prāptir bhavahastāt kṛtā bhavet |
etayoś ca hi ko yuddhaṃ kumārabhavayor iha
śakto dātuṃ samāgamya bāṇasāhāyyakāṅkṣiṇoḥ //
Note: k: N (except Ś1) T1.2.4 G1.3.4 ins. (G5 after 58ab; G2 cont. after *1158): :k
na ca devavaco mithyā bhaviṣyati kathaṃcana |
bhaviṣyati mahad yuddhaṃ sarvadaityavināśanam |
evaṃ sa cintayāviṣṭaḥ kumbhāṇḍas tattvadarśivān
svastipraṇihitāṃ buddhiṃ cakāra sa mahāsuraḥ //
ye hi devair virudhyante puṇyakarmabhir āhave
yathā balir niyamitas tathā te yānti saṃkṣayam //
Note: h: HV (CE) chapter 107, transliterated by Julie Bélanger, proof-read by André Couture, version of August 2nd :h
krīḍāvihāropagataḥ kadācid abhavad bhavaḥ
devyā saha nadītīre ramye śrīmati sa prabhuḥ //
śatāni tatrāpsarasāṃ cikrīḍuś ca samantataḥ
sarvartukavane ramye gandharvapatayas tathā //
kusumaiḥ pārijātasya puṣpaiḥ saṃtānakasya ca
gandhoddāmam ivākāśaṃ nadītīraṃ ca sarvaśaḥ //
veṇuvīṇāmṛdaṅgaiś ca paṇavaiś ca sahasraśaḥ
vādyamānaiḥ sa śuśrāva gītam apsarasāṃ tadā //
sūtamāgadhakalpaiś cāpy astuvann apsarogaṇāḥ
devadevaṃ suvapuṣaṃ sragviṇaṃ raktavāsasam //
Note: k: Ñ2 V1.2 B Ds D1.5.6 Bom. Poona eds. G(ed.) ins.: :k
haraṃ sahomaṃ varadaṃ ramayanti manoramāḥ |
tatas tu devyā rūpeṇa vikralekhā varāpsarāḥ
bhavaṃ prasādayām āsa devī ca prāhasat tadā //
Note: k: N(except Ś1) T1.2.4 G ins.: :k
prasādayantīm īśānaṃ prahasanty apsaroganāḥ |
bhavasya pārṣadā divyā nānārūpā mahaujasaḥ ||
devyā hy anujñayā sarve krīḍante tatra tatra ha ||
atha te pārṣadās tatra rahasye suvipaścitaḥ |
mahādevasya rūpeṇa tac cihnaṃ rūpam āsthitāḥ |
Note: k: T1.2 G1.3-5 cont.: :k
nanṛtur bhūtapatayo vicitrābhinayānvitāḥ |
tato devyās tu rūpeṇa līlayā vadanena ca
devī prahāsaṃ mumuce tāś caivāpsarasas tadā //
tataḥ kilikilāśabdaḥ prādurbhūtaḥ samantataḥ
praharṣam atulaṃ cāpi lebhe prītamanā bhavaḥ //
bāṇasya duhitā kanyā tatroṣā nāma bhāminī
devaṃ prakrīḍitaṃ dṛṣṭvā devyā saha nadīgatam //
Note: k: N (except Ś1 K2 Ñ1) T1.2.4 G ins.: :k
dīpyamānaṃ mahādevaṃ dvādaśādityatejasam |
nānārūpaṃ vapuḥ kṛtvā devyāḥ priyacikīrṣayā |
uṣā manorathaṃ cakre pārvatyāḥ saṃnidhau tadā
dhanyā hi bhartṛsahitā ramyanty evaṃ samāgatāḥ //
Note: k: N (except Ś1 K2 Ñ1 D3) T1.2.4 G ins.: :k
manasā tv atha saṃkalpam uṣayā bhāṣitaṃ tathā |
vijñāya tam abhiprāyam uṣāyāḥ parvatātmajā
prāha devī tato vākyam uṣāṃ harṣayatī śanaiḥ //
uṣe śīghraṃ tvam apy evaṃ bhartrā saha ramiṣyasi
yathā devo mayā sārdhaṃ śaṃkaraḥ śatrusūdanaḥ //
evam ukte tadā devyā vākye cintāvilekṣaṇā
uṣā bhāvaṃ hṛdā cakre bhartrā raṃsye kadā saha //
tato haimavatī vākyaṃ saṃprahasyedam abravīt
uṣe śṛṇuṣva kalyāṇi yadā saṃyogam eṣyasi //
vaiśākhe māsi harmyasthāṃ dvādaśyāṃ tvāṃ dinakṣaye
dharṣayiṣyati yaḥ svapne sa te bhartā bhaviṣyati //
evam uktā daityasutā kanyāgaṇasamāvṛtā
apākrāmata harṣeṇa ramamāṇā yathāsukham //
Note: k: K1.3.4 Ñ1.2 V B D T1.2.4 G ins.: :k
tataḥ sakhībhir hāsyantī harṣeṇotphullalocanā |
tālikāsaṃnipātaiś ca anyonyaṃ jaghnur ūrjitāḥ ||
kiṃnaryo yakṣakanyāś ca nāgadaityeśakanyakāḥ |
apsarogaṇakanyāś ca uṣāyāḥ sakhitāṃ gataḥ ||
uktā ca tatra tābhiḥ sā bhartā tava varānane |
bhaviṣyaty acireṇaiva devyā vacanakalpitaḥ ||
na hi devyā vaco mithyā bhaviṣyati kadācana |
rūpābhijanasaṃpannaḥ patiḥ saṃkalpitas tayā ||
uṣā sakhīnāṃ tad vākyaṃ pratipūjya yathāvidhi |
dattaṃ manorathaṃ devyā bhāvayantī vyatiṣṭhata |
tataḥ krīḍāvihāraṃ tam anubhūya sahomayā
Note: k: K2 ins.: :kjagāma bhagavān devaḥ svapuraṃ tripurāntakṛt |
Note: k: D6 T1.2 G M ins.: :kdevadevo jagannātha upāraṃsīt tato haraḥ |
gate 'hani punaḥ sarvās tā nāryo jagmur adbhutāḥ //
Note: k: N (except Ś1 K2 D6; Ñ1 om.) T1.2.4 G ins.: :k
yayuḥ svān ālayān sarvā devī cādarśaṇaṃ gatā |
kāś cid aśvais tathā yānair gajair anyās tathā rathaiḥ
puraṃ praviviśur hṛṣṭāḥ kāścid ākāśam āsthitāḥ //
tato harmye śayānāṃ tu vaiśākhe māsi bhāminīm
dvādaśyāṃ śuklapakṣasya sakhīgaṇavṛtāṃ tadā //
yathoktaḥ puruṣaḥ svapne dharṣayām āsa tām uṣām
viveṣṭamānāṃ rudatīṃ devyā vacanacoditaḥ //
sā svapne dharṣitā tena strībhāvaṃ cāpi lambhitā
śoṇitāktā prarudatī sahasaivotthitā niśi //
tāṃ tathā rudatīṃ dṛṣṭvā sakhī bhayasamanvitām
citralekhā vacaḥ snigdham uvāca param ādbhutam //
uṣe mā bhaiḥ kim evaṃ tvaṃ rudatī paritapyase
baleḥ sutasutā ca tvaṃ prakhyātā kiṃ bhayānvitā //
na bhayaṃ vidyate loke tava subhru viśeṣataḥ
bhayadas tava vāmoru pitā devāntako raṇe //
uttiṣṭhottiṣṭha bhadraṃ te viṣādaṃ mā kṛthāḥ śubhe
naivaṃvidheṣu vāseṣu bhayam asti varānane //
asakṛd devasahitaḥ śacībhartā sureśvaraḥ
aprāpta eva nagaraṃ pitrā te mṛdito raṇe
ayaṃ devasamūhasya bhayadas te pitā raṇe //
Note: k: After 107.26cd, D6 T1 G1.2.4.5 M G(ed.) ins.: :k
airāvataḥ sa mṛdito gadayā cāsya bhāmini |
nirāśo jīvite so 'bhūd vajrapāṇiḥ sahāmaraiḥ |
Note: k: After 107.26, N (except Ś1) T4 G5 ins.: :k
mahāsuravaraḥ śrīmān baleḥ putro mahābalaḥ ||
evaṃ sābhihitā sakhyā bāṇaputrī yaśasvinī |
svapnarūpaṃ yathā dṛṣtvaṃ nyavedayad aninditā |
evaṃ saṃdūṣitā sādhvī kathaṃ jīvitum utsahe
pitaraṃ kiṃ nu vakṣyāmi devaśatrum ariṃdamam //
evaṃ saṃdūṣaṇakarī vaṃśasyāsya mahaujasaḥ
śreyo hi maraṇaṃ manye na me śreyo 'dya jīvitam //
Note: k: K1.3.4 Ñ2 V B D T4 G1.2.5 G (ed.) ins.: :k
īpsito vā yatha ko 'pi puruṣo 'dhigato hi me |
jāgratīva yathāhaṃ syām avastheyaṃ kṛtā mama |
niśāyāṃ jāgratī vāhaṃ nītā kena daśām imām |
katham evaṃ kṛtā nāma kanyā jīvitum utsahe
kulopakrośanakarī kulāṅgārā nirāśreyā
jīvituṃ spṛhayen nārī sādhvīnām agrataḥ sthitā //
ity evaṃ bāṣpapūrṇākṣī sakhījanavṛtā tadā
vilalāpa ciraṃ kālam uṣā kamalalocanā //
anāthavattāṃ rudatīṃ sakhyaḥ sarvā vicetasaḥ
ūcur aśruparītākṣya uṣāṃ sarvāḥ samāgatāḥ //
duṣṭena manasā devi śubhaṃ yadi vāsubham
kriyate na ca te subhru kaccid duṣṭaṃ manas tava //
Note: k: N (except Ś1) T4 G1.2.5 ins.: :k
prasabhaṃ devi saṃyogād yadi bhuktāsi bhāmini |
svapnayogena kalyāṇi vratalopo na vidyate
vyabhicāreṇa te devi nāsti kaścid vyatikramaḥ //
Note: k: N (except Ś1) T4 G1.2.5 ins.: :k
na ca svapnakṛto doṣo martyaloke 'sti sundari |
evaṃ viprarṣayo devi dharmajñāḥ kathayanti vai |
manasā caiva vācā ca karmaṇā ca viśeṣataḥ
duṣṭā yā tribhir etais tu pāpā sā procyate bhuvi //
na va te duṣyate bhīru manaḥ prajavitaṃ sadā
kathaṃ tvaṃ doṣaduṣṭā vai niyatā brahmacāriṇī //
yadi suptā satī sādhvī śuddhabhāvā manasvinī
imām avasthāṃ nītā tvaṃ naiva dharmo vilupyate //
yasyā duṣṭaṃ manaḥ pūrvaṃ karmaṇā copapāditam
tām āhur asatīṃ nāma satī tvam asi bhāmini //
kulajā rūpasaṃpannā niyatā brahmacāriṇī
imām avasthāṃ nītāsi kālo hi duratikramaḥ //
ity evaṃ uktāṃ rudatīṃ bāṣpeṇāvṛtalocanām
kumbhāṇḍaduhitā vākyaṃ paramaṃ tv idam abravīt //
Note: k: N (except Ś1) T4 G1.2.5 ins.: :k
tyaja śokaṃ viśālākṣi apāpā tvaṃ varānane |
smṛtaṃ me yad idaṃ vākyaṃ yāthātathyena tac chṛṇu |
uṣe yad uktā devyāsi bhartāraṃ dhyāyatī tadā
samīpe devadevasya smara bhāmini tad vacaḥ //
dvādaśyāṃ śuklapakṣasya vaiśākhe māsi yo niśi
harmye śayānāṃ rudatīṃ strībhāvam upaneṣyati //
bhavitā sa hi te bhartā śūraḥ śatrunibarhaṇaḥ
ity uvāca tato hṛṣṭā devī tava manogatam //
na hi tad vacanaṃ mithyā pārvatyā yad udāhṛtam
tattvaṃ kim idam atyarthaṃ rodiṣīndunibhānane //
ity evam uktā vacanaṃ smṛtvā devīvacas tataḥ
abhavan naṣṭaśokā sā bāṇaputrī śubhekṣaṇā //
Note: k: Ñ2 V3 ins.: :k
smṛtvā tu vacanaṃ devyāḥ pratyuvāca sakhīṃ tadā |
smarāmi bhāmini vaco devyāḥ krīḍāgate bhave
yathoktaṃ sarvam akhilaṃ prāptaṃ harmyatale mayā //
bhartā tu mama yady eṣa lokanāthasya bhāryayā
vyādiṣṭaḥ sa kathaṃ jñeyas tatra kāryaṃ vidhīyatām //
ity evam ukte vacane kumbhāṇḍaduhitā punaḥ
vyājahāra yathānyāyam arthatattvaviśāradā //
na hi tasya kulaṃ devi na kīrtir nāpi pauruṣam
kaścij jānāti tattvena kim idaṃ tvaṃ vihanyase //
adṛṣṭaś cāśrutaś caiva dṛṣṭaḥ svapne tvayānaghe
kathaṃ jñeyo bhaved bhīru so 'smābhī ratitaskaraḥ //
yena tvam asitāpāṅge mattakāśini vikramāt
rudatī prasabhaṃ bhuktā praviśyāntaḥpuraṃ sakhi //
na hy ayaṃ prākṛtaḥ kaścid yaḥ praviṣṭaḥ prasahya naḥ
nagaraṃ lokavikhyātam ekaḥ śatrunibarhaṇaḥ //
ādityā vasavo rudrā aśvinau ca mahaujasau
na śaktāḥ śoṇitapuraṃ praveṣṭuṃ bhīmavikramāḥ //
Note: k: D6 T1 G1.3-5 M1-3 ins.: :k
purīṃ śāsati bāṇe tu jitvā śakraṃ śacīpatim |
so 'yam etaiḥ śataguṇo viśiṣṭaḥ śatrusūdanaḥ
praviṣṭaḥ śoṇitapuraṃ bāṇam ākramya mūrdhani //
Note: k: S(except T4; T3 missing) ins.: :k
ko nu nāma jagaty asmin manaḥ kartuṃ mahāsure |
śāsaty etat puraṃ devi manuṣyo jīvitaspṛhaḥ |
praviśet tam avajñāya bāṇaṃ kiṃ vāpi dharṣaṇam |
yasyā naivaṃvidho bhartā bhaved yuddhaviśāradaḥ
kas tasyā jīvitenārtho bhogair vā syāc chubhekṣaṇe //
dhanyāsy anugṛhītāsi yasyās te patir īdṛśaḥ
prāpto devyāḥ prasādena pārvatyā mattakāśini //
idaṃ tu te kāryatamaṃ śṛṇu tvaṃ vai mayeritam
vijñeyo yasya putras tu yan nāmā yat kulaś ca saḥ //
ity evam ukte vacane tatroṣā kāmamohitā
Note: k: T1.2 G M ins.: :ktaccharaiś ca samāviddhā bhrāntalocanaviklavā |
daśām antyāṃ samāsthāya nidrāsukhavimohitā |
uvāca kumbhāṇḍasutāṃ kathaṃ jñāsyāmahe sakhi //
Note: k: N (except Ś1) T1 G2.5 ins.: :k
tvam eva cintaya sakhi nottaraṃ pratibhāti me |
svakārye muhyate loko yathā jīvaṃ labhāmy aham ||
uṣāyā vacanaṃ śrutvā rāmā vākyam idaṃ punaḥ |
uvāca rudatīṃ caiva kubhāṇḍatanayā sakhīm ||
kuśalā te viśālākṣi sarvathā saṃdhivigrahe |
apsarā citralekhā vai kṣipraṃ vijñāpyatāṃ sakhi ||
asyāḥ sarvam aśeṣeṇa trailokyaṃ viditaṃ sadā ||
evam uktā tadaivoṣā harṣeṇāgatavismayā |
tām apsarasam ānāyya citralekhāṃ sakhīṃ priyām |
kṛtāñjalipuṭā dīnā uṣā vacanam abravīt |
Note: k: B Ds cont.: :k
sā tac chrutvā tu vacanam uṣāyāḥ parikīrtitam |
āśvāsayām āsa sakhīṃ bāṇaputrīṃ yaśasvinīm |
tataḥ sā cintayāviṣṭā vacanaṃ prāha durvacaḥ
citralekhām apsarasaṃ praṇayāt tāṃ sakhīṃ sakhī //
paramaṃ śṛṇu me vākyaṃ yat tvāṃ vakṣyāmi bhāmini
bhartāraṃ yadi me 'dya tvaṃ nānayiṣyasi matpriyam //
kāntaṃ padmapalāśākṣaṃ mattamātaṅgavikramam
tyakṣyāmy ahaṃ priyān prāṇāṃs tataḥ kamalalocane //
vikralekhābravīd vākyam uṣāṃ tāṃ hasatī śanaiḥ
naiṣo 'rthaḥ śakyate 'smābhir vettuṃ bhāmini suvrate //
Note: k: N (except Ś1) T4 G2.5 ins.: :k
na kulena na varṇena na śīlena na rūpataḥ |
na deśataś ca vijñātaḥ sa hi coro mayā sakhi |
kiṃ tu śakyam idaṃ kāryaṃ buddhipūrvaṃ mayā sakhi
prāptuṃ tac chṛṇu me vākyaṃ yathā kāmam avāpsyasi //
Note: k: D1.5 ins.: :k
uṣāṃ harṣayatī śanaiḥ |
yathā ca śakyate 'smābhir |
devadānavayakṣāṇāṃ gandharvoragarakṣasām
ye viśiṣṭāḥ prabhāvena rūpeṇābhijanena ca //
yathāpradhānāṃs tān sarvān ālikhiṣyāmy ahaṃ sakhi
manuṣyaloke ye cāpi pravarā lokaviśrutāḥ //
saptarātreṇa te bhīru darśayiṣyāmi tān aham
tato vijñāya paṭṭasthaṃ bhartāraṃ pratilapsyase //
Note: k: Ds1 ins.: :k
na darśaye yadi sakhi tarhi vahnim ahaṃ viśe |
Note: k: Ds1 cont.: K1.3.4 Ñ2 V B Dn Ds2 D1-6 T4 G1.2.5 ins.: :k
sā citralekhayā proktā uṣāhitacikīrṣayā |
kriyatām evam ity āha citralekhāṃ sakhīṃ priyām ||
tataḥ kuśalahastatvād yathālekhyaṃ samantataḥ |
ity uktvā saptarātreṇa kṛtvālekhyagatāṃs tu tān
citrapaṭṭagatān mukhyān ānayām āsa śobhanā //
tataḥ prāstīrya paṭṭaṃ sā citralekhā svayaṃkṛtam
Note: k: T1.2 G1.4.5 M ins.: :katyujjvalaṃ mahācitraṃ piṅgavarṇavibhūsitam |
uṣāyā darśayām āsa sakhīnāṃ ca viśeṣataḥ //
ete deveṣu ye mukhyās tathā dānavavaṃśajāḥ
kiṃ naroragayakṣāṇāṃ rākṣasānāṃ ca sarvaśaḥ //
Note: k: K1.3.4 Ñ2 V B D G1.2.5 ins.: :k
gandharvāsuradaityānāṃ ye cānye bhoginaḥ smṛtāḥ |
manuṣyāṇāṃ ca sarveṣāṃ ye viśiṣṭatamā narāḥ
tad etān paśya sarvāṃs tvaṃ yathābhilikhitān mayā //
yas te bhartā yathārūpo yathābhilaṣitaḥ sakhi
taṃ tvaṃ pratyabhijānīhi svapne yaṃ dṛṣṭavaty asi //
tataḥ krameṇa sarvāṃs tān dṛṣṭvā sā mattakāśinī
Note: k: Ñ2 V B Ds ins.: :kdevadānavagandharva vidyādharagaṇān atha |
atītya ca yadūn sarvān dadarśa yadunandanam //
Note: k: D6 T1.2 G1.2.4.5 M ins.: :k
balabhadram atho dṛṣṭvā pradyumnam atha sātyakim |
dadarśa yadusiṃhaṃ taṃ pautraṃ viṣṇor mahātmanaḥ |
aniruddhaṃ raṇe ruddhaṃ pañcabāṇam iva sthitam ||
paṭe sthitaṃ tato dṛṣṭvā vīraṃ citrātmanā yadum |
tatrāniruddhaṃ dṛṣṭvā sā vismayot phullalocanā
abravīc citralekhāṃ tām ayaṃ coraḥ sa vai sakhi //
yenāhaṃ dūṣitā pūrvaṃ svapne harmyagatā satī
so 'yaṃ vijñātarūpo me kutastyas taskaraḥ śubhe //
citralekhe vadasvainaṃ tattvato mama śobhane
guṇaśīlābhijanato nāma kiṃ cāsya bhāmini //
Note: k: Ś1 K1.2 Ñ2 V B Ds D1.2.4-6 T4 G1.2.4.5 ins.: :k
tataḥ paścād vidhāsyāmi kāryasyāsya viniścayam |
ayaṃ trilokyanāthasya naptā kṛṣṇasya dhīmataḥ
Note: k: T1 G M G(ed.) ins. after the ref., T2 after 74: :kdevadevo jagannāthaḥ sākṣāc cakragadādharaḥ |
dānavānāṃ raṇe hantā viṣṇur jiṣṇur jagatpatiḥ ||
yo vikramaṃ jagannāthas trailokyaṃ sacarācaram |
nijaikapadapadme yo nilīnam akarod vibhuḥ |
tasyāyaṃ devadevasya śaṅkhacakragadābhṛtaḥ |
Note: k: For 75ab, T1.2 G M subst.: :kpautraḥ kṛṣṇasya vikhyātaḥ sarvalokeṣu bhāmini |
bhartā tava viśālākṣi prādyumnir bhīmavikramaḥ //
na hy asya triṣu lokeṣu sadṛśo 'sti parākrame
utpāṭya parvatān eṣa parvatair eva śātayet //
dhanyāsy anugṛhītāsi yasyās te yadupuṃgavaḥ
tryakṣapatnyā samādiṣṭaḥ sadṛśaḥ sajjanaḥ patiḥ //
yady enaṃ me viśālākṣi bhartāram amaropamam
Note: k: After the ref.,K1.3.4 Ñ2 V B D T4 G1.2.4.5 ins.: :ktvam evātra viśālākṣi yogyā bhava varānane |
aśakyā hi gatiś cānyā agatyā me gatir bhava ||
antarikṣacarā ca tvaṃ yoginī kāmarūpiṇī |
upāyaśilpakuśalā kṣipram ānaya me priyam ||
upāyaś cintyatāṃ bhīru apratarkyaṃ priye sukham |
siddhārthā saṃnivartasva yenopāyena sundari ||
bhaved āpatsu yan mitraṃ tan mitraṃ śasyate budhaiḥ |
kāmārtā cāsmi suśroṇi bhava me prāṇadhāriṇī |
adya nānayasi kṣipraṃ prāṇāṃs tyakṣyāmy ahaṃ śubhe //
uṣāyā vacanaṃ śrutvā citralekhābravīd vacaḥ
śrotum arhasi kalyāṇi vacanaṃ me śucismite //
yathā bāṇasya nagaraṃ rakṣyate devi sarvataḥ
dvārakāpi tathā bhīru durādharṣā viśeṣataḥ //
Note: k: N (except Ś1 Ñ1) T4 G2.4.5 ins.: :k
ayasmayapraticchannā guptadvārā ca sā purī |
guptāvṛṣṇikumāraiś ca tathā dvārakavāsibhiḥ ||
prānte salilasaṃyuktā vihitā viśvakarmaṇā |
rakṣyate puruṣair ghoraiḥ padmanābhasya śāsanāt ||
śailaprākāraparikhā durgamārgapraveśinī |
saptaprākāraracitā parvatair dhātumaṇḍitaiḥ |
na ca śakyam avijñātaiḥ praveṣṭuṃ dvārakāṃ purīm
Note: k: T1.2 G M ins.: :knānuyokṣyasi māṃ devi sāhase 'smiṃs tu karmaṇi |
tato virama buddhiṃ tvaṃ duḥprāpāt svapnavastunaḥ |
ātmānaṃ māṃ ca rakṣasva pitaraṃ ca viśeṣataḥ //
aniruddhasya vadanaṃ pūrṇacandranibhaṃ sakhi
Note: k: Ś1 M4 om. the ref. After the ref. Ñ (except Ś1 Ñ1) T4 G1.2.4.5 ins.: :ktava yogaprabhāveṇa śakyaṃ tatra praveśanam |
kiṃ me bahuvilāpena śrūyatāṃ sakhi kāraṇam |
yady ahaṃ taṃ na paśyāmi yāsyāmi yamasādanam //
Note: k: N(except Ś1 Ñ1) T4 G2.4.5 ins.: :k
dūtam āsādya kāryāṇāṃ siddhir bhavati bhāmini |
tasmād dautyena me gaccha jīvantīṃ māṃ yadīcchasi |
yadi tvaṃ me vijānāsi sakhyaṃ premṇā ca bhāṣitam
kṣipram ānaya me kāntaṃ prāṇāṃs tyakṣyāmi vā priyān //
Note: k: N (except Ś1 Ñ1) T4 G2.4.5 ins.: :k
jīvitasya hi saṃdehaṃ kṣayaṃ caiva kulasya ca |
kāmārtā hi na paśyanti dūṣaṇaṃ vai kulasya ca ||
prayatno yujyate kārye ṣviti śāstranidarśanam ||
tvaṃ ca śaktā viśālākṣi dvārakāyāḥ praveśane |
saṃstutāsi mayā bhīru kuru me priyadarśanam |
eṣā gacchāmy ahaṃ bhīru praviśya dvārakāṃ purīm
Note: k: K1 Ñ2.3 V B Dn Ds D1-3.5 T4 G2.4.5 ins. after the ref.; D4 cont. after 1197*: :ksarvathā saṃstutā te 'haṃ vākyair amṛtakalpakaiḥ |
kāritā ca samudyogaṃ priyaiḥ kāntaiś ca bhāṣitaiḥ |
bhartāram ānayāmy adya tava vṛṣṇikulodvaham //
Note: k: N (except Ś1 K1 Ñ1) T4 G2.4.5 ins.: :k
aniruddhaṃ mahābāhuṃ praviśya dvārakāṃ purīm |
sā vacas tathyam aśivaṃ dānavānāṃ bhayāvaham
Note: k: D4 ins.: :kyādavānāṃ tathaivāhaṃ kulodbhūtasamudbhavam |
uktvā cāntarhitā kṣipraṃ citralekhā manojavā //
Note: k: N (except Ś1 K2 Ñ1) T4 G2.4.5 ins.: :k
sakhībhiḥ sahitā hy ūṣā cintayantī sthitā tu sā |
tṛtīye tu muhūrte sā naṣṭā bāṇapurāt tadā
Note: k: Ñ2 V B Dn Ds D2.6 T4 G2.4.5 ins.: :ksakhīpriyaṃ cikīrṣantī pūjayantī tapodhanān |
kṣaṇena samanuprāptā dvārakāṃ kṛṣṇapālitām //
kailāsaśikharākāraiḥ prāsādair upaśobhitām
dadarśa dvārakāṃ caiva divi tāreva saṃsthitām //
Note: h: HV (CE) chapter 108, transliterated by Julie Bélanger, proof-read by Horst Brinkhaus, version of February 4, 2003. :h
Note: k: After the ref., all Mss. (except Ś1 Ñ1 ins. a passage given in App. I (No. 33). :k
tato dvāravatīmadhye prākārair upaśobhitam
Note: k: K1.2 Ñ2 V B Dn Ds D1-5 ins. after App. I (No. 33); D6 after 1ab: :ktato dvāravatīmadhye kāmasya bhavanaṃ śubham |
tatsamīpe 'niruddhasya bhavanaṃ sā sma paśyati ||
sauvarṇavedikāstambhaṃ rukmavaidūryatoraṇam |
mālyadāmāvasaktaṃ ca pūrṇakumbhopaśobhitam ||
barhikaṇṭhānatagrīvaṃ prāsādair ekasaṃcayaiḥ |
maṇipravālasaṃstīrṇaṃ divyagandharvanāditam |
dadarśa bhavanaṃ yatra prādyumnir avasat sukham //
Note: k: avasat corrected for printed asat :k
tataḥ praviśya sahasā bhavanaṃ tasya tan mahat
Note: k: K1.3.4 V B D S (T3 missing) ins. (Ñ2 after the first occurence of 2ab): :ktatrāniruddhaṃ sāpaśyac citralekhā varāpsarāḥ |
dadarśa madhye nārīṇāṃ tārāpatim ivoditam //
krīḍāvihāre nārībhiḥ sevyamānam itas tataḥ
pibantaṃ madhu mādhvīkaṃ śriyā paramayā yutam
varāsanagataṃ tatra yathaivailavilaṃ tathā //
Note: k: K Ñ2.3 V B D (except D3) T4 G2.4.5 ins.: :k
vādyate samatālaṃ ca gīyate madhuraṃ tathā |
na ca tasya manas tatra tam evārtham acintayat ||
striyaḥ sarvaguṇopetā nṛtyante tatra tatra vai |
na cāsya manasas tuṣṭiṃ citralekhā prapaśyati |
na cābhiramate bhogair na cāpi madhu sevate |
vyaktam asya hi tat svapnaṃ hṛdaye parivartate |
iti tatraiva buddhyā ca niścitā gatasādhvasā |
sā dṛṣṭvā paramastrīṇāṃ madhye śakradhvajopamam |
Note: k: After line 3, K1 Ñ2 B1 D6 ins.: :k
priyāsu gīyamānāsu nṛtyamānāsu sarvaśaḥ |
cintayāviṣṭadehā sā citralekhā manasvinī
kathaṃ kāryam idaṃ kāryaṃ kathaṃ svasti bhaven mama //
sāntarhitā cintayitvā citralekhā yaśasvinī
tāmasyā chādayām āsa vidyayā śubhalocanā //
harmye strīgaṇamadhyasthaṃ kṛtvā cāntarhitaṃ tadā
utpapāta gṛhītvā sā prādyumniṃ yuddhadurmadam //
sā tam adhvānam āgamya siddhacāraṇasevitam
sahasā śoṇitapuraṃ praviveśa manojavā //
Note: k: K Ñ2.3 V B D T4 G2.4.5 G(ed.) ins.: :k
adarśanaṃ tam ānīya māyayā kāmarūpiṇī |
aniruddhaṃ mahābhāgā yatroṣā tatra gacchati ||
uṣāyādarśayac cainaṃ citrābharaṇabhūṣitam ||
citrāmbaradharaṃ vīraṃ kandarpasamarūpiṇam |
Note: k: G2.4.5 cont. (T1.2 G1.3 M ins. after 7; T4 after line 2 of *1206): :k
tṛtīye tu muhūrte sā prāptā bāṇapuraṃ tadā |
uṣāṃ tāṃ darśayām āsa paśyainaṃ yady asau bhavet ||
evam uktā tadā kanyā bāṇasya duhitā tataḥ |
tatroṣā vismitā dṛṣṭvā harmyasthā sakhisaṃnidhau
praveśayām āsa tadā saṃprāptaṃ svagṛhaṃ tataḥ //
Note: k: Ñ2 ins.: :k
praveśite 'niruddhe tu prahṛṣṭā sahitā tayā |
sakhījanasamāyuktā lajjamānā śucismitā |
praharṣotphullanayanā priyaṃ dṛṣṭvārthakovidā
Note: k: N (except Ś1 Ñ1 D1.2) T4 G2.4.5 G(ed.) ins.: :ksā harmyasthā tam arghyeṇa yādavaṃ samapūjayat |
citralekhāṃ pariṣvajya priyākhyānair ayojayat |
tvaritā kāminī prāha citralekhāṃ bhayāturā //
sakhīdaṃ vai kathaṃ guhyaṃ kāryaṃ kāryaviśārade
guhye kṛte bhavet svasti prakāśe jīvitakṣayaḥ //
Note: k: After 10, T4 ins. an addl. colophon mentioning adhy. no. 218. T4 ins. after the addl. colophon: K Ñ3 V1.2 B Ds2 D1-5 G2.4.5 (Ñ2 V3 Dn Ds1 D6 after the first occurrence of 11abcd) ins.: :k
citralekhābravīd vākyaṃ śṛṇu tvaṃ niścayaṃ sakhi |
kṛtaṃ puruṣakāraṃ hi daivaṃ nāśayate sakhi ||
na vai devyāḥ prasādas te anukūlo bhaviṣyati |
apramādāt kṛtaṃ guhyaṃ na kaścij jñāsyate naraḥ ||
sakhyā vai evam uktā sā paryavasthitacetanā |
evam etad iti prāha sāniruddham idaṃ vacaḥ ||
diṣṭyā svapnagataś coro dṛśyate subhago janaḥ |
yatkṛte tu vayaṃ khinnā durlabhapriyakāṅkṣayā ||
kaccit tava mahābāho kuśalaṃ sarvatogatam |
hṛdayaṃ hi mṛdu strīṇāṃ tena pṛcchāmy ahaṃ tava ||
tasyās tad vacanaṃ śrutvā uṣāyāḥ ślakṣṇam arthavat |
so 'py āha yaduśārdūlaḥ śubhākṣarataraṃ vacaḥ ||
harṣaviplutanetrāyāḥ pāṇināśru pramṛjya ca |
prahasya sasmitaṃ prāha hṛdayagrāhakaṃ vacaḥ ||
kuśalaṃ me varārohe sarvatra mitabhāṣiṇi |
tvatprasādena me devi priyam āvedayāmi te ||
adṛṣṭapūrvaś ca mayā deśo 'yaṃ śubhadarśane |
niśi svapne mayā dṛṣṭaṃ sakṛt kanyāpuraṃ mahat ||
evam evam ahaṃ bhīru tvatprasādād ihāgataḥ |
na ca tad rudrapatnyā vai mithyā vākyaṃ bhaviṣyati ||
devyās tu prītim ājñāya tvatpriyārthaṃ ca bhāvini |
anuprāpto 'smi cādyaiva prasīda śaraṇaṃ gataḥ |
Note: k: After line 22, D6 ins. an addl. colophon mentioning adhy. name bāṇayuddham. B1.2 Ds2 D2 T4 G2.4.5 cont. (Ds1 ins. after second occurrence of 11cd): :k
ity uktvā ramayām āsa so 'niruddho mahāyaśāḥ |
ity uktvā tvaramāṇā sā guhyadeśe svalaṃkṛtā
kāntena saha saṃyuktā sthitā vai bhītabhītavat
Note: k: K Ñ3 V1.2 B Ds2 D1-5 T2.4 G1.3-5 G(ed.) ins. after 11cd; Ñ2 V3 Dn D6 after second occurrence of 11cd; Ds1 after *1211: :ktataś codvāhadharmeṇa gāndharveṇa samīyatuḥ |
anyonyaṃ rematus tau tu cakravākau yathā divā ||
patinā sāniruddhena mumude tu varāṅganā |
Note: k: Ñ2 V B Dn Ds D6 cont. (T2.4 G1.3-5 G(ed.) ins. after line 2 of *1212): :kkāntena saha saṃyuktā divyasraganulepanā |
Note: k: D6 T2.4 G1.3-5 G(ed.) cont.; T1 G2 M ins. after 11cd: :kekadeśe gṛhasyāsya pracchanno caiva bhāminī |
kareṇur dviradeneva varayām āsa saṃgatā ||
papau tasya mukhaṃ sādhvī samāliṅgya yathākramam |
netre cucumba sā devī bāṇasya duhitā yadum ||
bhūyo bhūyaḥ samāśliṣya yatheṣṭaṃ madamohitā |
na tṛptim āyayau sā tu samāliṅgya yadūttamam ||
Note: k: [Colophon] :ktāmasyā vidyayā yuktaḥ prādyumnir atha tatkṣaṇāt |
cintayām āsa taṃ dṛṣṭvā gṛhe strījanam adbhutam ||
ko 'yaṃ vidhir mama mahān na jāne tv asya kāraṇam |
svapno 'yaṃ kiṃ mayā dṛṣṭa utāho vibhramo mama ||
jāgarmy ahaṃ na me svapno na ca ma vibhramo mahān |
keyam agre sthitā subhrūr lateva ca supuṣpitā ||
udbhrāntahariṇāpaṅgī bhrūlatābhaṅgabhāṣiṇī |
pīnastanorujaghanā tāmrapādakarādharā ||
nīlakuñcitakeśāḍhyā madhurasmitabhāṣiṇī |
mama netrapathākrāntā candralekheva śāradī |
kim idaṃ nātra jānāmi kenedaṃ pratipāditam ||
dṛṣṭvāsya vavṛdhe kāmas tām uṣāṃ madamohitām |
sā ca tatpurataḥ sākṣāt pānaṃ kartuṃ samudyatā ||
atha tām iṅgitair jñātvā śrutvā caiva yathārthataḥ |
ramayām āsa ramaṇīṃ kāmatas tāṃ manoramām ||
sā cāpi taṃ samāsādya harṣabhītākulekṣaṇā |
kāmato ramayām āsa romāñcodgatakarkaśā ||
līlāsaṃlāpalalitair lalanā taṃ samācarat |
kareṇur iva mātaṅgaṃ vāśitā girigahvare |
Note: k: After line of *1214, T1.2 G1 ins.: :kaniruddhaṃ mahābāhuṃ nidrāparavaśaṃ gataṃ |
Note: k: After the ref. before line 7, T2 G3.4 ins.: :ktato niruddhaḥ svapne tu svapurāc citralekhayā |
nīto bāṇapuraṃ sadyaḥ saṃgataś coṣayā saha ||
dṛṣṭvaivaṃ svapnasaṃsargaṃ uṣayā svasya cādbhutam |
Note: k: After line 20a of *1214, T2 G1.3 ins.: :kvacanena vimohitām ||
sa tataś citralekhāṃ tām avekṣyovāca yādavaḥ |
dvārakānagarāc chīgram ānītaś citralekhayā ||
bāṇasya nagaraṃ prāpya saṃgato 'smy uṣayā rahaḥ |
evaṃ svapno mayā dṛṣṭo vicitro 'dṛṣṭapūrvakaḥ ||
ko 'yaṃ vidhir mamāyātaḥ kā tvaṃ kaiṣā ca bhāminī |
keyaṃ purī gṛhaṃ kasya tat tvam ākhyātum arhasi ||
iti bruvantaṃ taṃ dṛṣṭvā citralekhā vaco 'bravīt |
api te kuśalaṃ vīra sarvatra yadunandana |
ramamāṇāniruddhena avijñātā tu sā tadā //
Note: k: After 11, T1.2 G1.3-5 M G(ed.) ins.: :k
papau cāsyā mukhaṃ kāmī samāliṅgya dṛḍhaṃ yaduḥ |
parasparaṃ samāśliṣya parasparamukhaṃ papuḥ ||
tayodyatāṃ tato mādhvīṃ papau śiṣṭām apāyayat |
tayor evaṃ tadā kāmo vavṛdhe janasaṃsadi ||
citralekhā tataḥ sādhvī bhūṣayām āsa bhūṣaṇaiḥ |
vastrair ābharaṇaiś citrair mālyaiś ca bahugandhibhiḥ ||
rarāja yaduvīras tu rohiṇyā candramā yathā |
saudhamārge tatas tau tu daṃpatī rematuś ciram |
tāṃ tathā ramayām āsa yatheṣṭaṃ yadunandanaḥ |
Note: k: T2 G1.3 ins.: :k
parasparasya vadanaṃ papatus tau parasparam |
Note: k: After line 6 of *1215, T2 G1.3 ins.: :k
alaṃkṛtas tayā tatra saṃgataś coṣayā rahaḥ |
Note: k: T2 G1 cont. after line 9 of *1215: :k
papau tasya mukhaṃ sādhvī samāliṅgya yathākramam |
netre ca cumbito devī bāṇasya duhitā sakhī |
tasminn eva kṣaṇe prāpte yadūnām ṛṣabho hi saḥ
divramālyāmbaradharo divyasraganulepanaḥ
uṣayā saha saṃyukto vijñāto bāṇarakṣibhiḥ //
Note: k: After 12e T1.2 G M G(ed.) ins.: :k
damayantyā nalo yathā |
vijahāra yathākāmaṃ ramayaṃs tām uṣāṃ śubhām ||
Note: k: [Colophon] :k
atha tasyām avasthāyāṃ sthavirā vetrapāṇayaḥ |
āmuktakañcukā rājan kañcukīyāḥ samantataḥ ||
aniruddhaṃ tato jñātvā sārdhaṃ kanyāpure sthitam |
uṣayā bāṇasutayā ramayantaṃ yatheṣṭataḥ ||
rakṣiṇaḥ sahasā gatvā bhītā bāṇāntikaṃ tadā ||
atha dīptāyudhodagrā nityaṃ suparirakṣakāḥ |
te bhītāḥ kathayām āsur aniruddhasya ceṣṭitam ||
eṣa kaścin mahārāja uṣayā saha saṃgataḥ |
sthitaḥ kanyāpure rājan kaś cāsau kuta ity api ||
āyātaḥ sahasā rājan na vidmo 'sya gatiṃ vibho ||
śrutvaitad roṣayuktas tu balaṃ bāṇo nirīkṣya tat |
tatas taiś cārapuruṣair bāṇasyāveditaṃ tadā
yathādṛṣṭam aśeṣeṇa kanyāyās tadvyatikramam //
tataḥ kiṃkarasainyaṃ tu vyādiṣṭaṃ bhīmakarmaṇā
baleḥ putreṇa bāṇena vīreṇāmitraghātinā //
gacchadhvaṃ sahitāḥ sarve hanyatām eṣa durmatiḥ
yena naḥ kulacāritraṃ dūṣitaṃ dūṣitātmanā //
uṣāyāṃ dharṣitāyāṃ hi kulaṃ no dharṣitaṃ mahat
asaṃpradānādyo 'smābhiḥ svayaṃgrāham adharṣayat //
aho vīryamaho dhairyam aho dhārṣṭyaṃ ca durmateḥ
yaḥ puraṃ bhavanaṃ cedaṃ praviṣṭo naḥ subāliśaḥ //
Note: k: N (except Ś1 Ñ1) T4 G2.4.5 G(ed.) ins.: :k
evam uktvā punas tāṃs tu kiṃkarāṃś codayad bhṛśam ||
te tasyājñām atho gṛhya susaṃnaddhā viniryayuḥ |
yatrāniruddho hy abhavat tatrāgacchan mahābalāḥ |
nānāśastrodyatakarā nānārūpadharās tu te
dānavāḥ samabhikruddhāḥ prādyumnivadhakāṅkṣiṇaḥ //
Note: k: N (except Ś1 Ñ1) T2.4 G1.3-5 ins.: :k
rudate tadbalaṃ dṛṣṭvā bāṣpeṇāvṛtalocanā |
prādyumnivadhabhītā sā bāṇaputrī yaśasvinī ||
tatas tu rudatīṃ dṛṣṭvā tām uṣāṃ mṛgalocanām |
hā hā kānteti vepantīm aniruddho 'bhyabhāṣata ||
abhayaṃ te 'stu saśroṇi mā bhais tvaṃ hi mayi sthite |
saṃprāpto harṣakālas te na te 'sti bhayakāraṇam ||
kṛtsno 'yaṃ yadi bāṇasya bhṛṭyavargo yaśasvini |
āgaccheta na me cintā bhīru paśyādya vikramam ||
tasya sainyasya ninadaṃ śrutvābhyāgacchatas tataḥ |
sahasaivotthitaḥ śrīmān prādyumniḥ kim iti bruvan ||
athāsyāpaśyata balaṃ nānāpraharaṇodyatam |
sthitaṃ samantatas tatra parivārya gṛhaṃ mahat ||
tato 'bhyagacchat tvarito yatra tad veṣṭitaṃ balam |
kruddhaḥ svabalam āsthāya saṃdaśya daśanacchadam ||
tato yuddham apoḍhānāṃ bāṇeyānāṃ niśamya tu |
sā citralekhā sasmāra nāradaṃ devadarśanam ||
tato nimeṣamātreṇa saṃprāpto munipuṃgavaḥ |
smṛto 'tha citralekhāyāḥ puraṃ śoṇitasāhvayam ||
antarikṣe sthitas tatra so 'niruddham athābravīt |
mā bhayaṃ svasti te vīra prāpto 'smy abhimatas tava ||
tataś ca nāradaṃ dṛṣṭvā so 'bhivādya mahābalaḥ |
prahṛṣṭaḥ sumanā bhūtvā yuddhārtham abhyavartata |
Note: k: T2 G1.2.4 cont. (M4 ins. after 18): :k
vadhyatāṃ vadhyatām eṣa gṛhyatāṃ gṛhyatām ayam |
hanyatāṃ hanyatāṃ kṣipram ity ūcur dānavās tada |
tatas teṣāṃ svanaṃ śrutvā sarveṣām eva garjatām
sahasaivotthitaḥ śūras totrārdita iva dvipaḥ //
Note: k: T1.2 G1.3-5 M ins.: :k
niruddho 'pi tayā tatra bahuśo yuddhadurmadaḥ |
bhītayā bhīta evāsau dhāvati sma tathāsurān |
tam āpatantaṃ dṛṣṭvaiva saṃdaṣṭauṣṭhaṃ mahābhujam
prāsādāc cāvarohantaṃ bhayārtā vipradudruvuḥ //
Note: k: After 20c, T1.2 G1.3-5 M ins.: :k
nadantaṃ siṃhavat tadā |
tasya nādena vai rājan |
antaḥpuradvāragataṃ parighaṃ gṛhya cātulam
vadhāya teṣāṃ cikṣepa nānāyudhaviśāradaḥ //
te sarve bāṇavarṣaiś ca gadābhis tomarais tathā
asibhiḥ śaktibhiḥ śūlair nijaghnū raṇagocaram //
sa hanyamāno nārācaiḥ parighaiś ca samantataḥ
Note: k: K1 Ñ2.3 V B Dn Ds D1.4-6 T4 G2.4.5 ins.: :kdānavaiḥ samabhikruddhaiḥ prādyumniḥ śastrakovidaiḥ |
nākṣubhyat sarvabhūtātmā nadan megha ivoṣṇage //
āvidhya parighaṃ ghoraṃ teṣāṃ madhye vyavasthitaḥ
sūryo divicaranmadhye meghānām iva sarvataḥ //
Note: k: K1.3.4 Ñ2.3 V B D T4 G2-5 (T2 after 25, G1 after 28) ins.: :k
daṇḍakāṣṭhājinadharo nārado hraṣṭacetanaḥ |
sādhu sādhv iti vai tatra so 'niruddham abhāṣata |
te hanyamānā raudreṇa parigheṇāmitaujasā
prādravanta bhayāt sarve megho vāteritā yathā //
Note: k: N (except Ś1) T4 G2.4 ins.: :k
vidrāvya dānavān vīraḥ parigheṇāśuvikramaḥ |
aniruddho nadan hṛṣṭaḥ siṃhanādaṃ vyarocata
gharmānte toyado vyomni nadann iva mahāsvanaḥ //
tiṣṭhadhvam iti cukrośa dānavān yuddhadurmadān
prādyumnir vyahanac cāpi sarvaśatrunibarhaṇaḥ //
tena te samare sarve hanyamānā mahātmanā
yato bāṇas tato bhītā yayur yuddhaparāṅmukhāḥ //
tato bāṇasamīpasthāḥ śvasanto rudhirokṣitāḥ
na śarma lebhire daityā bhayaviklavalocanāḥ //
mā bhaiṣṭa mā bhaiṣṭa iti rājñā te tena coditāḥ
trāsaṃ visṛjya caikasthā yudhyadhvaṃ dānavarṣabhāḥ //
Note: k: N (except Ś1 K2 Ñ1) T4 G2.4.5 ins.: :k
tān uvāca punar bāṇo bhayavitrastalocanān |
kim idaṃ lokavikhyātaṃ yaśa utsṛjya dūrataḥ
bhavanto yānti vaiklavyaṃ klībā iva vicetasaḥ //
ko 'yaṃ yasya bhayatrastā bhavanto yānty anekaśaḥ
kulāpadeśinaḥ sarve nānāyuddhaviśāradāḥ //
bhavadbhir na hi me yuddhe kāryaṃ sāhāyyam adya vai
abravīd dhvaṃsatety evaṃ matsamīpāc ca naśyata //
atha tān vāgbhir ugrābhis trāsayan bahudhā balī
vyādideśa raṇe śūrān sarvān ayutaśaḥ punaḥ //
pramāthagaṇabhūyiṣṭhaṃ vyādiṣṭaṃ tasya nigrahe
anīkaṃ sumahadrātrau nānāpraharaṇodyatam //
tatrāntarikṣaṃ bahudhā vidyudvadbhir ivāmbudaiḥ
bāṇānīkaiḥ samabhavad vyāptaṃ saṃdīptalocanaiḥ //
kecit kṣitisthāḥ prākrośan gajā iva samantataḥ
athāntarikṣe vyanadan gharmānteṣv iva toyadāḥ //
tatas tat sumahad yuddhaṃ sametam abhavat punaḥ
tiṣṭha tiṣṭheti ca tadā vāco 'śrūyanta sarvaśaḥ //
Note: k: N (except Ś1 K2 Ñ1) T4 G2.4.5 ins.: :k
aniruddho raṇe vīraḥ sa ca tān abhyavartata |
tad āścaryaṃ samabhavad yad ekas taiḥ samāgataḥ
ayudhyata mahāvīryair dānavaiḥ saha saṃyuge //
teṣām eva ca jagrāha parighāṃs tomarān api
tair eva ca mahāyuddhe nijaghāna mahābalaḥ //
Note: k: B1 ins.: :k
parigṛhya ca tān eva cāyudhair ahanad raṇe |
punaḥ sa parighaṃ ghoraṃ pragṛhya raṇamūrdhani
sa daityasaṃghān samare nijaghāna mahābalān //
Note: k: T1.2 G M ins.: :k
aṣṭau trīṇi sahasrāṇi kiṃkarāṇāṃ tarasvinām |
jaghāna samare caikaḥ sākṣāt pautras tu śārṅgiṇaḥ |
nanāda vividhaṃ nādaṃ rodasī ca sa kampayan |
nistriṃśaṃ carma cotsṛṣṭaṃ jagrāha raṇamūrdhani
sa tena vyacaran mārgān ekaḥ śatrunibarhaṇaḥ //
bhrāntam udbhrāntam āviddham āplutaṃ viplutaṃ plutam
iti prakārān dvātriṃśad vicarann abhyadṛśyata //
ekaṃ sahasraśas tatra dadṛśū raṇamūrdhani
krīḍantaṃ bahudhā yuddhe vyāditāsyam ivāntakam //
tatas tenābhisaṃtaptā rudhiraughapariplutāḥ
punar bhagnāḥ prādravanta yatra bāṇaḥ sthito raṇe //
gajavājirathaughais te uhyamānāḥ samantataḥ
kṛtvā cārtasvaraṃ ghoraṃ diśo jagmur hataujasaḥ //
Note: k: Ñ2 B1 Ds ins.: :k
evaṃ bhayam abhūt teṣāṃ dānavānāṃ mahāraṇe |
ekaikasyopari tadā te 'nyonyaṃ bhayapīḍitāḥ
vamantaḥ śoṇitaṃ jagmur viṣādād vimukhā raṇe //
na babhūva bhayaṃ tādṛg gānavānāṃ purā raṇe
yādṛśaṃ yudhyamānānām aniruddhena saṃyuge //
Note: k: D2 subst.: :k
yudhyatām aniruddhena yathāvartata dāruṇam |
Note: k: K2 ins.: :k
tādṛśaṃ na bhayaṃ teṣām abhavad devasaṃyuge |
kecid vamanto rudhiram apatan vasudhātale
dānavā giriśṛṅgābhā gadāśūlāsipāṇayaḥ //
Note: k: T1.2 G M ins.: :k
kecin mathitamastiṣkāḥ kecid bhinnagalāntarāḥ |
te bāṇam utsṛjya raṇe jagmur bhayasamākulāḥ
viśālam ākāśatalaṃ dānavā nirjitās tadā //
niḥsaṅgabhagnāṃ mahatīṃ dṛṣṭvā tāṃ vāhinīṃ tadā
bāṇaḥ krodhāt prajajvāla samiddho 'gnir ivādhvare //
Note: k: N (except Ś1 K2 Ñ1) T4 G2.4.5 ins. (T2 G3 after 68): :k
antarikṣacaro bhūtvā sādhuvādī samantataḥ |
nārado nṛtyati prīto hy aniruddhasya saṃyuge ||
etasminn antare caiva bāṇaḥ paramakopana |
kumbhāṇḍasaṃgṛhītaṃ tu ratham āsthāya vīryavān
yayau yatrāniruddho vai so 'sim udyamya dāruṇam //
paṭṭisāsigadāśūlān udyamya ca paraśvadhān
babhau bāhusahasreṇa śakradhvajaśatair iva //
baddhagodhāṅgulitraiś ca bāhubhiḥ sa mahābhujaḥ
nānāpraharaṇopetaḥ śuśubhe dānavottamaḥ //
siṃhanādaṃ nadan kruddho visphāritamahādhanuḥ
Note: k: T1.2 G M ins.: :kvisṛjañ śataśo bāṇān dānavo 'tha mahābalaḥ |
abhyadravac ca vegena prādyumnir yatra saṃsthitaḥ |
abravīt tiṣṭha tiṣṭheti krodhasaṃraktalocanaḥ //
vacanaṃ tasya saṃśrutya prādyumnir aparājitaḥ
bāṇasya vadataḥ saṃkhye udaikṣata tato 'hasat //
Note: k: D6 T1.2.4 G M ins.: :k
uṣā ca pitaraṃ dṛṣṭvā bhayavihvalalocanā |
prāsādamadhye saṃlīnā bhartāraṃ samudaikṣata ||
kartavyamūḍhā saṃbhrāntā citralekhā varāpsarāḥ |
babhūva vimanā bhūtvā mṛtāsmīti vyacintayat |
kiṃkiṇīśatanirghoṣaṃ raktadhvajapatākinam
ṛkṣacarmāvanaddhāṅgaṃ daśanalvaṃ mahāratham //
Note: k: D6 T1.2 G M ins.: :k
āruhya syandanaṃ vīro babhau bāhusahasravān |
tasya vājisahasraṃ tu rathe yuktaṃ mahātmanā
Note: k: N (except Ś1 K2) T2.4 G2.4.5 ins.: :kpurā devāsure yuddhe hiraṇyakaśipor iva ||
tam āpatantaṃ dadṛśe dānavaṃ yadupuṃgavaḥ |
saṃprahṛṣṭas tato yuddhe tejasā cāpy apūryata ||
asicarmadharo vīraḥ svasthaḥ saṃgrāmalālasaḥ |
narasiṃho yathā pūrvam ādidaityavadhodyataḥ |
āpatantaṃ dadarśātha khaḍgacarmadharaṃ tadā //
Note: k: T1.2 G M ins.: :k
rāgiṇaṃ cihnitaṃ rājan priyānakhapadais tathā |
khaḍgacarmadharaṃ taṃ tu dṛṣṭvā bāṇaḥ padātinam
praharṣam atulaṃ lebhe prādyumnivadhakāṅkṣayā //
tanutreṇa vihīnaś ca khaḍgapāṇiś ca yādavaḥ
ajeyaś ceti matvā taṃ yuddhāyābhimukhe sthitam //
Note: k: N (except Ś1 Ñ1) T4 G2.4.5 ins.: :k
aniruddhaṃ raṇe bāṇo jitakāśī mahābalaḥ |
vācaṃ covāca saṃkruddho gṛhyatāṃ hanyatām iti ||
vācaṃ ca bruvatas tasya śrutvā prādyumnir āhave |
bāṇasya bruvataḥ krodhād dhasamāno 'bhyudaikṣata ||
uṣā bhayaparitrastā rudatī tatra bhāminī |
aniruddhaḥ prahasyātha samāśvāsya ca tāṃ sthitām ||
atha bāṇaḥ śaraughāṇi kṣudrakāṇāṃ samantataḥ |
cikṣepa samare kruddho hy aniruddhavadhepsayā ||
aniruddhas tu ciccheda kāṅkṣaṃs tasya parājayam |
vavarṣa śarajālāni kṣudrakāṇāṃ samantataḥ
bāṇo'niruddhaśirasi kāṅkṣaṃs tasya raṇe vadham //
tāni bāṇasahasrāṇi carmaṇā vyavadhūya saḥ
babhau pramukhatas tasya sthitaḥ sūrya ivodaye //
so 'bhibhūya raṇe bāṇam āsthito yadunandanaḥ
siṃhaḥ pramukhato dṛṣṭvā gajam ekaṃ yathā vane //
tato bāṇasahasraughair marmabhedibhir āśugaiḥ
vivyādha niśitais tīkṣṇaiḥ prādyumnim aparājitam //
Note: k: K2 subst.: :k
tato vivyādha niśitair bāṇaiḥ prādyumnim āsthitaḥ |
Note: k: B2 D5 T4 G2.4.5 G(ed.) ins.: :k
samāhatas tato bāṇaiḥ khaḍgacarmadharo nṛpa |
Note: k: B2 D5 T4 G2.4.5 cont.; K1.3.4 Ñ2 V B Ds2 D1.4.6 ins. after 64 (Dn1 after 67ab): :k
tam āpatantaṃ niśitair abhyaghnan sāyakais tadā |
so 'tividdho mahābāhur bāṇaiḥ saṃnataparvabhiḥ
krodhenābhiprajajvāla cikīrṣuḥ karma duṣkaram //
rudhiraughaplutair gātrair bāṇavarṣaiḥ samāhataḥ
abhibhūtaḥ susaṃkruddho yayau bāṇarathaṃ prati //
asibhir musalaiḥ śūlaiḥ paṭṭisais tomarais tathā
so 'tividdhaḥ śaraughais tu prādyumnir nābhyakampata //
āplutya sahasā kruddho ratheṣāṃ tasya so 'cchinat
jaghānāśvāṃś ca khaḍgena bāṇasya rathamūrdhani //
taṃ punaḥ śaravarṣeṇa tomaraiḥ paṭṭisais tathā
cakārāntarhitaṃ bāṇo yuddhamārgaviśāradaḥ //
hato 'yam iti vijñāya prāṇadan nairṛtā gaṇāḥ
tato 'vaplutya sahasā rathapārśve vyavasthitaḥ //
śaktiṃ bāṇas tataḥ kruddho ghorarūpāṃ bhayāvahām
jagrāha jvalitāṃ dīptāṃ ghaṇṭāmālākulāṃ raṇe //
jvalanādityasaṃkāśāṃ yamadaṇḍopamāṃ śubhām
Note: k: Ś1 D2 ins.: :kvārayantīṃ durādharṣāṃ cāmīkaravibhūṣitām |
gurvīṃ bhārasahasreṇa viśvakarmakṛtāṃ tadā |
prāhiṇot tām asaṅgena maholkāṃ jvalitām iva //
tām āpatantīṃ saṃprekṣya jīvitāntakarīṃ tadā
tām eva prāhiṇoc chaktiṃ sarvaśatrubhayaṃkarīm |
so 'bhiplutya tadā śaktiṃ jagrāha puruṣottamaḥ //
nirbibheda tato bāṇaṃ svaśaktyaiva mahābalaḥ
sā bhittvā tasya dehaṃ tu jagāma vasudhātalam //
Note: k: After an addl. colophon, M3 ins.: :k
tato mūrchāṃ samāpede baliputraḥ pratāpavān |
rudhirāplutagātras tu svaśakyā pīḍito bhṛśam |
Note: k: N (except Ś1) T4 G2.4.5 ins. after 74: :k
sa gāḍhaviddho vyathito dhvajayaṣṭiṃ samāśritaḥ |
tato mūrchābhibhūtaṃ taṃ kumbhāṇḍo vākyam abravīt
upekṣase dānavendra kim evaṃ śatrum udyatam //
labdhalakṣyo hy ayaṃ vīro nirvikāro 'dya dṛśyate
māyām āśritya yudhyasva nāyaṃ vadhyo 'nyathā bhavet //
ātmānaṃ māṃ ca rakṣasva pramādāt kim upekṣase
vadhyatām ayam adyaiva na naḥ sarvān vināśayet //
Note: k: Ds1 G(ed.) ins.: :k
anyāṃś ca śataśo hatvā uṣāṃ nītvā vrajiṣyati |
kumbhāṇḍavacanair evaṃ dānavendraḥ pracoditaḥ
vācaṃ rūkṣām abhikruddhaḥ provāca vadatāṃ varaḥ //
eṣo 'ham asya vidadhe mṛtyuṃ prāṇaharaṃ raṇe
ādāsyāmy aham enaṃ vai garutmān iva pannagam //
ity evam uktvā sarathaḥ sāśvaḥ sadhvajasārathiḥ
gandharvanagarākāras tatraivāntaradhīyata //
vijñāyāntarhitaṃ bāṇaṃ prādyumnir aparājitaḥ
pauruṣeṇa samāyuktaḥ sa praikṣata diśo daśa //
āsthāya tāmasīṃ vidyāṃ tadā kruddho baleḥ sutaḥ
mumoca viśikhāṃs tīkṣṇāṃś channo māyādharo balī //
prādyumnir viśikhair baddhaḥ sarpabhūtaiḥ samantataḥ
veṣṭito bahudhā tasya dehaḥ pannagarāśibhiḥ //
Note: k: Ś1 subst.: :k
dehaḥ saṃveṣṭitas tasya bahudhā śararāśibhiḥ |
sa tu veṣṭitasarvāṅgo baddhaḥ prādyumnir āhave
niṣprayatnaḥ sthitaḥ svastho maināka iva parvataḥ //
jvālāvalīḍhavadanaiḥ sarpabhogair viveṣṭitaḥ
abhītaḥ parvatākāraḥ prādyumnir abhavad raṇe //
niṣprayatnaḥ sthitaś cāpi sarpabhogamayaiḥ śaraiḥ
na vivyathe sa bhūtātmā sarvataḥ pariveṣṭitaḥ //
tatas taṃ vāgbhir ugrābhiḥ saṃrabdhaḥ samatarjayat
bāṇo dhvajaṃ samāśritya provācāmarṣito vacaḥ //
kumbhāṇḍa vadhyatāṃ śīghram ayaṃ vai kulapāṃsanaḥ
cāritraṃ yena me loke dūṣitaṃ dūṣitātmanā //
ity evam ukte vacane kumbhāṇḍo vākyam abravīt
rājan vakṣyāmy ahaṃ kiṃcit tan me śṛṇu yadīcchasi //
ayaṃ vijñāyatāṃ kasya kuto vāyam ihāgataḥ
kena vāyam ihānītaḥ śakratulyaparākramaḥ //
Note: k: CE -parākamaḥ :k
mayāyaṃ bahuśo yuddhe dṛṣṭo rājan mahāraṇe
krīḍann iva ca yuddheṣu dṛśyate devasūnuvat //
Note: k: Dn ins.: :k
kulaśīlatapovīryaiḥ sarvair eva samanvitaḥ |
sarvayuddhe 'py asaṃhāryo bhaved vīryādhikas tava |
balavān sattvasaṃpannaḥ sarvaśāstraviśāradaḥ
nāyaṃ vadhakṛtaṃ doṣam arhate daityasattama
vijñāya ca vadhaṃ vāsya pūjāṃ vāpi kariṣyasi //
Note: k: K1.3.4 Ñ2.3 V B D T2.4 G2.3 ins. (G4 after 92ab; G5 after first occurrence of 92cd): :k
gāndharveṇa vivāhena kanyeyaṃ tava saṃgatā |
adeyā hy apratigrāhyā ataś cintya vadhaṃ kuru |
vadhe hy asya mahān doṣo rakṣaṇe sumahān guṇaḥ
ayaṃ hi puruṣotkarṣaḥ sarvathā mānam arhati //
sarvato veṣṭitatanur na vyathaty eṣa bhogibhiḥ
Note: k: K1 Ñ2.3 V B Ds D1.4-6 ins.: :kkulaśauṇḍīryavīryaiś ca sattvena ca samanvitaḥ |
paśya rājan yaśovīryair anvitaṃ puruṣottamam
na no gaṇayate sarvān vadhaṃ prāpto 'py ayaṃ balī //
Note: k: K1.3.4 Ñ2 V B Dn (both second time) Ds D1-5.6 (second time) T2 G2-5 ins. after 94 (Dn D6 (all first time) after 77ab): :k
yadi māyāprabhāvena nātra baddho bhaved ayam |
sarvāsuragaṇān saṃkhye yodhayen nātra saṃśayaḥ ||
sarvayuddheṣu mārgajño bhaved vīryādhikas tava |
śoṇitaughaplutair gātrair nāgabhogaiś ca veṣṭitaḥ
triśikhāṃ bhrukuṭīṃ kṛtvā na cintayati naḥ sthitān //
imām avasthāṃ nīto 'pi svabāhubalam āśritaḥ
na cintayati rājaṃs tvāṃ vīryavān ko 'py asau yuvā //
sahasrabāhoḥ samare dvibāhuḥ samavasthitaḥ
rucitaṃ yadi te rājañ jñeyo vīryabalānvitaḥ //
Note: k: K2 V2.3 D2-4.6 G3 ins. (K1.4 Ñ2.3 V1 B Dn Ds D1.5 T4 G2.4.5 after second occurrence of 97cd): :k
kanyā ceyaṃ na cānyasya niryātyānena saṃgatā ||
yadi ceṣṭatamaḥ kaścid ayaṃ vaṃśe mahātmanaḥ |
tataḥ pūjām ayaṃ vīraḥ prāpsyaty evāsurottamaḥ ||
rakṣyatām iti coktvaiva tathāstv iti ca tasthivān |
Note: k: G3-5 cont., T1 M ins. after 97 (T2 after 95ab; G1 after 68a): :k
bāḍham ity abravīd bāṇo hantuṃ vyavasitaḥ kila |
uṣāṃ babandha nigaḍair dṛḍhaiḥ pāśaiś ca saṃyataiḥ ||
vyādideśa tato bāṇo rakṣiṇaḥ kiṃkarān bahūn |
rakṣyatām eṣa duṣṭātmā sā ca rakṣyā kulādhamā ||
iti sarvān samādiśya bāṇo madabalānvitaḥ |
kumbhāṇḍena yayau sārdhaṃ svam eva bhavanaṃ balī |
kumbhāṇḍasya vacaḥ śrutvā śuddhānte pannagair bhṛśam
Note: k: K1.3.4 Ñ2.3 V B D T.4 G4.5 subst.: :kevam ukte tu vacane kumbhāṇḍena mahātmanā |
Note: k: K1.3.4 Ñ2 V B D T4 M4 cont., G2 M4 ins. after 98ab: :ktathety āha ca kumbhāṇḍaṃ bāṇaḥ śatruniṣūdanaḥ ||
saṃrakṣiṇas tato dattvā aniruddhasya dhīmataḥ |
aniruddhaṃ yodhayitvā bāṇaḥ svagṛham āviśat //
Note: k: K1.3.4 Ñ2 V B D T4 G2 subst.: :k
yayau svam eva bhavanaṃ baleḥ putro mahāsuraḥ |
Note: k: K1.3.4 Ñ2 V B D T4 G2 cont., Ñ3 ins. after 98 (T2 G1.3 cont. after 1255*: G4.5 after 1257*): :k
saṃyataṃ māyayā dṛṣṭvā aniruddhaṃ mahābalam |
ṛṣīṇāṃ nāradaḥ śreṣṭho 'brajad dvāravatīṃ prati ||
tato hy ākāśamārgeṇa munir dvāravatīṃ gataḥ ||
gate ṛṣīṇāṃ pravare so 'niruddho vyacintayat |
naṣṭo 'yaṃ dānavaḥ krūro yuddhaṃ prāpya na saṃśayaḥ ||
sa gatvā nāradas tatra śaṅkhacakragadādharam |
jñāpayiṣyati tattvena imam arthaṃ yathaiva tat ||
nāgair viveṣṭitaṃ dṛṣṭvā uṣā prādyumnim āturā |
ruroda bāṣparaktākṣī tām āha rudatīṃ punaḥ ||
kim idaṃ rudyeta bhīru mā bhais tvaṃ śubhalocane |
paśya suśroṇi saṃprāptaṃ matkṛte madhusūdanam ||
yasya śaṅkhadhvaniṃ śrutvā bāhuśabdaṃ balasya ca |
dānavā nāśam eṣyanti garbhāś cāsurayoṣitām ||
evam uktā niruddhena uṣā viśrambham āgatā |
nṛśaṃsaṃ cāpi pitaraṃ śocate sā sumadhyamā |
Note: k: After line 3, Ñ2 V2 B2 Ds1 D2.6 ins.: :k
baddhaṃ nivedayām āsa prādyumniṃ garuḍadhvaje |
Note: Colophon
Note: h: HV (CE) chapter 109, transliterated by Julie Bélanger, proof-read, by Horst Brinkhaus, version of February 4, 2003 :h
tato 'niruddhasya gṛhe ruruduḥ sarvayoṣitaḥ
priyaṃ nātham apaśyantyaḥ kiṃnarya iva saṃghaśaḥ //
aho dhik kim idaṃ loke nāthe kṛṣṇe vyavasthite
anāthā iva saṃtrastā rudimo bhayamohitāḥ //
yasyendrapramukhā devāḥ sādityāḥ samarudgaṇāḥ
bāhucchāyāṃ samāśritya vasanti divi devatāḥ //
tasyotpannam idaṃ loke bhayadasya mahadbhayam
yasyāniruddhaḥ pautraḥ sa vīraḥ kenāpi no hṛtaḥ //
aho nāsti bhayaṃ nūnaṃ tasya loke sudurmateḥ
vāsudevasya yaḥ krodhaṃ prajvālayati duḥsaham //
vyāditāsyasya yo mṛtyor daṃṣṭrāgre parivartate
Note: k: D6 T1.2 G M ins.: :katikruddhasya siṃhasya ghnataś ca gajasattamān |
śoṇitaṃ pātukāmasya daṃṣṭrān prodhṛtya daṃśataḥ |
sa vāsudevaṃ samare mohāt pratyudiyād ripuḥ //
idam evaṃvidhaṃ kṛtvā vipriyaṃ yadupuṃgave
kathaṃ jīvan vimucyeta sākṣād api śatakratuḥ //
kṛtāgā na sa śocyas tu vayaṃ tv adya vinākṛtāḥ
viprayogena nāthasya kṛtāntavaśagāḥ kṛtāḥ //
ity evaṃ tā rudantyaś ca vadantyaś ca punaḥ punaḥ
netrajaṃ vāri mumucur aśivaṃ paramāṅganāḥ //
tāsāṃ bāṣpābhipūrṇāni nayanāni cakāśire
salilenāplutānīva paṅkajāni jalāgame //
tāsām arālapakṣmāṇi rājimanti śubhāni ca
rudhireṇāplutānīva nayanāni cakāśire //
tāsāṃ harmyatalasthānāṃ tūrṇam āsīn mahāsvanaḥ
kurarīṇām ivākāśe rudatīnāṃ sahasraśaḥ //
taṃ śrutvā ninadaṃ ghoram apūrvaṃ bhayam āgatam
utpetuḥ sahasā khebhyo gṛhebhyaḥ puruṣarṣabhāḥ //
kasmād eṣo 'niruddhasya śrūyate sumahāsvanaḥ
gṛhe kṛṣṇābhiguptānāṃ kuto no bhayam āgatam //
ity evam ūcus te 'nyonyaṃ snehaviklavagadgadāḥ
pradharṣitā yathā siṃhā guhābhya iva niḥsṛtāḥ //
saṃnāhabherī kṛṣṇasya sabhāyām āhatā tadā
tasyāḥ śabdena te sarve sabhām āgamya viṣṭhitāḥ //
kim etad iti cānyonyaṃ samapṛcchanta yādavāḥ
anyonyasya hi te sarve yathānyāyam avedayan //
tatas te bāṣpapūrṇākṣāḥ krodhasaṃraktalocanāḥ
niḥśvasanto vyatiṣṭhanta yādavā yuddhadurmadāḥ //
tūṣṇīṃbhūteṣu sarveṣu vipṛthur vākyam abravīt
Note: k: T1.2.4 G1.3-5 ins.: :knītijño hitavaktā ca yādavānāṃ priyaṃkaraḥ |
kṛṣṇaṃ praharatāṃ śreṣṭhaṃ niḥśvasantaṃ muhur muhuḥ //
kim evaṃ cintayāviṣṭaḥ puruṣendra bhavān iha
tava bāhubalaprāṇam āśritāḥ sarvayādavāḥ
bhavantam āśritāḥ kṛṣṇa saṃvibhaktāś ca sarvaśaḥ //
tathaiva balahā śakras tvayy āveśya jayājayau
sukhaṃ svapiti niścintaḥ kathaṃ tvaṃ cintayānvitaḥ //
śokasāgaram akṣobhyaṃ sarve te jñātayo gatāḥ
tān majjamānān ekas tvaṃ samuddhara mahābhuja //
kim evaṃ cintayāviṣṭo na kiṃcid api bhāṣase
cintāṃ kartuṃ vṛthā deva na tvam arhasi mādhava //
ity evam uktaḥ kṛṣṇas tu niḥśvasya suciraṃ punaḥ
prāha vākyaṃ sa vākyajño bṛhaspatir iva svayam //
vipṛtho cintayāviṣṭa etat kāryaṃ vicintayan
Note: k: Ś1 K1 Ñ2 V B Dn Ds D1.2.4-6 ins.: :kvicintayaṃs tv ahaṃ cāsya kāryasya na labhe gatim |
tathāhaṃ bhavatāpy ukto nottaraṃ vidadhe kvacit //
dāśārhagaṇamadhye 'dya vadāmy arthavatīṃ giram
śṛṇudhvaṃ yādavāḥ sarve yathā cintānvito hy aham //
aniruddhe hṛte vīre pṛthivyāṃ sarvapārthivāḥ
aśaktān iva manyante sarvān asmān sabāndhavān //
āhukaś caiva no rājā hṛtaḥ sālvena vai purā
pratyānītas tato 'smābhir yuddhaṃ kṛtvā sudāruṇam //
pradyumnaś cāpi no bālye śambareṇa hṛto hy abhūt
sa taṃ nihatya samare prāpto rukmiṇinandanaḥ //
idaṃ tu sumahatkaṣṭaṃ prādyumniḥ kva pravāsitaḥ
naivaṃvidham ahaṃ doṣaṃ smarāmi manujarṣabhāḥ //
bhasmanā guṇṭhitaḥ pādo yena me mūrdhni pātitaḥ
Note: k: T1.2 G M ins.: :kmama netraṃ durāsrāvam andhatāṃ ko 'nayad balāt |
ko vā jaḍamatiḥ satyaṃ ratnaṃ me makuṭād dharet ||
ko vā balaṃ durādharṣam avamatyāgrataḥ sthitaḥ |
ko nu vā śiniputrasya cāpaṃ na smarati prabho |
sānubandhasya tasyāhaṃ hariṣye jīvitaṃ raṇe //
ity evam ukte kṛṣṇena sātyakir vākyam abravīt
carāḥ kṛṣṇa prayujyantām aniruddhasya mārgaṇe //
Note: k: Ñ2.3 V B Dn Ds D5(marg.).6 ins.: :k
saparvatavanoddeśāṃ mārgantu vasudhām imām |
Note: k: T1.2 G M ins. after 32: :k
atraiva prāyaśas tatra yadi syāt kenacid dhṛtaḥ |
jñāte pratikariṣyāmi yat tu prāptam anantaram |
āhukaṃ prāha kṛṣṇas tu smitaṃ kṛtvā vacas tadā
ābhyantarāś ca bāhyāś ca vyādiśyantāṃ carā nṛpa //
Note: k: K1.2.4 Ñ2 V B Dn Ds D1.3-6 ins.: :k
keśavasya vacaḥ śrutvā āhukas tvarito 'bravīt |
anveṣaṇe 'niruddhasya carān vyādiṣṭavāṃs tadā |
tataś carās tu vyādiṣṭāḥ pārthivena yaśasvinā
abhyantaraṃ ca mārgadhvaṃ bāhyataś ca samantataḥ //
Note: k: K Ñ2 Dn D1-5 T4 ins. (V B Ds D6 after 34ab): :k
hayā rathāś ca vyādiṣṭāḥ pārthivena mahātmanā |
veṇumantaṃ latāveṣṭaṃ tathā raivatakaṃ girim
ṛkṣavantaṃ giriṃ caiva mārgadhvaṃ tvaritā hayaiḥ //
ekaikaṃ tatra codyānaṃ mārgitavyaṃ samantataḥ
gantavyaṃ cāpi niḥsaṅgam udyāneṣu samantataḥ //
hayānāṃ ca sahasrāṇi rathānāṃ cāpy anekaśaḥ
āruhya tvaritāḥ sarve mārgadhvaṃ yadunandanam //
senāpatir anādhṛṣṭir idaṃ vacanam abravīt
kṛṣṇam akliṣṭakarmāṇam acyutaṃ bhītabhītavat //
śṛṇu kṛṣṇa vaco mahyaṃ yadi te rocate vibho
cirāt prabhṛti me vaktuṃ bhavantaṃ jāyate matiḥ //
asilomā pulomā ca nisundanarakau hatau
saubhaḥ sālvaś ca nihatau maindo dvivida eva ca
hayagrīvaś ca sumahān sānubandhas tvayā hataḥ //
Note: k: Ś1 ins.: :k
kaṃsaś ca nihataḥ kṛṣṇa narakaś ca nipātitaḥ |
anye ca bahavas tatra sainyāḥ śatasahasraśaḥ |
tādṛśe vigrahe vṛtte devahetoḥ sudāruṇe
sarvāṇy etāni karmāṇi niḥśeṣāṇi raṇe raṇe
kṛtavān asi govinda pārṣṇigrāhaś ca nāsti te //
idaṃ karma tvayā kṛṣṇa sānubandhaṃ kṛtaṃ raṇe
pārijātasya haraṇe yat kṛtaṃ karma duṣkaraṃ //
tatra śakras tvayā kṛṣṇa airāvataśirogataḥ
nirjito bāhuvīryeṇa svayaṃ yuddhaviśāradaḥ //
tena vairaṃ tvayā sārdhaṃ kartavyaṃ nātra saṃśayaḥ
tatrānubandhaś ca mahāṃs tena kāryas tvayā saha //
tatrāniruddhaharaṇaṃ kṛtaṃ maghavatā svayam
na hy anyasya bhavec chaktir vairaniryātanaṃ prati //
ity evam ukte vacane kṛṣṇo nāga iva śvasan
uvāca vacanaṃ dhīmān anādhṛṣṭiṃ mahābalam //
senānīs tāta mā maivaṃ na devāḥ kṣudrakarmiṇaḥ
nākṛtajñā na vā klībā nāvaliptā na bāliśāḥ //
devatārthaṃ ca me yatno mahān dānavasaṃkṣaye
teṣāṃ priyārthaṃ ca raṇe hanmi dṛptān mahāsurān //
tatparas tanmanāś cāsmi tadbhaktas tatpriye rataḥ
kathaṃ pāpaṃ kariṣyanti vijñāyaivaṃvidhaṃ hi mām //
akṣudrāḥ satyavantaś ca nityaṃ bhaktānuyāyinaḥ
na teṣu pāpaṃ vijñeyaṃ bāliśa tvaṃ prabhāṣase //
Note: k: Ñ2 V2 B Ds D1.2.4.5. (D6 after 1270*, T1.2 G1.3-5 after 54ab) ins.: :k
kadācid iha puṃścalyā aniruddho hṛto bhavet |
deveṣu samahendreṣu naitatkarma vidhīyate ||
evaṃ cintayamānasya kṛṣṇasyādbhutakarmaṇaḥ |
Note: k: D6 T1.2 G1.3.5 ins. after 50: :k
na vaktavyam idaṃ pāpaṃ tvadvidhena yadūttama |
kṛṣṇasya vacanaṃ śrutvā tadākrūro 'bravīd vacaḥ
madhuraṃ ślakṣṇayā vācā arthavākyaviśāradaḥ //
yac chakrasya prabhoḥ kāryaṃ tad asmākaṃ viniścitam
asmākaṃ cāpi yat kāryaṃ tac ca kāryaṃ śacīpateḥ //
saṃrakṣyāś ca vayaṃ devair asmābhiś cāpi devatāḥ
devatārthe vayaṃ cāpi mānuṣatvam upāgatāḥ //
Note: k: Ñ2 V2 B1 D5.6 ins.: :k
viṣṇur madhunihā vīro devadevaḥ sanātanaḥ |
evam akrūravacanaiś coditaḥ puruṣottamaḥ
snigdhagambhīrayā vācā punaḥ kṛṣṇo 'bhyabhāṣata //
nāyaṃ devair na gandharvair nāpi yakṣair na rākṣasaiḥ
pradyumnaputro 'pahṛtaḥ puṃścalyā tu hṛtaḥ striyā //
māyāvidagdhāḥ puṃścalyo daityadānavayoṣitaḥ
tābhir hṛto na saṃdeho nānyato vidyate bhayam //
ity evam ukte vacane sūtamāgadhabandinām
Note: k: After 57a, K Ñ2 V B D T4 G2.4 ins.: :kkṛṣṇena tu mahātmanā |
athāvagamya tattvena yad bhūtaṃ yadumaṇḍale ||
udatiṣṭhan mahānādas tadā kṛṣṇaṃ praśaṃsayan |
harṣayan sa tu sarveṣāṃ |
madhuraḥ śrūyate śabdo mādhavasya niveśane //
te carāḥ sarvataḥ sarve sabhādvāram upāgatāḥ
śanair gadgadayā vācā idaṃ vacanam abruvan //
udyānāni śilāḥ śailā guhā nadyaḥ sarāṃsi ca
ekaikaṃ śataśo rājan mārgitaṃ na ca dṛśyeta //
Note: k: B3 Dn D3.6 G2 ins.: :k
anye kṛṣṇaṃ carā rājann upāgamya tadābruvan |
sarve no viditā deśāḥ prādyumnir na ca dṛśyate |
Note: k: D3 cont.: :k
te 'pi śāntimanaskā hi gamayeyuḥ kathaṃ ca naḥ |
yad anyat saṃvidhātavyaṃ vidhānaṃ yadunandana
tadājñāpaya naḥ kṣipram aniruddhasya mārgaṇe //
tatas te dīnamanasaḥ sarve bāṣpākulekṣaṇāḥ
anyonyam abhyabhāṣanta kim ataḥ kāryam uttaram //
saṃdaṣṭauṣṭhapuṭāḥ kecit kecid bāṣpāvilekṣaṇāḥ
kecic cācintañ śūrā āsthāya bhrukuṭiṃ narāḥ //
Note: k: 109.62c hypometric. :k
Note: k: N (except Ś1) T4 ins.: :k
evaṃ cintayatāṃ teṣāṃ bahvartham abhibhāṣatām |
Note: k: Ñ2 V2.3 B Ds D2.3.6 T4 cont. (G2 ins. after 62ab, G4.5 after 62): :k
aniruddhaḥ kutaś ceti saṃbhramaḥ sumahān abhūt |
Note: k: Ñ2 V2.3 B Ds D2.3.6 cont. (K Ñ1 V1 Dn D1.4.5 cont. after 1275): :k
anyonyam abhivīkṣante yādavā jātamanyavaḥ |
tāṃ niśāṃ vimanaskās te gamayeyuḥ kathaṃcana ||
aniruddho hṛtaś ceti punaḥ punar ariṃdama |
evaṃ ca bruvatāṃ teṣāṃ prabhātā rajanī tadā |
tatas tūryaninādaiś ca śaṅkhānāṃ ca mahāsvanaiḥ
prabodhanaṃ mahābāhoḥ kṛṣṇasyākriyatālaye //
Note: k: D6 T1.2 G M ins.: :k
kṛṣṇo 'pi devadeveśaḥ kartavye mūḍhavat sthitaḥ ||
kiṃ mayā kāryam ity eva kuto nu bhayam āgatam |
sarvathā yatnam āsthāya yatiṣye kāryam uttaram ||
diśām antaṃ gamiṣyāmi sāgaraṃ varuṇālayam |
yatrāsau sthitavān pautro gamiṣyāmy aham adya vai ||
prathamaṃ kāṃ diśaṃ yāsye kena syāc chrūyate 'khilam |
yadi kaścid vijānīyāt tadā tu sukṛtaṃ bhavet |
Note: Colophon
tataḥ prabhāte vimale prādurbhūte divākare
praviveśa sabhām eko nāradaḥ prahasann iva //
Note: k: ins.: :k
dṛṣṭvā tu yādavān sarvān kṛṣṇena saha saṃgatān |
Note: k: Ñ2 B Dn Ds D1.5.6 cont., K Ñ3 V D2-4 T4 G4.5 ins. after 64: :k
tataḥ sa jayaśabdena mādhavaṃ pratyapūjayat |
ugrasenādayaste ca tam ṛṣiṃ pratyapūjayan |
athābhyutthāya vimanāḥ kṛṣṇaḥ samitidurjayaḥ
madhuparkaṃ ca gāṃ caiva nāradāya dadau prabhuḥ //
sa viṣṭare sthitaḥ śubhre spardhyāstaraṇasaṃvṛte
ṛjvāsīno yathānyāyam uvācedaṃ vaco 'rthavat //
kim evaṃ cintayāviṣṭā niḥsaṅgaṃ tamasāvṛtāḥ
utsāhanāśāt sarve vai klībā iva vicetasaḥ //
Note: k: T1.2 G1.3 M1-3 (G2.5 M4 after 70) ins.: :k
atīte divase vīre yādavā adbhutaṃ mahat |
evam ukte tu vacane nāradena mahātmanā
vāsudevo 'bravīd vākyaṃ śrūyatāṃ bhagavann idam //
aniruddho hṛto brahman kenāpi niśi suvrata
tasyārthe sarva evāsma cintayāviṣṭacetasaḥ //
Note: k: K Ñ2.3 V B D T4 (G2.4.5 after 67) ins.: :k
eṣa te yadi vṛttāntaḥ śruto dṛṣṭo 'pi vā mune ||
bhagavan kathyatāṃ sādhu priyam etan mamānagha |
ity evam ukte vacane keśavena mahātmanā
prahasya nāradaḥ prāha śrūyatāṃ madhusūdana //
nirvṛttaṃ sumahad yuddhaṃ mahāpuruṣasevitam
aniruddhasya caikasya bāṇasya ca mahāmṛdhe //
uṣā nāma sutā tasya bāṇasyāpratimaujasaḥ
tasyārthe citralekhā vai jahārāśu tam apsarāḥ //
ubhayor api tatrāsīn mahad yuddhaṃ sudāruṇam
prādyumnibāṇayoḥ saṃkhye balivāsavayor iva //
Note: k: K Ñ2.3 V B D T4 G2.4.5 ins.: :k
asmābhiś cāpi tad yuddhaṃ dṛṣṭaṃ sumahad adbhutam |
aniruddho bhayāt tena saṃyugeṣv anivartinā
baṇena māyām āsthāya baddho nāgair mahābalaḥ //
Note: k: T1.2 G1.3-5 M ins.: :k
hatvā dānavasaṃghāṃś ca koṭiśaḥ śataśas tathā |
dṛṣṭam etan mayā viṣṇo prādyumner yuddham īdṛśam |
Note: k: T2 G2.4 cont. (K Ñ2.3 V B D T4 ins. after 74): :k
vyādiṣṭas tu vadhas tasya bāṇena garuḍadhvaja |
taṃ nivāritavān mantrī kumbhāṇḍo nāma tasya ha |
Note: k: K Ñ2.3 V B D T4 G4.5 cont. (Ś1 Ñ1 ins. after 74): :k
kumārasyāniruddhasya tenāśaktena saṃyuge |
bāṇena māyām āsthāya sarpair niyamanaṃ kṛtam |
uttiṣṭhatu bhavāñ śīghraṃ yaśase vijayāya ca
nāyaṃ saṃrakṣituṃ kālaḥ prāṇāṃs tāta jayaiṣiṇām //
Note: k: N (except Ś1 Ñ1) T4 G2.4.5 ins.: :k
prāṇaiḥ kiṃcid gatair vīro dhairyam ālambya tiṣṭhati |
ity evam ukte vacane vāsudevaḥ pratāpavān
prāyātrikān vai saṃbhārān ājñāpayata vīryavān //
Note: k: D6 T1.2.4 G M4 ins.: :k
puṇyāhaghoṣaś ca tadā śuśruve brāhmaṇeritaḥ |
tataś candanacūrṇaiś ca lājaiś cāpi samantataḥ
niryayau sa mahābāhuḥ kīryamāṇo janārdanaḥ //
Note: k: T1.2 G1.3-5 M ins.: :k
gantum aichaj jagannātho bāṇaṃ hantuṃ mahāsuram |
smaraṇaṃ vainateyasya kṛṣṇa tvaṃ kartum arhasi
na hy anyena tam adhvānaṃ gantuṃ śakyaṃ mahābhuja //
Note: k: K Ñ2 V B D G2.4.5 G (ed.) ins.: :k
śrūyatāṃ ca tad adhvānaṃ gantavyam atidurjayam |
ekādaśa sahasrāṇi yojanānāṃ janārdana
taditaḥ śoṇitapuraṃ prādyumnir yatra sāṃpratam //
manojavo mahāvīryo vainateyaḥ pratāpavān
Note: k: Ñ2 V B2 Dn (B1 (marg.) D2.3 after 80) ins.: :ksamāhvayasva govinda sa hi tvāṃ tatra neṣyati |
ekena sa muhūrtena bāṇaṃ saṃdarśayiṣyati //
tasya tad vacanaṃ śrutvā prādhyāyad garuḍaṃ hariḥ
sa kṛṣṇapārśvam āgamya harṣeṇāvasthito 'bhavat //
kṛṣṇakeśaḥ pravalayo jiṣṇuḥ kṛṣṇaś ca varṇataḥ
caturdaṃṣṭraś caturbāhuś caturvedaṣaḍaṅgavit //
śrīvatsāṅko 'ravindākṣa ūrdhvalomā mṛdutvacaḥ
samāṅguliḥ samanakho raktāṅgulinakhāntaraḥ //
snigdhagambhīranirghoṣo vṛttabāhur mahābhujaḥ
ājānubāhuḥ siṃhāsyaḥ siṃhasaṃhanano yuvā
sahasram iva sūryāṇāṃ dīpyamānaḥ prakāśate //
yaḥ prabhur bhāti bhūtātmā bhūtānāṃ bhāvanaḥ prabhuḥ
yasyāṣṭaguṇam aiśvaryaṃ dadau prītaḥ prajāpatiḥ //
prajāpatīnāṃ sādhyānāṃ tridaśānāṃ ca śāśvataḥ
stūyamānaḥ stavaiḥ sarvaiḥ sūtamāgadhabandibhiḥ
ṛṣibhiś ca mahābhāgair vedavedāṅgapāragaiḥ //
saṃvidhānam athājñāpya dvārakāyāṃ mahābhujaḥ
Note: k: T1.2 G1.2.4.5 M ins.: :ksātyakau saṃniveśyātha rakṣyatāṃ dvāraketi ca |
gamanāya matiṃ cakre vāsudevaḥ pratāpavān //
āsthito garuḍaṃ devas tasya cānu halāyudhaḥ
pṛṣṭhato 'nu balasyāpi pradyumnaḥ śatrukarśanaḥ //
Note: k: D6 T1.2 G1.5 M ins.: :k
śrūyante sma tadā vācaḥ sūtamāgadhabandinām |
jaya bāṇaṃ mahābāho ye cāsyānucarā raṇe
na hi te pramukhe sthātuṃ kaścic chakto mahāmṛdhe //
prasāde te dhruvā lakṣmīr vijayaś ca parākrame
vijeṣyasi raṇe śatruṃ daityendraṃ sahasainikam //
siddhacāraṇasaṃghānāṃ maharṣīṇāṃ ca sarvaśaḥ
śṛṇvan vāco 'ntarikṣasthaḥ prayayau keśavo raṇe //
Note: Colophon
Note: h: HV (CE), adhyāya 110, transliterated from the critical ed. (P. L. Vaidya, Poona 1969) by Arlo Griffiths (Leiden/Groningen); proof-read by Peter Bisschop. This is the version of April 5, 2004 :h
tatas tūryaninādaiś ca śaṅkhānāṃ ca mahāsvanaiḥ
bandimāgadhasūtānāṃ sarvaiś cāpi sahasraśaḥ //
Note: k: M ins. after 1: D6 after *1293: T4 after 109.87: G2.4 (first time) after 109.88: :k
jayājaya jagannātha jaya cakragadādhara |
jaya lokatrayāvāsa jayāśeṣajaganmaya ||
jaya nābhisamutthābja+ +niṣaṇṇacaturānana |
jaya kaustubharatnāṃśu+ +vibhāsitajagattraya ||
jaya śrīkarapadmastha+ +caraṇāmbhoruhadvaya |
jaya tridhāmansarveśa jaya lokapitāmaha ||
jaya yajñapate deva jaya viśvaguro hare |
jaya cakragadāśaṅkha+ +padmadīptakarāmbuja ||
jaya śārṅgādihetyudyat+ +sahasrabhujamaṇḍala |
jaya cakrāgninirdagdha+ +nikhilāsuramaṇḍala ||
jaya yogimanaḥpadma+ +bodhakṛccaraṇāmbuja |
nijaikapādasaṃlīna+ +jagattraya hare jaya ||
jaya sthitilayotpatti+ +kāraṇāśeṣakāraṇa |
jaya viṣṇo hṛṣīkeśa jaya bāṇaṃ mahāsura |
sa tūnmukhair jayāśīrbhiḥ stūyamāno hi mānavaiḥ
babhāra rūpaṃ somārka+ +śakrāṇāṃ sadṛśaṃ hariḥ //
atīva śuśubhe rūpaṃ tasya cābhyutpatiṣyataḥ
vainateyasya bhadraṃ te bṛṃhitaṃ haritejasā //
Note: k: T1.2 G1.4.5 M ins. after 3: G(ed.) after 4: :k
smṛtvā smṛtvā ca tadrūpaṃ śaṅkhacakragadābhṛtaḥ |
tṛptiṃ nādyāpi govinda prāpnuyāmo hareḥ sadā |
athāṣṭabāhuḥ kṛṣṇas tu parvatākārasaṃnibhaḥ
vibabhau puṇḍarīkākṣo vikāṅkṣan bāṇasaṃkṣayam //
asicakragadābāṇā dakṣiṇaṃ pārśvam āsthitāḥ
carma śārṅgaṃ tathā cāpaṃ śaṅkhaṃ caivāsya vāmataḥ //
śīrṣāṇāṃ vai sahasraṃ tu vihitaṃ śārṅgadhanvanā
sahasraṃ caiva kāyānāṃ vahan saṃkarṣaṇas tadā //
śvetapraharaṇo 'dhṛṣyaḥ kailāsa iva śṛṅgavān
āsthito garuḍaṃ rāma udyann iva niśākaraḥ //
sanatkumārasya vapuḥ prādur āsīn mahātmanaḥ
pradyumnasya mahābāhoḥ saṃgrāme vikramiṣyataḥ //
sa pakṣabalavikṣepair vidhunvan parvatān bahūn
jagāma mārgaṃ balavān vātasya pratiṣedhayan //
ati vāyor atha gatim āsthāya garuḍas tadā
siddhacāraṇasaṃghānāṃ śubhaṃ mārgam avātarat //
atha rāmo 'bravīd vākyaṃ kṛṣṇam apratimam raṇe
svābhiḥ prabhābhir hīnāḥ smaḥ kṛṣṇa kasmād apūrvavat //
sarve kanakavarṇābhāḥ saṃvṛttāḥ sma na saṃśayaḥ
kim idaṃ brūhi nas tattvaṃ kiṃ meroḥ pārśvagā vayam //
Note: k: Ñ2.3 V B1.2 Dn Ds D1.2.5(marg.).6 ins. after the ref.; D3 after 12: :k
manye bāṇasya nagaram abhyāśastham ariṃdama |
rakṣārthaṃ tasya niyato vahnir eṣa sthito jvalan |
agner āhavanīyasya prabhayā sma samāhatāḥ
tena no varṇavairūpyam idaṃ jātaṃ halāyudha //
yadi sma saṃnikarṣasthā yadi niṣprabhatāṃ gatāḥ
tad vidhatsva svayaṃ buddhyā yad atrānantaraṃ hitam //
kuruṣva vainateya tvaṃ yan naḥ kāryam anantaram
tvayā vidhāne vihite kariṣyāmy aham uttaram //
etac chrutvā tadā vākyaṃ keśavasya mahātmanaḥ
Note: k: For 16ab, K Ñ2.3 V B D G2 subst.: :ketac chrutvā tu garuḍo vāsudevasya bhāṣitam |
Note: k: K Ñ2.3 V B D G2 cont.; G5 M4 ins. after 16ab: :kcakre mukhasahasraṃ hi kāmarūpī mahābalaḥ |
gaṅgām upāgamat tūrṇaṃ vainateyas tato balī //
Note: k: K Ñ V B D G2.5 ins. after 16; G4 after 14: :k
āplutyākāśagaṅgāyām āpīya salilaṃ bahu |
pravavarṣoparigato vaitaneyaḥ pratāpavān |
tenāgniṃ śamayām āsa buddhimān vinatātmajaḥ |
Note: k: After line 1 of *1299, D2 ins.: :k
sa pakṣābhyām upādāya vavarṣa salilaṃ bahu |
gṛhītvā salilaṃ tatra tam agnim abhiṣecayat
agnir āhavanīyas tu tataḥ śāntim upāgamat //
Note: k: After 17, N (except Ś1 Ñ1) T4 G2.4.5 G(ed.) ins.: :k
taṃ dṛṣṭvāhavanīyaṃ tu śāntam ākāśagaṅgayā |
paramaṃ vismayaṃ gatvā suparṇo vākyam abravīt ||
aho vīryam athāgnes tu yo dahed yugasaṃkṣaye |
Note: k: Ñ2 V2.3 B Dn1 Ds D6 cont.: :k
tad eva varṇavairūpyaṃ cakre kṛṣṇasya dhīmataḥ |
trayas trayāṇāṃ lokānāṃ paryāptā iti me matiḥ
kṛṣṇaḥ saṃkarṣaṇaś caiva pradyumnaś ca mahābalaḥ //
tataḥ praśānte dahane saṃpratasthe sa pakṣirāṭ
svapakṣabalavikṣepaiḥ kurvan ghoraṃ mahāsvanam //
tān dṛṣṭvācintayaṃs tatra rudrasyānucarāgnayaḥ
Note: k: After 20ab, T1.2 G1.3-5 M G(ed.) ins.: :kniyuktāḥ śūlinā pūrvaṃ rakṣaṇe nagarasya hi |
ūcuḥ paramasaṃkruddhā jvālayanto diso daśa |
āsthitā garuḍaṃ hy ete nānārūpā bhayāvāhāḥ
kim artham iha saṃprāptāḥ ke vāpīme janās trayaḥ //
niścayaṃ nādhyagacchanta te girivrajavahnayaḥ
prāvartayaṃś ca saṃgrāmaṃ tais tribhiḥ saha yādavaiḥ //
Note: k: After 22 (=21?), N (except Ś1; Ñ1 om.) T4 G2.4.5 ins.: :k
teṣāṃ yuddhe prasaktānāṃ saṃnādaḥ sumahān abhūt ||
taṃ ca śrutvā mahānādaṃ siṃhānām iva garjatām |
athāṅgirāḥ svapuruṣaṃ preṣayām āsa buddhimān |
yatra tad vartate yuddhaṃ tatra gacchasva māciram |
Note: k: corr. tad vavartate :k
athājñaptas tu bāṇena puruṣo vai manojavaḥ
dṛṣṭvā tat sarvam āgacche+ +tyuktaḥ prahvas tatas tvaran //
tathety uktvā sa tad yuddhaṃ vartamānam avaikṣata
agnīnāṃ vāsudevena saṃsaktānāṃ mahāmṛdhe //
te jātavedasaḥ sarve kalmāṣaḥ khasṛmas tathā
dahanaḥ śoṣaṇaś caiva tapanaś ca mahābalaḥ
svadhākārasya viṣaye prakhyātāḥ pañca vahnayaḥ //
athāpare mahābhāgāḥ svair anīkair vyavasthitāḥ
Note: k: After 25ab, D3 ins.: :kagnayaḥ samadṛśyanta jvalamānā mahāhave |
paṭaraḥ patagaḥ svarṇo agādho bhrāja eva ca
svāhākārāśrayā pañca ayudhyaṃs te 'pi cāgnayaḥ //
jyotiṣṭomahavirbhāgau vaṣaṭkārāśrayau punaḥ
dvāv agnī saṃprayudhyetāṃ mahātmānau mahādyutī
tayor madhye 'ṅgirāś caiva maharṣir vibabhau prabhuḥ //
Note: k: After 26cd, Ñ2.3 B Dn D6 G(ed.) ins.: :k
āgneyaṃ ratham āsthāya śūlam udyamya bhāsvaram |
sthitam aṅgirasaṃ dṛṣṭvā syandane puruṣottamaḥ
kṛṣṇaḥ provāca vacanaṃ smayann iva punaḥ punaḥ //
tiṣṭhadhvam agnayo yūyam eṣa vo vidadhe bhayam
mamāstratejasā dadghā diśo yāsyatha vikṣatāḥ //
athāṅgirās triśūlena dīptena samadhāvata
ādadāna iva krodhāt kṛṣṇaprāṇān madhāmṛdhe //
triśūlaṃ tasya tad dīptaṃ ciccheda parameṣubhiḥ
ardhacandrais tathā tīkṣṇair yamāntakanibhair yudhi //
sthūṇākarṇena cāstreṇa dīptena sumahāyaśāḥ
vivyādhāntakatulyena vakṣasy enam atho 'nadat //
rudhiraughaplutair gātrais tadāgnir cihvalann iva
viṣṭabdhagātraḥ sahasā papāta dharaṇītale //
śeṣās tato 'gnayaḥ sarve catvāro brahmaṇaḥ sutāḥ
āvāhayaṃs tadā śīghraṃ bāṇasya puram antikāt //
Note: k: After 33, K1.2 Dn D1.4 ins.: :k
avagāhat tataḥ kṛṣṇo yatra bāṇapuraṃ tataḥ |
Note: k: K1.2 Ñ2.3 V B Ds D4.6 ins. after the addl. colophon: K3.4 D2.3.5 T4 G5 after 33: Dn D1 cont. after *1306: :k
atha bāṇapuraṃ dṛṣṭvā dūrāt provāca nāradaḥ |
etat tacchoṇitapuraṃ kṛṣṇa paśya mahābhuja ||
atra rudro mahātejā rudrāṇyā sahito 'vasat |
guhaś ca bāṇaguptyarthaṃ satataṃ kṣemakāraṇāt ||
nāradasya vacaḥ śrutvā kṛṣṇas tv idam athābravīt |
kṣemaṃ cintayatām atra śrūyatāṃ ca mahāmune ||
yadi vāvatared rudro bāṇasaṃrakṣaṇaṃ prati |
śaktito vayam apy atra saha yotsyāma tena vai ||
evaṃ vivadatos tatra kṛṣṇanāradayos tadā |
prāptā nimeṣamātreṇa śīghratvād garuḍena te |
tataḥ śaṅkhaṃ samānīya vadane puṣkarekṣaṇaḥ
Note: k: CE prints pupkarekṣaṇaḥ :kNote: k: After 34ab, B1 D2.3 ins.: :kpradadhmau samare kṛṣṇo nādenāpūrayan diśaḥ |
vāyuvegena taṃ dadhmau meghaś candram ivodgiran //
tataḥ pradhmāpya taṃ śaṅkhaṃ bhayam utpādya vīryavān
Note: k: After 35ab, T1.2 G1.3-5 M G(ed.) ins.: :kagniṃ jitvā tadā viṣṇur bāṇasya purarakṣiṇaḥ |
praviveśa puraṃ kṛṣṇo bāṇasyādbhutakarmaṇaḥ //
Note: k: T1.2 G1.3-5 ins. after the addl. colophon: G(ed.) after 35: :k
tato bāṇapuraṃ prāpya śaṅkhaṃ dadhmau janārdanaḥ |
tato hi balabhadras tu dadhmau śaṅkham anuttamam ||
pradyumnaś cāpi saṃkruddho dadhmau śaṅkham anuttamam |
garuḍaḥ pakṣavātena bāṇasainyaṃ vyadhūnayat ||
caturṇāṃ ca mahārāja sāgarāṇāṃ yathā svanaḥ |
prādur babhūva tumulaḥ śabdo bāṇapuraṃ prati |
tataḥ śaṅkhapraṇādena bherīṇāṃ ca mahāsvanaiḥ
bāṇānīkāni sahasā samanahyanta sarvaśaḥ //
tataḥ kiṃkarasainyaṃ tad abhyāgāt samare mahat
koṭiśaś cāpi bahudhā dīptapraharaṇaṃ tadā //
tad asaṃkhyeyam ekasthaṃ mahābhraghanasaṃnibham
nīlāñjanacayaprakhyam aprameyaṃ tathākṣayam //
te pradīptapraharaṇā daityadānavarākṣasāḥ
pramāthagaṇamukhyāś ca te 'yudhyan kṛṣṇasaṃgatāḥ //
sarvatas taiḥ pradīptāsyaiḥ sārciṣmadbhir ivānalaiḥ
Note: k: After 40ab, Ñ2.3 V1.3 B Dn D4-6 T1 G1.3-5 ins.: :kabhyupetya tadātyugrair yakṣarākṣasakiṃnaraiḥ |
āpīyata tadā raktaṃ caturṇām api saṃyuge //
tato rāmo mahābāhuḥ keśavaṃ vākyam abravīt
Note: k: For 41ab, K Ñ2.3 V B D T4 G(ed.) subst.: :ktadbalaṃ tu samāsādya balabhadro mahābalaḥ |
provāca vacanaṃ tatra parasya balanāśanam |
kṛṣṇa kṛṣṇa mahābāho vidhatsvaiṣāṃ mahad bhayam //
iti saṃcoditaḥ kṛṣṇo balabhadreṇa dhīmatā
teṣāṃ vadhārtham āgneyaṃ jagrāha puruṣottamaḥ
astram astravidāṃ śreṣṭho yamāntakasamaprabham //
sa vidhūyāsuragaṇān kravyādān astratejasā
prayayau tvarayā yukto yato 'dṛśyata tadbalam //
śūlapaṭṭisaśaktyṛṣṭi+ +pinākaparighāyudham
pramāthagaṇabhūyiṣṭhaṃ balaṃ tad abhavat kṣitau //
śailameghapratīkāśair nānārūpair bhayānakaiḥ
Note: k: After 45ab, T2 G1.3-5 M G(ed.) ins.: :kvetāḷaiś ca piśācaiś ca bhakṣayadbhiś ca māṃsakam |
vāhanaiḥ saṃghaśaḥ sarve yodhās tatrāvatasthire
vātoddhūtair iva ghanair viprakīrṇair ivācalaiḥ //
Note: k: After 45, K Ñ2.3 V B D T4 G5 ins.: :k
śuśubhe tatra bahulair anīkair bahudhānvibhiḥ |
musalair asibhiḥ śūlair gadābhiḥ parighais tathā ||
adhāvat tad asaṃkhyeyaṃ śuśubhe sarvato balam |
tataḥ saṃkarṣaṇo devam uvāca madhusūdanam |
vainateyagato rāmas tān dṛṣṭvā kṛṣṇam abravīt
kṛṣṇa kṛṣṇa mahābāho yad etad dṛśyate balam
etaiḥ saha raṇe yoddhum icchāmi puruṣottama //
Note: k: After 46, T1.2 G1.4.5 M1-3 ins.: :k
iti bruvāṇaṃ rāmaṃ taṃ kṛṣṇo vacanam abravīt |
mamāpy eṣaiva saṃjātā buddhir ity abravīc ca tam
Note: k: For 47ab, Ś1 subst.: :keṣo 'bhilaṣitaḥ kāmaḥ prāg eva hi mamābhavat |
ebhiḥ saha samāgantum iccheyaṃ yuddhadurmadaiḥ //
yudhyataḥ prāṅmukhasyāstu suparṇo vai mamāgrataḥ
savye pārśve ca pradyumnas tathā me dakṣiṇe bhavān //
rakṣitavyam athānyonyam asmin ghore mahāmṛdhe
evaṃ bruvantas te 'nyonyam adhirūḍhāḥ khagottamam //
Note: k: After 49, S (except T4; T3 G2 missing) ins.: :k
tato yuddhaṃ mahac cakre lāṅgalenātha lāṅgalī |
sahasram ayutaṃ rāmo jaghāna ditinandanān |
giriśṛṅganibhair yuddhe gadāmusalalāṅgalaiḥ
yudhyato rauhiṇeyasya raudraṃ rūpam abhūt tadā
yugānte sarvabhūtāni kālasyeva didhakṣataḥ //
ākṛṣya lāṅgalāgreṇa musalena vyapothayat
caraty atibalo yuddhe yuddhamārgaviśāradaḥ //
pradyumnaḥ śarajālais tān samantāt pratyavārayat
dānavān puruṣavyāghro yudyamānān sahasraśaḥ //
snigdhāñjanacayaprakhyaḥ śaṅkhacakragadādharaḥ
pradhmāpya bahuśaḥ śaṅkham ayudhyata janārdanaḥ //
pakṣaprahārābhihatāṃs tuṇḍāgranakhavikṣatān
akarot samare śatrūn vainateyaḥ pratāpavān //
Note: k: K Ñ2.3 V1.2 B2.3 Dn D1-5 T4 G5 subst. for 54cd: Ds1 ins. after 54: Ds2 after 54ab: :k
nītā vaivasvatamukhaṃ vainateyena dhīmatā |
tair hanyamānaṃ daityānām anīkaṃ bhīmavikramaiḥ
abhajyata tadā saṃkhye bāṇavarṣasamāhatam //
Note: k: After 55, T1.2 G1.3-5 M ins.: :k
nirjitya kaiṃkaraṃ sainyaṃ harir lokanamaskṛtaḥ |
pāñcajānyaṃ mahāśaṅkhaṃ dadhmau daityabhayaṃkaram |
bhajyamāneṣv anīkeṣu trātukāmaḥ samabhyayāt
Note: k: After 56ab, Ds1(marg.) ins.: :ketasminn antare rājan nāradaḥ prayayau raṇāt |
kailāsaṃ merusaṃkāśaṃ dṛṣṭo rudreṇa pūjitaḥ |
pṛṣṭaḥ kim iha devarṣe saṃprāptas tad vadasva me ||
tataḥ prahasya devarṣiḥ prāha rudraṃ mahīpate |
bāṇaḥ saṃhanyate deva kṛṣṇena halinā kila |
tasya sarvam anīkaṃ tu bhagnaṃ tan nāvatiṣṭhati ||
kiṃ vartase 'dya niścinto bhartas te pīḍyate kila |
kuruṣva tasya sāhāyyaṃ bhaktādhīno bhavān iti ||
nāradasya vacaḥ śrutvā haraḥ prasphuritādharaḥ |
niśvāsaṃ mumuce rājann astaḥ kaś cid vinirgataḥ ||
taṃ kiṃ karomīti haraṃ pṛcchantaṃ prāha bhūtapaḥ |
gaccha bāṇapuraṃ śīghraṃ jahi kṛṣṇahalāyudhau ||
tathety antardadhe so 'pi yayau yatra harir halī |
pramathān āha rudras tu sajjā bhavata sattamāḥ ||
sajjair gacchata mātsyārddho (?) mayūrondaravāhanau |
gaccha nārada tatra tvaṃ bāṇam āśvāsaya prabho ||
eṣa mām āgataṃ paśya tvatkṛte daityasattama |
ghātayāmi yaduśreṣṭhau prāptau yāv iha mandadhīḥ ||
tatheti nāradaḥ prāpto bāṇāyāvedayat tadā |
punar yayau kṛṣṇapārśvaṃ khecaro vā garutmani ||
kārayām āsa rudras tu prayānodyogam uttamam ||
jvaras tu raṇam āgatya dadarśa halinaṃ raṇe |
ghnantaṃ dānavadaiteyāṃs taṃ hantuṃ sa samāgataḥ |
jvaras tripādas triśirās tadā samaradurjayaḥ //
bhasmapraharaṇo ghoraḥ kālāntakayamopamaḥ
nadan meghasahasrasya tulyanirghātanisvanaḥ //
halāyudham abhikruddhaḥ sākṣepam idam abravīt
Note: k: After 58ab, T1 G1.3-5 ins.: :kkiṃ māṃ yudhyasi durbuddhe balavantaṃ mahāsvanam |
kim evaṃ balamatto 'si na māṃ paśyasi saṃyuge
tiṣṭha tiṣṭha na me jīvan mokṣyase raṇamūrdhani //
ity evam uktvā prahasan halāyudham abhidravat
yugāntāgninibhair ghorair muṣṭibhir janayan bhayam //
caratas tasya saṃgrāme maṇḍalāni sahasraśaḥ
rauhiṇeyasya śaighryeṇa nāvasthānam adṛśyata //
Note: k: After 60, D6 T1.4 G1.3-5 M ins.: :k
savyena bāhunā bhasma cikṣepa balavakṣasi |
tasya bhasma tadā kṣiptaṃ jvareṇāpratimaujasā
śaighryāl lakṣye nipatitaṃ śarīre parvatopame //
tad bhasma vakṣasas tasya meroḥ śikharam āgatam
pradīptaṃ patitaṃ tat tu giriśṛṅgaṃ vyadārayat //
roṣeṇābhiprajajvāla bhasmanā kṛṣṇapūrvajaḥ
niḥśvasañ jṛmbhamāṇaś ca nidrānvitatanur muhuḥ //
netrayor ākulatvaṃ ca muhuḥ kurvan bhramaṃs tadā
saṃhṛṣṭalomā glānākṣaḥ kṣiptacitta iva śvasan //
tato haladharo mattaḥ kṛṣṇam āha vicetanaḥ
kṛṣṇa kṛṣṇa mahābāho pradīpto 'smy abhayaṃkara
dahyāmi sarvatas tāta kathaṃ śāntir bhaven mama //
ity evam ukte vacane pariṣvakto halāyudhaḥ
Note: k: After 66a, N (except Ś1 Ñ1) T4 G5 ins.: :kbalenāmitatejasā |
prahasya vacanaṃ prāha kṛṣṇaḥ praharatāṃ varaḥ |
na bhetavyam itītyuktvā |
kṛṣṇena paramasnehāt tato dāhāt pramucyata //
Note: k: For 66cd, Ś1 Ñ1 T1.2 G M subst.: :k
kṛṣṇena sahasā yuddhe jvaraṃ bhasmapraśāntaye |
Note: k: While N (except Ś1 Ñ1) ins. after 66: G1.5 after line 1 of 1326*: :k
mokṣayitvā balaṃ tatra dāhāt tu madhusūdanaḥ |
provāca paramakruddho vāsudevo jvaraṃ tadā
Note: k: T1.2 G1.3.4 M subst. for 67ab: G5 ins. after 67ab: G(ed.) after 1325*: :kbalabhadro hṛṣīkeśāc chāntiṃ prāptas tadā raṇe ||
tayor antaram āsādya tasthau yuddhāya keśavaḥ |
vyāvidhya sahasā bāhuṃ jvaram etad uvāca ha |
ehy ehi jvara yudhyasva yā te śaktir mahāmṛdhe
tāṃ darśayasva samare mayi yuddhaviśārada //
Note: k: For 67ef, N (except Ś1) G5 G(ed.) subst.: :k
yac ca te pauruṣaṃ sarvaṃ tad darśayatu no bhavān |
Note: k: G5 G(ed.) cont.: T1.2 G1.3.4 M ins. after 67: :k
tataḥ kruddho jvaro rājan duḥkhānām agraṇīr harim |
savyetarābhyāṃ bāhubhyām evam ukto jvaras tadā
cikṣepa cainaṃ tad bhasma jvālāgarbhaṃ mahāgadaḥ //
Note: k: After 68, T1.2 G1.3-5 M ins.: :k
bhasmanā viddhadehas tu devadevo janārdanaḥ |
tataḥ pradīptas tu vibhur muhūrtam abhavat tadā
kṛṣṇaḥ praharatāṃ śreṣṭhaḥ śamaṃ cāgnir gataḥ punaḥ //
tatas tair bhujagākārair bāhubhis tu tribhis tadā
jaghāna kṛṣṇaṃ grīvāyāṃ muṣṭinaikena corasi //
Note: k: After 70, D6 S (T3 G2 missing) G(ed.) ins.: :k
tataḥ kruddho hṛṣīkeśo muṣṭinā nijaghāna tam |
vakṣaḥsthale sa bhūtātmā mūrdhni caiva punaḥ punaḥ ||
tato jvaraḥ samāvidhya bāhū dhamanisaṃtatau |
tābhyāṃ vakṣaḥ samāhatya dadaṃśa ca yadūttamam ||
tato 'sahañ jagannāthaḥ ānane samapothayat |
sa saṃprahāras tumulas tayoḥ puruṣasiṃhayoḥ
jvarasya ca mahān āsīt kṛṣṇasya ca mahātmanaḥ
parvateṣu patantīnām aśanīnām iva svanaḥ //
Note: k: After 71, T1.2 G1.3.5 M G(ed.) ins.: :k
aṣṭābhiś ca tribhiś caiva bāhubhiś ca tadā raṇam |
prāvartata mahāghoraṃ devānāṃ tatra paśyatām |
kṛṣṇajvarabhujaprāṇair yuddham āsīt sudāruṇam
naivam evaṃ prahartavyam iti tatrābhavat svanaḥ
muhūrtam abhavad yuddham anyonyaṃ sumahātmanoḥ //
Note: k: After 72, T1.2 G1.3-5 M1.3.4 ins.: :k
hantum aicchat tadā viṣṇur jvaraṃ lokabhayaṃkaram |
tato jvaraṃ kanakavicitrabhūṣaṇaṃ nyapīḍayad bhujavalayena saṃyuge
yam akṣayaṃ samupanayañ jagatpatiḥ śarīradhṛg gaganacaraṃ mahāmṛdhe //
Note: h: HV (CE), adhyāya 111, transliterated from the critical ed. (P. L. Vaidya, Poona 1969) by Arlo Griffiths (Leiden/Groningen); proof-read by Arlo Griffiths. This is the version of April 5, 2004 :h
mṛta ity abhivijñāya jvaraṃ śatruniṣūdanaḥ
kṛṣṇo bhujabalābhyāṃ taṃ cikṣepātha mahītale //
muktamātras tu bāhubhyāṃ kṛṣṇadehaṃ viveśa saḥ
amuktvā vigrahaṃ tasya kṛṣṇasyāpratimaujasaḥ //
Note: k: T1.2 G1.3.4 M subst. for 2cd: G5 ins. after 1: G(ed.) after 2: :k
praviśya hṛdayaṃ tasya babādhe yadusattamam |
sa hy āviṣṭas tadā tena jvareṇāpratimaujasā
kṛṣṇaḥ skhalann iva muhuḥ kṣitau samabhivartata //
jṛmbhate ca tadā kṛṣṇaḥ punaś ca skhalate bhṛśam
romāñ cotthitagātras tu nidrayā cābhibhūyate //
Note: k: N (except Ś1 K3 Ñ1) T4 G4 ins. after 4: G5 after 5ab: :k
tasya sthairyaṃ samālambya kṛṣṇaḥ parapuraṃjayaḥ |
vikurvati mahāyogī jṛmbhamāṇaḥ punaḥ punaḥ |
jvarābhimṛṣṭam ātmānaṃ vijñāya puruṣottamaḥ
so 'sṛjaj jvaram anyaṃ tu pūrvajvaravināśanam //
Note: k: After 5, Ś1 ins.: :k
sa vaiṣṇavajvaro gṛhya taṃ ca vai jvaram ojasā |
kṛṣṇāya na (?) saṃprayacchaṃs taṃ jagrāha punar hariḥ |
Note: k: While Ñ2.3 V B1.3 Dn Ds D1.5 G(ed.) ins. after 5: :k
ghoraṃ vaiṣṇavam atyugraṃ sarvaprāṇibhayaṃkaraṃ |
sṛṣṭavān atha tejasvī balavān bhīmavikramaḥ |
Note: k: Ñ2.3 V B1.3 Dn Ds D1.5 G(ed.) cont.: K Ñ1 B2 D2-4.6 T4 G4.5 ins. after 5: Ś1 cont. after 1335*: :k
jvaraḥ kṛṣṇavisṛṣṭas tu gṛhītvā taṃ jvaraṃ balāt |
kṛṣṇāya hṛṣṭaḥ prāyacchat taṃ jagrāha tato hariḥ ||
tatas taṃ paramakruddho vāsudevo mahābalaḥ |
svagātrāt svajvareṇaiva niṣkrāmayata vīryavān ||
āvidhya bhūtale cainaṃ śatadhā kartum udyataḥ |
vyāghoṣayaj jvaras tatra bhoḥ paritrātum arhasi |
Note: k: After line 4, D2 ins.: :k
māheśvaro vaiṣṇavaś ca yuyudhāte jvarāv ubhau |
māheśvaraḥ samākrandan vaiṣṇavena balārditaḥ |
Note: k: G4.5 cont.: T1.2 G1.3 M G(ed.) ins. after 5: :k
kṛṣṇajvaro jvaraṃ pūrvaṃ gṛhītvā svena tejasā |
nanāda sumahānādaṃ vaiṣṇavaḥ sa mahābalaḥ |
caturbhujaś caturvaktraḥ sarvapraharaṇodyataḥ ||
tayos tu tumulaṃ yuddhaṃ jvarayor bāhuśālinoḥ ||
tato devāḥ sagandharvā divisthā yuddhalālasāḥ |
dadṛśuś ca mahad yuddhaṃ bhūtāni ca samantataḥ |
tato māheśvaro yuddhe tāḍayām āsa vaiṣṇavam |
bāhunā tāḍitas tena nanāda bahuvistaram ||
sa gato vaiṣṇavaṃ rājan raudraṃ bhasmāyudhaṃ raṇe |
dvābhyām atha ca bāhubhyāṃ gṛhītvātāḍayad balī ||
itarābhyāṃ samāhatya bāhubhyāṃ vaiṣṇavo jvaraḥ |
nanāda sumahānādaṃ sarvalokasya paśyataḥ ||
tato raudro jvaro rājan muṣṭinātha jaghāna tam |
dadaṃśa dantair bahudhā jvaraṃ keśavam āhave ||
bāhubhyām eva tau rājan yuyudhāte mahāgadau |
anyonyaṃ tāḍayantau ca muṣṭibhir jvarasattamau ||
cakratuś ca mahānādaṃ jvarau tau lokaviśrutau |
vaiṣṇavo 'tha jvaro rājan grahītuṃ raudrasaṃjñitam ||
yatate bahudhā tatra muṣṭinātha jaghāna tam |
āhatya bāhunā bhūyo niṣpipeṣa punaḥ punaḥ ||
niṣpiṣṭahṛdayas tūrṇaṃ śūlino jvarasattamaḥ |
nanāda bahudhā nādaṃ bhūmau viparivartate ||
gṛhītvā tu balād raudram ākṛṣya ca punaḥ punaḥ |
kṛṣnāya hṛṣtaḥ prāyacchat kiṃ kariṣyāmy ataḥ param ||
haniṣye devadeveśa bhakṣayiṣye 'tha vā punaḥ |
ity uktvā sumahānādaṃ cakāra raṇamūrdhani ||
utthāya ca hṛṣīkeśo jvaraṃ māheśvaraṃ raṇe |
hantum aicchat tadā loko nirjvaro 'stv iti keśavaḥ |
vyāvidhyamāne tu tadā jvare tenāmitaujasā
aśarīrā tato vāṇī tam uvācāntarikṣagā //
kṛṣṇa kṛṣṇa mahābāho yadūnāṃ nandivardhana
mā vadhīr jvaram etaṃ vai rakṣaṇīyas tvayānagha
ity evam ukte vacane taṃ mumoca hariḥ svayam //
Note: k: After 7, K Ñ2.3 V B D T4 G4.5 M4 G(ed.) ins.: :k
bhūtabhavyabhaviṣyasya jagataḥ paramo guruḥ ||
evam ukto hṛṣīkeśaṃ jvaro vākyam athābravīt |
kṛṣṇasya pādayor mūrdhnā śaraṇaṃ so 'gamaj jvaraḥ ||
śṛṇuṣva mama govinda vijñāpyaṃ yadunandana |
yo me manorathā deva taṃ tvaṃ kuru mahābhuja |
Note: k: On the other hand, T1.2 G1.3 M1-3 ins. after 7: D6 after line 2 of 1339*: G4.5 M4 G(ed.) after line 1 of 1399*: :k
tam uvāca jvaro bhūyaḥ sākṣād viṣṇur iva svayam |
praṇamya śirasā devaṃ kṛtāñjalipuṭaḥ sthitaḥ ||
namaḥ kṛṣṇāya haraye viṣṇave prabhaviṣṇave |
ādidevāya devāya purāṇāya gadābhṛte ||
namaḥ sahasraśirase sahasracaraṇāya ca |
sahasrākṣa namo nityaṃ lokānām abhayaṃkara |
udgīthāya namo deva yajñādhipataye namaḥ ||
namas te cakriṇe nityam asihastāya te namaḥ ||
anantāya virūpāya namas te madhusūdana |
namas te devadeveśa tubhyaṃ deva kapardine ||
namas te rākṣasaghnāya namo rāghavarūpiṇe |
jñānajñeyāya devāya nama ādyāya viṣṇave ||
namas te narasiṃhāya daityarājavihāriṇe |
namas tubhyaṃ varāhāya daṃṣṭroddhṛtavasuṃdhara ||
trivikrama namas tubhyaṃ baliyajñavināśana |
vāsudevāya devāya namaḥ kaṃsavināśana ||
namaḥ sarvātmane deva sarvakartre namo namaḥ ||
prasīda devadeveśa bhītānām abhayaṃkara ||
namāmi devadeveśaṃ vareṇyam abhayapradam |
viṣṇo tvāṃ sakaleśeśa tvāṃ gadādharam avyayam ||
namas te devadeveśa bhīto 'haṃ bhavanāśana |
iti stutvā jagannāthaṃ nṛtyann iva tadā jvaraḥ |
papāta pādayor viṣṇor niḥśvasan bhītabhītavat ||
prasīda viṣṇo deveśa pīḍito 'smi janārdana |
tam uvāca jvaro bhūyas tv aham eko jvaro bhuvi
Note: k: For 8ab, K Ñ2.3 V B D T1.2.4 G1.3-5 M subst.: :kaham eko jvaras tāta nānyo loke jvaro bhavet |
tava prasādān nānyaḥ syāj jvaraḥ samitiśobhana //
Note: k: After 8, K Ñ2.3 V B D T4 G5 ins.: :k
evaṃ bhavatu bhadraṃ te yathā tvaṃ jvara kāṅkṣase |
varārthināṃ varo deyo bhavāṃś ca śaraṇaṃ gataḥ |
eka eva jvaro loke bhavān astu yathāsukham
Note: k: Some Mss. om. the ref. T1 G3 śrīkṛṣṇaḥ (for bhagavān). After the ref., T1.2 G1.3.4 M G(ed.) ins.: :ktatas tuṣṭo hṛṣīkeśaḥ stotreṇānena keśavaḥ |
prītimāṃś cābhavat kṛṣṇo raudrajvaram uvāca ha |
Note: k: After 9ab, T1.2 G1.3-5 M ins.: :kantakāle manuṣyāṇāṃ bhūyād bhogāya māmakaḥ |
yo 'yaṃ mayā jvaro sṛṣṭo mayy evaiṣa pralīyatām //
Note: k: corr. for mayy aivaiṣa :k
Note: k: After 9, N (except Ś1 Ñ1) T4 G5 G(ed.) ins.: :k
evam ukte tu vacane jvaraṃ prati mahāyaśāḥ |
kṛṣṇaḥ praharatāṃ śreṣṭhaḥ punar vākyam uvāca ha ||
śṛṇuṣva jvara saṃdeśaṃ yathā loke cariṣyasi |
sarvajātiṣu vinyastas tathā sthāvarajaṅgame ||
tridhā vibhajya cātmānaṃ matpriyaṃ yadi kāṅkṣase |
catuṣpādān bhajaikena dvitīyena ca sthāvarān ||
tṛtīyo yaś ca te bhāgo mānuṣeṣūpapatsyate |
tridhābhūtaṃ vapuḥ kṛtvā pakṣiṣu tvaṃ bhava jvara ||
caturdhā yas tṛtīyasya bhaviṣyati ca te dhruvam |
ekāntaraś caturbhāgaḥ khorakaś ca caturthakaḥ ||
mānuṣeṣv atha bhedane vasa tvaṃ pravibhajya vai |
jātiṣv athāvaśeṣāsu nivasa tvaṃ śṛṇuṣva me ||
vṛkṣeṣu kīṭarūpeṇa tathā saṃkocapatrakaḥ |
pāṇḍupatraś ca vikhyātaḥ phaleṣv āturyam eva ca ||
apāṃ tu nīlikāṃ vidyāc chikhodbhedaś ca barhiṇām |
padminīṣu himo bhūtvā pṛthivyām api coṣaraḥ ||
gaurikaḥ parvateṣv eva matprasādād bhaviṣyasi |
goṣv apasmārako bhūtvā khorakaś ca bhaviṣyasi ||
evaṃ vividharūpeṇa bhaviṣyasi mahītale ||
darśanāt sparśanāc cāpi prāṇināṃ vadham eṣyasi |
ṛte devamanuṣyebhyo nānyas tvāṃ visahiṣyati ||
Note: k: corr. for manuṣvebhyo :k
kṛṣṇasya vacanaṃ śrutvā jvaro hṛṣṭamanā hy abhūt |
provāca vacanaṃ kiṃcit praṇamitvā kṛtāñjaliḥ ||
sarvajātiprabhutvena kṛto dhanyo 'smi mādhava |
bhūyaś ca te vacaḥ kartum icchāmi puruṣarṣabha |
tad ājñāpaya govinda kiṃ karomi mahābhuja |
Note: k: After line 2 of *1345, Ds ins.: :k
evaṃ bhavatu bhadraṃ te yathā tvaṃ jvara kākṣase |
Note: k: K Ñ2.3 V B D G5 cont.: T1.2 G1 M ins. after 9: :k
aham asurakulapramāthinā |
tripurahareṇa hareṇa nirmitaḥ |
raṇaśirasi vinirjitas tvayā |
prabhur asi me 'dya tavāsmi kiṃkaraḥ ||
jvarasya vacanaṃ śrutvā vāsudevo 'bravīd vacaḥ |
abhisaṃdhiṃ śṛṇuṣvādya yat tvā vakṣyāmi niścayāt |
Note: k: T1.2 G1.3.5 M G(ed.) cont.: :k
yuvāṃ jvarau ca bhavatāṃ pīḍāyāṃ maraṇe tathā |
pīḍāyāṃ ca bhavān svāmī maraṇe māmakas tathā ||
ihaiva līyatāṃ tāvaj jvaro māmaka eva hi |
dhanyo 'smy anugṛhīto 'smi yat tvayā matpriyaṃ krṭaṃ
ājñāpaya priaṃ kiṃ te cakrāyudha karomy aham //
Note: k: M1-3 ins. after 10: T2 G1 M4 after line 4 of 1346*: :k
stuvan māṃ bhaktiyuktena stotreṇānena mānavaḥ |
jvaradevāvayoḥ samyak cintayan yuddham adbhutam |
na tasya jvarasaṃjātā pīḍā bhuvi bhaviṣyati |
mahāmṛdhe tava mama ca dvayor imaṃ parākramaṃ bhujabalakevalāstrayoḥ
praṇamya mām ekamanāḥ paṭhet tu yaḥ sa vai bhavej jvara vigatajvaro naraḥ //
Note: k: After 11, Ś1 K1.3 Ds1(marg.) D4.5(marg.) ins.: :k
tripād bhasmapraharaṇas triśirā raktalocanaḥ |
sa me prītaḥ sukhaṃ dadyāt sarvāmayapatir jvaraḥ ||
ādyantavantaḥ kavayaḥ purāṇāḥ |
sūkṣmā bṛhanto 'py anuśāsitāraḥ |
sarvāñ jvarān ghnantu mamāniruddha+ |
+pradyumnasaṃkarṣaṇavāsudevāḥ |
evam uktas tu kṛṣṇena jvaraḥ sākṣān mahātmanā
Note: k: After 12ab, K1.2.4 Ñ2.3 V B D T4 G5 M4 G(ed.) ins.: :kprovāca yaduśārdūlam evam etad bhaviṣyati ||
varaṃ labdhvā jvaro hṛṣṭaḥ kṛṣṇāc ca samayaṃ punaḥ |
Note: k: While T.1.2 G.1.3.4 M1-3 ins. after 12ab: :kevam astv iti govindaṃ babhāṣe keśavaṃ tadā |
praṇamya śirasā kṛṣṇam apakrāntas tato raṇāt //
Note: k: After 12c, T1.2 G1.3-5 M ins.: :k
bhaktānām abhayaṃkaram |
vāsudevaṃ mahātmānaṃ |
Note: h: HV (CE), adhyāya 112, transliterated from the critical ed. (P. L. Vaidya, Poona 1969) by Arlo Griffiths (Leiden/Groningen); proof-read by Arlo Griffiths. This is the version of April 5, 2004 :h
tatas te sahitāḥ sarve trayastraya ivāgnayaḥ
vainateyaṃ samāruhya yudhyamānā raṇe sthitāḥ //
tataḥ sarvāṇy anīkāni bāṇavarṣair mahābalāḥ
ardayan vainateyasthā nadanto 'tibalā raṇe //
cakralāṅgalapātaiś ca bāṇavarṣaiś ca pīḍitam
saṃcukopa mahānīkaṃ dānavānāṃ mahātmanām //
kakṣe 'gnir iva saṃvṛddhaḥ śuṣkendhanasamīritāḥ
kṛṣṇabāṇāgnir udbhūto vivṛddhim upagacchati //
sa dānavasahasrāṇi tasmin samaramūrdhani
yugāntāgnir ivārciṣmān dahamāno vyarājata //
Note: k: After 5, T1.2 G1.3-5 M ins.: :k
tatrāśītisahasrāṇi nāgānāṃ nihatāni ca |
lakṣaṃ ca rathavṛndaṃ tu hataṃ keśavasāyakaiḥ ||
aśvānāṃ śatasāhasram ayutaṃ pattināṃ tathā |
niḥśeṣitātha sā senā palāyanaparābhavat |
tāṃ dīryamāṇāṃ mahatīṃ nānāpraharaṇodyatām
senāṃ bāṇaḥ samāsādya vārayan vākyam abravīt //
lāghavaṃ samupāgamya kim evaṃ bhayaviklavāḥ
daityavaṃśasamutpannāḥ palāyadhyvaṃ mahāmṛdhe //
kavacāsigadāprāsān khaḍgacarmaparaśvadhān
utsṛjyotsṛjya gacchanti kiṃ bhavanto 'ntarikṣagāḥ //
svajātiṃ caiva vāsaṃ ca harasaṃsargam eva ca
mānayadbhir na gantavyam eṣo hy aham avasthitaḥ //
evam uccāritāṃ vācaṃ śṛṇvantas tām acintya vai
apakrāmanta te sarve dānavā bhayapīḍitāḥ //
pramāthagaṇaśeṣaṃ tu tadanīkapuraḥsaram
bhagnāvaśeṣaṃ yuddhāya manaś cakre punas tadā //
kumbhāṇḍo nāma bāṇastha sakhāmātyaś ca vīryavān
balaṃ bhagnaṃ samālokya vacanaṃ cedam abravīt //
eṣa bāṇaḥ sthito yuddhe śaṃkaro 'yaṃ guhas tathā
kimarthaṃ yuddham utsṛjya bhavanto bhayamohitāḥ //
Note: k: After 13, Ñ2 B Dn Ds D5 ins.: :k
prāṇāṃs tyaktvā ca yudhyadhvaṃ sarve dānavapuṃgavāḥ |
Note: k: B1.2 cont.: :k
evaṃ saṃstūyamānās te kumbhāṇḍena mahātmanā |
naiva tastambhire daityāḥ palāyanta samantataḥ |
Note: k: B1.2 cont.: Ñ2 B3 Dn Ds D5 cont. after 1354*: K V D2-6 T4 G(ed.) ins. after 13: :k
evaṃ kumbhāṇḍavākyaṃ te śṛṇvanto bhayavihlavāḥ |
cakrāgnibhayavitrastāḥ sarve yānti diśo daśa ||
bhagnaṃ balaṃ tato dṛṣṭvā kṛṣṇenāmitatejasā |
saṃraktanayanaḥ sthāṇur yuddhāya paryavartata ||
bāṇasaṃrakṣaṇaṃ kartuṃ ratham āsthāya suprabham |
devaḥ kumāraś ca tathā rathenāgninibhena vai |
Note: k: While after 13, T1.2 G1.3-5 M ins. an addl. colophon (...) and cont.: :k
tataḥ kruddho haraḥ sākṣād nadī khaṅgī paraśvadhī |
śūlī niṣaṅgī kavacī bāṇī kārmukavāñ śivaḥ |
nandīśvarasamāyuktaṃ ratham āsthāya vīryavān
saṃdaṣṭauṣṭhapuṭo rudraḥ pradhāvati yato hariḥ //
Note: k: After 14, T1.2 G1.3-5 M ins.: :k
tasyānuyātā vetāḷāḥ piśācāś candramālinaḥ |
pibantaḥ śoṇitaṃ bhūyaḥ karālā nirṇatodarāḥ |
pibann iva tadākāśaṃ siṃhayukto mahāsvanaḥ
ratho bhāti ghanonmuktaḥ paurṇamāsyāṃ yathā śaśī //
Note: k: After 15, N (except Ś1 Ñ1) T4 G5 ins.: :k
tato gaṇasahasrais tu nānārūpair bhayāvahaiḥ |
nadadbhir vividhān nādān ratho devasya so 'bhayāt ||
ke cit siṃhamukhās tatra tathā vyāghramukhāś ca ha |
nāgāśvoṣṭramukhās tatra prāvepann abhipīḍitāḥ |
vyālayajñopavītāś ca ke cit tatra mahābalāḥ ||
kharoṣṭragajavaktrāś ca aśvagrīvāś ca saṃsthitāḥ ||
chāgamārjāravaktrāś ca meṣavaktrās tathā pare |
cīriṇaḥ śikhinaś cānye jaṭilordhvaśiroruhāḥ ||
bhagnāḥ paripatanti sma śaṅkhaduṃdubhinisvanaiḥ |
ke cit saumyamukhās tatra divyaiḥ śastrair alaṃkṛtāḥ ||
nānāpuṣpakṛtāpīḍā nānāpraharaṇāyudhāḥ |
vāmanā vikaṭāś caiva siṃhavyāghraparicchadāḥ |
rudhirārdramahādaṃṣṭrā mahāmāṃsabalipriyāḥ ||
devaṃ saṃparivāryātha mahāśatrupramardanam |
līlāyamānās tiṣṭhanti saṃgrāmābhimukhonmukhāḥ ||
tato divyaṃ rathaṃ dṛṣṭvā rudrasyākliṣṭakarmaṇaḥ |
kṛṣṇo garuḍam āsthāya yayau rudrāya saṃyuge |
vainateyastham asyantam āyāntam agraṇīr haraḥ
Note: k: After 16ab, T1.3 G1.3-5 M G(ed.) ins.: :ktiṣṭha tiṣṭheti covāca kruddho 'haṃkāragarvitaḥ ||
bhagavān api govindaḥ smayann iva ca saṃsthitaḥ |
sthito 'smi tava saṃgrāme yatheṣṭaṃ kriyatām iti |
hariṃ vivyādha kupito nārācānāṃ śatena saḥ //
sa śarair arditas tena hareṇāmitraghātinā
harir jagrāha kupito hy āstraṃ pārjanyam uttamam //
Note: k: N (except Ś1 Ñ1) T4 G(ed.) ins. after: T2 G1.4.5 after the first occurrence of 18: :k
pracacāla tato bhūmir viṣṇurudraprapīḍitā ||
nāgāś cordhvamukhās tatra vicelur abhipīḍitāḥ |
parvatāḥ prastutās tatra jaladhārābhir āplutāḥ ||
ke cin mumucire tatra śikharāṇi samantataḥ |
diśaś ca vidiśaś caiva bhūmir ākāśam eva ca ||
pradīptānīva dṛśyante sthāṇukṛṣṇasamāgame |
samantataś ca nirghātāḥ patanti dharaṇītale ||
śivāś caivāśivān nādān nadante bhīmadarśanāḥ |
vāsavaś cānadad ghoraṃ rudhiraṃ cāpy avarṣata ||
ulkā ca bāṇasainyasya mukhāny āvṛtya tiṣṭhati |
na vavau mārutaś cāpi jyotīṃṣy ākulatām iyuḥ |
prabhāhīnāś ca oṣadhyo na caranty antarikṣagāḥ ||
etasminn antare brahmā sarvair devagaṇair vṛtaḥ |
tripurāntakam udyantaṃ jñātvā rudram upāgamat ||
gandharvāpsarasaś caiva yakṣā vidyādharās tathā |
siddhacāraṇasaṃghāś ca paśyanto 'tha divi sthitāḥ ||
tataḥ pārjanyam astraṃ tat kṣiptaṃ rudrāya viṣṇunā |
yayau jvalann atha tadā yato rudro rathe sthitaḥ |
tataḥ śatasahasrāṇi śarāṇāṃ nataparvaṇām
niṣpetuḥ sarvato digbhyo yato haratanus tataḥ //
athāgneyaṃ mahāraudram astram astravidāṃ varaḥ
mumoca ruṣito rudras tad adbhutam ivābhavat //
Note: k: After 19, K Ñ2.3 V B D S ins.: :k
tato viśīrṇadehās te catvāro 'pi samantataḥ |
tato viśīrṇadehās te catvāro 'pi samantataḥ
nādṛśyanta śaraiś channā dahyamānāś ca vahninā //
Note: k: After 20, T1.2 G1.3-5 M ins.: :k
tato bhūtāni vitresur devāś ca bhayaviklavāḥ |
siṃhanādaṃ tataś cakruḥ sarva evāsurottamāḥ
hato 'yam iti vijñāya āgneyāntarhite harau //
tatas tad viṣahitvājau hy astram astravidāṃ varaḥ
Note: k: For 22ab, T1.2 G1.3-5 M subst.: :kNote: k: T4 ins. after 22ab: :ktataḥ kruddho hṛṣīkeśaḥ pratiṣidhyāgnisaṃcayaṃ |
jagrāha vāruṇaṃ so 'straṃ vāsudevaḥ pratāpavān //
udyate vāruṇāstre tu vāsudevena dhīmatā
Note: k: For 22ab (= 23ab?), K1.3 Ñ2.3 V B D T4 subst.: :kprayukte vāsudevena vāruṇāstre 'titejasi |
āgneyaṃ praśamaṃ yātam astraṃ vāruṇatejasā //
Note: k: After 23, N (except ś 1 Ñ1) T4 ins.: :k
tasmin pratihate hy astre vāsudevena saṃyuge |
paiśācaṃ rākṣasaṃ caiva raudram āṅgirasaṃ bhavaḥ
mumocāstrāṇi catvāri yugāntāgninibhāni saḥ //
Note: k: After 24, K1.2 Ñ2 B2 D1.4 ins.: :k
vāsudevo 'pi cāstrāṇi dṛṣṭvā viprahitāni vai |
vāyavyam atha sāvitraṃ vāsavaṃ mohanaṃ tathā
atrāṇāṃ vāruṇārthāya vāsudevo mumoca ha //
astraiś caturbhiś catvāri vārayitvā ca keśavaḥ
jagrāha vaiṣṇavaṃ so 'straṃ vyāditāsyāntakopamam //
vaiṣṇavāstre vimukte tu sarva evāsurottamāḥ
Note: k: After 27ab, N (except Ś1 Ñ1) T1.2.4 G1.3-5 ins.: :kbhūtayakṣagaṇāś caiva bāṇānīkaṃ ca sarvaśaḥ |
diśaḥ pradudruvuḥ sarve bhayamohitalocanāḥ //
Note: k: After 27, N (except Ś1 Ñ1) T4 G4 ins.: :k
pramāthagaṇabhūyiṣṭhe sainye dīrṇe mahāsuraḥ |
nirjagāma tato bāṇo yuddhāyabhimukhas tvaran ||
bhīmapraharaṇair ghorair daityendraiḥ sumahābalaiḥ |
vṛto mahārathair vīrair vajrīva surasattamaiḥ ||
japyaiś ca mantraiś ca tathoṣadhībhir |
mahātmanaḥ svastyayanaṃ pracakruḥ |
sa tatra vastrāṇi śubhāś ca gāvaḥ |
phalāni puṣpāṇi tathaiva niṣkān ||
baleḥ suto brāhmaṇasattamebhyo |
dadau dhanāny āśu yathā dhaneśaḥ |
sahasrasūryo bahukiṃkiṇīkaḥ |
parārdhyajāmbunadahemcitraḥ ||
sahasracandrāyutatārakaś ca |
ratho mahān agnir ivāvabhāti |
tam āsthito dānavasaṃgṛhītaṃ |
mahādhvajaḥ kārmukadhṛk sa bāṇaḥ ||
udvartayiṣyan yadupuṃgavānām |
atīva raudraṃ sa bibharti rūpaṃ |
sa vegavān vīrarathaughasaṃkulo |
viniryayau tān prati daityasāgaraḥ ||
mahārṇavodbhūtataraṃgasaṃkulo |
yathārṇavo lokavināśanāya |
bhīmāni saṃtrāsakarair vapurbhis |
tāny agrato bhānti balāni tasya ||
mahārathāny ucchritakārmukāṇi |
saparvatānīva vanāni rājan |
viniḥsṛtaḥ sāgaratoyavāsād |
atyadbhutaṃ cāhavaṃ draṣṭukāmaḥ ||
andhakārīkṛte loke pradīpte tryambake tadā
na nandī nāpi ca ratho na rudraḥ pratyadṛśyata //
dviguṇaṃ dīptadehas tu roṣeṇa ca balena ca
Note: k: After 29ab, D6 T1.2 G1.3-5 M G(ed.) ins.: :kastraṃ nārāyaṇaṃ nāma nārāyaṇajighāṃsayā |
jagrāha śūlī bhūtātmā devānām atha paśyatām ||
mumoca ca yathāśakti rudro brahmātmasaṃbhavaḥ |
vimuktaṃ tena tac cāstraṃ jagāma ca samīpataḥ ||
śaṃkarasya tad astraṃ tu prahasan keśavas tadā |
jagrāha līlayā viṣṇus tūṇau tac ca vyanikṣipat ||
kupito rudrarūpeṇa rudraḥ saṃhāramūrtimān ||
tataḥ śūlaṃ samādāya sarvaśatruvidāraṇam |
devadānavagandharva+ +yakṣapannagarakṣasām |
bhayaṃkaraṃ mumocātha kṛṣṇam uddiśya śaṃkaraḥ ||
tac ca śūlaṃ harir dṛṣṭvā nijaśaktyā nyavārayat ||
tatas trilocanaḥ kruddhaḥ kālāntakayamopamaḥ |
astraṃ pāśupataṃ yat tu loke khyātaṃ svavīryavat |
jagrāhātmasamaṃ sākṣād dhantuṃ keśavam ojasā ||
vijñāyātha tadā viṣṇus tad evāstraṃ samādade ||
dve hy astre praśamaṃ yāte dvābhyāṃ saṃdhārite tadā |
tripurāntakaraṃ bāṇaṃ jagrāha ca caturmukhaḥ //
Note: k: After 29, T1.2 G1.3-5 M ins.: :k
agnimārutasomānāṃ viṣṇos tejaḥ samutthitam |
anenāhaṃ haniṣyāmi sabandhuṃ sasutaṃ raṇe ||
iti matvā virūpākṣo dakṣayajñavināśanaḥ |
saṃdadhatkārmuke caiva kṣeptukāmas trilocanaḥ
vijñāto vāsudevena cittajñena mahātmanā //
Note: k: After 30, T1.2 G1.3-5 M G(ed.) ins.: :k
bāṇenānena bhūteśo māṃ hantuṃ kila niścitaḥ |
iti matvā tadā kṛṣṇaḥ pratikāraṃ samārabhat |
jṛmbhaṇaṃ nām so 'py astraṃ jagrāha puruṣottamaḥ
Note: k: After 31ab, T1.2 G1.3-5 M ins.: :ktenāstreṇa tadā kṛṣṇo mantrapūtena keśavaḥ |
haraṃ saṃjṛmbhayām āsa kṣiprakārī mahābalaḥ //
Note: k: For 31, Ś1 subst.: :k
vijṛmbhaṇaṃ nāma tataḥ so 'straṃ jagrāha keśavaḥ |
vijṛmbhayām āsa haraṃ tenāstreṇa mahābalaḥ |
Note: k: K Ñ V B Dn Ds D1.3-6 T4 ins. after 31: D2 after 30: :k
saśaraḥ sadhanuś caiva haras tenāśu jṛmbhitaḥ |
saṃjñāṃ na lebhe bhagavān vijetāsurarakṣasām ||
saśaraṃ sadhanuṣkaṃ ca dṛṣtvātmānaṃ vijṛmbhitam |
Note: k: After the above, K1 D1-3 read lines 22-24 of the App. I (No. 37) repeating them in their proper place. :k
Note: k: K1 D1-3 ins. after the first occurrence of line 24 of App. I (No. 37): Ñ2 V2.3 B Ds D6 T4 cont. after *1375: :k
balonmatto 'tha bāṇo 'sau śarvaṃ codayate 'sakṛt |
sṛṣṭim anyāṃ sṛjasveti tadā darpavivṛddhaye ||
śaktim anyāṃ sṛjann eva tadā darpavivṛddhaye |
Note: k: K1 Ñ2 V2.3 B Ds D1-3.6 T4 cont.: K2-4 Ñ1 V1 Dn D4.5 cont. after 1375*: :k
tato nanāda bhūtātmā snigdhagambhīranisvanaḥ |
pradhmāpayām āsa tadā kṛṣṇaḥ śaṅkhaṃ mahābalaḥ |
Note: k: While T1.2 G1.3-5 M ins. after 31: :k
jṛmbhite ca hare tasmiñ śaṅkhaṃ dadhmau sa keśavaḥ |
Note: k: note sandhi -ñś- :k
śārṅgaṃ ca kūjayām āsa siṃhanādaṃ vyanīnadat ||
pāravaśyaṃ samāyātaḥ śūlī jṛmbhaṇatejasā |
pāñcajanyasya ghoṣeṇa śārṅgavisphūrjitena ca
devaṃ vijṛmbhitaṃ dṛṣṭvā sarvabhūtāni tatrasuḥ //
Note: k: After 32, T1.2 G1.3-5 M G(ed.) ins.: :k
dānavāś ca tathā yānti diśo 'tha vidiśo 'pi ca |
bāṇaś cāpi tadā rājan bhītabhītaḥ samāśvasat ||
tato hāhākṛtaṃ sainyaṃ paśyataḥ śūlinas tadā |
kiṃ kurmaḥ kva gamiṣyāma iti dānavasattamāḥ |
sthitāś ca vimukhā rājan kartavye mūḍhacetasaḥ ||
atha rudro 'pi sahasā jṛmbhaṇāstreṇa mohitaḥ |
kṛtyākṛtyavimūḍhātmā na kiṃ cid pratyapadyata ||
dhyāthātho manasā tātaṃ bhaktigrāhyam atīndriyam |
parāt parataraṃ viṣṇuṃ sarvalokeśvareśvaram |
nārāyaṇaṃ prabhuṃ kṛṣṇam anantaṃ puruṣottamam ||
yadi dharmo bhavej jyāyān yuktaṃ madapasarpaṇam |
iti dhyātvā haraḥ śīghraṃ tasmād deśād apākramat |
Note: k: While N (except Ś1 Ñ1) T4 ins. after 32 a passage given in App. I (No. 37), after which N (except Ś1 Ñ1) T4 G(ed.) ins.: :k
apayāte tato deve kṛṣṇe caiva mahātmani |
punaś cāsīt kathaṃ yuddhaṃ pareṣāṃ lomaharṣaṇam |
kumbhāṇḍasaṃgṛhītāśve rathe tiṣṭhan guhas tadā
abhidudrāva kṛṣṇaṃ ca balaṃ pradyumnam eva ca //
Note: k: K1(marg.).2 Ñ2.3 V B2.3 Dn Ds D4-6 ins. after 33: B1 after 34: :k
tataḥ śaraśatair ugrais tān vivyādha raṇe guhaḥ |
Note: k: Ñ2.3 V B Ds D5.6 cont.: :k
amarṣaroṣasaṃkruddhaḥ kumārapravaro nadan |
Note: k: While T1.2 G1.3-5 M ins. after 33: :k
śarāṇāṃ śatasāhasrair vivyādha samare guhaḥ |
vāsudevaṃ sahasreṇa śatena balam eva ca |
pradyumnaṃ bāṇasāhasrair jaghāna samare guhaḥ |
śaraughācitagātrās te trayastraya ivāgnayaḥ
śoṇitaughaplutair gātraiḥ pratyayudhyan guhaṃ tadā //
tatas te yuddhamārgajñās trayas tribhir anuttamaiḥ
vāyavyāgneyapārjanyair bibhidur dīptatejasaḥ //
Note: k: After 35, N (except Ś1 K3 Ñ1) T1.4 G5 ins.: :k
tān astrāṃs tribhir evāstrair vinivārya sa pāvakiḥ |
śailavāruṇasāvitrais tān sa vivyādha sāyakaiḥ |
tasya dīptaśaraughasya dīptacāpadharasya ca
śaraughān astramāyābhir grasanti sma mahātmanaḥ //
Note: k: After 36, Ñ2 ins.: :k
bāṇaughe vivṛte tasmin paramakrodhadīpitaḥ |
Note: k: Ñ2 cont.: K1.2.4 V B D T4 ins. after 36: K after 35: :k
yadā tadā guhaḥ kruddhaḥ prajvalann iva tejasā |
astraṃ brahmaśiro nāma kālakalpaṃ durāsadam
saṃdaṣṭauṣṭhapuṭaḥ saṃkhye jagrāha sa guhas tadā //
prayukte brahmaśirasi sahasrāṃśusamaprabhe
ugre paramadurdharṣe lokakṣayakare tadā //
Note: k: After 38, T1.2 G1.3-5 ins.: :k
pradhāvan sarvabhūtāni dahyamānāni sarvataḥ |
mahābhūteṣu sarveṣu pradhāvatsu tatastataḥ
Note: k: Ñ2 V B1.3 Ds D6 ins. after 39ab: B2 after 38: T1.2 G1.3-5 cont. after 1387*: :kastratejaḥpramūḍhe tu viṣaṇṇe jagati prabhuḥ |
keśavaḥ keśimathanaś cakraṃ jagrāha vīryavān //
sarveṣām astravīryāṇāṃ vāraṇe ghātane tathā
cakram apraticakrasya loke khyātaṃ mahātmanaḥ //
astraṃ brahmaśiras tena niṣprabhaṃ kṛtam ojasā
meghair ivātapāpāye savitur maṇḍalaṃ mahat //
tato niṣprabhatāṃ yāte naṣṭavīrye mahaujasi
tasmin brahmaśirasy astre śaktiṃ jagrāha kāñcanīm //
Note: k: After 42c, K1.3 Ñ2 V3 B Ds D4-6 ins.: :k
krodhasaṃraktalocanaḥ |
guhaḥ prajajvāla raṇe haviṣevāgnir ulbaṇaḥ ||
śatrughīṃ jvalitāṃ divyāṃ |
Note: k: After 42, Ñ2 V3 B Ds ins.: :k
amoghāṃ dayitāṃ ghorāṃ sarvalokabhayāvahām |
maholkām iva tāṃ dīptāṃ yugāntāgnisamaprabhām
ghaṇṭāmālākulāṃ śaktiṃ cikṣepa ruṣito guhaḥ //
Note: k: After 43, N (except Ś1) T1.2.4 G1.3-5 ins.: :k
nanāda balavac cāpi nādaṃ śatrubhayaṃkaram ||
sā ca kṣiptā tadā tena brahmaṇyena mahātmanā |
jṛmbhamāṇeva gagane saṃpradīptamukhī tataḥ
āghāvantī mahāśaktiḥ kṛṣṇasya vadhakāṅkṣiṇī //
Note: k: T1.2 G1.3-5 M G(ed.) ins. after 44: T4 after 47ab: :k
tato vidyādharāḥ sarve gandharvā ṛṣayas tathā |
bhṛśaṃ viṣaṇṇāḥ sendrāś ca sarvāmarapurogamāḥ
śaktiṃ prajvalitāṃ dṛṣṭvā dagdhaḥ kṛṣṇa iti bruvan //
abhyāśamāgatāṃ tāṃ tu mahāśaktiṃ mahāmṛdhe
huṃkāreṇaiva nirbhartsya pātayām āsa bhūtale //
pātitāyāṃ mahāśaktyāṃ sādhu sādhv iti sarvaśaḥ
siṃhanādaṃ tataś cakruḥ sarve devāḥ savāsavāḥ //
tato deveṣu nardatsu vāsudevaḥ pratāpavān
punaś cakraṃ sa jagrāha bhūtāntakaraṇaṃ tadā //
Note: k: After 48, D6 T1.2.4 G1.3-5 M1.3.4 G(ed.) ins.: :k
musalaṃ lāṅgalaṃ caiva jagrāha ruṣito balaḥ |
tato bhīmo guho devaḥ kartavye vismṛto 'bhavat |
vyāvidhyamāne cakre tu kṛṣṇenāmitatejasā
Note: k: After 49ab, K1.2 Ñ2.3 V B1.2 D (except D2.6) ins.: :kkumārarakṣaṇārthāya vibhajya svatanuṃ tadā |
taṃ dṛṣṭvā pramukhe tasya vyatiṣṭhita ca kauṭavī
Note: k: For 49cd, K Ñ1.2 V B D T1.4 G5 (also) subst.: :kdigvāsā devavacanāt prātiṣṭhat tatra kauṭavī |
Note: k: K Ñ1.2 V B D T4 cont.: T1 G5 cont. after 1397*: :klambā nāma mahābhāgā bhāgo devyās tathāṣṭamaḥ |
citrā kanakaśaktis tu sā ca nagnā sthitāntare ||
athāntarā kumārasya devīṃ dṛṣṭvā mahābhujaḥ |
parāṅmukhas tato vākyam uvāca madhusūdanaḥ |
Note: k: While T2 G2.3.5 M ins. after 49cd: T1 G5 cont. after 1395*: :kdigvāsā vikaṭā dhūmrā karāḷā nirṇatodarī |
bāhū prasārya sahasā grasantīvāmbaraṃ mahat |
apagacchāpagaccha tvaṃ dhigdhig ity eva so 'bravīt //
Note: k: After 49, N (except Ś1 Ñ1) T1.2.4 G1.3-5 M G(ed.) ins.: :k
kim evaṃ kuruṣe vighnaṃ niścitasya vadhaṃ prati ||
śrutvaiva vacanaṃ tasya kauṭavī tu tadā vibho |
naiva vāsaḥ samādhatte kumāraparirakṣaṇāt |
Note: k: N (except Ś1 Ñ1) cont.: T1.4 G5 cont. after 1402*: :k
apavāhya guhaṃ śīghram apayāhi raṇājirāt |
svasti hy evaṃ bhaved adya mokṣyase yotsyatā mayā ||
tāṃ ca dṛṣṭvā sthitāṃ devo hariḥ saṃgrāmamūrdhani |
saṃjahāra tataś cakraṃ bhagavān vāsavānujaḥ ||
evam ukte tu vacane devadevena dhīmatā |
apavāhya guhaṃ devī harasāṃnidhyam āgatā ||
etasminn antare caiva vartamāne mahābhaye |
kumāre rakṣite devyā bāṇas taṃ deśam āyayau ||
apayātaṃ guhaṃ dṛṣṭvā muktaṃ kṛṣṇena saṃyugāt |
bāṇas cintayate tatra svayaṃ yotsyāmi mādhavam |
Note: k: After line 1 of 1399, Ñ2 V1 ins.: :k
tasmād vaktrākṣi gacha tvaṃ yataḥ skandopagachati |
etad eva paraṃ tasya bhaviṣyati na saṃśayaḥ |
Note: k: K1.2 Ñ2 V1 Dn D1.2.4.5 G(ed.) cont.: :k
bhūtakṣayagaṇās tatra bāṇānīkaṃ ca sarvaśaḥ |
diśaḥ pradudruvuḥ sarve bhayamohitalocanāḥ ||
pramāthagaṇabhūyiṣṭhe sainye dīrṇe mahāsuraḥ |
nirjagāma tato bāṇo yuddhāyābhimukhas tvaran ||
bhīmapraharaṇair ghorair daityendraiḥ sumahārathaiḥ |
mahābalair mahāvīrair vajrīva surasattamaiḥ ||
purohitāḥ śatruvadhaṃ vadantas |
tathaiva cānye śrutaśīlavṛddhāḥ |
japaiś ca mantraiś ca tathauṣadhībhir |
mahātmanaḥ svastyayanaṃ pracakruḥ |
Note: k: While T1.2.4 G1.3-5 M cont. after 1398*: :k
śaśāpa caināṃ ruṣito yaś ca māṃ bhaktisaṃyutaḥ |
dvādaśābdaṃ namas kuryāt tenābhūd yat phalaṃ mahat ||
tadā saṃdarśanāt tasya tat phalaṃ naśyatāṃ mahat |
sadā digambarā bhūyas tiṣṭha vā tvaṃ yatheṣṭataḥ ||
ity uktvā devadevo 'pi vihāya guham acyutaḥ |
parāvṛtya sthitas tūrṇaṃ sabalaḥ sasutas tadā |
Note: k: T1.2 G1.3 M4 cont.: :k
tadāprabhṛti rājendra digvāsāḥ sābhavat tadā |
Note: k: T2 G1.3 M cont.: T1 G5 ins. after line 6 of 1399*: M1-3 cont. after 1401*: :k
apākrāmad guho yuddhād yuddhāyaiva ca keśavaḥ |
rāmapradyumnasaṃyukto garuḍe garuḍadhvajaḥ ||
nirjite ca jvare tasmin hare caiva guhe tadā |
tatas tūryapraṇādaiś ca bherīṇāṃ ca mahāsvanaiḥ
siṃhanādaiś ca daityānāṃ bāṇaḥ kṛṣṇam abhidravat //
Note: k: After 50, T1.2 G1.3-5 ins.: :k
śaktīś caiva gadāś caiva cāpāni vividhāni ca |
parighāṃś ca mahāghorāṃś cakrāṇi ca bahūni ca |
bāṇānāṃ dhārayām āsa sahasram amitaujasām |
Note: k: T1 G5 cont.: N (except Ś1) T4 ins. after 50: :k
dṛṣṭvā bāṇaṃ tu niryātaṃ yuddhāyaiva vyavasthitam |
āruhya garuḍaṃ kṛṣṇo bāṇāyābhimukho yayau |
āyāntam atha taṃ dṛṣṭvā yadūnām ṛṣabhaṃ raṇe
Note: k: For 51ab, T2 G1.3.4 M subst.: :kgatvātha kiṃ cid dṛṣṭvaiva svabalaṃ keśavaṃ tadā |
vainateyasamārūḍhaṃ kṛṣṇam apratimaujasam //
Note: k: After 51, N (except ś Ñ1} T4 G(ed.) ins.: :k
atha nāṇas tu taṃ dṛṣṭvā pramukhe pratyupasthitam |
uvāca vacanaṃ kruddho vāsudevaṃ tarasvinam |
tiṣṭha tiṣṭha na me 'dya tvaṃ jīvan pratigamiṣyasi
dvārakāṃ dvārakāsthān vā suhṛdo drakṣyase na ca //
suvarṇavarṇān vṛkṣāgrān adya drakṣyasi mādhava
Note: k: For 53ab, B3 D2.6 T2 G1.3.4 M subst.: :ktvam adyāṣṭabhujaḥ saṃkhye kathaṃ bāhusahasriṇā |
mayābhibhūtaḥ samare muhūrṣuḥ kālacoditaḥ //
adya bāhusahasreṇa katham aṣṭabhujo raṇe
mayā saha samāgamya yotsyase garuḍadhvaja //
adya hi tvaṃ mayā yuddhe nirjitaḥ saha bāndhavaiḥ
dvārakāṃ śoṇitapure nihataḥ saṃsmariṣyasi //
nānāpraharaṇopetaṃ nānāṅgadavibhūṣitam
adya bāhusahasraṃ me koṭibhūtaṃ niśāmaya //
Note: k: T1.2 G1.3-5 M ins. after 56: D5 T4 after the ref. of 52: :k
nāhaṃ guho na ca haro na jvaro nāpi cāgnayaḥ |
baliputraṃ tu māṃ viddhi bāṇam apratimaṃ raṇe |
garjatas tasya vākyaughāḥ samudrād iva sindhavaḥ
Note: k: After 57ab, T2 G1.3-5 M ins.: :kparākramarasopetā mattebhād iva śīkarāḥ |
niścaranti mahāghorā vātoddhūtā ivormayaḥ //
roṣaparyākule caiva netre tasya babhūvatuḥ
jagad didhakṣann iva khe mahāsūrya ivoditau //
Note: k: For 57c-58d, Ś1 subst.: :k
apiban mṛtyunāviṣṭaḥ kṛṣṇo bāṇam abhidravat ||
kṣobhavisphūrjite tasya raktanetre babhūvatuḥ |
jagad didhakṣū yugapan mahāsūryāvivoditau |
bāṇa kiṃ garjase śūrā na garjanti raṇe sthitāḥ
ehy ehi yudhyasva raṇe kiṃ mithyāgarjitena te //
yadi yuddhāni vacanaiḥ sidhyanti ditinandana
bhavān eva jayen nityaṃ bahvabaddhaṃ prabhāṣase //
ehy ehi jaya māṃ bāṇa jito vā vasudhātale
cirāyāvāṅmukho dīnaḥ patitaḥ śeṣyase 'sura //
Note: k: After 61, T1.2.4 G1.3-5 M ins.: :k
kākagṛdhrabaḷaiś caiva sarvataḥ pāṭito 'tha vā |
ity evam uktvā vacanaṃ marmabhedibhir āśugaiḥ
nirbibheda raṇe kṛṣṇas tv amoghair dīptatejasaiḥ //
Note: k: After 62, N (except Ś1) T4 G5 ins.: :k
vinirbhinnas tu kṛṣṇena mārgaṇairmarmabhedibhiḥ |
smayan bāṇas tataḥ kṛṣṇaṃ śaravarṣair avākirat
jvaladbhir iva saṃsaktais tasmin yuddhe sudāruṇe //
tau tataḥ śaranistriṃśair gadāparighatomaraiḥ
Note: k: For 64ab, N (except Ś1) T1.2 G1.3-5 M subst.: :ktataḥ parighanistriṃśair gadātomaraśaktibhiḥ |
vinindamānau saṃyattau yuddhe ceratur ojasā //
musalaiḥ paṭṭisaiś cāpi chādayām āsa keśavam //
aṣṭabāhuḥ sahasreṇa bāhūnāṃ samayudhyata
Note: k: After 66ab, K Ñ V B D T4 ins.: :kyodhayām āsa samare dvibāhum atha līlayā |
Note: k: B1 cont.: :ktatas tu samare hantuṃ hiraṇyakaśipor yathā |
Note: k: B1 cont.: K1.2 Ñ2.3 V B2 Ds D4.6 cont. after 1415*: :ksahasrabāhunā sārdham aṣṭabāhur ayudhyata |
bāṇena saha saṃgamya śaṅkhacakragadādharaḥ //
Note: k: K1.2 Ñ2.3 V B2 Ds D4.6 T1 G1 ins. after 66: K3.4 Ñ1 B3 Dn D1-3 T4 cont. after 1415*: B1 after 1417*: :k
lāghavaṃ vīkṣya kṛṣṇasya balisūnū ruṣānvitaḥ |
Note: k: T1 G5 cont.: T2 G3.4 ins. after 66: :k
mumocāstraṃ tadā yuddhe kṛṣṇo bāṇaḥ pratāpavān |
yad astraṃ paramaṃ divyaṃ tapasā nirmitaṃ mahat
tad apratihitaṃ yuddhe sarvaśatrunibarhaṇam
brahmaṇā vihitaṃ pūrvaṃ tan mumoca baleḥ sutaḥ //
tasmin mukte diśaḥ sarvās tamopahatamaṇḍalāḥ
prādur āsaṃs tato raudrā na prājñāyata kiṃ cana //
Note: k: After 68c, N (except Ś1) T4 ins.: :k
... sughorāṇi ca sarvaśaḥ |
tamasā saṃvṛte loke ... |
sādhu sādhv iti bāṇaṃ tu pūjayanti sma dānavāḥ
aho dhig iti devānāṃ carate vāg udīritā //
tato 'strabalavegena sārciṣmatyaḥ sudāruṇāḥ
ghorarūpā mahāvegā niṣpetur bāṇavṛṣṭayaḥ //
nākampata tadā vāyur na meghāḥ saṃcaranti ca
astre vimukte bāṇena dahyamāne ca keśave //
tato 'straṃ sumahāvegaṃ jagrāha madhusūdanaḥ
pārjanyaṃ nāma bhagavān yamāntakanibhaṃ raṇe //
Note: k: After 72, N (except Ś1 Ñ1) T1.4 G5 ins.: :k
tato vitimire loke sa cāgniḥ praśamaṃ gataḥ |
dānavā moghasaṃkalpāḥ sarve 'bhuvaṃs tadā bhṛśam |
dānavāstraṃ praśāntaṃ tu parjanyāstre 'bhimantrite
tato devagaṇāḥ sarve praṇedur jahṛṣus tadā //
hate śastre mahārāja daiteyaḥ krodhamūrchitaḥ
bhūyaḥ saṃchādayām āsa keśavaṃ garuḍe sthitam
musalaiḥ paṭṭisaiś caiva śūlam udgarakasmaraiḥ //
tasya tāṃ tarasā sarvāṃ bāṇavṛṣṭiṃ samudyatām
punaḥ saṃvārayām āsa keśavaḥ śatrusūdanaḥ //
Note: k: After 75, N (except Ś1 Ñ1) T1.4 G5 ins.: :k
keśavasya tu bāṇena vartamāne mahāhave ||
tasya śārṅgavinirmuktaiḥ śarair aśanisaṃnibhaiḥ |
tilaśas tad rathaṃ cakre sāśvadhvajapatākinam ||
ciccheda kavacaṃ kāyān mukuṭaṃ ca mahāprabham |
kārmukaṃ ca mahātejā hastāc cāpaṃ ca keśavaḥ ||
vivyādha cainam urasi nārācena smayann iva ||
sa marmābhihataḥ saṃkhye pramumohālpacetanaḥ ||
taṃ dṛṣṭvā mūrchitaṃ bāṇaṃ prahāraparipīḍitam |
prāsādavaraśṛṅgastho nārado munipuṃgavaḥ ||
utthāyāpaśyata tadā kakṣāsphoṭanatatparaḥ |
vādayāno nakhāṃś caiva diṣṭyā diṣṭyeti cābravīt ||
aho me saphalaṃ janma jīvitaṃ ca sujīvitam |
dṛṣṭaṃ me yad idaṃ citraṃ dāmodaraparākramam ||
jaya bāṇaṃ mahābāho daiteyaṃ devapūjita |
yad artham avatīrṇo 'si tat karma saphalaṃ kuru ||
evaṃ stutvā tadā devaṃ bāṇaiḥ khaṃ dyotayañ śitaiḥ |
itas tataḥ saṃpatadbhir nārado vyacarad raṇe ||
prāyudhyetāṃ dhvajau tatra tāv anyonyam abhidrutau |
yuddhaṃ cābhūd vāhanayor ubhayor devadaityayoḥ
garuḍasya ca saṃgrāme mayūrasya ca yudhyataḥ //
pakṣatuṇḍaprahārais tau caraṇāgranakhais tathā
anyonyaṃ jaghnatuḥ krodhān mayūrgaruḍāv ubhau //
vainateyas tataḥ kruddho mayūraṃ dīptatejasam
jagrāha śirasi kruddhas tuṇḍenābhyahanat tadā //
dakṣiṇena ca pakṣeṇa nijaghāna mahābalaḥ
padbhyāṃ pārśvābhighātāṃś ca dattvā ghorān anekaśaḥ //
ākṛṣya cainaṃ tarasā vikṛṣya ca mahābalaḥ
niḥsaṃjñaṃ pātayām āsa gaganād iva parvatam //
mayūre pātite tasmin garuḍenātha pakṣiṇā
Note: k: After 81ab, T1.2 G1.3-5 M ins.: :kpapāta tasmāt sahasā vegena mahatā balī |
bāṇaḥ paramasaṃvignaś cintayan kāryam ātmanaḥ //
Note: k: After 81, N (except Ś1 Ñ1) T1.4 G5 ins.: :k
mayātibalamattena na kṛtaṃ suhṛdāṃ vacaḥ |
paśyatāṃ devadaityānāṃ prāpto 'smy āpadam uttamām |
taṃ dīnamanasaṃ jñātvā raṇe bāṇaṃ suviklavam
cintayad bhagavān rudro bāṇarakṣaṇam āturaḥ //
tato nandiṃ mahādevaḥ prāha gambhīrayā girā
nandikeśvara saṃyāhi yato bāṇas tato ratham //
Note: k: After 83, N (except Ś1 Ñ1) T1.4 G5 ins.: :k
rathenānena divyena siṃhayuktena bhāsvatā |
bāṇaṃ saṃyojayāśu tvam alaṃ yuddhāya cānagha |
pramāthagaṇapārśve hi na hi me sthāsyate manaḥ
yāhi prabhavase tāta bāṇaṃ saṃrakṣa gamyatām //
tathety uktvā punar nandī rathena rathināṃ varaḥ
yato bāṇas tato gatvā bāṇam āha śanair idam //
daityemaṃ ratham ātiṣṭha śīghram ehi mahābala
Note: k: K1.2 Ñ2 V1.2 B2 Dn Ds D1.4.6 ins. after 86ab: D2 after 86: :kmayā sārathinā vīra ehi yudhyasva māciram |
Note: k: While T1.2 G1.3-5 ins. after 86ab: :ksa nandinā tathoktaḥ san bāṇaḥ parabalārdanaḥ |
Note: k: On the other hand, ś Bom. Poona eds. G(ed.) ins. after 86ab: :ktato yudhyasva kṛṣṇaṃ vai dānavāntakaraṃ raṇe |
ārūḍhaḥ sa tathety uktvā mahādevasya taṃ ratham //
Note: k: For 86cd, Ś1 subst.: :k
tathety uktvā bhavaratham āruroha sa dānavaḥ |
Note: k: While N (except Ś1) T1.4 G5 ins. after 86: :k
āruḍhasya tu bāṇasya taṃ rathaṃ brahmanirmitam |
Note: k: D2 cont.: :k
śuśubhe rūpam atyartham ādityasyeva cāmbare |
Note: k: While T1.4 G5 cont. after 1430*: :k
rūpam āsīt purā yadvat tripuraṃ vai didhakṣataḥ |
taṃ syandanam adhiṣṭhāya bhavasyāmitatejasaḥ
prāduś cakre tadā raudram astram astravidāṃ varaḥ
dīptaṃ brahmaśiro nāma bāṇaḥ kruddho 'tivīryavān //
pradīpte brahmaśirasi lokaḥ kṣobham upāgamat
lokasaṃrakṣaṇārthaṃ hi tat sṛṣṭaṃ padmayoninā //
tac cakreṇa nihatyāstraṃ prāha kṛṣṇaḥ pratāpavān
loke prakhyātayaśasaṃ bāṇam apratimaṃ raṇe //
katthitāni kva te bāṇa tāni kiṃ na vikatthase
ayam asmi sthito yuddhe yudhyasva puruṣo bhava //
kārtavīryārjuno nāma pūrvam āsīn mahābalaḥ
sahasrabāhū rāmeṇa dvibāhuḥ samare kṛtaḥ //
Note: k: For 91bc, N (except Ñ1 V3 B3 D6) T4 subst.: :k
... pūrvaṃ bāhusahasravān |
mahābalaḥ sa rāmeṇa ... |
tathā tavāpi darpo 'yaṃ bāhūnāṃ vīryasaṃbhavaḥ
cakraṃ te darpaśamanaṃ karoti raṇamūrdhani //
darpasaṃjananān yāvan nāśayiṣyāmi te bhujān
Note: k: For 93ab, K1.3.4 V1.2 B1.2 Ds D1-6 T4 subst.: :kyāvat te darpaśamanaṃ karomy adya svabāhunā |
tiṣṭhedānīṃ na me 'dya tvaṃ mokṣyase raṇamūrdhani //
Note: k: After 93, N (except Ś1 Ñ1) T1.4 G5 ins.: :k
atha tad durlabhaṃ dṛṣṭvā yuddhaṃ paramadāruṇam |
tathā devāsurasamaṃ harṣān nṛtyati nāradaḥ ||
nirjitāś ca gaṇāḥ sarve pradyumnena mahātmanā |
nikṣiptavādā yudhyasva devadevaṃ gatāḥ punaḥ |
tataś cakraṃ sahasrāraṃ nadan megha ivoṣṇage
jagrāha puruṣavyāghro bāṇabāhupraśāntaye //
jyotiṣmataḥ pataṃgasya śaśinaś caiva yat tathā
Note: k: For 95ab, K Ñ2.3 V B D T1 (second time).4 G4.5 (last two second time) subst.: :ktejo yaj jyotiṣāṃ caiva tejo vajrāśanes tathā |
prājāpatyaṃ ca yat tejas tac cakre paryavasthitam //
Note: k: After 95, N 9except Ś1 Ñ1 V2) T1.4 G4.5 ins.: :k
tretāgneś caiva yat tejo yac cāgner brahmacāriṇaḥ |
ṛṣīṇāṃ ca tapo jñānaṃ tac cakre paryavasthitam ||
pativratānāṃ yat tejaḥ prāṇaṃ ca mṛgapakṣiṇām |
yac ca cakradhareṣv asti tac cakre saṃniveśitam ||
nāgarākṣasayakṣāṇāṃ gandharvāpsarasām api |
trailokyasya ca yat tejaḥ sarvaṃ cakre vyavasthitam |
Note: k: T1 G5 cont.: T2 G1.3 M ins. after 95: :k
yac ca tejas tathā śaṃbhor yamasya varuṇasya ca |
tejasā tena saṃyuktaṃ bhāsvatā prajvalabhṛśam
vapuṣā teja ādatte bāṇasya pramukhe sthitam //
Note: k: K B2.3 Dn D1-5 T4 ins. after 96: Ñ2.3 V B1 Ds D6 T1 G5 after 97ab: :k
jñātvātitejasaṃ cakraṃ kṛṣṇenābhyudyataṃ raṇe |
aprameyaṃ hy avihitaṃ rudrāṇīm abravīc chivaḥ ||
ajeyam etat trailokye cakraṃ kṛṣṇena dhāryate |
bāṇaṃ trāyasva devi tvaṃ yāvac cakraṃ na muñcati ||
tatas tryakṣavacaḥ śrutvā devī lambām athābravīt |
gachaihi lambe tvaṃ śīghraṃ bāṇasaṃrakṣaṇaṃ prati ||
tato yogaṃ samādhāya adṛśyā himavatsutā |
kṛṣṇasyaikasya tad rūpaṃ darśayanty āgatāntikam |
cakrodyatakaraṃ dṛṣṭvā bhagavantaṃ raṇājire
pramukhe vāsudevasya digvāsāḥ koṭavī sthitā //
Note: k: After 97, N (except Ś1 Ñ1) T1.4 G5 ins.: :k
tāṃ dṛṣṭvātha punaḥ prāptāṃ devīṃ rudrasya saṃgatām |
lambādvitīyāṃ tiṣṭhantīṃ kṛṣṇo vacanam abravīt |
antarghānam upāgamya tyaktvā sā vāsasī punaḥ
paritrāṇāya bāṇasya vijayādhiṣṭhitā tataḥ
bhūyaḥ sāmarṣatāmrākṣī vivastrāvasthitā raṇe //
bāṇasaṃrakṣaṇaparā vākyam etad uvāca ha
Note: k: After 99a, N (except Ś1 Ñ1) T1.4 G5 ins.: :khanmi bāṇaṃ na saṃśayaḥ |
evam uktā tu bāṇena |
Note: k: Ñ2 cont.: :kbāṇasaṃrakṣaṇārthinī |
girā madhurayā devī |
Note: k: After 99ab, N (except Ś1) T1.2.4 G1.3-5 ins.: :kjāne tvāṃ sarvabhūtānāṃ sraṣṭāraṃ puruṣottamam |
mahābhāgaṃ mahādevam anantaṃ nīlam avyayam |
padmanābhaṃ hṛṣīkeśa lokānām ādisaṃbhavam |
Note: k: T2 G1.3-5 cont.: M1-3 ins. after 99ab: :kdevadeva jagannātha viṣṇo jiṣṇo jagatpate |
nārhase deva hantuṃ vai bāṇam apratimaṃ raṇe //
Note: k: After 99, N (except Ś1 Ñ1) T1.4 G5 ins.: :k
prayaccha hy abhayaṃ bāṇe jīvaputrītvam eva ca ||
mayā dattavaro hy eṣa bhūyaś ca parirakṣyate |
na me mithyā samudyogaṃ kartum arhasi mādhava ||
evam ukte tu vacane kṛṣṇaḥ parapuraṃjayaḥ |
kruddhaḥ prabhāṣate vākyaṃ śṛṇu satyaṃ tu bhāminī ||
bāṇo bāhusahasreṇa nardate darpam āśritaḥ |
eteṣāṃ chedanaṃ tv adya kartavyaṃ nātra saṃśayaḥ ||
dvibāhunā ca bāṇena jīvaputrī bhaviṣyasi |
saṃtyajya cāsuraṃ darpaṃ na ca māṃ saṃśrayiṣyati ||
evam ukte tu vacane kṛṣṇenākliṣṭakarmaṇā |
provāca devī bāṇo 'yaṃ devadevo bhaved iti ||
atha tāṃ kārttikeyasya mātaraṃ so 'bhibhāṣya vai |
Note: k: While T2 G1.3.4 M ins. after 99: T1 G5 after line 4 of 1145*: :k
dhig dhig ity abravīt tāṃ tu duṣṭe dhvaṃseti keśavaḥ |
tataḥ kruddho mahābāhuḥ kṛṣṇaḥ praharatāṃ varaḥ
provāca bāṇaṃ samare bhrāmayaṃś cakram uttamam //
Note: k: For 100, Ś1 subst.: :k
tataḥ provāca vacanaṃ bāṇaṃ kaṃsārisūdanaḥ |
yudhyatāṃ yudhyatāṃ saṃkhye bhavatāṃ koṭavī sthitā
aśaktānām iva raṇe dhigbāṇa tava pauruṣam //
evam uktvā tataḥ kṛṣṇas tac cakraṃ paramāstravit
nimīlitākṣo vyasṛjad bāṇaṃ prati mahābalaḥ //
Note: k: After 102, N (except Ś1 Ñ1) T1.4 G5 ins.: :k
kṣepaṇād yasya muhyanti lokāḥ sasthāṇujaṅgamāḥ |
kravyādāni ca bhūtāni tṛptiṃ yānti mahāmṛdhe ||
tamapratimakarmāṇaṃ samānaṃ sūryavarcasā |
cakram udyamya samare kopadīpto gadādharaḥ ||
sa muṣṇan dānavaṃ tejaḥ samare svena tejasā |
ciccheda bāhūṃś cakreṇa śrīdharaḥ paramaujasā |
alātacakravat tūrṇaṃ bhramamāṇaṃ raṇājire
Note: k: After 103ab, Dn Ds ins.: :kkṣiptaṃ tu vāsudevena bāṇasya raṇamūrdhani |
Note: k: Ds cont.: Ñ2 V2.3 B Ds ins. after 103ab: :kbāṇasya rathamārge ca dvitīya iva bhāskaraḥ |
viṣṇor astraṃ sunābhaṃ vai śaighryayogān na dṛśyate //
tasya bāhusahasrasya paryāyeṇa punaḥ punaḥ
bāṇasya chedanaṃ cakre tac cakraṃ raṇamūrdhani //
Note: k: After 104, N (except Ś1 Ñ1) T1.4 G5 ins.: :k
kṛtvā dvibāhuṃ taṃ bāṇaṃ chinnaśākham iva drumam |
punaḥ karāgraṃ kṛṣṇasya cakraṃ prāptaṃ sudarśanam ||
kṛtakṛte tu saṃprāpte cakre daitye vipātite |
śarīreṇa prasravatā rudhiraughapariplutaḥ
abhavat parvatākāraś chinnabāhur mahāsuraḥ //
Note: k: T1 G3-5 M ins. after 105: T2 after 103ab: G1 after 104: :k
chinnaśākho yathā vṛkṣaś chinnapakṣo yathā khagaḥ ||
chittvā bāhusahasraṃ tu bāṇasya ca sudarśanam |
jagāma devadevasya pārśvaṃ ripunighātinaḥ ||
provāca vadatāṃ śreṣṭhaṃ cakro medaḥsamākulaḥ |
ājñāpaya jagannātha śiraś chettuṃ durātmanaḥ ||
tataḥ kṛṣṇo hṛṣīkeśas tad ādatte sudarśanam |
Note: k: T1 G5 cont.: K Ñ1.2 V B D T4 ins. after 105: :k
asṛṅmattaś ca vividhān nādān muñcan yathā ghanaḥ ||
tasya nādena mahatā keśavo ripusūdanaḥ |
Note: k: While M cont. after 1452*: :k
vyāvidhya sahasā kṛṣṇaḥ śiraś chettuṃ samārabhat |
cakraṃ bhūyaḥ kṣeptukāmaṃ bāṇanāśārtham acyutam
Note: k: T4 M4 subst. for 106ab: T1 G5 cont. after 1453*: :kcakraṃ bhūyaḥ kṣeptukāmo nāṇanāśārtham acyutaḥ |
tam upetya mahādevaḥ kumārasahito 'bravīt //
Note: k: After 106, T1 G1.4.5 M2-4 ins.: :k
sahomayā haro devo jvareṇa ca samanvitaḥ |
kṛṣṇa kṛṣṇa mahādeva jāne tvāṃ puruṣottamam
Note: k: After 107ab, K2 ins.: :kna hy enaṃ vadhakāmas tvaṃ yad icchet pārvatīhitam ||
hiraṇyakaśipoḥ putrāś catvāro lokaviśrutāḥ |
hrādaḥ prahrādaḥ saṃhrādaḥ anuhrādaś caturthakaḥ ||
prahrādāya varo dattaś caiṣāṃ madhye varāthine |
avyadhyas tava vaṃśo 'stu daityaughāḥ satataṃ mayā ||
iti pratiśrutaṃ pūrvam aparāghaparāya ca |
madhukaiṭabhahantāraṃ devadevaṃ sanātanam //
Note: k: After 107, T1 G1.3-5 M ins.: :k
ādidevam ajaṃ viṣṇuṃ surādhyakṣaṃ purātanam |
lokānāṃ tvaṃ gatir deva tvatprasūtam idaṃ jagat
ajeyas tvaṃ tribhir lokaiḥ sadevāsuramānuṣaiḥ //
Note: k: After 108, Ś1 ins.: :k
tava prasādajo brahmā tathāhaṃ krodhasaṃbhavaḥ |
Note: k: While T1 G1.3-5 M ins. after 108: T2 after 107: :k
vande 'haṃ tvāṃ jagannāthaṃ jagatām īśvaraṃ harim ||
namāmi nirguṇaṃ viṣṇo tvām ādyam akhilaṃ raṇe |
niṣkalaṃ tvāṃ hare devaṃ namāmi puruṣottamam ||
trayīmūrte purāṇātmann namāmi tvāṃ janārdanam |
ajeyo 'si sadā viṣṇo yāce tvāṃ nityam avyayam |
tasmāt saṃhara divyaṃ tvam idaṃ cakraṃ samudyatam
anivāryam asaṃhāryaṃ raṇe śatrubhayaṃkaram //
Note: k: After 109, Ś1 ins.: :k
ye tvā deva prapadyante na te suvyaktimānavāḥ |
bhaye mahati magnānāṃ trātā nityaṃ janārdanaḥ ||
ye cāpy asmatkṛtaṃ stotram abhidhāsyanti bhaktitaḥ |
te sarvabhayanirmuktā bhaviṣyanti nirāmayāḥ ||
nāthas tvaṃ sarvalokānāṃ viśeṣeṇa mama prabho |
kṣamyatāṃ deva bāṇasya matkṛte puruṣottama |
bāṇasyāsyābhayaṃ dattaṃ mayā keśiniṣūdana
tan me na syān mṛṣā vākyam atas tvāṃ kṣamayāmy aham //
Note: k: After 110, K1 Ds1 ins.: :k
na hy enaṃ vadhakāmasya yadīcchet pārvatīhitam |
Note: k: While T1.2 G1.3-4 M ins. after 110: :k
kṣantavyaṃ bhavatā bhūyo yat kṛtaṃ bhaktavatsala |
jīvatāṃ deva bāṇo 'yam etac cakraṃ nivartitam
mānyas tvaṃ deva devānām asurāṇāṃ ca sarvaśaḥ //
Note: k: After 111, T1.2 G1.3-5 M ins.: :k
anyathā chedanaṃ kuryāṃ bāṇasyāsya durātmanaḥ |
yasmān mānyaḥ sadā deva tasmāj jīvatu bāṇakaḥ |
namas te 'stu gamiṣyāmi yat kāryaṃ tan maheśvara
na tāvat kriyate tasmān mām anujñātum arhasi //
evam uktvā mahādevaṃ kṛṣṇas tūrṇaṃ garutmatā
jagāma tatra yatrāste prādyumniḥ sāyakaiś citaḥ //
gate kṛṣṇe tato nandī bāṇam āha śubhaṃ vacaḥ
Note: k: After 114ab, K3.4 Ñ2 V2.3 B Dn Ds D2.3.5.6 ins.: :kgaccha bāṇa kṣatenaiva devadevasya cāgrataḥ ||
tac chrutvā nandivākyaṃ tu bāṇo 'gacchata śīghragaḥ |
Note: k: K3.4 Ñ2 V2.3 B Dn Ds D2.3.5.6 cont.: K1.2 Ñ3 V1 D1.4 T1.4 G5 ins. after 114ab: :kchinnabāhuṃ tato bāṇaṃ dṛṣṭvā nandī pratāpavān |
apavāhya rathenaiva yato devas tato yayau ||
tato nandī punar bāṇaṃ prāg uvācottaraṃ vacaḥ |
bāṇa bāṇa pranṛtyasva śreyas tava bhaviṣyati //
Note: k: For 114cd, Ś1 subst.: :k
kṛttabāṇa mahādaitya tataḥ śreyas tvam āpsyasi |
Note: k: Ñ2 B Dn Ds D6 T1 G3 ins. after 114: V2 cont. after 1466*: :k
eṣa devo mahādevaḥ prasādasumukhas tava |
śoṇitaughaplutair gātrair nandivākyapracoditaḥ
jīvitārthī tato bāṇaḥ pramukhe śaṃkarasya vai //
Note: k: For 115, Ś1 subst.: :k
etac chrutvā vaco nandeḥ śoṇitāṅgaḥ sa dānavaḥ |
pravṛtto jīvitārthāya śaṃkaraṃ pramukhe sthitaḥ |
prānṛtyata bhaye jāte dānavaḥ sa vicetanaḥ
Note: k: After 116ab, D6 T1.2 G1.3-5 M ins.: :kjaya deva jagannātha jayājeya harāvyaya |
jaya bhaktipriya sadā jaya bhūtagaṇārcitaḥ ||
jaya bhasmapradigdhāṅga jaya nagnavidāṃ mukha |
umāpate viśvapate jayājeyāvyaya prabho ||
evamādi tadā bāṇo vilapan bhavatuṣṭaye |
avasthāṃ kṛpaṇāṃ prāpto bhayaviklavalocanaḥ //
Note: k: After 116, K1.2 D4 ins.: :k
tataḥ pranṛttaṃ bāṇaṃ ca cakram apratimaṃ raṇe |
bāṇaṃ dvibāhuṃ kṛtvā tu svām eva prakṛtiṃ gatam |
Note: k: K1.2 D4 cont.: K3.4 Dn D1-3.5 ins. after 116ab: Ñ2.3 V B Ds T1.4 G3.5 after 116: :k
taṃ dṛṣṭvā ca pranṛtyantaṃ bhayodvignaṃ punaḥ punaḥ |
nandivākyaprajavitaṃ bhaktānugrahakṛd bhavaḥ |
karuṇāvaśam āpanno mahādevo 'bravīd vacaḥ |
Note: k: While T1.2 G1.3-5 M1.3.4 ins. after 116: M2 after the first occurrence of 116cd: :k
prānṛtyad bahuśo rājan yathā prīto bhaved bhava |
Note: k: T2 G1.3.4 M cont.: T1 G5 ins. after line 2 of 1472*: :k
tataḥ prīto 'bhavad rājan bāṇasyāsya sa līlayā |
varaṃ vṛṇīṣva bāṇa tvaṃ yat te manasi vartate
prasādasumukho 'haṃ te varakālo 'yam āgataḥ //
Note: k: For 117, K4 subst.: :k
yat prārthyase varaṃ bāṇa cirāya manasepsitam |
tat te 'haṃ tvāṃ pradāsyāmi tridaśair api durlabham |
Note: k: K4 cont.: :k
rudravākyaṃ tataḥ śrutvā bāṇo manasi harṣitaḥ |
varān manasi saṃdhārya pravaktum upacakrame |
ajaraś cāmaraś caiva bhaveyaṃ satataṃ vibho
eṣa me prathamo deva varo 'stu yadi manyase //
tulyo 'si daivatair bāṇa na mṛtyus tava vidyate
anyaṃ varaṃ vṛṇīṣvādya anugrāhyo 'si me sadā //
yathāhaṃ śoṇitādigdho bhṛśārto vraṇapīḍitaḥ
bhaktānāṃ nṛtyatām evaṃ putrajanma bheved bhava //
nirāhārāḥ kṣamāyuktāḥ satyārjavaparāyaṇāḥ
madbhaktā ye hi nṛtyanti teṣām evaṃ bhaviṣyati //
Note: k: After 121, Ñ2 repeats 119cd and G3 repeats 120. K V B D T1.4 G5 ins. after 121: Ñ2 after the repetition of 119cd: :k
tṛtīyaṃ tvam atho bāṇa varaṃ vara manogatam |
tad vidhāsyāmi te putra saphalo 'stu bhavān iha |
cakrapāṭanajā ghorā rujā tīvrā hi yā mama
vareṇa sā tṛtīyena śāntiṃ gacchatu me bhava //
evaṃ bhavatu bhadraṃ te na rujā prabhaviṣyati
akṣataṃ tava gātraṃ ca svasthāvasthaṃ bhaviṣyati //
Note: k: For 123, Ś1 Ñ2 V3 B3 T4 subst.: :k
Note: k: Ds T1 G5 ins. after 122: :k
cakrapāṭanajā ghorā rujā te surasattama |
na bhaviṣyati gātreṣu balavāṃś ca bhaviṣyasi |
caturthaṃ te varaṃ dadmi vṛṇīṣvāsura kāṅkṣitaṃ
na te 'haṃ vimukhas tāta prasādasumukho hy aham //
pramāthagaṇavaṃśasya prathamaḥ syām ahaṃ vibho
mahākāla iti khyātaḥ khyātiṃ gaccheyam īśvara //
Note: k: After 125, N (except Ś1 Ñ1) T1.4 G5 M4 ins.: :k
evaṃ bhaviṣyatīty āha devo bāṇaṃ mahādyutiḥ |
divyarūpo 'kṣato gātrair nīrujas tvaṃ mamāśrayāt ||
mamātisargād bāṇa tvaṃ bhava caivākutobyahaḥ |
bhūyo 'pi te varaṃ dadmi prakhyātabalapauruṣa
Note: k: For 126ab, Ś1 subst.: :kevaṃ bhaviṣyaty avaśyaṃ yaṃ varaṃ tvam ihecchasi |
Note: k: corr. for 116ab :ktaṃ taṃ vṛṇīṣva bhadraṃ te yad icchasi mahāsura //
vairūpyam aṅgajaṃ kiṃ cin mā bhūn me devasattama
dvibāhutve 'pi me deho na virūpo bhaved bhava //
Note: k: N (except Ñ1 Dn1) T1.4 Cal. ed. ins. after 127: G5 after 128ab: :k
bhavitā sarvam etat te yathecchasi mahāsura |
bhaktas tvaṃ me na cādeyaṃ bhaktānāṃ vidyate mama |
tato 'bravīn mahādevo bāṇaṃ sthitam athāntike
evaṃ bhaviṣyate bāṇa yat tvayā samudāhṛtam //
Note: k: T2 G1.3.4 M4 ins. after the repetition of 128ab: M1-3 after 128: :k
tyaja mūḍhāṃ matiṃ bāṇa mā mohavaśago bhava |
etāvad uktvā bhagavāṃs trinetro gaṇasaṃvṛtaḥ
paśyatāṃ sarvabhūtānāṃ tatraivāntar adhīyata //
Note: h: HV (CE), adhyāya 113, transliterated from the critical ed. (P. L. Vaidya, Poona 1969) by Arlo Griffiths (Leiden/Groningen); proof-read by Arlo Griffiths. This is the version of April 5, 2004 :h
tato dṛṣṭvaiva garuḍam aniruddhaśarīragāḥ
Note: k: D2 om. the ref. N T4 ins. and T2 G1.4 repeat after the ref.: T1.2 G1.3-5 M (T2 G1.4 for the first time) ins. after 112.129: :kevaṃ varān bahūṃl labdhvā bāṇaḥ prītimān abhavat |
Note: k: K1.2 Ñ2.3 V2.3 B Dn Ds D1.4.5 cont.: :kjagāma saha rudreṇa mahākālatvam āgataḥ |
Note: k: K1.2 Ñ2.3 V2.3 B Dn Ds D1.4.5 cont.: K3.4 Ñ1 V1 D2.3.6 T2.4 G1.4 cont. after 1483*: T1 G3.5 M1-3 G(ed.) ins. after the ref.: :kvāsudevo 'pi bahudhā nāradaṃ paryapṛcchata |
kvāniruddhas tu bhagavān saṃyato nāgabandhanaiḥ |
śrotum icchāmi tattvena snehaklinnaṃ hi me manaḥ ||
aniruddhe hṛte vīre kṣubhitā dvārakā purī |
śīghraṃ taṃ mokṣayiṣyāmi yad arthaṃ vayam āgatāḥ ||
adya taṃ naṣṭaśatruṃ vai draṣṭum icchāmahe vayam |
sa pradeśas tu bhagavan viditas tava suvrata ||
evam uktas tu kṛṣṇena nāradaḥ pratyabhāṣata |
kanyāpure kumāro 'sau baddho nāgaiś ca mādhava ||
etasminn antare śīghraṃ citralekhā hy upasthitā |
bāṇasyottamasattvasya daityendrasya mahātmanaḥ |
idam antaḥpuraṃ deva praviśasva yathāsukham ||
tataḥ praviṣṭās te sarve aniruddhasya mokṣaṇe |
balaḥ suparṇaḥ kṛṣṇaś ca pradyumno nāradas tathā |
Note: k: Ñ2 M4 cont.: :kvāsudevo 'pi sahasā viveśāntaḥpure ripoḥ |
śararūpā mahāsarpā veṣṭayitvā tanuṃ sthitāḥ //
te sarve sahasā dehāt tasya niḥsṛtya bhoginaḥ
kṣitiṃ sarve 'bhyadhāvanta prakṛtyāvasthitāḥ śarāḥ //
dṛṣṭaḥ spṛṣṭaś ca kṛṣṇena so 'niruddho mahātmanā
sthitiḥ prītimanā bhūtvā prāñjalir vākyam abravīt //
devadeva sadā yudhe jetā tvam asi kas tava
śakto vai pramukhe sthātuṃ sākṣād api śatakratuḥ //
āroha garuḍaṃ tūrṇaṃ gacchāma dvārakāṃ purīm
ityuktaḥ so 'dhirūḍhas tu saha dānavakanyayā //
Note: k: After 5, Ś1 ins.: :k
gurubhiḥ samanujñātās tatas te prayayus tadā |
Note: k: While K Ñ2 V2.3 B Dn Ds D3-6 G4.5 ins. a passage given in App. I (No. 38) after 5; Ñ3 D1.2 T1.2 G1.3 ins. it after 3c; V1 after 3; T4 after 3ab; On the other hand, M ins. after 5: :k
citralekhāsamāyukto yā priyā tasya nityaśaḥ |
tatas te dīrgham adhvānaṃ prayayuḥ puruṣarṣabhāḥ
Note: k: After 6, Ś1 ins.: :kcakrāyudho gṛhya tadāniruddhaṃ |
nighnaṃ cakre bāṇam udīrṇacakram |
chittvā tu bāṇasya sa bāhucakraṃ |
cakrāyudho gṛhya tadāniruddham |
puro mahābāṇam udīrṇacakra+ |
+nipātite bāhuviśīrṇagātre |
āruhya garuḍaṃ sarve jitvā bāṇaṃ mahāsuram //
tato 'mbaratalasthās te vāruṇīṃ diśam āśritāḥ
Note: k: After 7ab, N (except Ś1 Ñ1) T1.2.4 G1.3-5 ins.: :kapaśyanta mahātmāno gāvo divyapayaḥpradāḥ |
velāvanavicāriṇyo nānāvarṇāḥ sahasraśaḥ //
Note: k: After 7, N (except Ś1 Ñ1 D3) T1.2.4 G1.3-5 ins.: :k
abhijñāya tadā rūpaṃ kumbhāṇḍavacanaśravāt |
kṛṣṇaḥ praharatāṃ śreṣṭhas tattvato 'rthaviśāradaḥ |
niśamya bāṇagāvas tu tāsu cakre manas tadā
āsthito garuḍaṃ devaḥ sarvalokādir avyayaḥ //
Note: k: After 8, N (except Ś1 Ñ1) T1.2.4 G1.3-5 ins.: :k
garuḍa prayāhi tatra tvaṃ yatra bāṇasya godhanam |
Note: k: Pāda a unmetrical :k
yāsāṃ pītvā kila kṣīram amṛtatvam avāpnuyāt |
āha māṃ satyabhāmā ca bāṇagāvo mamānaya
yāsāṃ pītvā kila kṣīraṃ na jīryanti mahāsurāḥ //
Note: k: Ñ2 V3 B2.3 Dn Ds D3.5.6 T2 ins. after 9: Ñ2 (error for other siglum?) after 9ab: :k
vijarāś ca jarāṃ tyaktvā bhavanti kila jantavaḥ |
tā mamānaya bhadraṃ te yadi kāryaṃ na lupyate
atha kāryanirodhaḥ syān naiva tāsu manaḥ kṛthāḥ //
Note: k: After 10, K Ñ2 V B D T4 ins.: :k
iti mām abravīt satyā tāś caitā viditā mama |
dṛśyante gāva etās tā māṃ dṛṣṭvā varuṇālayam
viśanti sahitāḥ sarvāḥ kāryam atra vidhīyatām //
tathety uktvā tu garuḍaḥ pakṣavātena sāgaram
so 'vagāḍho hi sahasā varuṇālayam antikāt //
Note: k: After 12, K Ñ2.3 B D T4 ins.: :k
dṛṣṭvā javena garuḍaṃ prāptaṃ vai varuṇālayam |
vāruṇāś ca gaṇāḥ sarve vibhrāntāḥ prācalaṃs tadā |
tatas tu vāruṇaṃ sainyam abhiyātaṃ sudāruṇam
pramukhe vāsudevasya nānāpraharaṇodyatam //
Note: k: K Ñ1.3 V B2.3 Dn Ds D1-5 T1.4 ins. after 13: B1 D6 cont. after 1497*: :k
tad yuddham abhavad ghoraṃ vāruṇaiḥ pannagāriṇā |
Note: k: While, B1 D6 ins. after 13: :k
tatas tu tasya pramukhe vāsudevasya dhīmataḥ |
teṣām āpatatāṃ saṃkhye vāruṇānāṃ sahasraśaḥ
Note: k: T1.2 G1.5 M ins. after 14ab: G4 cont. after 1499*: :kdehā vidyotayanti sma kṛtsnaṃ vai varuṇālayam |
cakreṇa bhagavāñ śauriś cakāra kadanaṃ mahat |
Note: k: T1 G5 M4 cont.: K Ñ V B D T4 G4 ins. after 14ab: :kbhagnaṃ balam anādhṛṣyaṃ keśavena mahātmanā |
te bhagnāḥ sahasā yānti tam eva varuṇālayam //
ṣaṣṭiṃ rathasahasrāṇi ṣaṣṭiṃ rathaśatāni ca
varuṇena prayuktāni dīptaśastrāṇi saṃyuge //
Note: k: After 15, T1.2 G1.3.5 M ins.: :k
tāny ayudhyanta kṛṣṇena pradyumnena balena ca |
tāni sarvāṇi sahasā nijaghāna raṇe hariḥ |
tad balaṃ kṛṣṇabāṇaughair dahyamānaṃ samantataḥ
bhagnaṃ varuṇam āśritya naiva sthānam avindata //
Note: k: K1.2 Ñ2.3 V2.3 B1.3 Dn Ds D4.6 T1 G4.5 ins. after 16: K3.4 V1 B2 D1-3.5 T4 after 15: :k
tad balaṃ balibhiḥ śūrair baladevajanārdanaiḥ |
pradyumenāniruddhena garuḍena ca sarvaśaḥ |
śaraughair vividhais tīkṣṇair vadhyamānaṃ samantataḥ ||
tato bhagnaṃ balaṃ dṛṣṭvā kṛṣṇenākliṣṭakarmaṇā |
varuṇas tv atha saṃkruddho niryayau yatra keśavaḥ |
ṛṣibhir devagandharvais tathaivāpsarasāṃ gaṇaiḥ
saṃstūyamāno bahudhā varuṇaḥ paryavasthitaḥ //
chatreṇa dhriyamāṇena pāṇḍureṇa vapuṣmatā
salilasrāviṇā śreṣṭhaṃ cāpam udyamya viṣṭhitaḥ //
apāṃ patir abhikruddhaḥ putrapautrabalānvitaḥ
āhvayann iva yuddhe sa visphāritamahādhanuḥ //
sa tu pradhmāpayañ śaṅkhaṃ varuṇaḥ samadhāvata
hariṃ hara iva krodhād bāṇajālaiḥ samāvṛṇot //
tataḥ pradhmāya jalajaṃ pāñcajanyaṃ mahābalaḥ
bāṇavarṣākulāḥ sarvā diśaś cakre janārdanaḥ //
tataḥ śaraughair bahudhā varuṇaḥ pīḍito raṇe
smayann iva tadā kṛṣṇaṃ varuṇaḥ pratyayudhyata //
tato 'straṃ vaiṣṇavaṃ ghoram abhimantryāhave sthitaḥ
vāsudevo 'bravīd vākyaṃ pramukhe tasya saṃsthitaḥ //
idam astraṃ mahāghoraṃ vaiṣṇavaṃ śatrumardanam
mayodyataṃ vadhārthaṃ te tiṣṭhedānīṃ sthiro bhava //
tatas tad varuṇo devo hy astraṃ vaiṣṇavam udyatam
vāruṇāstreṇa saṃyojya nanāda sa mahābalaḥ //
tasyāstravitatā hy āpo varuṇāsyābhiniḥsṛtāḥ
vaiṣṇavāstrasya śamane vartante samitiṃjaya //
Note: k: After 26, K Ñ2.3 V B D T4 ins.: :k
āpas tu vāruṇās tatra kṣiptāḥ kṣiptā jvalanti vai |
Note: k: While T1.2 G1.3-5 ins. after 26: :k
tataś cakraṃ samādāya jvālāmālāsamākulam |
moktukāmo jagannātho vāruṇe pratyadṛśyata ||
tataḥ prajvalitāḥ sarve vāruṇāś cakratejasā |
dahyante vāruṇāḥ sarve tato 'stre jvalite punaḥ
vaiṣṇave tu mahāvīrye diśo bhītāḥ pradudruvuḥ //
tāṃs tu prajvalato dṛṣṭvā varuṇo vākyam abravīt
smara tāṃ prakṛtiṃ pūrvām avyaktāṃ vyaktalakṣaṇāṃ
tamo jahi mahābhāga rajasā muhyase katham //
sattvastho nityam āsīt tvaṃ yogīśvara mahāmate
pañcabhūtāśrayān doṣān ahaṃkāraṃ ca saṃtyaja //
yeyaṃ te vaiṣṇavī mūrtis tasyā jyeṣṭho hy ahaṃ tava
jyeṣṭhabhāvena mānyas te kiṃ māṃ dagdhum icchasi //
nāgnir vikramate hy agnau tyaja kopaṃ yudhāṃ vara
tvayi na prabhaviṣyanti jagataḥ prabhavo hy asi //
pūrvaṃ hi yā tvayā sṛṣṭā prakṛtir vikṛtātmikā
dharmiṇī bījabhāvena pūrvadharmasamāśritā //
āgneyaṃ caiva saumyaṃ ca prakṛtyaivedam āditaḥ
tvayā sṛṣṭaṃ jagad idaṃ sa kathaṃ manyase mayi //
ajeyaḥ śāśvato nityaṃ svayaṃbhūr bhūtabhāvanaḥ
akṣayaś cāvyayaś caiva bhavān eva mahādyute //
rakṣa māṃ rakṣaṇīyo 'haṃ tvayānagha namo 'stu te
ādikartāsi lokasya tvayaiva bahulīkṛtam //
kiṃ krīḍasi mahādeva bālaḥ krīḍanakair iva
na hy ahaṃ prakṛtidveṣī nāhaṃ prakṛtidūṣakaḥ //
prakṛtir yā vikāreṣu vartate puruṣottama
tasyā vikāraśamane vartase tvaṃ yathāvidhi //
vikāro 'si vikārāṇāṃ vikārāyatane 'nagha
tān adharmavido mandān bhavān vikurute sadā //
iyaṃ hi prakṛtir doṣais tamasā yujyate sadā
rajasā vāpi saṃduṣṭā tato mohaḥ pravartate //
parāvarajñaḥ sarvajña aiśvaryavidhim āsthitaḥ
kiṃ mohayasi naḥ sarvān prajāpatir iva svayam //
Note: k: After 40, K Ñ2.3 V B D T4 ins.: :k
varuṇenaivam uktas tu kṛṣṇo lokaparāyaṇaḥ |
bhāvajñaḥ sarvavidvīras tataḥ prītimanā hy abhūt |
ityevamuktaḥ prahasan kṛṣṇo vacanam abravīt
gāḥ saṃprayaccha me deva śāntyarthaṃ bhīmavikrama //
Note: k: After 41, K Ñ2.3 V B D T4 ins.: :k
ityevam uktaḥ kṛṣṇena vākyaṃ vākyaviśāradaḥ |
varuṇo hy abravīd būyaḥ śṛṇu me madhusūdana |
bāṇena sārdhaṃ samayo mayā deva purā kṛtaḥ
kathaṃ ca samayaṃ kṛtvā kuryāṃ viphalam anyathā //
Note: k: After 42, K Ñ2.3 V B D t1.4 G5 ins.: :k
tvam eva deva sarvasya yathā samayabhedakaḥ |
cāritraṃ duṣyate tāta na ca sadbhiḥ praśasyate ||
dharmabhāg īśvaro nityaṃ varjate madhusūdana |
na ca lokān avāpnoti pāpaḥ samayabhedakaḥ ||
prasīda dharmalopaś ca mā bhūn me madhusūdana |
na māṃ samayabhedena yoktum arhasi mādhava |
jīvan nāhaṃ pradāsyāmi gāvo vai vṛṣabhekṣaṇa
hatvā māṃ naya gāvas tvam eṣa me samayaḥ kṛtaḥ //
Note: k: After 43, Ñ1 ins. an additional colophon mentioning adhy. name bāṇayuddham. :k
Note: k: While K Ñ2.3 V B D ins. after 43: :k
etac ca me samākhyātaṃ samayaṃ madhusūdana |
satyam eva mahābāho na mithyā tu sureśvara ||
yady evāham anugrāhyo rakṣa māṃ madhusūdana |
atha vā goṣu nirbandho hatvā naya mahābhuja |
Note: k: While T2 (Marg.) ins. after 43: :k
saṃbhāvayāmi dharmajñaṃ matto 'bhīṣṭo bhavān asi |
satyaṃ prabhāṣase yat tvaṃ tasmān madbhāvabhāvitaḥ ||
iti vijñāpitas tena kṛṣṇaḥ parapuraṃjayaḥ |
bāṇavṛttāntam akhilaṃ śrāvayitvā tu pā.ne ||
bāṇāsuraṃ puraskṛtya dattaṃ kṛṣnāya godhanam |
varuṇena gṛhītvā tu yayau dvāravatīṃ hariḥ |
upāyād dvārakāṃ kṛṣṇaḥ śrīmān garuḍavāhanaḥ |
avasad vṛṣṇibhiḥ sārdhaṃ stūyamānaḥ samāgataiḥ ||
eṣa te bāṇaviṣayaḥ proktas te janamejaya |
pṛcchato bhavato rājan kiṃ bhūyaḥ śrotum icchasi |
varuṇenaivam uktas tu muktvā gā vai mahāyaśāḥ
Note: k: Ñ1 subst. for 44ab: :kevam ukto 'tha bāṇasya gāvo muktvā mahāyaśāḥ |
Note: k: While K Ñ2.3 V B D ins. after 44ab: :kabhedyaṃ samayaṃ matvā nyastavādo gavāṃ prati |
prahasya varuṇaṃ devaṃ mānayām āsa mādhavaḥ
Note: k: For 44cd, K Ñ V B D T1.2 G1.3-5 M4 Bom. Poona eds. subst.: :ksaṃprahasya tato vākyaṃ vyājahārārthakovidaḥ |
Note: k: While M1-3 subst. for 44cd: :kmānayan varuṇaṃ devo gā bāṇasya vyamuñcata |
Note: k: K Ñ2.3 V B D Bom. Poona eds. cont. after 1512*: :ktasmān mukto 'si yady evaṃ bāṇena samayaḥ kṛtaḥ |
prasṛtair madhurair vākyais tattvārtham anubhāṣitaiḥ ||
kathaṃ pāpaṃ kariṣyāmi varuṇa tvayy ahaṃ prabho |
gaccha mukto 'si varuṇa satyasaṃdho 'stu no bhavān |
tvatpriyārthaṃ mayā muktā bāṇagāvo na saṃśayaḥ ||
tatas tūryaninādaiś ca bherīṇāṃ ca mahāsvanaiḥ |
argham ādāya varuṇaḥ keśavaṃ pratyapūjayat ||
keśavo 'rdhaṃ tadā gṛhya varuṇādyadunandanaḥ |
balaṃ pūjayate devaḥ kuśalī ca samāhitaḥ ||
varuṇāyābhayaṃ dattvā vāsudevaḥ pratāpavān |
Note: k: On the other hand, T1.2 G1.3-5 M4 cont. after 1512*: :ktvadarthaṃ dhenavo muktā bāṇasya tu durātmanaḥ |
ity uktvā varuṇaṃ devo gā bāṇasya vimuñcata |
prayayau dvārakāṃ cāpi śakrādyair amarair vṛtaḥ //
Note: k: For 44ef, N (except Ś1) T1.2 G1.3-5 M subst.: :k
dvārakāṃ prasthito devaḥ śacīpatisahāyavān |
tatra devāḥ samarutaḥ sasādhyāḥ samitiṃjaya
Note: k: After 45ab, K Ñ1.3 V B D (except D1) T2 ins.: :kgandharvāpsarasaś caiva kiṃnarāś cāntarikṣagāḥ |
Note: k: While, T1 G1.3-5 M ins. after 45ab: :kṛṣayo nāradamukhā vasiṣṭādyā tapodhanāḥ |
anugacchanti viśveśaṃ sarvabhūtādim avyayam //
ādityā vasavo rudrā aśvinau ca mahābalau
Note: k: After 46ab, K Ñ2.3 V B Dn Ds D2-4.6 ins.: :kvidyādharagaṇāś caiva ye cānye siddhacāraṇāḥ |
āyāntam anugacchanti yaśasā vijayena ca //
Note: k: After 46, K Ñ2.3 V B D ins.: :k
nāradaś ca mahābhāgaḥ prasthito dvārakāṃ prati |
tuṣṭo bāṇajayaṃ dṛṣṭvā varuṇaṃ ca kṛtapriyam ||
kailāsaśikharaprakhyair nīlagrīvadharaiś ca taiḥ |
durād eva tu tāṃ dṛṣṭvā dvārakāṃ dvāramālinīm
pāñcajanyasya nirghoṣaṃ cakre cakragadādharaḥ //
Note: k: After 47, Ś1 K Ñ2.3 V B Dn Ds D2-6 ins.: :k
saṃjñāṃ prayacchate devo dvārakāpuravāsinām |
Note: k: While T1.2 G1.3-5 M ins. after 47: :k
tenādhmāto mahāśaṅkhaḥ pūrayām āsa rodasī |
devānuyātranirghoṣaṃ pāñcajanyasya nisvanam
śrutvā dvāravatī sarvā praharṣam atulaṃ gatā //
Note: k: K Ñ2.3 V B2.3 D ins. after 48: B1 after the first occurrence of 49: :k
pūrṇakumbhaiś ca lājaiś ca bahuvinyastavistaraiḥ |
dvāropaśobhitāṃ kṛtvā sarvāṃ dvāravatīṃ purīm |
suśliṣṭarathyāṃ suśrīkāṃ kṛtaratnopaśobhitāṃ ||
viprāś cārghaṃ samādāya tathaiva kulanaigamāḥ |
jayaśabdaiś ca vividhaiḥ pūjayanti sma mādhavam |
vainateyasamāsīnaṃ nīlāñjanacayopamam
avandanyādavāḥ kṛṣṇaṃ śriyā paramayā yutam //
Note: k: After 49, K Ñ2.3 V B D ins.: :k
trayo 'nupūrvyā varṇāś ca pūjayanti mahābalam |
anantaṃ keśihantāraṃ śreṣṭhipūrvāś ca śreṇayaḥ |
ṛṣibhir devagandharvaiś cāraṇaiś ca samantataḥ
saṃstūyamāno govindo dvārakopari viṣṭhitaḥ //
tadāścaryam apaśyanta dāśārhagaṇasattamāḥ
Note: k: After 51ab, K Ñ2.3 V B D ins.: :kpraharṣam atulaṃ prāptā dṛṣṭvā kṛṣṇaṃ mahābhujam |
bāṇaṃ jitvā mahādevam āyāntaṃ puruṣottamam //
dvārakāvāsināṃ vācaś caranti bahudhā tadā
prāpte kṛṣṇe mahābhāge sātvatānāṃ mahārathe //
Note: k: After 52, K Ñ2.3 V B D T2 ins.: :k
gatvā ca dūram adhvānaṃ suparṇo drutam āgataḥ |
dhanyāḥ smo 'nugṛhītāḥ smo yeṣāṃ no jagataḥ patiḥ
rakṣitā cāpi goptā ca dīrghabāhur janārdanaḥ //
vainateyaṃ samāruhya bāṇaṃ jitvā sudurjayam
prāpto 'yaṃ puṇḍarīkākṣo manāṃsy āhlādayann iva //
evaṃ kathayatām eva dvārakāvāsināṃ tadā
vāsudevagṛhaṃ devā viviśus te mahārathāḥ //
Note: k: After 55, K Ñ2.3 V B Dn D2-6 ins.: :k
avatīrya suparṇāt tu vāsudevo balas tadā |
pradyumnaś cāniruddhaś ca gṛhān praviviśus tadā |
tāni teṣāṃ vimānāni divi saṃcaratāṃ tadā
sthitāny eva pradṛśyante nānārūpāṇi sarvaśaḥ //
siṃharṣabhamṛgair nāgair vājisārasabarhiṇaiḥ
bhāsvanti tāni dṛśyante vimānāni sahasraśaḥ //
Note: k: After 57, K Ñ2.3 V B D ins.: :k
atha kṛṣṇo 'bravīd vākyaṃ kumārāṃs tān sahasraśaḥ |
pradyumnādīn samastāṃs tu ślakṣṇaṃ madhurayā girā |
ete rudrās tathādityā vasavo 'thāśvināv api
sādhyā devās tathānye cāpy avandaṃs tān yathākramam //
Note: k: After 58, K Ñ2.3 V B D ins.: :k
sahasrākṣaṃ mahābhāgaṃ dānavānāṃ bhayaṃkaram |
vandadhvaṃ sahitāḥ śakraṃ sagaṇaṃ nāgavāhanam ||
saptarṣayo mahābhāgā matpriyārtham ihāgatāḥ |
ṛṣayaś ca mahātmāno vandadhvaṃ ca yathāsukham ||
ete cakradharāś caiva etān vadanta sarvaśaḥ |
sāgarāś ca hradāś caiva matpriyārtham ihāgatāḥ |
diśaś ca vidiśaś caiva vandadhvaṃ ca yathākramam ||
vāsukipramukhāś caiva nāgā vai sumahābalāḥ |
gāvaś ca matpriyārthaṃ vai vandadhvaṃ ca yathākramam ||
jyotīṃṣi saha nakṣatrair yakṣarākṣasakiṃnaraiḥ |
āgatā matpriyārthaṃ vai vandadhvaṃ ca yathākramam ||
vāsudevavacaḥ śrutvā kumārāḥ praṇatāḥ sthitāḥ |
yathākrameṇa sarveṣāṃ devatānāṃ mahātmanām ||
sarvān divaukaso dṛṣṭvā paurā vismayam āgatāḥ |
pūjārtham atha saṃbhārān pragṛhya drutam āgatāḥ |
aho vai mahad āścaryaṃ vāsudevasya saṃśrayāt
prāpyate yad ihāsmābhir iti vācaś caranti hi //
tataś candanacūrṇaiś ca puṣpavarṣaiś ca sarvaśaḥ
kiranti paurāḥ sarvāṃs tān pūjayanto divaukasaḥ //
lājaiḥ praṇāmair dhūpaiś ca vāgbuddhiniyatās tathā
dvārakāvāsinaḥ sarve pūjayanti divaukasaḥ //
āhukaṃ vasudevaṃ ca sāmbaṃ ca yadunandanam
sātyakiṃ colmukaṃ caiva vipṛthuṃ ca mahābalam //
Note: k: After 62, K Ñ2.3 V B D ins.: :k
akrūraṃ ca mahābhāgaṃ tathā niṣadham eva ca |
etān pariṣvajya tadā mūrdhni cāghrāya vīryavān
Note: k: K V1 B2 Dn Ds D1.3-5 ins. after 63ab: V2 B1 T2 G4.5 after 63: D2 after the repetition of 64ab: :katha śakro mahābhāgaḥ samakṣaṃ yadumaṇḍale |
stuvantaṃ keśihantāraṃ tatrovācottaraṃ vacaḥ |
andhakaṃ ca śubhākṣaṃ ca tato vacanam abravīt //
vāsavaḥ sātvatān sarvān eṣa vo yadunandanaḥ
yojayitvā raṇe caiva yaśasā pauruṣeṇa ca //
Note: k: After 64, T1.2 G3-5 M1-3 ins.: :k
ramayaty atitejasvī divīva ca divaukasaḥ |
mahādevasya miṣato guhasya ca tathaiva ca
eṣa bāṇaṃ raṇe jitvā dvārakāṃ punar āgatāḥ //
sahasrabāhor bāhūnāṃ kṛtvā kṣayam anuttamam
sthāpayitvā dvibāhutve prāpto 'yaṃ svapurīṃ hariḥ //
yadarthaṃ janma kṛṣṇasya mānuṣeṣu mahātmanaḥ
tad apy avasitaṃ kṛtsnaṃ naṣṭaśokā vayaṃ kṛtāḥ //
pibanto madhumādhvīkaṃ raṃsyāmaḥ prītisaṃyutāḥ
kālo yāsyaty avirataṃ viṣayeṣv eva sajjatām //
bāhūnāṃ saṃśrayāt sarve vayam asya mahātmanaḥ
pranaṣṭaśokā raṃsyāmaḥ sarva evāmarāḥ sukham //
evam uktvā pariṣvajya kṛṣṇaṃ kamalalocanam
Note: k: For 70ab, K Ñ1.2 V B D subst.: :kevaṃ stutvā sahasrākṣaḥ keśavaṃ dānavāntakam |
āpṛcchya taṃ mahābhāgaḥ sarvair devagaṇair vṛtaḥ ||
Note: k: corr. for sarvai :ktataḥ punaḥ pariṣvajya kṛṣṇaṃ lokanamaskṛtam |
Note: k: While T1.2 G1.3-5 M subst. for 70ab: :kity uktvā yādavān sarvān kṛṣṇaṃ saṃpūjya vāsavaḥ |
puraṃdaro divaṃ yātaḥ sarvāmaragaṇair vṛtaḥ
Note: k: T2 G1.3.4 cont. after the addl. colophon: K Ñ2.3 V2.3 B D T1 G5 ins. after 70cd: V1 cont. after *1534: :kṛṣayaś ca mahātmāno jayāśīrbhir mahaujasam |
yathāgataṃ punar yātā yakṣarākṣasakiṃnarāḥ ||
puraṃdare divaṃ yāte padmanābho mahābalaḥ |
apṛcchata mahābhāgaḥ sarvān kuśalam avyayam ||
tataḥ kilakilāśabdaṃ nirvamantaḥ sahasraśaḥ |
gacchanti kaumudīṃ draṣṭuṃ so 'naghaḥ priyayā saha |
dvārakāṃ prāpya kṛṣṇas tu reme yadugaṇair vṛtaḥ //
Note: k: After 70, Ś1 K Ñ2 V B D M4 ins.: :k
vividhān sarvakāmārthāñ śriyā paramayā yutaḥ |
evam eṣo 'vatīirṇo vai pṛthivyāṃ pṛthivīpate
viṣṇur yadukulaśreṣṭho vāsudeveti viśrutaḥ //
etaiś ca kāraṇaiḥ śrīmān vasudevakule prabhuḥ
jāto vṛṣṇiṣu devakyāṃ yan māṃ tvaṃ paripṛcchasi //
nivṛtte nāradapraśne mayoktaṃ te samāsataḥ
uktās te vistarāḥ sarve pūrvaṃ ye janamejaya //
viṣṇos tu māthure kalpe yatra te saṃśayo mahān
vāsudevagatiś caiva sā mayā samudāhṛtā //
āścaryaś caiva nānyo 'sti kṛṣṇaś cāścaryasaṃnidhiḥ
sarveṣv āścaryakalpeṣu nāsty āścaryam avaiṣṇavam //
sa eva dhanyo dhanināṃ dhanyakṛd dhanyabhāvanaḥ
deveṣv api sadaityeṣu nāsti dhanyataro 'cyutāt //
ādityā vasavo rudrā aśvinau marutas tathā
gaganaṃ bhūr diśaś caiva salilaṃ jyotir eva ca //
Note: k: After 77, T1.2 G1.3-5 M2-4 ins.: :k
sarvam etaj jagaddhātā viṣṇur eva na cāparaḥ |
eṣa dhātā vidhātā ca saṃhartā kāla eva ca
satyaṃ dharmas tapaś caiva brahma caiva sanātanam
Note: k: Ś1 Ñ2 B1.2 D2.4.5 ins. after 78cd: Dn Ds after 78: :kanantaś caiva nāgānāṃ rudrāṇāṃ śaṃkaraḥ smṛtaḥ |
jaṅgamājaṅgamaṃ caiva jagannārāyaṇodbhavaṃ |
etasmāc ca jagat sarvaṃ prasūyeta janārdanāt |
jagac ca sarvaṃ deveśas taṃ namas kuru bhārata //
Note: k: Ś1 K Ñ V B D1-5 ins. after 78: X Dn Ds cont. after 1538*: :k
pūjyaś ca satataṃ sarvair devair eṣa sanātanaḥ |
Note: k: While D6 T1.2 G1.3-5 M ins. after 78: :k
pūjyo 'yaṃ devadeveśaḥ pūjyair api savāsavaiḥ |
ijyaś ca devadeveśas taṃ namaskuru bhārata ||
ādikartā ca bhoktā ca bhūtādir bhūtir eva ca |
namaskuru jagannāthaṃ bhūyo bhūyaḥ prabho nṛpa ||
namaskuru sadā viṣṇuṃ yādavaṃ bhūtabhāvanam |
namasyāmo jagannāthaṃ devakīṃ ca hariṃ sadā ||
dhyāhi nityaṃ jagannāthaṃ prayatnaparamo bhava |
śreyas tava sadā viṣṇur vidhāsyati na saṃśayaḥ ||
namas tasmin samādhatsva mano 'nudhyāhi tat param |
upāsyaś ca sadā viṣṇur manasā rājasattama |
namaskuru jagannāthaṃ bhūyo bhūyo jagatpate |
vāsudevaṃ sadā dhyāhi keśavaṃ keśisūdanam ||
nārāyaṇam aṇīyāṃsaṃ dhyāhi yatnena sattamam |
dhyāto hi sarvapāpāni nāśayiṣyaty asaṃśayam |
ityuktaṃ bāṇayuddhaṃ te māhātmyaṃ keśavasya ca
vaṃśapratiṣṭhāṃ atulāṃ śravaṇādeva lapsyase //
ye cedaṃ dhārayiṣyanti bāṇayuddham anuttamam
keśavasya ca māhātmyaṃ nādharmas tān bhajiṣyati //
Note: k: For 80cd, T1.2 G1.3-5 M subst.: :k
teṣāṃ dharmo bhaved rājan nātra kāryā vicāraṇā |
eṣā te vaiṣṇavī caryā mayā kārtsnyena kīrtitā
pṛcchatas tāta yajñe 'smin nivṛtte janamejaya //
āścaryaparvam akhilaṃ yo hīdaṃ dhārayen nṛpa
Note: k: After 82ab, K2 Ñ2.3 V B Dn Ds D2-4.5(marg.).6 G4 M2 ins.: :ksarvapāpavinirmukto viṣṇulokaṃ sa gacchati |
kalpa utthāya yo nityaṃ kīrtayet susamāhitaḥ |
na tasya durlabhaṃ kiṃ cid iha loke paratra ca ||
brāhmaṇaḥ sarvavedī syāt kṣatriyo vijayī bhavet |
vaiśyo dhanasamṛddhaḥ syāc chūdro gacchec ca sadgatim |
nāśubhaṃ prāpnuyāt kiṃcid dīrgham āyur avāpnuyāt //
Note: k: After 82, T2 G1.3.4 ins.: :k
harivaṃśam imaṃ puṇyaṃ yaḥ śṛṇoti mahīpatiḥ |
āyur ārogyam aiśvaryam atulām ṛddhim āpnuyāt |
Note: k: G4 cont.: :k
aputro labhate putram adhano 'pi dhanaṃ vrajet |
ariṣṭaśamanaṃ sarvaṃ prāpnoti śubhasaṃtatim ||
vāsudeve parāṃ bhaktiṃ bhogān apy atulān bhuvi |
avyāhataṃ pratāpaṃ ca yaśo vindeta mānavaḥ ||
harivaṃśam imaṃ śṛṇvan maṇḍalādhipatir bhavet |
ācandratārakaṃ bhūmā+ +vaśeṣām ṛddhim āpnuyāt |
Note: k: G4 cont.: T2 G1.3 cont. after 1543*: :k
ya idaṃ śṛṇuyān nityaṃ viṣṇubhaktād dvijarṣabhāt |
sadā digvijayī bhūyāc caturaṅgabalānvitaḥ ||
vede rāmāyaṇe caiva harivaṃśe ca bhārata |
ādau madhye tathaivānte hariḥ sarvatra gīyate ||
tasmād dhariḥ sadā dhyeyaḥ śaṅkhacakragadādharaḥ |
ādikartā mahībhartā śriyā sārdhaṃ jagatpatiḥ ||
tasya vaṃśam imaṃ puṇyam itihāsaṃ purātanam |
ye narāḥ kīrtayiṣyanti nāsti teṣāṃ parābhavaḥ |
Note: k: T2 G1.3.4 cont.: D6 T1 G5 M ins. after 82: :k
asakṛt paṭha rājendra harivaṃśaṃ maharddhimat |
manas te niścalaṃ bhūyāt prasanno 'stu janārdanaḥ |
iti pārikṣito rājā vaiśaṃpāyanabhāṣitam
śrutavān amalo bhūtvā harivaṃśaṃ dvijarṣabhāḥ //
evaṃ śaunaka saṃkṣepād vistareṇa tathaiva ca
Note: k: For 84ab, T1.2 G1.3-5 M subst.: :ksaṃkṣepād vistareṇāpi tatra sarve tapodhanāḥ |
proktā vai sarvavaṃśās te kiṃ bhūyaḥ kathayāmi te //
Note: k: After 84, T1.2 G1.3-5 M G(ed.) ins.: :k
śaunakādyās tu munayaḥ prītās tuṣṭās tadābhavan |
namaskurvanti deveśaṃ bhaktinamrā munīśvarāḥ |
ādidevaṃ hariṃ viṣṇuṃ namasyanti sma mādhavam |
Note: k: T2 G1.4.5 cont.: :k
taṃ vedaśāstrapariniṣṭhitaśuddhabuddhiṃ |
carmāmbaraṃ suramunīndranutaṃ kavīndram |
kṛṣṇatviṣaṃ kanakapiṅgajaṭākalāpaṃ |
vyāsaṃ namāmi śirasā tilakaṃ dvijānām ||
muniṃ snigdhāmbudābhāsaṃ vedavyāsam akalmaṣam |
vedāvāsaṃ sarasvatyā vāsaṃ vyāsaṃ namāmy aham ||
vande sarasvatīṃ devīṃ bhuvanatrayamātaram |
yat prasādād ṛte snigdhaṃ jihvā na parivartate |
Note: h: HV (CE) chapter 114, transliterated by Peter Bisschop, version of december 22, 2001 :h
janamejayasya ke putrāḥ paṭhyante lomaharṣaṇe
Note: k: T2 G1 ins. after the ref.: :kharivaṃśasya śeṣasya kathāṃ pāpapraṇāśanīm |
kasmin pratiṣṭhito vaṃśaḥ pāṇḍavānāṃ mahātmanām //
Note: k: S1 K N2 V B D ins.: :k
etad icchāmy ahaṃ śrotuṃ paraṃ kautūhalaṃ mama |
tvattaḥ kathayataḥ sarvaṃ vedmy ahaṃ taṃ parisphuṭam |
pārikṣitasya kāśyāyāṃ dvau putrau saṃbabhūvatuḥ
candrāpīḍaś ca nṛpatiḥ sūryāpīḍaś ca mokṣavit //
candrāpīḍasya putrāṇāṃ śatam uttamadhanvinām
janamejaya ity eva kṣatraṃ bhuvi pariśrutam //
teṣāṃ jyeṣṭhas tu rājāsīt pure vāraṇasāhvaye
satyakarṇo mahābāhur yajvā vipuladakṣiṇaḥ //
satyakarṇasya dāyādaḥ śvetakarṇaḥ pratāpavān
aputraḥ sa tu dharmātmā praviveśa tapovanam //
tasmād vanagatād garbhaṃ yādavī pratyapadyata
sucāror duhitā subhrūr mālinī bhrātṛmālini //
sa tv ajanmani garbhasya śvetakarṇaḥ prajeśvaraḥ
anvagacchata taṃ pūrvair mahāprasthānam acyutam //
sā dṛṣṭvā saṃprayātaṃ taṃ mālinī pṛṣṭhato 'nvagāt
pathi sā suṣuve subhrūr vane rājīvalocanam //
tam apāśya ca tatraiva rājānaṃ sānvagacchata
pativratā mahābhāgā draupadīva purā patīn //
sukumāraḥ kumāro 'sau girikuñje ruroda ha
dayārthaṃ tasya meghās tu prādurāsan mahātmanaḥ //
śraviṣṭhāyāś ca putrau dvau paippalādau ca tau dvijau
dṛṣṭvā kṛpānvitau gṛhya taṃ prakṣālayatāṃ jale //
vighṛṣṭe tasya te pārśve khelena rudhirasrave
ajaśyāmau ca pārśvau tāv ubhāv api samāhitau //
Note: k: T1.2 G1.3-5 subst.: :k
ājagamānayo pārśvaṃ pibann apy anayoḥ stanau |
tathaiva ca samārūḍhāv ajapārśvas tato 'bhavat
Note: k: S1 subst.: :kājaśyāmasya te pārśve rūḍhe vai saṃabhūvatuḥ |
Note: k: T1.2 G1.3-5 subst.: :ktaṃ tathaiva ca tiṣṭhantaṃ ajapārśve kumārakam |
tato 'japārśva iti tau cakrāte tasya nāma ha //
sa tu vemakaśālāyāṃ ubhābhyām abhivardhitaḥ //
vemakasya tu bhāryā tam udvahat putrakāraṇāt
Note: k: S1 subst.: :ksevakasya tu tāṃ bhāryām ūhatus tasya kāraṇāt |
vemakyāḥ sa tu putro 'bhūd brāhmaṇau sucivau ca tau //
teṣāṃ putrāś ca pautrāś ca yugapat tulyajīvinaḥ
sa eṣa pauravo vaṃśaḥ pāṇḍavānāṃ pratiṣṭhitaḥ //
śloko 'pi cātra gīto 'yaṃ nāhuṣeṇa yayātinā
jarāsaṃkramaṇe pūrvaṃ tadā prītena dhīmatā //
acandrārkagrahā bhūmir bhaved api na saṃśayaḥ
apauravā na tu mahī bhaviṣyati kadācana //
Note: k: D6 (marg.) ins.: :k
tatas teṣūpaviṣṭeṣu sadasyaiḥ saha śaunakaḥ |
Note: h: HV (CE) chapter 115, transliterated by Peter Bisschop, version of december 26, 2001 :h
ukto 'yaṃ harivaṃśas te parvāṇi nikhilāni ca
yathā puroktāni tathā vyāsaśiṣyeṇa dhīmatā //
tat kathyamānam amṛtam itihāsasamanvitam
prīṇāty asmān amṛtavat sarvapāpapraṇāśanam //
Note: k: K1.2.4 N V B Dn Ds D2-6 ins.: :k
sukhaśravyatayā dhīra mano hlādayatīva naḥ |
janamejayas tu nṛpatiḥ śrutvākhyānam anuttamam
Note: k: 9 syllables in first pāda :ksaute kim akarot paścāt sarpasatrād anantaram //
Note: k: N2 ins.: :k
yad ārabhata pārikṣit tan me kathaya suvrata |
janamejayas tu nṛpatiḥ śrutvākhyānam anuttamam
yad ārabhat tad ākhyāsye sarpasatrād anantaram //
tasmin satre samāpte tu rājā pārikṣitas tadā
yaṣṭuṃ sa vājimedhena saṃbhārān upacakrame //
ṛtvikpurohitācāryān āhūyedam uvāca ha
yakṣye 'haṃ vājimedhena haya utsṛjyatām iti //
tato 'sya vijñāya cikīrṣitaṃ tadā kṛṣṇo mahātmā sahasājagāma
pārikṣitaṃ draṣṭum adīnasattvam dvaipāyanaḥ sarvaparāvarajñaḥ //
pārikṣitas tu nṛpatir dṛṣṭvā tam ṛṣim āgatam
arghyapādyāsanaṃ dattvā pūjayāmāsa śāstrataḥ //
tau copaviṣṭāv abhitaḥ sadasyās tasya śaunaka
Note: k: M2.4 subst.: :ktatas teṣūpaviṣṭeṣu sadasyaiḥ saha śaunaka |
kathā bahuvidhāś citrāś cakrāte vedasaṃhitāḥ //
tataḥ kathānte nṛpatiś codayāmāsa taṃ munim
pitāmahaṃ pāṇḍavānāṃ ātmanaḥ prapitāmaham //
mahābhāratam ākhyānaṃ bahvarthaṃ bahuvistaram
nimeṣamātram iva me sukhaśravyatayā gatam //
vibhūtivistarakathaṃ sarveṣāṃ vai yaśaskaram
tvayā tv abhihitaṃ brahmañ śaṅkhe kṣīram ivāhitam //
nāmṛtenāpi tṛptiḥ syād yathā svargasukhena vā
tathā tṛptiṃ na gacchāmi śrutvemāṃ bhāratīṃ kathām //
anumānya tu sarvajñaṃ pṛcchāmi bhagavann aham
hetuḥ kurūṇāṃ nāśasya rājasūyo mato mama //
duḥsahānāṃ yathā dhvaṃso rājanyānām upaplavaḥ
rājasūyaṃ tathā manye yuddhārtham upakalpitam //
rājasūyo hi somena śrūyate pūrvam āhṛtaḥ
tasyānte sumahadyuddham abhavat tārakāmayam //
āhṛto varuṇenāpi tasyānte sumahākratoḥ
devāsuram abhūd yuddhaṃ sarvabhūtakṣayāvaham //
hariścandras tu rājarṣir etaṃ kratum avāptavān
tatrāpy āḍībakam abhūd yuddhaṃ kṣatravināśanam //
tato 'nantaram āryeṇa pāṇḍavenāpi dustaraḥ
mahābhāratasaṃhāraḥ saṃbhṛto 'gnir iva kratuḥ //
tasya mūlaṃ hi yuddhasya lokakṣayakarasya ha
rājasūyo mahāyajñaḥ kimarthaṃ na nivāritaḥ //
rājasūye hy asaṃhārye yajñāṅgaiś ca durāsadaiḥ
mithyāpraṇīte yajñāṅge prajānāṃ saṃkṣayo dhruvaḥ //
bhavān api ca sarveṣāṃ pūrveṣāṃ naḥ pitāmahaḥ
atītānāgatajñaś ca nāthaś cādikaraś ca naḥ //
te kathaṃ bhagavan netrā buddhimantaś cyutā nayāt
anāthā hy aparādhyante kunetāraś ca mānavāḥ //
kālenādya parītās te tava vatsa pitāmahāḥ
na māṃ bhaviṣyaṃ papracchur na cāpṛṣṭo bravīmy aham //
niḥsāmarthyaṃ ca paśyāmi bhaviṣyasya nivedanam
parihartuṃ na śakṣyāmi kālaniṣṭhāṃ hi tāṃ gatim //
tvayā tv idam ahaṃ pṛṣṭo vakṣyāmy āgantu bhāvi yat
ataś ca balavān kālaḥ śrutvāpi na kariṣyasi //
na saṃrambhān na cārambhān na vai sthāsyasi pauruṣe
lekhā hi kālalikhitā veleva duratikramāḥ //
aśvamedhaḥ kratuḥ śreṣṭhaḥ kṣatriyāṇāṃ pariśrutaḥ
tena bhāvena te yajñaṃ vāsavo dharṣayiṣyati //
yadi tac chakyate rājan parihartuṃ kathaṃcana
daivaṃ puruṣakāreṇa mā yajethāś ca taṃ kratum //
na cāparādhaḥ śakrasya nopadhyāyagaṇasya te
tava vā yajamānasya kālo 'tra parameśvaraḥ //
tasya saṃsthāpanam idam kālasya vaśavarti vai
tat praṇeyaṃ nibodhasya trailokyaṃ sacarācaram //
yathā yaṣṭā nṛpaḥ svargaṃ gamiṣyati yugakṣaye
tathā yajñaphalānāṃ ca vikretāro dvijātayaḥ //
nivṛttāv aśvamedhasya kiṃ nimittaṃ bhaviṣyati
śrutvā parihariṣyāmi bhagavan yadi śakyate //
nimittaṃ bhavitā tatra brahmakopakṛtaṃ prabho
yatasva parihartuṃ tad ity etad bhadram astu te //
tvayā dhṛtaḥ kratuś caiva vājimedhaḥ paraṃtapa
kṣatriyā nāhariṣyanti yāvad bhūmir dhariṣyati //
nivṛttāv aśvamedhasya vipraśāpāgnitejasā
ahaṃ nimittaṃ iti ced bhayaṃ tīvraṃ ca jāyate //
kathaṃ hy akīrttyā saṃyuktaḥ sukṛtī madvidho janaḥ
lokān utsahate gantuṃ khaṃ sapāśa iva dvijaḥ //
yathā hy anāgatam idam dṛṣṭam atra praṇāśanam
yajñasya punarāvṛttir yady asty āśvāsayasva mām //
upāttayajño devebhyo brāhmaṇeṣu nivatsyati
Note: k: T2 G1.3 ins. after the ref.: :kvihito yajña eṣo 'tra devaiś ca brāhmaṇair api |
tejasābhyāhṛtaṃ tejas tejasyevāvatiṣṭhate //
audbhido bhavitā kaścit senānīḥ kāśyapo dvijaḥ
aśvamedhaṃ kaliyuge punaḥ pratyāhariṣyati //
tadyuge tatkulīnaś ca rājasūyam api kratum
āhariṣyati rājendra śvetagraham ivāntakaḥ //
yathābalaṃ manuṣyāṇāṃ kartṝṇāṃ dāsyate phalam
yugāntadvāram ṛṣibhiḥ saṃvṛtaṃ vicariṣyati //
tadāprabhṛti hāsyante nṛṇāṃ prāṇāḥ purākṛtīḥ
vinivartiṣyate loke vṛttānte vṛttimatsv api //
tadā sūkṣmo mahodarko dustaro dānamūlavān
cāturāśramyaśithilo dharmaḥ pravicaliṣyati //
tadā hy alpena tapasā siddhiṃ yāsyanti mānavāḥ
dhanyā dharmaṃ cariṣyanti yugāmte janamejaya //
Note: h: HV (CE) chapter 116, transliterated by Peter Bisschop, version of december 26, 2001 :h
āsannaṃ viprakṛṣṭaṃ vā yadi kālaṃ na vidmahe
tasmād dvāparavidhvaṃsād yugāntaṃ spṛhayāmy aham //
prāptā vayaṃ hi taṃ kālam anayā dharmatṛṣṇayā
prāptā vayaṃ ca dharmaṃ svaṃ sukham alpena karmaṇā //
prajāsamudvegakaraṃ yugāntaṃ samupasthitam
Note: k: T1.2 G1.3-5 M2.4 subst.: :ktasmāt samudvegakare yugānte pratyupasthite |
pranaṣṭadharmaṃ dharmajña nimittair vaktum arhasi //
pṛṣṭa evaṃ bhaviṣyasya gatiṃ tattvena cintayan
Note: k: T1.2 G1.3-5 M2 subst.: :kevaṃ bhaviṣye tu gatiṃ yogenaiva vicintayan |
yugānte pūrvarūpāṇi bhagavān abravīt tadā //
arakṣitāro hartāro balibhāgasya pārthivāḥ
yugānte prabhaviṣyanti svarakṣaṇaparāyaṇāḥ //
akṣatriyāś ca rājāno viprāḥ śūdropajīvinaḥ
śūdrāś ca brāhmaṇācārā bhaviṣyanti yugakṣaye //
Note: k: N2 ins.: :k
śūdrā dharmaṃ cariṣyanti yugānte janamejaya |
kāṇḍapṛṣṭhāḥ śrotriyāś ca havīṃṣi bharatarṣabha
ekapaṅktyām aśiṣyanti yugānte janamejaya //
śilpavanto 'nṛtaparāḥ narā madyāmiṣapriyāḥ
Note: k: N2 ins.: :kparaṃ dharmaṃ haniṣyanti manuṣyā mandabuddhayaḥ |
bhāryāmitrā bhaviṣyanti yugānte janamejaya //
Note: k: G1.3.5 M2.4 D6 ins.: :k
alpodakās tathā meghā alpasasyā ca medinī |
rājavṛtte sthitāś corā rākānaś coraśīlinaḥ
bhṛtyā anirviṣṭabhujo bhaviṣyanti yugakṣaye //
dhanāni ślāghanīyāni satāṃ vṛttam apūjitam
Note: k: T1 G1.3-5 M2.4 ins.: :knāryaś cāpi kariṣyanti kṛṣim eva kalau yuge |
akutsanā ca patite bhaviṣyati yugakṣaye //
Note: k: N2 ins.: :k
aśāntās tāpasā nityaṃ bhaviṣyanti kalau yuge |
pranaṣṭacetanā martyā muktakeśā vicūlinaḥ
unaṣoḍaśavarṣāś ca prajāsyanti narās tadā //
aṭṭaśūlā janapadāḥ śivaśūlāś catuṣpathāḥ
pramadāḥ keśaśūlāś ca bhaviṣyanti yugakṣaye //
Note: k: K3 ins.: :k
aṭṭam annam iti proktaṃ śūlo vikraya ucyate |
catuṣpathā brāhmaṇa iti śivo veda udāhṛtaḥ |
keśo bhaga iti khyāto rājan naivātra saṃśayaḥ |
sarve brahma vadiṣyanti sarve vājasaneyinaḥ
śūdrā bhovādinaś caiva bhaviṣyanti yugakṣaye //
tapoyajñārthavedānāṃ vikretāro dvijātayaḥ
ṛtavaś ca bhaviṣyanti viparītā yugakṣaye //
śukladantājitākṣāś ca muṇḍāḥ kāṣāyavāsasaḥ
śūdrā dharmaṃ cariṣyanti śākyabuddhopajīvinaḥ //
śvāpadapracuratvaṃ ca gavāṃ caiva parikṣayaḥ
svādūnāṃ vinivṛttiś ca vidyād antagate yuge //
antyā madhye nivatsyanti madhyāś cāntāvasāyinaḥ
yathānimnaṃ prajāḥ sarvā gamiṣyanti yugakṣaye //
tathā dvihāyanā damyās tathā palvalakarṣakāḥ
citravarṣī ca parjanyo yuge kṣīṇe bhaviṣyati //
Note: k: K2-4 N V B D T G3-5 M2.4 ins.: :k
sarve corakule jātāś corayānāḥ parasaram |
svalpenāḍhyā bhaviṣyanti yat kiṃcit prāpya durgatāḥ |
na te dharmaṃ cariṣyanti mānavā nirgate yuge
ūṣarābahulā bhūmiḥ panthāno nagarāntarā
sarve vāṇijakāś caiva bhaviṣyanti kalau yuge //
pitṛkṛtyāni deyāni vidhamantaḥ sutās tadā
haraṇāya prapatsyante lobhānṛtavirodhitāḥ //
Note: k: T2 G1.3 ins.: :k
pitṛdattāni vittāni nighnantas tanayāḥ sadā |
grahaṇāya pravartante lobhād anṛtavādinaḥ |
saukumārye tathā rūpe ratne copakṣayaṃ gate
bhaviṣyanti yugasyānte nāryaḥ keśair alaṃkṛtāḥ //
nirvihārasya bhītasya gṛhasthasya bhaviṣyati
yugānte samanuprāpte nānyā bhāryāsamā ratiḥ //
kuśīlānāryabhūyiṣṭhaṃ vṛthārūpasamāvṛtam
puruṣālpaṃ bahustrīkaṃ tad yugāntasya lakṣaṇam //
bahuyācanakā lokā dāsyante ca parasparam
Note: k: K1.4 N2 V2 B Ds D6 T1.2 G1.3-5 ins.: :kavicārya grahīṣyanti dānaṃ varṇāntarāt tathā |
rājacorādidaṇḍārto janaḥ kṣayam upaiṣyati //
sasyaniṣpattir aphalā taruṇā vṛddhaśīlinaḥ
īhayāsukhino lokā bhaviṣyanti gate yuge //
varṣāsu vātāḥ puruṣā nīcāḥ śarkaravarṣiṇaḥ
saṃdigdhaḥ paralokaś ca bhaviṣyati yugakṣaye //
Note: k: Dn Bomb. Poona eds. G (ed.) ins.: :k
ātmanaś ca durācārā brahmadūṣaṇatatparāḥ |
ātmānaṃ bahu manyante manyur evābhyayād dvijān |
vaiśyācārāś ca rājanyā dhanadhānyopajīvinaḥ
yugāpakramaṇe pūrvaṃ bhaviṣyanti dvijātayaḥ //
apravṛttāḥ prapatsyante samayāḥ śapathās tathā
ṛṇaṃ ca vinayabhraṃśo yuge kṣīṇe bhaviṣyati //
bhaviṣyaty aphalo harṣaḥ krodhaś ca saphalo nṛṇām
ajāś caivopayokṣyante payaso 'rthe yugakṣaye //
aśāstravihitā prajñā evam eva bhaviṣyati
Note: k: K N2.3 V1.2 B2 Dn D1.3-5 T1.2 G1.3-5 M2.4 subst.: :kaśāstraviduṣāṃ puṃsām evam eva svabhāvataḥ |
Note: k: N2 V1.2 B2 Dn D3.5 T2 G1 cont.: V3 B1 Ds D6 ins.: :kapramāṇaṃ kariṣyanti nītiṃ paṇḍitamāninaḥ |
śāstroktasyāpravaktāro bhaviṣyanti yugakṣaye //
sarvaḥ sarvaṃ vijānāti vṛddhān anupasevya ca
na kaścid akavir nāma yugānte pratyupasthite //
na kṣatrāṇi niyokṣyanti vikarmasthā dvijātayaḥ
coraprāyāś ca rājāno yugānte pratyupasthite //
kuṇḍā vṛṣā naikṛtikāḥ surāpā brahmavādinaḥ
aśvamedhena yakṣyanti yugānte janamejaya //
ayājyān yājayiṣyanti tathābhakṣyasya bhakṣiṇaḥ
brāhmaṇā dhanatṛṣṇārtā yugānte samupasthite //
bhogārtham abhipatsyante na ca kaścit paṭhiṣyati
ekaśaṅkhās tathā nāryo gavedhukapinaddhakāḥ //
nakṣatrāṇi vihīnāni viparītā diśas tathā
saṃdhyārāgo 'tha digdāho bhaviṣyaty apare yuge //
pitṝn putrā niyokṣyanti vadhvaḥ śvaśrūś ca karmasu
Note: k: V3 B Ds D2-6 ins. after 37ab: N2 V1.2 Dn after 37: :kvākśarais tarjayiṣyanti gurūñ śiṣyās tathaiva ca |
Note: k: V3 B1.2 Ds D6 cont.: N1 ins. after 37: :kmukheṣu ca prayokṣyanti pramattāś ca narās tadā |
viyoniṣu cariṣyanti pramadāsu narās tadā //
akṛtāgrāṇi bhokṣyanti narāś caivāgnihotriṇaḥ
bhikṣāṃ balim adattvā ca bhokṣyanti puruṣāḥ svayam //
patīn suptān vañcayitvā gamiṣyanti striyo aṇyataḥ
puruṣāś ca prasuptāsu bhāryāsu ca parastriyam //
nāvyadhito nāpy arujo janaḥ sarvo 'bhyasūyakaḥ
na kṛtapratikartā ca kāle kṣīṇe bhaviṣyati //
Note: h: HV (CE) chapter 117, transliterated by Peter Bisschop, version of december 27, 2001 :h
eṣaṃ vilulite loke manuṣyāḥ kena pālitāḥ
nivatsyanti kimācārāḥ kimāhāravihāriṇaḥ //
kiṃkarmāṇaḥ kimīhantaḥ kiṃpramāṇāḥ kimāyuṣaḥ
kāṃ ca kāṣṭhāṃ samāsādya prapatsyanti kṛtaṃ yugam //
ata ūrdhvaṃ cyute dharme guṇahīnāḥ prajās tataḥ
śīlavyasanam āsādya prāpsyante hrāsam āyuṣaḥ //
āyurhārnyā balaglānir balaglānyā vivarṇatā
Note: k: read āyurhānyā (cf. parallel in Brahmapurāṇa 231.45a) :kvaivarṇyād vyādhisaṃpīḍā nirvedo vyādhipīḍanāt //
nirvedād ātmasaṃbodhaḥ saṃbodhād dharmaśīlatā
evaṃ gatvā parāṃ kāṣṭhāṃ prapatsyanti kṛtaṃ yugam //
uddeśato dharmaśīlāḥ kecin madhyasthatāṃ gatāḥ
vimarśaśīlāḥ kecit tu hetuvādakutūhalāḥ //
pratyakṣam anumānaṃ ca pramāṇam iti niścitāḥ
pramāṇaṃ kiṃ kariṣyati neti paṇḍitamāninaḥ
apramāṇaṃ kariṣyanti vedoktam apare janāḥ //
Note: k: K N2 V B D ins.: :k
tadā mukhabhagāś caiva bhaviṣyanti striyo 'parāḥ |
nāstikyaparamāś cāpi kecid dharmavilopakāḥ
bhaviṣyanti narā mūḍhā mandāḥ paṇḍitamāninaḥ //
tadātvamātraśraddheyāḥ śāstrajñānavimūrchitāḥ
dāmbhikās te bhaviṣyanti vādaśīlaparāyaṇāḥ //
tadā vicalite dharme janāḥ śeṣapuraskṛtāḥ
śubhāny evācariṣyanti dānasatyasamanvitāḥ //
sarvabhakṣo hy asaṃgupto nirguṇo nirapatrapaḥ
bhaviṣyati tadā lokas tat kaṣāyasya lakṣaṇam //
viprāṇāṃ śāśvatīṃ vṛttiṃ yadā varṇāvaro janaḥ
abhipatsyati vṛttyarthaṃ tat kaṣāyasya lakṣaṇam //
kaṣāyopaplave kāle jñānavidyāpraṇāśane
siddhim alpena kālena yāsyanti nirupaskṛtāḥ //
mahāyuddhaṃ mahānādaṃ mahāvarṣaṃ mahābhayam
bhaviṣyati yuge kṣīṇe tat kaṣāyasya lakṣaṇam //
viprarūpāṇi rakṣāṃsi rājānaḥ karṇavedinaḥ
Note: k: After 15a T2 G1.3-5 M2-4 ins.: :kcariṣyanti vasuṃdharāṃ |
pranaṣṭavarṇadharmāś ca |
pṛthivīm upabhokṣyanti yugānte pratyupasthite //
niḥsvādhyāyavaṣaṭkārā munayaś cābhimāninaḥ
kravyādā brahmarūpeṇa sarvabhakṣā vṛthāvratāḥ //
mūrkhāḥ svārthaparā lubdhāḥ kṣudrāḥ kṣudraparicchadāḥ
vyavāhāropavṛttāś ca cyutā dharmāc ca śāśvatāt //
hartāraḥ pararatnānāṃ paradārapradharṣakāḥ
kāmātmāno durātmānaḥ sopadhāḥ priyasāhasāḥ //
teṣu prabhavamāneṣu tulyaśīleṣu sarvataḥ
abhāvino bhaviṣyanti munayo bahurūpiṇaḥ //
utpannā ye kṛtayuge pradhānapuruṣāśrayāḥ
kathāyogena tān sarvān pūjayiṣyanti mānavāḥ //
sasyacorā bhaviṣyanti tathā cailāpahāriṇaḥ
bhakṣyabhojyaharāś caiva bhāṇḍānāṃ caiva hāriṇaḥ //
corāś corasya hartāro hantā hartur bhaviṣyati
corāś corakṣaye cāpi kṛte kṣemaṃ bhaviṣyati //
niḥsāre kṣubhite loke niṣkriye vyantare sthite
narāḥ śrayiṣyanti vanaṃ karabhāraprapīḍitāḥ //
Note: k: K N2.3 V1 B Dn Ds D1.3-5 G (ed.) ins.: :k
pitṝn ājñāpayiṣyanti putrāḥ karmāṇi sarvaśaḥ |
snuṣāḥ śvaśrūs tathā caiva yugānte paryupasthite |
vākśarais tarjayiṣyanti gurūñ śiṣyāḥ samantataḥ |
yajñakarmaṇy uparate rakṣāṃsi śvāpadāni ca
koṭimūṣakasarpāś ca dharṣayiṣyanti mānavān //
kṣemaṃ subhikṣam ārogyaṃ sāmagryam atha bandhubhiḥ
uddeśena naraśreṣṭha bhaviṣyanti yugakṣaye //
svayaṃpālāḥ svayaṃcorā yugasaṃbhārasaṃbhṛtāḥ
maṇḍalaiḥ prabhaviṣyanti deśe deśe pṛthak pṛthak //
svadeśebhyaḥ paribhraṣṭā niḥsārāḥ saha bandhubhiḥ
narās tadā bhaviṣyanti sarve kālapratīkṣiṇaḥ //
tadā skandhe samādāya kumārān pradrutā bhayāt
kauśikīṃ saṃśrayiṣyanti narāḥ kṣudbhayapīḍitāḥ //
Note: k: M4 ins.: :k
pracariṣyanti durbhikṣa+ +vyādhibhiḥ paripīḍitāḥ |
aṅgān vaṅgān kaliṅgāṃś ca kāśmīrān atha mekalān
ṛṣikāntagiridroṇīḥ saṃśrayiṣyanti mānavāḥ //
kṛtsnaṃ ca himavatpārśvaṃ kūlaṃ ca lavaṇāmbhasaḥ
araṇyāni ca vatsyanti narā mlecchagaṇaiḥ saha //
naiva śūnyā na cāśūnyā bhaviṣyati vasuṃdharā
goptāraś cāpy agoptāraḥ prabhaviṣyanti śāsinaḥ //
mṛgair matsyair vihaṃgaiś ca śvāpadaiḥ sarvakīṭakaiḥ
Note: k: D4 subst.: :kmṛgamatsyavihaṃgaiś ca kīṭaśvāpadavaṃgamaiḥ (?) |
madhuśākaphalair mūlair vartayiṣyanti mānavāḥ //
cīraṃ parṇaṃ ca vividhaṃ valkalāny ajināni ca
svayaṃ kṛtvā nivatsyanti yathā munijanās tathā //
bījānām ākṛtiṃ nimneṣv īhante kāṣṭhaśaṅkubhiḥ
ajaiḍakaṃ kharoṣṭraṃ ca pālayiṣyanti yatnataḥ //
nadīsrotāṃsi rotsyanti toyārthaṃ kūlam āśritāḥ
pakvānnavyavahāreṇa vipaṇantaḥ parasparam //
tanūruhair yathājātaiḥ samalāntarasaṃvṛtaiḥ
bahvapatyāḥ prajāhīnāḥ krūrā lakṣaṇavarjitāḥ //
evaṃ bhaviṣyanti tadā manuṣyāḥ kālakāritāḥ
hīnādd hīnaṃ tadā dharmaṃ prajā samanuvartsyati //
āyus tatra ca martyānāṃ paraṃ triṃśad bhaviṣyati
durbalā viṣayaglānā rajasā samabhiplutāḥ //
bhaviṣyati tadā teṣāṃ rogair indriyasaṃkṣayaḥ
āyuḥprakṣayasaṃrodhādd hiṃsā coparamiṣyati //
Note: k: D4 ins.: :k
evaṃ viplāvite loke pīḍitāḥ saṃkṣaye kāle |
jñāninas te bhaviṣyanti pīḍayā viphalodyamāḥ |
śuśrūṣavo bhaviṣyanti sādhūnāṃ darśane ratāḥ
satyaṃ cāpi prapatsyanti vyavahārāpaśaṅkayā //
bhaviṣyanti ca kāmānām alābhād dharmaśīlinaḥ
kariṣyanti ca saṃkocaṃ svapakṣakṣayapīḍitāḥ //
evaṃ śuśrūṣavo dāne satye prāṇābhirakṣaṇe
catuṣpādapravṛttaṃ ca dharmam āpsyanti mānavāḥ //
tesāṃ dharmābhimānānāṃ guṇeṣu parivartatām
svādu kiṃ nv iti vijñāya dharma eva svadiṣyati //
yathā hāniḥ kramaprāptā tathā vṛddhiḥ kramāgatā
Note: k: D4 subst.: :kyadā hānir bhaviṣyati kaleḥ sarvāṇi bhūpate |
pragṛhīte tato dharme prapatsyanti kṛtaṃ punaḥ //
sādhuvṛttiḥ kṛtayuge kaṣāye hānir ucyate
eka eva tu kālaḥ sa hīnavarṇo yathā śaśī //
channo hi tamasā somo yathā kaliyuge tathā
pūrṇaś ca tapasā hīno yathā kaliyuge tathā //
arthavādaparo dharmo vedārtha iti tu viduḥ
anirṇiktam avijñātaṃ dāyādyam iva dhāryate //
iṣṭaṃ dānaṃ tapo nāma brahmacaryaṃ supūjitam
guṇaiḥ karmābhinirvṛttir guṇās tathyena karmaṇā //
āśīs tu puruṣaṃ dṛṣṭvā deśakālānuvartinī
yuge yuge yathākālam ṛṣibhiḥ samudāhṛtā //
iha dharmārthakāmānāṃ vedānāṃ ca pratikriyā
āśiṣaś ca śubhāḥ puṇyās tathaivāyur yuge yuge //
Note: k: D4 ins.: :k
bhaviṣyanti mahārāja narā bahvāyuṣas tadā |
yathā yugānāṃ parivartanāni cirapravṛttāni vidhisvabhāvāt
kṣaṇaṃ na saṃtiṣṭhati jīvalokaḥ kṣayodayābhyāṃ parivartamānaḥ //
Note: h: HV (CE) chapter 118, transliterated by Peter Bisschop, version of december 29, 2001 :h
ity evam āśvāsayato rājānaṃ janamejayam
atītānāgataṃ vākyam ṛṣeḥ pariṣadā śrutam //
amṛtasyeva cāsvādaḥ prabhā candramaso yathā
atarpayata tac chotraṃ maharṣer vāṅmayo rasaḥ //
dharmārthakāmasaṃyuktaṃ karuṇaṃ vīraharṣaṇam
ramaṇīyaṃ tad ākhyānaṃ kṛtsnaṃ pariṣadā śrutam //
kecid aśrūṇi mumucuḥ śrutvā dadhyus tathāpare
itihāsaṃ tam ṛṣiṇā pārāśaryeṇa darśitam //
Note: k: For 4cd, D4 subst.: :k
atītānāgataṃ yad vai muninoktaṃ dvijarṣabha |
sadasyānto 'bhyanujñāya kṛtvā cāpi pradakṣiṇam
punar drakṣyāma ity uktvā jagāma bhagavān ṛṣiḥ //
anujagmus tataḥ sarve prayāntam ṛṣisattamam
loke pravadatāṃ śreṣṭhaṃ śiṣṭāḥ sarve tapodhanāḥ //
yāte bhagavati vyāse viprāḥ saha maharṣibhiḥ
ṛtvijaḥ pārthivāś caiva pratijagmur yathāgatam //
pannagānāṃ sughorāṇāṃ kṛtvā tāṃ vairayātanām
jagāma roṣam utsṛtya rājā viṣam ivoragaḥ //
hotrāgnidīptaśirasaṃ paritrāya ca takṣakam
āstīko 'py āśramapadaṃ jagāma ca mahāmuniḥ //
rājāpi hāstinapuraṃ praviveśa janāvṛtaḥ
anvaśāsac ca muditas tadā pramuditāḥ prajāḥ //
kasyacit tv atha kālasya sa rājā janamejayaḥ
dīkṣito vājimedhāya vidhivad bhūridakṣiṇaḥ //
saṃjñaptam aśvaṃ tatrāsya devī kāśyā vapuṣṭamā
saṃviveśopagamyātha vidhidṛṣṭena karmaṇā //
tāṃ tu sarvānavadyāṅgīṃ cakame vāsavas tadā
saṃjñaptam aśvaṃ āviśya tayā miśrībabhūva saḥ //
tasmin vikāre janite viditvā tattvataś ca tat
asaṃjñapto 'yam aśvas te dhvaṃsety adhvaryum abravīt //
adhvaryur jñānasaṃpannas tadindrasya viceṣṭitam
kathayāmāsa rājarṣeḥ śaśāpa sa puraṃdaram //
yady asti me yajñaphalaṃ tapo vā rakṣataḥ prajāḥ
phalena tena sarveṇa bravīmi śrūyatām idam //
adyaprabhṛti devendram ajitendriyam asthiram
kṣatriyā vājimedhena na yakṣyantīti śaunaka //
ṛtvijaś cābravīt kruddhaḥ sa rājā janamejayaḥ
daurbalyaṃ bhavatām etad yad ayaṃ dharṣitaḥ kratuḥ //
viṣaye me na vastavyaṃ dhvaṃsadhvaṃ saha bāndhavaiḥ
ity uktās tatyajur viprās taṃ nṛpaṃ jātamanyavaḥ //
amarṣād anvaśāsac ca patnīśālāgatāḥ striyaḥ
Note: k: K N2.3 V B D ins.: :krājā paramadharmajñas tadāsau janamejayaḥ |
asatīṃ vapuṣṭamām etāṃ nirvāsayata me gṛhāt
Note: k: 9 syllables in pāda c :kyayā me caraṇo mūrdhni bhasmareṇūṣitaḥ kṛtaḥ //
śauṇḍīryaṃ me 'nayā bhagnaṃ yaśo mānaś ca dūṣitaḥ
naināṃ draṣṭum apīcchāmi parikliṣṭām iva srajam //
na svādu so 'śnāti naraḥ sukhaṃ svapiti vā rahaḥ
anvāste yaḥ priyāṃ bhāryāṃ pareṇa mṛditām iha //
Note: k: D5 (marg.) Bom. Poona eds. G (ed.) ins.: :k
punar naivopabhuñjanti śvāvalīḍhaṃ havir yathā |
evam uccaiḥ prabhāṣantaṃ kruddhaṃ pārikṣitaṃ nṛpam
gandharvarājaḥ provāca viśvāvasur idaṃ vācaḥ //
triyajñaśatayajvānaṃ vāsavas tvāṃ na mṛṣyati
na duṣyatīyaṃ patnī te vihiteyaṃ vapuṣṭamā //
rambhā nāmāpsarā devī kāśirājasutā matā
saiṣā yoṣidvarā rājan ratnabhūtānubhūyatām //
yajñe vivaram āsādya vighnam indreṇa te kṛtam
yajvā hy asi kuruśreṣṭha samṛddhyā vāsavopamaḥ //
bibhety abhibhavāc chakras tava kratuphalair nṛpa
tasmād āvartitaś caiva kratur indreṇa te vibho //
māyaiṣā vāsaveneha prayuktā vighnam icchatā
yajñe vivaram āsādya saṃjñaptaṃ dṛśya vājinam
ratim indreṇa rambhāyāṃ manyase yāṃ vapuṣṭamām //
atha te guravaḥ śaptās triyajñaśatayājinaḥ
bhraṃśitas tvaṃ ca viprāś ca phalād indrasamād iha
tvattaś caiva sudurdharṣāt triyajñaśatayājinaḥ //
bibheti hi sadā tvatto brāhmaṇebhyo 'pi vāsavaḥ
ekena vai tad ubhayaṃ tīrṇaṃ śakreṇa māyayā //
sa eṣa sumahātejā vijigīṣuḥ puraṃdaraḥ
katham anyair anācīrṇaṃ naptur dārān atikramet //
yathaiva hi parā buddhiḥ paro dharmaḥ paro damaḥ
yathaiva paramaiśvaryaṃ kīrtiś ca harivāhane
tathaiva tava durdharṣa triyajñaśatayājinaḥ //
mā vāsavaṃ mā ca gurum ātmāṇaṃ mā vapuṣtamām
gaccha doṣeṇa kālo hi sarvathā duratikramaḥ //
aiśvaryeṇāśvam āviśya devendreṇābhiroṣitaḥ
ānukūlyena devasya vartitavyaṃ sukhārthinā //
dustaraṃ pratikūlaṃ hi pratisrota ivāmbhasaḥ
strīratnam upabhuṅkṣvemām apāpāṃ vigatajvaraḥ //
apāpās tyajyamānā vai śapeyur api yoṣitaḥ
aduṣṭās tu striyo rājan divyās tu saviśeṣataḥ //
bhānoḥ prabhā śikhā vahner vedīhotre tathāhutiḥ
parāmṛṣṭāpy asaṃraktā nopaduṣyanti yoṣitaḥ //
grāhyā lālayitavyāś ca pūjyāś ca satataṃ budhaiḥ
śīlavatyo namaskāryāḥ pūjyāḥ striya iva striyaḥ //
evaṃ sa viśvāvasunānunītaḥ prasādam āgamya vapuṣṭamāyām
cakāra mithyāvyatiśaṅkitātmā śāntiṃ parāṃ tatra sa dharmajuṣṭām //
śramam abhivinivartya mānasaṃ sa samabhilaṣajjanamejayo yaśaḥ svam
viṣayam anuśaśāsa dharmabuddhir muditamanā ramayan vapuṣṭamāṃ tām //
na ca viramati viprapūjanān na ca vinivartati yajñaśīlanāt
na ca viṣayaparirakṣaṇāc cyuto 'sau na ca parigarhati vapuṣṭamāṃ ca //
vidhivihitam aśakyam anyathā hi kartum yad ṛṣir acintyatapāḥ purābravīt saḥ
Note: k: T1 ins.: :kna ca tad aśakyam anyathā hi kartum |
iti narapatir ātmavāṃs tadāsau tad anuvicintya babhūva vītamanyuḥ //
Note: k: T2 G1.3-5 M2.4 ins.: :k
iti nṛpatir adīnavikramas tad anuvicintya babhūva nirvṛtaḥ |
idaṃ mahākāvyam ṛṣer mahātmanaḥ paṭhan nṛṇāṃ pūjyatamo bhaven naraḥ
prakṛṣṭam āyuḥ samavāpya durlabhaṃ labheta sarvajñaphalaṃ ca kevalam //
śatakratoḥ kalmaṣavipramokṣaṇaṃ paṭhan idam mucyati kalmaṣān naraḥ
tathaiva kāmān vividhān samaśnute samāptakāmaś ca cirāya nandati //
yathā hi puṣpaprabhavaṃ phalaṃ drumāt tataḥ prajāyanti punaś ca pādapāḥ
tathā maharṣiprabhavā imā giraḥ pravardhayante tam ṛṣiṃ pravartitāḥ //
putrān aputro labhate suvarcasaś cyutaḥ punar vindati cātmanaḥ sthitim
vyādhiṃ na cāpnoti ciraṃ ca bandhanaṃ kriyāṃ ca puṇyāṃ labhate guṇānvitaḥ //
patim upalabhate ca satsu kanyā śravaṇam upetya śubhā munes tu vācaḥ
janayati ca sutān guṇair upetān ripujanamardanavīryaśālinaś ca //
vijayati vasudhāṃ ca kṣatravṛttir dhanam atulaṃ labhate dviṣajjayaṃ ca
vipulam api dhanaṃ labhec ca vaiśyaḥ sugatim iyāc chravaṇāc ca śūdrajātiḥ //
purāṇam etac caritaṃ mahātmanām adhītya buddhiṃ labhate ca naiṣṭhikīm
vihāya duḥkhāni vimuktasaṅgaḥ sa vītarāgo vicared vasuṃdharām //
ity etad ākhyānam udāhṛtaṃ vaḥ pratismaranto dvijamaṇḍaleṣu
sthairyeṇa jātena punaḥ smarantaḥ sukhaṃ bhavanto vicarantu lokam //
iti caritam idaṃ mahātmanām ṛṣikṛtam adbhutavīryakarmaṇām
kathitam idaṃ hi samāsavistaraiḥ kim aparam icchasi kiṃ bravīmi te //
- Notizen
- Distributed under a Creative Commons Attribution-NonCommercial-ShareAlike 4.0 International License (https://creativecommons.org/licenses/by-nc-sa/4.0/)
- Rechtsinhaber*in
- Göttingen Register of Electronic Texts in Indian Languages (GRETIL), SUB Göttingen
- Zitationsvorschlag für dieses Objekt
- TextGrid Repository (2022). 1_sanskr. tei. sa_harivaMza. GRETIL. Göttingen Register of Electronic Texts in Indian Languages (GRETIL), SUB Göttingen. https://hdl.handle.net/21.T11991/0000-001C-9429-D